IT'S HELL WITHOUT JESUS – REPENT AND BELIEVE IN JESUS.

The only way to escape HELL is through repentance and faith in JESUS CHRIST.

THE WORLD NEEDS TO DEPROGRAM FROM THE LIES OF THE MAIN STREAM MEDIA AND HOLLYWOOD!

Posted by ItsHellWithoutJESUS on March 17, 2011

WHO IS THIS GUY? an anomaly — ex-military, de-programmed “useless eater” repulsed by diabolical social alchemy of global management team. This blog attempts to expose Hegelian Dialectics (problem-reaction-solution) left vs. right, phony political paradigm w/perpetual divide & conquer schemes:  Islam vs.  Judaism-Christianity, Protestants vs. Catholics, whites vs. ”people of color”, men vs. women, which  blinds  us  to the real  faces of  tyranny, hiding behind secret traditions, rites and rituals, altered identities and dizzying array of  front groups – living deliciously w/resources stolen from “the nations” via usurious money lending. They stand before us smugly decrying the very strategies they are the chief  proponents of — blatantly exchanging Occult-Masonic hand grips, flashing Baphomet signs (devil horns)  w/ their shifty-eyes and sly grins, spewing code words to their occult brethren hidden amongst deluded supporters…

They engage in abominable practices w/absolution and impunity, while deceitfully waving the banner of  false persecution — those who for centuries, have  ignored the commandments of their G-d, choosing  materialism over spirituality, death over life, darkness over lightorchestrating  ”ritualistic mind control” through control of banking, military, media, medicine, academia, clergy, entertainment — “Bread & Circus”. This complex web of deceit covers the earth, subjecting “the nations” to blind obedience and servitude to hereditary monarchs, oligarchs, vassal Kings/Queens, dictators, despots, tyrants and owners of earths material resources. This scourge has already been identified as “the mother of harlots and abominations of the earth… that traffics in men’s souls…”

URGENT!: Please Click here for more

Posted in THE WORLD NEEDS TO DEPROGRAM FROM THE LIES OF THE MAIN STREAM MEDIA AND HOLLYWOOD! | Tagged: , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , | Comments Off

DEEPER INSIGHTS INTO THE ILLUMINATI FORMULA

Posted by ItsHellWithoutJESUS on August 27, 2010

By Fritz Springmeier & Cisco Wheeler

DEDICATION

This book is dedicated to the two million Americans and counting who have been programmed with Monarch-type trauma-based mind control. This book is written to destroy trauma-based mind control before it destroys the human race. It’s time for this horrendous secret to end. It is also written as part of God’s end time work to propel people of faith to the high calling that is prophecied of the Body, but cannot be attained without men of faith understanding these things. Humanity’s great prophet said he came to heal those whose hearts had been broken–literally split and crushed, and to free those who are captive. That work needs to go forward. Blood, sweat and tears are associated with this book. The blood of the innocent victims of this mind-control cries out in a single unison, along with the pungent sweat of those who have tried to minister help to the shattered humanity left by the sadistic programmers, and the pools of tears shed as this book was written, “How long, O Lord, holy and true, do you not judge and avenge our blood on earth?”

HOPE

…. Thou shalt know that I am Lord: For they shall not be ashamed that wait on Me. Shall the prey be taken from the mighty, or the lawful captive delivered? But thus saith Yahweh, even the captives of the mighty shall be taken away, and the prey of the terrible shall be delivered: for I will contend with him that contendeth with thee, and I will save thy children. Isaiah 49:23b-25

WARNING, READ THIS FIRST BEFORE READING THE BOOK.

IF THERE IS ANY CHANCE you the reader have had mind-control done to you, you must consider the following book to be DANGEROUS. If you are consulting a therapist for DID (also known as MPD), it is recommended that you consult your therapist before reading this book. The complications that could result for those under mind control learning the truth–could be fatal. The co-authors take no responsibility for those who read or misuse this information. The reader’s mind is like a garden. It may not be time to plant the truth in your mind. Perhaps you need some weeding or ground preparation, before the garden of your mind is ready. Perhaps the weather is too stormy to plant the truth. Pray to the Lord of the Harvest. The blessings that flow from planting the information of this book in your mind, will require the presence of living waters of love. If you do not have love in your heart, this book is not for you. The information contained in this book is the biggest news-story of the 20th century, and still the biggest secret. It will challenge you, shock you, horrify you and hopefully motivate you to redouble your efforts to humble yourself and seek strength from God Almighty.

The programming procedures which are described in this book are based on research and consultation with deprogrammers, ex-programmers, therapists, counselors and pertinent literature. To the best of our knowledge the statements made in this book are factual, although they may not reflect the latest or currently accepted methodology among each and every faction of the New World Order which carries out Monarch-type programming. This book tends to devote more emphasis to Illuminati programming, which is the highest level of programming. For individual application in understanding a survivor of Monarch programming, therapists are admonished to use this material with consideration for the Monarch victim’s personal case and situation. The authors disclaim any responsibility for therapeutic work based upon this material.

Fritz Springmeier and Cisco Wheeler have co-authored They Know Not What They Do, An Illustrated Guidebook To Monarch Mind Control. Both Fritz and Cisco bring years of experience in dealing with Monarch programming to bear on the writing of this book. Fritz has researched the Illuminati, while he has worked with victims of its programming. He has authored The Top 13 Illuminati Families, and several other books.

INTRODUCTION by Fritz

There are many dangers to the human race, some real and some imagined. I believe that the trauma-based mind control which this book exposes is the greatest danger to the human race. It gives evil men the power to carry out any evil deed totally undetected. By the time the astute reader finishes this book, they will be as familiar with how to carry out trauma-based mind-control as some of the programmers. Ancient and more recent secrets will no longer be secrets. Over the years, I have spent thousands of hours studying the Illuminati, the Intelligence agencies of the world, and the occult world in general. The centerpiece of these organizations is the trauma-based mind control that they carry out. Without the ability to carry out this sophisticated type of mind-control using MPD, drugs, hypnosis and electronics and other control methodologies, these organizations would fail to keep their dark evil deeds secret. When one of the mind-control programmers of the Church of Scientology, who has left Scientology, was asked about MPD, he said, “It’s the name of the game of mind control.” Research into this subject will never be complete. This book has tried to give a comprehensive view of how the programming is done. The basic techniques were developed in German, Scottish, Italian, and English Illuminati families and have been done for centuries. Some report that some of the techniques go back to ancient Egypt and ancient Babylon to the ancient mystery religions. The Nazis are known to have studied ancient Egyptian texts in their mind control research. The records and secrets of the generational Illuminati bloodlines are very-well guarded secrets.

Even when I’ve learned about the location of secret depositories of some of the Illuminati’s secrets in Europe, America, and Asia, their records and secrets are too well-guarded to be examined. The intelligence agencies, such as MI-6 began investigating these mind-control techniques early this century, but their records have been routinely destroyed and tampered with. There are some survivors and professionals who know that the British used programmed trauma-based MPD (DID) agents in W.W. I. In Jan., 1987, Richard Kluft submitted an article to the American Journal of Clinical Hypnosis about 8 MPD patients who were between 60 and 72 years of age. Traugott Konstantin Oesterreich (1880-1949), who was professor of philosophy at Tubingen University, Germany studied MPD and demonic possession and wrote a classic study of it in 1921 entitled Possession Demonical & Other, which was translated into english in 1930. His classic work on this subject provides documented cases which reveal that the basic trauma-based mind-control was going on in Germany, France & Belgium long before the 20th century. Although he is unable to put together all the pieces and the clues for what they are, the reader of this book might enjoy reading the 1930 English translation of his classic work after they finish this book. Oesterreich’s research in early 1900s was the type of research that the Nazi mind-control programmers were very aware of. In 1921, the Germans such as Oesterreich would describe personality switches, by the term “somnambuliform [hypnotic states] possession” or “demonical somnambulism” or what might be called “Besessenheit von Hypnotismus und bösen Geistern.”

The ability to study both the spiritual & psychological aspects of mind-control phenomena, is often lacking today. There are exceptions such as Dr. Loreda Fox’s book The Spiritual Dimensions of MPD. In the 1920s, the Germans also were aware that the human mind has a variety of ego-psycho-psysiological states rather than one unified mind, which they termed “Sub jecklose Psychologie” or the psychology of having correlated psychological states rather than the concept of a single ego. The Germans and Italians under the Nazi and Fascist governments began to do serious scientific research into trauma-based mind control. Under the auspices of the Kaiser Wilhelm Medical Institute in Berlin, Joseph Mengele conducted mind-control research on thousands of twins, and thousands of other hapless victims. Himmler supervised genetic research. The Nazi research records were confiscated by the Allies and are still classified. A trip can be made from downtown Washington D.C. on a gray-government van which serves as a shuttle to the Suitland Annex where the government’s secrets are buried including research papers captured from the Nazi Mind-Control research. Most of Mengele’s concentration camp research is still classified. Much of it dealt with mind control. A researcher can visit the top floor, but underground below the top floor are the real secrets. The real secrets are lying in millions of sheets of classified documents hidden behind blast proof doors. There they have vault after vault, and row after row of top-secret files that only a few privileged persons with security clearances above COSMIC–such as with a “C3″ or “MJ” security clearance can visit. Everyone with these high security clearances which I have identified is connected to the Illuminati. Each underground area at Suitland Annex has its own subset of secret access words, known only to the initiated. Most of the OSS records have been destroyed, a few have been left, the important ones have been misfiled or remade. (This is according to a reliable British intelligent agent.) Also according to reliable inside sources the CIA is working night and day to remake old records, to expunge all the real dirty secrets from their records. The basement of CIA HQ is known as “the Pit,” In the Pit documents are being shredded and burned on a round the clock basis. The large remains of these secrets are sold for landfill. The Illuminati have developed secrecy to a fine art. They train their people in the art of secrecy from the time they are born. Most everything they do, is done orally. They are trained not to write rituals and other things down. There is very little paper trail left by the Illuminati.

The creation of slaves with photographic memories facilitates this secrecy. But this book is not about how they have managed to keep their trauma-based Monarch Mind-Control a secret. They have managed only to keep it a secret to the general public. They have not been able to completely cover-up the millions of wasted lives that their programming has ruined. For many years, they were able to shut-up and quietly discard their programmed multiples by labelling them Paranoid Schizophrenics. But therapists are now correctly identifying these people as programmed multiples and are not only diagnosing them better but giving them better treatment. After Candy Jones’s husband deprogrammed her enough that she could participate in writing a book exposing some of what had been done to her, the secret was out. (See The Control of Candy Jones Hypnotism and the CIA by Donald Bain.) Ever since then, the intelligence agencies and the Illuminati have been carrying out damage control. Their biggest damage control campaign has enlisted the power of Hollywood and the controlled Media. This campaign is known as the False Memory Syndrome campaign, or as those of us who know the facts like to call it “”the false memory spin-drome.” The headquarters of the False Memory Spin-drom Foundation is located at 3401 Market St., Suite 130, Philadelphia, PA 19104. Some of the original founders were doctors of the University of Pennslyvannia. The inside story about these early FMS doctors of the University of Pennslyvannia is that they practiced Satanic Rituals during their work days. What is unusual about this–is that generally satanic rituals are performed at night, but these doctors did their coven work during the day. I know about these men. Now you can see why these men started the FMS! They started it to cover their own sins, because many of them were abusers themselves. In other words many of the EMS people are abusers of trauma-based mind-controlled slaves, or the victims of abuse who are in denial about their own abuse from trauma-based mind-control. Martin T. Orn (the person credited with founding the FMS) had ties to the CIA. Two members of the EMS advisory board, Ralph Underwager, Ph.D. and theologian, along with Hollida Wakefield, M.A. let the cat out of the bag when they publicly supported pedophilia (that is adults having sex with children). Their support of pedophilia came in an interview with a Dutch magazine Paidika, The Journal of Paedophilia (Winter, 1993).

Although the False Memory Syndrome Foundation gets upset at any mention that there might be a conspiracy by the perpetrators of mind-control, because conspiracies supposedly don’t and can’t happen, they want us to believe that all therapists are conspiring together to implant false memories of abuse into their clients, which could not be further from the truth. Monarch slaves typically run into a great deal of denial by their therapists that anything like this could be happening. The bottom line is that Multiple Personality Disorder (now refered to as Dissociative Identity Disorder) is a recognized bona fide diagnosis. False Memory Syndrome is not a recognized medical or psychological diagnosis and does not appear in the American Psychiatric Association’s Diagnostic and Statistical Manual III-R nor the recently released DSM-IV. Those who followed Fritz’s writings have learned about the close working relationship between the Mondavi’s and the Rothschilds (see his article about the Mondavi/Rothschild Napa Valley winery). Guess who got the court precedence which gives the EMS some legal ground to attack therapists? The precidence was supposedly a wife who went to a doctor who told her she had syphilis. The wife assumes she got it from her husband and divorces him. Then she learns she doesn’t have syphilis. The husband then sues the doctor. Upon this bizarre case rests the legal precedence for a third party to sue a person who gives advice, such as family members suing a therapist.

Upon this weak precidence, an abusive father who worked for Monday in a winery in California successfully destroyed a legitimate therapist who was trying to save his daughter who was a programmed Monarch victim. Supposedly the therapist had implanted false memories of rape in his daughter, when the record shows that the daughter’s mother told the therapist the girl had been raped by the father. When a valid case of SRA and repressed memories went to trial in Washington state involving a police officer whose family was MPD, Dr. Richard Ofshe of the False Memory Spindrom showed up to cause mischief. And mischief he did work. The case involved the children of a “”Christian”" police officer named Ingram who had satanically ritually abused his family for years. The daughter won in court, but Ofshe of the EMS was not above writing a book full of lies and distortions about the case. Lynn Crook, who was the abused daughter in the case wrote up a paper exposing what EMS person Richard Ofshe did to her, The controlled media is giving full license and great coverage to the EMS people. Rather than fighting the government for scraps of declassified documents which have had their secrets marked out, and which may even be fake documents manufactured by the CIA, I have decided that there is a much better approach to expose the Monarch Mind Control to the world. If a person could never go to Nepal, he can see pictures of it and believe it exists. If a person can not get into the top secret records of the CIA and Office of Naval Intelligence and MI6, they can be given the exact RECIPE for creating a Monarch slave. I believe that by giving the step by step recipe, people will see that A. all the ingredients are available, B. it is possible to combine the ingredients, C. all it takes is the motive to do it, and that motive is self-evident. We’ll even provide some of the names and places as we go along. This book will provide the step-by-step recipe for making a Monarch Mind-Controlled slave, It is a trauma-based mind control which programs multiple personalities using every known technique of mind-control. Every type of mind-control technique has been combined into a group package which makes the total package almost impossible to break. It is this ability to synthesize all these methods into a group package which is so powerful.

Edward Hunter, author of Brainwashing In Red China, testified in 1958 before a U.S. Congressional House Committee on Un-American Activities: “Since man began, he has tried to influence other men or women to his way of thinking. There have always been these forms of pressure to change attitudes. We discovered in the past thirty years, a technique to influence, by clinical, hospital procedures, the thinking processes of human beings. Brainwashing is formed out of a set of different elements … hunger, fatigue, tenseness, threats, violence, and in more intense cases…drugs and hypnotism. No one of these elements alone can be regarded as brain washing, any more than an apple can be called apple pie. Other ingredients have to be added, and a cooking process gone through. So it is with brainwashing…” Hunter said brainwashing was a Red Chinese threat. He said that the chinese were the ones using these tactics. In reality, this mind control was being done in the U.S. and Hunter was a pawn to help justify the criminal activities of the programmers should they ever be found out behind their cover of “National security.” The handlers of mind-controlled slaves carry around a black or grey 3 ring notebook or a lap top computer with the access codes and triggers. Some of the programmers and handlers have this all memorized. The deepest parts, core/gems/executive committee, false trinity etc. are charted in esoteric language such as Enochian, Hebrew (which is considered magical), and Druid symbols. I have never gotten the opportunity to look at one of these, although a number of the slaves who I’ve talked with have while they were being programmed. These notebooks have color-coded graphs showing the arrangement of alters, the structure of the system, the training of the alters, the history of the alters and other details. All the primary tortures carried out on a slave are coded using dates/no.s so that the memories can be pulled up by the programmers. There is a standard set of hand signals, gestures, and codes that allow a handler to work with someone else’s slave, but the accepted code among the handlers is to leave another man’s slave alone. As one leading psychiatrist put it, “Different ideologies use the same methodologies of mind control.”

The Illuminati have secretly put in base programming that allows them ultimate control over many of the other groups’ slaves. This will be described within this book.

For both the ease of reading and the ease of writing, I have dispensed with most footnotes. To provide my sources would double the size of the book, and many of them are confidential. (In the past, when I have attempted crediting information, some people have gotten bruised feelings for having been passed over or for being named. When information comes in from several sources, it becomes difficult to pass out credit.) I have made conservative judgement calls about what material I could use. Most of this information has been verified by several reliable sources. Confidential eyewitnesses are often the only source, when there is such a powerful conspiracy to keep this vast NWO mind control secret. Paper trails were not left or are not available. Programmed slaves who have worked for the military as mind-controlled slaves have witnessed their files expunged and sanitized. The New World Order in 1981 made training films for their novice programmers. Monarch slave Cathy O’Brien was used to make both the film “How to Divide a Personality” and “How To Create a Sex Slave.” Two Huntsville porn photographers were used to help NASA and the NWO create these training films. Undoubtedly, other porn training films exist too. In others words, there is film evidence of the Monarch Total Mind-control but these porn films are kept in very secure sites. During the last few years, I have visited with ex-programmers, I have visited with hundreds of victims of the Monarch type programming. I have gone to programming sites, I have visited with therapists who work with the victims of this mind-control, and I have met several of the programmers of the CIA/Illuminati face to face in the adventures of trying to save people from their programming.

I hope that God gives me the strength and the opportunity to get the information I have learned out to the world in general. When this information gets out, hopefully it will help lift some of the secrecy of the Monarch Programming. The Monarch Programming is a foundation rock of the New World Order that when pulled up, will reveal the most evil two-legged bugs and slimy critters. When their rock is lifted, they will have to scurry to hide. Because the authors know what the programmers do, they must honestly record several areas of programming that will be controversial. The programmers are very much into demonology. Before therapists close their minds to this subject, the authors would like to point out, that they personally know of cases where Monarch slaves whose Christian personalities & other alters didn’t believe in demonology were talked into participating in real deliverance, and the slaves discovered much to their surprise that work they had unsuccessfully tried to do for years with their therapist was accomplished in a day or two.

Some prestigious researchers have decided the subconscious doesn’t exist because they can’t find it–its mysterious. To the man in the street the concept “subconscious” is as mysterious as the concept “demon”. Both have been the objects of intense research by U.S./Brit./Ger. Intelligence groups. In fact, many of the concepts in this book have been purposely obscurred by the Illuminati’s control over the media and universities. These obscurred concepts include M.P.D. (DID), recovered memories, hypnosis, demonic possession, aliens, mind-control, the subconscious, a conspiracy to bring in a NWO, truth, etc. The smokescreens of controversy will continue; but those who love the truth, if they seek it, will realize the importance of this book. It’s on public record that MK ULTRA, the mind control research which CIA director Admiral Stansfield Turner admitted to in 1977 spent millions of dollars studing Voodoo, witchcraft, and psychics. On August 3, 1977, at a Senate hearing the then CIA director Admiral Stansfield Turner disclosed that the CIA had been conducting mind control on countless numbers of unsuspecting victims for years, without their knowledge or consent. These CIA mind-control operations were carried out with the participation of a least 185 scientists and at least 80 American institutions, including prisons, pharmaceutical companies, hospitals, and 44 medical colleges & universities. Many of America’s most prestigious institutes of medical research, had cooperated with the CIA. as well as numerous big name corporations. Casey admitted that day that the CIA did mind-control consisting of drugs, hypnosis & electro-shock. A few of the victims of the Monarch Project were even awarded financial compensation for their misery. But what was admitted was admitted in the spirit of covering up the extent of the full truth. The compensation was actually hush money, because victims were given “gag orders” by judges not to talk about what had happened to them. It’s been a disaster for Monarch victims that so many ministers have ignored those words of their Scripture, “For we are not ignorant of the devil’s devices.” 2 COR 2:11 This book is a must for those ministers who seriously believe “Having therefore these promises, dearly beloved, let us cleanse ourselves from all filthiness of the flesh and spirit, perfecting holiness in the fear of God.” 2 COR 7:1. In 2 TIM 2: 19-21, believers who “nameth the name of Christ” are asked to purge themselves of their uncleanliness ( unclean spirits). There are many top notch Christians in the churches today who are under mind-control, incl. many of the Christian leadership. I would like to remind Christian ministers that Isaiah the great prophet said, “The Lord GOD hath given me the tongue of the learned that I should know how to speak a word in season to him that is weary: he wakeneth morning by morning; he wakeneth mine ear to hear as the learned.” Ignorance is not godliness. Isaiah learned to speak with the great learned men of his day, just as Paul the great apostle could speak to the learned men of his time. One of the character traits of God is that He is all-knowing. WHO says it is godly to be ignorant? The prophet Daniel said Yahweh God “reveals the deep and secret things.” (Dan. 2:22a) God’s instruments will do this revealing. Jesus’ advice to his disciples was in effect to “Be wise as serpents, and gentle as a lamb”. This advice certainly applies in helping the victims of trauma-based mind-control. Paul in his letter to the Thessalonians (1 Thes 5:14) says that in effect that different people need different counseling, but they all need to be treated with patience. The first step in suggesting a cure is to find out what happened. That is what this book is about. This book is about how the Occult Network creates the problem that therapists and a few ministers try to deal with. But the keys to open doors to healthy solutions for the victims of trauma-based total mind control will reveal themselves in this book for the reader as this book reveals the nitty-gritty of how the total mind-control happens. Christ came to free the captives (Isaiah 61:1). Satanic ritual abuse has a history that is almost as old as history itself. Good King Hezekiah was a victim as a child of SRA. (2 Chr. 29) who got free. Moses confronted the satanic magic of Pharoah’s magicians who could create live snakes from sticks. The Apostle Paul had to deal with Simon Magus, a leader of what is now known as Satanism. Solomon, one of the greatest men of faith, backslide and became one of the greatest satanists of all history. We have “no fellowship with unfruitful works of darkness, but rather reprove them” (as per EPH 5:11). While we have no fellowship with evil, the mind-control programmers are counting on us being so ignorant of their devices that they can hide their control devices behind perversion & filth that many people shy away from. We must be strong enough to face evil and not shy away from it. The victims of mind-control must look evil in the face & not look away to gain their freedom. We, who want to help them, must be courageous & strong enough to do this too. This book is written for that divine goal “till we all come in the unity of the faith, and of the knowledge of the Son of God, unto a perfect man, unto the measure of the stature of the fulness of Christ.” Eph. 4:13 If the body of Christ is to attain fullness, we need this book to weed out the hidden terrible cancer that is consuming the body from within. This book is written for ministers, secular and Christian therapists, and truth lovers of all kinds. If you love the truth this book is for you. If you see something good in the human race so that our species should be preserved as well as the spotted owl and the sand flea, then this book is for you. IF YOU LOVE THE TRUTH, this BOOK is for YOU.

GLOSSARY OF HOW BASIC TERMS ARE USED IN THIS BOOK

For those readers who are not familiar with these basic terms let us introduce you to the definitions under which this book uses them.

Alter-Our usage is trying to follow the programmers usage of this word. A dissociated part of the mind which has a seperate identity and is given cue codes by the mind-control programmers to trigger that dissociated part of the mind to come to the front of the mind. The alter’s identity may be a gem, rock, a tape recorder, a poodle, a white kitten, a dove, a horse, or even think of itself as a person or a demon. It all depends on its programming. An alter is different from an alter fragment in that the alter fragment is a dissociated part of the mind which serves only a single purpose. The programmers will give an alter a history, and insure that shadow alters will provide a full range of accessible emotions. Sometimes the distinctions between alters and alter fragments is vague, but examples from the two ends of the spectrum are easy to tell apart. We use the word alter in this book to conform to what the programmers’ charts are encoding as alters. A typical main Mengele-created grid would be a grid of 13×13 principal A-coded alters, which is 169 principle alter personalities. In Illuminati systems, ceremonial “alters will consist of 3 alters placed on a spinning pedistal together into triad goddesses or gods. That means that an A-coded alter on some levels is actually 3 alters spinning together, which must be locked in place to communicate with, and then rotated to communicate to the other two.

Beta–This is the second Greek letter, and it represents the sexual models and sexual alters that the Programmers are creating. The primitive part of the brain is involved in this type of programming. An early sexual abuse event will be used to anchor this programming. These sexual slaves will develop sexual abilities that are far beyond what the public is aware is even possible. They also receive the worst kind of abuse far beyond what most people’s imagination can picture. Beta alters generally see themselves as cats.

Councils (llluminati)–The Illuminati has frequent meetings. Some of these meetings are organized to appear “acephalous” and “accidential” in their meetings, when in reality they are structured and planned. One group, MJ-12 has gone by the following names: the Group, the Special Study Group, the Wise Men, the Operations Coordinating Board (OCB), 5412 Committee, 303 Committee, 40 Committee, PI-40 Committee, and Policy Planning Group (PCG). Some of the formal policy and ritual groups have names that all Illuminati members who have gotten high enough to learn, will recognize:

The Council of 3, Council of 5, Council of 7, Council of 9, The Grand Druid Council, The Committee of 300, and the Committee of 500 (known as Fortune 500). Many of the meetings are conclaves without formal names. The Grand Druid Council is not something fictional, but an actual body of people who formally meet and whose membership, we have been trying to keep track of. The groups which make decisions to control this planet are networked together. Each decision has its own origin and route that it takes.

Delta–This is a Greek letter shaped like a triangle which symbolizes change in calculus. It has become a favorite word to use in naming things for the occult elite. Delta teams are 4 person assassination teams which usually are secret teams. Delta Forces is an elite unit that operates under the Joint chiefs of staff that is made up of highly trained total mind-controlled slaves. Delta models are slaves whose sole purpose is assassination. Delta alters are alters within an Illuminati alter system which are programmed to be assassins. These alters are often some of the deepest in a system and in a Genie bottle or with Umbrella programming.

Deliverance ministry-(This book is about HOW the mind-control is done, it is not a textbook on solutions.) The use of the term deliverance ministry in this book connotates any person(s) who via faith in God is able to pray for divine help in a fashion that a victim is helped from demonic activity. A deliverance ministry is a natural outgrowth of a life in harmony and fellowship with Yahweh God. However, this is not to be confused with Exorcism of the traditional Catholic or witchcraft nature in which certain spells and incantations are used in a prescribed method. “Deliverance” connotates divinely inspired faith, exorcism involves ritual. A deliverance ministry might perhaps teach a person about forgiveness, or how they can renounce an oath, or how to apply Jesus Christ’s atoning blood to their life. In this fashion, the person finds deliverance through biblical spiritual principles rather than the efficacy of some ritual or hocus pocus spell. This book is in no way meant as a blanket endorsement of every spiritual warfare tactic. If anything, this book suggests that ministers learn more about mind-control, as well as grow stronger in their walk with Almighty God.

Illuminati–The Illuminati are 13 elite bloodlines which have manuevered themselves into control over this planet. They lead double lives, one for society and a hidden one which is based on a gnostic luciferian philosophy which consists of lots of blood rituals.

Monarch Programming–This was a specific Project carried out by secret elements of the U.S. government and intelligence groups. There were, according to someone a few years ago who had access to the computer(s) which contains all the names of active monitored human slaves, 40,000 actively monitored Monarch slaves. However, this book uses the term generically to include all victims who have suffered this type of trauma-based mind-control. In the same way, that a brand name like “Hyster” is used to describe all lifts–when we use the term we use it in its broadest sense. This is the only way it can be used and technically correct, because as of this date, the authors have not seen who is on the active Monarch Program list of slaves.

System– This term is used in several ways. It is frequently used to refer to a victim of total mind control because the victim consists of alters, programming, implant(s), internal computers, and numerous dissociative states which function together as a system. The word is also used in this book to refer to the body’s functional physiological units, such as the respiratory system. The word is also infrequently used to denote the established social-economic-political system controlling the world, also known insiders as the Network. Other standard meaning may also occasionally be used for the word.

Multiple Personality (DID)–Multiple personalities or  MPD or Dissociative Identity Disorder is the situation where different dissociative parts of a single brain view themselves as separate persons. The DSM-IIIR definition of MPD is the guideline for determining MPD for this book.

New World Order– The New World Order is the global design for a One-World-Government One-World-Dictator and its constituents. Insiders call themselves the “network” and “the neighborhood”.

Satanic Ritual Abuse (SRA)–This is used to represent all categories of ritual abuse which would be inspired by the desire to rob, kill, or destroy something worthwhile in a person, especially their freedom of thought. Many groups carrying out SRA do not mention Satan by that name. They may make Pacts to Baphomet, and call upon Rex Mundi, or Belair, or Lucifer, or the Father of Light, God, or Kali or even “Jesus” or “Jesus Christ” (there are demons which call themselves “Jesus”, who are not to be confused with Yeshua or Yehoshua ben Joseph who is known as Jesus Christ of Nazareth.) SRA is not a value judgement by the authors against some group, the victims themselves on some level know that he or she is being abused.

Switching–This is when one part (fragment) of the mind takes over from another, or in simple terms, this is when one alter personality (or alter fragment) takes the body from the alter which is holding the body. Switching can occur via the Programmers’ codes for calling up alters, or by external or internal stimuli that trigger an alter to come out. Switching will usually cause at least a flicker of the eyes, and for outside observers, who know the different personalities, they will observe another personality take the body.

 

Pic p_cranial2.jpg

pic p_basic-structure1.jpg

 

 

Pic p_records2.jpg

 

 

INTRODUCTION

In Jan. ’96, I bound the first copies of The Illuminati Formula Used to Create Undetectable Total Mind-Controlled Slave. Hundreds of people in the United States and other countries were reading this book, and were expressing their appreciation and praise for the work. Some also contributed more details about the Illuminati’s mind-control. It was also gratifying that the illustrated Guidebook to Monarch Mind-control, which contains my co-author’s art work done under programming, was translated and sold this year (’96) as a paperback in Japan. The word is getting out, and people with ears to hear are grateful. The original goal was to write the Vol. 2 book to be about 300 pages long, but it spilled into 500 pages. At 500 pages, it was brought to a grinding halt. In this DEEPER INSIGHTS book, I bring you more profounder mysteries of the Illuminati’s mind-control abilities. These deeper insights were some items left out of the Vol. 2 due to space, as well as some things that have been found out since the Vol.2 book was written. Those who were intrigued by the Vol. 2, and cut their teeth on the subject of mind-control via my writings over the past 5 years, will enjoy this further expose of the deeper secrets of Illuminati mind-control. For instance, scattered in several sections including Chapter 3 is a great deal about the base programs which are laid in using controlled LSD trips in sensory deprivation tanks. Another exciting set of new revelations are Cisco’s information on the core, and her revelations giving the chronology of layering in the mind-control programming. I have also done a great deal of research into Cranial manipulation (see Chapter 8), which has been an extremely well-hidden mind-control secret known only to a few select people worldwide. Another area of intense research has been to expose the role Disney played in mind-control. Although other writers have superficially touched on implants, nanobots, thought-transfer, soul entrapment and other secret technologies, I decided to provide many details to expose these new technologies that are being used in conjunction with the dissociative programmed multiplicity. Beside learning countless programming secrets, the reader will take another quantum leap into understanding what has been going on in this mixed-up world. If life is a riddle, then this book contains many answers to the riddle of life. During the summer of 1996, I had the privilege to speak on mind-control to audiences in 12 major American cities, as well talk on over 50 radio stations. The response was encouraging. People are beginning to wake up, and are hungry to learn the truth about how the movers and shakers of this world have developed sophisticated methods to make children into undetectable Illuminati robots (from the cradle to the satanic throne), as well as their extensive abilities to control the common person’s thinking from the cradle to the grave. When Christ asked the question, will I find faith when I return? it was a serious question. We no longer live in a situation where we can depend upon our mind and our thoughts actually being our own. Our minds are under a constant assault and manipulation by those who control things. No one is exempt. Fortunately, there are still some rational thinking humans, who can challenge and expose their plans for total control over the minds of the entire human race. I, as a minister & researcher, along with the victims represented by Cisco Wheeler and others, can’t expose this mind control on our own. We need the help of others. Will you help us get the message out about the New World Order’s/the Illuminati’s mind control? Cisco has consulted with me, and we decided to make two continuations. The continuation of the Illustrated guidebook would be authored by her, and the continuation of the Vol. 2 book would be carried out by yours truly, Fritz Springmeier. We have combined these two continuations into this book called for short DEEPER INSIGHTS into the Illuminati Mind Control Formula. This volume is meant to be an extension of the previous volumes. IF YOU HAVE NOT READ the previous book entitled Vol. 2 The Illuminati Formula used to create an Undetectable Total Mind Controlled Slave, THEN you are not really prepared to understand this material. In my previous books, I have shown how the intelligence agencies are simply prostitutes and fronts of the Illuminati. The Illuminati always “sterilize” their activities, so their actions can’t be identified in the flurry of secret intelligence activities. Recently, at one conference on mind-control, victims of government mind-control were told that their stories were not welcome because the conference was on “cult” mind-control. Dear reader, the intelligence agencies are cults, and not only that, but they have a dark satanic side to them, which not only brands them as cults, but “occult cults.” Witchcraft and Freemasonry refer to themselves as “the Craft”; how appropriate it was for Allen Dulles, DCI-head of the CIA, to entitle his book “The Craft of Intelligence”. How appropriate it was that people within the CIA referred to their top management as the Knights Templars. As the Vol. 2 Formula book indicated, the intelligence agencies which work for the Illuminati have kept only the minimum of records, and the records they do keep are out of reach of people like you and I. But that doesn’t mean that the researcher like myself can’t work backwards. One of the side effects of the traumas that create multiple-personalities (DID) is that sadistic or criminal alters are often formed, and with careful research the historical record of criminals with multiple personalities can be traced back into history. The Illuminati have created trained-multiples for centuries, but insiders say that programmed DID (MPD) was developed in the Nazi concentration camps. The worldwide Illuminati planned the camps with the goal to determine what programs would work on children, and used the cover story of Nazi racial hatred to hide the real purpose of the camps–mind-control experiments which used large numbers of children traumatized by their separation from their parents.

With today’s sophisticated programming and structuring of MPD worlds, these evil alters can be controlled better than in the past, and yet we still have serial killers like Wayne Cox, and serial rapists like William Stanley Milligan, who were programmed multiples stalking our streets. Kenneth Biani, the LA Hillside strangler who killed 9 people was diagnosed as a multiple, but claimed he had faked the disorder. Thomas W. Piper in Boston in the 1870s, and Paul Miskamen, one hundred years later in California, are examples of multiples who had an alter capable of murder and another alter who was a good Christian. One of the best disinformation campaigns of the Illuminati, is to make people think programmed-multiples are just for espionage, prostitution and assassination. They have taken over our pulpits, like the Illuminati programmed multiple Jimmy Swaggart, and they have taken over our political offices, like Al Gore, and our universities. Even with the elite’s secrecy intact via their control of libraries, publishing houses, and newspapers, the record still shows the traces of the Illuminati’s history of creating controlled multiple personalities. The historical record of criminals with multiple personalities includes the Illuminati coke multimillionaire Harry K. Thaw. He was one of the elite of society, who had charming sophisticated front alters, and sadistic deeper alters. His position prevented him from being convicted of a murder he committed in public on June 25, 1906. However, another multiple Henry Spencer, who didn’t have such clout was hanged after killing Allison Rexroat in 1914. Another multiple William Heirens, who murdered two women in the ’40’s, had one of his front alters write in the mirror after a murder, “For heaven’s sake, catch me before I kill more, I cannot control myself.” He had an alter George who was doing the murders. The story doesn’t stop with evidence of physical murders, but includes the vast numbers of spiritual deaths that have resulted from the spiritual manipulation of the masses via programmed multiples. Programmed multiples have been great for carrying out religious deceptions. Many of the great spiritist mediums were multiples. In the 1920’s, Patience Worth was a famous name of an author. Patience was an alter of Mrs. John Curran. As a child Mrs. Curran had played the piano in her uncle’s Missouri Ozark church when young and then she later grew up to be a famous medium and writer. A Dr. Charles E. Cory investigated her multiple-personality disorder. He discovered that her author alter was much more intelligent than the front alter who did the housekeeping & normally held the body. The occult world has manipulated MPD to manufacture validation for their theories of reincarnation, spiritism etc. Where once the Word of God was accepted as truth by society as a whole, now society questions whether there is such a thing as truth. When it has come to finding out about mind control from the first level of perpetrators, the government, there have been a number of manufactured (bogus), sanitized and original CIA documents released to the public under the nearly worthless Freedom of Information act. The Freedom of Information Act has been manipulated to lead people to think that the public has access to secrets.

A letter of inquiry in 1995 requesting declassified documents on Mind Control, Monarch, MK Ultra, Artichoke and Blue Bird got the following response from the CIA, “…as you might expect, we have already conducted broad-ranging and exhaustive searches and reviews on every conceivable aspect of human behavior, including mind control and brainwashing, and have located and released 11, 336 pages of material on the general subject of human behavior studies under MKULTRA. Most of the 11,336 pages of this previously released material are very limited in scope and consist primarily of financial records.” (quote from a CIA letter of response in answer to a request for declassified mind-control information.) Yes, and long-story-short even those 11,336 pages only got released due to a mistake.

In one CIA document pertaining to mind control released under the Freedom of Information act, which is a memorandum dated 20 Oct. 1975 to the Director of Central Intelligence from the Inspector General Donald F. Chamberlain, the Inspector General states, “From his investigation of the project [MKNAOMI], Dr. Stevens has concluded that gaps in the files are the result of a conscious policy on the part of those involved to keep very little paper on the project from its inception in 1952 to its demise in 1970. People formerly connected with the project interviewed by Dr. Stevens asserted that the practice of keeping little or no record of the activity was standard MKNAOMI procedure.” Philip Agee, who wrote an expose of the CIA entitled Inside The Company: CIA Diary (Toronto, Can.: Bantam Books, 1975), said that as an employee of the CIA “You get so used to lying that after a while it’s hard to remember what the truth is.” Philip Agee writes, “The life of a CIA operations officer … There is not much time to think about the results of your actions and, if you try to do it well, the job of operations officer calls for dedication to the point of obsession. But it’s a schizophrenic sort of situation. You have too many secrets, you can’t relax with outsiders. Sometimes an operative uses several identities at once. If somebody asks you a simple question, “What did you do over the weekend?” your mind goes Click! Who does he think I am? What would the guy he thinks I am be doing over the weekend? You get so used to lying that after a while it’s hard to remember what the truth is. When I [Philip] joined the CIA I signed the secrecy agreement… [now] I may have violated that agreement. I believe it is worse to stay silent, that the [security] agreement itself was immoral.” [bold added to quote] On Nov. 15, 1996, DCI Deutsch of the CIA paraded himself and some politicians before a public meeting in south L.A. (broadcast on C-Span) and told the people the CIA would investigate allegations that the CIA had run drugs. One man asked CIA Director Deutsch, “Everyone knows that the CIA was running drugs in Vietnam from the Golden Triangle, and that they have continued doing it to today, and you want to come here to south L.A. and pretend to us that this hasn’t happened when everyone knows it did. Are you crazy?” Deutsch couldn’t help but show a revealing smile. (The above quoted question was taken from C-Span’s broadcast & is a closely paraphrased version.) One of my questions to Deutsch would be, “When a drug addict’s life gets out of control, he’ll go into denial, and he’ll steal from everyone in his life, including his own mother, and live a life of lies, and when an intelligence agency gets out of control, they are like an addicted person, they stay in total denial and keep secretly hurting everyone in sight, WHAT can and should the people do to get an out-of-control intelligence agency to stop its power addiction? Unfortunately, the problem with power addiction, addiction to lying & deception, and drug addiction began centuries before the CIA within the Illuminati families that started the CIA. The CIA is simply reflecting the problems of its parent. Their addiction to lying keeps the common gullible man in public ignorant. Their total mind-controlled slaves are used extensively for disinformation campaigns, and are helpful to disseminate WHITE, GREY, & BLACK propaganda for the New World Order’s Network. To coordinate their lies requires a special intelligence group that keeps meticulous records of the disinformation that has been disseminated, so that they don’t get mixed up in their lies. It is extremely rare to get the truth out of the perpetrators, the mind-control programmers. Recently, on television a movie portrayed a victim of trauma-based mind control trying to get one of her programmers, who she’d taken prisoner, to confess to what he’d done. He defied her, and did all he could to make her think her memory was her imagination. It was an excellent portrayal of how hard it is to get the truth out of the perpetrators. The sadistic programmers have exercised their power for decades in secrecy. They have understood the implications of their power for decades. However, the implications of this undetectable mind-control are staggering, actually overwhelming and beyond the man in the street’s ability to comprehend. It means every organization can be infiltrated (“penetrated” as they say), and used as a front or controlled. It means nothing is as it appears. It means that Russia can hate America on the surface, and be working hand in glove on the secret level. It means every one of the millions of new immigrants from Russia, China and Eastern Europe into the U.S. is a potential time bomb. It means much of what has been blamed on Christians has had its origin in Satan. Satanic programming has seriously damaged the reputation of Christians. The programmers are major players in how the world’s events unfold, while they receive absolutely no attention. These men are illegitimate rulers of the world. They have never gained from the common man the right to rule. Therefore they rule through puppets who owe their total allegiance to their mind-control masters. They are rapidly trying to establish legitimacy for themselves, and plan to culminate their plans to gain legitimacy with the rule of the AntiChrist, who will rule based on mass-produced myths and fantasies that the Illuminati will articulate to the imaginations of millions of slaves worldwide. They have already begun to market the AntiChrist and his reign to the world. The campaign for the acceptance of homosexuality is just one part of this marketing effort. They are also skillfully justifying their AntiChrist’s rule, by creating problems that only his superior management abilities and leadership skills will be able to deal with. The strength of New World Order and the AntiChrist’s rule is the total and undetectable mind-control that is being carried out on a mass scale to little children and people who fit specific profiles. According to a reliable deprogrammed source: Adults, who have the following profile are subjected to mind-control. This profile is:

· alone without a support system of family or friends.

· an I.Q. above 120.

· good hypnotic candidate

· has other attributes worthwhile to exploit

More about this will be discussed in chapter 1, where an entire overview of how the intelligence agencies take adults and program them will be given. Adults who are used by the intelligence agencies for WET OPS or one-time one way missions are programmed in stages. These stages are designated levels 1-5. Level 4 is where these slaves begin to resemble the total mind-controlled slaves of the Illuminati who have been subjected to mind-control since they were defenseless babies. The men involved in the programming of little defenseless children are skilled. They have been earned their jobs on the basis of a dog-eat-dog environment. They are ruthless. They operate out a hidden zone, which I will call the twilight zone of believability. Anyone who tries to expose what they are doing, must write about things that are outside of that box of things commonly believed in. It is as they intentionally gauge what is believable and then step outside of that zone in which to operate. These ruthless programmers have egos which think they are god-men. Somewhere deep in their minds, they inwardly know they are worms. There is a part of themselves deep down that knows the truth, but Satan has buried that so deep, that they cannot face the reality of who they are. They seek eternal life by stealing the life force of innocent victims. They know that their father is Satan. They are victims of Satan. Where does one draw the line between who is a victim and who is an abuser? There is no line. The word of God indicates that God has turned many of these men over to Satan due to their wicked minds. It’s sad to think that some of these men are dependant on Satan for spiritual life. Many of the slaves still have a spark of reality and a spirit that cries for freedom. They have ears to hear the truth, should it come their way. This book is written for those who love the truth and love the liberty that Almighty God has given us to seek and to love the truth for ourselves. Although only a minority of the people today have Total Mind-Control, the Illuminati are attempting to confuse and manipulate everyone. One of their favorite tactics to scare people with is the ambiguous bogeyman of national security. They constantly use their spin-doctors to whip up fear, so that the public will gladly surrender their freedom to protect “national security”. Unfortunately, or ironically, the very concept of “national security” is being used as a cover for the Illuminati to steal every last vestige of freedom left to the American people. American tax-dollars support secret conferences such as the classified conference sponsored by Los Alamos on Nov. 16-17, 1993 where the Applied Physics Lab of John Hopkins University taught our military about “non-lethal” weapons. The satanist/ ex-Green Beret Dr. John Alexander, now head of the Los Alamos National Lab, gave one of the opening talks on 11/16/93. The next day, the military men gave talks on the technology involved in controlling people’s minds electronically via both implants and energy beamed at them. Dr. Dave Morgan, of Lockhead Sanders also gave a specific talk on their “syntel–synthetic voices they place in the heads of victims with telemetry to auditory implants. You will read more on their implants in chapter 5. The battle for the freedom of the human mind must be fought now. The battle gets increasingly difficult, but we must fight it whether we win or lose, for the human spirit and the human mind was not created by God for slavery to Satan and his AntiChrist. Over and over, the truth of Jesus’ words still shine forth, “And you shall know the truth and the truth shall set you free.” Let us realize that the man who said those eternally powerful words also said, “I am the way, the truth, and the life.” For His light shone in darkness, “and the darkness has not overcome it.” If those of us who still have free minds must die–then let us die for the TRUTH, that the Truth in Christ Jesus shall live.

The hidden World Order government that increasingly controls our lives operates through many clandestine operations and groups. What you see is not what you get. In order to maintain total secrecy of such a vast scale of operations, they use millions of mind-controlled slaves world-wide as well as numerous willing servants who out of raw terror will not buck the system. On the surface, EPIC is just another secret military unit. The patch below belongs to the EPIC unit, a clandestine unit which is doing the real banking for part of Mexico, much of the U.S. and part of Canada. This agency (El Paso Intelligence Center–EPIC) is obviously not a U.S. jurisdictional agency, but operates under FINCEN (Financial Crimes Enforcement Network- as in crimes against Big Brother). This unit is stationed at Ft. Bliss, which contains Army & Air Force units. American elections are rigged, and there is no longer a government of the people, for the people and by the people (if there ever was one). The American people are kept in place because they think they elected the government that rules them. Mind-control is pervasive and is being used not just to create sexual slaves, or banking employees, but to control society at all levels. Will we continue to allow a shadow government to rule us? Will we continue to let them tell us that these things have to be secret in the interest of “national security”, when in reality they are only in the interest of NATIONAL SLAVERY?

EPIC is also involved with the NAFTA machinations, many of which were done with the help of mind-controlled slaves. Within the NAFTA agreement was the U.S./Mexico Border XXI Framework Document, (based on the La Paz Agreement signed in ‘83) which in effect ends American & Mexican sovereignity over all land within 52.5 miles of the border. Special international agencies have been created to regulate the various environmental and legal needs of the Border XXI region, as the border is dissolved into a border region. The U.S./Mex. Border XXI document created the Border Cooperation Project & the North American Development Bank. The World Bank will also provide financing, and some funds will come from Mexico. EPIC is well situated in the approx. geographic center of this border region.


CHAPTER 1. SCIENCE NO. 1 – SELECTION & PREPARATION OF THE VICTIM 

The average person who has been spoon-fed what he knows from the controlled establishment (the establishment’s news, churches, and schools) is overwhelmed and in denial that mind-control can be happening. Who would want to carry out mind-control? One category are those groups who use the Cabala. Hasidic Judaism, Freemasonry, and Witchcraft are all based on the Cabala. Llewellyn’s magazine New Worlds of Mind and Spirit (a prominent witchcraft magazine) in their June/July ’94 issue state on page 56, “The golem of Prague is perhaps the most famous example of ‘practical cabala’- the use of cabala for magical cabala.” Golem are mind-controlled beings. There are several cabalistic and witchcraft written references that point out that the creation of mind-controlled zombies (golem) was the highest goal of the cabala. Albert Pike, perhaps the most important Freemason of all times, clearly stated as the head of Freemasons worldwide that Freemasonry is based on the Cabala. A cabalistic psychiatrist in Psychoanalysis Review, ’44, issue 31, p. 180 wrote, “Victory over the world would be secured by any man who possessed the Shem…[We shall control the world (words to this effect)]…when we shall attain the consciousness of the Shem within us and will control the power of the Golem to regenerate the world.” [The Golem are energized by the magic Tetragrammaton, which the Jehovah’s W.s emphasize so much.] In The Worldwide Weekly, Defense News of 3/20-26/95, the Defense News an official military paper indicated that the navy was attempting to produce an “Army of Zombies”. The Defense News stated:

“The research, called Hippocampal Neuron Patterning, grows live neurons on computer chips, William Tolles, the recently retired associate director of research at the Naval Research Lab, said March 15. This technology that alters neurons could potentially be used on people to create zombie armies, Lawrence Korb, a senior fellow at the Brookings Institution, said March 16 …. The research has captured the attention of the U.S. Intelligence community.”

I have taken the space to give you the reader a paper trail that shows that YES INDEED, there are groups of people that desire human zombies. So where do they select their candidates for their zombie creating programs? That’s what this chapter will deal with. You’ll have to go to some of my other books to learn how these mind-control groups all interconnect.

The previous book by this author The Top 13 Illuminati Bloodlines was intended to help people begin to understand the major role bloodlines play within the Illuminati. When this author was on speaking circuit, he ran into a number of researchers who had researched the New World Order and the Illuminati for years and not realized the significance of the bloodlines. In tracking the bloodlines, it became apparent that the European Illuminati bloodlines were trying to integrate some of the American Indian bloodlines into their own bloodlines. Why? They wanted the occult power that these bloodlines contributed. And it seems that not only do generational spirits help in many ways, but there are reasons to believe that the Aborigines of Australia, the Bushmen of the Kalahari, and some of the American Indian tribes such as the Cherokee have high paranormal abilities in addition to their demonic spiritual abilities. Some believe that the psi-gene was valuable for the survival of primitive hunter tribes, while tribes who went into agriculture lost some of the power of the primary and secondary psi-genes since natural selection would not have encouraged psi-genes in agricultural based societies. The primary psi-genes are thought by some to be some genetic coding which enhances proteins to be better biophysical batteries, storage units, and other roles. The secondary genetic psi-coding are thought to be codes for creating richer and higher-functioning neural pathways, and neural capabilities. Whether this was true, if the Illuminati believed it was true, it could account for their penchant for mixing in American Indian blood with their elite “blue blood.”

BREEDING GOOD SUBJECTS for HYPNOSIS-hypnosis as it relates to selection & preparation of the victim.

Hypnosis and programming work well in the alpha state of the mind. This is why the child is traumatized even in the womb, so that it will naturally be in that alpha state even before birth. The man in the street may think that the hypnotist looks for weak-willed subjects, however the mind-control programmers and professional stage hypnotists say that a “fighter”, “a determined forceful personality” are the types they search for to have a successful hypnotic session. Weak-willed persons are usually incapable of seriously concentrating for the successful pursuance of any idea, and usually are the worst subjects. Intelligence is often helpful, and (as stated in the first volume) the ability to be creative is extremely important to the programmers. An extremely important factor for the subject of mind-control to have is the “emotional drive to pursue to its successful completion a given objective.” (McGill, Ormond. Professional Stage Hypnotism. pp. 87-88.) One reason the programmers like to work with children who were preemies is that they are fighters. Another reason the programmers like to work with intelligent children, and not waste time trying to program lower-than-average intelligent children, is that they are easier to hypnotize.

This does not mean that only people who appear intelligent are programmed. During the programming process, many of the victims are programmed to appear stupid to others and to themselves. Only the master (and those who work with him) are to use the full potential of the victim. The victims’ talents are stolen from them. An intelligent child, who comes from an intelligent family, and who is programmed with total mind-control may grow up into adulthood thinking he or she is of average or below average intelligence.

GENETICS

Pres. Theodore Roosevelt, who was blood related to both President Martin Van Buren and to Franklin Delano Roosevelt, is on record, “Some day we will realize that the prime duty, the inescapable duty of the good citizens of the right type is to leave his or her blood behind him in the world; and that we have no business to permit the perpetuation of citizens of the wrong type …. The problem cannot be met unless we give full consideration to the immense influence of heredity …. I wish very much that the wrong people could be prevented entirely from breeding; and when the evil nature of these people is sufficiently flagrant, this should be done …. The emphasis should be laid on getting desirable people to breed.” Many of the people within the Illuminati bloodlines have made statements like this, and have done all they could to leave many secret offspring behind, because these elite bloodlines have felt they were the chosen to lead humanity. Your ancient aristocratic families such as the Cabots, Lodges & Delanos have been in favor of placing the blame on society’s problems on the “bad blood” of the common man. They forget all the evils that have been perpetrated on these common people by the blue blooded aristocratic families that think they are so superior. For instance, Illuminati kingpin Harriman’s wife purchased land at Cold Springs, NY to promote a eugenics program. She said that being raised around good race horses helped her appreciate good breeding in man. Eugenics is the philosophy that some humans are genetically superior to others, & that inferior genetic races/individuals should be destroyed. The first eugenics program started in the United States was by John Humphrey Noyes, the cult leader of communist Oneida communities. John Humphrey Noyes’ father was a Vermont Congressman, and his mother was a relative of Rutherford B. Hayes, the 19th U.S. President. His family was from the burned out district, from Putney, Vermont. In 1833, Yale granted him a license to preach. Noyes began creating his communist communities around 1836, and he dictated all their major decisions, including their group sex and eugenics policies. In 1869, John H. Noyes selected 53 women and 38 men to be the only ones in his communities allowed to produce children. The goal was to perfect the genetics of the community by only allowing well bred children. This is believed to be the first eugenics program. All members of the community were encouraged to have sex with everyone else & not to form emotional attachments around it. However, they were not to have procreative sex. The Oneida group can clearly be tied in with European occult groups that tie in with the illuminati. The Oneida group used central committees and social control through mutual criticism to keep their members in line. Their social control methods were extremely effective. Years later, Chinese communism began using these innovations of Noyes’. Charles Guiteau, who assassinated Pres. Garfield, was a member of Noyes’ Oneida community. He became a member because his father, a disciple of Noyes, took him there as a boy. Charles stated that at the Noyes’ community, he came under the influence of Noyes and “I was unable to get away from that influence … A man was just as isolated from the world as if he were confined in state’s prison or lunatic asylum. I suffered greatly in mind and body and spirits during incarceration in that community.” He claimed he had never gotten free of the control that began when he entered the Oneida community. In 1880, he began hanging around the Republican Party’s NY HQ. This was a very strange thing, because Charles Guiteau had never had any interest in politics his entire life. He bought a pistol from a “gentleman”, and then shot President Garfield. Knowing that Illuminati mind-control was already taking place at this time, certainly makes this assassination an area for further study. John Noyes had his groups conducting seances and carrying out initiation rites. He personally sexually initiated the girl children of his communities at these rites. In June, 1879, when the authorities came to arrest him for mass rape of little girls, he fled to British Canada, where the British government gave him asylum. After Noyes skipped the country, the community was incorporated as a joint-stock corporation called Oneida Ltd., which later burned a large amount of the personal records and the diaries of the members to keep their sexual activities forever secret. It’s interesting to note, that long before 1879, in June, 1847, Noyes’ had treated a woman Harriet Hall for tuberculosis & dropsy by holding a seance ritual and sexually sealing the spiritual cure with intercourse with the woman. After the woman’s husband reported this, a grand jury indicted Noyes. He skipped bail and an almost sure conviction by fleeing to New York. People have wondered how he managed to practice his odd sexual behaviors for years and never get into trouble with authorities.

Margaret Sanger, an early feminist, was also an advocate of eugenics. In their zeal to make her a hero, modern feminists have neglected to notice this side of her. Sanger advocated sterilization of the feeble-minded by he government. This all sounded good at the turn of the century before legitimate research showed that genetics played only a partial role in how people turned out, and that environment and choices by individuals also played just as big of a role in how people turned out. Many of the people who were sterilized under eugenic laws were realized to have been victims of pseudo-science and hysteria. The Great Depression leveled many proud and haughty people down to the same level as the common people they had sneered down upon. Rich and poor found themselves in bread lines. The financial elite and the academic elite were humbled and the eugenics racial theories in the U.S. largely disappeared. Finally, H.J. Muller, a famous and respected geneticist, gave an outstanding and courageous speech to the Eugenics Society in NY in 1932 where he lambasted the eugenicists for using false better-breeding theories to rationalize the criminal behavior of the elite. The Illuminati had suffered a temporary setback in legitimizing their criminal rule over humanity. In recent years, the Illuminati’s evil ideas about superior and inferior blood lines are being given more credence again. The National Institute of Health funded a $1.7 million study at the University of Hawaii’s Behavioral Biology Lab to get solid information on how genetics relates to intelligence so that “informed decisions” about population control can be made in the future. Almost every state has now adopted genetic screening of new-born babies in the U.S. While the Illuminati may not be able to fully implement their superior blood theories in society in general, they have been secretly working feverishly in labs and in secret rituals around the world to redesign mankind to their preferences. Many Illum. members are the end result of carefully monitored genetic engineering. They want to manufacture the future via control over human genetics. Many years ago, the first step in the Illuminati genetic program was the creation of specifications. When these specs, these criteria, were set as goals, they then worked to realize them. They have been working at them, and refining the results as they continue to work toward specific goals. They have sought the perfect assassin. They have sought the perfect slave. They have sought the perfect baseball player and golf player. They have sought the perfect soldier. The borders between these manufactured Illuminati total mind-control slaves and an industrial robot are fast becoming blurred. The end of the human race as we know it, and civilization as we know it, is rapidly approaching. Via molecular biology and genetics, humanoids that are vastly different from normal humans have been created in secret underground installations. They have been modifying humans to design para-humans, and then applying mind-control to them. The Illuminati is not only controlling humanity, but under their control redesigning it. Lest anyone forget, the descendants of John Noyes’ Oneida Colony, and the genetic model wonder children born in Nazi Germany are still around. According to one source, the Nazi’s produced numerous offspring of Hitler which were secretly taken to many countries and then later reassembled in certain special towns. These children received mind-control as well as being specially endowed with as many special traits as the Nazi’s could give them. If this is true, it could have some significance in the future. Illuminati kingpins are also able to store their semen via cryogenics for all kinds of scenarios. Frozen sperm can be used to create a son after the father had died. Should an Illuminati kingpin want to impregnate his grand-daughter 10 years after his death, it would be possible. On the flip side, single women can choose semen from sperm banks. Another twist that the Illuminati have taken advantage of is taking the fertilized egg of one set of parents and implanting it into a brooder slave to raise the child as a surrogate mother.

It should also be mentioned that ex-Illuminati members have explained how planned births are coincided to have the child be born on particular special occult dates. (The Illuminati have a intense lifestyle of secrecy, so most of their members do not carry the last name of the bloodline they belong to. Some members are given significant occult names for their legal name, and others use legal names which have no significance. Having a legal occult-significant name is not essential, because the alter system will receive a secret Illuminati occult name.)

The bottom line is that bloodlines, genetics and genetic engineering is playing a role in the selection process of who is programmed a certain way. Also the Illuminati has particular research goals that have been structured into their 20 year, 30 year and 50 year plans. Case histories show that a child will receive education and programming in order to participate in secret research projects years down the road. Some of today’s marked children are invariably being quietly educated to help with future research goals. As might be suspected the inbreeding within the secret Illuminati bloodlines and their secret satanic lifestyles take their genetic toll..

How do the Illuminati get rid of their leftovers, the children their bloodlines have that aren’t going to amount to a great deal? In terms of mind-control, the male children that are the programming leftovers, the ones that are not really fit to make into politicians, doctors and lawyers, will be made into stalkers, according to an ex-Illuminati programmer, who worked in this area of programming, the ratio of men to women that are programmed for stalking is about 90% to 10%. Why discuss how the Illuminati makes stalkers? First, many people doubt that there is a controlled conspiracy by the Illuminati to control the world, because in their limited understanding they think that there are too many uncontrollable people around for the world to be controlled. They don’t realize that a large share of those crazy people were intentionally created by the Illuminati. The Illuminati programmers and handlers during the 40’s through the 60’s, according to insiders, had specific quotas on how many people to have go crazy so that the mental institutions (which were used for programming) could maintain their government financing.

Readers, who have followed this author’s lectures, have heard him explain how a. the Illuminati make a decision to “solve” a problem they have created, then b. get the government and private groups to study the problem for years so that eventually it looks like their (secretly preplanned) decision is the best course of action for the country, and then c. their lackey’s in the political process implement the decision supposedly for the “good of the people”. After 30 years of good financing for the mental institutions so they could do their assigned task of programming hundreds of thousands of people with tasks for the NWO, the Illuminati then set things up so that the mental institutions dumped their populations out onto the streets, where they can carry out the missions they had been programmed to carry out.

They next step was to privatize the prisons, which are being used for mind-control (not to mention hard-core porn of women victims in prisons). The Illuminati’s long range plans for mind-control included that they would turn over the prisons to people like the Illuminati’s Order of the Skull & Bone’s Wackenhut Services, Inc., Coral Gables, FL, (ph. no. 305-666-5656), and the Illuminati’s GE Government Operations, Cherry Hill, NJ under James Becker at 609-486-5042. In the 18 page Heritage Foundation’s study of prison needs entitled “A Guide To Prison Privatization” (done on May 28, 1988, Wash. D.C.), the Heritage Foundations gives all the correct Illuminati answers to the question of privatization of prisons, including listing the following “corporations that provide prison services … Behavioral Systems SW, Inc.,… Eckerd Family Youth Alternatives, Inc., … GE Government Operations, Cherry Hill, NJ.. .Wackenhut.” All groups that this author’s research indicates are Illuminati and involved with mind-control. An example of several studies that this author has obtained that were done to show us that privatization of prisons is the best answer to our problems is The Development, Present Status, and Future Potential of Correctional Privatization in America by Charles W. Thomas, Prof. of Criminology & Dir, of Private Corrections Project; Charles H. Logan, Prof. of Sociology, Univ. of Conn., & Visiting Fellow, Fed. Bureau of Prisons. This paper was done May 1991. Our government also got into the act and the GAO wrote up a govt. report in Feb. 1991 stating that the government could save money by privatizing prisons. The Illuminati need their people seeded at all levels of society, at the gutter level as well as in palaces. This is where the stalkers, their leftover children used for programming are handy. Many of these stalkers had secret Illuminati lineages that are hidden via adoption. As one ex-Illuminati member said, “They are the weak links.” The Illuminati must have dependable people everywhere, even in the gutter and prisons.

Why create stalkers? There are a long list of reasons. It is somewhat difficult to explain unless readers are already familiar with the bigger picture. People, who have sat in on Illuminati meetings where their 20, 30, and 50 year plans were discussed, will explain how the Illuminati wanted to break down the family structures and bring violence into the schools. This is Ordo ab chaos. However, the schools had rules to protect themselves from dangerous violent activity done by children, so they had to create violence in the streets, to get violence into the schools by the backdoor. Stalkers were part of the program to create violence. Another purpose stalkers serve for the Illuminati is that they make excellent spies if they get attached to someone. They will find out everything they can about that person. Their minds will creatively invent all kinds of ways to get information about their fixation.

How does the Illuminati program a child to become a stalker? They have the programming techniques to create a stalker down to a fine science. In short, it consists of 1. they bond the child extremely close to its mother or a woman as it grows up. This creates a side-effect of homosexuality. The mental mechanics of this side-effect are that the male has an unmet need for men. The Illuminati will manipulate this latent homosexuality but not allow its expression. They want to continue to strengthen the apron strings that attach the child to the mother image. Meanwhile they utterly destroy all self-respect and self-image of the child. It is totally disgraced so that its only identity is its identity with its mother figure. The child can not stand on its own two feet without the support of the mother-figure. When the boy approaches puberty, they are watched very closely by the Illuminati, be that in a military school or tightly controlled cult family setting, etc. They do not want the apron strings to ever be cut. They want them to remain dependent when they would naturally become independent. They want to insure that the young boy doesn’t develop a sense of who they are. The victim of stalker programming will never emotionally grow out of that age of about 11-13 when boys would sever the ties to their mother. They stop growing emotionally at about age 12. This is all carefully crafted by the Illuminati. These young men never understand themselves or their programming. They don’t understand the impulses and uncontrollable drives that hit them. They can’t get off their programming merry-go-round, because it is rooted in the first brain, their maternal instincts, the “reptilian brain” which has no conscience. Their stalking of their mother figure is a survival instinct that they don’t understand. They make good spies. They will persist in tracking and stalking a victim, until they break down the victim’s walls of privacy by their sheer tenacity, persistence, and force of will.

This is because it is a survival instinct that has been harnessed by the Illuminati programmer. Because this programming is laid in at the reptilian first brain level, these stalkers can be violent without a higher brain conscience, and their minds will manufacture some justification to protect this survival need to stalk. The mind protects itself, so they have a strong denial system. Every time someone “rejects” them, it triggers their programming. Because they are driven by their reptilian first brain (the various brains are explained later in this book) they only think in the here-and-now, long-term projects bore them, they don’t have the stick-to-itiveness needed for many jobs, except their eternal quest for an identity with the mother-figure they stalk.

TRAINING THE UNBORN CHILD

The Illuminati in its typical schizophrenic way, has not neglected the opportunities to begin the programming process in the womb. The scientific research in this area has been kept quiet, but from an ex-Illuminati programmer it is clear that they are aware of much more about the unborn child in the womb and its thinking processes than the public knows about. I was privileged to read the excellent book The Secret Life of the Unborn Child by Thomas Veiny, M.D. with John Kelly. This book is written from a loving Christian viewpoint and incorporates scientific research about the thinking of unborn children. Interestingly, Veiny studied research into the mind of the fetus from researchers at the Max Plank Institute, Munich, Germany, from the Esalen Institute, Big Sur, CA., from the Center for Research on Birth and Human Development, Berkeley, CA which are all institutions involved in mind-control and mind-control research. Just one example of the learning abilities of the unborn child, an autistic child remembered the english her French speaking mother was around during work while the child was in the womb. Veiny writes, “The fetus can see, hear, experience, taste and, on a primitive level, even learn in utero (that is, in the uterus–before birth). Most importantly, he can feel–not with an adult’s sophistication, but feel nonetheless.” (p. 12) Research has clearly showed that the fetus can think and is shaping its (his or her) personality while in the womb. Maternal thoughts, feelings, actions, and fears all reach the child in the womb and affect the child. The maternal bonding with the child while in the womb is also critical.

Researchers have been unable to pinpoint when a baby in the womb begins to think, and have a consciousness, but some theorize that it goes back clear to the beginning of conception. One study taught fetus babies to kick on the cue of a vibration. The researchers have determined that the unborn child hears what is being said around it, and is beginning to associate its language skills around the voices it hears. The unborn child hears and reacts differently to different music played. Soothing words and soothing music will calm a fetus. One conductor remembered into his adult years, the cello music that had only been played while he was an unborn child. According to excellent research, the start of awareness is clearly evidenced between the 28th and 32nd week. At that point, the brain’s neural circuits are just as advanced as a newborns. This is why the Illuminati can get away with causing so many preemie births to enhance dissociative abilities. From the 32nd week on the child shows that it carries out REM sleep. It is also interesting the children, teenagers and adults have widely divergent sleep patterns but the time spent in REM sleep stays constant. Researchers have been able to trace memories going back to the sixth month of pregnancy. In other words, from the sixth month of pregnancy onward, some of what the unborn child learns will be remembered. (See pg. 23 of Varny’s The Secret Life of the Unborn Child.) This is why the Illuminati has made a point of having the unborn child hear the voices of people who will play a role in the trauma and programming of the child. The child may already know the hypnotic voice of one of its cult programmers at birth. Researchers found that by playing a tape of a mother’s heartbeat to new-born babies that the babies felt dramatically more secure, and were much healthier and did much better. A child who has been trained to its father’s soothing voice in the womb, has been proven to remember it and hear it after birth and to respond to it in a positive way. In fact, the emotionally healthiest children have been found by researchers to have had their father’s voice in their life prior to birth. Unborn children do not like to be poked at. In the eighth week of life, the unborn child is already using his physical abilities to show that he dislikes intensely to be poked. One of the early fetus traumas, that the Illuminati like to carry out is to poke the fetus with a sharp object to make it dissociative in the womb. By the fourth month, the unborn baby is making facial expressions. Four to eight weeks later they are sensitive to touch, and don’t like to be tickled while in the womb. Sometimes children are tickled during medical exams. If cold water is injected into the mother’s stomach, the baby intensely dislikes it. The child can be overwhelmed while in the womb with horrible sounds, bad tastes caused by what the mother eats, being touched in ways that it dislikes, etc. Rock music drives unborn children crazy. Programming drugs that cause particular thinking in the fetus can also be administered. Can one see that the traumatization to cause MPD can easily start in the womb? In fact, with many Illuminati babies, they do create womb splits, and have even started trying to teach Christ to the child while in the womb, to speed up the process of when they will purposefully make the child feel rejected by God and to experience the black communion with Satan. The foundation of trauma-based total mind-control is fear. A deep spirit of fear cripples a person spiritually & emotionally. The foundation of fear can begin to be layered in while the child is still unborn. The unborn child has near-sighted seeing. He can detect light shined on his mother’s stomach. In fact, the fetus’s eyes, which are living in a dark world, will hurt when light is shined onto the mom’s stomach. A long-term unresolved personal stress on the mother will be one of the worst stresses her unborn child has to deal with. Short term stresses don’t seem to have the long term side effects that long term stress has. Short term stresses are soon forgotten by the child. Somehow, the love that the mother has for the child is transmitted to the child, and forms a protective shield so to speak for the child to resist traumas and stresses. When the mother is ambivalent (even though outwardly happy) or cool in their emotions, the babies have been proven by researchers to consistently have more physical and emotional problems.

If the Illuminati want to create an effeminate gay man, they can administer progesterone and estrogen to the mother during her pregnancy, and this will influence the development of male children to be effeminate. Certain researchers have been warning about the hormones that are in our daily food because modern techniques of raising cattle and producing milk include giving hormones to the animals.

It is also known that the child’s concept of “I” the self starts in the womb. Those children who have had a secure womb feeling have been shown to be more confident with their sexual lives later on in life. While those who were terrified in the womb had a tendency to have sexual problems. The traumas that are induced into some of the babies for programming purposes may have a destabilizing effect on the sexual stability later on in life, and it may be that the programmers take advantage of the unsure destabilized feelings that are a consequence of terror in the womb. Children born from induced labor have a statistically high relationship to sexual sadism, and males typically have masochistic personalities. (See pg. 19 of The Secret Life of the Unborn Child). Since certain Illuminati children have their birth’s induced to match certain dates of the year, this is one contributing factor as to why Illuminati males, born into bloodlines that have for centuries considered certain birthdates important, have such a high incidence of sadistic tendencies. Verny believes that C-section babies, due to what happens to babies during the birthing process in contrast to a normal birth, have certain emotional needs that later as adults are expressed as promiscuous lives. Women due to their C-section birth, develop a deep seated desire to be held, and intercourse later becomes the price they have to pay to satisfy this deepseated need.

COMMON ILLUMINATI WORK WITH TWINS

The Illuminati mask the removal of babies from pregnant mothers with “alien abduction of fetus” cover stories. When twins are in the uterus, it is common for the Illuminati to skillfully take one of them. This is part of why the disappearance rate for a twin baby is 75%. It is so prevalent that it has been given the name “the Vanishing Twin Phenomenon”. The Vanishing Twin Phenomenon is well established by statistics. Establishment doctors generally claim that one twin has absorbed the other twin. Some researchers claim that this can not be the real explanation for any part of the birthing process. Elizabeth Noble in her book Having Twins, (Houghton Mifflin, 1990) states, “With increasing use of ultrasound, it has been observed that more multiples are lost in the uterus than previously thought–some studies say as high as 80 percent of twin pregnancies. Considering that there are still 2 in 75 people born as twins, what a great number of twins would be born if the disappearance rate were not so high. There are many cases of two heartbeats being detected only hours before the delivery, and yet only one baby being born. Many mothers have been suspicious, but the doctors tell them that the second heartbeat “was only a mistake.” The explanations that doctors give for disappearing babies who are never born often do not seem satisfactory. There are different kinds of twins:

a. There are dizygotic, also called fraternal twins. Two variations of this is when eggs from two consecutive ovarian cycles are separately fertilized, or a single egg divides and each of its halves gets fertilized.

b. There are monozygotic, which are identical, or clones so to speak of each other. Identical twins are always of the same sex. They share the same genes, the same fingerprints, dental characteristics, etc.

c. There are monozygotic mirror twins, which have identical characteristics on opposite sides of their body.

When one twin disappears, the surviving twin will often develop psychological problems around the disappearance, even if the child is never told that they had a twin disappear. The Illuminati believe that the soul of a dead twin goes into the live twin. They consider twins which have two souls very powerful individuals. One doctor, William Baldwin, has written in his book Spirit Releasement Therapy: A Technique Manual that he believes that the dead twin astrally attaches its soul to the surviving twin. Dr. Alice Rose believes that some eating disorders are the result of a twin dying in the womb due to competition for food.

To further complicate things, the Illuminati program their slaves to believe that they have a twin somewhere. Elvis Presley, a Monarch mind-controlled slave, believed he had a twin that communicated with him spiritually. In the Angel Times magazine, (Oct. issue), a childhood friend of Elvis states that Elvis communicated with beings as a child. These being had showed Elvis a vision of dancing, and of people “dressed in white with colors all around.” While it is popular to dismiss the vanishing twin phenomena with superficial medical explanations, or with alien theories, at least of some of the phenomena is the result of the Illuminati’ s massive system of abuse, where they need babies for sacrifice, experiments and programming.

SELECTION OF ADULT CANDIDATES FOR MIND-CONTROL

There is an ongoing operation within the intelligence agencies to identify adults who would make good candidates for mind-control. For this reason, the CIA set up many years ago chains of weight-loss centers (as well as stop-smoking centers and stop-drinking centers) that help people with weight loss, & breaking drinking & smoking addictions. At these centers, people trained to identify clients with high levels of suggestibility have been identifying for the intelligence agencies, (esp. the CIA) potential mind-control victims. Intelligence assets are located around the country and even outside of the United States. The perpetrators try to look for individuals that come through immigration, who come into county clinics and hospitals, government hospitals, etc. who have the following initial attributes:

a. they are over 120 I.Q.

b. they are alone without a support team of family and friends

c. they do well on their first session where hypnosis is clandestinely perpetrated on the individual

d. they have other attributes that can be exploited to the advantage of the intelligence groups.

If a person is identified at a weight-reduction center (which is a CIA front) as having a weight problem that needs to receive hospital treatment AND they are also highly suggestible, they will be subjected to mind-control while hospitalized. According to one source, IF the individual, who has been a. spotted, b. singled out and c. placed under hypnosis without their consent, d. looks likes a useful candidate for mind-control to the psychologists and intelligence field officers, THEN a file will be started and they will be placed in a CALL FILE. The initial hypnotic session may be in a dirty doctor’s office, or in some cases in emergency rooms. Dirty doctors working in emergency room settings are careful to work undetected by clean hospital workers. The hypnotic suggestion is implanted that the victim return at a particular date to a location where more detailed work can be done.

U.S. GOVT. MIND-CONTROL LEVEL 1.

A proper candidate, that is one with an I.Q. above 120 and proper hypnotic abilities, will be given a code cue, that is an alpha-numeric code, or a number or a word code that identifies them. This is embedded hypnotically. If the person has no relatives that are important, they will be instructed and secretly helped to move to a location chosen by the intelligence agencies. The programmers will cover their tracks so that what has happened at this level is deeply embedded in the subconscious mind & can’t be retrieved.

U.S. GOVT. MIND-CONTROL LEVEL 2.

At this level the person is used operationally at very easy and unimportant tasks. He is also assigned someone. The hypnotist programmer is beginning to soften the victim up and make them more pliable to suggestions. If he successfully performs these small jobs that have been hypnotically written into the mind, then he will be given a RECALL SERVICE NOTICE by the person who is in contact with the victim. Now the person moves on to level 3, which is a fully operational level.

U.S. GOVT. MIND-CONTROL LEVEL 3.

When the victim is instructed to come in, they do not realize what is in store for them. Now their own personality will be re-written according to what script the programmers want it to have. The person will be set to carry out his instructions as needed. The slave will now be given specific trigger codes to carry out assignments. All field agents of the intelligence agencies get level 3 control.

GOVT. MIND-CONTROL LEVEL 4

This level is reserved for candidates who are very intelligent and very loyal to hypnotic commands. Victims of this level of mind-control will follow out any command they are given, whether it be suicidal or harmful. Because these victims of mind-control are now under total mind-control, just as many members of the Illuminati grow up under, the intelligence agencies want to protect their level 4 slaves. They will be given a new life along with a total new identity. All the credentials and paperwork that the new identity needs will be created. The slave has now received a totally new life, and whatever SCRIPT (agenda) the intelligence agencies want. The programming that was placed in up to level 3 is erased in a sense and an entire new life script is placed in. This is done with the use of drugs, deception, and other sophisticated mind-control techniques described in Vol. 2 and this book. Complete areas of memory are erased at this stage and then a new history is written into the pre-puberty area of memory. This takes some time, and is accomplished using a number of techniques our books have described. The old memory is erased and OVERWRIITEN with the new history and script. The brain assimilates this new knowledge as if it’s always been there, because it feels comfortable putting something into a void spot. The programmers prefer to find a period in the original person’s life when nothing happened. It is easy to erase a memory block when nothing significant is in original memory, i.e. it is basically blank anyway. As a sleeper the level 5 slave may marry and lead a relatively normal life. One clue that the person is going to be used on a mission is if he suddenly leaves his wife & goes somewhere. This may be a clue that the handlers are positioning the person for a mission. They may also have nullified the slave’s external life, so there isn’t the purpose of life to prevent a suicide mission.

U.S. GOVT. MIND-CONTROL LEVEL 5

This level is reserved for people with an I.Q. of at least 130. This level will require taking the slave to a special programming center, where they are taken down to the comatose level of subconscious awareness to place the programming in at the deepest levels of the mind. The victim may be comatose for days or months, and this requires a catheter in the neck, urinary and digestive tracts to keep the body properly functioning. Because the person will be hospitalized for quite a while, a popular cover story is that they had an automobile accident. Remember, in Vol. 2, it was discussed how Roseanne Barr (now an actress with MPD/DID) had as a teenager an “automobile accident” during which she received significant programming. Many of these level 5 slaves are placed as sleepers into organizations of all kinds, where they lead “normal lives.” The level 5 triggers activate programs deeply embedded and NESTED into the memory of a person. A team of programmers work on level 5 slaves. They must make sure that the victim has a support system so that they do not self-destruct. They may have psychologists in normal life set up to serve as a support person for the slave. It was interesting to see that AFTER learning from people in the know about how memory is erased and a new identity given, that the show “No Where Man” portrayed this happening to a black man. Whoever wrote the scripts for No Where Man had an excellent understanding of what is going on in mind-control.

TESTING YOUNG CHILDREN TO PLAN THE PROGRAMMING.

In Vol. 2, chap.] it was explained how the programmers can test the preverbal child to determine & plan how they will program them. EEG’s & Gittinger’s Tests were discussed. Here is more information. Researchers have been able to study the personalities of unborn children and to watch how these personality traits stay with the children through their lives. In the Vol. 2 book it was explained how the Illuminati has used EEGs to determine the personalities of pre-verbal children so that they know what type of programming is best suited for that personality. Interestingly, on Mon., April 12, ’96, 11 p.m. after the Vol. 2 book was out on the market, 20/20 did a show where they showed researchers using EEG electrodes to monitor childrens’ brainwaves for their happiness potential. It is known that brain potentials associated with voluntary movements have been identified, thereby giving big brother the potential to predict when a person is going to make a particular movement. The brain is dynamically looking at patterns and continously generating hypnotheses about its environment which are then validated or invalidated by information picked up by the senses. The P300 wave (known as the P3 wave for short) allows neuroscientists to track decision making in a brain’s cortex. The P300 wave shows when the mind’s thought processes have been internally surprised. In this way, detection of the P300 gives a method of lie-detection superior to the polygraph. When surprised the brain creates P300 wave by internal brain functions–such as what chapt. 4 will call “cognitive demon processes”. Initially, EEGs are taken of child victims, with an analysis of the different wave forms. Next, will come tests of VERs (visually evoked responses). This is valuable for instance, because bright children will show asymmetric (high amplitude) responses during VERs from the right hemisphere. Children with low I.Q. show the same evoked response from both hemispheres. This is just one window on the mind that the Illuminati programmers have of the preverbal children. There are other evoked-potential tests that are being used to determine personality traits too. Evoked-responses can also be used to show whether the person is conscious, or how deep they are in a coma. The early components of the evoked-response, which occur 10-20 milliseconds after a stimulus, are believed to come from the brain stem and can be used to determine a level of a coma. Evoked-responses are also used to determine particular learning disabilities within a child. Right-handed children will show even prior to birth, an anatomical specialization that favors language acquisition in the left hemisphere. So they can even determine what handed-ness the child has very early on.

Image2.gif

 

Baron Guy de Rothschild, of France, has been the leading light of his bloodline. The Baron is an Illuminati Kingpin and slave programmer. For those who have bought the cover story that the Catholic Church is not part of the Illuminati’s NWO, I would point out that the Baron has worked with the Pope in programming slaves. This photo was picked for the trauma chapter because the Baron has a droopy left eye. Many of the deeper Illuminati alters show droopy left eyes due to the trauma they have received. The authors are not aware of what the official explanation for his droopy left eye would be.


 

CHAPTER 2.

SCIENCE NO. 2–THE TRAUMATIZATION & TORTURE OF THE VICTIM

The basis for the success of the Monarch mind-control programming is that different personalities or personality parts called alters can be created who do not know each other, but who can take the body at different times. Let’s review some important points that were mentioned in the Vol.2 book, ‘The amnesia walls that are built by traumas, form a protective shield of secrecy that protects the abusers from being found out, and prevents the front personalities who hold the body much of the time to know how their System of alters is being used. The shield of secrecy allows cult members to live and work around other people and remain totally undetected. The front alters can be wonderful Christians, and the deeper alters can be the worst type of Satanic monster imaginable–a Dr. Jekyll/Mr. Hyde effect.”

A great deal is at stake in maintaining the secrecy of the intelligence agency or the occult group which is controlling the slave. The success rate of this type of programming is high but when it fails, the failures are discarded through death.” Each trauma and torture serves a purpose.” To create alters (dissociative parts of the mind) the worse the trauma, the better the amnesia walls, so programmers have been spending years trying to outdo each other in creating the world’s worst traumas that humans can survive, so they can program people. Readers may at first wonder why cover this gruesome part of the programming? There are a number of reasons. People who pretend to be helpful people–such as some ministers, and some professional therapists–are unwilling to look at the facts of what have been done to the victims they claim to want to help. How can the victim ever come out of denial and face the issues around their dissociation–IF the people helping them who didn’t experience these traumas first hand can’t even face the existence and nature of these traumas? Many therapists encourage the victim to maintain their amnesia walls, “let the past be the past”. They say, “You can’t change the past.” No matter how appealing this advice sounds, this advice for victims of trauma-based mind-control this is defective, idiotic simple advice. This type of advice only continues the mind-control and the abuse of the victim. No wonder Christian ministers who are under their mind-control are used to spout off this type of defective advice. It is important to cover programming traumas because it validates the memories of recovering victims, and because there are standard types of trauma that are used for certain types of programming. For instance, traumas that desensitize a person to killing–i.e. traumas where the victim is forced to kill innocent people–are used to program assassination alters. The base of the programming is FEAR layered via trauma. Hopefully, the readers will be inspired and motivated like this author to try to stop this horrendous mind-control.

DAILY ABUSE WORKS BEST FOR PROGRAMMING

To insure that the programming and abuse stays hidden from even the slave, the slave is given daily traumas as a child to keep them dissociative. The Illuminati’s programmers get the cooperation of a vast network of abusers who traumatize the children who are being programmed. One of the Illuminati’s fronts is the Catholic church, which the Jesuits manage for the Illuminati. Under the cover of religious retreats and their religious image, many Catholic clergymen have been participants in the vast trauma network actively creating trauma-based mind controlled slaves. The problem in exposing this is that first the people who are being traumatized have trust in the clergymen who are doing the traumas. Second, if the victims or parents of the victims suspect anything, they usually go to church officials rather than the police in order to clear up the problem, yet protect the church. Additionally, in most cases both the corrupt religious system, working behind the corrupt police and judicial system manoeuver to protect the abuser and to further victimize the mind-control victim and anyone coming to the person’s rescue. The following are but a few examples of a widespread network of secret abuse, that will not be uncovered because the system to catch abusers has long ago been corrupted and infiltrated and controlled by mind-controlled slaves, as well as by blackmailed or bribed dirty persons of authority.

Roger Trott, a Catholic Priest in Delmont, PA convicted of molesting 12 boys, got a suspended sentence by the judge. Can you believe such unbelievable leniency?

Father John Engbers (b. 1922, in Holland), catholic pastor at Leroy outside of Lafayette, LA. He baby-sat for a family, in which he sexually molested their children, their five daughters. He was treated as a member of this family and the mother, who was of Amer. Indian descent, was very close (“worshipped”-according to one daughter) to Father John. She spent long hours alone with him. He would tell his victims that they were his “puppet, like Pinocchio.” He molested some of the girls almost every day, and had them under his control enough that they returned even when they were living at a distance from him. He had what appeared to be a hypnotic type spell over them. Father John Engbers molested many children during his years as a Louisiana priest, until he fled in 1985. He had lots of money to spend. The Catholic church had known he was molesting children clear back in 1952, when some parents complained. The Catholic hierarchy helped him escape back to Holland in mid-1985, when reports and law suits over how he sexually molested children came out. The case of Father John Engbers has all the earmarks of a participant in the daily Monarch mind-control abuse given to children.

Dennis Dellamalva, a Pennslyvannia Catholic Priest, who molested boys, and the judicial system protected him from prosecution. The judge, a catholic order the records of this paedophilia priest sealed, and the catholic church which knew of his deviant behavior continued to give him a position of authority.

Michael Peterson, a child molesting priest, who was a drug addict and a homosexual, was one of the catholic hierarchy’s main men involved with investigations of pedophilia, who died of AIDS, and his rich sidekick Stephen B.C. Johnson II, who administered a catholic facility near Boston, Mass. Michael Peterson lived a rich lifestyle in Marsalin, and later Suitland, next to St. Luke and told people that he was not worried about anyone, because he had the goods on them to force them to comply. Michael Peterson’s St. Lukes was used by the Catholic church to receive many priests that were caught doing paedophilia. In the first six years, St. Lukes claimed to have cured 55 child molesting priests.

Monsignor William A. Kraft, (b. Rochester, NY), Knight of the Holy Sepulcher, was pastor of St. Therese during the ‘60’s, and by 1978 the rich pastor of St. Charles Borromeo, San Diego. His father was a chief executive with Eastman Kodak. Kraft’s sexual molestations of children have all the earmarks of being a Monarch mind-control abuser. He was protected by the Catholic hierarchy and the system from prosecution for molestation of children. When children are being tortured and traumatized by persons who are respected in society, and when these children see the police and judges protect these people, do you see why this further traumatizes them, and convinces them that there is no hope? Once they lose hope of outside help, their minds are further propelled to obey the commands of (continue with the picture below. The text continues under the girl in the left upper corner. Editor’s note)

p_little_girl2

 

ANGER-MANAGEMENT-PROGRAMMING TRAUMAS

The first type of abuse is prenatal. The second series of abuses occurs from 2 to 4. The third round of programming abuse, is given to the child around 5 to 6 years of age. One of the specific programming abuses is teaching the child slave to redirect their anger away from Papa or Daddy the slave owner. The Papa Bear, Daddy figure in the slave’s young life will intentionally provoke the child with teasing to aggravate the child into rage. Exactly what is done to provoke rage within the child will vary, but the result is the same, the child feels rage. The question is then asked, “Are you angry with daddy?” “Yes!” at that point electroshock is applied to the head, toes, tips of fingers, nipples & inside the vagina, or penis by electrodes attached to the child. The child will be brought to the level of rage, and then allowed to cool down for 30 minutes. The child’s alters are then via behavior modification & hypnosis taught to redirect their anger toward themselves. “WHEN YOU ARE ANGRY WITH YOUR FATHER, YOU WILL HURT YOURSELF. DO YOU UNDERSTAND? The message will be played over & over & the question “Do you understand?” will be played over & over. The child is shocked until they are compliant. The suicide programming will be layered in. Part of layering in the suicide programming, is to create pain in the right ear via a needle to the ear, with the creation of horrible disorienting sounds, while pulsing lights drive the brain into its alpha programming state. At a certain brainwave state the programming begins with repetitious self-destruct messages. These messages debase the value of the person to reinforce the suicidal destruct messages. After the child has learned that they are to hurt themselves, then they will learn specifically to cut themselves if they get angry at Papa or anyone in the Illuminati family they belong to. After this training, the child will attach subconsciously a fear of pain to the concept of anger toward its Illuminati controllers.

SILENCE PROGRAMMING TRAUMAS to TEACH SILENCE

One way to teach silence is to repeatedly kill persons of all ages in front of the person being programmed while telling the mind-control victim that the people who are being sadistically killed because they talked. However, the “no-talk” lesson will be repeated and embedded in many different fashions for Illuminati mind-controlled slaves. Perhaps a favorite Illuminati method is to expose the victim to watching dental tortures. The viewing can be reinforced by subjecting the victim to some dental tortures themselves. A common dental torture would be to extract the tongue of a live and conscious victim. Then dental tortures are done to the victim, and the intense jaw pain of the torture is linked to tripping the no-talk programming. If the person talks–their jaw hurts and they may pull up the dissociated feelings of seeing a person lose their tongue. This then will be further backed up by training an alter to carry out Russian Roulette if the system talks, and training numerous other alters other types of suicide if the system talks. In other words many back up programs mutually support each other in overkill. Considering that dental torture is used for no-talk programming, it was with dismay that this author discovered that Virtual I-O Co. is now making virtual reality eye glasses for dental work. Seashells and other images are linked to the concept of “no-talk” via programming laid in using methods described elsewhere.

Another “no-talk” program is the “Don’t tel me” telephone no talk programming.

TORTURE FOR NO-WRITE

The victim has their right hand bound behind their back and then is made to walk on their knees like a dog.

PAY ATTENTION TORTURE

There are a host of these, one example is a needle inserted up the nostril behind the eyeball.

A COMPLIANCE TORTURE — The Black Slave Chair.

The Black Slave was invented by a Syrian doctor who helped supervise torture, hence its arabic name al-Abd as-Aswad. The victim is strapped to this metal chair. What is unique about this chair is its design & its hole so that a hot skewer can be shoved up the anus. Another device for programming is a harness used as a suspension device. Yet another is an electrofied water bed for turning one in an electric eel.” Compliance is also taught by taking an eyeball out of the victim (later replaced), and by dislocating an arm at the shoulder. After this the victim can be wrapped as if in a cacoon within bandages. The supposed treatment for the dislocation, places the victim in sensory deprivation, another trauma.

A TRAUMA TO DEVELOP ANIMAL ALTERS

Helpless humans will be displayed to child victim of mind-control. These helpless humans will be visciously killed by some animal, a lion, a tiger, a snake, a wild dog or whatever. The programming lie emphasized at this point is that it is better to be that particular type of animal than it is to be human. Then the animal is sacrificed and its spirit is ritually joined to the child’s alters. Other programming is added to insure the dehuminization process to make certain child alters into particular animals. When finished, the child will contain viscious protector animal alters within their system. The prior example of a programming trauma actually pertains to structuring. The mind-control science of structuring MPD (DID) is discussed in chapter 7. It may be of significance to stress to the reader that traumas come in many shapes. The traumas are not done without some thought. Specific traumas are given for specific desired outcomes. The power and horror of a trauma is hard to gauage. It often results in a type of subconscious adrenlin-rush addiction. The traumas involving sensory deprivation and betrayals of trust can be just as devastating as painful tortures. Sad to say, sometimes for programming purposes all three types may be skillfully combined into one horrendous experience that overwhelms the mind.

TRAUMA TO ISOLATE THE VICTIM

A birthday party will be given for the victim. The birthday cake will contain a bean somewhere. It is announced that whoever gets the bean will get a surprise. When someone gets the bean, the mind-control victim finds out that the surprise is that they must take the life of the child who has found the bean. This programming trauma is part of a series of traumas designed to make deeper alters afraid of accepting any gifts from outsiders. The deeper alters are programmed that gifts always come with a sacrifice. Gifts always cost something. Nothing comes free. “SEVER ALL TIES, HAVE NO FRIENDS” are the programming messages. In reality, what Satan is doing with this trauma on a spiritual level is what the British Empire did with small countries. The British would warn small countries, “you are in danger, we will protect you. (The Spirit of Fear says, gifts are dangerous, let me the Spirit of Fear protect you.) When the British moved into small countries like this, they called them protectorates, & then they took over. (The Spirit of Fear, pretending to protect the victim, takes over and the victim develops a deep-seated free-floating phobias towards gifts from anyone. What pretends to protect, actually ends up controlling & enslaving.) As the reader treks through this book, he or she will encounter places where other traumas are discussed, such as tortures via implants, & traumas via rides in amusement parks, & spinning traumas during the structuring for creating alter families from an alter. Finally, the waves of fear created by repeated traumas layer in Spirits of Fear, which form a dark spiritual foundation.

 

p_clothing2.jpg

p_adrenalchrome2


CHAPTER 3.  

SCIENCE NO. 3 The USE OF DRUGS

IN REVIEW

The science of Pharmacology (drugs) has given the Programmers a vast array of mind-altering and body-altering drugs. Some of the drugs are not used to directly alter the mind, but to change the body (make the skin burn), or make the person vomit, or some other reaction that can be harnessed to further their nefarious programming goals.

DRUG RESEARCH

One of the sites which has done research/programming into MPD and drug action on the brain has been Bethesda, MD where Dr. Irwin J. Kopin was Chief of the Laboratory of Clinical Science, at the National Institute of Mental Health. He was active in research into how drugs can affect the mind.

CLASSIFYING MIND-DRUGS

When this author studied differential equations, and higher mathematical it became clear that everything can be reduced to a mathematical explanation. Sometimes a mathematical notation is easier and clearer, than other explanations. This author suggests that drugs that affect the mind could be classified on three scales:

Scale X: the wakefulness or arousal scale, which runs from a coma, to asleep, to alert, to hyperalert

Scale Y: the attitude, or affect scale, that is one’s manner of feelings, responses etc., running on a scale from suicidal and depressed to euphoric, blissful and elated.

Scale Z: the integration of reality scale, which runs from confusion, delusions, and psychotic thoughts to integrated, clear, lucid thinking.

Many (if not all) of the drugs that were listed in Vol. 2 and this chapter can be plotted along one of these scales, and sometimes 2 or 3 of these scales, which means an x,y, z axis configuration can be used to compare such drugs. In terms of naturally occurring brain substances which are manufactured synthetically and injected according to the programmers’ needs, it could be stated that the original purpose of the substance can be malevolently tampered with.

p_mind-drugs.jpg

 

ADMINISTRATION OF DRUGS FOR PROGRAMMING

The distribution into the brain of a drug is dependent upon many factors. Under microscopic-level inspection, one discovers a person’s brain is physically constructed to allow certain molecules to enter into the brain in certain complex ways. Just because a substance is put into the blood doesn’t mean it gets into brain tissue. Researchers have discovered such drug properties such as lipid solubility, the ionization, its tissue-protein bonding abilities, and its molecular size all play a role in how well drugs get into the brain. Further, the Cerebrospinal Fluid (CSF) which will be discussed indepth in Chapter 8 can play a role in drug absorption. Several studies during the 1960’s showed that the removal of drugs or substances from the CSF, can reduce the effective concentration of a drug in the extracellular spaces which make up perhaps 12% of the brain’s volume. These physical factors are not the only factors involved.

Researchers have repeatedly discovered that different people respond to mind-changing drugs in many different ways–including two different people having opposite responses to the same drug. There have been a number of studies about this phenomena, including: (SarwerFoner, 1957), (Henninger, et. al., 1965), (Rickels & Downing, 1966), (McNair et al., 1966). Over the years, it has been discovered that a person’s mental abilities, expectations, prior drug experience, age, sex, race, personality traits, and personality types can all potentially influence how a mind-altering drug will effect a person. For instance, a sedative drug administered to an extroverted confident athlete caused the athlete to feel anxiety and disorientation. In contrast, an introverted nervous intellectual felt calmness when the same drug was administered. Particle size of the drug and the rate of dissolution will help determine the rate at which a drug is absorbed (and eliminated) into the body. For instance, when colloidal silver has been produced by a process that yields small particles, it will cleanse the body, while larger particles of colloidal silver will kill a person. Different companies and different preparations of the same drug may have different outcomes upon the body. The persistence of a drug in the body is calculated by programmers using half-lives of a drug. This means that at one half-life, one half of a drug is left in the body. At two half lives, one-half of one-half is left or (1/4). At three half-lives there will be 1/8 left of original drug. In other words, the rate of elimination decreases with time. When heroin is processed into morphine, its characteristics change. The heroin takes affect quicker, but doesn’t last as long as morphine. This is because of enzyme mechanisms in the liver and how they react to the morphine in contrast to the heroin. Different drugs react differently with the complex enzyme mechanisms of the liver. Phenobarbital amazingly increases the enzyme content of the endoplasmic reticulum with habitual use of the drug. Phenobarbital will then enhance a particular type of toxicity. Low doses do not hurt the body, but there is a threshold where damage from phenobarbital will begin occurring to the liver and kidneys. This is a sampling of why it is important that the Illuminati use extremely skilled medical personnel in the application of programming drugs. The programmers are far more skilled than most legitimate therapists in understanding how much of what drug to give to which alter personality. The mental makeup of an alter will influence how that alter will respond to drugs. Some deeper alters can resist drug influence due to training. Some deeper alters are so fine-tuned that they only need small doses. With their superior knowledge of how a System of Multiple Personalities has been created within a victim’s mind, the programmers have a distinct edge over deprogrammers in how to administer drugs. On top of that the programmers, place in all types of programming to prevent anyone but the programmers (or approved people) from administering drugs. An example of how strong the mind can be over drugs–is when the programmers “SET THE STAGE”, “PRESENT THE SCRIPT’ and then use Seconal to obtain deeply embedded programming commands. Setting the stage is a programming term for talking to the victim in such a way that the mind is receptive for what the programmer wants the victim’s mind to do. Presenting the script is the actual set of commands that the programmer gives to the victim. For instance, the programmer functioning as a hypnotist tells the victim that a powerful sedative will be given but that part of the mind will be strong enough to overcome the sedative effect of seconal. The victim is instructed “WHEN YOU HEAR THE WORD [trigger power code word, for instance: ZEBRA COME FORTH]…YOU WILL RESPOND TO WHAT I AM SAYING.” The seconal is given and the person is placed in an isolation chamber. A good programmer skilled in hypnotism can actually get a victim’s mind to respond under the influence of seconal in an isolation chamber. Then the programmer will lay in deeply embedded commands while the person is in a sleep deeper than a twilight sleep. When the human body receives several different kinds of drugs, sometimes drugs compete with each other during the excretion/elimination phase. This may create a buildup or a retention of one of the drugs. As discussed in Vol. 2, the programmers don’t like to use combinations of several drugs because it complicates things. There is still a great deal of unknowns concerning adverse drug reactions. Some people do not show an allergic response to a drug until it is administered several times. Because of the potential for allergic reactions or side effects, the Programmers are helped because the programming centers, according to ex-programmers are extremely well stocked with different drugs, & the Programmer can if need be shift to an alternative programming drug. Most slaves are programmed to stay away from the use of drugs, except those drugs that the programmer/handler approves. By reducing the use of drugs of all kinds, the problem of adverse drug reactions, and other complications is reduced for the programmers. Some people who are health freaks who stay away from drugs are actually carrying out a front program for their programmers.

MORE PROGRAMMING DRUGS (these were not listed in the Vol.2 Formula book)

Acetophenzine aka Tindal–(this anti-psychotic has been used on multiples, it mutes anxiety, suspiciousness and delusions. it would fall more into the control category of uses rather than for actual programming.)

Amines–(this is a general term for many types of the brain’s own chemicals used to produce moods, and feelings)

Damiana–(aka Mex. Witching Herb, the extract is used w/ other herbs during progamming for a relaxed pleasure state.) »An example is Damiana-Biack Kava Kava-Valerian-Skullcap-Wild Lettuce Opium, which makes a “it’s-nothing-but-a-dream” state.

Chloral hydrate–(which is a hypnotic put in pill form such as chioral betaine, Beta-Chlor, and given with something like a glass of milk. About 500 mg. of Chloral hydrate are given for a hypnotic for an adult.)

Cyciohexamide–(produces retroactive amnesia)

Cylert–a type of speed

Datura aka Jimsonweed, or thorn apple–(sometimes used to help a child conjure up their personal spirit.)

Iminodibenzyis– (used for sedation)

Lettuce Opium–(tradition Hopi shaman trance drug)

Mandrake–(from the Mandragora plant, an ancient occult drug, a traditionai witchcraft drug for causing people to sleep)

Methaqualone–(a rapid hypnotic drug that produces a dissociative high, it can be used to put someone into a coma)

Pemoline-magnesium hydroxide (aka PMH, helps enhance conditioned avoidance training by acting as a stimulant, is helpful for repetitive learning situations by a general alerting effect on the mind)

Phenothiazines–(used to raise the threshold of electrical stimulation tolerance, to tranquilize or induce sleep)

Rowan–traditional sleeping/death herb of witches; May Day is also called Rowan Tree Witch Day.

Seconal, aka Seconal Sodium or Secobarbital Sodium–(a popular programming drug to stabilize programming, to set in deep programming into the base of the mind such as dates and codes, and to block out memory of missions by slaves, see various paragraphs below for more explanations. Used in 10, 20, 30, 50, 100 mg. increments. A tubal pregnancy/birth can be hid in a woman by 300-400 mg., while surgery on an adult man may require 500 mg.)

Tetradoxyn (made from the Puffer Blowfish, used by Voudoun, & others to create a zombie state)

In our discussion of drugs used in programming, this chapter will expand upon the previous book by discussing the application of drugs to:

a. to stabilize the programming after torture b. hiding the codes

c. building in deeply embedded structures and beliefs, and the creation of false identities

b. to influence the memory by drugs c. to stimulate instinctual behaviors

d. to create moods and attitudes by synthetically manufacturing and injecting the brain’s own natural amines.

STABILIZING THE PROGRAMMING

The total mind-control of the Illuminati is called “trauma-based mind-control” because repeated traumas are inflicted upon the victim is a very systematic calculated inhumane way. The tortures and stress are all parts of a programming package. After a particular harsh session of programming the victim’s mind will be in a high state of terror, shock, dissociativeness and splintering. The victim’s mind can’t take much more, and the potential of having uncontrolled splintering of the victim’s mind and thereby having the destruction of the mind and programming threatens the programmers’ control. The programmer wants the mind and body to rest so that the programming can set in, without destabilizing events occurring. For instance, after severe water torture (drowning) the programmer will want the programming (hypnotic script) to set in, and he will give seconal (aka seconal sodium or secobarbital sodium) to induce a deep sleep. Sleep occurs within 10 to 15 minutes. Sometimes a victim’s heart has been pushed to its limits during a trauma and they must shut the body down to let the victim rest. Seconal is a drug of choice for this. Seconal is administered in hospitals or programming sites where trained personnel know how to give the drug. Dirty psychiatrists, who understand the relationship between drugs and human behavior and who are either programmers themselves or assistants to programmers often are the ones who give the victims drugs like seconal.

EXTENSIVE RESEARCH DONE TO INFLUENCE HUMAN MEMORY BY DRUGS

The complete list of researchers who have studied the effect drugs have on memory would require a massive book. However, we will just mention a few that pertain to this book briefly. One of the places the effect of drugs on memory was researched was at the Univ. of California at Irvine, CA. Another was at institutions in the Boston, Mass. area such as the Massachusetts General Hosp., in Boston. Dr. Talland in Boston tested the effects of PMH on human memory. He discovered PMH could help people relearn material that had been partially forgotten. The Illuminati programmer Cameron (aka Dr. White) also tried out various approaches including the administration of RNA and RNA- synthesis stimulants. John C. Lilly, who admits being a member of an Esoteric Mystery School, was a government researcher on the use of LSD to program people. He did part of his work on LSD programming at the Maryland Psychiatric Research Center under admitted government financing. His book Programming and Metaprogramming in the Human Biocomputer (NY: Julian Press, 1967, & revised format 1972) is an excellent paper trail of how the Illuminati has used LSD to program total mind-controlled slaves. Originally, the book was given out only to a few select people. The book attempts to hide what it talks about behind a long intro, long sentences, big words and arcane psychological terms, but it does spell out how they do the mind-control programming with LSD. A section later in this chapter will lay out for the reader how they do this.

ONE TYPE OF EXPERIENCE OF VICTIM HYPNOTIC DRUG A MIND-CONTROL

The drugged victim feels like he is looking through a keyhole and the hypnotic voice of the programmer is the key hole. The world may be very shadowy and drawn in on itself. The mind has its attention on the hypnotist/programmer.

The BASIC PHASES of MEMORY

The human memory process can be basically broken down into 3 phases, the registration phase, the retention phase and the retrieval phase. Great amount of research has gone into how to use drugs to manipulate each of those phases. Great amount of research also went into how to measure people’s abilities to a. learn, b. remember, c. and to do non-learned behavior such as arm-hand steadiness and visual time reaction.

WHAT the MIND-CONTROL PROGRAMMERS USE to MANIPULATE memory.

Scopolamine was found to impair short-term memory. It was discovered that retrograde amnesia could be created by electroshock several hours after the brain had learned something. This lesson caused the Illuminati and those working in mind control with them to use cattle prods and stun guns.

If a person performed something they were to forget they can be stunned or given scopolamine to deaden their memory. A quick anesthetic applied immediately after something has been done might also impair the retention of what had happened. Yet another way is seconal, which will be discussed soon. Low doses of analeptic drugs given about 10 to 20 min. before training were found to help learning. Analeptic drugs include bemegride, diazadamantanol, pentylenete-trazol, picotoxin, and strychnine. It was discovered that strychnine helps enhance classical conditioning. It can be administered either before or after the learning has taken place. It is believed that memory storage is enhanced by strychnine and strychnine sulfate. Strychnine was also found to help protect the mind’s memory against the effect of electroshock. Abusers out on the street have been turning to GHB and Rohypnol to decrease inhibitions and to cause memory loss in their victims. Rohypnol (which sells for up to $10 a tablet) is dependable but more expensive than the GHB. A number of women who have been raped by adding these drugs to their alcoholic drinks at the Club Boca, Palm Beach, FL made the paper after they were drugged and raped after partying at the club. (The Palm Beach Post, Mar., 1996 pp. 1B, 10B.) GHB (Gamma Hydroxy Butyrate) is a compound essential to the body. It acts similar to a neurotransmitter. It helps release the Human Growth Hormone and removes inhibitions around intimacy, as well as some other beneficial effects. GHB crosses the blood-brain barrier and metabolizes into GABA. GHB’s high degree of safety was proved over 25 years of research, and was basically an established fact before the FDA and the media demonized GHB. Several sources seem to indicate that the FDA banned GHB –not because it has dangerous side effects, which it doesn’t have inspite of the established media’s disinformation campaign with half truths–but because it is not patented by the drug companies and would cut into their profits.

GHB also has a great aphrodisia effect. It reduces inhibitions to have sex, but because the woman clitoris is more sensitive it interferes with female orgasms. However, when the women do achieve it, it is longer and more intense, according to GHB researchers. (This author got much information on GHB from the Centurion Aging Research Lab.) GHB is described here because it is a drug that is known by the type of people who use sexual slaves and other people, and its use and misuse pertain to mind control. Like so many things involved with mind-control, GHB and many other items could be put to positive uses if used in the proper way. Sometimes the programmers use drugs rather than ECS (Electroconvulsive shock) to destroy the memory in slaves after they have done some mission for the Illuminati, the Syndicates, or Cult they belong to. The decision to use drugs rather than ECS is largely personal tastes. The very sadistic programmers enjoy using ECS, while the less sadistic ones often use the drugs, which in some instances actually perform better, but are not as violent to the victim of mind control. Retroactive amnesia can be caused by an intracerebral or a subcutaneous (under the skin) shot of Acetoxycycloheximide, cyclohexamide, or puromyxcin. A more sophisticated technique incorporates the drug seconal (aka Seconal sodium), the victim’s dissociativeness (the MPD), and hypnosis. Seconal is a strong sedative that puts people into sleep. The programmers have considered it “wonderful”. The victim’s mind is conditioned hypnotically to be able to remember the drugged-seconal state. Then the hypnotic command is given that if anything about a particular mission is remembered, the person will immediately trigger (pull-up to the front of the mind) the seconal memory. This is why many therapists discover their clients getting sleepy when they get close to certain thoughts, or when they try to do therapeutic work.

HIDING THE CODES

Chapter 4 provides some of the programming codes, some of which are standard and some of which are unique to a particular slave. Seconal was the standard drug used during the 1950’s and 1960’s to hide the programming codes in the mind’s memory. The procedure is to give a small child under 50 lbs. perhaps 10 mg. of seconal. The programmer has already “SET THE STAGE” and presented the script. After the child goes into its deep sleep, the programmer pulls the child’s mind awake hypnotically (actually to be technically correct, the programmer pulls up those alters/parts of the mind that the programmer wants to work with). The child may awake on an satanic altar or other programming setting. The child is then programmed. After the programming, which may include satanic rituals, the child slave is given 20 mg. more of seconal and allowed to go into a sleep again. A cover program (a cover story–that is a false code will be planted hypnotically in front of the real code. “IF YOU SHOULD REMEMBER THIS…” If a slave starts to remember any code, in spite of the hypnotic commands not to, and all the threats and alters trained to protect the codes, etc. then the programming to sleep kicks in. Also remember that the codes are placed in when the victim is groggy, so to pull up the memory will cause the slave to abreact the drugged-state. Not all the alters are drugged. In setting the stage, the programmer orders some alters to back off from feeling or associating the experience. They are hypnotically commanded not to experience the drug’s effects, or to only experience it in a partial manner. This can be done with small amounts of seconal. Larger amounts of seconal will override the mind’s ability to block the drug’s effects. The programming experience where the codes are put in, will likely be remembered by the slave as something similar to the following, a sleepy blurry picture of a nurse, then a doctor and a table, and then an IV, then the memory fades, and the slave gets sleepy thinking about it.

It should be pointed out that the mind has strong natural abilities to dissociate painful memories. Not only must the victim try to retrieve memories by fighting the mind’s natural dissociative abilities, the victim must fight the hypnotic suggestions, the irrationality of conflicting ideas due to the false cover memories laid in, the DRUG memories attached to induce sleep if the victim remembers, the memory shattering from the shock of the stun guns, and the fear of countless other threats internal and external if the memory is recovered. It is no surprise that most victims of this horrendously abusive mind-control have front alters who are totally unaware of the mind-control and abuse.

PROGRAMMING WITH LSD-25 (Lysergic Acid Diethylamide)

The Programmers use controlled and manipulated LSD trips for mind-control purposes when layering in the programming for the Illuminati slaves. The victim’s mind is trained and mentally prepared before actually being subjected to the drug. The programmers understand how the mind unleashes its fears, including its fear of LSD itself, while under the drug, so that small doses are given at first and then increased. This is so the victim of mind-control can learn to face and manage the effects of the drug.

When the Illuminati want to set the foundations for a system, they will use LSD in a sensory deprivation tank on a child to program in such things as: the hell-pit (a dungeon in a castle), the images of evil guardians, worlds & stars & galaxies which contain alters, the outer space in a system, and the protective program where the mind spreads out like molecules and loses the ability to think. The sensory deprivation tank will be set at 92.0 to 95.0 F. isothermal skin, saltwater suspension, zero light, near zero-sound levels. The victim will be naked without contact with the side of the tank and in remote isolation for several hours. Electrodes can be hooked up to shock the victim if they move to prevent the victim from wanting to move. Victims usually are conditioned to like the sensory deprivation tank before they are programmed inside it with LSD. After having listened to two ex-programmers describe LSD sensory deprivation programming, this author was amazed to discover that the LSD programmer John Lilly had actually written a book about how to do the programming! (John Lilly was also into witchcraft & aliens.) The government wasn’t quite as thrilled with his book as I was, they withdrew research funds from him in 1968 when only a few copies of his book came out. And now finally almost twenty years later, the human LSD programming that John Lilly described is finally being put into its larger context–that of trauma-based total mind-control. On page 126-127, Lilly explains that implanted programs in the child can be placed in below the level of the mind’s awareness, but which will affect their entire outlook on life, and which will control their thinking and behavior far into adulthood. The programs can even be done to control the most basic functions of life. Lilly says that the programming possible with the use of LSD is “…not achievable outside the use of LSD-25. This amount of control can be said to resemble other ways of achieving control and visual projection but in actual intensity I know of no other way to achieve it. Hypnosis is a possible exception.” (Programming and Metaprogramming in the Human Biocomputer, p. 20) On page 19, Lilly states that LSD can be used to change an experience to have a negative or a positive charge on it. Sometimes people who work with the mind refer to negative experiences as “negative charges on an experience”, and good experiences as “experiences with a positive charge”. Apparently, according to Lilly, the brain can switch chemical charges on an experience and shift its attitude from viewing as either positive or negative. In fact, this very thing is done during Illuminati programming. For instance, it may be done if a memory surfaces that the programmer doesn’t want the alter being programmed to understand. This last paragraph is interesting when one realizes that under LSD the subconscious mind is allowed to release its thinking into the conscious. If a person has been traumatized, the subconscious mind under LSD will release the trauma memories and flood the person with horrible thoughts. So before one can get to the transcendental wonderful creative thoughts, a person has to deal with this garbage. The sub-conscious erupts like molten magma. Before the child is given the LSD, the child is going to have to be mentally prepped. Just as Seconal could only be used after the hypnotist programmer had SET THE STAGE, so also with the LSD. The LSD programmer if he is experienced will have an idea how the victim will react to the drug. Each person reacts in his or her own way, but there are patterns of reaction. The programmer will hypnotically warn the victim, YOU’RE NOT TO FEAR such and such thought. They may tell the victim that it is just their imagination, when it is repressed memories of trauma surfacing. The programmer will let one alter carry the true feelings (such as fear) of the surfacing traumas, and another to carry the story line being programmed in with LSD. The programmer may have to calm the victim down while they are in the tank. The Illuminati use hypnosis in conjunction with the LSD programming trips. They also use some other mind-control items too. Further, LSD is not the only programming hallucinogenic that they have used for some of this type of programming, they have tried Peyote, but LSD seems to be the drug of choice. On page 20, Lilly describes the use of mirrors along with LSD to create visually projected images. The Illuminati programmer will play a movie, a script over and over so that it is constantly in the forefront of the victim’s mind. Then the stage is set and the script (such as TAKE WHAT YOU SEE INTO THE MIRROR) is hypnotically given. The victim goes under LSD and in about 15 minutes reaches their LSD high. Most people can be talked to by the programmer during the programming, and the programmer can get some feedback from what is happening in the victim’s mind. The victim will be placed in front of a mirror. Then the victim will project the image that was repeatedly shown him or her (say for instance, Alice In Wonderland, or Tinkerbell, or Mickey Mouse) onto their own image in the mirror. A special state of consciousness is induced where the person’s perception is altered and they see the projected image as their own reflection. While watching the projected image on the mirror, the mind under LD will also project its own feelings and facial features into the mirror. If the victim is angry, happy, in pain, admiring themselves, etc. then projected image (for instance, Mickey Mouse) will also been seen this way. Using this type of programming, the programmers can create twinning parts. That is if two people are to be twinned, parts that see themselves as the other person are created using the LSD mirror programming. Ceremonies and demons will also be added to strengthen the twinning, and this may be done to a 13 year old teenager within the Illuminati. These projections can be maintained and worked with for about 30-40 min. during the drug’s high. After this length of time fatigue sets in and the person must rest before being brought to another high. A clean slate alter can be prepared by the script and then will actually believe that it saw itself as the projected image. By the time, the session is through the clean slate alter believes it is Alice in Wonderland or whatever character the programmer(s) wants it to be. During the trauma of an LSD programming trip, the mind may see flickering images, melting, mosaics and other things. These distortions can form a cover memory if the programmers wants them too. During the sensory deprivation tank experience under LSD, the victim can be asked to open their eyes, or close them. If asked to form a mental screen, the victim under LSD will see a blank screen differently if their eyes are open as compared to closed. If the victim is allowed to look while in a dark tank out into the darkness under LSD, they will visualize themselves as merging with the infinite universe and not even having a body. This memory is used to build in the outer space of a system. On page 32, Lilly describes the type of programming used to create an Infinity, a Rubicon, or Outer Space within a system. He says, “The self is still centered at one place but its boundaries have disappeared and it moves out in all directions and extends to fill the limits of the universe as far as one knows them. A person taking LSD may experience, whether being programmed or not, that they are in touch with all the stars of the universe.

LSD distortions in reality can also be used to protect the programming. If the mind gets too close to remembering something, then the mind triggers automatically a memory of its molecules expanding into the universe and losing their ability to think. This is simply a controlled LSD memory. When external stimuli is ceased, the brain takes over the spaces that were formerly occupied in the thinking process by external reality, and replaces it with feelings and thoughts from the internal mind. Lilly states on pg. 24 that when programming people under LSD, “The blank screen is the most difficult one to work with but is the least ‘driving’ of the group. The blank screen interferes least with one’s creative efforts;…” In other words, if the victim is closed off to external stimuli, the mind can focus all its energy into free associative creativity. Once the victim is in isolation, religious music can cause the brain to free associate religious visions, cartoon voices can cause the brain to free associate the cartoon figures, etc. The Illuminati/Intelligence agencies must wait 3 to 6 months between LSD programming sessions. If they do it more often, they run the risk of hooking the person’s mind on the drug state. Then the person will lose interest in reality, and simply try to escape reality into the LSD world as a drug addict. From recollections from ex-programmers and victims, its clear that as the child victim is traumatized during the [SD sensory deprivation (including being shocked) experiences it goes through a sequence or chronology of changes which are noted in detail by the programmers. Certain splits occur at certain points in time which will be used for special tasks. For instance, at a particular extreme moment the victim may go into a "nothingness state" which is between life and death, where the mind quits perceiving that it has a body. This is not an out-of-body experience, it is a nothingness experience due to an extreme near-death experience. This clean slate can be used for the Cabalistic programming of the Ain Soph Aur. The Ain Soph Aur is the cosmic egg from which the universe supposedly began, ain = vacuum, soph limitless, and aur = limitless light. For Satanists they interpret this to the light at the top of the pyramid, Lucifer. Alters created in such a fashion may be placed in a succession of realms. If true Caballism is followed this will consist of 4 realms (worlds) of 10 clean slates. These four worlds are Atziluth = boundless world of divine names, Briah the Archangelic World of Creations Yetzirah = the Hierarchal World of Formations Assiah = the Elemental World of Substances

The child victim in the sensory deprivation tank is not allowed to move without being shocked. Gradually the will of the victim is broken by the total control the programmer maintains over the child in the tank. But the will of the child continues to be broken until the will of the child to live is broken. At this point, when the mind has given up the will to live, the programmer (or assistant programmer) will tell the child in the tank, "If you create such and such types of persons and such and such no. of them (perhaps 10 or 20 are asked for) then you can come out and we’ll stop hurting you. Give me a signal that you’ve done your job and I’ll stop hurting you when the job is done. Move a finger or blink your eyes three times if you’ve done your job."

Blinking three times generally feels the safest for the child, and is generally the limit of what the mind and body can muster to save themselves. The alters, which are made when the mind & body have lost the will to live, are the dissociated parts that will be made into suicide alters. Their breathing is very shallow, they are in pain in the tank. When these parts take the body, they still function in that state. Years later, if the adult body has these suicide alters take the body, there is a good chance they will commit suicide, if not simply die from the shallow breathing. Lilly states on page 31, "One experiences [under LSD programming] an immediate internal reality which is postulated by the self. It is apparent to me that one’s own assumptions about this experience generates the whole experience. The experienced affects, the apparent appearance of other persons, the appearance of other beings not human, one’s own past phantasies, one’s own self-analysis, each can be programmed to happen in interaction with those parts of one’s self beyond one’s conscious awareness.”

While the victim is in the sensory deprivation tank, the programmer can ask the victim to create guard alters within the castle images they create. These are equivalent to the imagery that is done in witchcraft. These image alters are not the same as a trauma-created dissociative alter. The following are the type of beliefs that can be programmed into a person in the sensory deprivation tank under LSD no matter what their prior beliefs (this is substantiated by Lilly, pages 4 1-49 and ex-programmers).

a. The person could successfully park the body and leave the body somewhere, astral project and explore new universes. The victim can be brought during an LSD trip to this thinking and experience the astral projection from around 20 mm. to 2 hours.

b. The victim can be made to feel as if they are a tiny mote, a tiny dot, a single microflash of energy in their own view of time, a mere particle. Time can become infinity and the victim a mere microflash. The victim during this experience seeks a god who is a great being to control him. This is used in the Illuminati alien programming to program in the evil and good aliens, or evil or good gods. The gods or the aliens on such a programming trip will not be so strange that the victim as a mote can’t understand their purposes and activities. In other words, the aliens on programming trips like this turn out humanoid. The victim experiences being nurtured by these beings or the god(s) that he sees. The victim may perceive these aliens on the trip experimenting with us. One UFO researcher and author about the aliens has used his LSD trips to research aliens. Sad to report, this researcher is a programmed multiple. It is easy to see how the mind could think that it was learning about aliens, because this is a common easy-to-create LSD programming script. Again in summary, this second set of beliefs is that the person is a mere mote, a small flash in infinite time. When an alter of a slave thinks or goes internally where it shouldn’t, this programming is attached to the mind so that the victim loses sight of who they are and feels very insignificant and only a dot.

c. The next program that LSD naturally lends itself to, is that the victim is only part of a vast computer, only part of a vast mind. For some reason, the LSD is able to hit a part of the mind that regulates the perception of free-will. In this type of programming, the victim under LSD is convinced that he or she has no free will and must participate each second with some larger mind or computer.

d. Personalities that have been seen externally by the victim will be incorporated within the person’s internal world.

e. LSD changes the victim’s perception of time, and can be used to go back or forward in time in the mind. Under guidance, the programmer can manipulate this ability to build into the mind false memories and images.

f. If “white noise”, that is random background noise is placed into an isolation tank trauma, the programmers have found that under LSD the brain tries to make sense of the random sounds and projects the voice of God into the random noise as a method to turn chaos into something comprehendible. With the right dose, and under the right conditions, the programmers can get the voice of “God” to say about anything they want. Because the sense of hearing in the sensory deprivation tank is not feeding the mind anything, the human brain under LSD can easily substitute in the voice of God.

g. For girls, who have been determined to have personalities with low sexual appetites, the sexual desires of certain alter personalities can be manipulated during an LSD trip by having these alters hold the body and the body go through exaggerated pelvic movements and other experiences. This is an example of the type of training that Gittinger (see Vol. 2) discovered was necessary in order to change thinking patterns within a person–in this case with the MPD (DID), some alters can be radically changed from the original personality.

The overall effect of such LSD programming on anyone, whether child or adult, is that the mind at a deep level begins to doubt its ability to grasp the real from the imaginary. Therapists sometimes wonder why alters are not more anxious to determine reality. Part of this may be the side-effect at a profound level of the brain beginning to doubt its abilities to separate reality from fiction. If the LSD trips were not controlled by the programmers, insanity could result for the victim. Further, the LSD trips pose a danger that they could clutter the internal world of the victim and splinter their mind uncontrollably. This is why the trips must be carefully guided, controlled and monitored.

CHEMICALLY TRIGGERING NATURAL INSTINCTUAL DRIVES

The brain when a child is born is like a computer which is ready to go, and just needs the software loaded on. In other words, the brain is already a functioning complicated programmed piece of hardware, it is not a blank sheet. The mind is preprogrammed to carry out important instinctual functions, such as drinking water, eating food and sleeping. Likewise, the adult mother instinctively has maternal instincts. Selectively applied chemical or electrical stimulations to the brain will elicit the instinctual behaviors that are pre-programmed into the brain. A microinjection of a soluble sex steroid into the anteromedial hypothalamus would likely trigger the maternal instinct in a person. The various instinctual behaviors that are triggered by microchemical injections or small select electrical shocks will last for up to an hour. (A.E. Fisher was one of the principal researchers in this line of research during the 50’s and 60’s.) For instance, A.E. Fisher and E. Vaughan, discovered that the male instinct for sex could be stimulated by a small shock to a specific part of the brain. (See “Male sexual behavior induced by intracranial electrical stimulation”, Science magazine, 1962, 137, pp. 758-760.) Steroids are one of the chemicals that are used as well as selective minute electrical shocks to trigger instinctual behaviors. Reliable responses can be obtained from a victim, if the correct chemical is placed at a place in the brain where the chemical will cause the brain to send an electrical signal to trigger an instinctual behavior. A searching reaction can be created so that a person or animal searches for something in his surroundings by electrical stimulation of the hippocampus. Eating can be reliably induced electronically or by drugs. Perfusate taken from ventricles or neural tissue of a person who was starved before death, and placed into the lateral hypothalamic area will cause the person to eat whether they are hungry or full.

SEXUAL STIMULATION-PROGRAMMING

The users of slaves need some of the parts to be nymphomaniacs. In order to program this type of behavior, the programmers not only use the reversal effect when pain becomes pleasure (see Vol. 2), but they also use hormones and drugs to make certain parts nymphomaniacs. If they were not artificially stimulated they could not endure the over-use they are subjected to at times.

THEIR ABILITY TO MANUFACTURE (SYNTHESIZE) BRAIN CHEMICALS TO MAKE MIND-CONTROL DRUGS

Part of the ability to do mind-control has to do with their ability to synthesize the actual specific chemicals that the brain produces to alter itself. When the brain wants to relax, or excite itself it uses certain compounds. A large number of the brain’s chemicals have been cataloged and can be reproduced in the lab. The messages the brain sends have to jump from one neuron to another via transmitters. The rate that the brain releases these transmitters can be both directly and indirectly changed by drugs. In other words, one can tailor make moods and emotions in the brain chemically.

Page 36 …

The term “Amines” (which are compounds that have a nitrogen atom that can accept a proton) came to have a specific meaning for brain researchers. The transmitters between neurons in the brain are Amines such as dopamine, epinephrine, histamine, norepinephrine, octopamine, serotonin, and tyramine. The principle method to synthesize these transmitter amines is “decarboxylation of the parent amino acid.” In other words, the chemist takes Tyrosine and applies Tyrosine Hydroxylase (an enzyme) and produces Dopa another similar compound; and then the enzyme Dopa Decarboxylase is applied and from that the similar Dopamine amine is created. Then Dopamine-Beta-oxidase (another enzyme) is applied in the final step of the three enzyme steps to create Norepinephrine. Both Dopamine and Norepinephrine are neural transmitters. If norepinephrine is diminished in the brain, sedation occurs. Alpha-methyl-p-tyrosine (as well as other compounds) was found to be one of the things that would prevent the brain from creating (synthesizing for itself) norepinephrine. Serotonin (5-hydroxytryptamine) is created in a fashion similar to dopamine, in that tryptophan is taken and acted upon by the enzyme Tryptophan hydroxylase to get 5-hydroxytryptophan, and then a decarboxylase converts this compound to serotonin. To reverse things, and prevent the brain from having serotonin, they can prevent selective parts of the brain from creating it with p-chlorphenylalanine.

ADRENALCHROME (Adrenal Chromaffin)

This naturally occurring yellowish brown drug was not mentioned in the Vol. 2 book, although it was mentioned in this author’s newsletters in ’93 and May ’95 The drug is obtained by sacrificing a terrified person, perhaps by plunging the athame into them, and then taking a hypodermic needle and extracting the adrenalchrome from the base of the neck in the pineal gland. A sacrificed person only yields about 10 c.c. so the drug is not only very secret on the black market but very expensive. A Scientific American article by Carmichael and Winkler is the best thing that I have discovered on the adrenalchrome. The Max Planck Institute in Germany did research into Adrenalchrome. Dirty law-enforcement officials and others have worked to keep the existence of adrenalchrome a secret. It is not known if Adrenalchrome has ever been used for programming, but it is a popular secret drug of the elite Illuminati kingpins. For many years, they were not able to synthetically produce the drug, and had to rely on human sacrifices as their source. It is possible that in the last year or so, that some method to synthesize the drug may have been found. Chromaffin cells secrete adrenaline, noradrenaline and other substances into the bloodstream which exert a great deal of control over tissue, and organs.

HERBS

Another place that programmed DID Satanic Ritual Survivors may encounter herbs is the use of herbal charms to enhance magic spells.

OILS

The Illuminati have also used oils for their powerful properties. Recently, a doctor who was trained by the Freemasons has been helping people discover the powerful properties of these oils. Christians also have been rediscovering the powerful healing powers in pure Fennel, Frankincense, Juniper, Lavender, Peppermint, Pane and other cold pressed Oils and combinations of oils.

Summary of Major Point.

The guided LSD trips in the sensory deprivation tanks are crucial for laying in the foundational programming. Readers will learn more about guided LSD trips & programming drugs throughout this book.

Page 37 …


CHAPTER 4.  SCIENCE NO. 4 – HYPNOSIS 

HYPNOSIS & the OCCULT

From the Egyptian Sleep Temples to ancient shamans, the occult world has been putting hypnosis (including self-hypnosis) to work for centuries, even millennia. During the 18th and 19th century, the Masonic lodges put hypnotism to use. In 1882 Jean-Martin Charcot, considered the world’s greatest neurologist at the time, gave hypnotism respectability by publishing his own studies, which included recovering A. trauma memories blocked by amnesia, and B. memories presumed permanently lost by organic amnesia. At that time, a group of french medical doctors located at Nancy just a 100 kilometers southeast of the Mothers-of-Darkness castle, had a school of hypnosis that influenced doctors all over the world including Freud. These french doctors had caught on to the power of suggestion to the subconscious.

In the 1780’s, Marquis de Puysegur was putting people into deep hypnotic trances and then commanding them to forget the hypnotic session. James Esdaile in his book Mesmerism in India & its Practical Application in Surgery and Medicine. (pub. Longman, Brown, Green, Longmans, 1846) pp. xxiii-xxiv, describes and lists hundreds of surgeries (some quite serious) which he did in India using hypnosis as his anesthesia. He found his patients could heal quickly and experienced no pain under hypnosis.

In modern medical history, every type of surgery has been successfully carried out without drugs and “without pain” by using hypnosis. In the VoL 2 book, it was brought out that perceptive researchers have figured out that the pain under hypnosis is placed by the mind into a dissociated piece of the mind, which is essentially what MPD (DID) is all about. Tests have shown that hypnosis to reduce pain does not work by the brain releasing endorphins (see Hilgard, 1975 & Spiegel and Leonard, 1986). The mind simply diverts the pain into a “mental floppy disk” that it doesn’t look at. In the early 1880’s, occult researcher Edmund Gurney found he could give post-hypnotic commands that would be successfully carried out in the future.

What amazed him was that subjects would fulfill commands exactly as commanded at a particular time on a particular day without even looking at the clock. Various European doctors, too numerous to mention, discovered in the 1880’s that they could cure various diseases via hypnosis. The cure rate was not 100%, but significant enough to make hypnosis an option in some treatments.

This author (Fritz) has reported that programmed multiples are able to increase the temperature of one body part, or one side of their body. Cisco, the co-author of this book, when she hits certain programs, turns ice-cold on the right of her body and burns on the left side. It was with great interest then when this author located the 1920 work of hypnotist J.A. Hadfield who published his work in Lancet, 2: pp. 68-69, under the title “The influence of suggestion on body temperature.

“Using hypnosis, Hadfield could get a subject to drop his temperature in one hand to 68.0 while the other hand stayed at 94º. Here is the paper trail to what they have been doing to programmed multiples for half a century. Today, the occult world uses sophisticated hypnotic techniques as one of their programming tools to create mind-controlled slaves. The slave’s mind is structured into a robotic-computer controlled by a master. Parts (alters) of the slave will learn how to trance (self-hypnosis) on cue. The better conditioned a subject is to hypnosis, the easier they fall into trance. The victims of mind-control are all very conditioned for hypnosis, even though their programmers then hide that under post-hypnotic suggestions that no-one else is to be allowed to hypnotize the slave. The ancient saying is that a picture is worth a thousand words. In conveying suggestions to the subconscious mind, the occult world of black magic and the programmers are very aware of the power that picture images convey. The good programmer will be able to utilize images to give him tremendous leverage in hypnotic techniques. An alter which needs to create something in the mind can be prepped with images, and can be asked to borrow images, such as borrow such and such quality from this person or animal. The child alter who becomes a Lion after eating a dead lion’s parts can imagine the qualities (speed, agility, fierceness) of the lion easily. The image of the lion is worth a thousand words to the hypnotic programmer. If the programmer wants an alter that is trained in karate to be agile, quick and fierce, they don’t mind dehumanizing that alter to become a lion or tiger. One element of why this is done is the power of the image for hypnotic commands. The deeper Illuminati alters will be highly skilled in self-hypnosis & the ability to change at will into various states of consciousness. This is part of their witchcraft training in order to practice witchcraft.

UNDERSTANDING THE BASICS ABOUT HYPNOSIS

The Programmer is attempting to produce suggestions that the unconscious mind will accept. If the subconscious mind accepts the programmer’s suggestions then the suggestion becomes reality to the victim, just as if the victim had experienced it as reality over a period of time. The programmer, if he is good, will be able to get the subjects imagination involved. He will also build rapport with his victim. For instance, the master might hypnotically stroke the forehead of kitten sexual alters before giving them their code to go back into the mind. The good handler/programmer is not simply working off of fear, but he wants to have the trust and cooperation of the victim. This is similar to how Hitler was both feared and trusted by the German masses. In fact, hypnosis was an element in Hitler’s control of the masses. Nazi propaganda films showing Hitler and other Nazi leaders giving directives always have the Hitler Youth’s actions slightly speeded up so that subconsciously the viewer is taught obedience to their commands.

The programmer will not tell the slave something is hypnotically happening until it has already happened. He will use the art of timing his words at the correct time, of using repetition, of combining several mutually supporting suggestions, and of having total confidence in his words to add strength to his hypnotic commands. Muscular rigidity and deep breathing are one way to increase suggestibility within the victim being programmed via hypnosis. The programmer will also use other hypnotic tricks, such using his own body language to suggest something, and to use what is called a “voice roll”. When the programmer moves his voice into a monotonous patterned style he is using the roll voice. Words are delivered at the rate of 45 to 60 beats a minute. To empower the suggestions, the programming hypnotist uses the victim’s five senses. The victim visualizes something using his five senses, such as the imagery of the holy spirit (done in mockery of God) and then breathes this imagery in. For instance, the victim breathes in the message of the programming and roots it deep deep down into the oak tree. (In VoL 2, it was explained that the oak tree is the structure that the programs are attached to.)

THE POWER OF HYPNOSIS

During the hypnotic trance, the human mind is at the pinnacle of its ability to quickly learn. What might take years to learn and weighing the evidence, will be accepted quickly by the victim’s subconscious. The mind strings together a series of “cognitive mental demons?? that is a series of mental processes–similar to how a computer programmer writes a program. These strings have been called K-lines. Much of what the mind does is simply activations of various K-lines (a habitual ways of doing things), so that the mind can focus its limited conscious thinking. The mind also takes micronemes (such things as a particular aroma, or a particular intonation for which it has no word, but for which it has a series of sensory clues) and builds these into K-lines too. Once a K-line works, the mind in order to prevent itself from making reckless changes, gives priority to those K-lines. Under hypnosis, the mind willingly allows the hypnotist to change K-lines without the normal unconscious conservative restraints. Under behavior modification techniques, abnormal K-lines (that is K-lines that wouldn’t normally develop) can be forced into the mind.

A hypnotic suggestion given to normal subjects lasts about a week, so reinforcement is helpful. The programming suggestions are layered in using methods far more powerful than mere hypnosis, and are locked up in dissociated subconscious states, so that these programming scripts which are layered in are almost impossible for the victim to be aware of to challenge them. The emotions of women have been found to slightly detract from the hypnotic trance, while male victims take the hypnotic words in an unemotional matter-of-fact way. The male victims will simply accept the programming and directly comply. That is one reason why the suicide programs that are layered into the men are so deadly. The female victims of programming may emotionally play the suicide out and survive; the male slaves when they trigger suicide programs, comply with the programming in an unemotional direct way.

How deep is the slave’s trance? There are tests for trance depths, but from what this author can ascertain, sometimes it can be difficult to determine exactly where the mind is at. If a memory is laid in at a particular trance level, the slave may be able to avoid an abreaction later on by going above or below the memory’s trance level. A deep level, where for instance, the person can’t move a body part due to hypnotic suggestion, would be called the “cataleptic stage” or level.

UNDERSTANDING THE DEEPER MECHANICS of HYPNOSIS

Let us suppose for the sake of discussion that as you are reading this, it is supper time. You are hungry. You’ve starved yourself all day, and even though you are on a strict diet, you are trying to think of a good restaurant to go to. Now let’s see, as your mind scans the different possibilities, it thinks of some that are close, some that are quick. some that have lots of easy parking and others that have good looking waitresses. Mechanically, your thought processes went like this:

a. Particular sensations and chemicals cause the mind to feel what it mentally describes as a pang of hunger. This is perceived as an important need.

b. The mind has a process that we can call an Intention System that creates specific intention messages that are sent throughout the brain. It stores these Intentions temporarily. If an intention is not freshly created and restacked at the top of the clutter of intentions in the intention store, then it gets buried underneath the “mind cluttered desk of things to do” and forgotten. In our example, the mind is searching its memory banks for options on how to satisfy its hunger.

c. The mind must decide upon one particular course of action. The mind quits focusing on other matters, and concentrates upon deciding which course of action to take. The mind has now activated all kinds of what some researchers call “demons”. Because we are not talking about spiritual demons, but rather we are referring to units of cognitive processes–which are very similar to UNIX computer demons–we will refer to these demons by the name “cognitive demon processes.” Some of these cognitive demon processes are action demons and some are word demons, and some are recognition demons.

Recognition Cognitive Demon Processes go running through the mind, “shouting” the wishes of the Intention store. A number of lower level cognitive demon processes wake up and make themselves known if they identify with what the recognition demon is shouting about. Many may think they match the request, but other demon processes check them out to see how close they match. Now the checkers come up with a list of cognitive demon processes who are concerned with eating at restaurants, who have woken up and are all scrambling for attention. Cognitive demon processes establish themselves in families, and develop relationships that are automatic. (Cognitive Demons do not die, but some go to sleep and others can get somewhat rusty in their relationships.) The “demons” that respond to the shouting of our recognition demon go through a series of “interviews” with a hierarchy of other demon processes, and soon the messenger demon can rush back to the Intention Store with the name of the choices available.

All this happens extremely quick. If the mind did not set up a series of automatic cognitive demon processes that become habits, (called K-lines) it would find itself involved in the conscious relearning of trivial matters that would make it impossible to get much accomplished. Every skill would have to be constantly relearned. A person might easily end up spending all day dressing. As long as the mind remains in a static environment, where habits work, it’s great. But life is such a changing environment, that our entrenched habits can cause the mind to pull up a cognitive demonic process out of habit, when it is neither wanted nor appropriate.

Emotions and needs (which are tied to our emotions) will trigger the mind to search out cognitive demon processes. For instance, if our emotional need for someone we are looking for is great, let’s say a wife waiting for a long expected war-husband, it may send a need down the brain for the cognitive demons that are attached to the identification of the long-awaited person, and the mind triggers itself to see his face in the crowd at the busy railway station before its owner arrives.

Cognitive Demon Processes live in close proximity to other demons, and when one gets excited, others in the area do too, although their excitement may be much less. If a cognitive demon is being used a great deal, it will be on its toes, but little used demons can go to sleep, and somehow need to be hollowed at very loud to wake up.

The Intention System after a while will set itself on autopilot for certain mental functions, which frees the conscious mind for other problems. The conscious mind can only focus on a small amount of material–it is like a computer which has limited memory. It is constantly in a state of redeployment, and the Intentions system has only a small sway over how the Attention part of the mind decides to focus. The Attention part constantly asks itself, which tasks can be relegated to habit. Then when the Intention system sends out cognitive search demons, they do not have to involve the conscious mind, because everything that is habitual is set up like a script, with families of “cognitive demon processes” already knowing the roles/relationships they are to play. (Again, Behavior modification is used to strengthen the relationships of demonic processes, and to make some well used and awake, so that certain behaviors become habits.) When our minds meditate or go into a hypnotic trance, what is occurring is that our conscious mind is delegating its limited computing memory for the focus of its attention upon one object. What happens to the cognitive demon processes that would normally take instructions from the conscious mind?

During meditation the untrained cognitive demon processes bubble up to the top of the conscious mind. However, the opposite happens during hypnosis. During hypnosis, the mind has made the decision (for whatever reasons) to accept control statements from the hypnotist. The mind has surrendered or at least temporarily or partially abdicated his or her position as the master of his or her Intention System. Some of this power is given away. The hypnotist now has access and control over many or all the cognitive demonic processes, including some that the person would not normally activate. Cognitive demon processes that are asleep or deeply buried can be accessed by the hypnotist, in a much quicker direct way than the Intention System would. By suggesting that the subject has a cat on his lap, the hypnotist is actually causing the recognition cognitive demon processes to wake up and act out their jobs to such an extent that the subject sees a cat. By suggesting that the subject’s body stiffen, the hypnotist has gained control over those cognitive action demons that cause the body to stiffen. Age-regression brings up demons that are associated with the subject’s childhood.

Although it is unpopular to admit publicly that the hypnotist has power over the subject, a close look at the process of how hypnosis works at the neuronal “cognitive demon process” level shows that the hypnotist has indeed been given power. In fact, the hypnotist has been given power to activate cognitive units of demon processes that the mind itself would allow to remain inactive or asleep. The mind would not normally use its ability to activate them. Today, it is politically incorrect to admit that the hypnotist has power to make an individual do what they wouldn’t normally want to do, but unfortunately hypnosis does give this power.

PROGRAMMING AIDS

Because the programmers control the slave’s life to such a high degree they can add other elements that move the brain into programmable states.

Fasting along with a high sugar intake will make the brain more suggestive. (The military also used this in basic training. This was done to this author at West Point during Beast Barracks, where during the first two weeks he ate all-total enough food for one regular meal; however, New Cadets were allowed to go to chapel and eat all the brownies, cookies and kool-aid they wanted.)

Physical discomforts and the chanting of rituals in witchcraft ceremonies are also ways to move the mind into programming states.

Lights, sounds (for instance repetitive beats such as with any rock music), and smells are all used to encourage the brain to go into a programmable state.

In the chapter on electronics, it discusses how the functions of the mind-body such as breathing and the heartbeat can be regulated by external stimuli —that is lights and sounds which are electronically produced. If the repetitive beat is ranged between 45 to 72 beats per minute, many people will go into a programmable state with their eyes open. This is because this beat is close to the beat of the heart in a relaxed state.

Some secret Illum. programming centers have areas that are constructed for the greatest hypnotic sound and lighting effect. The child/ or adult victim is cut off from the world at these programming centers. The victims’ freedom to walk outside into normal life depends upon their cooperation with the programmer(s).

Lullaby music is used as a cue for some alters of slaves to induce trance when their systems are older because the child alters still respond to the cue. Anything can be a cue, but it appears the programmers often pick cues that are naturally reinforced by the mind. The lullaby or carousel music is a good cue, because the lullaby is taking advantage of the natural desire of the brain to retreat from reality to the nostalgia of childhood fun. The retreat of the mind to childhood naturally evokes the helplessness and dependence that a child feels.

The programmers are powerful enough to place in cues that don’t need natural reinforcement, but from observation it is apparent that they will often skillfully strengthen the hypnotic power by the choice of a cue which carries its own natural reinforcement. One supporting element in programming is that the programmer sets himself up as “god the creator” of the victim, or an alien of a far-advanced race.

In hypnotism, this fulfills the need that all hypnotic subjects must have faith and trust in their hypnotist. Hypnosis is subjective in nature. If the programmer is the creator of the alter being programmed, and the alter is additionally under a hypnotic drug that makes it willing to obey, it is easy to see how the victim lets go of all inhibitions, because “god” or this “superior alien” knows what is best. The better and stronger the relationship between the victim and his master programmer, the better the hypnotic commands work. If the slave sees the master as a religious guru prophet (or a great doctor) it enhances his willingness to accept hypnotic commands. Bear in mind that the slave is conditioned to love their master without reservation. Yes, the benevolent dictator has historically received the devotion of the masses, (and many of the Illuminati programmers are actually simply egotistical sadists).

USING HOLOGRAMS as an ACCESS AID

The Illuminati is now even resorting to creating talking hologram images to access their slaves with their hypnotic cues.

KEEPING THE MIND IN ALPHA STATE

The entire alter system of a Monarch slave has their sleep patterns controlled. Many alters are programmed not to get real sleep. They actually sleep in a hypnotic alpha-state sleep, or what may be called trance sleep.

Hypnotists (and brain researchers) will tell you that true sleep and a hypnotic sleep are not the same thing for the brain. Some alters (but not many) must stay awake 24 hours a day internally and carefully watch all that happens in the system of alters. Someone has to take the body and sleep–but whichever alters are set up to do it, they are hypnotically commanded to only sleep about three hours to insure that the mind stays in an alpha state easy to program. Because alters which do not hold the body “rest” mentally in a sense–when they take the body they are fresh. The mind dissociates when it is given unpleasant things to hear which it doesn’t want to hear.

The electronic implants that send voices to victims are used to create dissociation within the slaves, plus certain implants and devices send specific electro-magnetic wave patterns to the mind to put the slave’s mind into the alpha state. See chapter six for more on the mind-control implants.

PREPARING THE BRAIN

The programmer places the victim in an acute state of anxiety and guilt. The tension reduces the power of the judgement part of the mind. One of the tortures for slaves is to keep them from going to the bathroom and relieving themselves. This is part of the hypnotic programming package. The anxiety that this creates increases the power of the programming in the brain, because the anxiety causes slight malfunctions with the brain’s judgment abilities. Mental and physical fatigue are also sought in the victim. For instance, water deprivation is common. (This was also done to the author at West Point, where one of this author’s classmates was hospitalized for dehydration during Beast Barracks.) Offensive language also helps drive the mind into tension and encourages it into an alpha state.

EARLY TRAINING FOR SLAVES

The children who are being programmed are taught 4 IMPORTANT HYPNOTIC ABILITIES. These four abilities are a. relaxation, b. visualization, c. concentration, and d. projection, which work in handling the slave along with the alpha state.

Relaxation and visualization go hand in hand each enhancing each other. When given a good pleasant image to visualize, the victim relaxes, which leads to the hypnotic concentration, which then produces good projection. Initially, the child victim is given drugs that induce euphoria and deep relaxation. They are then taught to work toward that drug euphoria by going to it mentally. They develop the ability to go into that euphoria mentally as a trained behavior. Many of the children will have their training in visualization and concentration reinforced when they go to public schools, many of which are now involved in the programming process. To teach the child concentration and visualization, the child is given an apple and trained to visualize it. The first time, the child will be given drugs which will enhance the experience and perception greatly to around 100 times the perception without the drugs. There is no pain involved in this early programming at around the age of 3 or 4. After the child has gone through the visualization of the apple in the drugged state he or she will work toward the mental ability to visualize it intensely without the drugs. The visualization script used with the apple (in both the drugged and undrugged exercises) will vary slightly from programmer to programmer, yet will be close to the following:

“VISUALIZE AN APPLE. HOLD IT IN YOUR HANDS; TURN IT AROUND; FEEL IT. FEEL THE SHAPE, THE SIZE, THE WEIGHT, THE TEXTURE. NOTICE THE COLOR, THE REFLECTION OF LIGHT ON ITS SKIN. BRING IT TO YOUR NOSE AND SMELL IT. BITE INTO IT, TASTE IT; HEAR THE CRUNCH AS YOUR TEETH SINK IN. EAT THE APPLE; FEEL IT SLIDE DOWN YOUR THROAT. SEE IT GROW SMALLER. WHEN YOU HAVE EATEN IT DOWN TO THE CORE, LET IT DISAPPEAR.”

By the way, an apple training incident very similar to this (which is given by the Illuminati to child slaves from the ages 2 to 4), strangely turned up occurring in a setting that the author, who never was a slave nor never in the occult, found himself in when this author was a 4-H counselor at a 4-H camp as a 16 year old. The first thing all the counselors were given was an apple exercise so that we could appreciate each camper for what he or she was. The person who led the exercise was a psychologist. Where had he learned it? The apple visualization must be done to a standard of excellence by the child victim. The victim’s life depends upon learning to visualize vividly, so that the internal structures (internal mental images) it builds within the mind will stay strong and firm.

The programmers want the child to have good visualization so they will work with the child to have the most successful experience. For instance, the child will be offered a variety of apples to look at, yellow, green, red etc. The child can choose the apple that it likes so that its visualization exercises will be the most successful. The entire imagery of an internal system will be built upon the foundation of the child’s ability to visualize an apple. The child will be taken through a succession of exercises where the child learns to visualize the apple in greater and greater detail using all the senses. Eventually, the child is able to visualize his or her apple to the point that the child can dissect or chop the apple up in any way and reconstruct it mentally. The internal seeds of the apple can be seen brilliantly by the child. Upon this ability to visualize, the programmer will then teach the child that the apple can become anything the child wants, a river, a couch, a book etc. The five seeds of the apple will be turned into 5 castles. This is why essentially all Illuminati Mind-controlled slaves have 5 major castles in their system of programming. One approach by therapists has been to cast out/remove the castles. However, the castle imagery is based upon the apple seeds which is based on the apple. The real thing to deal with for therapists is the apple. If the castle is returned to its original image of being an apple seed, and the rest of the apple-and its tree imagery dealt with, then some progress can be made. Unfortunately, not being aware of the original imagery, the therapists have been frustrating themselves with the superficial imagery rather than the foundational imagery.

Another script for teaching the young 2 to 4 year old slaves simple visualization is to have the child close his or her eyes and imagine that they are looking at a white wall or blank screen. Then they practice visualizing simple geometric shapes, and then visualize the screen in different colors, and then finally visualize the objects changing colors.

MAGICAL TRAINING ON THE STARLIGHT LEVEL

The Illuminati begin training the child victim to work at the starlight level. This is called magical training. The child’s abilities to relax, visualize, concentrate and project are then harnessed in the alpha state by “MAGICKAL TRAINING” which opens up the STARLIGHT CONSCIOUSNESS. Starlight consciousness is the other way of knowing that which belongs to the right hemisphere, and it allows the victim to make contact with the “DIVINE WITHIN”. The Divine within the victim is actually the generational spirits, which are placed in during the Moon Child ceremonies described in detail in Vol. 2.

The generational spirits are laid in to help build the programming and to guard it. However, as in so much spiritual work, the victim’s (technically speaking, the alter’s) will & thoughts work hand in hand with the spirits. The child must learn to visualize and participate in the mental building of the internal worlds, structures, etc. However, the demons will be strategically placed to protect the structures once the programming is built into the mind. (For more understanding of this see Cisco’ s section on “Programming, foundational, destruction of’.)

FINETUNING

The child victim’s mind is FINETUNED. This means that the child can function excellently at visualization, relaxation, concentration, projection, while in the alpha state and can work with their subconscious mind. The mental work done in the subconscious can not be retrieved easily. Only through outside assistance or special training can most people access what is done at the starlight level of the mind. The programmers are using the child’s abilities with its 5 acute senses to develop the 6th sense (which is its ability to work in the Starlight consciousness, which includes such mental activity such as psychic abilities–which will be discussed in other locations in this book.) Enhancing the mind so that it can work in the subconscious area called the starlight consciousness is referred to by many insiders as astral.

THE MONARCH PROGRAMMING SCRIPT FOR OVER THE RAINBOW

One of the most important concepts of the programmers is having slaves “go over the rainbow.” Although in recent years other methods have been substituted for this, there are many hundreds of thousands of slaves for whom “going over the rainbow” is part of their programming. What is the script for programming this?

The PROGRAMMING SCRIPT FOR GOING OVER THE RAINBOW

(Three dots in this script do not indicate missing parts, but rather pauses. In other words, pauses are indicated by three dots.)

INDUCTION TRAINING SCRIPT

“BREATHE DEEP — YOU ARE FLOATING DOWN … DOWN … ON A BEAUTIFUL RED CLOUD, AND YOUR WHOLE BODY IS RED — AS YOU GO DRIFTING AND FLOATING …. ROCKING GENTLY … DEEPER … AND DEEPER … DOWN … [this repeated, one time, for each color of cloud-orange, yellow, green, blue, and violet clouds.] “LAND VERY GENTLY … VERY SOFTLY … IN THE CENTER OF A ROUND, BLACK PEARL. SEE IT GLOWING, SOFTLY, GENTLY … NOW TURN AND FACE THE EAST … AND THEN THE SOUTH … AND THEN THE WEST … AND THEN THE NORTH OPEN ALL OF YOUR INNER SENSES.” [The rainbow gives the much abused victim of mind-control and trauma, a safe mental place to travel to; and this serves as a "home base" for the mind to return to when things get difficult. If the programming begins to be destroyed and a deeper alter experiences real life--its coping mechanism to face the harsher realities of life will be a knee-jerk reaction to go to safety over the rainbow.]

BRINGING THE SLAVE OUT OF TRANCE (Switching to the FRONT PERSONALITIES after programming)

After the slave has been switched to deeper personalities who are in trance in order to have the slave a. be programmed b. be programmed & carry out a mission, c. go to a ritual, then it is important that the programmer takes time to get the slave to emerge slowly and gently from their altered state. The induction process is reversed. The repetition of trances will reinforce the depth of the trance state, and keep the undetectable slavery operating smoothly:

“IN THE PEARL, PREPARE TO AWAKEN. WHEN YOU AWAKE, YOU WILL FEEL REFRESHED, ALERT, RENEWED, AND FILLED WITH ENERGY. YOU WILL REMEMBER ALL THAT YOU HAVE EXPERIENCED. NOW TURN AND FACE THE EAST … THEN THE SOUTH … THEN THE WEST … THEN THE NORTH. [this helps the slave orient themselves internally]

TAKE A DEEP BREATH … INHALE … EXHALE …

“YOU ARE FLOATING UP … UP … ON A BEAUTIFUL VIOLET CLOUD, AND YOUR WHOLE BODY IS VIOLET AS YOU DRIFT GENTLY UPWARD … “ON A BEAUTIFUL BLUE

CLOUD … UP … UP … AND YOUR WHOLE BODY IS BLUE AND YOU ARE BEGINNING TO AWAKEN GENTLY AND YOU DRIFT GENTLY UP … ON A BEAUTIFUL GREEN CLOUD … AND YOUR WHOLE BODY IS GREEN … AS YOU DRIFT GENTLY … UP … UP … “ON A BEAUTIFUL YELLOW CLOUD … GETTING MORE AND MORE AWAKE … AND YOUR WHOLE BODY IS YELLOW … AS YOU DRIFT GENTLY … UP … UP …

“ON A BEAUTIFUL ORANGE CLOUD … FILLED WITH ENERGY AND VITALITY … YOUR WHOLE BODY IS ORANGE … AS YOU FLOAT UP GENTLY … “ON A BEAUTIFUL RED

CLOUD … ALMOST FULLY AWAKE NOW … AND YOUR WHOLE BODY IS RED AS YOU FLOAT GENTLY …

“STAY ON THE RAINBOW … [at this point the script for the slave’s programming or mission or ritual will be placed into the mind].

After the programming session, the mission, or the ritual the handler/or programmer finishes…

“LEAVING THE MEMORY IN THE BLACK PEARL AND CLOSING AND SEALING THE BLACK PEARL. YOU WILL REMEMBER ONLY THOSE DETAILS THAT I TELL YOU TO REMEMBER. AND IN A MOMENT YOU WILL COUNT TO TEN AND GO BACK INTO YOUR SPACE, AND RED 2001-A [whatever the code is for the alter] WILL RETURN.”

DEEP TRANCE PROGRAMMING

If we rate trance depths on a scale of 1 to 13, then the deep trance that is being described here is 7-10. At this 7-10 depth, the person must be constantly watched. The victim is turned on his side so that the victim will continue to breathe. If the person monitoring has doubts whether the slave is alive, the programming staff will poke the lungs and neck. The person’s breathing will be encouraged by the programmer breathing along with the person being programmed as he says “BREATHE … BREATHE … BREATHE”. This is important because at this level the slave is so tranced their body can forget to breathe.

COLOR PROGRAMMING

While we are still on the subject of the rainbow and its colors, and before we continue onto other parts of the hypnotic programming process, let’s deal with color programming.

When Illuminati slaves are being programmed as little children, they usually will get music and color programming. Most readers are like this author, in that they are not interested in learning magic. However, because this author (Fritz Springmeier) was interested in helping victims understand what’s been done to them, it was important to dive into trying to understand the thinking of the occult world in regards to colors.

If I write that the occult world views yellow as a healing color, and blue as a relaxing color, and purple (violet) as a spiritually enlightened color, that is not because I want to teach that as a doctrine, but so that therapists can begin to understand the hidden mannerisms & thought patterns of these powerful generational occult families, who believe in such odd practices as child sacrifice.

In the 1940’s, as the Illuminati were applying scientific investigation to their ancient skills in mind-control, a number of researchers investigated color psychology. Cecil Stokes’ color research on the influence of colors on the mind led to the Auratone films, which were used to treat the “mentally ill”.

Walt Disney Studios produced one of the best occult attempts to free associate color, light and music in their movie Fantasia, especially Fantasia’s opening selection of Stokowski’s adaption of Bach’s “Toccata and Fugue in D minor”. Walt Disney also used selections of music from the Satanist composer Igor Stravinsky in Fantasia. Igor Stravinsky is an anarchy-espousing Satanist. Fantasia was a long labor of occult devotion for Walt Disney and his studios. It took many years to create the film, and when it was finished, it was used as a programming foundation for alter systems. (Chapter 5 will have more on Disney. Chapter 5 will also give a very detailed script for HOW Fantasia has been used as the primary foundation programming tool.) Disney’s Dick Tracy movie is also a classic example of how color is employed in a movie which is used covertly for mind-control programming.

The five primary areas of occult thinking that were investigated by this author in terms of color programming were:
1. witchcraft books such as Raymond Buckland’s Practical Color Magick,
2. an extensive study of several New Age Groups such as the I AM Movement, and Church Universal & Triumphant (CUT) using hundreds of documents that ex-insiders of these groups provided,
3. masonic & rosicrucian sources, such as Manly P. Hall’s book The Secret Teachings of All Ages, and
4. Metaphysical books in general such as the excellent The Rainbow Book being a collection of essays & illustrations devoted to Rainbows in particular & Spectral Sequences in general focusing on the meaning of color (physical & metaphysically) from Ancient to Modem Times. The Rainbow Book was done by the Fine Arts Museums of San Francisco in assoc. with Shambhala of Berkeley & London, 1975.

And finally, the last primary source -but not least- was interviews with an ex-programmer. What did I find out? After lots of weeding, I have some siftings from these sources to share. In Buckland’s Practical Color Magick, we learn about a type of Voodoo called Poppet dolls. These dolls are made according to the color that is appropriate for the person’s problem. For instance, they make a green poppet doll if the person needs help with finances. The name of the person is written on the doll according to the color that corresponds to their astrological birthdate. For instance, Leo is orange, and Pisces is Indigo. Those who need success are advised by Buckland to make a “Color Treasure Map” which is simply a collage of the things they want, making sure that the pictures are bright colors.

This is another example of color magic. Buckland provides a Color-Number Code as follows:

1 = Red; 2 = Orange; 3= Yellow; 4 = Green; 5=Blue; 6=Indigo; 7=Violet; 8=Rose; 9 = Gold

The letters of the alphabet then are corresponded to these 9 numbers and by adding up the numbers in someone’s name (numerology), Buckland tells us we can get the name’s Color from such a process.

What did I learn of value from Buckland? some tips on how occultists assign colors to numbers and objects. For the average person these witchcraft teachings are simply trite imaginations. Even so, the fact remains for those of us confronting Occult mind-control, colors are important to total-mind-control programmers of the Illuminati. Colors are important to their world-view. A programmer who knew color magic would likely use color magic in their programming, programming scripts and codes. Now, both you and I know some more about how to second guess the programmer’s mind. (By the way, Color programming was dealt with in a major way in Vol. 2, but the tips in this chapter may also be useful.)

THE ASSOCIATION OF COLORFUL SIGHTS, SOUNDS, RHYTHM & DANCE.

Dance has been associated with color from ancient times, to greek and medieval courts up to modern times with the use of colored floodlights. Keys in music have been associated with colors by many famous musicians. Beethoven referred to B minor as the black key. Schubert compared E minor to a “girl robed in white with a rose-red bow on her breast”. Rimsley-Korsakov interpreted the keys of C, D, A, F, & F# major as white, yellow, rosy, green, and grayish-green. Handel had his own idea of how the keys related to the colors. The brighter hues of a color have been associated by some with the major scale, and the more subdued hues of a color with the minor. Goethe stated that a painting of powerful effect was like a piece of music with a sharp key, while a painting with a muted effect was like music in a flat key.

Certain colors have been associated with violin music. In Wassily Kandinsky’s book The Art of Spiritual Harmony, we learn a great deal about color and music. The following comes from Kandinsky’s observations, and may relate to Mengele’s programming. The ringing notes of a violin have been associated with a cool red. The largo of an old violin is associated with orange. The placid middle tones of the violin are associated with absolute green. A dark blue is like a cello. White is like the pauses in music that temporarily break the melody. Black represents “the final pauses, after which any continuation of melody see the dawn of another world.”

The Rainbow Book is definitely the most comprehensive book this author has seen on the significance of color both physically and metaphysically. An interesting chart is given on page 125, which examines the relationship of the frequencies of electromagnetic waves in the visible light spectrum with an octave of music just above middle C. In order to make the comparison (which is charted below) the light frequencies which are 1012 are written without the powers of ten and taken down 40 to match the note octaves. This gives us a chart which we will arrange by:

COLOR/ORIG. FREK – 40 // OCTAVE FREK/NOTE

Using this arrangement we get:

Very dark red/391 .3 = 392/G NOTE darkish red/418 = 415/G# note

Orangish red/445 440/A note light orange/464 = 466/A # note yellow green/495 = 494/B note green/ 523 = 523/ C note

Bluish green/555 = 553/ C# note Indigo/573-600 = 587/D note

Indigo violet-light violet/618-627 = D# note

Dark violet/655-673 = 659/E note

Very dark violet/682 = 698/F note

Although there is no single one-to-one correspondence between music and color, because there are different patterns to consider and the role of association is such a complex issue, there are several things that naturally suggest themselves: an increase in pitch does seem to suggest an increase in brightness. An increase in brightness also is suggested by an increase in tempo. Colors also fit the mood of a piece of music. A mass of color can suggest the musical ground.

Musical intervals have also been related by the ancients to the orbits of the planets. This began with the spherical theory of the cosmos by Pythagoras, where the different astrological bodies made different sounds. Another correspondence with merit is to associate colors with “properties”, & then associate with music intervals, then assoc. with related cords, and related planets, and then associate with other things.

For instance, Orange would be associated with the Sun, Energy, Glory, and Power. In turn, it would be associated with Re (pronounced “Ray” in music, the whole tone, D). Its related cord would be minor, and its related planet would be the Sun “Apollo.” Violet would be death, separation, advanced spirituality. It would be associated with Ti (“Tee”) in music, the Maj. 7th, B, and its related planet would be the moon “Diana”. There is no way all the different associations can be reviewed here. The chinese have had a number of music-color association schemes, as well as the Hindis, the Tibetans, and others. Is this section on color going somewhere with these associations? Yes, Joseph Mengele, the original Dr. Green (the name Green got passed on to a least one of his proteges), played the violin and piano while doing the color programming to slaves. He was the original master at associating both a tone or chord with a particular color or color scheme. He loved using Fantasia for programming.

LIGHT & COLOR

According to Hilton Hotema’s book Ancient Sun God (Mokelumne Hill, CA: Health Research, 1956), light & fire are associated with Sun worship. “Pyra” is Greek for fire, and “Midos” means measure. Pyramid is a combination of the greek words pyra and midos, which together meant “light-measures”. In other words, the pyramid was the eternal ascending flame, the spark returning to its maker. The eternal flame of Prometheus is a recurrent theme within all the modern revolutions (which by the way were all created secretly by the occult hierarchy).

The Tower of Babel most likely followed the pattern which the ancient babylonian cylinders say was used by the Babylonians in building their temples. Each level was dedicated to one of the 7 planets, and was built in that color. In other words the Tower of Babel looked like a rainbow. The lowest was to Saturn and was black. The next was to Jupiter and was orange. The next was to Mars and was red. The fourth was the sun and was yellow. The fifth was Venus and was green. The sixth was Mercury and was blue, and the top or seventh level would be white.

A good example of color programming and a New Age group which is involved with Illuminati/government mind-control is Church Universal & Triumphant. In the Covert Action Information Bulletin, No. 30, Summer, 1988, Church Universal & Triumphant was exposed as a conduit of CIA funds. Another clue as to how CUT connects in is that Elizabeth Clare Prophet, CUT’s prophetess, speaks in Masonic emples.

E.C. Prophet claims she is Marie Antoinette. (One of the first Illuminati programs that this author ran into when working with programmed multiples was Marie Antoinette programming.) Another obvious CIA asset (who is not part of CUT) has been directing implant victims to go to CUT and solve their implant problem by seeking the “I AM force” within them. (The I AM is a system programmed into slaves.) Initiates into CUT have received a letter, “Keeper of the Flame: the need for harmony and love between all the master’s servants united in a common effort cannot be overemphasized. Working and serving together, we form a mandala of light through which the masters of the Great White Brotherhood will awaken humanity.” (Quote from a letter by CUT Chairman of the Outreach Committee Michael Veys to CUT’s Fraternity of the Keepers of the Flame, c. 1980.) Elizabeth Claire Prophet’s “Fraternity of Keepers of the Flame” as she calls her initiates learn such things as astrology, crystals, white magic, color magic, Hinduism (reincarnation, karma, meditation, chakra points), how to decree, how to dress (for instance what color to where at what time), and how to become divine at Summit University.

Elizabeth Clare Prophet (that’s the name she wanted) established Summit University, and CUT’s headquarters in Colorado Springs, a house in Santa Barbara, and an underground fortress for the end times in a valley in Montana. Details about Elizabeth Clare Prophet and her organization are hard to come by. If a person gets serious about being part of her organization, they are expected to make a once in a life-time gift of everything they have to the CUT and its head Elizabeth Clare Prophet. (Sources: Notes, Summit University Student and Confidential Interview.) After that they are expected to tithe (one-tenth). Church Universal and Triumphant Tenets, Colorado Springs, CO: 1975, p.12 under Art. XII Law of the Tithe. In return, they are initiated into what I call “the supreme Grand Flattery”, “You shall become an enlightened God.”

One of the programming tricks by the Mind-control programmers is to have some of the alters, incl. front alters believe that they are divine gods. Although members are told they are divine, when people on E.C. Prophet’s staff got revelations from the Ascended Masters that she channels, she threatened to expel them if they talked about their revelations. E.C. Prophet does not want any one else to prophecy in her organization. CUT makes their mind-controlled slaves think that they are too smart and intuitive to ever be deceived. In this way, they use New Age ideas and the person’s pride to blind them to the fact the person is a mind-controlled slave who is fooled much of the time. When students are invited onto staff it is a commitment. They are told, “Your life will never be your own again, but was it ever your own?” They have already been taught “Ascension Keys”.

Elizabeth Clare Prophet tells her students that to Ascend to Godhead is their birthright, the divine right of every person. (see Pearls of Wisdom, Vol. X, No. 23, June 4, 1967, The Summit Lighthouse, p. 41 -”…has robbed men of the birthright of their Ascension…”) This matches what the Illuminati teach their people. See also Pearls of Wisdom, Vol. X, No. 19, (May 7, 1967), The Summit Lighthouse, p. 24 – “The Divine Right is the Immortal Plan…Inherent pattern of unique Christ manifestation…” In the Ascension Dossier of Serapis Bey initiates are told “The capacity of the externalized self must be given in toto.” Also-”You must abandon your past to God.” In Lanello’s Message(a channeled message), 4/20/73 the students are told, “You do not have to wait for the carnal mind to evolve, for the carnal mind will never evolve. It must be put off and cast into the Flame.” (See Lanello 4/20/73 in the Pearls of Wisdom, Vol. 16, #32, 8/12/1973.)

After emptying themselves of all their past and of what they knew, the initiates are then restructured by CUT. In Serapis, Ascension Class they are told, “The Ascension Flame is the Flame of Mother.”

SPECIAL COLORS

It can’t be overemphasized that Green is the highest color in Satanism–it is Satan’s color. It is not by accident that green has been used in uniforms, although the decision also was dictated by its advantage in camouflage. In the Omega computer programming a CODE GREEN for many victims means “self-destruct”, the ultimate sacrifice for one’s satanic programming.

Interviews with witches, as well as a person in witchcraft who the Masons tried to recruit, and an ex-member of CUT, and an ex-member of similar New Age group called the I AM movement reveals that they all wear special colors of clothes on certain days. Due to the large influx of new converts, it has been difficult for CUT to keep up the teachings on wearing different colored clothing during different times of the day, and for different days. Newer converts may be unaware of this teaching. The colors of purple and white are especially esteemed. The magical properties that Masons & New Agers believe are intrinsic to purple is why the 33rd degree has written books using purple, and several New Agers have published books on purple paper. The programmers also manipulate such things so that child alters believe that color “magic” has accomplished things.

HEALING BY CORRECT VIBRATIONS & RAYS

Masonic Sources match CUT teachings-

· “The second method of healing was by vibration. The inharmonies of the bodies were neutralized by chanting spells and intoning the sacred names or by playing upon musical instruments and singing. Sometimes articles of various colors were exposed to the sight of the sick, for the ancients recognized, at least in part, the principle of color therapeutics, now in the process of rediscovery.” Masonic Hermetic Qabbalistic & Rosicrucian Symbolical Philosophy, p. CXI

· “50. “The force of the obligation is therefore in the obligation and not in the reason. As a matter of fact, the real reason is scientific to the last analysis; scientific to a degree beyond the penetration, up to the present time, of the ‘radiant matter’ of the Roentgen Ray of Modern Science. The Word concerns the science of rhythmic vibrations, and is the key to the equilibrium of all forces and to the harmony of Eternal Nature.” Ancient Mystic Oriental Masonry, p.48.

USING HYPNOSIS TO HEAL THE SLAVE AFTER ABUSE.

Sometimes the handlers “TRADE DOWN” the symptoms that result from abuse so that the slave will heal quicker, others attempt to remove the symptoms immediately. For burns, the hypnotist can suggest cooling. For other injuries, suggestions for warmth are applied. For bleeding suggestions for stopping blood flow are used.

REINFORCING THE PROGRAMMING WITH A DECOGNITION PROCESS

The programmer has gotten the results that he wants via drugs, torture, hypnosis, and deception. Now he must build in back-ups to insure the programming holds up.

The decognition process has 3 steps.

Step 1 is to program the slave to get inadequate sleep, eat poorly, and work hard. It is called REDUCTION OF ALERTNESS.

Step 2 is to create confusion in the mind via programmed confusion using a series of alters. The person may go into revolving from one alter to another, or may have alters coming and going with conflicting messages so that the person remains in a PROGRAMMED CONFUSED STATE. In military “training” conflicting orders would be rapidly issued to confuse the mind.

Step 3 is to cause the mind to have something simple to focus on so that it goes into a FLAT STATE. In the military, this author became aware that the beat of the drum and marching would shift the mind to a flat state. For centuries the military have known that they could shut off the critical thinking of the mind and put their soldiers into a flat, non-thinking state by training them to the beat of the drum and the sound of marching feet. Now you know why those British Red-coats marched so non-thinking into the barrels of American guns in battles such as New Orleans and Bunker Hill. The mind feels good to shift into this simple flat state. The brain quits thinking and withdraws into a state that it quits thinking except for what the controllers want it to think. This is why marching has been so important in military training. Chanting and singing will also move the mind into this flat state, which is why the French Foreign Legion requires its men -to sing sing sing. When this author lived in the Indian subcontinent, I saw Hindu holy men who had meditated in a flat alpha state so long their brains no longer functioned in anything but a flat state. This non-thinking flat state is believed by Hindus to be nirvana, but God didn’t give us minds to throw away and waste, but to use. He gave us independent thoughts so that we could show our love for Him by choosing to love Him. God didn’t want brainwashed followers, which is what some of the churches think God is calling for. The programmers can induce a mood or state of mind hypnotically which will make retrieval of something learned dependent upon going into that particular mood or state.

And THE BEAT GOES ON…

It is clear that some of the psychologists have NOT got wind that the mind-control is being exposed. The American Journal of Clinical Hypnosis had a recent article (10/1996, p. 105-114) promoting the use of the Wizard of Oz metaphor in hypnosis with “treatment-resistant” children. For a therapist/hypnotist to hypnotically use Wizard of Oz material on child victims of mind-control will get a response from them! The authors of the article say that they use the authoritarian approach to hypnosis (p. 107) for “treatment-resistant” children. The Wizard of Oz metaphor is given on page 108 of the article, which boils down to: the Straw Man, Tin Man, Lion, Dorothy and Toto were surprised at their success- and that they already had brains, a heart, & courage.

HYPNOTIC CODES, CUES AND TRIGGERS

This chapter will provide some more of the hypnotic codes, cues, triggers or whatever one wants to call these words, noises, and sensory inputs that manipulate these poor victims turned into Monarch robots. The reader is encouraged to refer to Vol. 2 for the principle list of codes. Other chapters will explain about the structures these codes go to, and also the spiritual dimensions of these codes and structures.

Another way to see things is to recognize that the programmers have created “power words” to which they have attached memory and programming. If a de-programmer observes closely the word usage of the victim, you will begin to spot power words of the abuser, for instance, “follow the yellow brick road”.

Unfortunately, people who are not initiated into the arcane world of handshakes, grips, codes, signals and cues allow the appearance of these things to be interpreted from their own frame of reference. Usually, because these events are not perceived as being significant, outsiders forget them immediately and therefore remain oblivious to some of the most overt clues.

Once the reader is aware of the types of programming themes used: the Wizard of Oz, Alice In Wonderland, and Star Wars and Star Trek, etc., he will begin to realize our entire American culture has been transformed into one big mind-control programming center during the second half of the twentieth century!

Unfortunately for the victim, apparently harmless little things, for instance, the arrival of flowers to their hospital bedside, a dead bird on their doorstep, or the words “NEW BEGINNINGS” and “NEW LIFE” may signify programming commands. One Illuminati slave in this area has started a large church called NEW BEGINNINGS. The name was not by accident.

A cipher is when symbols are used to represent letters. One can use letter frequencies to break ciphers. There are charts for letter frequencies for the chief languages. Likewise, there are frequencies to codewords. The Illuminati’s intelligence agencies have programmed thousands upon thousands of slaves. There are only so many code words to pick from and some of these code words are favorites. In the previous book many of their favorite code words were listed, but words starting with A’s, B’s, T’s, U’s, V’s, ‘W’s, X’s, and Y’s, were not given and will be now. (A plus sign indicates other words are attached to the root word.) From the co-author Fritz Springmeier’s experience, the following is a continuation of favorite code words that have been used to program slaves with:

AARON, ABBY, ABIGAIL, ABLE, ABNER, ABRAHAM, ACACIA. ACE, ADAM, ADELPHI, AGATE, AIR +, ALABASTER, ALADIN, ALBERT, ALFA or ALPHA. ALICE, ALLEY CAT, ALLIGATOR, AMOS, AMY, ANGEL, ANNA, ANTHONY, APACHE, APOLLO, APOSTLE, APPLE +, ARCHER, ARGUS, ARK, ARROW, ASK +, ASTER, ATHANTIS, ATLAS, AUDREY, AURORA. AUTUMN +, AZTEC, B +, BABE, BABY, BACK ROOM, BACK BONE, BAD, BAKER, BALD, BAMBI, BANANA, BANJO, BANKNOTE, BARBARA. BARK, BARON, BEACH +, BEAST, BECKY, BEE HIVE, BEETHOVEN, BELSHAZZER, BERMUDA, BERTHA, BETA, BETSY, BETTY, BEULAH, BEWITCH, BICYCLE, BIG BROTHER, BINGO, BIRD DOG, BIRTHDAY, BLACK, BLACK +, BLACK

SHEEP, BLACK WIDOW, BLANCA, BLONDIE, BLOODHOUND, BLOODY +, BLUE +, BOA. BOB CAT, BOMBAY, BONANZA. BOODLE, BORAX, BOXCAR, BRASS +, BRIDGET, BROOMSTICK, BUCCANEER, BUICK, BULL, BULLDOG, BULLFROG, BUMBLEBEE, BUNNY, BUTTERCUP, BUZZARD, BYRON, T-BIRD, TADPOLE, TALISMAN, TAN, TANGO, TANYA, TARA, TARZAN, TEACUP, TEARDROP, TEEPEE, TERRIER, TERRY, TESTAMENT, THOR, THREE SISTERS, THUNDER, THUNDERBOLT, THUNDERCLAP, THUNDERFLASH, THUNDERSTORM, TIAMET, TIGER, TILLIE, TITAN, TOM CAT, TONI or TONY, TOPAZE, TOPSOIL, TORNADO, TOTENKOPF, TRINITY, TURTLE, UGLY, ULYSSES, UMBRELLA, UNCLE +, UNDERDOG, UNICORN, UNIFORM, URSULA, VAGABOND, VAMPIRE, VANCOUVER, VARSITY, VELVET, VENUS, VERONICA, VICKY, VICTOR, VIKING, VIOLA, VIOLET, VIPER, VIRGINIA VOODOO, VULCAN, VULTURE, WAGON WHEEL, WALDORF,

WALLFLOWER, WANDA. WARRIOR, WASP, WATCHDOG, WEASEL, WHISKEY, WHITE +, WIDOW, WILD CAT, WILLOW, WINNIE, WINTER +, WIZARD, WOLF,

WOLF +, WYOMING, X-FORCE, X-RAY, XYZ, YANKEE, YANKEE DOODLE, YELLOW, YOGI, & YO YO.

The intelligence organizations prefer to code a single project with a single word, and an ongoing operation with two words. A nickname of something will consist of two words. The reader needs to bear several things in mind. First, the programmers generally have intelligent, well sounding codes, that do form patterns. For instance, a woman’s name from the Bible will be used as a code, with subparts or subcodes having other female names from the Bible. Deeper Illuminati parts will have goddess & god names, and king & queen names for cult alters. These are the names the handler or cult uses–NOT their access codes.

The codes for slaves follow patterns. There are standard and unique codes. During the 1940’s through the 1960’s there were only perhaps a dozen American master programmers travelling around. (After that the number of programmers appears to get quite large.) The master programmers would lay in the foundational programs and codes. They developed the scripts. The codes and systems used from system to system do follow patterns. The child’s creativity & their purpose in life would contribute to the uniqueness of the programming. Each child visualizes differently and the programmer works with the child’s mind.

The master Illuminati programmer would allow the handler–the “Daddy” figure in life to have the day-to-day ownership. The Daddy figure, often the actual pedophile father of the child victim, would be allowed to put in his own codes in the sexual part of the system. Some Daddy figures used their own songs, their own poetry and their own interests in this area of the coding. In other words, most of the system’s codes will reflect the master programmer (such as Dr. Mengele), and the sexual part of the system will reflect the “Daddy” figure’s programming.

The standard method for many of the memory and alter codes is to use a combination of the date of the child’s birth along with the date of the trauma for part of the code. A color will then be attached to this, to produce a color-alpha-numeric code combination. These are placed into the internal computers. The standard computer codes were given in Vol. 2. They can be used to temporarily stop programming to give a victim some respite and a chance to regroup. The programmers did not especially care if the front part of a system is discovered and although they hide the anarchy (coven level) witchcraft alters, they don’t hide them like they do the hierarchy alters. The coven alters have simplistic codes. The hierarchy alters which are placed in another area of the system and much deeper, receive a great deal of cabalistic codes and mathematical codes. You will not find the mathematical codes in the front part of a system. The internal programming alters have the power to change codes if they need to protect the programming. They will have to hypnotically work with alters when they trance out at night.

In other words, most of their programming of front alters will be done when a system lies down for “sleep”–more accurately described as lies down “for trance.” If the internal alters change many codes, in their efforts to protect the system, they will even make it difficult for the handler/programmer to get into the system. The science of Ciphers developed rotors that require lines to line up. Some simple schemes using this principle appear in some Monarch systems. This is part of the science of structuring. Intelligence codes often come from the Bible or popular fiction books. The deeper codes are occult words, often in foreign languages such as Arabic, which is an important language in the upper occult world. Slaves will be given COVER NAMES for ops, and often males receive female names and vice versa.

The patterns used in programming slaves will represent the world view of the programmer. If the interests of the programmer are known, that will be a major clue to the codes they like to install. For this reason, it would be worthwhile to review the access clearance codes that are used for external security of some agencies, because these same types of clearance codes may be found in mind-controlled slaves.

A BIGOT list is a list of names of those who have clearance to a particular set of information. Within a slave there would be numerous BIGOT lists, because persons (personalities) are compartmentalized somewhat like the CIA and the Puzzle Palace (NSA). Agency Codes for clearances include B, C3, K, L, M, N, 0, T, COSMIC, MAJIC (MJ), SI, SCI, and Staff D. (As this author has only examined these secret societies from the outside, some insiders may know of other clearances. In other words, it would be foolish to think that this clearance code list is comprehensive, but it has hit upon the major clearances.)

The exercise in judging whether a person can have access to compartmentalized information is called ADJUDICATION. A group of persons (agents) working under one handler is called a NET. The FBI which also uses mind-controlled slaves likes to call its groups NETS.

FUNNY NAME is intelligence slang for a pseudonym. GRANNY is a CIA asset used in the US which is not under their direct funding. The American military-intelligence groups publish a periodical called JANAP 299 which lists the cover names (code names) for many of the ongoing projects, groups, or installations.

There are other code books too. C can stand for Controller or Control, which means the person(s) handling a mind-controlled slave. A person, who is neither a controller, nor a slave, nor asset, but who consciously advances the desires of the controller is called a TRUSTED CONTACT. Sexual slaves would not be expected to respond to such a term, but a middle level slave/agent of an intelligence agency might be familiar with this type of intelligence jargon.

The BIRD was a name for Fort Holabird, MD where intelligence operatives were trained as well as subjected to mind-control. DIA used the code name EMERALD for drug-trafficking. Boy, does this code word have a double meaning. Since the DIA, which is playing both sides, also is involved with drug smuggling & using Monarch slaves heavily coded with EMERALD type coding. Very shortly, we will provide more of the Monarch hypnotic cues (codes) for the multitude of functions that a Monarch’s mind must carry out. These cues are reinforced as a conditioned response by the programmer. In other words the response becomes so well trained that it becomes automatic.

The type of programming which is placed in a slave varies. Remember, for intelligence operations the slave will have to have BONA FIDES, which are codes to allow two people to meet. All slaves are given CONTROL SIGNS which allow them to indicate via a code that they are in trouble. A RECOGNITION signal allows two people to make contact. For instance, the handler might fly his distinctive sounding plane over a slave’s house in a pre-arranged signal. It might also be a particular colored scarf, and a particular set of phrases. A GO-AWAY code is a prearranged signal that means it is unwise to make contact. The go-away signal may be simply placing one’s hands in one’s pocket or turning the porch lights off. A “GO TO GROUND” signal means to go into hiding. A BLACK ENVELOPE, which is in actuality a black-colored envelope, has been used by intelligence to hold the real name of an agent being used. In the case of multiples, a chief of a station might have a BLACK ENVELOPE with the actual name of a mind-controlled agent being used in his field of operations. A MAYDAY BOOK exists for Illuminati and Intelligence slaves which allows them to call if they are about to be arrested. A telephone number is left open for just this purpose.

Also common universal Illuminati codes can be used by the slave to get set free from police and judges. BACKSTOPPING is an intelligence term for setting up proof to support the cover stories the intelligence agencies give their agents and assets. Some of the programmed multiples they use, need BACKSTOPPING.

Within the Jehovah’s Witnesses, especially their headquarters, the Illuminati uses Enochian language to program with. With Druidic branches Druidic symbols are used. With the Jewish groups, Hebrew is used. Other languages are also used. An Illuminati System can easily have 6 different languages used as programming codes. The foreign language codes will be for small parts of a system only. Special artificial languages are also employed, as well as sign language. The Illuminati employs signs which they teach some of their slaves with pick-up sticks. This system of secret symbols is a series of crosses and horizontal & vertical marks. These marks can be drawn on anything, and consist of up to 7 lines. They are believed to be used in regards to ritual dates/ceremonies. These secret signs resemble similar secret symbols used by the Romany tribe of Gypsies. T

he masters of mind-controlled slaves also use a technique where one signal or code will carry several messages simultaneously. This is called MULTIPLEXING. We are all aware of the phenomena of how the brain can selectively hear. The brain can select certain sounds to pay attention to, such as when a person is in a noisy room listening to someone, or a football player is trying to hear the quarterback’s calls, likewise certain alters hear certain codes/cues/triggers while others don’t. The internal programmers and reporting alters may internally hypnotically make telephone noises that are fake, so that host alters loose the ability to discern what is real and not real, so that they don’t pay close attention to access calls. This ability of the brain is manipulated in MULTIPLEXING.

MONARCH MIND-CONTROL CODES
A. ALPHA (basic)
B. BETA (sexual)

C. CHI (return to cult)

D. DELTA (assassination)

E. EPSILON (animal alters)

F. OMEGA (internal computers)

G. GAMMA (demonology)

H. HYPNOTIC INDUCTIONS

I. JANUS-ALEX CALL BACKS (end-times)

J. OMICRON

K. TWINNING (teams)

L. THETA (psychic warfare)

M. RHYMES, SONGS, TONES

a. NURSERY RHYMES
b. SONGS
c. TONES & CORDS
d. RINGS, CREDIT CARDS, TOKENS etc.
N. ZETA (snuff films)

O. Sample codes

P. Catholic programming

Q. MENSA programming

R. HAND SIGNALS

S. Scriptures in programming

T. Alien Programming

A. ALPHA (basic)

· Basic Commands. (These basic commands are also found used in many slaves, although there will be exceptions to everything.) Many of the basic structures/codes will be put in using a sensory deprivation tank and LSD. For the most foundational levels of a system, the programmers may use the Hebrew letters associated with the attributes of God and the angel names. This can also be worked into English, as there is a cabalistic equivalent in the letters B through K for the Hebrew letters associated with God’s names used in magic to conjure angels. In the basic Alpha structuring, Illuminati slaves will have stars as power sources, and the ditty Twinkle, Twinkle Little Star will pertain to this programming. The Hansel & Gretal story is used for obedience programming.

Another story line that is used in programming is the Cassandra and Apollo myth. Common access triggers are “HELLO PRINCESS’, 3 knocks, flashes of light, tones, and sequences of blank phone calls.

If the slave leaves their answering machine on, a recording may be left “IF YOU WOULD LIKE TO MAKE A PHONE CALL PLEASE HANG UP & TRY YOUR 911″ accompanied by a beep-beep-beep. This activates a program within the slave to call a prearranged phone number for further instructions.

B. BETA (sexual)

· SEXUAL ALTERS—most of the following codes are for deep sexual alters. In Illuminati Systems these are called Beta alters, in CIA systems they create Beta models whose primary function is to provide sex, usually perverted sex and S&M for the perverts who run our secret government and visible government. BETA models are those who are primary job is sexual, such as service as a Presidential Model (sex slave for a President). These System models may be numbered BETA 1, BETA 2…BETA 601, etc. Sexual programming for espionage and seduction, such as is done at Disneyland, may well involve the use of hundreds of dolls, such as Wonderwoman, Genie, Barbie type dolls. The names/codes would tie in with these dolls.

TIME CLOCK programming is placed in to cover the time that the sexual alters were on a mission, so that they can switch back to the – front and nothing be remembered.

Colors attached to sequences of numbers have been used for some of the Beta programming. For other sexual operatives, the intelligence agencies trigger them via specific sequences of chess moves.

Betty Boop programming is used sexually. Betty Boop was a 1930’s cartoon character who was an attractive “vivacious vamp”. She was described in one cartoon as the “kitty from Kansas City.” She had cartoons about Gigolos, Bimbos, Little Red Riding Hood, Mother Goose rhymes which were used as programming themes. Plays on words such as “CHESS-NUT” were used in the cartoons.

C. CHI (return to cult)

Chi programming uses a lot of idiosyncratic phrases, and little ditties. Some of the nursery rhymes listed in the song section will be Chi programming. Some of the Chi programming has been listed in the Alpha programming section of Vol. 2.

p_solemetric.jpg

 

The number of hang-up calls may serve as a code, incl. when the hang-up calls happen.

D. DELTA (assassination)

· Delta alters –are activated to kill by the following three things: seeing specific clothing, items held in a persons hand, and particular words. Since these items would specific for a particular murder there is no particular specifics that can be given.

It is thought by some people that the following TV ad may have been used to trigger Hinkley when it was time for Hinkley to attack President Ronald Reagan.

p_hero.jpg

One man who was programmed as an Delta-type assassin by the NSA in the NJ region, was programmed to be activated for assassination mission via the David Letterman program, Clinton’s speeches such as his speech touching on the baseball strike with “little kid” wording, and by several movie stars (Arnold Schwartzenegger, Slyvester Stallone, etc.). I Dream of Jeannie programming is used for assassination, as well as at the CIA’s Farm the song Old McDonald’s Farm is used with programming done to CIA assassins. Distinctive jewelry & clothes. Emerald ear rings used as a signal to others that a message was being carried. Emeralds mean drugs, rubies mean prostitution, diamonds (rhinestones) presidential model work. Red, White & Blue worn sometimes by presidential models.

E. EPSILON (animal alters)

F. OMEGA (internal computers)

The Omega programming works along with an Executive Control Board (or Grand Druid Council) and Internal programmers. The Executive Control Board is associated with both numbers of the clock, and precious gems and metals such as “9 O’CLOCK GOLD”.

For G. Gamma programming see Cisco’s section on “Programming, Foundations’s

H. HYPNOTIC INDUCTIONS

NICRO NECTRUM NECTO–take one back to one’s “true time period”. When the child victim is hypnotically inducted by counting numbers during programming by a Doctor and a Mother-of-Darkness, these two will reassuring they child that things are O.K. and sweet talking to the child as it is inducted.

I. JANUS-ALEX CALL BACKS (end-times)

END-TIME ACTIVATION CODES

Most slaves have end-time programming. The programming to activate a slave’s end-time programming often runs pages upon pages of coded messages. A number of Monarch slaves have been de-programmed enough that they began accessing and spewing out pages and pages of these activation codes. In the end times, there appears to be a great deal of color coding for operations. Many of the people who are taking part in the end times events are not American. For instance, the different lists of people to round up are categorized by color. The Red list in America are anti-NWO opposition leaders to be executed approx. 2 weeks before martial law. The blue list are anti-NWO order people who will be programmed or killed in the process. The yellow list is people to be rounded up for reeducation camps after martial law. Other countries apparently have different color codes. The red & blue lists have been distributed, & are periodically updated. The blue routes have already been marked by blue patches of color to guide those transporting prisoners when martial law is declared in the U.S. Within Monarch slaves, some of them apparently have an internal crystal/and or rocks that are programmed to explode at a certain point in time–thus releasing the victim’s end time programming. The internal crystal (mental image) contains at least the four basic colors, red, green, blue, purple. One sample of part of end time programming was given in the previous Vol. 2 book. Still another example is as follows:

BB 243-ABCD-XXZ² (blue ray)

CC-458 ABCD-42T (red ray)

CD-379 ABCD-H1² (yellow ray)

CE-211 -ABCD-JKL (green ray)

CF-531-ABCD-ZZU (purple ray)

TMFT.47 ZONES 7-12

17876747270 OCEAN SIDE

PORT 18,22,34,41 CONTACT

YELLOW RAY SHOVE 79230 A2

TO RIGHT SIDE DAGGER HANGS

LOW ON PART SIDE FISH

SCHOOL CLOSED ROOM 37-56

RAILS EXIT END

17876747270 COL. BLACK PATCH

TO MALL 76747270 THIEF

AZT FMT BZT CET

11,4,6,9,32,101, 70

YELLOW FLAGS AT HALF MAST

YELLOW DOG ON RUN

BLUE FISH AT HOME

[This program is related to a slave contacting other slaves in some end time operation.]

A team leader will have a down line of around 4 people–which are coded red ray, yellow ray, green ray, blue ray. When the activation code hits a slave team leader during the end times, they will in turn activate their people, who in turn will have people who are team leaders and have a down line. At least two false callback alarms will be sounded (tested) before the real one.

J.>> Omicron programming—relates to programming of slaves for the Combination (between Intelligence- the Mafia and Government.)

K. TWINNING (teams)

L. THETA (Psychic warfare)

The following is only speculatory, but worth taking note of. This author believes that some of the Theta models got chess programming. Within the system of Enochian magic is the magical system of Enochian Chess. The Golden Dawn has been identified as one of the groups carrying out mind-control. Some Golden Dawn leaders have recently put out a reference book Enochian Chess of the Golden Dawn by Chris Zalewski (St. Paul: Llewellyn Pub, 1994). Enochian chess is played with four players, on a chess board that is divided up into four squares, one for each of the magical watchtowers of air, water, earth, and fire. It has only been since 1992 that researchers within the Golden Dawn (specifically the New Zealand branch which is called the Emerald of the Sea) reinvented a set of rules to play enochian chess. The moves for Enochian chess may have been used in recent years as a programming script. Since only a few people have mastered the game, and since the game is more than a game, it is magic, it would stand to reason that the temptation would be there to use it as a programming script if the programmer knew the game.

M. SONGS & NURSERY RHYMES

a. NURSERY RHYMES
b. SONGS

c. TONES & CORDS

d. RINGS, CREDIT CARDS, TOKENS etc.

· What follow is a list of Nursery Rhymes Used As Triggers, & Songs which have Monarch programming meanings &, such as access parts, or soliciting a behavior or thinking.

a. NURSERY RHYMES

The Illuminati create imaginary worlds for many of the deeper alters to live in. They keep these alters living in such unreality and nonsense that deeper alters have a difficult time separating their subjective programmed reality from the objective reality of the outside world, which doesn’t understand them. Nursery rhymes function well for programming in messages. Often these nursery rhymes are distorted slightly to serve their programming purpose. Some of the programming distortions and uses of these nursery rhymes are provided below. Major corporations and advertising groups working for the Network place nursery rhymes into their television ads. These nursery rhymes are constructed in the ad to activate on certain slaves which usually are sleepers. Some were given in Vol. 2, here are some additional nursery rhymes beyond those listed in Vol. 2:

A Tisket A Tasket
Baa, Baa, Black Sheep (used for money laundering scripts, and drug money, drug carrying scripts)
Bye, Baby Bunting (used with actual rituals where the slave child is placed within a skin, cocoon programming with a butterfly coming forth etc.)
Diddle, Diddle Dumpling
Ding, Dong Bell (Dr. Mengele liked to use this–message: don’t disturb the mouse that runs the internal     system clock.)
Fa Fe Fi Fo Fum (Movement within the system’s bean sprouts in the system, and also a death threat.)
Farmer in the Dell, The (Used by the CIA for a serious program)
Georgy Porgy
Gingerbread Man
Hey! Diddle Diddle! (used for astral projection programming)
Hot-Cross Buns!
Humpty Dumpty (used for shattering the mind programming)
I’m a Gold Lock (used to instill cover programming to hide the truth)
I Love Little Pussy (kitten programming)
Jack, Be Nimble
Jack and Jill
Jack Sprat (possibly cannibalism programming)
Little 80-Beep (come home to Papa programming)
London Bridge (This was used at the Presideo and other sites for learning the chants, and the spells. At the Presideo it was used with barber pole programming. They all fall into a stupor at the end.)
North Wind, The
Queen of Hearts, The (swearing an obedience oath programming)
Rub-a-Dub-Dub (refers to the 3 internal programmers)
There was an Owl
Three Blind Mice
Three Little Kittens

It should be pointed out that the mind-control programmers have long ago discovered the power of a rhyme in the mind. Rhymes have a hypnotic quality to them. An example of how rhyming was used by internal programming alters to reprogram an alter wanting free is given in Daniel M. Traver’s book (Phd dissertation) Dissociative Disorders and Mind Control. Wichita, KS: Daniel Traver, 1996, p. 52,

“What the hell man/ you can’t stand! a winter worse yet/ you’ll cry and you’ll die/ as we place the mind-set/ you won’t know what to do now/ you’ll hear every rhyme/ and you’re cravings will be as an addict in crime….” This rhymed program would accomplish its goal of wearing down the alter and bringing that alter into line.

b. SONGS

Yankee Doodle (used for sexual obedience programming “mind the step” and the word “girls” was changed to “boys” to make “and with the boys be handy”. “Yankee Doodle keep it up” was ref ramed to mean “slave yank yankee doodle (the penis) sexually up.” MTV is blatantly using programming rock-and-roll songs. Aleister Crowley is featured in some of these. Maiden (a satanic rock and roll band) blatantly places the words “POWER SLAVE” on one of their CD covers along with snakes and an enlightening pyramid. Anton LaVey has had an MTV song video shown, where he sings in detail how he is going to make the listener into a sex-slave, etc. etc. Some of this is blatantly mind-control in the open, it is so open it is dismissed by many of the public.

c. TONES & CORDS

In the Vol. 2 book, it was written about how telephone tones are used for codes. These type of codes tie in with the computer and the lower levels, such as the dungeon. You will find that access to items has been encoded by using the telephone tones to spell them backwards. For instance, if we were to take castle, find the numbers that correspond to C=1, A=1, S=8, etc. on the telephone, and then put those tones out backward. But to make this code unbreakable the programmers will add something like some piano cords–something that can still be played out via the tones. To make it further unbreakable the programmers will have a code (such as a combination of cards) assigned to that level which also must be toned in. An example of this in its totality would be 14 tones + 3 cords to open up a person’s dungeon (hell pit the lowest level). In other words, such an access would take the programmer from a distance about 11/2 mm. to open up the dungeon, whatever time he needed to work in it and 1 1/2 mm. to close it down. A 5 mm. phone call might be sufficient. This gives the programmers the ability to internationally use telephone tones to access deeper items within the victim’s mind. And as standard practice the reversal of the code closes down that part of the mind, and gets the programmer out.

d. RINGS, CREDIT CARDS, TOKENS etc.

A ring with a snake swallowing its tail called Ouraboros signifies rank in the Illuminati. Rings, credit cards, business cards, tokens and keys are all used as codes, triggers and signals. For instance, one slave had an old distinctive skeleton key. In another instance, a slave was given a token from a particular business as a BONA FIDE. In another instance, the BONA FIDE was a programmer’s business card from his notional job. In another instance, a particular credit card would get the user into particular parts of the slave’s system.

Zeta is the sixth letter, and it’s ancient meaning was a sacrifice. (These codes are not known by the author.)

O. SAMPLE CODES FOR ALTERS.

As an example of the type of code names (called operational cryptonyms) used for an intelligence asset one intelligence asset had the following cryptonyms: AECHALK, ARINIKA, CHICKADEE, HERO, IRONBARK, RUPEE, & YOGA.

Monarch I.D. code reviewed:

These codes are purely a representative model-not any particular real system. The overall system code at times consists of [birthdate + programming site codes + birth order + number of generations family was in the Illuminati.]

For our hypothetical system Mary we have the hypothetical overall system code of: 6-13- 51- 14 – 02 – 12. In order to give the codes for a hypothetical alter system we will have to explain some things as we go. The Programmers have for each slave both medical programming files, and a grey or black binder with the programmed access, trigger, codes & cues, & structure.

A typical Illuminati system will be a cube (although spheres and pyramids are also used). The principle alters will be the “a” alters. A typical section of alters will consist of a 13 x 13 grid of alters. These are alters who live in a world together and must function together. A 13 x 13 section will have 13 families of “a” through “in” alters. The “a” alters will be the primary alters that the Programmers will interact with. The Programmer may call up an “a” alter and ask it to go get the “c” alter in its family, rather than directly asking for it. This initial page of alter codes will be the primary or “a” alters.

If we are dealing with a 13 x 13 x 13 cube of alters, then the initial page has 13 “a” alters of each section. Each of these alters will have an access code which will often include the following components: AN ASSIGNED COLOR + AN ALPHA NUMERIC CODE + A PERSONALIZED MAGICAL NAME.

This will equal 1/3 their access code. These code words must be repeated three times to pull the alter up. However, if an alter is trained well, and hears his master’s voice, an alpha-numeric code can pull the alter up. For many of the alters, the reversal of their access code puts them back to sleep. This is an important point, because some alters would be dangerous to leave in control of the body.

The “a” alters are regular alters. Many of them have been hypnotically age advanced to see themselves as teenagers or adults. Sometimes “b” and “c” alters are also aged. The “d” through “in” alters are generally left as they were split and most of them are infantile, with little concept of how old they are. The little ones will be the ones who often remember the programming very well, and know things about the system. The top alters will also sometimes receive personal names from their handler. This is in addition to all their codes. If the alter is responsive to its master, the personal name might pull the alter up too. Do all of the alters get charted? There are several groups of alters which get charted separate from the rest or don’t get charted at all. Because of the competition and distrust between the different programmers, they often place in secret back doors into the person’s mind that only they know about. Worlds of secret alters loyal and devoted to the programmer may be built into the system and not appear on the regular charts. The core, and some of the primal splits from the core will not appear on the regular grids. They will be placed on a separate sheet, and their codes will be in some magical language.

The Illuminati commonly employs 20 magical languages, and Hebrew, Latin and Greek are also often used for charting the core and its primal splits. Enochian is a good example of a magical language used by the Illuminati. Some alters will be created solely by the slave in order to cope with life. Hour glass alters have entire sentence access codes. Deaf & blind alters need their access code signed on their hands by moving their fingers up and down, etc. End time alters may have access codes that may entail reading an entire page. Reporting alters are often small children, that are hidden in each section, and may require slaps to the face or jabs with a needle to pull them up. Spinner kittens will be accessed via their mama cat, who acts like a Madam in a “cat house”. The codes for this was given in the Beta section codes of Vol.2.

Telephone tones are frequently used to be able to key in (that is access or trigger) parts of the computer program matrix. Dominoes also are used for the computer programming. The dominoes are put in so that the programmers can get a domino effect, if they want to set off a series of programs. Dominoes and flashing sequences of lights were used to train the child to automatically respond to a certain pattern of dots.

P. Catholic Programming (by Jesuits etc.)

KEYS TO THE KINGDOM = world domination by mind control

In the 1940’s, the Jesuit branch of the Illuminati placed tatoos onto their mind-controlled slaves. These tatoos consisted of the sacred heart with a rose & a dagger, & were generally placed upon the left hand. The Jesuits have discontinued the practice of tattooing their slaves. Now all types of people are using this sacred heart tatoo.

The Rite to Remain Silent is a programming trauma which is a satanic reversal of the Catholic Mass. The VOW OF SILENCE is a keep quiet program activated by “THE WALLS HAVE EARS & THE PLANTS HAVE EYES SO YOUR SILENCE IS TANTAMOUNT TO SUCCESS.” It is explained to the victim that the sea shells & the plants have the ability to hear, and that a sensitive occultist (programmer) can psychically pick up what the plants and sea shells hear. “MAINTAIN IT” –is a command to maintain the Vow of Silence. “MAINTAIN IT & LISTEN.”– a command to keep silent & listen to a command.

“ENTER INTER INNER DIMENSION TWO” is a standard Jesuit infinity program (2 is a sacred voodoo no.) Pontifax is a demon &/or alter placed in Jesuit systems.

BABY BREATH, BLACK ROSE, and WHITE ROSE are codes/triggers that are all used in Jesuit mind control. The Baby Breath and the black rose relate to programming having to do with death. The WHITE ROSE is a trigger to cue a person to release programming. The black rose is also used by the Mafia. The black rose was also used by George Bush, drug kingpin for the Illuminati, on his no. 1 helicopter for the upholstery pattern.

When the Catholic Priests do the handsignal genuflection across their chest, this has the second meaning which is a programming meaning of north, south, east and west.

Q. Mensa Programming (by MENSA)

The MENSA codes are sequences of numbers.

R. HAND SIGNALS

Masons and monastic orders who program are very keen on hand signals. A very skilled handler can do morse code with winks and eye rolls.

Rotating the hands around each other and then gesturing with the hands toward the person with both hands means–”did you get the signal?”

Sign of distress. Arms raised over the head with palms forward. Then lowing the arms to a bent position with the hands at head level, and then lowing the hand to chin level, and then dropping them to the side.

Drawing the right hand across the throat with the thumb of the hand pointing to the throat. (used in connection with oaths, such as fidelity to death.)

· Sign of faith. Hand on the heart.

· Sign of plucking out the heart.

· Sign of Reverence.

· Sign of Satan made over solar plexus.

· Sign of touching the crown of the head.

· Sign of two hands pointing to the solar plexus.

· Sign of Preservation. Consists of placing one hand over the heart, and raising the other to form a right angle at the elbow, with the hand pointing to heaven.

The movie “Dune” showed male & female Ilium, hierarchy hand greetings, as well as showing signet rings, which are indeed often worn on pinky fingers. (The movie also shows the Karat goddess, how a man becomes a Grand Master by learning control of the demons, astral projection through the spheres which are conquered by the Grand Master, & control of the int. weather, etc.)

S. SCRIPTURES USED IN PROGRAMMING (cont. from Vol. 2. chap. 10)

· 1 KGS 7:21 –talks about 2 pillars on the outside of the Temple. The pillars of Joachin and Boaz are important to Freemasonry and are built in the slaves mind at an intermediate level. Joachin is a white pillar of light associated with fire. It is easy to see how this association could be built by certain traumas. Boaz is the shadowy pillar of darkness and is also associated with water. A dark water torture would make this association. The two pillars represent the two sides of the Illuminati’s “the Force”. Between them is the door to the Illuminati’s House of God.

· 1 KGS 10:18–description of Solomon’s Temple used to build the imagery and the lion guards to the internal Temple programmed into victims.

· 23rd Psalm–used as a cue to signal a ritual time.

· Song of Solomon–Used in the ritual of the Great Rite, a ritual pertaining to the Middle Earth, where the High Priest & Priestess join in sexual union as the God & Goddess creating fertility for the land.

· Ezekiel chap. 1 and chapter 12 are being used for endtime callback codes.

T. ALIEN PROGRAMMING

· Blue beams of light are used as a hypnotic induction for slaves who are given the cover story of being abducted by aliens.

· The All-Seeing Eye is used to represent the planet Sirius. Sirius is important to the Hermetic magicians, and some of the programmers are deeply into hermetic magic. Satan is said to come from Draco or Sirius, esp. the dog star Canis major. Masonic programming may well have the “blazing star” portrayed in the programming as a pentagram, with the name Sirius. Sirius may represent the Master, the creator of the system in some systems where the programmer is steeped in Masonic philosophy. A sickle may be involved with the Garden of Eden story for some victims of this type of programming, because supposedly the Golden Age ended with a sickle splitting heaven from earth. The ability of the handlers signals to the slave in so many mediums makes it difficult to communication and accessing, to send different prevent communication and accessing.

Program Codes During 1972-1976 for Dr. Green

One mind-controlled slave, using her photographic memory, managed to sneak into the programming files of her programmer, who went by the code name Dr. Green. Her information was included in the book U.S. Government Mind Control Experiments On Children which was compiled by Jon Rappoport and presented before a congressional committee & put on public record. The co-authors recognize some of the programs.

In the late 60’s and early 70’s, all the programming was revamped. The best programs were identified and then used. The continual revamping, editing and modernizing of programs has continued to strengthen the mind-control. The recovering victim’s name is Chris De Nicola, b. 7/62. She worked full-time at Disneyland for 7 years (from ’83-’90). Her father Donald Richard Ebner worked with her major programmer who was Dr. Green. She received standard Illuminati trauma-based mind-control.

In 1970, she received Radiation Experiments on her neck, throat, & chest. In 1972, the experiments concentrated on her chest, and in 1975 the radiation tests concentrated on her uterus. She was programmed in Kansas City Univ., Tucson, AZ, & in the desert in AZ. During her programming, the assistants were careless and she was able to sneak into the Programmer’s office and look at the files with her photographic memory. She was caught twice in the files, and tortured, but simply used her ability to nest memories to their disadvantage.

Chris was such a poor programming subject, so much so that finally the programmer tried to trigger her suicide programs to activate, but they failed and she managed to survive. Suicide alters repeatedly tried to kill her body, and they came very close to killing her. On 3 occasions she had to have her stomach pumped, and one occasion when the paramedics found her she’d stopped breathing. She has survived her suicide programming countless times, praise the Lord, and provided what she saw with her photographic memory. The following codes were remembered by Chris without the aid of hypnosis. Cisco and this author recognize some of these programs. What Chris saw were the files. Each program (script) is given a name and then its file has a standard access code assigned to it. Chris saw the standard access codes.

The standard method for coding a program is to use the DAY OF BIRTH CODE, THEN THE DAY OF THE TRAUMA that puts in the program into the slave’s mind, and then the STANDARD ACCESS CODE. Evidently, Chris got into the file with level D programs, which means she was looking at programs 4 levels deep. Comments about the programs are this author’s and reflect his understanding, and may be subject to correction. [Spellings are exactly as program names were spelled.]

Program Name Standard Code

Relevance D-1000

Kick-It-Back D-1010

Cross Fire D-1011

Sophis. Electromagnetic Fields D-1012

(D-1012 makes the slave think they have an electrical field on them. In order to cover their electrical field tests, that they actually do place on slaves, they have the ability to confuse the slave, and prevent detection by activating a programmed abreaction that makes the field seem real, when it doesn’t exist. This prevents detection.)

Gorilla Warfare D-1013

Retreat D-1 014

Nautical Science D-1015

River Runs Deep D-1016 (D-1016 is a powerful program which tells the slave that there is no escape, because the programming runs deep through every fiber of the person.)

Educated Mentality D-1017 (D-1017 is a program to allow the slave to look intelligent when needed.)

Glass House D-1018

Corporate Extrapulation D-1019

Closing In D-1 020

Frog Man D-2000

Catastrophic Indifferences D-2020

Quality Control D-2030

Protocol Virus D-2040

Operation 2000 D-2050 (This relates to Project 2000, which is end time programming.)

Pro-Life-Go D-2060

Conspiracy Action D-2070

Verified Suggestion D-2080

Finish Line Protocol D-2080

Fraternity Leads D-2090

Rotten Egg D-3000

Kaiser Confrontation D-3010

Co-Op Protocol D-4701

Forensic Criterion D-4702

Mediator Response D-4703

Mentor Divisible D-4704

Biopsy Synchroization D-4705 [This is a very harsh program.]

OSH-AMP-RIE D-5000

D.O.A. D-6000

Laser Documentation D-7000

Freak Out [just what it sounds like] D-7010

-[From here on I will select specific programs, and will not review the entire list of programs that she saw the files for.]

Foolish Games D-7060

Periodic Mind Lapse [a forget code] D-7080

Creepy Crawlers D-8040

Shock Permanence [to shock oneself] D-9000

One-For-All D-95452

[punish all for 1 alter’s misbehavior]

Counter-Transference DIA-5001

Border-Line-Schizophrenic DIA-5009

[If the slave misbehaves, they can be triggered to act schizophrenic & get themselves incarcerated into a mental hospital for prgrmmg.]

Lens-Reverse-Angle DIA-5011

Canary-Sings DIA-5015

[reporting alters tattle-tale or an alter sings a script.]

Suicidal Mission [just as it sounds] DIA-5017

Mission Completed [go to "sleep" prgm] DIA-5018

Train-Wreck-Perception DIA-5021

Starvation Tactics [starvation prgm] DIA-5022

Bare-Metric Pressure Process DIA-5023

Fundamental Theology [rel. cover prgm] DIA-5025

Project 2000 412-2000

[This is end-time programming. The word project followed by a number usually refers to the date the project must be completed. Standard methodology for coding then would be that on 4/12/2000 this end-time programming must be completed.] -codes not remembered for these programs which she saw in files-

Candy [candyland programming]

False Memory Syndrome [even in c. 1973 they were setting up the False Memory Syndrome campaign to take down their opposition.]

Forced Brain Wave Activity

Frenzied State [just as it sounds]

Call-Of-Wild [survival techniques]

Hocus Pocus [magic programming]

Mass [cath. mass programming]

Phoe-net-ical Difficulties [obvious]

Self Mutilation [obvious]

Van-der-built [related to Vanderbilts III. family]

Warped-Speed-9 [Star Trek programming]

-(Her med. file no.s of radiation lab experiments are given chptr. 8)-

p_levels.jpg

 

A programmed multiple can work at several different levels of participation.

The Illuminati.

This is the secret hierarchy level. It is secret by virtue of almost all (if not all) its members being programmed multiples from elite powerful bloodlines- This is hardcore generational Satanism that believes in a Gnostic Lucifer/an doctrine, hence, they may be called your elite Luciferians.

The Network.

This level of activity is secret by virtue of its secret ties. It includes the anarchy level of the Illuminati, the various criminal syndicates, the music industry, the various fraternities, new age institutions and people in power all over the globe. It is held together by fear, blackmail, and common bonds of lust and greed. The network includes atheists, self-made satanists, opportunists, and many mind-control slaves. It is far more cohesive and controlled than meets the eye. It is very eclectic. It doesn’t matter at this level what you believe, what matters is whose control are you under. This is the hidden seamy power side of the World System.

The establishment, the System.

This level is open for the common people to participate in. This level remains stably operating in their control because of secret election fraud across the board in U.S. elections, extensive blackmail, extensive control of the masses through the establishment media (TV, radio, newspapers), interlocking corporations and government agencies that control the economic life, and many mass mind-control techniques that these groups use. Most people are unaware of how powerful the establishment is. As long as they drift in its current, they will never see the control. It is only when one tries to swim upstream against the current that you find out how powerful the establishment is. The Illuminati sets up controlled opposition to the System, such as the Hip pie movement, militant environmentalists, Hell’s Mgels, Neo-nazis, John Birch Society, the Communist Party, etc. Controlled opposition gives people a chance to vent their anger without threatening their control. It also gives them dialectic conflicts which they can control to their advantage.


CHAPTER 5:  SCIENCE NO. 5 – THE SKILL OF LYING, THE ART OF DECEIT 

The Illuminati have refined the art of deception far beyond what the common man has imagined. The very life & liberty of humanity requires the unmasking of their deceptions. That is what this book is about. Honesty is a necessary ingredient for any society to function successfully. Deception has become a national pastime, starting with our business and political leaders and cascading down to the grass roots.

The deceptions of the Illuminati’s mind-control may be hidden, but in their wake they are leaving tidal waves of distrust that are destroying America. While the CIA pretend to have our nations best interest at heart, anyone who has seriously studied the consequences of deception on a society will tell you that deception will seriously damage any society until it collapses.

Lies seriously damage a community, because trust and honesty are essential to communication and productivity. Trust in some form is a foundation upon which humans build relationships. When trust is shattered human institutions collapse. If a person distrusts the words of another person, he will have difficulty also trusting that the person will treat him fairly, have his best interests at heart, and refrain from harming him. With such fears, an atmosphere of death is created that will eventually work to destroy or wear down the cooperation that people need. The millions of victims of total mind-control are stripped of all trust, and they quietly spread their fears and distrust on a subconscious level throughout society.

One problem about lies is that one lie will call for another and then another. It’s hard to keep lies single. They seem to want to breed more of their kind to protect themselves. Soon the liar becomes a victim of his own lies, trapped in a dishonest web that demands lots of energy to protect his false fronts. This is the sad fate that the intelligence agencies have painted themselves into. They must maintain groups that oversee their double-agents’ lies to insure that the lies that they have disseminated don’t contradict themselves. Finally, they have put out so much disinformation, they lose track of reality themselves.

Far from saving this nation, the intelligence agencies have spread the cancer of deception into all walks of life, so that this cancer is contaminating and killing anything of value in the United States. The soon-to-come death of this nation’s sovereignty, as well as the destruction of this nation’s morals are the results of this cancer. People who have attended high level Illuminati meetings were instructed in how the Illuminati plan to bring in the NWO AntiChrist reign by making everything appear as if it has happened naturally. The Illuminati have decided to camouflage their actions with the creation of normalcy to avert any suspicions.

An example of something which appears to have happened naturally is the O.J. Simpson case, which was planned based on previous murder scenarios which had been successfully covered up. O.J. Simpson was a CIA mind-controlled slave, and the entire Simpson case was concocted as an elaborate effort to cause racial tensions. The Mishpucka, the CIA, the Mob and the Illuminati have all had their dirty hands involved in the entire affair. The entire affair reeks of manipulation and planning. It is not the goal of this paragraph to go into the case, but just to drop a couple details. Joey Ippolito, Jr. is both CIA & Mob. Ippolito at one time lived in Hallendale, FL, a mob housing subdivision which was protected by a police force run by the mob. He has helped run drugs and wet ops for “the Combination” which interconnects with the Illuminati. O.J. Simpson’s friend Cowlings worked for Joey Ippolito, as well as O.J. Simpson. Simpson distributed cocaine for Joey Ippolito & the Combination. Simpson’s lawyer also is tied to the Illuminati, the CIA, and the mob. One of his lawyers on TV said the trial reeked of government corruption. Nicole Simpson lived next door to Carl Colby (former CIA director Bill Colbys son). Colby’s wife and kids have been subjected to mind-control. Colby’s wife testified in O.J. Simpson’s trial, but was addressed as “Miss Boe” rather than by her name. O.J. Simpson’s mother worked for a California State Mental Hospital in San Francisco for 30 years. Many State Mental Hospital workers have children who have been programmed. When one of the jurors in Simpson’s case, Tracy Hampton, had her mind-control programming go haywire, she began staring for long periods at a blank TV and hearing voices. She had to be dismissed.

During the Simpson trial, Judge Ito gave Joe McGinniss the best front-row seat that a journalist could have. Joe McGinniss was the coverup author who wrote a book covering up about the McDonald-Fort Bragg Drug Smuggling Case. The McDonald-Fort Bragg Drug Smuggling Case involved the Illuminati drug smuggling operation within the U.S. military during the Vietnam War. On and on the stink goes.

The manipulation of history by those in power has been well-covered over. An example of how mind-control and its role in manipulation of events has been covered up by the perpetrators is an article written in the Journal of the American Medical Association (JAMA) in the Sept. 11, 1967, Vol. 201, No. 11 issue. The article, which was submitted to the magazine from three CIA doctors (Mark, Sweet, and Ervin), claims that riots are caused by brain disease. While the article is correct in the subpoint that only a small percentage of underprivileged urban dwellers participate in many of the riots, the article’s thesis is obviously a slide to prevent people from catching on that the small number of deviants who create riots might be under mind-control or might have some other motivation beyond simply being brain-diseased. Any deception, whether it is an exaggeration or an understatement of the NWO’s capabilities is considered a useful deception for the Illuminati’s double-agents to spread. The german battleship the Bismarck was sunk due to a little lie sent to Germany by a double-agent which underestimated the range of British radar. The Germans, thinking they were out of British radar range, made some bad decisions that cost them the battleship.

DECEPTION DIMINISHES POWER

Knowledge is power, and lies diminish the knowledge of deceived dupes, and therefore diminishes the power of the deceived. Deception obscures the alternatives that people have. It also clouds up various objectives people would work toward. Some people give up certain objectives due to their mis-perceptions that the objective is undesirable or unattainable.

PROGRAMMING DECEPTIONS

In the programming, colors and directions are used. Be prepared to find out that sometime programmers use their creative imaginations such as using the color “octarine,” or the direction “TURNWISE” or perhaps “WIDDERSHINS”. During the most fundament programming which is done via LSD trips in sensory deprivation tank to lay in foundations of the Alpha, Beta, Delta, Ome and Theta programs, each programming memory will be given a code. Where one popular programming deception takes place that the programmer knows ahead of time h to sequence his memory codes so that instance, the fifth memory is coded as trip, and strenuous methods are used to cover up the memories of the first four trips. The victim’s s mind will be told to forget the first four trips. The memory codes are deceptively designed to fool the deprogrammer and the victim alike. Part of the reason the programmer does this, is that they know that IF a therapist should stumble onto these first memories, the backup programming to protect these memories is so severe that the therapist will shatter the victim’s mind. Backup programs such as Atom bombs and vegetable programming are locked into place to protect the fundamental programs.

BE WISE AS SERPENTS

The Holy Spirit moved an apostle to write, “We are not ignorant of Satan’s devices.” Christ warned his disciples to “be wise as serpents and harmless as doves.” The Israelites sent out spies before entering the promised land. Within the text of The Art of War by Sun-Tzu (a book studied today by men in intelligence), he discusses “hidden provocation agents” in Book 13.

Sun-Tzu was born in 534 B.C. and lived most likely until after the year 453 B.C. In 500 B.C., some men were farmers, and some were agent provocateurs. Today, both occupations still exist. The modern American farmer is vastly superior to the ancient farmer of 500 B.C., so how does the modern agent provocateur compare? He is vastly superior also. It appears the Word of God is accurate, for it warns that God’s people will be destroyed for lack of knowledge.

The difficulty in obtaining honest information in today’s Big Brother world is aptly described by an intelligence asset over the Internet, “If you are lucky and work hard, you will find some of the truth. If you are lucky and work REALLY hard, you might find the WHOLE truth…as someone wants you to know it. If you are PHENOMENALLY lucky and really work your tail off, you might even go on to find the REAL truth. But no outsiders…and in fact, very few insiders ever … EVER … learn the WHOLE REAL truth.”

This book & our two previous books on mind-control) are the result of extremely hard work and numerous miracles of God, and what non-Christians would call lots of luck”. The story behind the books is amazing. This book’s two authors have had to “swim upstream” for years in search for the real truth. One thing is very clear to this author, during the last seven years of exposing the NWO almost every person who is believed to be a leader against the NWO has tried to impede the work this author has been doing. People need to be aware that the New World Order created their own opposition long before some of us began sincerely trying to expose it. This author’s informed opinion is that essentially all (about 98% of the people leading the opposition to the NWO are double agents), and no less than 50% of the therapists are double-agents. In this state, this author knows as a fact that 50% of the licensed therapists working with programmed DID patients are programmed DID (MPD) slaves themselves. Recently, one of the therapists in this area, who the False Memory “Spin”-drome & the Illuminati took down, was a therapist who had also been on a local T.V. talk show revealing that she was a multiple & a SRA victim.

DISINFORMATION TO MAKE THEIR DOUBLE-AGENTS LOOK GOOD

“A Force” was MI-6’s group that carried out deception. They would have their double agents pass out CHICKEN FEED (which is what they call classified information that can be thrown out to the public) to establish their double-agents’ credentials (BONA FIDES) as agents against the British. Today, there are numerous anti-NWO people who are actually double agents. They are distributing chicken feed to make people think they are legitimate. By the way, it is interesting to note for those who realize how important carousels are to programming that MI-6 (HO in Vauxhall Cross, Eng., with a training ctr. at Ft. Monckton, near Gosport, so. Eng.) is nicknamed (actually its cryptonym) “Carousel” by its daughter organization Mossad (officially aka Central Intelligence Collection Agency). An example of a double-agent who is popular among Christians is an Illuminati witch named Gretchen Passantino, who tours around to Christian conferences belittling the idea of mind-control. Dr. Loreda Fox reports in The Spiritual and Clinical Dimensions of MPD that 74% of women abused by SRA come from “Christian homes.” The Christian churches are heavily infiltrated.

SLEEPER AGENTS

In the Vol. 2 book a number of references were made to sleeper agents. The idea of placing someone somewhere in society and letting them lead a normal life for years without ever being used is designed to provide a legitimate smokescreen about what they are all about. Mind-controlled slaves make excellent sleepers. The concept of making sleeper agents in not a secret. The CIA has publicly admitted that they tried to discover long-range sleeper agents in the Los Niñios children of Republican Spain who were the descendants of communist Spaniards who returned to Spain in the 1950’s. They also have admitted to having tried to weed out long range sleepers in the Trebizond Greeks who lived near the USSR in Turkey and returned in the 1950’s to Greece. As the CIA and KGB mirror-imaged each other in their manufactured Hegelian Dialectic mock dual (which was very real for the “little” person) you can well imagine that the CIA sent sleeper agents against the KGB.

NAMES of TYPES of DISINFORMATION AGENTS

The intelligence agencies have their own lingo for the types of disinformation agents they send against everyone else. So far, we have named only double & sleeper agents. Here are some of their disinformation agents:

AGENT OF INFLUENCE–These agents can be unwitting, under mind-control, or ideologically motivated to use their positions of influence to sway the minds of others. Examples of Agents of Influence are anchor men on T.V., journalists, labor leaders, TV commentators, academics quoted by the media, & some politicians.

CONFUSION AGENT–An agent whose job is to produce confusion by disseminating confounding information.

CONTRACT AGENT–These are the rogue agents, such as the mob, who the CIA get to do particular jobs on contract. Their connections can be denied.

DEEP COVER AGENT–A sleeper agent (often a programmed multiple or person with mind-control programming) who has been a long term sleeper agent.

DISINFORMATION AGENT–This is a highly placed agent who passes disinformation to other governments.

NOTIONAL AGENT–A fictitious non-existent “agent” which is created with a real-looking identity to mislead.

PROVOCATION AGENT–An agent sent in to provoke & destabilize the target group to do foolish things.

SPOON-FEEDER AGENT–Someone who dribbles out legitimate information, this is often done to build up a person’s credentials (bona fides). Lots of the people who are pretending to expose the NWO are spoon-feeder agents who provide a little new information, tons of already known secrets, and sprinkle in a measure of disinformation for added fun. Generally spoon-feeders increase their percentage of disinformation once they gain respectability. There are very few people really exposing anything of consequence about the NWO. This author has endured the loss of several of the really legitimate whistle blowers who were friends being assassinated since he began writing exposes.

What this means is that agents for groups that do mind-control may: have been sleepers for many years and look very legitimately innocent, they may give good correct information to our side, they may say all the right things and try to get us motivated to do more than we would want, they may talk about other friends who are giving them information who do not even exist. It takes discernment to spot people who are not on our side. Unfortunately, such discernment seems to be fundamentally lacking within the public at large. For instance, I have seen people choose obvious NWO agents over this author as a source of “information” (which is in reality disinformation). Most people have bought so much disinformation during their lifetime, perhaps it’s unrealistic to expect them to purge out all the junk they’ve accepted. Just as people in the world need to toss out their worldly thinking, people in the church need to toss out all the indoctrination they’ve gotten from the numerous kinds of harlot churches.

At the moment, the system is set up so that the perpetrators of the mind-control are in control of the credentialing process, so that they can provide their stooges/and agents with the best credentials. As the reader can see, the roots of power behind the mind-control go deep.

TRICKING SUSPECTS

One trick (or variations of it) that has been used with suspects is to arrest them, place the suspect in a situation where the police are in two groups–one group looks like police, the other group looks like the group the suspect has come from. After the suspect arrives, the group pretending to be arrested group members, overpowers the police contingent and escapes to another setting where another police group pretending to be even more of the suspect’s group ask him who he is and to explain his credentials. Letting his guard down, the original suspect explains what he is all about, thereby giving them the information they needed in the first place. Variations of this script can be run. English intelligence calls this basic script CACKLEBLADDER because chicken blood is used on the police actors that are overpowered to make them look injured.

THE NAMES OF DECEPTION TRICKS

FOUR FACES refers to pretexts used by agents to get interviews. DANGLE is the craft word for luring a victim into a provocation. A dangle operation would be an operation to provoke a group or individual into a particular action. This was done with Elohim City and many other groups that the NWO is trying to set up as patsies.

STANDARD DECEPTION DEVICES

Agents use BLEEP-BOXES to tap telephones and in other instances to make free-of-cost telephone calls. A CABMAN is a device to remotely activate a telephone with a radio beam. It can be used without entering the building where the telephone is located.

MASKS

The use of masks in the occult world is ancient. For centuries, the gypsies have used them for their hypnotic powers. Special healing masks for their people are kept secret and never shown to the public. Masks have a shock value & fascination value. Gypsy and other occult groups have special rituals to create the masks, including using hair clippings from the person who will wear the mask. Gypsy healing masks are destroyed after the patient gets well. Illuminati programming masks may or may not be destroyed after their use. The Illuminati’s mask-making abilities (according to deprogrammed victims of their mind-control) are very high quality. Sometimes the programmers simply wear halloween cartoon character masks that anyone can obtain, to fulfill their role in the programming script that they are involved in during the time.

COVERS

Some beginners who have just started into studying the World Order question why the Illuminati would use legitimate religious covers. Why would the Illuminati want to create a slave who is an evangelist? Why? Because those new converts will go to some establishment church where other programmed multiples in leadership positions will demand obedience (and then support those demands by quoting scriptures that make them seem like they are God’s authority over that new convert. Because the evangelist or missionary and the bishop or pastor are controlled puppets, the convert will never get the full truth, just enough truth to keep him working hard for their organization. Even though the convert “got God in my life”, the Illuminati never lose control over him.

The Christians have as much vested interest in preventing the exposure of the Illuminati programmed multiples who are big name Christian ministers running Christendom, as the Illuminati has. Imagine what would happen if the world found out that most of Christianity was run by the human-sacrificing, slave-making Illuminati? This is one of the sad effects of the infiltration.

Perhaps the subject of covers can be explained from another angle. The reader knows that the elite like monopolies. They play monopoly for real–for us it’s only a board game! To establish a monopoly, you find a good product that everyone wants or needs, and then you eliminate all the competition by either destroying them, or owning the competition yourself.

In the U.S., the Illuminati can’t have a one-religion monopoly. In Russia, they had communism with Marx, and Lenin as the Father God and Gon the son figure. Communism had a monopoly on worship. In the U.S., they have established a monopoly by controlling all the various religious groups. (This author wrote an 800 page heavily documented book Be Wise As Serpents to show the details of how this is done.)

It’s not a matter of what they teach, it’s a matter of control, so that the elite have a monopoly. And when you, as a mover & shaker in the world, control all these various religions via money, blackmail, & programmed multiples under your leadership, etc. which religion would you pick to emphasize the most? You will pick the one that sells the best, i.e. the best product. And which brand of Christianity will sell the best? The televised charismatic brand will sell the best.

Covers that slaves use to explain what they do in life are almost always “legitimate”. A missionary, a military officer, a salesperson, etc. will usually actually do their cover job most of the time. Their cover is their occupation, their service as a mind-controlled slave is almost an unwitting avocation. Organizations are used as covers. The Illuminati use military, social, intelligence, education, banking and other organizations as covers. (See my Be Wise As Serpents book for many of these.) Moriah’s front organizations, such as the CIA, in turn use other organizations. Here is just a sampling of CIA fronts, to show the variety of fronts used:

· Asia Foundation was an academic organization created by the CIA.

· Castle Bank & Trust Co. has been a bank in the Caribbean that is a CIA front.

· Forum World Features has been a front created for CIA propaganda purposes and based in London, UK.

· Geschicter Foundation for Medical Research (as well as the Josiah Macy Foundation) was used as an intelligence front to launder money used for mind-control.

· Air-Sea Forwarders, Inc. was the legal corporation name of a CIA front in North Hollywood, CA. The company was involved in moving freight. In the last few years, this corporation sued E-Systems, the company which builds the CIA and the NWO’s electronic systems such as their communications satellites. In court, the company proved that it was a CIA front, in spite of CIA denials.

As this chapter provides information about some of the Illuminati/ intelligence connections to Hollywood, bear in mind that this CIA front was proven in court to be a CIA front in Hollywood. A feat that rarely occurs


ONE OF THE GREATEST DECEPTIONS OF ALL TIME: DISNEY 

INTRODUCTION

For years, I have heard many Americans say that something is terribly wrong in this country & that things are “going to pot”, and yet Americans can’t put their finger on what exactly is wrong. When I first began to receive reports from victims of Illuminati mind-control about Disney’s involvement in their mind-control, I kept an open ear, but I wanted some tangible proof. After investigating for myself, there is now no doubt in my mind that Disney (the man, the movies & the entertainment parks) has been a major contributor to the demise of America, while maintaining a very well constructed front of wholesomeness.

In this chapter, you will learn why Disney is one of the best deceptions of the Illuminati. This author has read a good portion of what is available to the public concerning Disney. This exposé is undoubtedly the deepest on Disney that has ever been done. Perhaps part of my motivation is that I’ve tired of Christians talking and acting like Disney stands for sainthood.

Christians, who should have known better, are some of the ones who have swallowed “hook, line and sinker” the enormous deception that entails Disney. They feed their children a steady diet of occultism and witchcraft because they have been programmed to think of Disney as wholesomeness and everything that is good about America. Many writers over the years have tried to expose Disney, most have been stopped before they could get their books published. The few authors who have managed have faced vicious attacks on their character & integrity, and have faced enormous struggles against public relations campaigns paid for by the Disneys. The Disney’s power, and the power behind them, has frightened most people away from challenging them. But someone needs to speak on behalf of the victims. Whether anyone listens or not, the victims will know that somebody cared enough to stand up & write the truth. Disney has not only left mind-control victims in its wake, but they have harassed land-owners, stolen employee idea’s and left all kinds of hurting victims in their path. Disney has risen to become the unquestionable largest media-entertainment conglomerate in the world, & was ranked company no. 48 in the top 500 companies by Forbes 500.

Observations about HOW THE ILLUMINATI LIKE TO HIDE BEHIND PERFECT FRONTS.

There are numerous Illuminati homes, restaurants, wineries and other institutions that are today carrying out the same type of strict standards upon their employees that Walt Disney Studios maintained. While Hollywood was immersed in moral filth from the start, Walt Disney Studios had strict standards. In the 1930’s, Disney had a dress code that required men in ties, and women in sober-colored skirts. If a man looked lecherously at a woman at Walt Disney Studios he risked being instantly fired. Walt was a shining example of the strictest legalism. Even during the ’50′s, if an employee were caught saying anything considered a cussword such as “hell” they were instantly fired no matter who they were. Walt would not allow his male employees to have any facial hair, even though he himself sported a moustache.

He never allowed employees to have alcohol at the studios, (which might not be a noteworthy standard except that Walt himself drank heavy amounts of alcohol in his private office at work for decades). Initially, Walt was very reluctant to have his young artists, who were being trained by Don Graham, draw live nude models, but reluctantly gave approval. Again the motive was not to serve God, but to make sure the Disney reputation remained untarnished. With the power of the establishment media behind Disney, Walt had nothing to worry about, news about the nude drawing classes and their detailed drawings never reached the light of day. Behind such strict fronts of legalistic morals, cleanliness & soberness, you will often find lots of guilt and high level satanic ritual.

For instance, Hitler (who was by the way also a failed artist & who liked mechanical things more than people) obsessively washed his hands many times a day (out of guilt), and so did Walt Disney. Walt obsessively washed his hands several times an hour, every hour. Walt liked animals & his trains more than people. This author has seen some alters who were forced to take another human’s life, and when they relived the memory, the alters then tried to physically wash the blood guilt off of their hands.

Another example is that over the years this author has discovered that many of the exclusive restaurants that are meticulous in every detail are tied in with the mind-control and criminal activities of the elite. Dirty money is keeping the places looking sparkling clean. Walt Disney worked very hard at maintaining a great image for himself and his company.

An example of this, is how he exploded in rage and wrote an angry memo when a Disney character was placed in a beer ad. (Memo mentioned in Thomas, Bob. Walt Disney An American Original. Hyperion, 1994, p. 7.) He had a personal image builder, Joe Reddy, who worked full time to build Walt’s image. Joe Reddy was a cigar-smoking Irishman who loved the catholic college Notre Dame’s football team. He also was a publicity agent for Shirley Temple. But the Disney deception entails far more than Joe Reddy’s decades of image making, and Walt’s own abilities to create good images of himself. Just as with Billy Graham (see Vol. 2 about Billy Graham), the entire Illuminati threw their weight behind promoting Walt Disney.

Ronald Reagan and Walt Disney were good friends and both cut from the same die in many ways. Both men were high ranking Freemasons, both came from socialist backgrounds (Ronald’s mother was Eleanor Roosevelt’s best friend, & Walt’s Dad was a socialist leader), both were paid FBI informants, and both were involved heavily in the abuse of mind-controlled slaves. Walt always generously supported Reagan’s political campaigns, and in turn Reagan did political favors for Walt as Gov. of California.

For instance, Disney’s Mineral King mountain resort needed an access route through the Sequoia Nat. Park at a time when there was lots of congressional pressure to preserve the last stands of redwoods. Gov. Reagan got his friend Disney his road through the park. Reagan served as the emcee for the opening day of Disneyland on July 17, 1990. He returned with Illuminati TV host Art Linkletter for the 35th anniversary. Ronald Reagan & Art Linkletter both pumped Disney publicly.

Another slave abuser that spent time with Disney was Bob Hope, who would spend time on the golf course with Walt. On the opening day’s telecast, cameras showed Sammy Davis, Jr. (a member of the Church of Satan) and Frank Sinatra (a mind-control slave handler) driving the pint-sized Disney ears at the Autopia ride. When Disney celebrated its fifty yr-anniversary with a two hour special on May 20, 1991, the program included people like occultist Bill Campbell and was named “Best of Disney, 50 Years of Magic.” For the silver anniversary of Disney World in Oct. ’96, the Clinton’s were invited to help open 15 months of celebrations. The theme of the anniversary celebrations was “Remember the Magic”. A Boy’s & Girl’s Club sang ‘When you wish upon a star’ (a popular programming song). Hillary Rodham Clinton (herself an Illuminati Grand Dame and a mind-control programmer) shared with the audience that she and Bill “first brought daughter Chelsea to the Magic Kingdom when she was four.” Roy E. Disney, nephew of Walt, told the public that Disney World “is the story of men and women who took hold of a dream and never let go.” There is a double meaning to that. Many victims of trauma-based mind-control have taken hold of the illusions that were programmed into their mind secretly at Disney, and never let go.

Among the visitors to Disneyland have been all the American Presidents from Eisenhower to Clinton, over a dozen kings & queens, as well as Emperor Akihito of Japan, Anwar Sadat, and Robert Kennedy (who rode the Matterhorn with astronaut John Glenn.) Both Denmark’s & Belgium’s kings who are in the Illuminati visited, as well as the dictators of Indonesia, the Shah of Iran and Ceausescu of Romania. (As a side-note Roy E. Disney was forewarned by Arab leader that the Shah was to be deposed.)

Organizations that have been actively working for a New World Order for many years gave big awards to Walt in his early years such as the B’nai B’rith (Man of the Year Award to Walt) and the Chamber of Commerce. In 1936, Walt was given the Chamber of Commerce’s annual “Outstanding Young Man” award. The establishment’s Yale & Harvard Universities gave him honorary degrees.

Walt Disney biographer Leonard Mosley, who researched Walt Disney for years (as well as writing books on the duPonts, the Dulles brothers, and Hirohito) wrote in his book on Walt Disney, “The studio publicity machines in the film colony had, as usual, gone out of their way to try to persuade me, as a writer for a powerfully influential British newspaper, that this was a city of lawless gods and goddesses, full of clean-living, sanitized stars. “It was even more of a deodorized world at the Walt Disney Studio where the publicity men insisted their boss was faultless–never drank too much, never used a swearword, never lost his temper, never quarrelled with his wife or family, never let down a friend. And woe betide anyone who tried to suggest otherwise. Members of the resident foreign and local press risked their jobs if they dared to write stories inferring that Walt Disney could be domineering, implacable, and unforgiving (as was the case, for instance, before, during, and after the 1941 studio strike). The Disney flacks were capable of exerting heavy pressure on editors and proprietors or, through the advertising pages, against anyone who inferred Walt Disney was not the epitome of well-scrubbed and benevolent perfection.” (Mosley, Leonard. Disney’s World. New York: Stein & Day, p. 10.)

Disney is perhaps the epitome of Illuminati abilities to create images. They have created great images for things Disney, incl. Walt Disney, Disney movies, and Disney’s Amusement parks. In some cases these things have been overrated, in other instances the sinister side to them has been carefully hidden. In order to make movies that contain the typical smut of Hollywood, sex and violence, Disney did a slight of hand and created subsidiaries which Disney runs, which has allowed them to keep their good image. They also never showed the public the hard core porn that was made for years in secrecy for the elite.

Behind Disney’s good front lies hard porn, snuff films, white slavery, Illuminati mind-control, and the seduction of several generations into witchcraft. Disney’s involvement in these kind of things will be explained in this chapter. Nobody has sold America witchcraft as well as the Disney brothers. Movie after movie has cleverly brought the occult into the warp & woof of American thought, all under the disguise of entertainment. For instance, it was Disney that brought us cannibalism and told us that it was a “triumph of the human spirit” (a direct quote from Disney’s Touchtone Producer Robert Watts concerning Disney’s movie “Alive” featuring survivors of an airplane crash who turned to cannibalism).

Under the disguise of entertainment & showing us how “triumphant” the human spirit was, they subtly promoted cannibalism. Mickey Mouse plays a leading role in “The Sorcerer’s Apprentice.” And yet when this author has suggested that Disney movies aren’t wholesome, many Christian parents come unglued and have gotten angry with this author. The deceptive image that Disney movies are wholesome is a triumph in Illuminati deception. Parents would be surprised what is slipped into cartoons. In Disney’s “The Little Mermaid” the castles are male sexual organs. In one cartoon Mighty Mouse is shown without comment clearly snorting cocaine. Walt Disney Studios Chairman Joe Roth is in charge of Walt Disney as well as subsidiaries Touchtone, Miramax, and Hollywood Pictures, which were all created to camouflage the Disney production of adult films. Disney operates in a clandestine manner regarding the promotion, distribution and

p_mermaid.gif  DISNEY MAKES MALE PHALLUSES INTO CASTLES.

rating of the films produced by their subsidiaries. Roth oversaw Disney’s subsidiary Hollywood Pictures’ Evita film. Evita has as its main start “Material Girl” Madonna. Madonna is in reality a mind-controlled slave who has appeared in numerous underground porn/& ritual porn movies. (This author has an underground catalog from a porn business, that has recently changed its location of business. The catalog offered a film of Madonna performing an actual blood sacrifice.) She also was the main actress in Disney’s Dick Tracy film which is reported to be used for mind-control. During an Arsenio Hall show, Madonna, who as a guest acted dissociative, was picked up by the cameras during the show kissing her Baphomet ring.

Disney controls the products that are associated with the movies of their subsidiaries. In Evita’s case they are marketing hats and other items, as just one more of Disney’s countless artificially generated consumerism campaigns. In Ruth Stein’s interview of Madonna, Madonna appeared bored with plugging Disney’s consumer products. When asked about the tango dresses and hats inspired by Evita that popped up in stores after the film, Madonna said, “Believe me, I have nothing to do with it. Disney is pushing the whole thing.” (San Francisco Chronicle, 12/29/96, Datebook section). In one interview Madonna states she wants her daughter to grow up knowing Catholicism, but she doesn’t believe that it would be good for her daughter if Madonna married the father of her child from Lourdes, Carlos Leon.

In another interview, Madonna says, “Actually, I’m a very good role model, because I say, ‘Look, these are my standards’…” She then goes on to plug homosexuality, same sex marriage, and single families in the interview. Walt Disney stated that it plans to release an album by DANZIG, a heavy metal band whose songs contain “dark themes”. The Disney press release announces on its by-line “Mickey Mouse is going heavy metal.” Disney’s album ,,BLACK ACID DEVIL” was due to hit the music stores Oct. 30, 1996 during Halloween time. According to Disney this music has no satanic references, but does have “dark, Gothic and sexual” overtones. Glenn Danzig denies that he is a satanist.

CONTENTS IN THE DISNEY DECEPTION SECTION OF CHAPTER 5.

a. an introduction
b. an overview

c. Who was Walt Disney?
PERSONAL DETAILS
MICKEY MOUSE
OCCULT PORN KING
A possible CHRONOLOGY OF EVENTS surrounding WALT DISNEY’S ILLEGITIMATE BIRTH
WALT DISNEY’S CHARACTER

d. Who was Roy O. Disney?
e. Who is Roy E. Disney?
The battle between the two Disney factions
f. What do we know about them in general?
g. A history of Disney Harry Cohn Bank of America Bank of Italy Claude Debussy EPCOT center
SOME DISNEY people of interest. Warren Beatty Shirley Maclaine Shirley Temple Black Stephen Bollenbach Warren Buffett The Tommy Dorsey Band Michael Dammann Eisner Rich H. Frank The Osmond Brothers Michael Ovitz Frank G. Wells
h. Disney and its mob connections Some MOB HISTORY.
How the Disney Executives have figured out how to steal land all across the U.S.

i. Disney and its government connections
j. Disney and mind-control
DISNEY VACATIONS FOR THE ELITE
MELODYLAND
DISNEYANA FOR THE PROGRAMMED & OBSESSED.
Mind-control features in Disney movies. Bette Midler
k. Detailed Script of how one Disney movie is used for programming.
SUMMARY
1. Partial List of Sources

B. AN OVERVIEW

Disneyland and Disneyworld are world famous and the pride of America. They are also extremely important programming centers for the Illuminati to create total mind-controlled slaves. Disneyland is also involved with providing a place for rituals, porn and other satanic activities. In terms of deception, Disney movies and Disney Amusement Parks rate as one of the best deceptions. According to deprogrammed ex-Illuminati slaves, the Illuminati in the 1960’s needed to shift their programming away from the military bases, because too much publicity (heat) was shined on the military bases. Their goal was to have someplace that people from all over the world could come to without raising any suspicions, and a place which would be the perfect cover for many of their criminal activities.

According to a witness, the Illuminati Programmers got a big laugh out of using Disneyland as a major Illuminati base for criminal activity. Under the disguise of entertaining the world, they carried out money laundering, child slavery laundering, and mind-control. They nick-named Disneyland “the little syndicate of mind-control.” When a child of 3 or 4 was kidnapped, they could torture the child and then put him on a ride such as a ferris wheel or carousel that: a. created dissociation from the pain, while also b. going along with some fairy tale programming script.

An abducted child while waiting to be picked up from one Illuminati non-parent caretaker by another, could be kept happy and distracted while waiting for the pickup. For years, Disneyland was an Illuminati center for many of their world-wide activities. Now Disney has created other sites around the world such as EuroDisneyland 20 miles east of Paris and Tokyo Disneyland.

Tokyo Disneyland in 1991 had 16 million people attend. With such huge crowds, it doesn’t take much imagination how the Illuminati have been able to do sneaky criminal activities right in front of people, and the public never sees it, in the middle of all the activity. EuroDisney has been a money losing affair, but the Saudis who benefit from its mind-control, gave Disney the money to keep it financially in business. Walt Disney Records is the largest children’s record label in the world. Disney through their movies, books, toys, records, etc. has made a tremendous impact on the children of the world. Their movie Return from Witches Mountain was one of the most powerful witchcraft promotions ever made. Ducktails, which has deliberate Monarch mind-control triggers written into the script, is also broadcast in Poland and the former USSR. From the time of the Roman Empire (at least, if not before) the oligarchical leadership, who have been in control of both the Mystery Religions and European aristocracy, have known about BREAD & CIRCUS.

Bread and Circus refers to the concept that IF the masses of people are given entertainment and food staples, THEN they are easy to control. Walt Disney movies have played a key role in providing entertainment for the masses to insure Illuminati control. Walt Disney’s friend the Masonic prophet H.G. Wells in his book A Modem Utopia that there would be lots of shows in the New World Order. The World Future Society in a book review in their publication Future Survey Annual, 1993, (ed. Michael Marien, Bethesda, MD: World Future Soc., p. 91) describes Disney: “Control of commodities [such as entertainment] and access to commodities translates into control over people. ‘The postmodern US is a massive rush of disconnected commodities, each seeking a moment of our attention.” The world of commodities is our soma, and entertainment is the current form of public discourse. Walt Disney World, spread over 27,400 acres of central Florida swamp and scrub forest, ‘is the most ideologically important piece of land in the U.S.’ What goes on here is the quintessence of the American way. It is visited by over 30 million people a year–not only the major middle-class pilgrimage center in the US, but by far the most important entertainment center in the world. It is clearly Oz, utopia as a marketing device.”

Two Disney brothers Walt (Walter Elias) and Roy O. Disney have been at the center of the creation of amusement parks and popular Disney films. In more recent times, two other men, Eisner and Katzenberg have been notable at Disney. Eisner & Katzenberg, as well as others will be discussed later. One of Disney’s directors, Victor Salva, was convicted of molesting a boy and filming one of the sexual molestations. Recently Disney Director Salva produced the Disney movie “Powder”. (Victor Salva’s sexual molestation conviction was covered by newspaper articles such as Robert W. Welkos of the LA Times, in newspapers such as The Oregonian, Weds. Oct. 25, 1995, A sect.)

The impact of the Disney brothers is monumental. Mickey Mouse teeshirts can be seen being worn by natives all over the world. Disney World and Disneyland are the quest for a large segment of humanity, who often esteem these amusement parks as the highlight of their life. What is highly esteemed among men, is an abomination to God according to the Word of God. The Bible arbitrarily makes this claim, but sadly, research by this author over the years proves that a close examination of Disney & mankind’s esteem for “Disney” things does vindicate the Biblical expectation. In other words, as readers of this article will find out, behind the appearance of wholesomeness of the Disney brothers and their creations lays abominations– some of the most grotesque aspects of generational occultism the world has ever seen. Disney’s Magic Kingdom has become an American Institution that impacts people all over the world from the cradle to the grave.

C. WHO WAS WALT DISNEY?

In the large book The Art of Walt Disney from Mickey Mouse to the Magic Kingdom by Christopher Finch (N.Y.: Harry N. Abrams, 1975) on page 11 an interesting and revealing statement is made: “By definition, public figures are known to everyone; yet, even after talking with some of Disney’s closest associates, it is impossible to escape the conclusion that nobody really knew him. Always there was some aspect of his personality that was just out of reach.” Those who got to know Walt too closely make complaints such as he was “self-satisfied, intractable, and arrogant.” He could bring his artists to tears or anger in a matter of seconds. Finch is not the only author who has tried to warn his readers that the public’s image of Walt Disney was just that–only a false image. Mosley also writes in his biography of Walt Disney, “Since Disney is regarded by millions of people, particularly in the United States, as perhaps this century’s most brilliantly successful creator of screen animation, I think I should make one thing clear right away. I share the general admiration of a man whose cinematic achievements were always so happily inspired and inspiriting. But–and this is where I differ from uncritical idolaters–I have to know all the facts, no matter how unpalatable, as well as the romantic myths about any great man or woman I admire. Many of the myths that have been created by his publicists about Walt Disney are unpalatable, unbelievable, and unsatisfactory because so much of the real Walt Disney has been deliberately concealed.. .Walt Disney…had grave flaws in his character.” (Mosley. Disney’s World, pg. 9)

Years ago, an Illuminati Grand Master and programmer stated, “If the world only had the eyes to see the fibers which lay under the surface of Walt Disney’s image, they’d tar and feather him, and drag him through the streets. If only they knew what Disney’s primary goals.”

PERSONAL DETAILS

Walt had black hair with a black mustache, and bright quick eyes and was about 6’ tall. He used his own facial features to clue artists on how to draw Mickey Mouse’s features. He liked specially rolled brown cigarettes which he smoked up to 70 a day. He picked up the smoking habit in the army. He loved expensive Scotch Whiskey, red sunsets, and horses. He had a vacation home in Palm Springs, CA called the Smoke Tree Ranch. He often wore the Ranch’s letter STR emblazoned on his necktie. He played lots of golf with Bob Hope and Ed Sullivan at the ST Ranch. His main home was an estate in Holmby Hills. The Holmby Hills estate was located in a plush area where lots of rich show-business families lived. It was located between Bel-Air (an occult word for Satan) & Beverly Hills.

Walt spent many of his nights at the Disney Studios and later he had his own private quarters at the center of Disneyland. He had reoccurring bouts of insomnia. (For his nerves and insomnia he’d take alcohol and tranquilizers.) He’d go weeks on end without stepping foot on the Holmby Hills estate and seeing his family. The main topic at the studio by the staff during different time periods was Walt’s bizarre behavior– he would not be available until late afternoon, when he would emerge from the studio’s subterranean maze of tunnels, where supposedly he was “chatting with the maintenance engineers” everyday. The value of his estate when he died was 35 million dollars of which Lillian his wife inherited half.

In his later years, when Disney took a vacation he went to Paris for 3 weeks, and 3 weeks at the Hotel du Cap, in Antibes, and then cruised on Fritz Loew’s yacht with Ron and Diane Disney. In England, Walt spent time with the British Royal family and met privately with masonic prophet H.G. Wells. In Rome, Walt visited privately with the Pope and the dictator Mussolini. In 1966, Walt Disney died. Prior to his death he had investigated cryogenesis–being frozen, and it is believed by some that his body is frozen somewhere in California, while others claim he was cremated.

MICKEY MOUSE

According to one source, the inspiration for Walt to create Mickey Mouse came when he was unemployed and saw a mouse in the gutter. There are quite a few stories in circulation as to where the idea came from. Ub Iwerks claimed he thought Mickey up at an animator’s meeting in Hollywood. Walt once said, “There is a lot of the Mouse in me.” (biographical article written by Elting E. Morison, p. 131) In fact, Ub Iwerks told Walt that Mickey Mouse “looks exactly like you–same nose, same face, same whiskers, same gestures and expressions. All he needs now is your voice.” Walt often did serve as Mickey’s voice. A book put out by Walt Disney Co. in 1988 reveals that Walt Disney told Ward Kimball “Quite frankly, I prefer animals to people.”

Walt usually was the voice behind Mickey Mouse, (even though he wasn’t the artist.) His mother was chilly for years about the work Walt did. Around 1940, after much pleading, he finally got her to watch Mickey Mouse. His unsupportive mother (which he would within a few years learn was not actually his biological mother) told him she didn’t like Mickey Mouse’s voice, to which he told her it was his, and then she responded by saying he had a horrible voice. The “cold towel” she threw on Mickey Mouse helped convince Walt to quit making Mickey Mouse cartoons. Very few came out of Disney after that, and the very next Mickey Mouse full-length feature cartoon, Fantasia, had Mickey mostly silent. Walt’s idea for The Sorcerer’s Apprentice was based on some of his own ideas. Walt had had the dream which was used for Mickey Mouse in The Sorcerer’s Apprentice of having “complete control of the earth and the elements.” Disneyland and Disneyworld were partial fulfilments of that dream for control.

Walt’s final pet project just prior to his death was the meticulously restored version of the witchcraft film “Bedknobs and Broomsticks.” (Disney Magazine, Winter 96-97, pub. by Disney, p. 96 mentions this.) As a programming device, Mickey Mouse works well because it plays on the subconscious genetically transmitted fear of mice that women have. Mickey’s image can help create a love-hate relationship, which is so valued during the traumatization & programming of mind-controlled slaves. Some sources state that Walt’s love for animals came from the time his family had a farm near Marceline, Missouri. Walt began his schooling at Marceline, but continued it after the age of eight at Benton School in Kansas City, MO. Walt’s Dad had a serious gambling problem and passed the spirit of gambling to his son Walt. Walt never graduated from high school. He had a natural love and a flair for art work, although (contrary to his public image) he never became proficient at it. He joined the army in W.W. I as an ambulance driver by lying about his age. During the war, he also chauffeured dignitaries.

He also did some other things that are very revealing. He enjoyed drinking & gambling while in the service, and he ran a scam where he doctored German artifacts picked up on the battlefield to sell to people. War relics were tampered with to get them in shape to get the most money from them possible. Walt took the battle souvenirs – and dressed them up, for instance, coating the insides of helmets with grease, hair & blood and putting holes in them to make them into expensive souvenirs. This shows that Walt was willing to build illusions if it paid. He could be deceptive if he saw an advantage to it.

From gleanings from things Walt said to people, it appears that as a child, he’d seen the darker side of life (for instance, his father had a habit of beating him in the basement) and had had some interest or exposure to magic as a child. Bob Thomas writes, “Walt took a boyish delight in playing tricks on his parents. He was fascinated with magic tricks…” (Walt Disney, An American Original, p. 35.)

After the military, Walt hoped to have a career as an artist. He applied to the advertising agency of Pesman-Rubin. Roy, his brother, claimed that Pesman-Rubin hired Walt as a personal favor to Roy who handled the agency’s account at the bank Roy worked at. Walter lasted a month until the advertising agency let him go due to Walt’s “singular lack of drawing ability.” According to Current Biography 1952, in 1923, Walt and Roy had together $290. They borrowed $500 from another Disney, one of their uncles named Robert Disney and began to try to make cartoons. Robert Disney had retired in the L.A. area in Edendale, CA after a successful mining career. Robert had always been close to Walt’s father Elias, and helped Walt and Roy out when they came to California. Walt loved to study Charlie Chaplin (a member of the Collins family). He scrawled notes about his body language, facial features, and his gag methods. He also read everything he could about animation and cartooning. They worked out of their uncle’s garage in Hollywood, CA. They were finally able to make a good cartoon Steamboat Willie in 1928, which became an instant hit. As with many things in life, the cartoon was not only good, but Walt finally had the right “connections.” On Nov. 18, ’28, Steamboat Willie was shown in a small, independent theater without any advance promotion or advertising. But amazingly(!) the New York Times, Variety, and Exhibitor’s Herald all ran rave reviews of the cartoon the next day. Was this an accident? did journalists from all these prestigious periodicals just happen to go to this tiny independent theater? no it was connections.

The reason the elite decided to promote Walt Disney after Steamboat Willie came out as Hollywood’s newest “boy wonder” was to deflect enormous bitterness that had been generated by the Stock Market collapse toward Jewish financiers. Hollywood, even in its first two decades, was known as “Babylon” and “Sin City”. The movie industry was well-known to be run by Jews, and many people blamed the Stock Market Crash on the moral degradation that Hollywood had introduced to this nation. There were calls for government regulatory groups to stop the smutty Hollywood films. Edgar Magnin, the spiritual leader of the major movie makers who were part of the Los Angeles B’nai B’rith reportedly encouraged those in the Mishpucka and others who were B’nai B’rith movie makers that Hollywood needed to protect itself by putting Walt Disney in the limelight as a Christian “white knight with family values”. (By the way, Edgar Magnin was nicknamed “Rabbi to the Stars”, because he was “the Hollywood rabbi”.) E. Magnin’s grandfather’s department store chain was one of the first major accounts of the Bank of Italy, and Edgar Magnin had continued his family’s close association with the Bank of Italy. The closeness also came from the Bank of Italy’s close ties to the B’nai B’rith and ADL.

In 1930, the movie industry made a production code which stated that the industry must make a special effort to make movies appropriate for children. Hollywood directly praised Disney in that code as an exemplary model of what the movie industry wanted to do. With the power of the B’nai B’rith and ADL behind him, Walt began sailing to fame. Movie studios that had been turning out smut, with lots of sex and violence all jumped on the bandwagon to show Walt’s clean wholesome cartoons. Walt was the facelift Hollywood needed after the Depression caused Americans to think about America’s morals. Many of the regular movie makers were so corrupt they were out of touch with moral issues, but Walt Disney knew black from white. The Jewish movie makers “pushed the man [Walt] they considered their best hope to the front of the pack” who was billed as a fundamentalist Christian (albeit a masonic “Christian” who rarely stepped foot in a church). (quote from Walt Disney Hollywood’s Prince of Darkness, p. 50.)

Strangely, the biographies indicate that Walt quit doing the actual drawing in 1927, and Walt devoted himself entirely to the development of the cartoon business, such as raising money. In other words, the image of Walt Disney being the artist who has created the Disney cartoon’s is inaccurate. The Disney brothers actually hired many other artists to do the art work. If Walt quit drawing in 1927, and their first marketable cartoon was in 1928, that clearly shows that Walt did not do the actual cartooning. He continued to oversee the work, walking in and rigidly inspecting what was being done to suit his own intuitive tastes. Actually the genius cartoon artist (animator) who made Walt Disney a success was Ub Iwerks, about whom Walt on a number of occasions said was “the best animator in the world”. Without Ub Iwerks to take Walt’s ideas and turn them into reality, Walt would never have become famous. Ub was an incredible genius who had a sense of line, a sense of humor, patience, organization and a great sense of what Walt wanted. Walt treated him cruelly at times, interrupting him, playing tricks on him, and not being totally honest with paying him, but he stayed with Walt over the years and made Walt the success Walt became. (The books Disney’s World and Disney Animation: The Illusion of Life have information on the unheralded genius Ub Iwerks.)

Another unknown great artist was Floyd Gottfredson. Floyd Gottfredson drew all the Mickey Mouse cartoons from 1932 until October, 1975–which is a period of 45 1/2 years. Floyd Gottfredson was a Mormon born in a railway station in 1905, and raised in a tiny Mormon town, Siggurd, 180 miles so. of Salt Lake City. In 1931, before Floyd totally took over the Mickey Mouse drawings, he would take suggestions from Walt on what to draw. For instance, Walt puzzled him by insisting he do a cartoon series of Mickey Mouse committing suicide. Floyd had said, “Walt, You’re kidding!” But Walt thought that a series on suicide would be funny. Over the years the Walt Disney products never mentioned Floyd’s name. The bulk of the fans were led to believe Walt did the cartooning of Mickey Mouse himself. (See the book Walt Disney’s Mickey Mouse in Color. Ed. Bruce Hamilton, pub. The Walt Disney Co., 1988.)

Fred Moore was involved in the creation of Pluto and some other cartoon characters. The idea for Pluto was Walt’s and it was Norm Ferguson’s genius at drawing that took the idea and created the actual images. Walt Disney was awarded 32 personal academy awards for the work that was done by his studios. Walt Disney’s famous signature was actually designed by someone else, and was taught to Walt. (Schickel, Richard. The Disney Version: The Life, Time, Art and Commerce of Walt Disney. NY, 1968, p. 34.) Walt could only make a crude Disney signature, so he delegated the writing of the signature to several artists including Bob Moore, Disney’s publicity artist. Later, after much practice he learned to make it well enough to do for publicity. Many people who wrote letters asking for his actual signature, and who actually did his signature, thought that they had received forgeries by his staff, because the famous Disney signature was so crude. The nicer looking ones were the forgeries. One cartoon animator who joined Disney in 1940 recalled that Walt told him the first day, “You’re new here, and I want you to understand just one thing. What we’re selling here is the name Walt Disney. If you can swallow that and always remember it, you’ll be happy here. But if you’ve got any ideas about seeing the name Ken Anderson [his name] up there, its best for you to leave right away.”

OCCULT PORN KING

Walt grew up fascinated with the occult and in an abusive home situation. He was fascinated with cartoons, nature and children. He had an intuitive sense for quality cartoons that would appeal to children. At some point, the syndicate got him indebted to them. At that point he was their man. He owed them a debt that they held over him. In secret, Walt became a porn king. A victim remembers that he was sadistic and enjoyed snuff porn films. His interest in children was far from altruistic.

The Hapsburgs of the 13th Illuminati bloodline had a sex salon in Vienna, where a porn photographer named Felix Salten worked. Felix Salten wrote a book Bambi, which was then translated into English by the infamous communist Whittaker Chambers. The elite were just beginning to form the roots for today’s environmental movement. The book appealed to Disney, because Disney liked animals better than people. In the book, tame animals view humans as gods, while the wild and free animals see humans as demons who they simply called “Him.” The book begins with both free and tame animal viewing humans as rightly having dominion over them. In the end, the animals view all humans as simply being on the same level as animals, a vicious animal only fit to be killed. Disney instructed his animators to make the animals “to be human. I want people to forget they are watching animals.” Bambi was to receive a Christ-like manger birth, with the animals hailing him as a “prince.” Due to his sexual problems, Walt at one point permitted himself to be subjected to the packing of his genitals in ice for hours at a time. (Elliot, Walt Disney Hollywood’s Dark Prince, p. 83.)

Children were instructed to call Walt “Uncle Walt.” An example of this were the Mouseketeers. For those who know how mind-control programmers have traditionally liked to be called “uncle” by their child victims, the insistence by Walt to be known as “uncle” is distasteful. From what this author has learned from some sources about Walt’s non-public life as a hidden sadistic porn king, it raises questions about other parts of his life. For instance, Kenneth Anger in his book Hollywood Babylon II, p. 192, “Some animators stated that the boss [Walt Disney] seemed to have fallen in love with the boy. There may be some truth in this…” The boy, who Walt fell in love with, was a small young attractive boy actor named Bobby Driscoll who signed up in 1946 with Disney. He acted in Song of the South, Treasure Island and Bobby’s voice was used in Peter Pan. Bobby Driscoll was very intelligent and attractive. Did Disney help or abuse him? If Disney was such an upbuilding wholesome atmosphere, & this child actor had everything going for him, why did Bobby become a methamphetamine addict at 17 & die within just a few years? Why didn’t his talent & early career lead to something positive in his life?

From those who knew Walt personally one learns that he had an obsession with the buttock part of anatomy. He enjoyed jokes about this part of the anatomy, which he told to his staff quite frequently. The staff edited out many of his crude posterior jokes from cartoon scripts. Two examples that got by the editors are a Christmas special where a little boy is unable to button the drop seat of his pajamas. The little boy’s problem in maintaining his modesty is the running gag of the cartoon. In the end, Santa gives him a champer pot. The 2nd example is the paddling machine used on the wolf in The Three Little Pigs. Numerous Disney cartoons feature buttocks of characters provocatively twitching.

AS A WITNESS BEFORE CONGRESS

After W.W. II, Walt Disney was called upon by Hollywood to testify in their defense at the Un-American hearings which were being carried out by congressmen who were concerned about the heavy communist influence within Hollywood. Walt downplayed any communist influence in Hollywood to Congress. Interestingly, Walt’s father was an outspoken Socialist Party leader in the United States who advocated a socialist New World Order. He regularly voted for socialist presidential candidate Eugene Debs. One of the first drawings Walt did as a boy was to duplicate the socialist political cartoons he found in a socialist periodical Appeal to Reason that his father subscribed to. When Walt asked in the 1930’s how his father felt about socialism’s successes, his father Elias said, “Today, everything I fought for in those early days has been absorbed into the platforms of both the major parties. Now I feel pretty good about that.” (Thomas, Bob. Walt Disney, An American Original, pg. 147-148)

Walt’s movie Alice’s Egg Plant (1925) was pure communist doctrine where the red hen (communist) leads the working chickens on a strike against Julius the farm manager (representing capitalists.) The strike at Disney and unionization of Disney in 1940, soured Walt toward communism. The workers at Disney publicly made personal verbal attacks on Walt & he never forgave the humiliation. In spite of his public distaste for communism, his Magic Empire (his castle where he was king) was run like a socialist dictatorship, similar to what the NWO plans. Employees at Disney did not have titles; it was faceless egalitarianism with an all powerful dictator Disney at the top. It was racially elitist too. The only full-time African-American during Walt’s lifetime at Disney was a black shoe shine man.

Was Walt a socialist of the National Socialist (Nazi) variety? Arthur Babbitt claims, “On more than one occasion I observed Walt Disney and Gunther Lessing there [at Nazi meetings], along with a lot of other prominent Nazi-afflicted Hollywood personalities. Disney was going to meetings all the time.” Lessing was mobster Willie Bioff’s crony. Bioff had spent his earlier days running a whorehouse, before coming to Hollywood for the mob.

In the final panel of the Mickey Mouse comic strip of 6/19/40 a swastika appeared. Some people have wondered what this & other “secret signals” in Disney’s work meant. Disney was not Illuminati. The powerful elite are very skilled at controlling people that rub shoulders with them, those who are beginning to become independently wealthy. For instance, they destroyed Robert Morris, the great financier of the American Revolution. They simply used Hegelian Dialectics on Walt Disney. Their Unions and the Mob made Disney’s studio one of their prime targets. In order for Walt to protect himself from the unions, which he perceived as communist, Walt got help from the FBI and the mob. Walt was vulnerable to the unions, because he treated his workers terrible, with long hours, low pay, in addition to repeated abuses to their dignity. Walt’s large number of employees essentially never received any credit or recognition for their years of creativity and hard work, which was all essentially stolen and credited to Walt by the establishment to build his image. (I write “essentially”, because someone might find some obscure exception, but across the board, Walt got all the credit for what his creative workers produced.)

Perhaps Walt needed the ego boost from all the purloined public praise which he stole from his staff to be seen as a great animator, because he had wanted to be an artist/cartoonist and failed. The praise helped sooth the wounds. One worker recalls that Walt “had no knowledge of draftsmanship, no knowledge of music, no knowledge of literature, no knowledge of anything really, except he was a great editor.” This may not be much of an exaggeration, because Walt was a high school drop-out, who grew up in poverty on a Missouri farm. Walt’s first official attempt to direct a film (and last) was the film The Golden Touch in 1935. The film was an embarrassment. Walt had to pull it from distribution. If Walt lacked abilities to animate, and direct, what was Walt’s talent? Walt was the driving force, the spirit so-to-speak behind Disney. He was the dictator who was feared enough to demand more from his workers than they knew they could give–and he could get it. He was the driving force that took a mob of artists, and gag creators, etc. and shaped them into a powerful force to make cartoons and later movies. He was the hard-driving genius who knew what he wanted and got others to create it for him. He was the driving force that kept an army of costumed sanitation men meticulously cleaning Disneyland. In normal year, Walt would have 800,000 plants replaced at Disneyland, & Walt refused to put up signs asking the “guests” (visitors) not to trample them. How powerful was Walt? Here is a man who during his lifetime and even up into the 1990’s had a rule in the studio & Disneyland that no male employees could have any facial hair, yet he himself wore a mustache for most of his life.

A possible CHRONOLOGY OF EVENTS surrounding WALT DISNEY’S ILLEGITIMATE BIRTH

It is beyond doubt that Walt Disney was an illegitimate child, but that fact resulted in a long list of mysterious happenings. It also gave power hungry men, something to blackmail Walt Disney with. Because this chapter 5 on Deception is focusing on Disney, and the big boys used blackmail to keep Disney in line, this information is pertinent. The following chronology of events is what this author’s believes most likely happened. Without any genetic tests, it is difficult to determine beyond a shadow of a doubt who Walt’s biological parents were, and what the actual history of Walt Disney was. Several people have spent many years investigating the real facts surrounding his birth. Many interesting and tantalizing clues have been found. This author believes that the following chronology issuggested by the evidence. (This author’s chronology is offered without hundreds of pages of evidence, because the mysteries around Walt Disney’s birth are here to stay, no matter what excuses people come up with, and this author doesn’t want to stray from the intended purpose of the chapter. This is to show that Walt Disney had a secret bastard birth which gave J. Edgar Hoover –and his superiors– blackmail leverage over Walt Disney. Walt may also have had gambling debts and an abnormal sexual appetite which also helped entrap him. For those who want more evidence and facts, the following are recommended: Almendros, Mojacar, Corner of Enchantment, p. 83; Interview magazine, no. 242, “”Walt Disney Was from Almeria”", and last but not least Eliot, Marc. Walt Disney, Hollywood’s Dark Prince, chapter 11.)

1890–An attractive spanish woman Isabelle Zamora Ascenslo of Mojacar leaves Spain and travels to California to a Franciscan monastery. In the same year, but later on In 1890-Walt’s future father Elias, who fancies himself a ladies man, leaves his family to seek his fortune in the gold fields. In California, he meets another newcomer to the state, Isabella Ascensio, and the two newcomers in California have much in common, have a sexual affair and fall in love.

1891–Elias fails to make a fortune and returns to Chicago, but he doesn’t forget Isabelle.

1893–Isabelle and Elias have a son, and Elias convinces his wife to accept the baby as theirs rather than have the family’s reputation, their marriage, and their family ruined. The son doesn’t look like the first two boys at all.

1901–Isabelle and Elias have another bastard son, who Elias brings home and names Walter after the minister of the church he attends. The two bastard sons do not look like the older sons of Elias, and they never have much to do with them, but cling to each other as brothers.

1903–The minister of the church Elias attends finds out about the bastard children and Elias quickly moves out of state so that the scandal will remain secret. Elias has also run up gambling debts.

1905–After moving to Marceline, Missouri, Isabelle is hired as the Disney’s maid, so that she has an excuse to move in with them without creating suspicions. She probably does much of the raising and care of the two boys.

1918–J. Edgar Hoover is busy involved with the prosecution of draft dodgers in WW I, and it crosses his desk about the case of Walt Disney committing the crime of forging his parents signature to join the army. Cases like Walt’s were watched because people who could be blackmailed could be resources in the future for Hoover. That year, Walt discovered that he had no birth certificate. Waft observes his parents strange reactions concerning his birth certificate & other questions, & begins to deeply distrust his father.

1938, Nov. –Walt’s mother dies by gas, and the Disney’s maid pulls Elias to safety from the fumes, but Walt’s mother dies.

1939-40–Hoover offers Walt Disney to help Walt locate his real parents if Walt will work for the FBI. Either Hoover already knows that he is a bastard child, or he soon learns the truth from an investigation. This gives Hoover blackmail power over Walt Disney, and assures Hoover that Waft will be loyal. Hoover informs Walt Disney of the truth, and then moves to generously protect Disney & his father’s reputation. Two FBI men plant baptismal information of a child born to Isabelle in 1890 named Jose Guirao in Mojacar, Spain. This date is 10 years off of Walt’s birthdate, and is intended to throw people off track. They can’t plant a fake birth certificate for Waft in the records for 1901, because everyone knows from WW I that none exists. Therefore, they plant a fake birth certificate for Walt in the Illinois State records in the year 1890. They hope people will think that somehow a filing error occurred. This way if anything leaks, and worst came to worst, Waft could at least pretend he was adopted and is not an illegitimate bastard. They pay off townspeople in Mojacar to tell a particular story. Townspeople probably receive ongoing payments.

1941–Walt confronts his father with the truth, and his father commits suicide, and his real mother comes to live with him as his maid.

1954–In order to reinforce the myth that Walt was born in Spain, a group of Franciscan monks goes to Mojacar and visibly inquires about the birth records of Jose Guirao and/or Walt Disney. They spend time with the mayor and make sure that everyone connects Waft Disney with Jose, who is a fictitious (nominal) character that the FBI has created records of.

1967–A year after Walt’s death, a large group of Americans (a large group was needed because they are not skilled like the 2 FBI men in 1940) pretend to be on “official” business for the American government. They go to Majacar Spain to destroy all the records of Jose Guirao to insure that there will be no spanish claimants to Walt Disney’s fortune.

Later to insure that the fictitious story is solidly in place to mislead the few who might get by the cloud of secrecy over Walt Disney, the Spanish government does a favor to certain powerful people and pays an investigator to investigate the spanish origins of Walt Disney. People of the village willingly tell people without any fear or without any fanfare that Walt Disney was born at their village. Unless they have recently done so, the village has never done anything–no monuments, no markers, or anything about the birth site of Disney. They probably didn’t do this for years, because some of the village probably knew it was a lie. With the older people gone, the lie has probably become well entrenched as truth and there is most likely some type of memorial to Walt Disney.

WALT DISNEY’S CHARACTER

Because the Disney deception is such a major Illuminati deception worldwide, and because Walt Disney was the major catalyst behind all the Disney theme parks, movies, trinkets etc. it is of importance to examine his character. In studying historical figures, this author has tried to get to the rock bottom truth. One may ask, how can this be done? -especially since there have been decades of myths spread by the establishment and their media? The following procedure which has worked with other historical figures was also done by this author with Walt Disney.

The first part of this author’s own procedure is to study everything that one can find on the man, paying special attention to what bias and vantage point another author comes from. Special attention is also paid to biographers who try to give the whole truth as they have found it, rather than approved biographies that repeat myths, platitudes, and flattery. The investigator has to be careful because there are authors who deceptively say in their introductions that they are “detached investigators” who are “going to be painfully honest in their reporting” when they actually are skillful coverup artists for the person they write about.

When your author, Fritz Springmeier, finished investigating written material about Walt Disney, then I mentally placed what I knew on the shelf temporarily, and did a handwriting analysis based on the scientific principles of Graphoanalysis as well as the broader field of Graphology. This author is a Certified Graphoanalyst who has done handwriting analysis professionally. Using Graphoanalysis/graphology is an excellent way to get an unbiased very deep look at a historical figure. It is a way to by-pass all the propaganda and myths. However, a close historical look and the handwriting analysis (of various historical figures) have always matched each other, as they did in this case too.

Here is what was found. The following paragraphs are how Walt was in the 1920’s. The personality profile you will read did not endure. Under the pressure of micromanaging Disney Productions as well as living with financial stresses, by the 1940’s, Walt could be found in rages giving rough treatment to his wife, and rough spankings to his two children. He went to psychiatric counselling to cope with the stress. And unfortunately with the progression of time, by the 1960’s Walt had become a sadistic egotistical alcoholic. One biographer described him as “…a bully and a know-it-all” (Disney’s World, p. 220) Even then Walt had men working for him, such as Bill Walsh (who had been a orphan as a child) who worshipped Walt.

But here is how he was in the 1920’s: Walt was a self-motivated individual with lots of energy which was constantly seeking some outlet. (People have written much about this trait of his.) He was more the giver than the taker in relationships. (In the first few years, when he was responsible for making business contracts he often gave away his work without setting prices for profits. He even wrote letters to his boss to the effect that his first priority was good cartoons not profits, and that he’d work without profits, but he did want some appreciation for his work. That was his sensitive nature showing.) Walt wouldn’t wait for others to come up with an idea or someone else to make a move–he was there first.

He could communicate his ideas with clarity and ease and move easily from idea to another. (He would storm into Disney Productions and spew one idea after another into his workers’ ears.) He enjoyed competition. He had a quick mind and keen perception. He frequently acted on intuition and impulse, taking chances and endangering his own security. (He frequently gambled all his life savings and everything he could scrape together on a project.) Long projects bored him. (Fortunately the real tedious work of cartooning was done by a large staff of artists.) House chores and repetitive chores bored him and he avoided them. (He was absolutely a total slob around the house as a bachelor.) He was impatient with vague philosophies, he liked concrete realities.

He was difficult to get along with because he had both a playful side (even to the point of cruel practical jokes) to his personality and an aggressive intolerant impatient side that wanted to achieve. Naturally, people around him were disconcerted because on a subconscious level they never knew which side of him they would deal with. (The reference series Current Biography “Disney” article p. 248 gives the following Walt Disney quote, “We don’t even let the word ‘art’ be used around the studio. If anyone begins to get arty, we knock them down.”)

He was geared for action. He was always inventing ways to get what he needed. He could be explosive when provoked. (The old time associates of Walt remember his explosive temper.) He was a person of dynamic energy, sensuality and keen thinking, and a disciple of the pleasure principle. Because his father was so abusive and misused his position of authority, Walt came to be deeply ingrained with defiance toward authority. (The themes of his films repeatedly sympathize with those who rebel against authority, and the police and other authority figures are consistently shown as absurd. One way he expressed irresponsibility was with lively dance scenes, which has been a hall-mark of teenage rebellion during the 20th century. “Comic anarchy reaches its fullest expression in Alice Rattled by Rats, which shows what the rats do when the cats goes away!) He felt that rules were for others to follow. (That is one reason he would step outside of the law and commit illegal acts. This is one trait that may be responsible for some of the criminal activities Walt ended up participating in.)

Walt also didn’t like to be closely supervised. (He wanted to manage his Disney Magic Kingdom as if it were his own kingdom. He wanted to be an authority figure, and indeed became the dictator of his Magic Kingdom. When his workers differed with his own views he felt that they were infringing upon his own inalienable rights as an individual.) He was somewhat of a melancholic temperament, that type of perfectionist who still enjoys life. He felt a need to protect himself against intimacy with others. He was most home in a setting which he made for himself. Walt had the traits of an executive. He was slow to reveal his innermost feelings, and definitely set his own goals. Walt was one of those persons that when the going got tough, he hung in there. Likewise he would cling to his ideas, plans, and possessions. (His stubborn refusal to allow his brother Roy to stop the creation of Disneyland led to events that split the brothers. His determination to succeed was taken advantage of by the crime syndicates to blackmail him with some debt. In order to get his dreams, he was willing to give them what they wanted.)

A clue to Walt’s macabre sense of humor, at times almost a graveyard sense of humor, and his high tolerance of seeing pain in others, is that Walt was seriously thinking of volunteering again as a medic after the W.W. I fighting in France was over, when volunteers were needed for the Balkan fighting. Walt loved animals more than people. The only human being that he had rapport with while growing up on the farm was his Uncle Ed (who he called Uncle Elf), who looked like a cross between a leprechaun and a prune. Uncle Elf could make animals sounds and bird whistles to Walts delight. Walt loved the charm of the farm and nature and he loved royalty, pageantry and a strict social hierarchy such as Freemasonry provides. He often wove a combination of the barnyard in with royal parades and other trappings of royalty.

For instance, in Alice the Piper, the King Hamlin is a farmer who sleeps in a farmhouse. In Puss in Boots the local king lives in an authentic palace incongruously placed in a village. His early film Alice’s Day at Sea includes both the features of a royal court and an American circus. In typical Disney disdain for authority, he pokes fun at criminal fraternal groups with their rituals and passwords in Alice & the Dog Catcher, Alice Foils the Pirates, and Alice’s Mysterious Mystery. And while he was a secret FBI agent, he went against Hoover’s wishes and poked fun at the FBI’s authority. Walt was loyal to what he believed and could be loyal to those individuals who he deemed worthy of his loyalty, but he didn’t want anyone to have authority over him. (Walt was a 320 Freemason & an occultist, he was loyal to that philosophy and loyal in his early years to his older brother Roy O. Disney, who was a father figure to him.) If anyone at the studios agreed with him when he was angry at his brother Roy, he or she risked losing their job. Both brothers were protective of each other, and felt they were the only ones who could criticize the other one.

D. WHO WAS ROY O. DISNEY?

Roy O. Disney was born in 1893, and his brother Walt in 1901. They had three other brothers, but Roy and Walt (1901-1966) were only close to each other and not to their other brothers, who didn’t resemble them. Walt was named Walter Elias, his middle name derived from his father’s first name. The Disney family had immigrated from Ireland to Canada and then to the U.S. The father of the brothers as stated was Elias, and their mother of scottish descent, who may not have been the biological mother, had the maiden name Flora Call. Roy died in 1971, shortly after the opening ceremonies for Walt Disney World. He kept his promises to his brother to build Walt Disney World. He reneged on his promises concerning the city of Epcot (which was derailed into becoming EPCOT).

Roy O. during the 1930’s lived in North Hollywood. Roy’s family later located in Napa Valley, CA, and was associated with the Illuminati kingpins in the area. Napa Valley has been nicknamed the Valley of Kings. This “Valley of Kings” plays a major role in the dirty activities revealed in this chapter. Roy 0. Disney played a bigger role at Disney Studios than people realize. For example, it was Roy O. who made the decision to cut 45 min. out of Fantasia, so that Walt’s pet project could be distributed to movie theaters. Roy O., considered by some insiders as the more evil of the two brothers, kept the financial books for the Disney’s down through the years. It is known that Disney kept two books during the 1950’s, so it is hard to believe anything except that Roy 0. was fully aware of how Disney brought in their money. The big boys always kept the financial screws to Walt and Roy. The big boys often figured out scams to take their money. When the Disney brothers had an arrangement with Columbia Studio (run by Harry Cohn) they were advanced $7,500 for each cartoon which cost them an unprofitable $13,500 to make. Further, Cohn liked to cheat them by not sending them their money, and taking a ridiculous amount of time to pay them what he owed them. The cash flow problems of the Disney brothers also came from Walt’s desire to keep improving and upgrading the technology they used. When Walt went to color over Roy’s objections, Disney’s profit margin was damaged and the studio was left with shortages of cash. In 1937, Walt’s repeated gambles with cartoon production ideas caused Roy O. to say, “We’ve bought the whole damned sweepstakes.”

From 1940 through 1946, Disney lost money every year. In ’46, he lost $23,000. Finally in 1947, things turned around and the Disney studio made a profit of $265,000. Cartoons and movies were not really big money-makers for the Disney brothers, until it was realized that old films could be replayed on television. Overall, from the 20’s through the 50’s, the Disneys may have broke even with animation. This is why Disney Studios at Christmas, 1931 was unable to pay its payroll.

Pinocchio cost $2.6 million to make in the late ’30’s, an amount hard to retrieve at that time from the box office, and Fantasia’s original release in the ’40’s was a dismal financial failure. When Sleeping Beauty was released in 1960, it was a loser, movie goers were apathetic towards it. The real money made by the Disney brothers in the 1930-1950’s came from the merchandising of Disney products, the production of underground hard porn, and the kickbacks from various groups which used Disney for mind-control programming, and money laundering.

When Walt died, his shares in Disney were worth $18 million. His family all in all held 34% of the stock in Walt Disney Productions. Roy O. Disney’s daughter Dorothy Disney Puder & husband Episcopalian Rev. Glen Puder purchased property at 1677 Sage Canyon Rd., Napa Valley east of Rutherford. (This is close to the Rothschild’s Opus One Temple mentioned in VoL 1.) O.J. Simpson’s lawyer Johnnie Cochran Jr. was in the Rothschild’s hard-to-enter Opus 1 when the jury arrived at a decision in O.J. Simpson’s case.)

It is very typical for Mafia families in south Boston to have one family member in the clergy & one full time in organized crime. (See author’s Be Wise As Serpents for an expose on the Episcopalian Church, which is simply a branch of Freemasonry.) All kinds of interesting Mafia figures, Illuminati, and Bohemian Grovers live up the Sage Canyon Rd. This is an area that has a large well-kept cemetery for pets. Frank Well’s sister and Rich Frank, who will all be discussed later in this chapter, also live on Sage Canyon Rd.

E. WHO WAS ROY B. DISNEY?

Roy Edward Disney (nephew of Walt) is the son of Roy Oliver Disney (brother of Walt). Sometimes he has been called Junior. The 9/5/94 Newsweek story on Disney’s Magic Kingdom called him “Keeper of the Flame.” Roy is an executive with Walt Disney Co. at 500 5. Buena Vista St., Burbank, CA 91521. He has worked as an asst. producer at Walt Disney Co. from 1954 to 1977. He has also been the vice-pres. of Walt Disney Co. He is president of Roy E. Disney Prodns. in Burbank. He is chairman of the board for Shamrock Broadcasting Co. As if that weren’t enough, he is on the board of directors for St. Joseph Med. Ctr., fellow U. Ky. Recipient of the Academy award nomination for Mysteries of the Deep. He is a director of the Guild American West, the Writers Guild, which is important. He belongs to the 100 Club, the Confrerie des Chevaliers du Tastevin, and St. Francis Yacht Club. He likes speed boat racing.

Roy E. Disney was the cocky son of Roy O. He married a gal named Patricia. He was merely tolerated by his uncle Walt, especially after Roy E. made some snide remarks about Walt’s plans for Disneyland, which he and his father opposed until Walt Disney personally got the project going. Walt’s son-in-law Ronald Miller is one of the Disney clan who can’t stand Roy E. The two never liked each other, and in the power struggle between them after Walt’s death, Roy E. won and ended up with Disney. Although people called Roy E. “Walt’s idiot nephew”, he eventually (with the help of his father & outsiders) won the various power struggles at Disney after Walt died, and is now a powerful figure. Roy E. Disney and Stanley P. Gold work together in various ways, and are both on the present Disney Bd. of Dir. They are friends and worked to prevent hostile takeovers of Disney in 1984. Gold is in charge of Shamrock Holdings, Inc.

(Chapter 5 page 2)

——————————————————————————–

The battle between the two Disney factions

In 1953, the two brothers and their respective sides of the family split when Walt created RETHAW corporation. The two sides have fought ever since. When Walt Disney created RETLAW (his name Walter spelled backwards), this alienated his brother Roy O. & Roy’s side of the family. Without going into all the details, what RETLAW did was cut Roy O.’s side out of the money that was to be made. But Roy’s side didn’t stand by and idly let their share of the pie be lost, they fought back and held their own.

Their big break came when Michael Milken and his band of junk bond artists carried out a “greenmail” on the Disney Corp. Only a few insiders know how greenmail works. It is a legal form of blackmail. Milken would work with his friends Saul Steinberg, Sir James Goldsmith, and Carl Icahn. Milken would provide them the financial clout, to make them look financially capable of financially purchasing a corporation that they had selected as a target. According to insiders, Milken got 40% of the upside of any “greenmail” that went right. The targeted corporation would learn that someone like Saul Steinberg was going to buy them out. In order to prevent the buyout, and to keep their jobs, the officers of the targeted corporation would get frantic, and either do suicidal refinancings, or buy the stock of the potential acquirer for much greater prices than the Milken group paid for them. The “greenmail” artists would then take their loot and go on their way. The stockholders of the targeted company are the real losers of “greenmail”, because the management of the corporation in order to finance their protection spends the stockholder’s money, takes on new debts, and deprives the stockholders of some profit-making potential of their shares.

Michael Milken’s group made feints to take over a large number of corporations, including Walt Disney, Phillips Petroleum and Avco. Saul Steinberg made what looked like the beginnings of a sincere hostile takeover of Walt Disney through Reliance. At one point Reliance became Disney’s largest stockholder. Steinberg filed an amended 13D saying he intended to acquire 25% of the corporation. The CEO of Walt Disney, was Walt Disney’s son-in-law Ron Miller. Saul Steinberg is a dear business partner with London’s Jacob de Rothschild. Originally, Ron Miller (Stanford Univ. grad.) and Ray Watson (a Bohemian Grove member from Stanford Unive.) of Walt Disney’s management brought in the Bass brothers to help them deal with Saul Steinberg’s takeover and to buy and develop land (esp. in Florida). Ray Watson was Ron Miller’s key right hand man to run things. The Bass brothers are mafia. Disney acquired the Bass Brother’s Arvida, and brought the Bass brothers into Disney’s management. The Basses sold their stake in Texaco back to the oil co. & then used this money to bolster Disney. Sid Bass & Chuck Cobb (chief exec. Arvida) worked out a deal with Disney. Arvida (sold to Disney for $200 mil.) would profit from developing Disney land in FL & Disney would profit from the new financial strength that getting Arvida would provide. Arvida owned oil fields, theme parks, and had helped create planned communities.

For Ron Miller, on the one side was the Illuminati and the other side of things was the mafia. He didn’t trust either, but Steinberg’s takeover could eliminate Disney’s management and both he (and Roy E. Disney) wanted to save Disney from a takeover by Steinberg. At first, Roy E. wrote a letter to Ron Miller & the other board members stating his concerns about the acquisition of Arvida For Disney management, at least the Bass brothers would let Walt Disney continue to make their family movies. After the Bass brothers joined the Disney management (and became one of Disney’s major stockholders), they soon joined sides with Roy E. in a management fallout over whether Disney should buy Gibson Greeting Card Company. With enough votes on the board, they sent Ron Miller packing. With Ron Miller, and those management men aligned with Walt’s side of the family gone, then CEO Michael Eisner, Frank Wells, Rich Frank, and Jeffrey Katzenberg and some others made the modern Walt Disney Corporation.

Disney’s Touchtone studio which was mentioned above in connection to the movie Alive was created in 1984 by Walt Disney’s son-in-law Ronald L. Miller. Ron Miller’s management style was lackluster. The new management has really gone gang busters. Although Walt’s side of the family is out of the management end of Disney, they still receive financial rewards from various Disney enterprises. The Bass brothers acquired more land for Disney in Florida. But under their tutelage, Disney now has a management team that is skilled in land grabbing techniques. The Bass fortune began with Perry Bass, who created a company called Bass Enterprises. In 1969, Perry retired and turned things over to his eldest son, Sid Richardson Bass. Sid has three younger brothers Ed, Robert and Lee. The Basses owned 27% in Prime Computer, as well as sizable real estate and oil holdings. The Bass brothers founded a local prep school in Ft. Worth, TX. Their HQs in Ft. Worth is full of modern art.

The Bass brothers were very clever in their deal with Disney. In exchange for their $14 investment in Arvida, they had gotten (over a period of time) $950 million dollars worth of Disney stock. In 1985, they liquidated Bass Brothers Enterprises and divided the assets between the four brothers. Sid Bass was able to shift his interests from finances to culture and high society.

One of the Bass brothers is involved with wineries in Napa Valley. The Bass Brother’s financial strategist was Alfred Checchi, now of Beverly Hills, who has been a supporter of Mishpucka member Sen. Dianne Feinstein (D-Calif.). Roy is involved in criminal activities, and several people investigating him have been bluntly warned that if they continue, they will see their children murdered. Napa Valley’s Illuminati activity also connects in with CIA activities as well. The Napa Valley Illuminati families all have CIA connections. For instance, British millionaire Kenneth Armitage, who had to flee from England to avoid arrest on numerous charges of theft, deception and false accounting, had some of his good friends in the Napa Valley, such as Dr. John Duff, Johnny Beck, & others. Armitage has since mysteriously died in prison in England. Armitage had intelligence connections which tie in with twilight world of the criminal activities of the numerous intelligence acronym monsters. Also his company was authorized to provide people with Central American government documents.

There is more– much more to sordid affairs which swirl around Roy Disney. Napa Valley, where many members of the Disney family live, has the Illuminati’s Opus One temple owned by Rothschilds, as well as two roads lined with meticulously kept wineries owned by Illuminati kingpins and connected via secret underground tunnels. To top off this incredible collection of Illuminati wineries (Rothschild’s, Mondavi’s, Rutherford’s, Christian Brother’s, Sattui’s etc), on the north end of a series of wineries on highway 29 lays the CIA’s medieval-looking Culinary Institute of America Greystone (at 2555 Main St., St. Helena, CA 94574), where numerous people have suffered torture. The Greystone Culinary Institute of America recently had the person who runs their campus store mentioned in House & Garden, Sept. ‘96.

F. WHAT DO WE KNOW ABOUT THE DISNEY FAMILY IN GENERAL?

Several members of the Disney family came to England with William the Conqueror. They were not known as Disney then, but because they came from the French Norman town of Isigny, they took the name d ‘Isigny, and anglicized it into Disney. Walt had two daughters, Diane Marie (bn. 12/18/33) and Sharon Mae. Diane made some revealing comments when she said, he didn’t spoil us. Like a lot of adolescent girls, I was crazy about horses, and I got quite good at riding. I yearned for my own horse, but Dad wouldn’t buy one. And we didn’t have a lot of clothes and other things.” For being one of the richest men in the nation, Walt can’t be accused of having spoiled his children. He was also famous for his ten cent tips at restaurants, which became the talk of the town.

Sharon Mae was adopted and arrived at the Disney home 12/31/36. (She died in ’93.) The adoption was kept very secret. The newspapers around the country announced that Lillian had given birth to Sharon, and the Disney family kept up this lie for years. The reason given for Sharon’s adoption was that Diane needed a playmate. For years, Walt Disney didn’t care much for Sharon and seldom acted like he even knew her name. Walt had wanted a son, but his wife wanted to adopt a girl, so it was a beautiful girl that Lillian picked out to be a companion for her first daughter. When Sharon was kindergarten age, Walt would take her to the carousels in Griffith Park on Sunday afternoons. Sharon was sent to private schools. She went to Westlake School for Girls, and later was shipped off to Switzerland to a girls’ boarding school. She had soft blond locks and was attractive. In June of 1948, Walt took Sharon, who was then an attractive 12 yr. old to Alaska with him for about 2 months. For most of this trip Walt and Sharon were alone together.

For a father, who had ignored Sharon for years, now Walt was totally obsessed with Sharon. He bathed Sharon every night, combed her hair, washed her underwear, and carefully dressed her each night from head to toe before taking her to nice restaurants. He even followed her when she sleep walked. Why was Sharon a dissociative person? That summer in Alaska, Walt and his personal pilot took a trip in August to Mt. McKinley, AK. Both were drinking scotch whiskey and they barely missed hitting a mountain, and almost ran out of fuel before finding a runway. Sharon first married a presbyterian Robert Borgfeldt Brown. Later, Sharon went on to marry William Lund. Years later, Walt’s wife Lilly even prevented a biographer from revealing that Sharon was adopted. Sharon died relatively young.

It is important to look at the Disney family rather than just Walt Disney in trying to understand the Disney phenomena. For instance in 1958, the Wall Street Journal mentioned that Lillian B. Disney was beneficial owner of over 10% of common Disney stock. Lillian, Walt’s widow, quietly purchased property in Napa Valley and moved there in the late 60’s. She bought the property through Walt’s Retlaw Enterprises and the Lillian Disney Trust. Lillian and her 2 daughters ran Retlaw for years. Diane Miller, her daughter, also bought land and moved to the Napa area. The Lillian Disney Trust bought the Silverado Vineyards, which Diane & her husband manage as “gentlemen growers” as they call it.

This side of the Disney family is shunned by the Illuminati insiders in the Napa Valley, as well as by the Roy O. side of the family. Although very private, there are occasional moments of publicity from Diane Disney Miller, when she donated wine for a fund raiser for the Planned Parenthood Shasta Diablo held at the estate Niebaum-Coppola, owned by director/producer Francis Ford Coppola. Francis F. Coppola comes from an old mafia family. He owns a big winery & directed Disney’s Caption EO film. Locals in the Napa area do not trust any of the Disneys, especially the Roy O. side of the family. There are other Disney’s who tie in with the occult world. Wesley Ernest Disney, a 32° Mason & Shriner, who was a U.S. Congressman, a state official & lawyer in Kansas who had a brother Richard Lester Disney– who is a Rhodes Scholar and a Mason too. Wesley Ernest Disney, by the way began as a lawyer in Muskogee County (a Satanic controlled county), and was a Christian Scientist. He lived in Tulsa, a powerful city of the Illuminati hierarchy. Doris Miles Disney has been a writer of occult fiction, such as The Magic Grandfather the Chandler Policy (1972) and Trick or Treat (1972) as well as many other occult novels.

G. A HISTORY OF DISNEY

“The story of Disney’s silent film career is not so much a struggle for artistic expression as it is a fight for commercial stability.” During the 1920’s, Walt stayed safely within the confines of comic animation as defined by others, such as the producers of Felix the Cat, Koko the Clown, and Krazy Kat. In other words, when many of the ideas were coming from just himself, Disney’s movies were not any better than others. In the 1930’s, Disney got some of the best talent available and he began to settle for only the best results from that talent. With the mob, and the Illuminati behind him, and driven by an indebtedness to them, Disney began to achieve outstanding results in animation. Between 1924 and 1927, Walt Disney made a series of 56 silent Alice Comedies which used three different girls (6-year-old Virginia Davis, Margie Gay and Lois Hardwick) to act as Alice who romps around in a make-believe cartoon world. These cartoons combined live action and animation. By the time the series was done, Walt Disney wanted to try working solely with animation.

Margaret Winkler in NY (who married Charles Mintz) distributed Walt Disney’s Alice Comedies. From the beginning, children were the center of everything Walt did. The occult world that backed Walt, as well as Walt himself, believed that if they could bring out “the child” (that part of a person called “the child” by various psychologists), then they could appeal to the curiosity and feelings of the “child” part of adults. If it worked with adults, they could do the same with the child part in children. They knew even in the 20’s & ’30’s what had to be accomplished in the secret Great Plan for a New World Order. The Illuminati Great Plan called for family life to be destroyed, for children to rebel against their parents, and for the world to become more violent. Children needed to immerse in images of violence so that a violent society could be created.

For instance, the 1925 film Alice Stage Struck shows little girl Alice strapped to a log leading to a buzz saw. They also wanted to make occultism–witchcraft the common belief of the American people. The Illuminati felt they could bring in witchcraft if they appealed to the curiosity of the child in every adult. For instance, the Donald Duck cartoon Corn Chips (1951) shows Donald harassing Chip and Dale who then get back at him by stealing a box of popcorn and spreading it all over the front yard. Now what does a cartoon like this teach kids? It teaches that stealing to repay a grudge is O.K. and that doing pranks is funny.

In Disney’s 1920 films, he shows kids cutting school, shoplifting and playing hookey. He shows Alice running away from responsibility to have adventure. He shows prisoners escaping and hobos escaping work. His films are expression of misbehaviour being successful. What does this teach children? In the 1951 cartoon, Get Rich Quick Goofy wins money at poker and his initially angry wife who doesn’t like gambling forgives him when she sees how much he’s won. Goofy indicates that they can have a spending spree by telling his wife, “Easy come, easy go!” The gambling spirit is a very powerful spirit that the Illuminati want to instill in this nation. How can a cartoon that promotes gambling be wholesome for children?

Lt. Col. Dave Grossman is a military expert on how to condition people so that they will kill. He writes in his superb book On Killing (Boston, MS: Little Brown & Co., 1996) that the same process that the government has used to condition soldiers to kill, is being used by the entertainment industry. The only major difference is that in the military, men are taught to kill only on command, while our children are being taught to kill whenever they want to via TV’s “entertainment.” Grossman states on page 308, that the conditioning to kill begins with cartoons. “It begins innocently with cartoons and then goes on to the countless acts of violence depicted on TV as the child grows up… .Then the parents, through neglect or conscious decision, begin to permit the child to watch movies rated R due to vivid depictions of knives penetrating and protruding from bodies, long shots of blood spurting from severed limbs, and bullets ripping into bodies and exploding out the back in showers of blood and brains.” While children see horrible deaths on T.V., they learn to associate this suffering with entertainment, pleasure and their favorite soft drink, their favorite candybar, and close intimate contact with their date. (See On Killing, p. 302)

Disney has the appearance of Wholesomeness; this appearance is quite deceptive. A close study of Disney cartoons will reveal lots of violence that could not be depicted if the violence was actually real life & not animation. It’s the wholesome front which is one of the deceptions that makes Disney cartoons & films so dangerous. Yes, the image of Disney has been that its cartoons are wholesome. No wonder Illuminati mind-control programmers have laughed at how naive the American public is toward Disney. The Disney Gargoyles cartoons are a television series that is pure demonology. The story line is that a race of demons protects New York City. One of the Gargoyles is even named Demona. The Illuminati programmers are amazed at how stupid the masses of people are, and how easily deceived.

How the Disney movies are used as programming scripts is very involved so only one detailed example is given at the end of this chapter. The Illuminati and Mafia knew that Walt had the ability to get the job done that the Great Plans called for. (Source: confidential interview.) They knew they had the “carrots and the sticks” to get him to cooperate. There is no doubt that Walt was a hard worker who in turn expected high standards from his employees. One co-worker of Walt wrote, “Walt made a simple statement, that you can lick them with ‘product’ if you make your product good enough, they cannot deny it.. . .In Walt’s estimation, everything that was done had to be executed with a great deal of thought and finesse.” Neelands, Barbara, compiler. About Ben Sharpsteen, article by David R. Smith (2nd Impress.) Calistoga, CA: A Sharpsteen Museum Reprint, pg. 2-3.

One big turn in Walt’s outlook toward quality came in April, 1927 when the head of Universal Studios wrote a scathing report on the quality of Disney studio work. It forced Walt to realize that up to then he had been slipshod and sloppy. He resolved to never take the easy way, but to work with dedication toward making his drawings come to life with character and interesting situations. In 1922, Walt made a film Cinderella. This is not to be confused with the later animated film also of the same title released in 1950. The 1950 feature was re-released numerous times. The Alice cartoons were made with a 6- year-old girl playing Alice. The first six Alice comedies had extensive live-action beginnings, and then went into cartoon. A few of the 1920’s Alice silent cartoon titles include:

Alice’s Wonderland (1923)
Alice Hunting in Africa (1924)
Alice’s Spooky Adventure (1924)
Alice Plays Cupid (1925)
Alice Cans the Cannibals (1925)
Alice Rattled by Rats (1925)
Alice Chops the Suey (1925)
Alice Charms the Fish (1926)
Alice the Whaler (1927)
Alice the Beach Nut (1927)

After the Alice Series, Disney began a fully animated series called Oswald the Lucky Rabbit. Here we see the occult concept of luck (who hasn’t heard of a lucky Rabbit’s foot?) being subtly promoted. Disney cartoon may entertain, but they also indoctrinate while they entertain. In 1926, Walt Disney signed an agreement with Mintz and Film Booking Offices (EBO).

Film Booking Offices were Illuminati kingpin/mob boss Joseph Kennedy’s company. For at least the next years, Disney worked under the control (auspices) of Illuminati kingpin Kennedy. All of the Disney pictures were registered by R-C Pictures Corp., one of the parent companies of Kennedy’s FBO. Joseph Kennedy also controlled the RKO studio which worked together with the other big studios to insure that no small studio would develop as a competitor. By 1937, all the big studios–20th Cent., Paramount, MGM, Warner Bros., Cohn’s Columbia Pictures and Kennedy’s RKO were allowing the mob to skim money from them.

Kennedy’s RKO gave Walt a guarantee in 1937 that they’d distribute Snow White sight unseen. Walt Disney had their films distributed by Kennedy’s RKO from 1936 to 1956. Another little known detail is that in 1926, Leon Schlesinger (future producer at Warner Bros.) subcontracted animation jobs to Disney. One of these was Universal’s The Silent Flyer. In 1928, Steamboat Willie debuted. This was an animated cartoon with a soundtrack starring a mouse later named Mickey Mouse. It had taken lots of hard work and determination on Walt’s part, but it was the first cartoon with a sound track and it was successful.

In 1929, the cartoon The Haunted House came out. The story is, Mickey Mouse is forced by a storm into a house full of ghosts who force him to contribute to their spooky musicale. In 1930, Harry Cohn, one of the most ruthless and unsavory characters controlling a studio bailed Walt Disney out of Walt’s trouble with con-artist Pat Powers who was stealing Disney’s money. Harry Cohn was a former NY pool hustler and gambler who was brought in by Chicago investors to front their investments in Columbia Pictures, and run their studio. He wore a sapphire ring that the Chicago mafia man Johnny Roselli gave him. Roselli later became a rogue asset of the CIA, and testified before Congress (the Church Committee on Assassinations in ‘74) about a CIA contract which was handed him. Roselli worked for the Mafia Council of 9, which incl. Anthony Accardo and Sam Giancana. Harry Cohn was said by some to be the most hated man in Hollywood. His money gave him “the power of an emperor”. His money got him the best female flesh available which he used for his pleasure. He always seemed to arrive from Las Vegas with rolls of new greenbacks, which had close associates wondering where all the money came from that he always got when he made trips to Las Vegas.

In 1931, Walt went into a long suicidal depression that lasted into 1932. In the summer of 1932, he took a vacation to try and recover from his nervous breakdown. By 1932, Ingersoll had marketed its first edition of Mickey Mouse watches. Disney products have served as a model of consumerism for the world. Disney watches have been made continuously since 1932 or ’33. In 1932, eighty major U.S. corporations (such as General Foods, RCA & National Dairy) began to market Disney products. Ed Sullivan began regularly running stories that bragged about Disney’s work. Freemason Dr. Rufus B. von Kleinsmid, pres. of the Univ. of So. Cal., gave Disney an award from Parents magazine for Walt’s “work with children”. In 1932, several artists who had worked for William Randolph Hearst came to work for Disney.

In 1932, Roy switched Disney from Columbia to United Artists. United Artists agreed to front Disney $15,000 for each cartoon. In the 1930’s, the Illuminati’ Bank of America financed Walt Disney. Years before, the Bank of America had been quietly created from Bank of Italy which was controlled by the same oligarchy that has run the Knights of Malta and renaissance Venice. The Bank of Italy was a powerful bank in Hollywood’s first years. It’s representatives A.P. and Atillo Giannini financed Walt during the 1920’s with petty cash to keep him going, but not enough to get him out of financial bondage. Joe Rosenberg of Bank of America was sympathetic to Walt. Joe Rosenberg, a Jewish banker, came to all of Disney’s board meetings, sat beside Walt, and would advise Walt on what direction Disney Studios should take. Joe wasn’t a board member, but his advice got high priority.

Bank of America also bankrolled other Illuminati projects and organizations. Bank of America had one of their branch offices on Disneyland’s Main St. from ’55 until ‘93. They were open on holidays and Sundays for Disneyland. Bank of America is slated to be perhaps the only bank to survive the economic crash, when the Illuminati kingpins will allow their own banks to crash. Bank of America executive S. Clark Beise (who is a Scottish Rite Freemason) has been a member of Disney’s board of directors from ‘65 to ’75.

One of the biggest depositors in Bank of America is Roy E. Disney. Other Disney execs like Rich Frank have also used Bank of America as their bank of choice. The Bank of America bankrolled the Disney animation Snow White. Walt managed to sell Joseph Rosenberg on the idea, at a time when old time Hollywood people were advising Rosenberg that Snow White could only be a failure. When Snow White was successful, Walt announced a monster party for all Disney workers at Lake Norconian, near Palm Springs, southeast of San Bernandino, CA where the cost of everything the Disney workers wanted to order–food or drink or whatever, would be taken care of by the Disney’s.

Under the full moon, the Disney male and female workers, finally free of the tight rules at the studios, had what amounted to a Roman orgy and a large nude skinny-dip at the lake. Almost all of the Disney workers participated in the orgy and Disney had only two options, 1. fire them all or 2. ignore that the party took place. Walt choose the later option, and after that no-one ever dared mention the party in his presence.

In 1937, Walt and Roy took a trip to Europe where Walt dined with the British Royal family, & met privately with H.G. Wells, the masonic prophet! planner of what Wells & other masons called “the New World Order”. In Paris, the League of Nations (the forerunner to the U.N.) gave him an award.

After the success of Snow White, Disney chose Pinocchio to follow it. Many have asked why Pinocchio was chosen by Walt. If you look at the script, the puppet maker’s wife is taken out of the original script, and there is an emphasis on the little wooden puppet visualizing becoming a flesh & blood son to the man who had created him. Here we have a boy with no soul, who is told if he works hard he will be given one. (Does this sound familiar to readers of VoL 2?) The script was definitely changed to have a storyline far more useful to mind-control programming.

For those who think Walt simply recreated fairy tales on the screen, if one examines the changes that are made from the original storylines, they are changed to make them more useful for mind-control. Both Snow White and Pinocchio have occult type “deaths and resurrections”.

After W.W. II, Joseph Rosenberg persuaded A.P. Giannini, his boss, to bankroll Disney again. Although Walt was financed by the Mishpucka (Jewish Mafia), he didn’t like the idea. Richard Rosenberg, a later Pres. of Bank of America, is also Mishpucka. Richard Rosenberg (his mother was a Cohen) was also in charge of Northrop Corp. and Marin Ecumenical Housing Assn. (Other examples of Mishpucka executives are R. Goldstein, v.p. of Procter & Gamble, and Marvin Koslow, v.p. of Bristol Meyers Co.)

In the 1930’s, the elite promoted Disney’s new cartoons. In 1935, Walt Disney received the French Legion of Honor for his Mickey Mouse cartoons. Also in 1935, the Queen of England (who readers of my previous articles will realize is Illuminati, involved in drug trade, and is involved with the leadership of Freemasonry) and the Duchess of York (also Illuminati) selected Mickey Mouse chinaware as gifts for 600 children. This was after Walt spent time with her in 1934.

The League of Nations (the pre-W.W. II equivalent of the U.N.) took the time to vote its approval of Mickey Mouse. (Finch, Christopher. The Art of Walt Disney from Mickey Mouse to the Magic Kingdom . NY: Harry N. Abrams, Inc., 1975, p. 53.) There is no doubt that Walt Disney had talent. There is also no doubt from the record that powerful people wanted to promote him. No doubt his 320 Masonic membership and his DeMolay activities helped boost his support, and also helped Walt’s bent toward the occult.

Let’s digress just to let people in on Freemasonry’s involvement with acting and motion pictures. The famous 233 Club was a Masonic chapter for actors who were Freemasons. Examples of actors who were Freemasons include John Aasen, Gene Autry, Monte Blue and Humphrey Bogart, Douglas McClean, John Wayne.

Then there is T.V. DJ Dick Clark. Examples of Motion picture executives who were Freemasons incl. Ellis G. Arnall (Pres. of the Soc. of Ind. Motion Picture Producers), Will H. Hays (Czar of motion pictures 1922-45, and Pres. Motion Picture Produces & Distributors of Amer. Inc.), Benj. B. Kahane (v.p. & dir. Assoc. of Motion Picture Producers, Inc.), Carl Laemmle (Pres. Univ. Pictures Corp til ’36), Frank E. Mullen ( man. dept of info. RCA, VP NBC ‘39-’46, exec. VP NBC ‘46-’48), David Sarnoff (Chrm. of Bd. Radio Corp. of Amer. & ,,father” of American television), Jack M. Warner (v.p. of Warner Bros.) and the President & dir. of Universal Pictures since 1952. The Freemasons have made much of Walt Disney’s membership in their membership sales pitches. Because the 2 Disney brothers’ chief contributions to the production of Disney films were the finances and occasionally the ideas used in a film, it is rather misrepresentative of things that Walt Disney got all the credit for the success and quality of the Disney cartoons.

He was showered with 700 awards and honors from important people, including 30 oscars, and the Presidential Medal of Freedom (in ’64). Walt Disney’s great animators never got the credit they deserved, but no one should forget that Walt was the driving force that inspired and guided his workers.

In 1934, Walt Disney made a cartoon about a goddess of the Mystery Religions named Persephone. In the cartoon entitled The Goddess of Spring, the goddess Persephone is captured by Satan as his bride and sent to the underworld, with the agreement she could return to earth six months of each year. The Illuminati have rituals around Persephone. On Dec. 21, 1937, Disney premiered the first full-length color cartoon movie “Snow White and the Seven Dwarfs.” This cartoon had taken $1.4 in depression-time money and three years to make. Over 750 artists worked on the film. Walt Disney had gotten the idea from a silent movie of Snow White which he saw as a boy in 1917. The movie has an important occult theme to it, and has been used for occult mind-control programming.

When the 1940’s got started, Disney was in financial difficulties. At this point, Nelson Rockefeller hired his cartoon capabilities to make cartoons for South America, with the idea that South Americans would remain loyal to the American capitalist hegemony, rather than shift to rising ideologies of fascism/nazism, if they saw Walt Disney cartoons.

In Rio de Janeiro, Brazil on 8/24/42, Disney did its world premiere of Saludo Amigos, a 42 minute feature about Latin America. Goofy becomes a gaucho, a parrot teaches Donald Duck to dance the samba, as well as Disney art showing various landscapes of Brazil in the film.

However, the film The Three Caballeros, if it was meant to encourage South American loyalty to American capitalism, completely failed. The Three Caballeros showed a sexually lecherous Donald Duck who in bad taste tries to make it with Latin women. The mysticism was also seen as bogus. Although the Latin Americans hated the film, the establishment media’s Look magazine praised it. Another reason that Rockefeller sent Walt to South America was to get him out of the way so that the government could settle the strike by Disney workers. Nelson Rockefeller was the government’s Coordinator of Inter-American Affairs, a good position considering how much of South America the Rockefeller’s controlled. Rockefeller told Disney that Disney couldn’t beat the strikers, but that while Walt was in South America, FDR would see to it that the strike got settled.

When Disney returned he submitted to the powers that were, and accepted the unions and the mafia’s control. Another change for Walt Disney was that in 1940, he and Roy turned Disney into a “public corporation” and initially sold 755,000 shares of common stock. The Illuminati Boston firm of Kidder, Peabody & Co. were the underwriters of the studio’s public stock-offerings.

By 1940, the Disney Studio at Burbank had become a miniature city with 1,000 men & women employees and 20 buildings on a 51 acre tract of land. After the U.S. joined W.W. II, Disney Productions were made a part of the American military establishment. The very next day after Pearl Harbor, the military moved onto the Disney Studio, which leads this author to suspect that Disney was already part of the power establishment prior to the war breaking out. Disney made military movies/cartoons that taught the different branches of the military many things. They made propaganda movies for the allies.

One series of films was “Why we fight.” Disney made movies for the IRS to get people to pay their taxes. Some of the Disney films were top, secret, and concerned secret military weapons or secret psychological tactics of the Americans. For instance, one military film was “Army Psycho Therapy” which taught army men how to instill fear, and about the basics of fear. Another army film was “Prostitution & the War”. Another showed a carrier pigeon evading the Germans. In 1940, Disney came out with 2 full length animated cartoons, Pinocchio and Fantasia, both of which were soon used for Illuminati mind-control programming. Fantasia contains Schubert’s sacred Catholic music Ave Maria, which was used in a concluding segment side to side with the profane Night on Bald Mountain song, as well as six other classical pieces of orchestra music.

As a feature cartoon it was a flop, but as a programming tool it was fantastic. Fantasia receives a comprehensive explanation of how it is used for mind-control programming at the end of this chapter. Because an explanation of the use of a Disney film for mind-control is complex, this explanation is placed at the end of the chapter so that it won’t interrupt the flow of this chapter’s information. The Pinocchio film has been redone and released 9 times over the years. Some of the next full length animated films to come out were: The Three Caballeros (1945) The Adventures of Ichabod & Mr. Toad (‘49) Cinderella (1950) Treasure Island (1950) Alice In Wonderland (1951) The Story of Robin Hood & His Merrie Men (1952) Peter Pan (1953) 20,000 Leagues Under the Sea (1954) Sleeping Beauty (1959) Very soon after the production of all of these movies, the Illuminati and their intelligence agencies used them for Illuminati total mind-control programming.

To see their misuse as programming scripts one has to understand how the fantasy worlds of a programmed multiple are created and how the movie scripts are adapted to be programming scripts. Vol. 2 gave quite a few examples of how Alice In Wonderland and the Wizard of Oz scripts were used for programming scripts. When Disney had his animal-nature documentaries, he edited and used narration to give the animals human like characteristics–something he’d already been doing with animation. Disney played an important part in the Illuminati’s plan to elevate animals and dehumanize humans.

One of the biggest Illuminati kingpins, and leader (Grand Master) of the Prieure de Sion was Frenchman Claude Debussy (bn.1862). Claude Debussy, a Merovingian, was Nautonnier (Navigator-helmsman) of the Prieure de Sion from 1885-1918. (See the document Dossiers secrets, planche no. 4, Ordre de Sion, written about in Holy Blood, Holy Grail.) In 1891, when some secret coded parchments (Merovingian documents) were found by a French clergyman Sauniere, he was directed by church officials to visit with Emile Hoffet, an occult acquaintance of Debussy.

Debussy was close friends with many of the top French occultists of his time. He is known to have been a close friend to both the notorious Satanists Jules Bois and MacGregor Mathers. Mathers started the Order of the Golden Dawn. Debussy was also a friend of the infamous Papus (aka Dr. Gerard Encausse) and W.B. Yeats.

Papus was one of the men who during his lifetime was part of the interlocking occult directorate of occult groups. Claude Debussy put some works of the previous P.d.S. Grand Master Victor Hugo to music. Debussy and his other powerful occult friends were influential with Monsieur Philippe, whose Russian occult circle influenced the Russian Czars and Czarinas before Rasputin came around. Debussy travelled to Russia and Rome. Some of Debussy’s works became operas. Interestingly, Walt Disney was extremely anxious to make a cartoon using Debussy’s Clair de Lane. The work was done, but it was never shown to the public. Disney never found a place to use it. It was originally done with animation with flying cranes for the occult extravaganza Fantasia, but when the Fantasia ended up too long, Clair de Lane was cut and shelved. It was again planned for the film Make Mine Music, but then Blue Bayou was substituted in. Walt used the Le Sacre du Printemps (the Rite of Spring) music for Fantasia. This piece of music was written AS a pagan ritual where a virgin sacrifices herself by dancing to death. Disney’s mobster Gunther Lessing had threatened Stravinsky if permission weren’t given for Disney to use the piece of music, it would be used anyway.

Dr. Julian Huxley got involved in the production of Fantasia. Aldous and Julian Huxley are well known by conspiracy researchers for their roles in the World Order. In the 1940’s and 1950’s, the Illuminati began using Disney’s Alice In Wonderland and the Wizard of Oz films as programming bases for their total mind-controlled slaves. Alice in Wonderland had been done many years earlier by the Britisher William Cameron Menzies (who also did Freemason H.G. Wells’ Masonic forecast of the New World Order entitled “Things to Come” in 1936, and the film Invaders From Mars.). In 1944, Illuminati Kingpin William Randolph Hearst (with some minor help from others) funded the Motion Picture Alliance, and Walt Disney became a co-founder and its first Vice-President. In the early 1950’s, Walt turned his attention from animated cartoons to other projects, such as True-Life-Adventures, television shows, and the creation of Disneyland. Seal Island was his first true life adventure which was released to the general public on May 4, 1949, and soon won Walt Disney an Oscar. Alfred and Elma Milotte had shot the film on some Alaskan Islands named Pribilof Islands. James Algar had put the movie together.

In 1952, Walter spelled his named backwards to create the name of another corporation “Retlaw”. Roy and his family saw the move as an attempt to cut them out of the financial picture. In 1954, Walt Disney and ABC made a agreement. ABC would directly invest half a million US dollars as well as guarantee $4.5 million in loans for the construction of Disneyland. This made ABC 1/3 owner of Disneyland. In return, Walt Disney agreed to produce a regular television series for ABC. Remember too that ABC’s president Leonard Goldenstein was a good friend of Ronald Reagan. On July 13, 1955, Walt and Lillian were attempting to celebrate their 30th wedding anniversary at a park and restaurant. Walt got too drunk to speak into the microphone, so he blew noisemakers into it, while Lillian rushed to pull him out of view. In 1961, Disney bought out the ABC investment (also labelled Paramount) for $7.5 million with cash and notes, and to bring this all up to date, later on July 31, 1995, Disney merged with Capital Cities/ABC, with Disney in nominal control. Actually Capital Cities has long been a CIA front company, so the merger placed Disney squarely within the CIA ranks, although it had been in bed with them for the CIA’s entire history.

The Illuminati-controlled corporations of Coca-Cola and the drug firm Johnson and Johnson became sponsors for Disney’s early TV shows. On 7/3/57, the Wall St. Journal announced that Atlas Corp. got 26% interest in Walt Disney Productions. Walt Disney worked quietly with some consultants on the concepts behind Disneyland. His brother and nephew tried to prevent the project from happening. Later they requested that Walt sign over Disneyland, Inc. to Walt Disney Productions, which Walt did. Walt kept 17.25 % of Disneyland holdings and Walt Disney Productions got the rest. Walt Disney Productions then shared their portion with others. The man who helped Walt finance Disneyland was the executive vice-pres. of ABC Kintner.

Walt Disney got the Illuminati’s Stanford Research Institute to determine what would be the best site for Disneyland. A retired Navy admiral Joe Fowler was in charge of constructing both Disneyland and Walt Disney World. How do admirals fit into the power structure? Admirals are briefed each day, and are given information concerning the secret power structure. Most men who are at that military level are Illuminati or at least well controlled by the system. Within the last few years there has been an intense effort to weed out any admirals who are not loyal to the Illuminati. Morgan-Evans, who lives in Malibu, and who may be of the famous Morgan clan, was the one who created the spectacular landscapes for Disneyland, Walt Disney World, and EPCOT in FL. According to CIA informants opposed to the NWO, CIA contractors were brought in to build the underground tunnels under Disneyworld in 1977. These contractors were sworn to secrecy, but were only informed on a need to know basis why the CIA was involved with an amusement park. To work on the secret tunnel project took an “Above Top Secret” clearance. A major programming center was constructed under Lake Holden. (Many of the lakes in Florida are named Lake So-and-so, rather than So-and-so Lake.) The tunnel system was built for programming trauma-based total mind-controlled slaves. It was built of concrete with steel reinforcement. Lake Holden lies just to the northwest side of the Orlando International Airport and just south of Interstate 4. (It is close to Range 29E on quad maps.) It is only (as the crow flies) about 12 miles from Disneyworld.

In spite of Draconian measures of secrecy, numerous lawsuits (Fed. & State) were filed over the years by victims trying to expose the Disneyworld programming tunnels, so that finally the programming center was dismantled, cleaned up and a “maintenance” tunnel level and a “casting” tunnel level were opened to the public. During its heyday, the programmers (military & intelligence men) had exotic offices underground with unusual programming equipment. It doesn’t take any imagination to realize that if Disney carried mind-control programming above and below ground, that they would need tight security forces to protect their secrets. Indeed, such is the case. Disney amusement parks have been granted draconian powers wherever they have been built! The Disney parks have also employed armies of spies dressed like tourists to spy on Disney’s employees! If amusement park workers did anything slightly out of place, they were (and still are) reported by the spies in the camp, and they often have lost their jobs.

For instance, one ex-worker, who had 10 years with Disney, was caught discussing his divorce with another worker. Since divorce doesn’t fit the wholesome image that Disney wants, when the spy dressed as a tourist reported his conversation, he lost his job. Many workers have tried to tell their personal horror stories of Disney’s draconian rules and their draconian private police force, but most of the time Disney has had the power to suppress and intimidate away any bad publicity. An exception to that is the recent Nov. 4, ‘96 Napa Valley Register article on page 2D entitled, “Critics of Disneyland Say Security Abusive Inside Magic Kingdom.” UCLA law professor David Sklansky commented about Disney’s police, “One of the major problems we have is nobody really knows what they are doing- how often they stop, interrogate or search people. They are not subject to the same sort of regulatory controls.”

It’s almost superfluous to tell readers that Disney’s amusement park with it’s theme areas such as Fantasyland, Tomorrowland and Adventureland were a great success. Everyone worldwide was curious to visit this entertainment mecca to participate in something that had a clean, wholesome image to it. The entire world system pulled together to insure that Disneyland got the image and publicity that the top 13 Illuminati families and the various syndicates wanted it to have. For 40 years they’ve done this. When something that everyone thinks is clean and wholesome is not attacked by the world system, that should raise eyebrows among thinking people. Home schooling, learning to read phonetically and other wholesome activities for children have been viciously attacked and ridiculed by the established media. Why has Disney gone untouched?

Disney Studios for years strove to have a very clean image. Workers had dress codes, and any activity on the part of employees that wasn’t morally conservative was grounds for instant dismissal. Of course, the exceptions were well covered up, such as an employee who used hypnosis to get quite a few of the females employees to undress until nude. John L. Hulteng, author of The Messenger’s Motives (Englewood Cliff, NJ: Prentice-Hall, 1976, p. 213) informs us, “As communication researchers have emphasized, the greatest impact the media have on the formation or change of public opinion is in terms of impressions built up over a long period.” [bold added] The wholesomeness of Disney is an image that has been built over a long period of time. Disney’s occult themes of world citizenship, witchcraft, humanism and idolatry have also been long running impressions that have been craftively perpetrated upon this nation, so long that they began prior to this author’s –& probably the reader’s– birth. People don’t associate movie’s like Consenting Adults with Disney, or The Corpse Had a Familiar Face with Disney. In fact as previously mentioned, when Disney wanted to put out more “adult” films, they did a slight of hand and created the label Touchstone films so that people wouldn’t associate movies like Splash (which showed what looked like bared breasts) with Disney Productions.

Another label, Hollywood Pictures, was created by Disney to help distribute Touchstone films. At first the personnel of these companies was simply Disney’s staff, but as time went on, they got their own production personnel. On Oct. 27, 1954, Walt Disney’s Wonderful World of Color debuted on television. The TV show celebrated Disney’s movie triumphs. The words Wonderful World of Color are not ill chosen. According to an Illuminati mind-control programmer, when Disney worked on his cartoons, and amusement parks, colors –special colors and color combinations–were specifically chosen for mind-control programming purposes. Wonderful World of Color under various names such as Disneyland aired for 22 years over the television networks.

In 1955, Walt Disney made his cartoon character Mickey Mouse real by creating a fan club–the Mickey Mouse Club, which aired five days a week usually just as children came home from school. Twenty-four children called mouseketeers would help Mickey, and they would dance and sing and do skits. The Mickey Mouse Club adored the unique, cute little beanie Mickey Mouse caps with their big ears mounted to each side of the beanie. In the 1950’s, most kid viewers of the show wanted their own “Mouse Ears” and to become a Mouseketeer, especially children who were receiving Mickey Mouse scripts in their total mind-control programming. Disney used his Mouseketeers to play all the roles in an Oz movie Rainbow Road to Oz, which was never shown to the public.

Adults today (both men & women) who received Mickey Mouse programming during the 50’s through 70’s can still be seen with Mickey Mouse clocks, watches, lampshades, knick-knacks, tee shirts, etc. Years later the kids who watched can still remember “Spin and Marty” and the Mickey Mouse theme song. The image that everything was perfect including Mickey was portrayed by the Club’s T.V. program. Still somehow the American people began to use the word “Mickey Mouse” as a synonym for a silly, pretend way of doing things. It became common for people to say, “He mickey-moused it together.” to mean he did a poor job putting it together.

On Jan. 30, 1957, Walt Disney had a television show aired entitled “All About Magic” where a Magic Mirror explains about magic. The Magic Mirror also contains a “Bibbidi-bibbidi-Boo” sequence. In 1959, Disney bought 8 small submarines from Todd Shipyards for $2,150.000. When ABC wouldn’t let Walt make a TV series out of a storyline where a magic ring changes a boy into a dog (a mind-control programming theme)–because ABC didn’t think the public could swallow the story line–Walt quit ABC for NBC. Walt then made a scaled down version of this occult storyline entitled The Shaggy Dog.

Early in the 1960’s, Walt and his brother Roy went secretly looking for an area on the east coast to build another Disney Park. Walt the younger of the two, died in 1966, and Roy finished the project. Beginning in 1964, 30,000 acres were secretly purchased at $200 an acre in the Orlando, FL area just west of NASA’s Cape Kennedy. Using phoney names and paying cash, Disney buyers bought the land and swore the sellers to secrecy. The Magic Kingdom has been multiplying. In 1971, Walt Disney World was opened to the public. Bob Hope and others participated in a Disney special on Oct. 29, 1971 “Grand opening of Walt Disney World”. From the time of its opening until Oct. 12, 1995, Disney World calculated 1/2 billion people visited DisneyWorld. This amusement park is in Orlando, FL on over 27,400 acres and includes the EPCOT Center (now also called simply Epcot). The EPCOT center was another dream of Walt Disney’s (albeit more than slightly modified from Walt’s original EPCOT ideas.)

EPCOT originally stood for Experimental Prototype Community of Tomorrow. It was to be an extension of the massive mind-control being carried out at Disney World. The original EPCOT city designed by Walt was to carry on its commerce (traffic) via underground roads and tunnels like the Disney Theme parks. After Walt Disney died, his successors changed the proposed experimental city into another theme park simply called Epcot. It is not unusual to see crowds of over 48,000 people descend on Walt Disney World and the EPCOT center in a single day. Some visitors arrive via a monorail. Visitors can buy 5-Day World Hopper passes which allow them to bounce around with admission to all the sites for a seven day period. In other words, some families stay for a week at Disneyworld. Hardcore visitors can get Annual Passports which provide unlimited use of Walt Disneyworld for an entire year.

In reality, many visitors to Disneyworld begin the day enthusiastic and after a day of hot sun and waiting in long lines with large crowds for imitations of reality, the tourists are zombie-like and looking forward to getting back to their hotels. Many people have felt the rides were not nearly what they expected. Some of the rides are better than others, and some typically get comments like, “It was stupid.” Some of the spooky events like Snow White’s Adventures, or the oversized heads of the Disney characters walking around can leave the little preschool children terrified and dazed for the rest of the day. In contrast, older children, who normally rarely show patience at home may show how much they want to go on a particular Disney ride, by waiting an hour and a half in the hot sun for a ride. Alien Encounter is a Walt Disneyland feature that invites tourists in for a “demonstration of interplanetary teleportation.” When the “demonstration” as planned “breaks down” an “alien” with asocial traits appears among the audience and terrorizes the audience. A cute creature is hideously fried, deformed, and then vomited into space screaming. Here are some comments from visitors to this Walt Disneyland attraction:

· “Alien Encounter …is one of those rides I can say I’ve seen and that I have no intention of ever doing again. In fact, parents who take children under the age of six should be brought up on child abuse.” Woman, from MI

· “Alien Encounter was the WORST experience for my 10-year-old (and almost every child in there). It starts out cute enough during the preshow, but the actual show is a disaster for children. My daughter screamed and cried in terror throughout it. I thought the Disney warnings were vague and inaccurate. When we left, there wasn’t one child with dry eyes (even sturdy looking 12-year-old boys were crying.). I think an age requirement of 13 or 14 is more appropriate. I talked to a few adults and we even agreed that the special effects were extremely unpleasant even for us. This show is not a Disney family experience–its ATROCIOUS!!” A mother from Phillipsburg, NJ.

· “We did go to Alien Encounter…The preshow is deceiving. It kind of lulls you into thinking “this isn’t so bad.” When the main part came up, I admit the experience gave me the absolute heebie-jeebies. . .I am never doing that presentation again–it was way too intense for me, and I’m now 27 years of age!–from a family in Laurel, MD

Michael Eisner, the President of Walt Disney Co., initially rejected Alien Encounter for not being scary enough when it was being considered as an addition to Disneyworld. One wonders what he would have liked! Snow White’s Adventures, which was an attraction at Disneyland, was one of what the Disney people called “dark rides”. After a while a sign appeared with a witch warning people that the attraction was scary. Later in 1983, they renamed it Snow White’s Scary Adventures. It might be interesting to point out that when the original Snow White and Seven Dwaffs film came out, that England forbid the film to be seen by any child under 16 unless accompanied by an adult because of the scary content of the movie. How far we have come since then.

Schools in the Florida and California areas also make field trips to the Magic Kingdom that are arranged with Disney. EPCOT receives tens of thousands of children this way during March, September and October. High schools use the Magic Kingdom for proms or senior nights, and some couples use the facilities of the Magic Kingdom for weddings. Modem Bride ranked Orlando as the number-one honeymoon destination in the world. Group discussions of people who took honeymoons to DisneyWorld have had a consensus that the hype is not as great as the reality. Some weddings are done with cartoon characters. Disney offers “fairy-tale” wedding packages. A great deal for two mind-controlled slaves. They can reinforce their programming while getting married. The Disney fairy-tale wedding typically has its ceremony on a pavilion on an island in the Seven Seas Lagoon with the Cinderella Castle as a backdrop. The fairy-tale wedding can then be followed with a Fantasy reception with a choice of themes such as Beauty & the Beast or Aladdin. The fantasy programming can continue as the bride is delivered to a “Cinderella’s Ball” by an actual glass carriage drawn by six white Disney ponies. A costumed fairy-godmother & stepsisters are also at the ball. Desert is served in a white chocolate slipper.

One of the after-dark shows is IllumiNations which consists of music, fireworks, erupting fountains, special lighting, and laser technology done at the World Showcase Lagoon. EPCOT has a show Cranium Command at the Wonders of Life in the Future World section where guests sit in a theater that functions as a command control room for a boy’s brain. In 1980, Disney came out with the box office flop The Devil & Max Devlin. In 1984, Roy E. Disney brought in Michael Milken, of junk bond fame to help Disney out financially. In 1985, Disney bought MGM’s rights to Leo the Lion logo and began using the MGM Wizard of Oz material. Later a remake of Alice In Wonderland came out in the modern motif of Honey I Shrank the Kids. In the 1990’s, Illuminati controlled companies continued their promotion of Disney. For instance, the Nestle family’s Nestle company promotes Disney movies on their chocolate bars. The Nestle family is exposed in this author’s booklet Illuminati Control Over Foods and Grains, p. 4 as one of the elite Black Nobility families. In 1996, Walt Disney World created an actual residential town named Celebration on its property. This self-contained community has 20,000 and a school, a theater, a fiber optic information network linking business, as well as other features.

SOME DISNEY people of interest.

Over the years, the close associates of the Disneys’ is very revealing. The public can get a feel for Disney’s attitude toward Illuminati bloodlines in the Disney movie The Happiest Millionaire which is about Anthony J. Drexel Biddle and Angie Duke. Readers of this author’s previous writings will recognize the Biddle and Duke names. In fact, the movie was based loosely on a book written by Cordelia Drexel Biddle about the Biddles.

X Atensio. His first name was Xavier, but was nicknamed and called X. He worked on the haunted mansion of Disneyland with WED enterprises. He joined Disney in 1938, and was an assistant animator of Fantasia.

Warren Beatty. (b. 1937 in VA) This actor is from the Illuminati Beatty family and starred in Disney’s Dick Tracy. The Dick Tracy film uses color in a special way, and this ties in with the color programming of the mind-control. Some total mind-controlled slaves have programming based on Disney’s Dick Tracy movie for them to track down and kill “targets” (people). Warren’s sister is the famous (or infamous) Shirley Maclaine. Shirley “MacClaine” is not what she appears.

Her father was a professor who was a CIA asset. She was used by the CIA as a sex slave. She became popular with the studios because she went to bed with the correct people. Her talents were used to get her as an intelligence slave into places that an obvious intelligence agent couldn’t go. She was married to a man in the NSA for nearly 20 years. Her adopted name Maclaine (reportedly her mother’s maiden name) is a pun on McLain, VA where the CIA programmed her. She was used by the CIA in an operation in Australia, where the CIA used her as a sex slave to compromise Andrew Peacock, an Australian MP, so that they could establish the Nugen-Hand bank for their dirty money laundering etc.

She is friends with Satanist Stephen Nance who has provided her with some of her teachings. Lowell McGovern writes her material. The CIA has programmed many of their New Age slaves to adore Shirley MacLaine. An example of this is Christa Tilton, one of their mind-controlled slaves, who revealed in an interview how she considered herself a born-again Christian who had spent most of her life in Oklahoma, but had mysteriously been drawn to Shirley MacLaine. During her life she has gotten repeated “psychic urgings”–that is strong urges to do things and go places, which she doesn’t understand where these urgings came from. After hypnosis, Christa drew pictures of the doctor who programmed her. Christa has had a federal agent monitor her constantly. Her husband has seen this agent, who has shown up on her door step and made calls to her. She names the agent John Wallis (most likely a cover name). This agent has a complete knowledge of her life, and government agents have taken photos of her during her supposedly “alien abduction” experiences. Christa is just one of hundreds of victims who have been programmed to adore Shirley MacLaine. (Christa is mentioned here because she is one case that this author is familiar with.) Warren Beatty, who peppers his speech with four-letter words was a student at the Stella Adler Theater Studio in NYC.

Black, Shirley Temple. Shirley Temple Black sat on the Disney board of directors (74-75). Her films were used for some of the early 40’s and ‘50’s programming and teaching slaves body movements/dance. She married someone in an elite Network family from San Francisco named Charles A. Black. Charles A. Black was a Lt. Col. in the Pentagon who lived at Bethesda, MD. Was Shirley an early example of brain-stem scarring to get geniuses? Shirley’s brother appears to have developed “Multiple Sclerosis” from brain stem-scarring. It was Shirley Temple who co-founded the International Federation of Multiple Sclerosis Societies, and was a member of its exec. committee. Shirley represented the U.S. at the UN General Assembly in 1969, belongs to the Sierra Club, and has been decorated with the Cross of Malta. Shirley has shown clues that she may be an Illuminati mind-controlled child protege.

Stephen Bollenbach. Bollenbach was part of Walt Disney management, and was a key figure who helped engineer Disney’s $19 billion buyout of the CIA’s Capital Cities/ABC, as well as sell the idea to Eisner. He is the CEO of the Network’s Hilton Hotels Corp. He recently has been involved with trying to buy ITT, in order to put together the world’s largest hotel-casino combination. Bollenbach has an extensive background with the gaming-gambling industry. When the Justice Dept. began looking into the merger of Disney with Cap. Cities/ABC, Bollenbach resigned his Disney position. Some people feel his resignation was needed for Disney to get the Justice Dept. to approve the merger, because his past was vulnerable to be exposed.

Warren Buffett. A major stockholder in Walt Disney. He also owns 40% of Berkshire Hathaway Inc. which also owns lots of shares of Disney stock. According to S.F. Examiner, Buffett himself owns 24 million shares of Disney. Warren Buffett is part of the Ak-Sar-Ben fraternity and Monarch slave abusers who were exposed in the Nebraska Saving & Loan scandal. He is perhaps the second richest man in the nation, and too powerful for anyone to touch. In the kingpin vs. kingpin battles, some people close to the inside see Buffett as a good guy. Readers need to study the Lincoln Savings & Loan scandal and the scandals connection to programmed child slaves at Boy’s Town to get more information on this Disney stockholder. Robert G. Hagstrom, Jr., who is the portfolio manager of the mutual fund Focus Trust, which has shares in Walt Disney, wrote the book The Warren Buffett Way. Hagstrom has a chapter on Disney in his The Warren Buffett Way. He quotes Buffett as extremely enthusiastic about Disney’s merger with Capital Cities/ABC. Because of his enthusiasm Buffett says, “The odds are extremely high that we will have a very large amount of Disney stock.”

Salvador Dali–This strange surrealist Spanish artist was a friend of Walt Disney. After Salvador was kicked out of Spain for Franco’s belief that he was a communist, he came to America, and worked with Disney Studios in 1946. Salvador, an eccentric who had no particular work habits, described himself, “The only difference between me and a madman is that I’m not a madman.”

The Tommy Dorsey Band–This band has had a number of men in it who are Mind-control slave abusers associated with the Network. Frank Sinatra, a sexual slave user, got his big break with this band. This band performed at Disneyland in 1984 at the Plaza Gardens. Tommy Dorsey was part of the Network’s in-crowd. When he was on a USO Tour with Bob Hope, he stabbed actor Joe Hall and threw him out of a window. Joe had to have 32 stitches. But Joe didn’t get justice, the judge dismissed his case against Tommy.

Michael Dammann Eisner, Chairman at Disney is a CIA asset and connected to the mob. Some insiders believe he is connected to elements of the CIA & mob that are anti-NWO. Even so, these anti-NWO factions also employ mind-control. Eisner ignored a threat by Red China to boycott Disney products if he made a movie about the nation Tibet that China controls with draconian force. The U.N., the Commerce Dept. and the State Dept. all tried unsuccessfully to get him to back down on the film. A paper trail connecting Michael Eisner and Walt Disney Co. to mind control is their support of the Boys & Girls Club of Napa Valley, which is used for a supply of children for pedophilia and mind-control. The Boy’s & Girls Club is used to supply caddies for the Silverado Country Club, where these children are also used as mind-controlled slaves for the sexual perversions of the elite. Notice that Napa’s Silverado Country Club invites in celebrities (such as CIA asset Pat Boone, Joe DiMaggio, ex-husband of sex slave Marilyn Monroe, Engelbert Humberdinck a slave handler, Digger Phelps, Notre Dame’s coach who uses slaves, and Jack Vale nti CEO of Motion Picture Assoc. & Bohemian Grover) for a golf tournament which is billed as a “benefit for the Boys & Girls Club”. The benefit for child slaves is they get to caddie & sexually service elite perverts.

Michael (bn. March 7, ‘42 in NY) came from old American money of a family that has been rich merchants and lawyers. Michael grew up in luxurious Park Ave. as well as his family’s “country place” in Bedford Hills near Mt. Kisco, NY. He went to an elite private school Allen-Stevenson, which is famous for its children’s orchestra. At the age of 14, he then went to Lawrenceville School, which is a prep-school for Princeton, whose tuition in ’56 was $3,000. Eisner’s class incl. NY’s governor’s son, and other sons of powerful men, such as the son of Saudi Prince Turqi al-Faisal. The school is a prep school for the establishment’s entertainment industry. Students are only allowed to see their parents on major holidays. Eisner was in the Periweg Club, the school’s drama society. His poor scholastic performance meant that he had to go to a small liberal arts college, rather than Princeton or Harvard such as was family tradition. For instance, his grandfather had attended Phillips Exerter Academy and Harvard. His grandfather has serve in many govt. commissions and belonged to the Harvard Club, the American Club in London as well as some yacht clubs. Between his junior & senior year in high school, Eisner was a page at NBC’s HQ in the Rockefeller Center.

In 1966, he landed a job in the programming department of ABC. He had an influential position. Eisner had one good break for deciding TV programming. He was 21 when the target audience was 21 years old, and when he was 35, the target age of the film industry was then 35. He has been described as having “supernatural enthusiasm” coupled to a lifetime quest for untested ideas.

Rich H. Frank, was Executive Vice-President with Walt Disney until his sudden resignation about a year before this was written. He worked side by side with Katzenberg and left after Katzenberg resigned in a dispute with Disney’s chairman Eisner. Rich Frank was President of Walt Disney’s TV-Media Division. He acquired the estate of VanHoffenwiggen, when VanHoffenwiggen fled the country and vanished when Lendvest began to be exposed. VanHoffenwiggen was a major figure involved with Lendvest Mortgage Inc., a drug-laundering operation and drug smuggling operation operating out of Napa Valley. It was also the fastest growing real estate mortgage company in northern California until its drug smuggling began to be exposed. Lendvest did some tricks ala Nugen Hand Bank. Millions of dollars of investors and creditors have disappeared leaving lots of hurting people, and the mortgage company filed for protection from creditors in U.S. Bankruptcy court, and is still in operation.

International financier Edmond Safra’s private bank, the Republic National Bank of NY, launders money from the Medellin drug cartel. Safra’s bank sent Lendvest lots of crisp new $100 bills. The Safras are tied in with the Rothschilds. (The Safras are reportedly recent property owners in St. Helena near Napa (through Good Wine Co. which is the Spring Mountain Wineries), near where Lendvest was HQed. Edmond’s nephew, Jacob Safra, has a partnership in Napa Valley’s Good Wine Co.

The Rothschild’s Citicorp gave Republic National Bank the transaction ability to issue international (world) bearer bonds (“bank notes”) The Luxembourg/Belgium branch of Bank Nacional de Paris issued a bearer bond that was connected the Lendvest drug running operation. In Britain, a U.S. citizen Mike Spire ran the British operation of Lendvest and InVest. LandVest’s parent was InVest which has operated in the U.K., Switz., Saudi Arabia & Paraguay. Long story made short, Lendvest has been an international CIA-Mafia drug running operation, with Illuminati overtones and connections to it.

With all this in mind, it is strange, that Walt Disney’s President of its TV-Media Division, Rich Frank, bought the palatial mansion of John O. Van Hoffenwiggen after Van Hoffenwiggen disappeared from the country when indictments and arrests began to be made of people connected to Lendvest. According to insiders, Rich Frank is also one of a number of Napa Valley people involved in illegal labelling of wines. Rich Frank was a key figure in Disney’s programming venture with three regional Bell Telephone companies (Ameritech, Bell South, & SBC Commun.) coming together. Bell Telephone wanted to get into cable TV. Michael Ovitz formed a rival group of 3 other Bell Telephone co.s. Calvin Robinson, who tied in with Land Vest, worked with Boyce, who in turn worked for TRW Co., in Redondo Beach, CA. Boyce was sentenced to 40 years for selling US surveillance secrets to the soviets.

Daniel Hillis, the co-founder of a supercomputer producer Thinking Machines from MIT, is in charge of the Walt Disney Imagineering unit. Hillis helped Disney develop a virtual-reality ride at Disneyland based on the Aladdin cartoon.

Jeffrey Katzenberg, has been the chairman of Disney’s movie studio, is an aggressive worker, a model Type A person. “Ask 50 people to describe Jeffrey Katzenberg, and most will say tenacious. ‘If Jeffrey were any more aggressive, he’d be in jail.” says the producer Dan Melnick.” ( Harmetz, Aljean, “Who Makes Disney Run?”, NY Times. Feb. 7, ‘88, p. 29.) Katzenberg is the father of twins, which people joke was typical of his efficiency. Katzenberg supervised the production of Star Trek. Most of his movies have been box office successes. In the ‘70’s, Katzenberg worked for NY Mayor John Lindsay.

Sanford Martin Litvack. Sanford is the Executive Vice Pres. of Disney and in charge of “Human Resources” for the corporation. He is a Jewish lawyer who was educated at the Jesuits’ Georgetown Univer. He is on the bd of dir, of Bet Tzedek.

Vincent Price. Price has been one of the major influential occultists who has provided the world with many occult horror books and scripts. He worked for Disney some, and was the voice for Ratigan in The Great Mouse Detective. Vincent Price’s good friend John Hay Whitney is an Illuminati kingpin and vice-pres. of the Pilgrim Society and was raised into the Illuminati through the Yale Scroll & Key fraternity. His friend Whitney likes horror movies.

The Osmond Brothers. Merrill Osmond’s boys were “discovered” at Disneyland when they were visiting the site in 1962. The Disney people on Main St. just “happened” to recognize the talent of the five boys and signed them up soon for their first professional singing contract. The Osmond Boys did some television appearances for Disneyland such as Meet Me at Disneyland, and Disneyland after Dark. (Considering the mind-control programming done to these Osmund children, these TV shows were a cruel joke.) Of the singing Osmond kids, Donny is the next to the youngest, and his sister Marie is the youngest. Both Donny and his sister Marie are programmed multiples who are slaves, who have been subjected to a lot of abuse. They have good front alters. Their father has made millions from drugs, porn and white slavery and is part of the Mormon Illuminati front. The Mormon front of the Illuminati has gotten a lot of good publicity off of the Osmonds. They sang for Andy Williams whose French wife was once arraigned on murder charges. Later they sang for the satanic Network’s Lawrence Welk show. Swedish accented Lawrence Welk has been part of the Network. Marie Osmond has grown up, and she has adopted 3 of her 5 children in spite of her busy singing schedule which includes approx. 200 singing shows a year at places like Mafia controlled Atlantic City. In terms of occult families, adopted children are often programmed children, so this is a clue that her children have been programmed too.

Michael Ovitz. Ovitz was the no. 2 man at Walt Disney for a while until near the end of ’96. Michael Ovitz was a high school classmate in VanNuys, CA with Michael Milken (later the junk-bond wizard), & there are many of the same people connected to both men. When Michael Ovitz’s National Mercantile Bancorp (a saving & loan) began getting into the quicksand of several lawsuits & scandals, attorney Robert Strauss represented him. Illuminati member Robert Strauss has been a lawyer connected with drug running & the mafia. He was also an FBI agent from ’41 to ’45 with Hoover. He is admitted to the Wash. D.C. bar.

Pres. Bush appointed him U.S. Ambassador to Russia. He has been on the board of dir, of the Illuminati’s PepsiCo, Archer-Daniels-Midland (ADM), and General Instruments (which have been exposed in other writings by this author.) He was also a board member of the Illuminati-mafia run MCA. Strauss is seen in Wash. D.C. as a behind the scenes power broker. Strauss represented Michael Milken associate Ronald 0. Perelman, Chrmn. of Revlon, who made a $600 mil. killing off of the 1st Gibraltar S&L. Strauss represented MCA, which the Bronfmans took over in 1995. The book Knoedelsder, William. Stiffed-The True Story of MCA, The Music Business, and the Mafia. NY: HarperCollins Pub., 1993, does an good job of connecting MCA to the mob, the Network, and Iran Contra. See especially page 442. Time magazine 2/24/97 carried a page long story about Michael Ovitz being out of a job. In the article, they reported that he was spending time on his new yacht The Illusion, visiting Joe Silver’s estate in So. Carolina, visiting his property in Aspen, CO, and eating lunch with investment adviser Richard Salomon of Spears, Benzak, Salomon & Farrell. Gordon Crawford of the Capital Group is quoted in the article praising Ovitz, and saying he would invest in an Ovitz venture.

Ovitz is believed to be mafia by people in a place to know. He has also been known to threaten people using mafia terms, for instance, Vanity Fair (12/’96, p. 272) reports Ovitz threatening Bernie Brillstein, a producer, with his “foot solders”. The San Francisco Chronicle (Fri., 1/26/’96, p. D20) quotes the latest issue of Columbia Journalism Review about an incident where a reporter Anita Busch who was investigating Ovitz got violently sick from the MSG in her food as she interviewed him. To top off it all off, Ovitz followed up her story which questioned his actions, by sending her a gift wrapped package of MSG with a one-word note: “Enjoy.”. Michael Ovitz has had the clout to deal with Illuminati kingpin Edgar Bronfman head to head. He requested & got Bronfman to keep his dad employed, which was dutifully done. Edgar Bronfman Jr. had seriously considered having Ovitz head Seagram’s MCA/Universal conglomerate.

Frank G. Wells. Frank was the President & the Chief Operating Officer of The Walt Disney Co. Wells was also on Disney’s board of directors. He was a Rhodes Scholar, and a lawyer in 1955. Those who have read previous books (such as Vol. 1) by this author know how the Rhodes Scholars fit into things & are part of the Illuminati. He worked closely with Eisner & Katzenberg. Frank died in a helicopter crash in the spring of 1994 while heli-skiing in Nevada. His surviving sister is Molly Wells Chappellet who runs around in Illuminati circles. Molly Wells Chappellet has been featured several times in Betty Knight Scripp’s magazine Appellation. Betty Knight Scripp was married to a Bohemian Grove member. Betty has been good friends with: the late Pamela Harriman (who was a recent U.S. ambassador to France & connected to the Rothschilds), as well as good friends with Her Imperial Highness the Grand Duchess of Vladmir of Russia, who owns the Chateau Margaux in Bordeaux. Betty Scripps personally monitors with care what is put into her incredible magazine Appellation. She has a column “Who’s Who in the Wine Country” where the Chappellets have appeared in print numerous times.

Nearly all of Disney’s 1920 movies had a black cat in them. Many had occult slants to the scripts. The occult slant never departed from Disney themes.

Some of DISNEY’S blatantly OCCULT MOVIES.

Aladdin. A wisecracking allpowerful genie is shown.

Bednobs & Broomsticks (1971) A witch finds a magic formula from a lion king. The magic formula raises a ghostly army of armor in a museum which stops a band of German commandos.

Beyond Witch Mountain (1982) A pair of twins leave Witch’s Mountain and have to use their special occult powers to outwit a character named Deranian.

The Black Cauldron (1985), A Horned King uses his magic to fight a clairvoyant pig and the pig’s keeper. This animation cost $25 million, but was a box office failure.

Bride of Boogedy (1987) An evil spirit visits the Davis family and puts the father under a spell. Directed by Oz Scott.

Child of Glass (1978) A glass doll must be found to set a ghost free in a haunted house.

The Gnome-Mobi1e (1967). A multimillionaire and his grandchildren encounter gnomes. In the end the multimillionaire deeds the forest to the gnomes for eternity.

Halloween Hall of Fame (1977). Jack-o-lanterns come to life.

Halloween Treat (1982). Cartoons about Halloween. This was followed the next year with a film Haunted Halloween which talked about the origins of Halloween.

Misadventures of Merlin Jones (1964) A genius tries to help other students. He tries to also use hypnotism & ESP which backfire on him.

Richest Cat in the World (1986) A wealthy man leaves his fortune to his cat, who the relatives later discover can talk.

H. DISNEY & its MOB connections

When this author spoke to the co-author’s deeper Illuminati alters about Disney, their reaction was that Disney had been described to them when they were in the Illuminati as “a syndicate within a syndicate.” They said that while in the Illuminati, they were aware that Disneyland had their own government, their own rules and their own police force. They were a crime syndicate within a syndicate. What these Illuminati alters casually mentioned, was verified by this author the hard way through research. One Disneyland Security Supervisor said, “There is no Constitution at Disneyland. We have our own laws.” Once, when Walt Disney got miffed at a Hollywood policeman, Walt said, “I’ll have your badge.” If Disney guards decide to, they will get very rough physically with people, and assault them in any fashion they see fit. The people they detain are often thrown into tiny cells at Disneyland where they are kept without benefit of a phone call, without benefit of a toilet or water.

The judicial system turns a blind eye to whatever Disney police do. Many people pay Disney to get their children out of a Disney cell, and never get due process of any law. This type of treatment has gone on for decades, and is almost a daily occurrence at Disneyland. The Anaheim Police force is very chummy with the Disney private police force. Also at one point, the Burbank Chief of Police was the brother-in-law to Disney’s Chief of Security. Recently, when a couple filed a wrongful death suit against the Magic Kingdom of Disney in Florida, the state of Florida surprisingly has appeared to have backed off from their traditional behavior of protecting Disney’s sovereignty. An article on the suit said, “”there is evidence of some nervousness with Disney’s relative autonomy.”" (San Francisco Chronicle, article “Mickey’s Dark Side” Oct. 1, ’96, p. C6) An attorney in the case said, “Disney World’s security people aren’t just cops, they are bad ones. I don’t think there is any corporation that has ever had the perceived power that Disney has.”

Richard Foglesong, a professor of politics at Rollins College in Winter Park stated, “Because Disney World controls so much of its corporate and municipal universe, it can’t help but act in a heavy-handed manner in order to ferociously protect its self-interest. They have immunity from state and local land use law. They can build a nuclear plant, distribute alcohol. They have powers local communities don’t have. Do they abuse it? In my opinion, yes.”

In line with Disney’s previous dictatorial policies on their properties, Disney’s new city called Celebration will not have any elected government. Since the city is unincorporated (a neat Disney trick) the mayor is appointed by Disney. Several Disney “quasi-government’” bodies control citizens of the city. For instance, the Celebration Residential Owners Association, which participates in binding all residents to a Declaration of Covenants, a legal binder of rules that residents must live by. Of course the Declaration of Covenants was written by Disney. These rules include such nit picky things as, no more than two people can sleep in the same bedroom, no pickup trucks can be parked in front of homes, and if Disney officials don’t like your cat or dog they can forcibly remove the animal from your home. Disney Corp. has perpetrated numerous deceptions on the residents, incl. shoddy work on their homes, and operating their “”public”" school with Disney cronies. Still, the residents that have moved into Celebration are glowing with praise for the town in spite of the fact that the city is totally run by Big Brother Disney Corp. Of course those who don’t love it, soon leave. So much for the American tradition of self-government.

Some MOB HISTORY.

Traditionally, the mob crime bosses have had a yearly summit. In 1928, they had their yearly conclave at Cleveland. In 1929, they had their secret yearly conclave at Atlantic City. In 1931, they held their secret annual conclave at Wappingers Falls, NY. At the Wappingers Falls meeting, attended by about 300 overlords and soldiers, the heads of the family clans discussed their crime family agendas. They decided where the first national Mafia convention was to be held. Once the Mafia was able to hold their yearly private national meetings, they were able to coordinate their activities, as well as decide such things as:

a. the direction of national & internal operations, and long range plans

b. the promotion of new bosses

c. decisions on turf & rank, commodities & cash

d. hashing out alliances or disputes with the Mishpucka, Triads, FBI, Illuminati, etc. and working with others in a concerted manner. The mafia clans would then leave the annual summit meetings and follow through in their area of operations, until they would meet the next year, review their successes & failures, get new assignments, and decide upon new short & long term goals. In 1927, the Mishpucka worked with Mafia to highjack a bootleg shipment of whiskey travelling from Ireland to Boston for the Kennedy Illuminati family. Most of Kennedy’s guards were killed in the shootout, and J.P. Kennedy had the widows of the guards besieging him for financial assistance. Billy Graham’s good friend Mafia Chief Joseph Bonanno was one of the chiefs who attended the yearly conclaves. He also met with J.F. Kennedy in the Winter of 1959. John Kennedy was known to have said that mobster Sam Giancana worked for his Kennedy family. The mob/Illuminati alliances and infighting are too complex to deal with in this book, but both groups had to put plans into action to deal with the repeal of Prohibition, which would end their lucrative bootlegging. The short term plan for the Mafia was to control the film industry in Hollywood, and to penetrate the unions better. The long term plans called for sending their next few generations of children off to the top schools and getting them into legitimate respectable corporate positions. By learning the ins and outs of honest, legal operations, they could then mix in the illegal operations with their legal ones & look legal.

They planned to extend their power base into politics, the Harvard-Stanford business schools, as well as the finest corporate board rooms. They intended (and have succeeded) in getting some of their offspring to produce/direct T.V./films. They would have an increasing presence within the Bohemian Grove membership, as well as some of the other great social & business clubs. Their plan to take over the film industry hinged on their union control over unions and theaters. The Chicago mob controlled the International Alliance of Theatrical Stage Employees Union. The mob controlled the projectionist’s union, and if the film makers had the theaters where their movies were shown shut down, what good would it be to make movies? The film makers and the mafia both had power & money. Rather than fight a protracted war, they made a deal. The major studios would give about $50,000 a year to the mafia, and the small ones $25,000, to be allowed to function. Other agreements were also reached. Mob henchmen Willie Bioff and George E. Browne were mob lieutenants who orchestrated the mob’s “Hollywood takeover”.

Time Magazine, Nov. 1, 1943, wrote,  “In the witness chair in Manhattan’s Federal Court sat bland, wily Willie Bioft (pronounced Buy-off), blackmailer, panderer, labor leader, and now star witness against eight ex-pals, who are charged with shaking down $1 million from the movie industry…Question: Was it true that Bioft once had a five-year plan for taking over 20% of Hollywood’s profits-and eventually 50% interest In the studios themselves? Bioff (wistfully): “If we’d lasted that long, we would have. Question: “Did you ever say you were boss of Hollywood and could make producers do whatever you wanted?” Bioff: “Yes-and I could make them dance to my tune.”

Although Bioff rolled over on his pals and ended up getting car bombed, that didn’t stop the mob/Mishpucka infiltration & control of Hollywood. (Bioff had tried to save his public image by helping Walt Disney settle his labor dispute with the mob-led unions, but Walt wisely rejected his offer of help, and made sure he didn’t offend the Chicago mob leaders who were disgruntled with Bioff.) Hundreds of millions of dollars were poured by the Mafia & Mishpucka into real estate in southern California, by using legitimate local businessmen to launder the money. Hollywood was declared a “free zone” where all the Mafia/Mishpucka families could operate without a fear of a turf war.”

Let us backtrack slightly to 1930. Columbia distributed Disney cartoons from 1930 until 1932, when Disney switched to United Artists, because Columbia wasn’t bothering to pay Disney the money they owed. In 1930, Cohn, Pres. of Columbia Pictures, got Disney off the financial hook with Powers by intimidating Powers with some street toughs carrying a legal suit. If Disney wasn’t indebted to the mafia before, he was at that point.

Biographers have been puzzled why Disney went into such a traumatic depression after Henry Cohn “helped” him. Tough guy Henry Cohn made sure Walt knew who was boss. His attitude was that Walt should be happy to be paid at all by him for the cartoons Walt supplied Columbia. After this, Walt would lock himself in his room and weep uncontrollably for hours. He was impossible for anyone to get along with. He was unable to focus on anything, and would stare for long periods out the window. Biographers blame Walt’s behavior on the fact that his wife was pregnant. They also blame it on his friend Iwerks defection to another company. Frankly, Walt had treated Iwerk like a dog, and deep down must have known why Iwerk left such an abusive relationship. To claim that he wept for hours day after day because he realized he might become a father is too much to swallow. When Walt was asked years later about why he was so depressed he said it was the stress of the financial situation. Walt said, “I had a nervous breakdown … Costs were going up; each new picture we finished cost more to make than we had figured it would earn when we first began to plan it…I cracked up.”

This author submits to the reader that part of his breakdown may have indeed been the financial stress from having come under the heel of the mafia. They had all the means to make or break him, and he had no choice but to surrender to their overwhelming power to blackmail & destroy him OR to get out of the business. What this did was place Walt in a position where his two strongest traits had to clash–his overwhelming obsession to be his own boss, and his creative obsession to create animation which was wrapped up with his ego & his deep phobias and psychological needs. His mind couldn’t give up its independence nor its creativity without great mental anguish, and therefore Walt was very saddened, knowing that he would have to admit defeat, and buckle under the heels of the big boys. Just when he needed emotional support his wife was going to have a child, and his best animator left. Walt had abandoned Iwerks years before, and Walt’s wife had wanted a child for some time. Iwerk’s departure and his arriving child do not in themselves account for the long intense nervous breakdown that Walt experienced. Biographers point out that Walt was very reluctant to have children, and that he was impotent with women including his wife much of the time. His impotency to carry out normal sex may help explain his secret sexual habits.

Walt’s Masonic brother Carl Laemmle offered Walt a good deal to help him recover from Henry Cohn’s abusive control of Walt, but Carl wanted the copyright to Mickey Mouse in return for the help, and Walt wouldn’t part with Mickey Mouse. Instead, Walt signed a contract offered by Joseph Schenck of UA (United Artists), who was one of the Mafia’s illegal drug kingpins. In 1935, the mob’s illegal drug dealer Joseph Schenck went on to found 20th Century, Inc. which later merged with Fox in ‘38 to form Twentieth Century-Fox, whose board of directors would include two Illuminati kingpins William Randolph Hearst and Malcolm MacIntyre. Joseph Schenck’s brother Nicholas Schenck and Marcus Loew merged Metro Pictures and Goldwyn Pictures and named Louis B. Mayer as its head.

Meanwhile over the years, MCA, headed up by Illuminati Kingpin Lew Wasserman gained a monopoly over the American film industry with the secret backroom deals that they made with Ronald Reagan’s Screen Actor’s Guild and Petrillo’s American Fed, of Musicians. (By the way, Lew Wasserman would try to revive Reagan’s acting career in the early ‘60’s. Frank Sinatra and Walt Disney were both friends of Ronald Reagan, and all three believed in mind-control.)

Ronald Reagan and Petrillo in turn worked with the Mafia’s NCS Council of 9 (which incl. Anthony Accardo and Sam Giancana), which at one point divided the U.S. into 24 mob territories. After J. Schenck went to jail (very briefly), he was replaced as Pres. of 20th-Cent. Fox by Spyros Skouras. Before his arrest, while Schenck was still in charge of 20th-Cent. Fox, he made numerous offers to Disney for Disney to incorporate his studio as a subdivision of 20th-Cent. Fox. Disney worked for a few years with them distributing his films, but he would not let go of trying to be independent. The FBI and American Intelligence turned to the mob to help them as the U.S. entered WW II. Perhaps Walt’s mob connection added impetus for his recruitment. Walt went to a number of American Nazi meetings prior to Pearl Harbor. This author believes from knowing Walt’s personality that Walt may have been on assignment, rather than a Nazi sympathizer. Still, why does one of Disney’s pre-Pearl harbor cartoons display a swastika? Disney’s Epcot Resorts is close to the mob’s Atlantic City Board Walk with its nightclubs. The resort was designed by Robert A.M. Stern. (This author doesn’t know about Robert Stern, but there are programmed multiples and Illuminati members within the Stern family.)

At Walt Disney World, the nightclub there was named “Cage”, and then later ’8 TRAX”. Comedy Warehouse, which is a nightclub at Pleasure Island in Walt Disney World opened on May 1, 1989 and has used slave comedians as well having people who are mind-control abusers. On Feb. 11, 1987, Walt Disney Co. was reincorporated in Delaware. Delaware is the only state that allows total corporate secrecy. No one can find out who really is running a Delaware corporation, and many other secrets can be hidden under Delaware’s corporation laws. Capital Group has considerable shares in Disney, as well as 29% of the shares of the Robert Mondavi winery at 7801 St. Helena Hwy, Oakville, CA. Wellington Group and Mellon bank also have shares. Behind Capital Group are mob controlled groups like Debartolo Reality Corp. and La Quinta Inns (a Bass bro. operation.) Sam Bronfman operates Sterling & Monterey Vineyards. There are countless people walking around that have felt the ruthless, impersonal, controlling, money-grabbing side of the Disney Corp. Also, there are a number of journalists who have experienced first hand the secrecy and paranoia that the Disney corporation has. Most journalists are not used to the secrecy that pervades Disney. Because Disney has shaped the myths of America for several generations, the public takes more concern over who is running Disney, than they would other institutions. Because most of America believe in the image that the Illuminati have built for Disney, they are rooting for it to succeed.

How the Disney Executives have figured out how to steal land all across the U.S.

Over the years Walt Disney has developed several very sneaky reliable techniques to acquire land. They acquire land through their executives and large stockholders and family members of the execs and stockholders. After all the deals are made in an area, and when everything is in place over a period of time, these people then turn their land over to Disney. Disney works with government officials and local bankers to line up special deals so they can succeed in their plans. After everything is lined up, the corporation announces their plans and goes forward. This methodology has been used repeatedly, for instance the American History Theme Park in the Manassas Civil War battlefield area of Virginia for which Disney has acquired 1,800 acres and has access to at least 1,200 more. In Nov. ‘94, after a new Virginia governor was elected, the Virginia “Disney’s America” project was announced, and Virginia voted almost instantly for the money for transportation and infrastructure improvements to the area so that Disney’s theme park would be viable. Disney set up 3 banks in Napa, CA. Their banks made loans to old families in the valley. The trusts and the wills for these families were made up by Stanford Univ. grads. These people set on the boards of these banks or connect with the boards of these banks. They charge large fees, and know every trick in the book to rob people of their estates and their living trusts. The Stanford grads, who connect in with intelligence agencies & the mob use certain code words when they set up their businesses, such as RESOURCE, EVERGREEN and PACIFIC. There are a number of scared landholders who are being intimidated to sell their land in the Napa Valley region.

DISNEY and the GOVERNMENT

Just prior to W.W. II, the FBI recruited Walt Disney. His job was to spy on Hollywood or anything else that looked suspicious. Documents obtained from the Freedom of Information Act, in spite of heavy censoring, clearly show that Walt Disney became a paid Special Correspondent asset of the FBI. He reported to FBI agent E.E. Conroy. In 1954, Walt was promoted to Special Agent in Charge (SAC) which means others reported to him.

After “leaving” the CIA, ex-DCI (ex-head) of the CIA William Hedgcock Webster became a lawyer for the Wash. D.C. based firm of Milbank, Tweed, Hadley and McCloy. In 1993, when news broke about Walt Disney’s FBI membership, ex-CIA head Webster worked with the Disney family to cover up to the public that Walt Disney was an FBI agent. Webster went on TV and had interviews to spread the fabrication that Walt was not connected to the FBI. Why? One of the countless items that Disney was involved in was the investigation into the disappearance/rape of a six-year old child Rose Marie Riddle on 1/12/61.

According to documents gotten from the Freedom of Information Act, W.G. Simon was the FBI agent who met with SAC Walt Disney in L.A. about the case. W.G. Simon has been one of those people who has been publicly lying by claiming that Walt Disney never was an FBI agent. The paper trail proves otherwise. Why is it so important to the FBI and CIA to cover up that Walt was an FBI agent? Walt also worked for the CIA, even though documentation of that is not available. This author theorizes that the reason the FBI and CIA are so touchy about letting people know that Walt worked for the government is that the Network knows how the FBI and CIA worked together to procure children for mind-control programming purposes. Because Disney and Disneyland played such as enormous role in Mind-control, Disney’s connection to them, although on the surface a seemingly minor fact, is in reality a minor fact setting on top of an enormous ghastly secret.

When W.W. II started, the government incorporated the Disney studios into the war machine. The military paid Disney $80,000 for 20 training cartoon, which cost Disney $72,000 to make. Disney studios also made some secret films for the military. Mickey Mouse and Goofy cartoons were slanted to have war themes, for instance, the Goofy cartoon of 1941 “The Art of Self Defense” and “How to be a Sailor” in 1944. Perhaps in honor of the contribution Disney had made to the war effort, “Mickey Mouse” was the password of the Allies for millions of men on the big D-Day invasion on June 6,1944.

Walt Disney produced a cartoon showing Donald Duck paying his taxes faithfully. The film was entitled The New Spirit. It was very successful in getting Americans to comply with the IRS. In 1946, Disney made a film for the public schools for sex education entitled The Story of Menstruation. For the United Nations, Walt Disney created “It’s a Small World” attraction for UNICEF for the ‘64-65 World’s Fair. This attraction was moved to the theme parks & has been a major feature for mind-control. After learning of the enormous amount of mind-control programming going on during after hours in secret tunnels at Disney as well as in the public facilities, it makes more sense why the Russian Premier Nikita Khrushchev would be denied a visit to Disneyland by the U.S. government “due to security considerations” when he was visiting the U.S. in Sept. 1959. Khrushchev obviously had his own security working in tandem with American security and the intelligence people for whatever reason(s) didn’t want the complication of these Russians going to a major programming site.

Some powerful military men have been connected to Disney films. Two former commanding officers of the USS Alabama nuclear sub were technical advisors for the Disney film Crimson Tide. Walt Disney was tied to the U.S. government, and recent disclosures show that he was tied to the FBI. Walt used his FBI connection to destroy the life of Art Babbitt, who had led the strike against Disney in 1940. Babbitt found that everything he attempted in life after the strike was ruined by some hidden power. Was Walt part of naval intelligence attached to the FBI? Was he part of the FBI that is involved with child procurement and mind-control?

In the 1950’s the Illuminati began organizing covens on the West coast and began solidifying their power. (This comes from several independent sources.) Likewise, it’s clear that Disney didn’t have the clout in 1953 with local governments, that it does today. Walt Disney was unsuccessful when he tried to get permission from the city of Los Angeles and the Burbank City Council for the construction of Disneyland (called Disneylandia at that time), in the Burbank area. One Burbank councilman told Walt, “We don’t want the carny atmosphere in Burbank.”" Inconsistently, within a few years they gave permission to Universal to build an amusement park in Burbank, which opened in 1964. Disney then ask the Stanford Research Institute to locate a spot for Disneylandia (Disneyland), which they found at Anaheim.

In recent years, Disney decided they wanted to build another amusement park (called California Adventure) across from Disneyland. In order to do so, the Interstate highway will have to have changes, and the Anaheim city council needed to approve the large 55 acre expansion. In contrast to the Burbank City Council in 1953, Anaheim’s City Council was enthusiastic about the expansion in spite of lots of local opposition. The locals complained at council meetings to the City Council that the city had no business going hundreds of millions of dollars into debt to help a corporate giant. (Anaheim will issue $400 million in bonds.) Locals also raised concerns that the public school system in Anaheim is stressed to the breaking point where they are considering going to half days, and that Disney Corporation should give as much consideration for the school children of Anaheim as they do to their Amusement park. Disneyland’s Pres.

Paul Pressler bragged about Disney’s new California Adventure amusement park, “Disney’s California Adventure is really a celebration of the fun, the beauty, the people and the accomplishments of this magical state. We really have set out to try to capture a bit of what the California dream is all about.” (Sounds like the dream is to be wealthy and control people. The elite would rather give us BREAD & CIRCUS than an education.) The Dragnet films were done in part at the Disney studios. In an Office Memo from the 66-new LA SAC FBI agent to Hoover (12/16/54), which was obtained via the Freedom of Information Act, the typed memo states, “Mr. Disney has volunteered representatives of this office complete access to the facilities of Disneyland for use in connection with official matters…” Historically, we now know that Disney’s use for “official matters” included mind-control.

J. DISNEY & MIND CONTROL

Once the reader is familiar with the programming scripts, the reader merely needs to watch the Disney “Adventures in Wonderland” that come on TV in the morning to see Disney mind-control at work. Within a few minutes one morning, this author had seen a white rabbit create “a world in your mind” (the quote is what the show said!) with a ring, watched Alice go through the mirrors, watched a White Rabbit [the programmer] read a book to a little girl, and the TV listener be told by the show “The White Rabbit is our only hope!” The deeper alters of Illuminati slaves who are programmed for espionage, for spying & blackmail, & seduction & assassination, are given programming to live in a fantasy world. They never touch base with reality.

Much of this type of programming has gone on at Disneyland. Disneyland visitors are taken in a boat where dolls sing an around-the-world theme song “It’s a small small world”. These doll world parts of the amusement parks are used for programming assassination & espionage alters. The song & dolls play important roles in these alter’s mind-control programming. Some slaves at around age 19, have this type of programming tested to make sure it is solidly in place. The song “It’s a Small World” was composed by the Sherman brothers for Disney originally as a theme song for a ride at the ’63-’65 NY World’s Fair.

The Sherman brothers were talent that Disney discovered. They were born in NYC, and both graduated from Beverly Hills High School. They wrote Disney songs for at least 29 films. Mind-controlled slaves, who repeatedly bump into each other, but don’t know why, will be found saying, “It’s a small, small world.” Both rituals & programming go on at Disney amusement parks during both the day & night.

Steven Rockefeller and Walt Disney travelled and spent time together with Dr. Hadley Cantril, an establishment expert on human behavior. (See There Was Once A Time of Islands, Illusions & Rockefellers. NY: Harcourt Brace Jovanovich, 1975.) When Walt Disney began Walt Disney World he sent Card Walker to the Florida capital to request quid pro quo, and the governor gave it to Disney. What that meant is that Disney’s property in Florida was totally controlled under Disney’s jurisdiction, they had their own laws, their own police force, their own hospitals, and their own tax rate. No outside authority would interfere with Disney’s jurisdiction. DisneyWorld’s finances would be untouchable and out of sight by the state of Florida. Never had so much power been given away. DisneyWorld became its own crime syndicate within the syndicate. Disney amusement parks are like a city within a city. They have there own security forces, and the local police allow the Disney security forces to take care of their turf. Disney has their own policies (laws). Some of the security forces can be identified in plain clothes with clean-cut hair styles and have communication devices. The security forces have a headquarters room where TV monitors display-live the exit points at Disney as well as other locations.

America ‘s Most Wanted has a fairly large file on children who have been kidnapped at Disney Amusement Parks. One mother, who got separated from her child when getting off a train, frantically told a guard her child was missing. The guard took her to the monitor room, where they saw the kidnapper carrying the child out of the park with the boy slumped over his shoulder. In that short of a time, the kidnapper had drugged the child, cut his hair different, and put a different shirt on him. (This anecdote was mention in Inside the Mouse, pg. 52)

As written before, white slavery is part of what Disney is all about. This mother was one of the fortunate few who did manage to find their kidnapped children. An insider states that the Disney police are definitely part of those moving and abusing innocent children brought in for occult rituals. In addition, the Disney security forces spy on their own employees. Employees do not enter the theme parks like the visitors, nor do they move around like the visitors. They have underground tunnels and underground entrances and facilities for that. One victim of total mind-control mentioned that a tunnel entrance was at the Matterhorn mountain at Disneyland. (The Matterhorn was opened by Walt and his good-friend Richard Nixon, who rode in the first car down the mountain.)

The Disney productions has given the Illuminati the cover to bring together Illusionists, magicians, and special effects artists without anyone being suspicious. Some of these men were able to apply their talents toward programming children. As an example of their talents, Disney special effects artists were able to create 16 realistic-looking cadavers for the 1989 film Gross Anatomy. Walt Disney, Inc. has teamed up with Los Alamos and Sandia Labs, two other groups which are heavily involved in mind-control and people control to develop body scans, branding and access codes for the visitors to Disney’s theme parks.

Each of the Disney Theme parks, such as Disneyland, DisneyWorld, EuroDisney etc. have vast underground facilities. These underground facilities allow many of the workers to get to the ride areas via underground passages. Each theme facility also has a vast infrastructure underground in order to maintain it. The underground areas contain wardrobe design and repair units, fitting rooms, restrooms, cafeterias, security units, computers, freight ramps, utility encasements, and large connecting tunnels. The underground areas also have programming rooms. They have their own power plants and water systems and their own police force. Disney company employs 71,000 people at several locations, tone recent TV show used the figure 40,000 Disney employees.] People are coming and going 24 hours at the Disney theme parks. Three shifts keep up the 24 hour business. The night crews maintain and repair the parks for the thousands of people that will soon arrive in the morning.

Disneyland makes a natural prop for carrying out mind-control. The items they sell are also natural props–such as the Goofy watch ($19.95) which has hands that move backward to confuse a slave as to what time it is. Was Walt Disney aware of how Disneyland was used for programming? There is no doubt. Disney lived much of nights at Disneyland, and had an apartment at the firehouse near the train station on Main St. At night, if he was not doing anything else, he’d roam the grounds of Disneyland scribbling notes on his own distinctive blue paper, which he’d leave for workers to follow the next day. The notes would say such things as “Replace these flowers,” or “Move that bench”. (Prince of the Magic Kingdom, p. 25) Walt Disney knew everything that went on in his Magic Kingdom.

The Epcot Center and the Disney amusement parks market all kinds of occult triggers, including crystals, rainbows, wizards etc. that reinforce the programming. The Epcot Center has two glass pyramids along with its “Journey into Imagination”. Disneyworld has the Island of Atlantis on its sub tour. Fantasyland is one of the most used tours of Disneyland for mind-control purposes. It has carousels, merry music, an incredible castle, boat rides, story book characters etc. Sleeping Beauty Castle with its blue turrets and gold spires is the central visual object of Disneyland. You cross a drawbridge to get into it. Inside Fantasyland are Illuminati programming sites such as the Mad Hatter teacups, the King Arthur carousel horses, and Snow White’s forest.

In the far corner of Disneyland’s New Orlean’s Square is the Haunted Mansion. This mansion is designed to frighten and scare, it has an ingenious design and many special effects and illusions. Realistic ghosts, a screeching raven, howling voices, and other scary things welcome the visitor. Life size holograms are created at the Haunted Mansion, and dance in sync with the music and then fade out at certain points. There is a hologram of a woman’s head in a crystal ball who chatters non-stop. A real good laugh for the programmers of a little child. When you are toward the end, you will have a chance to look into a mirror where a hologram ghost will nestle up beside you.

Star Speeder is another great programming location at Disneyland. It was the creation of George Lucas and the Disney Imagineers. The technology is borrowed from Star Wars, and is similar to flight simulators used by the military to train pilots. Disneyland Hotel offers Character Breakfasts, where children eat breakfast with Disney characters, to people who make special arrangements. U.S. Special Forces, which carries out mind-control, owns two hotels near Disney World, and the Mormons have one also. Knott’s Berry Farm with its Ghost Town, Amusement Park, & its Charlie Brown themes and characters is near Disneyland.

One of the Disney executives began one of the most horrible trauma-based mind-control programming centers in Los Angeles called Magic Castle a comedy warehouse. This trauma center had horrible torture chambers. Children were brought in from South and Central America to be programmed at the Magic Castle. A brave L.A. policeman exposed the place–for which he lost his job, and eventually was able to get the site closed.

One of Disney’s recent ventures in their Disney Institute, which Newsweek labeled “the Disneyland of the Mind”. (Newsweek, Mar. 4, 1996, p. 61) A private club called Club 33 at Disneyland located upstairs in the New Orleans Square is believed to be involved in mind-control. Cub’s Den supervises children’s activities at the Wilderness Lodge Resort at Walt Disney World. At Disney-MGM studios the major attraction is the Twilight Zone Tower of Terror. Guests take a strange scary trip through the hotel, where guests are finally sent into an elevator that drops out of control 13 stories. The ride has been advertized on TV. Disneyland now has a Temple to the Forbidden Eye–which is simply a Temple to the All Seeing Eye, the Illuminati symbol. Visitors, who have the patience to wait in line, can strap themselves in for a ride that is like a jack hammer that jars the rider through a temple filled with snakes, rats, and mummies. One aerobics teacher couldn’t walk for three days after the jarring ride, which comes across as “hokey”. The experience is more traumatizing than fun, but then maybe that is what was intended.

DISNEY VACATIONS FOR THE ELITE

Years ago this author’s newsletters exposed Hilton Head Island, SC as a watering hole of the powerful elite incl. retired generals and admirals, and the site for the elite’s Renaissance Weekend “meat market”. Remember, that at one time Hilton Head Island was private, with imported alligators in the water around it. A person was only allowed on the island by going through security gates with a clearance. In a later newsletter, Disney’s Hilton Head Island Resort was mentioned. This resort, built by Disney Vacation Development, Inc., is located on a 15-acre private island linked to Hilton Head island by a narrow bridge. Members to the Disney Vacation Club can exchange time for vacations at Disney and other resorts around the world. Memberships cost minimum $9,412.

(Chapter 5 Page 4)

——————————————————————————–

MELODYLAND

Right smack across from the entrance to Disneyland is the Assembly of God’s Melodyland Christian Center, the birthplace of TEN (Trinity Broadcasting Network). The Assembly of God denomination has been heavily infiltrated by the Illuminati, and has been heavily used as a front for programmed slaves.

Paul Crouch, president of Trinity Broadcasting Systems, Inc., was affiliated with Melodyland in 1973 when TBS was getting started. At that time, Melodyland was a rich heavily infiltrated charismatic church, with its share of programmed multiples. In 1973, closet homosexual minister Jim Bakker, and his wife Tammy Faye, a programmed multiple were with Paul Crouch in Anaheim at Melodyland. Paul Crouch had been the assistant pastor of Bakker’s home church in Muskegon, MI. Crouch’s right hand man was Alexander Valderrama, a charismatic Roman Catholic. TBS used an abandoned military base as their TV complex, using hangers as studios. In the early 70’s, ABC put Bakker & Crouch’s early shows on their affiliate stations on Sunday morning. Bakker had already gotten his career kicked off with Illuminatus Pat Robertson and his 700 Club. Jim Bakker split and went to the east coast. To help Bakker with his money, Bill Perkins, who had been a financial analyst for the World Order’s mind-control research at Sandia National Labs in Livermore came to help Bakker run his ministry’s finances. Later, televangelist Bakker began building Heritage USA, which was to be a big-money resort. Bakker hired people who had worked for Disney to construct Heritage USA. Bakker studied Disneyland, Disneyworld, and other Disney places as a model for Heritage USA.

After Disneyworld opened in Florida, Jim Bakker was a REGULAR visitor to it. Heritage USA’s Ft. Heritage was modelled after Disney’s Ft. Wilderness, Main St. was modelled after the Magic Kingdom’s Main St., and Disney’s wrought-iron fencing was also copied. Most people are aware of Jim Bakker’s $265,000 payoff to Jessica Hahn to keep her sexual services to him a secret, his longtime homosexual relationship with his right hand man David Taggart, and his prison sentence.

James Orson (named after Orson Welles) Bakker was from Muskegon, the same place that Cathy O’Brien, a freed Mind-controlled slave came from. He was born pre-mature, and had some interesting family situations that make his family suspect. While Cathy O’Brien got programmed via the Catholics, Jim was part of another denomination which also was into programming, the charismatic Assemblies of God. His grandfather, who lived next door to Jim, and where Jim spent much childhood time with was popularly known in town as a “huckster”, and nicknamed Kingfish after the manipulative character on Amos & Andy. Tammy his wife grew up in International Falls, MN in poverty in the home of her stepfather and mother. Besides having a “shopping demon,” she has had her share of phobias and mental problems, as can be expected from someone who has had to suffer through programming.

It would be worth pointing out who has come to Jim Bakker’s rescue when he was under attack. For instance, on Thursday, Oct. 4, 1984 when Jim was under attack, Jim Bakker’s show had six people give endorsements and praise of Jim Bakker. Those were Ronald Reagan, Dale Evans, Robert Schuller, Oral Roberts, Billy Graham and Rex Hubbard. Of those, this author knows for sure that all are masons, except for Rex, who may or may not be. Robert Schuller, Billy Graham and Oral Roberts are “Christian ministers” who participate in using and handling mind-control slaves. These three ministers all participate in secret Satanic rituals. The last few paragraphs have given only a sketchy picture of the intimate relationship between Disney Mind-control and the charismatic movement and its use of trauma-based total mind-control.

DISNEYANA FOR THE PROGRAMMED & OBSESSED.

For people who have been programmed with Disney programming and who are obsessed with Mickey Mouse and everything else about Disney, and for other people who just have the collecting spirit for Disney memorabilia, there is a group called Disneyana.

Disneyana, was organized in the 1980’s, and consists of people who are cult-like in their devotion to anything true Disney. Some of them to express their devotion outwardly tatoo their bodies with Disney characters. This group holds their annual convention at the Contemporary Resort in FL. One Disneyana at the annual convention said, “We collect to keep the good feeling inside.” Another when interviewed said, “This is why it’s all about love.” The author knows as a fact some of the men who are obsessed with Mickey Mouse & Disney items are programmed multiples.

One of Kenneth Anger’s occult friends has had the world’s largest Mickey Mouse collection. Who is Kenneth Anger? Kenneth Anger, a member of LaVey’s Magick Circle & later his Church of Satan, is an occultist and an underground film maker. Kenneth Anger (he choose the last name Anger) was raised on the Wizard of Oz books. His biographer Bill Landis writes that the Oz books “laid the groundwork for Ken’s attraction to Crowley, the occultist who would rework Rosicrucian thought into his own magical system.” Ken was obsessed with Crowley’s life & magic. As a child, Ken had danced with Shirley Temple in competition after she became a child star. Ken Anger loved the OTO’s solar phallic religion, and was also obsessed with Mickey Mouse. He spent part of his time studying his friend’s Mickey Mouse collection. Ken Anger did his casting for his film “Lucifer Rising” by telling occult friends & acquaintances that they could live out their goddess or god power-trip fantasies by acting for him. The British government’s National Film Finance Corp. fronted 15,000£ for Lucifer Rising’s production. Famous occult musician Jimmy Page did the sound track gratis. Ken Anger acted as the film’s Magus and made his Magus role resemble Mickey Mouse in the film Fantasia. (The role Fantasia plays in mind-control programming will follow as the last part of this chapter.) “Lucifer Rising” also starts with Fantasia-type volcanoes. Another of his well-known films was “Invocation of My Demon Brother.”

Mind-control features in Disney movies.

The elements within Disney movies that are intentionally put in for mind-control would take volumes to describe. A detailed description of how just one Disney movie is used as a programming script soon follows. Fantasia was selected as the example. A random sampling of features in Disney movies for mind-control programming could include:

· Cogworth the enchanted mantle clock in Beauty and the Beast.

· The character Door Knob, which is a doorknob portrayed as a person in the Disney cartoon Alice In Wonderland, is useful for programming door knob alters.

· The Blue Yonder is a Disney movie on time travel of a young boy. Time travel movies are used for programming to mess up the victim’s sense of time.

· Disney film “Animated Alphabet” has letters which come alive, which is useful for programming. And what about the ‘82 Disney movie “Computers are People, Too!” ?

· All the Illuminati members this author is aware of who have received trauma-based total mind-control were taught to astrally project and study on the astral plane what they needed to learn. A Disney movie that portrays this is Goofy over Dental Health. This is an educational film released by Disney in ‘91 and again in ‘93, where Goofy places a magical toothbrush under a child’s pillow, so that the child astrally projects to a dentist office and while on the astral plane studies how to have healthy teeth.

· Illuminati alters believe that trees and flowers are alive. The 1932 Disney film Flowers and Trees is a story about two trees who fall in love. The film portrays the occult belief that trees can talk and sing. Internally, alter systems will be constructed with singing trees and flowers that represent people and which are alters. The singing trees give out internal codes to move alters internally where they need to go.

Return to Oz. (1985) This Disney film begins its story line about a girl who is thought to have psychological problems because of her tales of Oz. She is warned not to talk about Oz by her relatives. She is taken to a psychologist who wears a big ruby ring, who tells Dorothy that electroshocks won’t hurt her, and that we are at the “dawn of a New Age.” Dorothy is told that her memories are “just dreams” that stem from excess electrical current in the brain. She is sent to a mental institution to receive shock treatments for talking about Oz. A lightening storm allows her to escape the shock treatments and when she sleeps, she awakes in Oz.

In Oz she goes through many mind-control scenarios, ruby slippers, mirrors, etc., and toward the end visits with evil Mombi, Princess of Oz who keeps Ozma (Dorothy’s twin) as a slave. Mombi eventually casts a spell and enchants Ozma into a mirror. Sci-Fi author J.D. Vinge in her Return to Oz based on the screen play writes on pg. 211-212, “Dorothy gazed at herself in the mirror, seeing her own reflection, and remembering the moment when she had looked at herself and seen someone else there, someone so like her that it could have been her sister.” Parts of this film were filmed near Stonehenge, Eng. Disney has put out several films on the Wizard of Oz theme, all of which were used for programming. The original series of Oz books were by Baum.

In ’39, MGM did the famous Wizard of Oz film. In the Disney movie Tron (1982), a young computer genius goes into an altered state where he ends up becoming a computer program. After defeating the MCP, he returns to the real world. This is simply a programming script. A special effects team created a 3-D world, showing how talented Disney special effects people can be in making something seem real. This movie should show people their mind-control capabilities.

Mathematical Applications Group, Inc. (MAGI) were one of the groups that created the graphics. Disney came out with 3 videos of new adventures in Wonderland which are mind-control programming. In the mornings here 9-9:30, on channel 21, Disney has a Wonderland Show every morning which is mind-control programming for children. Within a few minutes, this author had seen a girl walk through a mirror, the 3 lives of Thomasina mentioned, and a little ditty “I’m a little tea-pot” where a person becomes a tea pot. They also had an “under the umbella” scene. This was all pure programming, right on TV. Of course, they show the White Rabbit as a central figure.

ABC under the auspices of Disney produced a lengthy 140 min. film Wild Palms which depicts Illuminati mind-control and life. One reader of Vol. 2 stated that the Wild Palms movie would have made no sense except that having read the Vol. 2 book, the movie made lots of sense in the light of Vol. 2’s revelations. The film depicts how children are kidnapped, switched at birth, programmed via TV cartoons, programmed to kill and use stun guns etc. The film depicts Illuminati bloodlines and arranged marriages. Although the name Illuminati” is not used, if viewers substitute in the name “the Fathers” for Illuminati fathers, they will get an insider’s view of life at the top. The main controllers are addressed by their slaves as “Papa” or “Daddy” or “Mother”. This is true to life.

A person opposed to the Fathers states, “One day we will wake up and discover we don’t own this country and no one will care.” The movie states that events are not happening randomly. The movie shows an underground tunnel system which has an entrance hidden by a swimming pool. Quite a few actual programming codes were said during the film, for instance, “down, down, down through the pool of tears…” and “we’re going to go down the yellow brick road now.” The movie was created by Bruce Wagner, who obviously is an insider concerning trauma-based total mind-control. The fact the movie was made shows the arrogance of the programmers’ beliefs that their criminal acts in programming thousands of little children will not be exposed, and that people will be too stupid to realize that what is put out as fiction is actually mirroring what is happening. It’s like they believe their own script that IF people did find out “no one will care.” Because so much of the Illuminati programming involves the creation and programming of 3 alters linked into trinities, it is not surprising that Disney has helped such triad programming with a series of movies about threesomes, including:

3 Blind Mouseketeers

Three Caballeros

3 little pigs

Three Little Wolves

3 Lives of Thomasina

The Three Musketeers

3 Ninjas

Three Orphan Kittens

For Mickey Mouse programming they came out with Thru the Mirror, where Mickey Mouse steps through his bedroom mirror and ends up in another world (altered state). Not all of the Disney movies that have mind-control programming themes got released to the public. One unreleased cartoon had Penelope fleeing from a sinister looking Grandfather Clock which is carrying her to another world, and has another scene where Penelope tries to hold onto someone who personifies the Wind.

George Lucas, who directed the movie Star Wars, which was a movie planned by the Illuminati & used for Illuminati programming, also directed Disney’s movie “Captain EO”. Captain EO (who looks like a demonic entity) goes to rescue the Queen (who looks like the harlot describes as Mystery Babylon in the Bible). The Queen is in captivity simply because she and her people believe in black and white (which represent good and evil). When they renounce such a belief, they are saved by Michael Jackson (in actual life a mind-controlled slave) playing Captain EO. It’s a New Age witchcraft film through & through.

By the way, Michael Jackson has gone to Disney amusement parks many times, sometimes in disguise. It is public knowledge that his Jehovah’s Witness family has been very abusive mentally and physically to their children.

Disney has put out several movies on how the mind works, such as the educational film The Brain & Nervous System in 1990. Their film Runaway Brain is a cartoon where Dr. Frankenollie transplants Mickey’s brain into a monster’s body & vice-versa. A 1994 film, Puppet Masters shows the govt.’s secret Office of Scientific Intelligence trying to save the U.S. from aliens who live in human bodies.

In recent years, Bette Midler has been Disney’s main actress. In the Vol. 2, it was exposed that she is possibly a Monarch Mind-controlled slave. She is famous for her “mood swings” (switches in personality), and she had a “mental breakdown” in 1985. Her eyes and body gestures are those of a programmed multiple. She has gone out on tour for Disney without making money, and she is best of friends with Jeffrey Katzenberg (second in command at Disney). Jeffrey Katzenberg by the way is extremely disliked by his counterpart Sid Sheinberg. Bette Midler plays Stella in the movie Stella. Stella is an occult name. In the movie, the script seems tailored for Bette Midler and for someone who is a programmed slave, rather than the actress fitting the role. At the movie’s end, Stella (Bette Midler) attends her own daughter’s marriage by peeking in a window and watching from the outside.

This is the script they give so many of the parts of a slave, so that they feel unworthy and feel like they are always on the outside looking in at life. Many parts (personalities) of slaves find it hard to connect with real life, because they feel they are on the outside looking in. And then in true Disney fashion, Disney had Bette Midler play the role of the lead witch in Hocus Pocus. The movie Hocus Pocus does some hocus pocus of its own. While pretending to make fun of witchcraft, they actually teach witchcraft. They do make the 3 witches look comical. By the way, the 3 witches stand for the maiden, mother, crone combo that the Illuminati reverence.

Disney subtly works in deep occult things, such as the all-seeing eye on the cover of the book, the little girl promising the cat (who is a familiar spirit) that her descendants would always care for it (true, because the cat was a generational spirit). The cat is killed in the movie but can’t die. And Bette Midler as lead witch in her costume, which has some Mother-of-Darkness symbology on it, states as she gets ready to take the life force from an innocent girl, “We want to live forever, so we take children’s lives.” This is wholesome entertainment for children?

The Disney capacity for deception extends to its own workers. PR men recruit young people for its Disney College program. They tell the young people what a great stepping stone it will be for their careers. They have been known to make it sound like the greatest thing in your life. Kids come from all over the country due to the slick recruiting tactics to work for Disney. They are then housed in Disney housing, given menial jobs, and paid low wages. Most people in the College Program leave disillusioned. If the worker happens to think of a great idea, Disney officials have been known to steal the idea, and because the worker was working for Disney the worker will find that they are unable to get any credit or money for the idea that Disney steals and makes millions off of. One uncredited creator of a Disney sale item said, “literally, they’re using everybody for everything.” (Inside the Mouse, p. 239.)

>>> Next, will be the script for how the Disney film Fantasia has been used as a standard programming tool since the 1940’s by the Illuminati.

K. DETAILED SCRIPT ON HOW THE DISNEY FILM FANTASIA IS USED FOR PROGRAMMING TRAUMA-BASED MIND-CONTROLLED SLAVES.

During the 1950’s, ‘60’s, and ‘70’s at least 90% of the Illuminati’s trauma-based mind-controlled slaves were subjected to watching Disney’s Fantasia film in order for them to build the foundational imagery of the mind-control. Child mind-control victims had their eyes taped open, and then sat one-on-one with their primary programmers so that the programmers could give the scripts as the child watched Disney’s Fantasia over and over. What made Fantasia unique as a programming tool is that it had almost everything the programmers needed to create the foundational imagery for their trauma-based mind-control. To build a dependable alter system means that the worlds need a solid foundation. Fantasia has provided the means to get a solid foundation for the internal worlds that the Illuminati slaves build in their mind. It is also a masterpiece in coordinating color and music.

The Disney film Fantasia which premiered on Nov. 13, 1940 (at Broadway Theater in NYC) was a financial disaster as a movie, but was an Illuminati programming masterpiece. The film was released to theaters in ‘40, ‘46, ‘56, ‘63, ‘69, ‘77, ‘82, ‘85, ‘90 in order to catch every generation of children. The video was released in 1991.

During programming much of the child slave’s mind will watch the film. One particular part (alter) will be forced to memorize everything in the film. This small part (small alter) is well hidden in each victim’s mind. This small alter, who has a vivid and total recall of the film Fantasia, is locked carefully away so that ONLY an access code will pull him/her up. Watching the videotape Fantasia is not going to pull this alter up. The programmers pull this alter up when they have a clean slate alter. When they are taking a clean slate of the mind, they will pull the clean part up and have the alter who has memorized Fantasia throw its memory onto an internal big screen.

The internal Outer space (aka Rubicon) is shaped like an amphitheater, and functions as a big vast screen for replay. There is an internal ball or sun created via the lighting effect of the movie Fantasia, so that the movie appears projected in the mind as on a globe. And the Fantasia film images hit this internal globe and go circular in the mind and spin through the system. The programmer will then say to the new part “THIS IS WHAT I WANT YOU TO CREATE. THIS IS WHAT WE NEED.” In this fashion, Fantasia has provided the programmers with their primary tool for taking a dissociated clean slate part of the mind, and manipulating it to become a new workable part within the system. The young part that holds the entire Fantasia memory is strategically placed in the system so that it can be called up from anyplace in the system. No matter where the programmer is working in the system, he can access this small alter whose function is to remember the movie. Most of the system will go into a trance sleep if shown the movie. The front (as well as most of the system’s alters) will be totally amnesic to having ever seen the movie. Since the programming put in with Fantasia is so fundamental it should come as no surprise that the programmers have done an excellent job in protecting this programming from everyone, including the slave. Abreacting the film for many alters could rip the system apart, because after the film is memorized severe trauma begins to be overlaid and attached to the film. There may be some small alters that still carry tiny bits and pieces of memory of the movie, but only one will really remember it.

The following script will be a running account of how Fantasia has been used as an important preparatory film for Illuminati trauma-based mind-control to train the mind-control victim’s mind to be able to visualize the programming that will be layered in.

The time clock will begin when the feature film’s action begins, and then will run its entire 116 minutes. This will give the researcher of mind-control a blow-by-blow description of how a Disney movie is used for programming. The film was often shown to child victims around 3 to 4 years of age with a wide screen while the child was under a guided LSD trip. (Prior to the use of LSD some other drugs were used.)

A Grande Dame or Mother-of-Darkness often worked with the Illuminati programmer as an Assistant Programmer. The scripts & the programming have already been discussed prior to showing the child the film, so the programmers know the direction they want to take the child, & will tailor some of what is said to the child victim to individualize the programming.

When a three or four year old is shown Fantasia on a hypnotically-prepared and controlled LSD trip, the colors & effects of Fantasia are increased about 1,000 times. The film is realer than real to the child. The movie will not be shown just once, but over and over so that the scripts are ingrained into the mind. The imagery for the child’s internal world will be well established, because the big screen movie enhanced by both the drugs and the bright colors of the art work will seem more real that life itself. At this time, the child is a multiple, but the walls between the various parts of the mind are not solid, but similar to the walls between ego states in an adult non-multiple. A large part of the 3 or 4 year-old child’s system will be allowed to view the system, including the Christian parts. Then the entire system (with the single exception of the alter carrying the entire memory of the film) will be hypnotically told to forget having seen the film.

Years later, the front alters will not remember having seen the movie, but they may have a strange dislike for the film. They may find that they can’t identify where their feelings of dislike of the film stem from. The child victim will watch the movie with its programmer and assistant programmer one-on-one, with no other children in the room. The child will watch the film repeatedly and be grilled about what is in the movie. The child will see the movie so many times in such a vivid form and will be tested to the point that the movie will be memorized. But it will be hypnotically locked up in the subconscious by the programmers, so that it forms a base for the mind to begin building programming, but will remain hidden from the conscious.

At the time the Fantasia film was made, the Illuminati had been creating trained multiples for years, but they knew they wanted to program the different personalities in accordance with the best mind-control techniques of the day. For this reason, the Fantasia film was planned ahead of time, so that it could possibly serve as a programming aid. The film is silent (almost no words) except for music so that it can be used for hypnotic visualization, so that the Mother of Darkness & the programmer can fill in the programming script with the child victim as they watch the movie. As it turned out, their plans were successful.

The New Age author David Tame states in his book The Secret Power of Music (Rochester, VT: Destiny Books, 1984, p. 292), that Fantasia is. . . “A superb marriage between the visual and musical arts. Most of the sequences.. .are what New Age cinema was intended to be!” The power of the movie to influence the mind stands out. In order to make the film, Disney used some strong arm tactics on a few people. The movie was a box office flop when first released in the 1940’s, but then it was made for the occult world anyway. By the 1960’s, the Illuminati had create a drug culture and had lots of undetectable mind-controlled slaves running around that had been programmed with Fantasia. In the 1960’s, Fantasia became a hit with the drug culture which had its share of Illuminati slaves deeply involved in it. One more reminder, the sentences that are “ALL CAPS” in the script are things that the programmers are saying to the child victim as the child watches the film. (Bear in mind, that the child watches the film over & over, so not everything indicated in this script by caps that the programmer says will necessarily be said in one showing.)

00 minutes. Curtains open. Action begins with an orchestra. The Conductor upon a step pyramid is the center of the scene, and is shown to be the center of authority. Master Programmer Dr. Joseph Mengele liked Fantasia because he was a musician and a violinist. Mengele (Dr. Green) liked Bach, Beethoven, and Schubert and orchestra music. He enjoyed taking what he liked & using this music to make slaves. He would portray himself during programming as being the conductor, & all the orchestra were his children. The film will allow for a repetition of this theme.

00.5 minutes. The instruments begin playing. The musicians are silhouettes which cast shadows upon the wall. Alters will often see themselves in this fashion too, as merely a shadow or merely a silhouette.

01.5 minutes. The MC (named Taylor) begins talking. He begins grooming the viewer. He says that the film may suggest to your imagination “geometric figures floating in space.”

02. minutes. The M.C. says there are 3 kinds of music. He says some music is to create definite stories, some to create definite pictures, and some music exists for its own sake.

02.5 minutes. The M.C. introduces us to the “Absolute music.”

03. minutes. He states that ,,Abstract images that might pass through your mind…music will suggest other things to your imagination…” The Philadelphia Orchestra begins playing “Toccata and Fuge” by Bach in the background. As a cartoon for children (or adults) the film has already lost the normal audience at this point. (There is no way that Disney could have escaped realizing that the film starts out losing the normal audience.)

03.5 minutes. The conductor is standing out and everyone else is a silhouette with shadow mirror images (like so many of the alters become). Leopald Stokowski is now standing as the rising sun rises. This is an allusion to sun worship and the sun rising in the east. The music is going up and down, and this music at this point is used to train the child to go up and down the trance ladder (that is to go deeper or lighter in trance).

04. minutes. The conductor opens his hands and waves them in an Illuminati hand signal. The music begins.

06 minutes. A row of violinists play, they are merely silhouettes with shadows.

06.5 minutes. A harp scale is played in the background that is used in the programming. Triggers are attached to this harp scale, or the harp scale is used as a foundation identifier for a piano scale. More children can be taught the piano than the harp, so this scale is usually transferred to a piano scale.

07 minutes. A series of 3 musicians is shown.

07.5 minutes. The conductor (the programmer) becomes invisible. The Prog. Assistant will ask the child, “WHO IS GREEN? GREEN BECOMES INVISIBLE.”

08 minutes. First lines representing bows are shown (the violinists are invisible), then the Golden Gate Bridge. “REMEMBER THE BOW, NOT THE VIOLINIST.” The bow lines flashing on the screen represent energy. 08.5 minutes. Colored disks are flashed onto the screen. The lights are represented to the child victim ‘THAT’S DR. GREEN’S ORCHESTRA.” Geometric shapes and flashes of lines explode onto the screen. Concentric rings that will pattern the concentric worlds appear. (See Vol. 2 p. 196 for an illustration of this.)

10. minutes. Asst. Prog. will say, ,,YOU ARE HIS STAR.” as stars flash on the screen. Many hidden alters (parts) are stars. Swirling lines arrive, and then colors and then more concentric lines.

11 minutes. Worlds within worlds are shown. Water is shown. Concentric circles that are the pattern for the worlds are presented. A varying number (5 or 7) of Castle-like structures materialize and then disappear. (These will form the pattern for some of the internal castles.) A quick flowing yellow line comes down the center of the screen, ‘THAT’S THE YELLOW BRICK ROAD.”

11.5 min. Lots of stars emerge.

12 minutes. Various worlds are shown, and an illusionary castle. Lots of stars are shown, which will be how the victim will model many of their alter parts after. Lots of purple stars appear, representing royal star alters.

12.5 minutes. Spiral splotches of cloud-like colors appear and disappear in dissociative colors. This is the Kingdom of the Gods during programming. The Asst. Programmer takes the opportunity to ask, “WHOSE ORCHESTRA?” This scene is used for the internal heaven where the kings are. Then the camera shows the conductor finishing.

13 minutes. The programmer has finished building his basic worlds.

13.5 minutes. The MC talks about Tchaikovsky’s Nutcracker.

14 minutes. 13 circling lights come into view circling around and around. (The 13 lights are something like 4 yellow lights, 3 white lights, 4 orange, 2 blue-something like this. They don’t have to be all the different programming colors at this point, because that programming will come in its own time.) Stars turn into fairies. A fairy with lots of fairy dust whirls around. (“Make a wish” the slave will be told later on, create what you want.) Flowers grow into butterflies. Hypnotic music plays as the fairy throws fairy dust. Soon, the Fairy spins a web.

15 minutes. The cabalistic tree of life is made with lights, and then the many colors of the ribbons are flashed up on the screen quickly. A compass image is very quickly flashed on the screen.

16 minutes. Lights multiply on the screen, and a spider web appears in the background. There are lots of stars which shine as lights in a spider web. (Stars will serve as alters in programming, the spider web serves as a system within the system, see Vol. 2.) There are several shots of multitudes of stars on a spider web. 16.5 minutes. There is an explosion of light which has a splintering effect (which will fit in well with an electroshock later on to create alters.) Around and around go 6 big mushrooms dancing, with a little one trying to participate. The programmer will point out that the mushrooms are “A FAMILY”. When the splintering effect is done with real electricity in the future, the mind will splinter into a family.

17.6 minutes. Concentric circles appear in water. Flashing pedals emerge as if they were dissociation spreading through the water. The flowers are the top spinners (see the pages in Deeper Insights on spin tortures to create spinner families), they dance, & then they float away in the bubbles (of dissociation). “A FAMILY OF SPINNERS” the programmer will say. “SEE THEY SPIN YOU INTO BUBBLES INTO NOTHINGNESS.” There is lots of dancing shown by the spinners. Everyone is dancing to the top. The child victim’s head will be wobbling back and forth from the influence of the drugs and dissociation at this point.

19.5 minutes. When the family of fish make a star, the Asst. Programmer says, “SEE HOW SAD THEY ARE.” The fish dance in circles and they also hide behind veils. “THE FISH MADE ITS OWN BUBBLES AND YOU CAN MAKE YOUR OWN BUBBLES TOO.”

21.5 min. The child is trained to trance at the hypnotic 8’s that appear in the water. This type of scene will put the deeper alters to sleep of a slave still actively being used. The movie here is being used to teach symbols, which will be important in the programming. Asst. Programmer, “LOOK YOU’RE JUST FLOATING.. ..FLOAT, FLOAT, FLOAT, SLEEP…SEE SHE WENT RIGHT INTO THE CENTER OF THE TRANCE STATE.. .YOU DANCE ROUND AND ROUND AND ROUND AND WHERE WE END UP YOU’LL NEVER KNOW.”

22 minutes. Lots of bubbles begin appearing. They will be used in the programming to assist the child to protect its mind from the traumas. The asst. programmer may have a bubble toy to make bubbles in her hand as a game to play with the child. The child will be trained and programmed to put its memories into bubbles and let them disappear. ,,WHY WOULD YOU WANT TO GO INTO THE BUBBLE TO GET AWAY FROM THE DARKNESS? 1,2,3…NOW THERE ARE MANY BUBBLES, THIS IS WHAT WE WANT YOU TO DO.” At this point the film is showing different colors of bubbles, for instance gold bubbles. This trains the child’s mind to identify different colors of bubbles. The bubble-fish-flower scene is going on. “DON’T YOU FEEL LIKE THAT FISH, ROUND AND ROUND YOU GO” (dissociation encouraged). The fish continues going in a dissociative spin. The fish swim in graceful perfect figure 8’s which have a subconscious hypnotic induction message to the victim. “SLEEPY LITTLE FISH” is said when the music gets hypnotic. “YOU’RE SLEEPY & YOU’RE TIRED, THIS IS NOTHING BUT A DREAM.” “ALL THE DIAMONDS ARE ALL AROUND, NOT YOU” In other words, this is teaching the child that their entire internal world can be around them, but “you don’t know that it’s you.” The child begins to lose the ability to realize that other parts of itself belong to itself, they are only stars, etc. The fish changes into anot her character. flowers are appearing in different colors of the color coding, red, green, orange, blue, white. . .All of a sudden it get’s still. “SHH, LISTEN CLOSELY.”

22.5 minutes. Eyes shine in the darkness. “EVERYTHING IS FINE, YOU JUST RELAX.”

Silhouettes appear, which represent fish (alters, and people) who are there but you don’t see them, they are behind the veil like the silhouettes. ‘THEY AREN’T THERE, IF YOU SEE THEM THEY AREN’T REAL THEY LOOK LIKE A FLOWER, WHEN YOU SEE THEM, YOU WON’T SEE A CHILD- YOU WILL SEE A FLOWER.” The silhouette veil gives the sense to the child that he can sense something but it’s not there. 23 min. Different plants appear and dance. (This part of movie is very important in structuring.) The plants separate into many plants and flowers, and they multiply on the screen, but at the end they solidity into a solid plant. This is teaching the ,,you-are-one-but-you-are-many” concept. “FAMILIES ALWAYS WORK TOGETHER. WHETHER YOU ARE BLUE OR YELLOW OR GREEN, FAMILIES ALWAYS WORK TOGETHER IN HARMONY.”

24 minutes. “BUBBLES ALL HAVE A LIFE SOURCE…THERE, LOOK, WHAT’S IN THAT BUBBLE?” 24.5 minutes. ,,YOU CAN HAVE YOUR OWN ORCHESTRA”. Fruit that hangs on the tree is shown, which will be the basis for how they hang the programs (the fruit) in the internal world. Note the colors, orange, white, yellow, purple, blue, green,…

24.5 minutes. Fairyland appears on the screen. The Fairies awake and fly through leaves. ‘THERE’S YOUR FAIRIES. SHE IS VERY MAGICAL. SHE CAN CREATE ANYTHING AND SO CAN YOU.” “THE FAIRIES ARE SO MAGICAL.”

When the core is being first split, the parts of the mind that are creative are taken and used to create the fairies. The programmers will only take these original creative splits, they will not try to get fairies from any more torture. The fairies are the creative parts of the child, how ever many creative parts that the child has splintered will be the number of fairies created. These parts of the mind receive very heavy programming. They are core splits. (If readers remember on page 87 of Vol. 2, it refers to a Core Protector coded “Creation”. That alter was a fairy, a core split. Not only does this creative part make things “magically” for the system, it protects the core. Does that help people to understand how the Core can be so creatively protected?! (For more understanding about the Core see Cisco’s very deep article on the Core.) Fairies are assigned to every part of an alter system. The child of 3 or 4, who watches Fantasia has had their core locked away at 2 1/2. The core’s stars have not been locked away yet, & have access to her energy. When the system is built, the stars are locked away & become the core’s guardians. They will act like the core to protect her. The real value of the fairies comes when the core’s stars are locked away & the Programmers have to depend upon the creative power of the fairies.

24 minutes. A vine (which represents a system’s double helix) lights up one leaf after another. The leaves are staggered (alternated) and they light up in sequence, which teaches the child the foundation of how they will create the DNA helix and its staggered exit permissions.

25.5 min. The leaves are now floating up and down, like the alters will learn to do. “SOME FALL TO THE GROUND AND DIE.” This is the point where the story of the Oak Tree will be added in for programming. When the Illuminati programmers want “to destroy” an alter they can use the chandelier-MT 6:22-23 torture mentioned on page 310 of the Vol. 2 Formula book, and then have the splintered alters become leaves that fall to the ground and die. After this, these disobedient and now “dead” alters can be taken & be dissociated from their memories. The memories are locked up someplace permanent within the mind.

26. min. Out of a leaf like “box” come a series of fairies. The child is taught to put things (such as alters) in boxes of various shapes.

26.5 min. Leaves blow in the wind. Fairies cover things and keep them safe.

27. min. Fairies continue flying around. The seasons are passing in sequence. An internal green-skirted fairy will be connected to the internal hourglass during the programming.

27.5 min. The fairies quit flying and skate on ice. The season has turned to winter.

28 min. A winter scene. The four seasons have come to an end.

28.5 min. A sorcerer is introduced by the MC (emcee). The sorcerer is shown and then his assistant or trainee who is Mickey Mouse. Mickey Mouse wants to be creative and magical like the great wizard. Mickey Mouse sees the power that the sorcerer has, and wants that power. What is really being subtly portrayed here is the programmer (the wizard) and the core & the core’s creative splits (Mickey Mouse). Showing the programmer as a great wizard is actually right on the money. The top programmers are all Grand Masters in the Illuminati and are very much into witchcraft.

29 min. The sorcerer (wizard) is shown again. This time the wizard,, with his skull beside him, creates from his witch’s cauldron a big colorful butterfly which is forever changing. (Is this big yellow, purple, white, and blue butterfly meant to be a Monarch butterfly? The programmers will use it that way for this Monarch programming.) The great wizard magically creates the big colorful butterfly and then he shatters it into countless splinters!

Disney often portrays Mickey Mouse as a Sorcerer.

30 min. Mickey sneaks around and grabs the magic hat. (The magic hat is one of the few things in the film that doesn’t mean anything for the programming. It merely has witchcraft symbols.) Then a magic broom appears.

30.5 min. The broomstick comes alive. The broomstick imagery will be used to help create the pancake people (ribbon alters who will haul the internal computer messages). The broomstick person in the film hauls buckets of water. The child is having story after story layered in over a period of time, which are being skillfully constructed toward a programming end. Parts of the child’s mind that see the movie Fantasia will be dissociated clean slates. They will need to have some imagery given to them so that they have something to build mentally upon. In Cisco’s section of the book, in the Truth article it is discussed how the mind looks at sensory inputs and tries to make sense of a pattern by comparing it to previous patterns that it has identified. Learning is a step-by-step building process, and so is programming.

31. min. Mickey as the apprentice sorcerer (in a sense the victim who the programmer is training) manipulates the broomstick person. “THE CHILD (Mickey) CAN DO WHAT THE GREAT MAGICIAN DID. YOU CAN TELL YOUR MIND WHAT TO DO. YOU GET POWER BY LEARNING TO BE CREATIVE.” Mickey (and the victim) become mirror images of the Wizard over them.

32 min. Then the sorcerer sits on his throne, and while on the throne acts like the conductor. Here is a subtle mental tie-in that Mickey is playing the role of programmer (conductor) and is sitting on an Illuminati throne (like so many of the Illuminati Grand Master programmers have actually done.) Michael Aquino is just one of several mind-control programmers who have gone by the name of Mickey. Because Mickey Mouse is substituted for being the programmer at different points in programming, this scene will tie in well with other standard programming sessions.

32.5 min. Mickey in the film clearly is shown leaving his physical body and astrally projecting himself. This is such a vivid portrayal of occult astral projection, that it is mind-boggling that many Christians consider Walt Disney movies to be christian. (See Vol. 2, p. 319, for a discussion of the scientific methods to understand and induce astral projection.) This again is laying the mental foundation for the child to leave its body mentally and either hover over its body in dissociation or to travel somewhere via astral projection. Mickey Mouse then begins conducting lights.

p_starry-sky.gif

These lights represent the alters that the victim will make for the conductor. The lights (aka stars) are the conductor’s orchestra. Lightning (such as flashes that come from electroshock) and stormy weather are being controlled by Mickey. Notice that the things Mickey is controlling are fear-based. After the child has viewed the film many times and memorized it, when the electro-shock is applied during this time of the film, the child will control it like Mickey by ‘magically’ creating splits.

33.5 min. Mickey begins conducting waves. Then, for those who understand the veiled scenes, Mickey begins going through the different magic spheres conquering the different spirits. This is Enochian Magic. 34 min. Mickey wakes up back in his body, and he is in trouble with rising water i.e. a water trauma. Mickey is thrown into the water. The child victim will identify this with the drowning tortures that are given to instill “no talk-no tell” messages. After Mickey (or in child himself) has done something, and returns to his body, then the “‘no-talk”’ message will kick in. Victims of mind-control often get the feeling of drowning when they trigger a no-talk message.

34.5 min. More water continues to flow.

35 min. All of a sudden without any continuity of action, Mickey gets an ax and kills the broom by splitting it. The broom dies and then multiplies when it comes back to life. This is such a clear picture of what the programmers want the child’s mind to do. They will traumatize the child essentially unto death, and then they want the tortured alter to multiply itself into many more duplicate alters. Armies of brooms are formed from the broom. This scene here is a clear red flag that the Illuminati asked Walt Disney to produce this film. This scene with the trauma death of the broom, with it splitting in half, and then coming back to life in a multiplied form, is evidence that this film was meant to be used for training children in multiplicity. The assistant programmer will say “IT’S O.K. TO SPLINTER.” “YOU ARE TIRED, YOU CAN ESCAPE THAT BY RESTING AND LET A PART OF YOURSELF COME OUT.” At this point, it is necessary to explain what is going to be done when they begin to splinter the child’s mind. After the splitting trauma, the programmer needs to be able to see what the child has created, so he wants the child to look at what’s been made. “‘CAN YOU LOOK AT WHAT YOU’VE CREATED?” However, the part of the child that looks back at the trauma will then see that the dissociated trauma was real and that will make the child angry. The programmers want the child to dissociate what he built, and when the child looks back at what he has created he goes into a vortex of dissociation. The child is told if he ever looks back at the memory he will go into the vortex.

35.5 min. Water is being thrown in by the brooms, while Mickey throws water out.

36 min. All of a sudden a hypnotic vortex sucks things in during the film.

36.5 min. The brooms all march in an army, while Mickey reads his magic book. Mickey then uses his magic book as a lifeboat when he gets whirled into a vortex. A vortex is often created from that part of the mind that is holding the high energy that accumulates in the mind just before the mind splits. It holds the highest energy of the mind. One way a vortex is created is to place the child on a traumatic Disney ride–like a rollar coaster. Special electrical boxes or electrical shoes are outfitted onto the child so that during the ride, at a particular timed moment when fear is increasing, that fear has pain of the electrical shock added to it. A cattle prod of course would be too dangerous to take up on some type of ride like that with all the motion. Also bear in mind, a small child doesn,,t take need the electrical power that an adult needs to take it down.

37 min. At the bottom of vortices in the Illuminati programming, the programmers place Guardian demons. In Fantasia, when Mickey gets to the bottom of the vortex, sure enough, there is a Guardian there to meet him. The Guardian spirit parts the water as if he were Moses with the Red Sea.

38. min. The Conductor and Mickey Mouse shake hands. The conductor does something very significant. Mickey congratulates the conductor and then the conductor (programmer) in turn says, “Mickey, you’ve done a good job.” (Yes, the core/core splits have done a good job at this point, they have just created their inner world!) The MC tells us about the next song the occult Rite of Spring. Spring rituals are creation rituals and so this music is ritually connected to what the programmers are going to do in this segment. The MC states that instead of the viewer seeing tribal dances (which are by the way witchcraft dances), that instead Disney has decided to show us scenes of what went on billions of years ago. (This next part is also a subtle push for Darwin’s theory of evolution. But because it is child’s entertainment, people don’t have their guard up. The theory of evolution is important, because it allows people including the victim to not take moral responsibility for their actions, and it is also the basis of some of the Hinduism and witchcraft teachings that will be given the deeper alters. This is a backdoor approach to destroy godliness that is carried out on children in general.)

39.5 min. The MC says, “Imagine a lonely tormented little planet spinning in a sea of nothingness.” This is exactly what the programmer will say to the child as they work together at building an internal world. The “sea of nothingness” is what the reader will see described in our books as “Outer Space” or ,,the Rubicon.” Also that “sea of nothingness” is used much later to reinforce the secrecy of the programmers. Much later as the programmer and torture has progressed the programmers will say to alters, “LOOK DOWN ON THE EMPTY SEA OF NOTHINGNESS. THERE IS NO DR. GREEN. THERE IS NO DADDY THERE.”

40 minutes. A swirl of stars in a galaxy appears. Swirls of comet-like lights flash by. “MANY WORLDS THERE.” This will set the base for the child to build galaxies and worlds within their mind. “BE LIKE GOD, CREATE YOUR WORLD. BE YOUR OWN GOD AND CREATE YOUR OWN WORLD” the child is told at this point.

42 minutes. The face of the planet emerges.

42.5 min. Lots of volcanoes erupt on the screen, setting the foundation to build realistic internal volcanoes.

45 min. Oceans, and water and fire are coming into being. The child victim needs to know how a world is created in order to create their own internal world. Lava begins flowing as the flute plays the background music. Lightening flashes. The violence of the fierce weather portrayed will be enhanced by the child on drugs to a thousand times its magnitude. This is important because it will take a great deal of mental energy and external torture to create the internal worlds. Having such super-vivid pictures will help when the victim goes to build their internal worlds. There will be special purpose fragments that will be made into the elements of fire and water. That’s all these special purpose fragments will know. Breaking through the layers in the alter systems will trigger internal earthquakes. This and a later earthquake scene are used to build the foundation for the internal violent weather. If an internal earthquake shakes a slave’s mind, it has the same effect as if a real earthquake were going off. Everything internally shakes and shifts. An alter system will also have fire children, who start internal fires, and will give internal alters the abreaction or sense that they are burning. The mind gets very survival minded when it thinks it is burning, and goes right back into the programming that is linked with the victim’s compliance for survival during programming. 46 minutes. The oceans continue to form.

47 min. A calm occurs in the action.

47.5 min. The screen gets dark except for an amoeba, which becomes two amoebas. As the little amoebas multiply, the asst. programmer encourages the child, “IT’S O.K. TO MULTIPLY. GOD WANTED YOU TO MULTIPLY” Remember, the programmers are working with a pre-schooler with clean slate alters. The programmers must show images that the child can relate to. The concept of the broom being split in half and then multiplying and now the concept of the amoebas splitting are portrayed in a way that the child’s mind can grasp the concept.

48.5 min. “IF GOD CAN MAKE A FISH, YOU CAN MAKE A FISH. YOU CAN DO ANYTHING, YOU CAN BE ANYTHING.”

49 minutes. Dinosaurs appear. The programmers will reframe the concept of dinosaurs into monsters and demons. The sea-going dinosaurs will be refrained as guardian demons which guard the internal rivers. These guardian demons tie in with Armageddon end-time programming. They also guard the various worlds.

50 min. Dinosaur-birds swoop down and grab prey. This imagery will be refrained to lay the basis for the winged-monkey watchers of the Oz stories. The winged-monkey watchers are the child alters who are assigned to watch and guard the system.

51.5 min. Fierce dinosaurs (later ref rained as Dragons) protect the swamps. Swamps are built into the internal worlds, so this is very helpful. Demons and alters like Dameon are set up as guards.

52 minutes- More swamps appear. The swamp scenes will form the base in the child’s mind for the internal river Styx. (See more about this in this book’s article “Programming, foundations, destruction of”). Some dinosaurs that have long necks that look like snakes begin appearing. The asst. programmer will reframe these to the child, “LOOK, THE SEED OF SATAN.” “THAT IS A DEMON.” While the child watches, they reframe the hugh dinosaurs as being demons. Pictures of reptilian looking demons will be shown to the child too. At that age, the child is not going to see the difference. (A note for therapists: Some “”demons’” may actually be important parts to an alter system, and are being used to protect unauthorized users from entering important areas of the system.)

54 min.- Fierce Tyrannosaurus Rex chases dinosaurs. This chase scene is especially frightening to a young child on a LSD trip. Long-necked snake-like dinosaurs appear. They may be refrained as a python snake. T Rex is also known as Leviathan, a demon that inhabits the kundalini spinal column and causes pain in the victim, he is written about on page 302 in our Vol. 2 book. In the film a long fierce struggle between T Rex and other dinosaurs ensues.

55 min. The dinosaurs begin dying and soon dies. “THE LORD DOESN’T LIKE THEM.”’ This will later be refrained that if parts integrate they are to die. If someone tries to get into the system, the alters are to bury themselves deep like these dinosaurs do on the film.

56 min. Dead bones appear

59 min. Mountains soar out of the ground into eminence.

59.5 min. It gets stormy on the screen, winds & floods appear.

60. min. Stillness comes as the sun rises.

61 min. The sun sets. (During the programming, this may be refrained as the moon setting. It can be both or either or. Remember, the programmer is working with the child’s creativity.) Various scenes during the film show the moon in different phases which is important for bringing in programming concepts like Mr. Moon.

61.3 min. The orchestra is now playing. Music is an important part of mind-control programming. The affect of music on the mind and body has been studied. Music can double the heart beat, accelerate the respiratory rate, make that rate irregular, enhance perception, lower the threshold for various sensory stimuli, change blood pressure & circulation, and alter the muscles in the body. Dance music and “march” music done by orchestras change muscle response. Music is also a great way to cause dissociation.

62.5 min. The MC introduces the “‘Sound Track’ who he says is an important person for Fantasia who can be seen around the Disney studio. When Mr. Sound Track appears, he is simply a vertical line. The MC says he is “an important screen personality.” The ground work is being laid for a person being anything, even a line. The MC states that each sound creates a picture.

63 minutes. The MC encourages the personified Sound Track “”don’t be nervous.”" Then a sound is made like an electrical shock and the line develops a splotch of color in it. During the programming at this point an electrical shock would be applied to the child.

63.5 minutes. The harp is ask to sound. The harp begins playing a scale and the line becomes double 8’s and snake-like spirals. The child will be taught to dissociate when seeing such double 8’s.

64 min. The violin begins going up and down. Each of these instruments is going up and down the scale, like do-ray-me-fa-so-la-tee-do. The music is used to teach the alters to go up and down the helix, which is figured in this part of the film. As the music goes down, an alter is taught to go down in trance, and as it climbs higher, the alter will trance higher. All these instruments (violin, flute, bass, bassoon) are being used to teach alters how to work in the system. The MC describes the flute as “very pretty”.

64.3 min. A trumpet begins playing and the colors, yellow, orange, etc. begin showing.

64.5 min. When the bassoon plays, the MC says, “Go on. Drop the other shoe”– “Go to the shoe” which translates “‘go to the ground”" –the deepest trance level. The following is the double-pyramid, with a helix up the middle that appears when the bassoon plays: -(This configuration is very important to all these Illuminati alters systems.)-

p_rugbyball.gif

65 min. The drum plays and some other percussion instruments play. These are taught to the child as the cult’s “HEARTBEAT”. They will hear this sound internally for many years to come. Then some sounds that have a shattering effect (cymbals) like broken mirrors are made in the film.

65.5 min. As the sounds take place a line is made with a pyramid at the top. This is laying the groundwork for the system’s structuring.

66 min. The MC laughs and talks about Beethoven’s Pastoral Symphony (Beethoven’s 6th) which is next.

66.5 minutes. The screen comes alive with magical Unicorns of different colors. Then Pan (a satan-like figure) appears playing his pipes, and soon lots of little Pans (little demons) are playing their pipes. The little Pans (demons) play and dance with the unicorns. The orchestra plays again. (This author, Fritz, remembers when I said that Pan was an evil demon, I was rebuked by a Christian minister. He then said Pan a benevolent cheery creature”. A number of books which may be obtained from Satanic bookstores document that Pan is indeed considered a powerful demon by occultists.)

67 min. Pegasus (the mythical greek winged horse) flies in. As a Mother horse she takes care of little ones on the screen. She is a protector in the programming.

68 min. “FANTASY IS FUN. FANTASY IS A GAME YOU PLAY. MOTHER TEACHES YOU. SEE HOW MOTHER IS A TEACHER. SEE THE BLACK AND WHITE HORSE. THEY ALWAYS FLY TOGETHER, BUT ARE SEPARATE. THEY ARE FLYING OVER THE CLOUDS.” “OVER THE CLOUDS, INTO THE BLUE YONDER.” The child is rewarded for what it has to do with the game of fantasy. “THAT’S YOUR REWARD FOR DOING WHAT YOU ARE TO DO. YOU CAN LEARN TO FLY OVER THE CLOUDS.” The child feels rewarded by the game of fantasy. The fantasy scenes in Walt Disney’s Fantasia are like the Wizard of Oz scenes in Oz, fantasy-land is more colorful and fun than real life. Vivid colors will be splashed about during the fantasy-land scenes.

68.5 min. A castle appears as Pegasus flies around. This and other castle scenes will help the child develop the imagery for the spiritual castles that the child will build internally. Then they swim in the water. “SEE THE MIRROR IMAGES, WATER CAN BE GLASS.” During the programming mirrors are put into the internal system. A mirror can be a piece of glass, the surface of a pond, or an asphalt runway. When the programming is complete, underneath the water &/or the runway lurk demons.

70 min. Waterfalls emerge and issue forth. The waterfalls are used by the programmers to erase all the slave’s memory of what was done to them. The child will be told at the end of watching Fantasia (and this will be said at other programming events too), “JUST REMEMBER THE GOOD, JUST REMEMBER THE FANTASY”. The fantasy is given so that the subconscious can rest in peace after the programming. The child is told “WASH YOURSELF CLEAN.”

70.5 min. The little girls appear as girl centaurs (half girl-half horse). “SEE THE LITTLE GIRLS ARE HORSES.”

71 minutes. Then a scene appears where one girl centaur braids another girl centaur’s long hair. The Illuminati teach their slaves to braid their memories. They braid their memories up and then lock them in. All the Daddy memories will be locked up & braided and then locked for good.

72 min. Male centaurs appear. They are near water and make mirror images in the water.

72.5 min. A crown is placed on a female centaur and 2 doves. During the Illuminati death, burial and resurrection ceremonies lilies are used for crowns, and doves are used. These are significant programming/ritual symbols. The female centaurs look at the male centaurs. This will be refrained as a system can have both male and female parts.

73 min. Starting with one female centaur, the females act seductive to the males, who then respond. For bras the females have bras of daisies. The Vol. 2 book explained how the daisy programming is a life-or-death type program. Vivid colors are used for each centaur. For instance, one may be purple and another one another color, which sets the groundwork for alters to have different access color codes. Alters do not usually see themselves as being in different colors, although it does happen on occasion.

73.8 min. A marriage takes place between the centaurs. The programmers catch these nuances of the film and use them. The marriage here teaches the child to be acquainted with the arm-and-arm marriage ceremonies. Remember, the programmers are dealing with clean slates that must be taught from the ground up. In the next few minutes, the cherub children will watch sexual body language, and the child victim is also picking up on enticing sexual body motions.

74.2 min. The centaurs go swimming. “I FEEL LIKE A LITTLE GIRL WITH A HORSE’S BODY.”

75 min. Little cherubs are dancing and flying around. When pictured the artists at times single out 3 cherubs who blow flutes together. The female centaur appears, who is fair haired (blond) and blue-eyed, which is what the Illuminati like. When she hears the tone (of the flutes) she goes into a trance state and walks with her eyes closed. This imagery is used to teach alters that when they hear certain tones, they are to go into a trance state and do certain things. The little cherub turns into a heart, and when no one is watching goes into the tree. In programming, this part is the Keeper of the Tree. Notice how everything is veiled. The assistant programmer will point the cherub out to the child victim, “LOOK AT WHAT HE DID.”

76.5 min. A curtain then shrouds the scene. The curtain appears to be tree-like. More bubbles appear, and more water. All the mythical creatures on the screen begin to dance and be merry and have a feast.

77 min. “SEE THE FEASTS, SEE THE BANQUETS, THE FEASTS ARE O.K. THE BANQUETS ARE O.K.”

78 min. “THE LEAVES ARE FALLING.” Blood-like wine is drank at the feast. “SEE THE BLOOD.”

“SEE THE LITTLE DEVILS POP UP.” The only human in this Disney scene is honored. This is done to teach the alters that humans and animals can mix. That they can be accepted for what they are, even if they think they are an animal or something else they will be accepted at the cult’s feasts. These scenes are all for internal programming. By the way, one of the pretty female centaurs makes a sexual pass at the fat human, who then chases her. “MUST PLEASE THE MASTER.”

80 min. A scary storm comes up, and Zeus, and the greek gods appear. ,,BETTER FEAR IT. HE’S A GOD YOU’D BETTER FEAR HIM. HE THROWS LIGHTNING.” This demon who throws lightening is named Furfur. He also makes thunder & strong winds in the system (alter system’s worlds). Readers can learn more about this demon, named Furfur, in Cisco’s second part of Deeper Insights in the article on “Programming, foundations, destruction of”.

81 minutes. Lightening bolts are thrown from heaven.

81.5 min. All the little cherubs run for cover in fear.

82 min. Pegasus the protector flies in to protect everyone, especially a new born Pegasus. The wind is personified as a two-headed blowing person. This two-headed Janus wind comes storming through the heavens. The programmer will often place his own voice “IN THE WIND.” The greek god (internal demon) throws a lightening bolt.

83 min. “SEE THE GODS”. The child is learning what to make internally. Zeus then relaxes & goes to sleep.

84 min. More vivid colors form. “FAMILIARIZE YOURSELF WITH ALL THE COLORS.” The film at this point is teaching the child to stay in the framework of the programming for safety. To go outside of the programming is terror. The child is learning to fear the godlike demonic guardians.

84.5 min. The fantasy world is coming alive. It is a happy fantasy world. A goddess in the sky makes a rainbow emerge. This is the rainbow goddess of the programming.

85 min. All the happy unicorns and cherubs fly ‘”over the rainbow.” (Refer back to the Vol. 2 book p.94 to understand the significance of going over the rainbow.) The unicorn is derived from old British paganism where the lion represented sun worship, and the unicorn represented moon worship. This is why the Royal Arms of the British Royal Family have a unicorn on one side, & a lion on the other. Sexually the unicorn represents androgeny. During programming, the horses, pegasi, unicorns and centaurs shown in the Fantasia movie become the foundation upon which the Illuminati programmers build the Night Mare alters who are beasts of burden who carry an alter system’s memories. These are logical no-emotion alters who are early splits & who are programmed after the child is verbal. See Cisco’s article on Dream Work for more understanding about the horse alters, as well as chapter 7 on Structuring.

86 minutes. More rainbows and lots of bubbles come into view. The film has done an excellent lob of showing how the Furfur God of thunder protects the Rainbow. Once an alter has gone over the rainbow, they can not come back because a demon protects the Rainbow. The rainbow is also protected by alters who fear the gods. After seeing Fantasia, the therapist can understand why the little child protector alters have fear about these gods. The master (who represents Furfur) in the movie swallows the rainbow. If an alter looks internally for the rainbow, he or she will only find stars, because the protector will come up and say, “I swallowed the rainbow.” The rainbow is kept well hidden internally. This scene is used to teach alters how to go over the rainbow. “”BEFORE YOU GO OVER THE RAINBOW, YOU HAVE TO PUT ALL YOUR MEMORIES IN THE BUBBLE. YOU CAN’T TAKE ANYTHING OVER THE RAINBOW INTO FANTASY LAND.”

86.5 minutes. Apollo, the sun god comes out.

87 min. A big mother spirit who fills the whole sky is now shown by Disney. She hangs over the rainbow. When a system is built this is indeed what they put in. All go to sleep in the film.

87.5 minutes. Arrows shoot the stars into the heavens. This is more programming imagery. When you look for the rainbow, you see stars.

88 min. The conductor finishes again.

88.5 min. The next setting is a Venetian nobleman’s (a duke’s) palace. Curtains open. The use of curtains is spoken about in our previous books.

89 min. Curtains open. An Ostrich begins dancing, and gets others to ballet dance.

90 min. The Ostriches begin dancing in a circle, this is laying the groundwork for what the cult family does. The Assistant programmer may tell the child, “SEE IT’S O.K. TO DANCE TOGETHER. DANCING IS ACCEPTABLE.” The programmers will not directly tell the child that this represents the cult family.

91.5 min. The Ostriches are eating grapes. They are playing, looking in the pool & they are seeing bubbles.

92 min. Hippos emerge out of the pool. “IT’S O.K. TO BE DIFFERENT. IT’S O.K. TO BE STRANGE. USE YOUR CREATIVITY.” The hippos begin to dance and dance.

94 min. Elephants appear and are having fun and blowing bubbles out of their trunks. The programmers may be having fun blowing bubbles with the child. The programmers like to mix love and hate, kindness and sadistic behavior. That way the victim has a hard time separating love from hate. If you ask many slaves about “Daddy” they will tell you that they had fun with Daddy. They are right–they had fun intermixed with sadistic torture. Bubbles continue to lift off. One of the bubbles has a fish in it. This is imagery for the bubble programming. The child victim is trained to dump their bad memories into bubbles and let them float away. The therapist will notice that many victims feel like they are floating. They have an unreal feeling. The bubbles are floating their bad memories away.

98.5 minutes. A new setting and the hippos are hypnotically sleeping. 3 sinister alligators that remind one of the 3 primary programmers appear. The 3 alligators have robes that hide them, and shadow images of themselves lurking behind them. The alligators are trying to get the hippos. The 3 alligators are portrayed like the programmer is, he is someone to fear, love, & respect all at once. The hippo is running away and dancing. The alligator dances with the hippo, but makes menacing attempts to eat him. A flying hippo lands on an alligator. Elephants, hippos, alligators are shown. The elephants, ostriches, hippos and alligators all dance in fantasyland.

100 min. The orchestra is dancing. ‘”DO WHAT YOU’RE TOLD AND WE WILL HAVE FUN.”

101 min. The MC announces the next part as “”the struggle between the profane and the sacred.”’ The conductor stands in a silhouette that suggests the same pose that the upcoming Satan takes.

102 min. A high dark mountain with a castle looms in front of the viewer. A winged fiercesome Satan figure raises his wings. His wings are sectioned like fingers with claws, and will form the imagery of the demon Malebrinche, whose satanic claws hang over the alters and terrorize them. In the Illustrated Guidebook, the reader will find lots of these claws in the pictures lurking in the background. A child victim will be taught to fear the hands of the programmer, Satan and Malebrinche. The wings (hands with claws) open. And Satan is portrayed as an awe-inspiring figure. (By the way,, the word maleficia means evil misfortune caused by witches. The witch in Disney’s Sleeping Beauty has the demonic name of Maleficent.)

102.5 min. Satan begins raising the dead skeletons. This provides a foundation to layer in the Valley of the Dry bones coming alive with armies of skeletons.

104 min. The film also has some images at this point that will help with the foundation for the Armageddon programming. Satan calls everything to himself.

p_satan.gif

104.5 min. The hell pit is shown. This is laying a foundation for the hell pit with all its demons. All kinds of vivid colors are shown in hell, to make the scene more real than real for the child victim. Satan smiles as demons burn in hell. “NO MATTER WHAT COLOR YOU ARE, IF YOU ARE NOT GOOD YOU’LL END UP THERE.’”

Fantasia portrays Satan as a terrible powerful being.

105 min. “THAT’S WHAT HAPPENS IF YOU’RE BAD. YOUR THROWN INTO THE HELL PIT.”

105.5 min. Three beautiful lady demons begin to dance in a circle, all of a sudden these demons take on their luciferian form, one becomes a goat.

106 min. The demons continue to dance with powerful Satan watching over them. The hell pit and the demons are portrayed in vivid scary graphic depictions. The hellish fire and the ghoulish dancing of its occupants continues for what seems a long time. “WHEN GOD FINDS OUT HOW BAD YOU ARE, LOOK AT WHAT HE’LL DO TO YOU.”

107 min. Satan is portrayed by Disney in all his evil dark majesty.

107.5 min. Bells begin to ring, and the demons slink away, & the dead return to the earth to their graveyards.

108 min. Ghosts return to the graves. Soft music begins to play. Ave Maria by Schubert, which was written for the Catholic church, begins playing.

109 min. Satan folds himself into a mountain. ‘”DO YOU SEE LUCIFER ANYWHERE? NO. YOU ONLY SEE A MOUNTAIN.”

110 min. Lights shine as if they are a column of moving people who are walking with lights, and then some walls appear.

110.5 min. An arched bridge appears with its mirror image. The column of silhouetted people who continue walking have mirror images in the river. The asst. programmer will be telling the system (which the front parts will hear) “TIME FOR ALL THE GOOD CHILDREN TO GO TO CHURCH. IT’S O.K. TO GO TO CHURCH. GO SERVE GOD.”

113. min. An opening, a vertical sliver of light comes from what appears to be doors opening up. There is a mirror effect in the way the doors open, which will facilitate making mirror image front worlds. A whole new world opens up, which will be the front system’s world. Both the front alters and the deeper ones will be told to forget the movie. Later when a system is better programmed, the programmers will pull up the front alters and have them walk through these doors into the light. When they are hypnotically taken through these doors into the light and away from the fear and darkness of the Kingdom of Satan, they are hypnotically told to close those doors and never look back. The Kingdom of Satan has been shown in detail and in great length. The Kingdom of Satan has been shown as powerful and fearful. Satan is shown as a mighty power that is to be feared. The Kingdom of Light is only shown as a peace, as a refuge from evil. It is not shown to be good. It is not shown to have power or intelligence. It is simply a place to go to escape the fear of Satan’s power. This is all the programmers really want the church to be. It will be a stabilizing balance to let the mind recuperate from the hell of the programming, but it is not intended to be seen as greater than Satan and his Kingdom.

115 min. The film ends with a peaceful gaze at heaven. The child is being told in the last few minutes “THAT WORLD BELONGS TO YOU. IT’S A BEAUTIFUL WORLD. IT’S THE WORLD WE WANT YOU TO LIVE IN. IT’S BEAUTIFUL.” After all the hell that is eventually dumped on the child, and the scare that Satan gives them in this Fantasia film, the child is only too happy to create a beautiful world to live in.

*******************************************

The effectiveness of Disney’s Fantasia is that it is used to communicate to & build the unconscious structures within the child’s mind. The unconscious mind is the seat of our creative abilities. Then the conscious mind makes adaptations upon this unconscious thinking.

SUMMARY

Now that the reader has covered so much, the following quotes (with bold emphasis’s added) take on even deeper meaning: Joe Flower in Prince of the Magic Kingdom, “Walt Disney was obsessed with creation, driven to build magical worlds not, as many artists are, out of paint and canvas, or words, or even film, but physically, out of concrete, wires, smoke, electricity, and highly programmed employees.” (p. 23) Julian Halevy in Nation decries Disney taking this nation into a “drift to fantasy.” He adds, “…one feels our whole culture heading up the dark river to the source–that heart of darkness where Mr. Disney traffics in pastel trinketed evil for gold and ivory.” For those who understand programming Aubrey Menen comments about Disney’s success are profoundly appropriate, “the strongest desire an artist knows…to create a world of his own where everything is just as he imagines it.” John Ciardi was not so nice, he termed Walt Disney as “the shyster in the backroom of illusion.” Eliot said, “While his filmed fairy tales may have appeared at first glance to be light and dreamlike, upon closer examination they seemed more nightmares of deconstructed reality in league with the era’s leading neo-Freudian Modernists.”

· You have now finished reading a never-before-heard, unprecedented Warning about the Dark Reality of the Disney’s Magic Kingdom, and how it fits in with Mind-Control. Most Americans when surveyed say they believe in God, most go to church, and many believe they are born-again.

Because of the Illuminati’s deception campaign over several generations, the American public, and the world in general has been led to believe that Disney was good, and that Walt Disney was a good man. Because of his image, people suspended judgement about Disney and Disney movies. They entrusted their children to him. People had been manipulated into a frame of mind, a predisposition that whatever comes out of Disney is good. They entrusted their children to take in what Disney fed their children’s little minds week after week. The public’s predisposition of trust was used to introduce Illuminati beliefs and their political agenda, and to carry out a vast program of trauma-based mind-control on hundreds of thousands of tiny little children, whose minds and souls were stolen from them. Because many of the child slaves, who are programmed with Disney-themes, are programmed with roles in bringing in the Anti-Christ, Walt Disney and his family have played a major role for the Anti-Christ. And now you can see how accurate the Word of God is when it says, What is highly esteemed among men, is an abomination to God. First, there will be an Overview of the types of sources used, and then will follow a partial Bibliography on this Disney Section.

TYPES OF SOURCES

People who have worked for Disney and who are getting pensions and medical insurance have talked about Disney under the condition of anonymity. This is because the Disney hierarchy will not permit exposure without retaliation. Several non-Disney people who helped with discovering facts for this section were threatened that their children lives would be taken if they continued to investigate Disney. What I (Fritz Springmeier) finally have put in this, is solely my responsibility.

· One type of source for this was books on the Hollywood Film Industry and books on Disney Films. There were about 20 books of this category which were perused for a better understanding of who the Disney brothers were and what Disney Co. was about. One of the best in this type of source was The Art of Walt Disney from Mickey Mouse to the Magic Kingdom by Christopher Finch (NY: Harry N. Abrams, Inc., 1975.)

· Another type of source were the standard biographical reference books,, such as Who’s Who, Who’s Who in the West (1951), World Biography, Who Was Who,, Current Biography 1952, etc.

· Another type of source was critics of Disney’s movies such as several articles exposing the Lion King, Media Spotlight’s article Fantasia, Rush Limbaugh’s comments and statements concerning how Disney had betrayed its viewers’ trust, the Spotlight’s Feb. 26, ‘96 p. 31 article “Disney Turns Back on Family Values.”’

· Another type of source was magazine and newspaper articles about Disney such as the Oregonian’s art. on a Disney director being a convicted child molester. NY Times, Newsweek and other magazine and newspaper sources. An important series of extremely good investigative reports which were written by Harry V. Martin for the Napa Sentinel in 1989 were very important in learning of some of the Illuminati/CIA/Contra/Drug Running activities in Napa Valley, CA that Roy Disney is associated with. Harry V. Martin went into all kinds of records and did an excellent job of investigative reporting. The magazine Monde 2000, no.12, had an article on non-lethal weapons that the NWO is developing. This article was reprinted in Encounter Chronicles Journal of Scientific Intelligence, and discussed how Disney has been working with Sandia Labs and Los Alamos.

· Another type of source were victims of Illuminati mind-control, who have recovered memories of being programmed at Disneyland and Disneyworld.

· Another type of source has been to watch Disney movies as an investigative tool to understand how Disney is programming, how they are skillfully indoctrinating the American people into witchcraft, etc. This author has also personally been to both Disneyland, near Anaheim, CA and Disneyworld, near Orlando, FL.

· Another source was the Walt Disney Co.’s Annual Reports, and also the reference book Directory of Corporate Affiliations (1986) published by the National Register Pub. Co.

· Another type of source were books which specialized in covering details about Disneyland such as Disneyland And Beyond the Ultimate Family Guidebook (edited by Ray Riegert, and printed by Ulysses Press of Berkeley, CA); and Walt Disney’s Disneyland (by Martin A. Sklar and introduced by Walt Disney.) AAA had a 27 page booklet “Disneyland Park and Southern California”, which came out in 1996, which provides information on what is being offered at Disneyland and vicinity. The book refers repeatedly to “Disney Magic”. One has to wonder how Christians and non-occultic persons can’t see how occult Disney is.

Partial BIBLIOGRAPHY

BOOKS.

AAA. Disneyland Park and Southern California. 1996.

The Walt Disney Co.’s Annual Reports. pub. by the Walt Disney Co. annually.

Auletta, Ken. Three Blind Mice. NY: Random House, 1991.

Cluran, Richard M. To the End of Time. Rockefeller Ctr, NY, NY: Simon & Schuster.

Commander M. The Controllers: A New Hypothesis of Alien Abductions. (subtitle Alien Abductions, or Government Secret Mind Control Black R&D Programs). 88 pages long. 1990.

Current Biography 1952

Directory of Corporate Affiliations (1986) published by the National Register Pub. Co.

Eliot, Marc. Walt Disney Hollywood’s Dark Prince. NY, NY: Harper Paperbacks, 1993.

Finch, Christopher. The Art of Walt Disney from Mickey Mouse to the Magic Kingdom. NY: Harry N. Abrams, Inc., 1975.

Hagstrom, Robert G. Jr. The Warren Buffett Way. NY: John Wiley & Sons.

Hulteng, John L. The Messenger’s Motives, Ethical Problems of the News Media. Englewood Cliffs, NJ: Prentice-Hall, Inc., 1976.

Jackson, Kathy Merlock. Walt Disney, A Bio-Bibliography. Westport, CN: Greenwood Press.

Landis, Bill. Anger, The Unauthorized Biography of Kenneth Anger. NY: HarperCollins Pub., 1995.

Moldea, Dan E. Dark Victory, Ronald Reagon, MCA and the Mob. NY, NY: Viking, 1986.

Mosley, Leonard. Disney’s World. Stein & Day: NY, 1985.

Neelands, Barbara. About Ben Sharpsteen. Second Impressions, No. 1 A Sharpsteen Museum Reprints Project, Calistoga, CA: Sharpsteen Museum, July, 1990.

Riegert, Ray, ed. Disneyland And Beyond the Ultimate Family Guidebook. Berkeley, CA: Ulysses Press of Berkeley, CA.

Schickel, Richard. The Disney Version. NY: Simon & Schuster, 1968.

Siu, R.G.H. The Craft of Power. NY, NY: Quill, William Morrow & Co.

Sklar, Martin A. (with intro by Walt Disney) Walt Disney’s Disneyland. Walt Disney Prod., 1969.

Smoodin, Eric. Disney Discourse Producing the Magic Kingdom. Routledge: NY, 1994.

Stein, Jeff, ed. The Basic Everyday Encyclopedia. NY, NY: Random House, 1954.

Sterling, Claire. Thieves World -The Threat of the New Global Network of Organized Crime. NY: Simon & Schuster, 1994.

Taylor, John. Storming the Magic Kingdom. NY: Alfred A. Knopf, 1987.

Thomas, Bob. Walt Disney An American Original. Hyperion (Disney): CA, 1994.

Wallechinsky, David and Irving Wallace and Amy Wallace. The Book of Lists. 666 5th Ave., NY, NY: Bantam Books, 1978.

Wallechinsky, David and Irving Wallace. The People’s Almanac. Garden City, NY: Doubleday and Co., 1975.

Who’s Who, Who’s Who in the West (1951), Who Was Who World Biography

PERIODICAL SOURCES

Carson, L. Pierce, Who’s Who in the Napa Valley, Appellation, Oct/Nov. ‘95

George Magazine, “”Here Comes the Son’”, Dec. Vol. 1, No. 10.

House & Garden, “Sticks and Stones, Mickey for Mayor?”, Oct. 1, 1996, pp. 61 -68ff.

Martin, Harry V. Napa Sentinel. A series of articles in 1989 were very important in learning of some of the Illuminati/CIA/Contra/Drug Running activities in Napa Valley, CA that Roy Disney is associated with. Harry V. Martin went into all kinds of records and did an excellent job of investigative reporting.

Monde 2000, no.12, had an article on non-lethal weapons that the NWO is developing. This article was reprinted in Encounter Chronicles Journal of Scientific Intelligence, and discussed how Disney has been working with Sandia Labs and Los Alamos.

Media Spotlight’s article Fantasia,

Mother Jones, May-Ju’, 97, p. 61.

NAPA VALLEY REGISTER, the following articles are samples of what was used:

“ABC Will Mount An Anti-Drug Campaign’” Friday, Jan. 10, 1997, p.1D

“Children’s Books Get Red Carpet Treatment In Hollywood Films” May 16, 1996, p. SC

“Disney and McDonalds’” May 24, 1996

“Disney Buys ABC”, Saturday, Aug. 19, 1995, D.

“Disney Earnings Up 28 Percent In Third Quarter”, Friday, July 26, 1996, p. 8C

,,Disneyland Expansion Given OK” Wednesday, Oct. 9, 1996, p.D

‘”Disney Links to McDonald’s May Be Back. Thursday, Apr. 11, 1996, 7A

“Disney World Makes Sure World, Remember the Magic”" (by L. Pierce Carson), Sun., Oct. 20, ‘96

“Federal Employees Get Disney Tour” Saturday, Dec. 9,1995, p. 5A

“It’s Lights-Out For Main Street” May 14, 1996.

“An Overlooked, Different World Inside Theme Park” Sunday, Sept. 29, 1996, p. SC

“Mickey Going On The Road”, Friday, 7/26/96, p. 8C ‘”Past and Future In Disney Community’”, Friday, Oct. 4, 1996, p. iD

“Planned Parenthood Benefit On Sunday”–Events of Interest sect. on p. A2, Sept. 13, ‘96

“Pentagon Still Wastes Money”, Mon., 4/15/96, p. 4B Newsweek

“Power Failure” 12/23/96, p. 34-36; ‘”Sending an SOS at ABC”, 5/12/97, p. 54-55

NY TIMES (the following are samples of what was used: Articles during the “50’s & ‘60’s were looked at. ,,Disney Offers Faux Memories of Atlantic City Boardwalk” by Joe Sharkey, Tuesday, Dec. 10, 1996 “Baptists Censure Disney On Gay-Spouse Benefits” Thurs. June 13, 1996, p. A10 ,,Disney to acquire 2 radio stations”, 4/15/97, p. C4.

The PRESS DEMOCRAT (the following are example of what was used:)

“Baptists, Disney Paths Diverge” Saturday, June 29, 1996, p. D4

“Disney To Buy Stake In Web Company” 2/15/97, p. E6

“Heavy Disney” Sunday, Oct. 20, 1996

“The Ins and Outs of Allen” by Frederic M. Biddle and Renee Graham, On Q,, Sept. 29, 1996, p. 27

SAN FRANCISCO CHRONICLE (the following are examples of what was used:)

“Disney, Miramax Bond”, May 10, 1996

“Disney Signs Asian Animator”

“Miramax Plans To Make ‘Thoughtful” Films”, 4/11/96

SAN FRANCISCO EXAMINER (the following are examples of what was used:)

“Disney Institute Is A Short Course In Creativity” by Catherine Watson, Sunday, May 26, 1996, p. T9

“Mouse Matriculation Is A Great Experience” by Catherine Watson, Sunday, May 26, 1996, p. T9

“Tomorrowland Jumps Into The Future”, Sunday, July 14, 1996, p. T3

The Spotlight’s Feb. 26, ‘96 p. 31 article “Disney Turns Back on Family Values.”

Time Magazine, “Job Hunting With Mike [Ovitz]” 2/24/97, p. 50; ‘”Hilton Has Room For ITT’” 2/10/97,

Wall St. Journal (many issues from several decades.)

SOME OF OTHER SOURCES (used & not used).

· Various Disney brochures.//· Rush Limbaugh’s comments concerning how Disney had betrayed its viewers’ trust.//· Interviews w/ Napa Valley residents.

· Interviews with disgruntled insiders to the NWO.

· Interviews with various types of Disney victims.

[Disney has used mafia-type tactics, i.e. death threats, to intimidate numerous people into selling their property. Roy E. Disney has been reported involved in these land thefts. Victims of this type of intimidation are in many states, but several prominent regions are Napa Valley, CA; Shenandoah Valley; Virginia, & FL Disney’s land-grabbing operations could be a book in itself. This author has lots more research which I HAVE NO PLANS to reveal, which has been left w/ key others, such as the connections of VaVin, near Leon,VA, who produce Prince Michel de Virginia, whose chef & others connect to Belgium. The background of several key people, like Robert Podesta. Financial records, such as Fed. Judge Fern M. Smith (Burrows). ETC. This para. is not indexed.]


CHAPTER 6: SCIENCE NO. 6-THE USE OF ELECTRONICS & ELECTRICITY 

Developments in fiber optics, computers, electronic communications, nano-technology, bio-chips & neuro-electrical research have combined to bring mankind to the point where mankind can be controlled by one centralized monolithic Beast computer. The ultimate mind-controlled slavery is now possible. We are in the first stages of its implementation.

The chapter will be organized in the following sections & subsections:

Section A. An Overview of the subject
A1. Where this article is headed
GLOSSARY OF TERMS FOR UNDERSTANDING ELECTRONIC MIND CONTROL
Bio-medical telemetry
EMF weapons
Psychotronics
Remote Viewing (RV for short)
Syntel
A2. Where the NWO is headed
Pyramider

Section B. An intro to implants
B1. Three typical implant victims
B2. Documentation of implants
REFERENCE PAGE FOR UNDERSTANDING ELECTROMAGNETIC WAVES & MIND-CONTROL
B3. GWEN Towers
B4. Body suits

Section C. Specific Implants
C1. Audio implants (a. public. b. secret)
BACKGROUND INFORMATION
BRIEF CHRONOLOGY OF AUDIO IMPLANTS
BASICS OF HOW THE IMPLANTS CAN FUNCTION
USES OF THE IMPLANTS
TYPES OF AUDIO IMPLANTS:
Part A. Publicly admitted audio implants
Part. B. Secretly implanted audio implants COCHLEAR DENTAL AUDITORY RIDGE
C2. Body manipulation implants
C3. Visual holographic implants
HOW THEY WORK
TYPESFIBER OPTICS ARTIFICIAL LENSES BIO-CHIPS HOLOGRAPHIC OR H-INSERT
HOLOGRAPHIC IMPLANTS VIA NANOTECHNOLOGY & NANOBOTS
C4. Memex/Brain Link implants
INTERFACE DEVICES

ORGANIC BIOPROCESSORS LINKED TO VIRUSES

PSYCHICS
C5. Torture/Nerve & Muscle Stimulation Implants
C6. Tracking & LD. Implants

Section D. Direct monitoring & manipulation of the brain/mind
D1. Direct monitoring

TESLA WAVES USED TO READ MINDS & IMPLANT VOICES

D2. Direct manipulation
SUMMARY OF ELF WAVE MIND CONTROL CAPABILITIES

Section E. Auxiliary uses of electronics & electromagnetic waves
E1. hypnotic induction
E2. polygraphs
E3. attacks against people & objects
LIQUID CRYSTALS

“ALIEN” implants

BED COILS STANDARDIZED FOR MIND-CONTROL POTENTIAL

E4. virtual reality

Section A. An Overview of the subject.

A1. Where this article is headed

This chapter is designed to cover the complexities of hi-tech mind-control in simple-to-understand language. To accommodate those who are more technically literate and who want more, some clues to more technical sources are given, but time & space limitations mean that much has gone unsaid. My deep thanks to the many victims, who placed their trust in me to get their stories out to the world. I hope that I have vindicated their trust. There are a number of disinformation agents that appear to be putting out good information on implants, but are actually disinformation agents. We can error by undershooting or overshooting the truth. The principle topics that these pretend “whistle blowers” have been discussing are the tracking implants and remote viewing. (For RV info, see Theta Programming material in Vol. 2.) Neither topic is any revelation, nor are they the most dangerous items in the elite’s electronic mind-control arsenal. If the reader has not skipped chapter 5 on disinformation, then he will be aware how factual information can be used in deception, such as in chicken feed & building bona fides. Why is it that the TV program “The Real X-Files” shown on channel 4 was created by a CIA operative, Jim Schnabel? And why are all the “private” Remote Viewing organizations run by what appear to be entirely all intelligence operatives (such as Ed Dames, et. al.)? And why do we see mind-control specialists, like “ex”-Intelligence officer C.B. Scott Jones who gets involved with several UFO research organizations & disseminating disinformation? One “researcher”, who is publicly exposing” the NWO, tried to convince this author, “The government has no secrets.” (A word-for-word quote by the way.) He needs to read a supplement to the National Industry Security Pro grain manual (Mar. 92 release) where the Air Force teaches their DoD contractors how to construct cover stories to lie about the nature of their work for the government. I will not take cheap shots at the World Order, & I will not intentionally mislead the reader. You will get the whole truth and nothing but the truth, as well a single chapter can present it. Vol. 2’s chapter 6 which was on this same subject was not the final word and neither is this chapter. Before I start passing on lots of information, I should clarify one point. Human brain cells communicate by superconductivity, not electricity. Electricity travels near the speed of light, while superconductivity is in the range of the speed of sound. Government researchers have a device called a SQUID (Superconducting Quantum Interference Device) which actually monitors the light flowing from brain cell to brain cell. This is why over 5% of the brain’s dry matter weight is iridium and rhodium. However, this does not subtract from the fact that electromagnetic waves have the ability to change what the brain experiences and thinks. I must also provide a small glossary for electronic mind-control terms that most people are not familiar with.

GLOSSARY OF TERMS FOR UNDERSTANDING ELECTRONIC MIND CONTROL

Bio-medical telemetry–Transmitter-receivers that are often located at the base of the skull which record body functions & brain wave activity. Their data is sent to remote computers for monitoring. A bio-medical telemetry implant may also function as the primary control implant on body suits of implants. Early versions were used on astronauts.

EMF weapons–Electromagnetic Frequency weapons. These basically are machines that can modulate and beam electromagnetic waves in such a fashion that they control biological/mental functions within the victim. Portals to the central nervous system can be manipulated to create visual images, project voices into the mind, and create pain, moods and emotions.

Psychotronics–This word was originated from Soviet research. The American public have mistakingly thought that the word is equivalent to psychic activity. A more precise translation of the Russian term would have been “applied psychoenergetics”. American psychotronics research was initially done at Stanford Research Institute. This is the Theta Programming that Vol. 2 described.

Remote Viewing (RV for short)–This means psychic viewing of something.

Syntel–This is short for synthetic telepathy, which is the remote sending of voices and thoughts into a victim of electronic mind-control. The military and intelligence agencies have successfully achieved this capability and have carried out countless meetings over their possible uses of syntel.

A2. Where the NWO is headed

Since 1991, this author has been in contact with various victims of implants. The natural first reaction of many initial listeners would be skepticism to the subject. The psychological profession has had articles in their professional journals ridiculing these poor victims. If a fair-minded person will match the experiences of what one can witness happening to these implant victims (as well as their evidence) to the cutting edge of what science is researching and capable of doing, then there is no doubt that implants are being used on an ever increasing mass scale. The World Order is using amplifiers, generators, electronics, listening devices, non-ionizing electromagnetic radiation, a snapping type sound energy that hits and burns the body, closed-circuit videos to monitor implant victims, nanotechnology, and tracking devices that scanners (incl. mobile hand-held scanners) can pick up– JUST to name a few. This chapter will provide an indepth overview of many of these electronic mind-control gadgets. Unfortunately, the twilight zone of Big Brother is upon us. People (such as limousine drivers) that have been around the movers and shakers report that they brag about these technological controls. The technology described in this chapter, such as nanobots, and holographic implants are in the “R&D stage” of use. What is meant by “R&D stage” means that the World Order is using a large variety of experimental items, but the reader should be forewarned that this does not mean that these items are any indication of where the World Order’s actual secret R&D is at. This author has worked with enough mind-control victims to have established several facts:

· Society is getting only the crumbs of what is known by the World Order’s hierarchy.

· The World Order is releasing technology at a control rate, much of it through mind-controlled slaves who are programmed to “discover” a particular “discovery”. They are in reality only disclosing what has been known in secret, and their discoveries are actually helping cover up where the World Order’s secret research is at. However, it’s not difficult to see the direction the World Order is headed. They are working at making virtual reality (aka cyperspace) the “in” thing. They are fusing the human mind to computers. Computers/robots are taking over human jobs, and humans are becoming more like computers/robots. Sci-fi gurus, cyberpunks, and establishment scientists are selling and advertising this technological direction as “freedom”, and the crowds of sheep are accepting things like brain implants as “survival equipment” and “freedom”. The cool” technological pied pipers of our time are teaching our children that gadgets that remove their minds from reality are giving them new freedoms. But this chapter is written because there are still a few people with the neural-receptors and the computing capacity left in their craniums to comprehend the dangers that these mind-controlling devices have for humanity. Witnesses have told me that the creation of “robocop” type cybergs (the fusion of man & other equipment) has already been experimented on in secret. Indeed, the government gave out research contracts for cyberg research back in the 1960’s. And the use of electro-magnetic waves (esp. Tesla waves), implants, and other electronic devices by the Illuminati for mind-control is on the increase. How much of a genuine threat do these things pose humanity? [I’ll spell it out for the reader, but we must remain calm, a fear-based response only makes things worse.] Yes, it is true that the NSA can remotely track people if they know the specific EMF waves (evoked potentials from EEGs in the 30-50 Hz, 5 milliwatt range) of a person’s bioelectric field. Each person’s emissions are unique, just like their fingerprint, palmprint, and their voiceprint. This means that the NSA can remotely track anyone in public. And yes, it is true that the NSA’s RNM system can remotely send EMF Brain stimulation signals which create visual images, subliminal audios, what appear to be audible sounds, and thoughts into people’s minds. Yes, it is true that body suits of implants are used to control people’s minds and bodies, as well as track them. Yes, it is true they have voice prints of hundreds of thousands of Americans and can identify & track via their computers all electronic communications in this nation. Most phone calls go through about 30 computers before they reach their destination. The phone companies computers, according to someone who worked for AT&T and witnessed it, record ALL phone calls using computers. However, to weed out the worthless from the worthwhile, the Illuminati’s fronts use a list of key words, such as names or phrases called THE WATCH LIST which the computer uses to identify conversations worthwhile to listen to. Even though the NSA uses supercomputers, it is monitoring most communication on the entire planet so they have to squeeze the WATCH LIST as tight as possible. According to Bamford, James. The Puzzle Palace. NY: The Puzzle Palace, 1983, p. 459, “…according to Raven, programmers would simply reduce Malcolm X to the last two letters in his first name (lm) followed by a space and then the letter X. Then any time an intercepted data communications containing that particular combination of letters and spacing (lm X) streamed past the computer’s reading head, it would automatically be kicked Out for further analysis. Part of the reason that the computers are swamped with Watch list submissions is that many items require numerous entries. When searching for derogatory references to President Richard M. Nixon, for example, technicians would have to program a variety of possible key words, such as “Tricky Dicky”. This, according to the former G Group Chief would be converted to The new technology which is being implemented in stages includes computer imaging of a person which makes a “whole body map” of the person’s body which is stored in the computer. Something that has been only developed for a narrow use by the NWO is the downloading of the holographic image of a person’s thoughts so they can be transmitted to another. (See Appendix 3 on cloning for more on this.) The majority of the few people who know this is going on wouldn’t waste time reporting it, because the public wouldn’t believe it anyway. However, some prominent scientists are predicting that it is just around the corner. The three top research institutes in this field, Stanford Research Institute, MIT, and the Carnegie-Mellon Univ. all have people saying that this capability is “almost here”. Austrian born Hans Moravec, dir, of the Robotics Inst. at Carnegie Mellon Univ., is quoted in The Indianapolis Star, 6/14/1987, in an article entitled “Immortality”, “In an astonishingly short amount of time, scientists will be able to transfer the contents of a person’s mind into a powerful computer, and in the process, make him–or at least his living essence–virtually immortal.” MIT artificial intelligence researcher Gerald J. Sussman states, “I’m afraid, unfortunately that I’m the last generation to die. Some of my students may manage to survive a little longer.’’ But as fantastic as all these powerful capabilities sound, there are gliches in their electronic control of humans.

As an outsider looking inside for a number of years, this author has been able to take note of some of the success and failures of the New World Order’s electronic mind-control. First, the NSA picks up so much intelligence information, they are drowning in their own information. Only so many people can make decisions, and they can only digest so much information. They may try to manipulate people and events, but Christians (who are free of the mind-control) can step through those manipulations by having the mind of Christ. Next, if a person understands who they are & believes in following Christ, outside visions & outside or strange voices or thoughts do not alter the course that a person will take. Most of the people this author has met who have been subjected to remote electronic control over their mind–HAVE REJECTED the instructions & harassment of their electronic handlers. Not only is it clear that the voices are being transmitted from an external source to the victim, others can also detect that something is amiss. The element of secrecy is missing. One man spent an afternoon talking to this author about the World Order had tried to electronically control his mind, and turn him into a drug pusher. He had successfully foiled them for several years. Although he has had to flee & try to go into hiding to keep his own mind. The most powerful mind-control is still trauma-based mind control built on a foundation of multiple personalities (dissociated personalities and dissociated parts of the mind). It appears that electronic mind-control is being overlaid on top the mind-control based on dissociation. When this is done, the electronic mind-control is frightening, because the victim’s consciousness is not able to think passed the electronic mind-control which catches their undivided attention. They are too distracted to deal with the deeper issues of trauma-based mind-control.

Imagine being a programmed multiple, and your handler doesn’t have to even be near you to relay complicated codes and instructions. He can use your implant. But again, how serious is electronic mind-control? Let me relate to you about a guided tour that a civilian friend of mine took through a NWO’s major beast computer center in Alaska back in the 1970’s. The engineer, who was in charge of building and getting the center operational, gave him a tour of the site’s capabilities. At that point, the NWO had built a massive computer center in Alaska, one in So. Africa (believed to be located at the U.S. embassy in Johannesburg), and one in Pine Gap, Australia. These three sites were very specific, because they formed a triangle on the globe, and couldn’t be located anywhere else, due to the naturally occuring lines of force of the planet. These Beast Computer Centers consist of aisles and aisles of big state of the art computers. They each have several dozen people to run them. Even in the ’70’s, an operator could speak into the computer and it would answer. For instance, if you asked the computer about anyone on the planet, it could usually pull up all kinds of information about that person. If you asked the computer how could you get that person to kill someone? or how can I isolate this person? The computer would spill out a plan almost instantly, telling you all the people around that subject who could be manipulated and in what fashion those people need to be manipulated to cause the end result. This is the end result of years of “BLACK PSYCHIATRY–which means applying psychiatric techniques to manipulate people and nations. These computers electronically connect to some of those people who are electronically controlled, so that the controllers can actually control the world from a computer. These computers also store vast amounts of personal information about people’s thought processes and thinking. It is possible that electronic surveillance is being done to read the thoughts of people and that the computers are actually able to store this information in some usable fashion. Because this is so secret, they can’t give any hints of their vast ability to monitor thoughts, as well as organize and store those thoughts. This sounds like science fiction, but from people who invent & work at state of the art technology, this is actually said to be old technology. They are limited in how they use this technology because they want it to remain secret.

Meanwhile on the surface, the public system has automated fingerprint identification with the AFIS system, and has automated birth certificates electronically too. This all ties in with the intense desire of the World System to use the potential of their computers’ memories. Large Neural computers that have artificial intelligence using neural processing which is a type of learning similar to learning done by the human brain are being used. Recently, the world champion chess player was beat by a computer. This author’s friend, who toured the Alaskan computer center, was shown how a war could be created between any two nations. The operator merely asked the computer what it knew about a certain country and then ask it how could a war be created with a neighboring country. This is the end result of countless studies such as the U.S. military reference book Basic Psychological Operations Study (BPS) which outlines country by country, specifying where each country is vulnerable for PSYOP operations (psychological warfare).

This kind of thing has a long history. For instance in W.W. II, the Office of War Information and the 0SS cooperated in psychological warfare projects. What this author’s friend saw was a network of Cray-type computers, perhaps similar to the EMASS system of Cray computers that E-Systems developed. Such a system can store 5 trillion pages of text and work with that data base with lightening speed.

The reason this author’s friend was allowed to see this technology, was that he happened to be at the right place at the right time, and the Engineer operator of the Beast Computer said that this system was obsolete. Which is true, today’s 9 Beast computers are much better at speech than the computers at these three control sites were in ’73. The Beast computers can (according to another eye witness who used it) hear human voices and determine what language is being spoken and then can listen and answer in that language. These computers link directly to thousands of mind-controlled slaves and can– via various methods– almost instantly control the behavior of numerous people. This, along with good old fashioned phone calls, allows the elite to manipulate events very fast.

Anchorage is the site of a National Security Agency NSA listening post(LP). The Beast computer was located northeast of Anchorage, and so is the HAARP project. The HAARP facility is near Gakona, a hamlet about 140 miles north of Prince William Sound and its signals travel on a field line to Australia. The Beast Computer is also linked to Australia as well as satellite systems. The HAARP site took a 4-wheeled truck to reach, and the Beast Computer site in 1973 was even more remote. The University of Alaska Fairbanks (which has its own super computer) and the Alaskan Poker Flat Rocket Range also were involved with the HAARP project. 30% of the U of A’s supercomputer’s use was for DoD projects.

HAARP uses 3 powerful transmitter sites in Alaska. Somewhat on the flip side, the human brain which they control can, IF it has a memex implant, interface with the Beast computer which acts as a vast repository of human knowledge as well as answering questions to essentially all previously answered questions instantaneously. If the human brain has some type of virtual reality holodeck attachment, the computer can even walk the slave through a realistic setting indistinguishable from the real world. Robocop or robo-soldier has an incredible advantage with such extended memex/remote viewing capabilities.

The World Order has experimented in memex/remote viewing along several divergent paths. One method has been psychic (demonic) method, where the “natural” mental facilities of the human are trained. The other route has been high-tech. According to eye-witnesses both methods have yielded positive results, although it sounds like they are still refining their capabilities. The word telematics has come into use to denote the interconnection between computers and telecommunications. France has a National Telecommunications Research Center, which works with groups such as CII-Honeywell Bull (Jean-Pierre Brule, Pres., & Emmanuel de Robien, Sec.-Gen.). CII-Honeywell Bull did telematics and implant research, and so has IBM France. IBM’s subsidiary SBS developed satellite-based communications. In Britain, their National Physical Laboratory NPL has been active in telecommunications research. Professional computer groups have umbrella groups such as the British Computer Society, which help determine policies.

In the U.S. the National Center for Supercomputer applications works on virtual reality interface with humans. Meanwhile SCAN (Swinburne Centre for Applied Neurosciences, Hawthorn, Australia 3122) has been working on how to monitor human thoughts. These are just a few of a vast network of research groups applying their efforts to the types of things you will read about in this chapter.

Around 1973, TRW began designing a satellite that would allow the CIA to communicate with its assets/agents in “denied areas”. This was code-named Pyramider, and used frequency hopping. The signals can be hidden among random urban radio transmissions. (See Robert Lindsey, The Falcon and the Snowman. NY: Simon & Schuster, 1979, p. 218)

Some people who are related (in some fashion) to the CIA have been receiving Syntel implants that are communicating to them using signals that frequency-hop. So the proof is in the pudding, the CIA used Pyramider to contact implant victims. The World Order does not use every technological gadget they have in every situation. Use of secret weaponry is restricted so that the weaponry remains secret. This is one reason why victims of mind-control display such a wide variety of symptoms and control mechanisms. But what is scary is that any bozo can already purchase on the public market a frightening array of electronic mind-control devices.

Information Unlimited puts Out a catalog that any bozo on the street can order from which advertises 200,000 volt stun guns, laser ray gun, compressed air guns (Air Tasers) that knock people down with probes that attach instantly to the human target and jam their nervous system with T-waves, laser listening devices to listen at long range via their windows, implants along with the tracking system to keep track of people, animals or objects. They also sell other novel devices. While this author has that catalog that advertises for sale computer chips to implant people with, the psychiatric profession is helping cover-up Big Brother’s implant technology.

For instance the Journal of Nervous and Mental Disease, Sept. 1995, Vol. 183 (9), pp. 603-604, has a story about two males (aged 33 and 53 years old) who were labeled delusional because they complained of implants hidden in their fillings in their teeth. The article is entitled, “Delusional electronic dental inplants: Case reports and literature review.” The shrinks concluded the two men were obviously mentally ill and needed treatment with drugs because they are claiming that they have electronic dental implants. The psychiatrists wrote, “neither had any insight into the implausibility of the delusion.” The doctors gave antipsychotic drugs, and physically intervened to “prevent an inappropriate dental extraction.” According to the article, for some unknown reason, the two men “responded poorly” to anti-psychotic drugs. It never occurs to the psychiatrists that the reason the anti-psychotic drugs didn’t work is possibly because the men’s complaints were legitimate. The two shrinks were E. Sherwood Brown and Michael T. Lambert.

There are other cases too, where people complaining of implants have been labelled “delusional” by psychiatrists. The Amer. Psychiatric Assoc. is guilty of refusing to seriously review evidence that harassment & mind-control may be impacting people mentally. DSM-IV reflects this continuing refusal to accord victims of electronic mind-control any official recognition by the therapeutic community. Based on research by Drs. W. Fry & R. Meyers, the Network has learned how to make brain lesions of a minute controlled size with ultrasonics, rather than doing a lobotomy. In 1963, Dr. Peter Lindstrom at the Univ. of Pittsburgh was able to use a single unfocused sonic beam to destroy fiber tracts in the brain without damaging the nerve cells near them. Sonic beams (sound waves) can be used to control human thought. (We’ll discuss sonic beams some more later, now let’s delve into a key part of their electronic control–implants.)

SECTION B. AN INTRO TO IMPLANTS

B1. Three typical implant victims

Let’s look at three victims who suffer from of mind-control implants & body-control implants, who are known by this author. We can refer to them as “Amy”, Victim No. 1001…, “Betty”, Victim No. 1002…, and “Cathy”, Victim No. 1003… –”Amy” determined by using a spectrum analyzer that she had waves of 750 mhz targeted on her. “Betty” determined that she had the entire spectrum of radio-microwaves hitting her in a Morse code pattern. The transceiver (transmitter/receiver) for the signals was a fiber optic receiver made to look like a pubic hair that repeatedly burned holes in her underwear. Apparently, this side effect is a “bug” they haven’t gotten out of the technology. “Cathy” has ELF & VLF waves of 435 & 1080 Mhz signals targeted on her. When she’s active both types of waves come, and when she remains still the 1080 signal fades. (435 is in the 400-450 Mhz band which is the window to the human consciousness, and 1080 is in the 1000 to 1200 Mhz band.) They are also using a Nitrogen particle beam, which produces “nitrogen narcosis” (like the bends) in targeted victims. Xenon lamps can affect the mind and body, too. 435 Mhz is converted to 1080 by interaction with the high-atmosphere HAARP project. The 1100 (1000-1200) Mhz frequency can affect genetics. Implant RF frequencies have been damaging the eyes of implant victims. Although this gives us a starting point in our discussion, these are not the only frequencies that threaten mind-control victims. (See Section Dl for direct monitoring /manipulating frequencies.) Author W.H. Bowart in his Vol.1, No. 1, pg. 1 Freedom of Thought newsletter quotes Brian Bard of Glendale, CA who wrote, “I failed to discuss the utilization of power in modern mind control implants. Like Delgrado’s stimoceiver, no internal power source is necessary. The same electro-magnetic energy which is collected through induction by such relays produces an internal electrical charge of equal energy. Utilizing a capacitance circuitry design, the charge is stored as a mechanical distortion of the crystalline lattice and discharged as a focused pulse of electro-magnetic energy at a lower frequency. Higher frequency E-M has a higher energy state than lower frequency. Thus, the effective output of photons may be twice or thrice the potential of the relays. “A more advanced design in use utilizes 50 or more distinct channels for various functions. Not only the encrypted primary input signal utilized for signal output, but several channels are reserved for supplementary energy induction. With integrated switching, both passive and active surveillance of brainwave activity may be enhanced. Contrawise, signal output may be boosted and focused on specific neural pathways. The devices remain active, programmable signal relays with multiple selectable channels so long as electro-magnetic induction continues to occur.”

Modern microchip implants will have 250,000 components. Certain electrical freks will trigger certain neurochemicals. The frek 7.83, which is the elec. field resonating between the planet & its ionosphere, makes the subject feel in one with all creation. But it isn’t quite that simple, because a 7.83 frek can be sent in numerous different wave shapes, such as the rolling sinusoidal pattern, jagged sawtooth waves, rectangular (flat on top, flat on bottom) waves, and they all have a different effect on the brain. (Mega brain, pp. 108-109) One can imagine the potential power an implant that could create the proper frequencies could have over an individual.

B2. Documentation of implants.

On the following pages, are the startling anechoic chamber results when two victims of syntel implants were examined. (Synthetic telepathy implants give thoughts & voices.) These two pages document that they were receiving signals, in fact, the anechoic chamber results helped to pin point what building those signals were coming from!

For pictures click here 2-14 jpg

REFERENCE PAGE FOR UNDERSTANDING ELECTROMAGNETIC WAVES & MIND-CONTROL

The best way for people to understand electromagnetic waves is to think of the ocean’s waves. Some waves in the ocean are big, and some are small, size is amplitude.

Some beaches have waves that come quickly and some have waves that come slowly, this is called the frequency that the waves comes.

Researcher figured out how they could change the amplitude or the frequency of electromagnetic waves in a controlled way, and this is called amplitude modulation or frequency modulation.

Because all electromagnetic energy beams travel the same speed 3 x 10¹º cm/sec, an energy beam with a short wave must have many more of those short waves pass in a given time such as a day than a long wave. The shorter the wave the greater the frequency that a wave will arrive. While our image of an ocean is that it moves up and down in relation to the surface.

In other words, the ocean wave moves (vibrates) up and down in relation to the surface (a mathematical plane). Electromagnetic waves vibrate in 3 dimensions (relative to 3 planes), generally they are only drawn as one-dimensional waves. Our brains operate on waves that are very low frequency (from one cycle per second) to about 50 cycles per second. A cycle per second is called a Hertz (Hz). Due to the wide range of different amplitudes and frequencies it has been more practical to induce various measuring units. It would be nice if all the measuring units could be done in feet or meters or whatever, but the range in size from the very tiny to the very large means that they use different measuring units. Just like you use different measuring units to get a quart of milk and 3 gallons of gas. The milk could be called a quarter-gallon but it isn’t. In measuring frequency they use the following measuring terms:

1,000,000 cycles per second = Megahertz (MHz)
1,000 cycles per second = Kilohertz (KHz)
1 cycle per second = Hertz (Hz)

In measuring amplitude they measure the length of the waves with kilometers, meters, and centimeters. The very small waves are measured in angstroms, microns, and nanometers. What is an angstrom. A nanometer is one billionth of a meter. That is a very tiny fraction written as 1/1,000,000,000 of a meter or for short an nanometer. A micron is one millionth (1/1,000,000) of a meter. Ten nanometers are said to make up an angstrom. (In other words an angstrom is 1 ten-billionth of a meter.)

After they measure radio frequencies, the waves of different lengths are given other names. They could just say ‘waves from 30,000 to 300,000 MHz”, but instead they shorten things by having a special name for these waves EHF (Extremely High Frequency waves.)

This names are as follows:

Extremely High Frequency   EHF:    30,000 to 300,000 MHz
Superhigh Frequency           SHF:      3,000 to 30,000 MHz
Ultrahigh Frequency            UHF:         300 to 3,000 MHz
High Frequency                  VHF:            30 to 300 MHz
Medium Frequency               MF:          300 to 3,000 KI-Iz
Low Frequency                      LF:            30 to 300 KHz
Very Low Frequency          VLF:              3 to30KHz
Extremely Low Frequency    ELF:   Below 3 KHz to 1 Hz or less

BRAIN FREQUENCIES (FREKS) RELATE TO STATES OF ACTIVITY

The lower brain frequencies pertain to sleep and dream states. The middle brain frequencies pertain to normal wakeful activity. The higher brain frequencies pertain to aroused, or concerned or states of anxiety. No brain waves means a person is “brain dead”, even though some body functions may continue. Naturally occurring phenomena, such as lightning in a thunderstorms, sunny days that soak a person with extra positive ions, can all affect the thinking of brain.

CHART GOING UP THE FREQUENCY SCALE

These frequency no’s are in Hertz which is cycles per sec. (However the first part of the scale are non-linear, asymmetrical waves, which are mistakenly called Hertzian by many people.)

1 Approx. beginning of brain waves

6.66         Theta brain waves
7.85        Alpha brain waves
15.7         Beta brain waves
30-30.56 Government VLF stations
32-33      Government VLF stations
34-42     Government VLF stations
50          Approx. Upper limit of brain wave frequencies
60          Produces an audible sound

62-254.1 CTCSS (Continuous Tone Coded Squelch Systems). These tones CTCSS tones are broadcast continually interspersed on a frequency, which allows several different users to broadcast separately on the same frequency and only pick up the message that has their CTCSS tone.

Post Office Tones are 82.5, 91.5, 97.4. & 100.9. U.S.
Customs & border patrol is 100 Hz. U.S.
Secret service is 103.5 Hz. EPA is 114.8. IRS & BATF is 123.0.
Veterans Affairs, GSA, & Dept. of Energy is 127.3.
Fed. Aviation Admin. & U.S. Marshall service is 136.5.
Coast Guard Intell. is 141.3 Hz.
Dept. of State & Border Patrol is 151.4 Hz.
Drug Enforcement Agency, Fed. Aviation Admin., & Nat. Marine Fisheries is 156.7.
Justice Dept., FBI is 167.9.

10² (10 x 10) Ultrasonic

10³ Lower range of true Hertzian waves, waves in cycles per sec lower than this such as the human heart beat or Brain alpha waves are not Hertzian.

104 (10,000)

16,000-32,000 Range of Frequencies used in European implants to signal the implant.

54,900,000 Hz (54.9 MHz) Cellular phones (Also 435 MHz, 750 MHz, & 1080 MHz have been discovered being targeted on victims of implant mind-control.)

10¹¹ to 10¹² Far infra-red

10¹³ “Raman” I.R.

10¹4 Near Infra-red

10¹4 to 10¹5 Visible light spectrum

For picture #15 p_6-15.jpg

 

B3. GWEN Towers

The GWEN towers can be used for several purposes, including ELF waves used for direct mind control which will be covered toward the back of this chapter. Because they also are part of the implants system the are included before the chapter discusses implants. Unfortunately for us humans, ELF waves can penetrate almost anything. The U.S. Military has built a Ground-Wave Emergency Network (GWEN) all over the U.S. with several hundred 300-500′ GWEN towers that broadcast a very-low-frequency wave (VLF) for mind-control of the American public. A single GWEN tower can broadcast up to 300 miles in a 3600 circle. Plus 8 secret powerful ELF transmitters have been established and 3 of them operate on the west coast. It also needs to be pointed out that many items that are receivers can also function in the role of transmitters. Televisions, cellular phones, even air conditioners can be used to bounce signals to somewhere. Many strange towers and transmitting devices have been installed all over the U.S. in recent years.

B4. Body suits

Victims of mind-control who receive implants often are given a body suit of implants. The location of these implant sites used on the human body have been mapped 10.00 out on the following charts. The mapped sites on these charts are verified by a. an insider, who learned from the inside what is going on, EM (H) & b. this author’s experience in working with a sizable number of implant victims. Implants can be placed anywhere, but there are certain key sites that tend to be used. The location used also depends upon the type of implant. Implants over the body create the ability to trigger moods, pain, and other phenomena. Implants for auditory sounds are in the ear. Nasal implants are used for mind-control. Tracking implants are also placed into people.

Section C. Specific Implants

Cl. Audio implants (a. public. b. secret)
C2. Body manipulation implants
C3. Visual holographic implants
C4. Memex/Brain Link implants
C5. Torture/Nerve & Muscle Stimulation Implants
C6. Tracking & I.D. Implants.

C1. AUDIO IMPLANTS

BACKGROUND INFORMATION

The concepts used in audio implants had been discovered in the first half of the 20th century, but the refinement of technology to take advantage of what had been discovered waited until the second half of the century. The development of audio implants ran on two tracks, one was the public medical research and the other was the secret Illuminati/Intelligence Agencies’ research. Audio implants began to be publicly placed into people in the 1960s. The Illuminati was experimenting on some victims at this stage, and the military in the Vietnam war used auditory implant devices to aid communicating to their men who were sent into tunnels and who were placed into forest situations where audible noise would compromise their locations to the enemy. The Illuminati/Intelligence/& Military consortium was keeping the experimentation secret. It appears from looking at the worldwide research on audio implants that the Illuminati realized that the field was so ambiguous, and open to so many different approaches, that rather than straightjacket the research community by a specific strategy, they encouraged a wide variety of approaches in the research. Consequently, research by one group would overlap or duplicate research by another. Much to their credit, a few researchers rejected offers to get involved because they saw the sinister ramifications. By the 1970s, the intelligence agencies were willing to start using hundreds of people to experiment operationally with the implants. People in every state of the U.S. were selected as victims. Many of these implant victims had programmed multiple personalities already. The controllers were very heavy handed with the people they implanted, and they used the full force of the Illuminati/Intelligence agencies power to keep these people under their control at all times. These innocent victims have had their lives totally destroyed. Some tried to fight back, spending thousands of dollars to get out from underneath the incessant audio messages that the implants sent, but the system was too big and too powerful to fight. Police, congressmen, psychologists and many other people turned their backs on these victims. Some victims who initially fought back gave up resisting, some committed suicide, and some continued to fight. Meanwhile, on the public track during the 1970s & 1980s, medical researchers kept putting more and more audio implants into deaf and hard-to-hear persons. Hundreds of people in the U.S. and many hundreds in other nations such as the U.K., Germany, Austria, Israel, Australia, France and other countries began to receive the cochlear implants. Australia was so proud of their audio implant research/development they issued a postage stamp showing an implant device (“bionic ear”) developed in Australia. The question begs asking, if thousands of people have publicly received audio implants, isn’t obvious that the secret societies and secret intelligence agencies have done at least as much if not far more?

BRIEF CHRONOLOGY OF AUDIO IMPLANTS

1790–first known attempt by Volta to electrically stimulate the ears. He shot approximately 50 volts of electricity into his auditory system, and experienced the sensation of a blow to the head followed by a sound like the boiling of viscous liquid.

1850–Electro-otiatrics was begun by otologists who hoped electricity could help ear diseases in various ways.

1925–Sounds were created in people by radio engineers by placing electrodes near the ear with a modulated alternating current.

1930–Weaver & Bray discovered the principles used later in the cochlear microphonic implants.

1937–By passing an alternating electrical current in the audible frequency range from an electrode to the skin, Steven, Jones, Lurie and Flottorp found they could have people hear sounds. For a number of years these men studied this phenomena.

1957–Djourno and Eyries in France woke the world up concerning the ability to electrical stimulate the auditory nerves and produce sound with their reports. A patient from France reportedly gets William F. House, MD interested in developing an implant device.

1961–William House implants two patients with short-term audio implants. One patient receives a multiple electrode implant.

1960s–intense research for audio implants is conducted in California in places like Sanford, the Univ. of Calif., in L.A. etc. The military uses audio implants operationally to be able to talk to soldiers in situations where external noise would compromise the location of the American soldiers, such as exploring tunnel system.

1970s–Various researchers around the world begin publicly implanting audio implants into people. The Illuminati and intelligence agencies begin to secretly implant people, this is known because many of the early victims can pin point at time in the 1970s when they got their audio implants.

1980–The FDA establishes Federal regulations regarding cochlear audio implants.

1984–By this year, 369 people have publicly received the House Cochlear Audio Implants, which have been implanted by 36 different clinics. The 3M Cochlear Implant System! House Design for use in adults, which is already in hundreds of adults, receives FDA approval in Nov.

1990s–Audio implants along with other implants begin to be used more aggressively by the mind-control programmers. Successful intelligence operations are carried out with the aid of audio implants.

BASICS OF HOW THE IMPLANTS CAN FUNCTION

Thousands have publicly received audio implants, and thousands have received audio implants without their permission by the New World Order. The implants (whether secret or public) basically have to contain A. a receiver(s), B. a processor, C. a transmitter, D. electrodes or electrical stimulating device. When sound waves arrive to the human ear, the sound causes biological reactions all along the auditory pathway–from the cochlea, the auditory nerve, the brain stem nuclei and the primary cortical projection areas. Each of these areas are fair game for machinations of the mind-control researchers. There are brain stem potentials which originate in the auditory brain stem nuclei–primarily in the inferior colliculi. The public auditory implants produce a small electrical stimulus that bypasses damaged hair cells and directly stimulates the remaining auditory neural elements. This means that for the secret implants, the electrical impulse that is generated to stimulate the person to hear a sound or sentence is totally unnoticed by everyone but the victim. As mentioned before, psychologists are being used to shut victims up, by declaring that they are crazy for claiming to hear voices. How do these psychologists know that the person isn’t hearing voices from an implant? Some psychologists are declaring the implant victims are “crazy”, “delusional”, & “insane”, because audio implants supposedly don’t exist–therefore it is useless to give any credence to the complaints of victims. In other words, psychologists are being used as the establishment’s witch doctors to cover up the mind-control activities of the New World Order. What’s new? Establishment shrinks helped cover up the programmed multiplicity for decades by labelling the programmed-multiple slaves “paranoid schizophrenics”. During experiments, it was discovered that the skin of a person can pick up auditory vibrations, so tests were run to see if implants in other parts of the human body could be used for auditory implants. The vibrotacticle system of the skin has an upper limit of sensitivity to 400 to 500 Hz. In contrast the auditory system had a frequency range between 20 to 20,000 Hz and an optimum range of 300 to 3,000 Hz. The auditory system had a dynamic range of 130 dB (decibels) which the vibrotactile had only a 30-35 dB range. In other words, using the skin like on the chest to send auditory vibrations to the brain was a very limited way to create sound. For most purposes it isn’t a viable approach, even though some experimental auditory implants were placed in places like the chest. The ones that were tested only reconfirmed the suspicions that the best results are by using the inner cochlea and the auditory canal area. Dr. Begich’s and later others showed that a nonlinear function will translate one frequency to another frequency, but although it does jump, this method is inadequate for the current mind control signals, and a linear function is used which operates simply on the energy that the implants have.

Originally single channel devises were used, but then multichannel devices were soon found superior. The processing units of a device, had to have an extraction method to determine the pitch of the signal and then would present a square wave at the rate of that frequency. Soon the miniature computers that made up part of the audio implant were made so that they were programmable. Some of the publicly implanted people (for instance some who got a 4 mm. cochlear auditory implant), who thought they were getting medical help, were later followed up a decade later by the intelligence agencies for their own agenda, and instead of just hearing the world, they got to hear mind-control drivel from some handler communicating via the implant. As sound waves come into the public implants, they are fast Fourier transformed into many channels lying between say 100 and 4000 Hz. Each channel may be assigned to a specific electrode located on an array of electrodes. The electrodes are stimulated for instance at 300 pulses per minute. The transmissions go to receiver/stimulators that then stimulate the subject to hear something. (Fourier transforms have also been identified being used by human brains to encode memory.)

In order to keep their signals to their implanted victims secret, the Network employs a tactic called piggybacking where they piggyback their own audio transmission onto standard FM frequencies.

CANAL is the acronym for an system that is used simultaneously for transmission and reception via the use of a double-frequency shift keying (DFS). Radio transmitters that send quick signals are variously called BURST, SQUIRT, SQUASH, or high-speed transmitters.

USES OF THE IMPLANTS

a. by themselves, b. with other implants, and c. in conjunction with other mind-control devices.

TYPES OF AUDIO IMPLANTS–

Part A. Publicly admitted audio implants
Part. B. Secretly implanted audio implants.

Part A. Publicly admitted audio implants.

The entire world has gotten involved in audio implant research. The British Cochlear Implant Group has been setting up “implanting centres” for the UK. Not all the publicly known implants will be listed here, for instance, some of those I chose not to list include some developed in Spain by Bosch & Colomina, the ones created in Thailand by upgrading american made implants, and several made in East and West Germany before the wall went down, and the Swiss implant which was simply the Austrian audio implant used with their own processor.

3M COCHLEAR IMPLANT SYSTEM/HOUSE DESIGN–MODEL 7700 (AKA ALPHA)

BANFAI, EMG –Several models developed by Banfai in Cologne-Dueren, West Germany. It is digital, with a pulsatile signal and a programmable memory. The implant can be communicated with using an interface device hooked to a computer. The patient has a keyboard. It was first implanted in 1977 and has 8/14 and 16 channels. It has been implanted into hundreds of people.

BRITISH, for instance UCH– Developed by Douek, Fourcin and Moore in London and implanted with a single electrode in 1978 and multiple electrodes in 1990. The implant has bioglass, and promontory grooves for the electrode, and neural network programming in its computer memory.

CHEN AUDIO IMPLANT–developed in Guangzhoi, mainland China and first implanted in 1984. It was said by the chinese that 20 people received this implant.

CZECHOSLOVAKIAN–Implants were created by Volvoda and Tichy in Prague and implanted in the 1980s into a few people.

FRASER–Developed in London, and first implanted in 1983. It was notable because it had a round window in the implant. In the first few years it was implanted into 56 people. The encapsulated the implant in a high-grade Silastic rather than an epoxy, as some other European researchers had done

FRAYASE–Developed in Toulouse, France, this audio implant was implanted with its receiver in the chest. It was first implanted in

1981, and 22 people were said to have received it.

GOA–developed in Shanghai, China by Lee and Lin.

INERAID- (fka Symbion) produced by the Richards Company, USA. In the Journal of the Acoustical Society of America, Mar. 1994, vol. 95, pp. 1677-1678, they have an article about a woman who had an implant in one ear and not the other. She was asked to compare the pitch signals from natural sources versus the right ear audio implant. The most apical implanted electrode was not as accurate as the more basal located electrodes using an Ineraid implant.

IMPLEX COM 12–Comes with an interfacing computer and a Syncom patient self-tester

LAURA–Developed at Antwerp, Belgium. These were first implanted in 1986, and had an internal canal antenna, a microphone entirely internal in the auditory canal, a pre-amp, an antenna, and a data control circuit. Only a few subjects got this implant. It comes with a computer, and an interface unit. It does have a programmable memory.

MED-EL –Developed in Austria at Vienna and Innsbruck by Hochmair, and first implanted in 1977. Hundreds of people were implanted with this audio implant. Some were implanted externally with it and some internally inside the ear canal. It has one channel and a multitude of electrodes stimulating the audio channel. It is analogue, and sends an analogue signal. It does not have a programmable memory.

MXM- -Developed by Chouard in Paris and first implanted in 1974. It had been implanted by 1990 into 179 people.

NUCLEUS 22, NUCLEUS MINISYSTEM 22, and other NUCLEUS AUDIO IMPLANTS (aka CLARK’s Implants)–At least two models developed in Australia at Melbourne. This audio implant was first implanted in 1978. The implant is programmable from the outside. It has been implanted into many hundreds of people. It has a multitude of electrodes that stimulate the audio system. It is digital, sends a pulsatile signal, and has a programmable memory. The implant comes with a diagnostic and programming interface computer. The Australian government heavily subsidized with millions of dollars research into audio implants and got the Cochlear Corporation (Nucleus) going. Nucleus uses what is called MULTIPEAK which provides high-frequency information from 2000 to 7000 Hz. With this 4 electrodes are stimulated in rapid succession, and special algorithms are used which change the relationship between the pulse amplitude and the pulse duration in order to allow 4 pulses to occur within a single frame. The Nucleus Minisystem 22 was approved by the FDA for implantation in both adults and children.

Storz Instrument Co.’s Implant–developed at Univ. of Calif, San Francisco.

Part. B. Secretly implanted audio implants.

There were several profiles of people that were used in the World Order’s selection of secret victims to implant. The following were criteria that they liked in the selection process, a. vulnerable, such as single women, b. people who were already programmed with trauma-based mind-control, c. psychics, who had already told people they heard or saw things ordinary people don’t, d. people, not highly regarded by society such as minorities, criminals, street people, mentally insane, who would not be able to find a support system to help them fight the experimentation. They also did the audio implants into some of their own intelligence agents, apparently to some who were getting somewhat difficult to their superiors. Because of this type of profile, and some other things this author learned, it appears that the initial two decades were used more for experimentation and development than they were for actual operations. However, with more than 2 decades of experience, they are now fully operational. From watching their interaction (messages) with victims of audio implants, it is clear that they are not in the testing stage, but are fully operational, and have a full cadre of trained operatives (men & women) to staff the secret bases from which the monitor and broadcast signals to their slaves. The staff their bases with 3 shifts and the graveyard shift leaves approx. 6 a.m. In other words, from what we can tell they are using standard shift times for the audio implant control staffs.

COCHLEAR IMPLANTS–There are Cochlear implants for auditory control secretly implanted without permission. A rubber molding skin color covers the outer lining of the ear canal. There are tiny slits in this lining, which when pushed to the side would show the presence of coils and a plastic rod/wire embedded in the area. Sometimes burn marks occur on sides of face due to intense heat generated by implants, which is painful.

DENTAL AUDITORY IMPLANTS–At least a dozen victims have complained that after their teeth were capped they began hearing voices. Other sources indicate that during the filing process implants are being put into people. This is the type of implant placed into J. Z. Knight and left dormant for many years until they decided to activate her as New Age guru.

RIDGE IMPLANTS– These implants can produce Theta waves and even voices. They are designed to suppress a particular type of thinking. The body may be sent into paralysis or given various stimulus-response stimuli in order to suppress certain thought patterns. If the slave begins to have certain thought patterns that threaten the programming and programming structures, these implants kick in to divert the person’s mental activity to something else.

C2. BODY MANIPULATING IMPLANTS

The subject of body manipulating implants could have been placed in chapter 8, however the desire was to keep all the information on implants together. Mankind has placed objects into the human body for thousands of years in the hope that it would produce some type of change. So the history of this type of implants is volumous. Reader’s Digest had an article about how to give to paraplegics the use of their arms and legs with implants. Implants are being placed into the human body to effect growth changes, to change hormone levels (such as to stop estrogen), to change DNA growth, to carry out behavior modification, etc. Several papers have recommended that sex offenders get implants. The Rambo chips that have been put into many men have been linked to some big crimes. In recent times, the following body manipulating implants have been written about:

CRYSTALLINE CORTICOSTERONE IMPLANTS– These implants affect the hypothalamic-pituitary-adrenal (HPA) activity when there is stress or basal activity. It was placed into the medial prefrontal cortex (MpFC) to regulate the response to certain types of stress. Journal of Neuroscience, Sept. 1993, Vol. 13, pp. 3839-3847.

NORPLANT–a contraceptive implant placed into hispanic and black teenagers using the Mantel-Haenszel procedure. Written about in Journal of Adolescent Health, May 1995, Vol. 16(5), pp 389-395 by Nancy Campbell-Heider, John Glantz, Sandra Glantz, Eric Schaff, et al.

POLYMERIC BRAIN IMPLANT–These implants are ethylene-vinyl acetate copolymer matrix disks and are used to release into the brain dopamine for a period of a number of weeks. The testing of this has been done at Yale Univ. School of Medicine. Written about in the Annals of Neurology, Apr. 1989, Vol. 25, pp. 35 1-356. Written by Matthew During, Andrew Freese, and Bernhard Sabel, and Mark Saltzman, et. al.

PROTO-32 IMPLANT–Designed by Dr. McDaniels and a Dr. Paul Hod. This implant with a 32-bit microchip memory affects DNA growth within a person. The two doctors who developed the device are claimed to have died after they created the chip. The FDA has approved the use of the implant in the brain. It’s believed that there is a patent on the chip.

SILASTICMELATONIN-FILLED IMPLANT- Used to alter the speed of resynchronization of the circadian rhythm in birds, and implanted by the Max-Plank Institute fur Verhaltensphysiologie, Andechs, Germany. Although this was for birds, mention of it is done here to point out the type of research done at the Max-Plank Institute. It was written about in the Physiology and Behavior magazine, July 1995, Vol. 58, p. 89-90 by Michaela Hau and Eberhard Gwinner.

TESTOSTERONE IMPLANT–used to release testosterone into the subject.

C3. VISUAL/HOLOGRAPHIC IMPLANTS

BACKGROUND.

Hollywood has given us movies where visual and holographic implants are shown, but what about the real world? Yes, it does happen in more than the movies. Publicly, the establishment has only experimentally placed visual implants into a few volunteers. On the real life side of the NWO, there have been a number of victims who have been subjected to visual implants without their consent. One victim in Massachusetts labels her visual implants “visual prosthetics’, but mentions “I use this term loosely because they are more so attachments than replacements of my own vision.

Every now and then the public is made aware of where the World Order wants people to think research is at.   In the Jan. 13, 1997 issue of U.S. News & World Report (p. 52), the unveiling by researchers of the retinal chip that could potentially give sight to the blind was reported. It was interesting the article’s choice of words “retinal chip unveiled” (bold added).

After it was realized that sounds could be artificially made via electromagnetic waves in deaf people, researchers naturally thought of giving sight to the blind. In the 1960’s and 1970’s researchers struggled to produce implants that could restore sight to the blind. This research was hijacked by the NWO types and has been developed into another component for their mind-control.

In the 60’s Giles Brindley and others at Cambridge Univ. and in the 70’s William Dobelle and others at the Univ. of Utah, both were able to show that individual phosphenes could be evoked by electrical currents, thus showing the feasibility of visual implants. (See GS Brindley’s paper “The sensations produced by electrical stimulation of the visual cortex” in J. Physiology, Vol. 196, 1968, pp. 479-493. and W.H. Dobelle’s article in 1974 “Phosphenes produced by electrical stimulation of human occipital cortex, and their application to the development of a prosthesis for the blind.” in J. Physiol, 243: 553-576.) The public development went forward with the blind. Since most blind people still have the neurons (which are like a natural computer) in the higher visual regions of the brain fully intact, the implants are designed to take advantage of this unused potential.

The body has sensory pathways, that were discovered to be maps. In creating a visual image, the brain actually takes an image through several maps before getting the final image. There is a map for motion, along with at least 5 others maps such as one for form. The photoreceptors of the retina react to the three primary colors and have 3 primary color maps created by the electrical image made from the photoreceptors of the retina. (One’s genetics contribute to how each person perceives a primary color, we don’t all see colors uniformly.) The retina’s output (called optic nerves or retinal output) map the electrical image again onto the retinal ganglion cells. Then the optic nerves project the electrical image to a relay image (the lateral geniculate nucleus) where the brain begins combining the maps of the two eyes. Another network of neurons (called the optic radiations) then transfers the image back to the rear of the brain to the primary visual cortex. Then the brain takes the image through several higher level maps to its final finished product–the viewer’s perceived picture. The microelectrode array that creates a map for the blind person may be hooked up to the primary visual cortex, or other points in the process. The microelectrode arrays that were initially tested were much cruder than the human eye. They pixelized (turned into pixels, that is points) what the video camera saw. The implant compared to the human eye’s natural abilities something like what the old dot matrix printers created in comparison to a computer laser printer. The blind person’s perception via the implants is somewhat cruder than actual sight. Experiments have found that the brain has a great deal of power in choosing how it interprets images, so that it is hoped that the plasticity of the visual system will allow blind people’s brain to adapt to what they are being shown over a period of time to get the maximum visual advantage. This also implies that victims of visual implants–which are of a more sophisticated technology will also have a natural tendency to rewire their brains to accommodate the new sensory inputs.

One of several groups of public researchers into Visual Neuroprosthetics (visual implants) is Richard A. Normann, with the Dept. of Bioengineering, John Moran Lab for Applied Vision and Neural Sciences, at the Univ. of Utah. In 1990, he spoke to people at the IEEE International Conference on Systems, Man, and Cybernetics about visual implants. At that conference on cybernetics, there were already well thought out methods for creating silicon based electrode arrays. The John Hopkins University in Massachusetts is another research center into visual implants. MIT and Harvard have also been researching in the subject of visual implants. Advances in material available and micro-fabrication techniques has permitted the semiconductor manufacturer to create electrode arrays with 3-D architectures, which can then be implanted into the visual parts of a person.

HOW THEY WORK

In a true visual prosthetic, a video encoder (camera) transforms the visual world in front of a blind individual into electrical signals that are used to excite neurons at some point of the visual pathway. The video camera encoder will be a silicon retina that replaces some of the functions that the human retina performs, and then it makes what it sees into signal compatible with the neurons the encoder must stimulate. The signals from the encoder excite neurons either via a hard-wired percutaneous connection, or a telemetry link. “The stimulating electrodes must be implanted into visual pathway such that each electrode is able to excite only a small population of neurons in the vicinity of the electrode.” (Normann, Richard. “Visual Neuroprosthetics Functional Vision for the Blind”, in IEEE Engineering in Medicine and Biology, Jan-Feb. ’95, pg. 77) To improve the picture sent by the implants to the brain, electrodes the size of the neurons they intend to stimulate in the eye were developed. Kensall Wise at the University of Michigan created small high density electrode arrays out of silicon. In one model, the electrodes are .08 mm at their base, and taper to a sharpened tip. An array of hundreds of such electrodes can be implanted into cortical tissue about 1.5-2.0 mm below the cortical surface. This is not all of the design considerations involved, but it gives an idea of the direction that public research has gone in. A special pneumatic inserter that can shoot the arrays at high velocities to insert them into the cortical tissue was created by Patrick Rousche. This method provided limited cortical-based-map images. To further improve the picture, implants are being created that create a retinal map, rather than a cortical map. This can take advantage of the image forming properties of the human eye, and may give satisfactory images. At the current pace of public development, visual implants that restore sight are only a few years away from mass production. Meanwhile, the Network continues to create and use visual implants that are more sophisticated than what the public sector has been allowed to create. Bear in mind that these researchers use either foundation grant money or government grant money to operate. The Network is very careful about what technology is developed. Some excessively ambitious implant researchers (not visual, but other) have seen their work have a national security gag order thrown over them, and the research ends up muzzled from getting out to the public.

TYPES

FIBER OPTICS– Fiber optics permits the Network to use a fiber optic that looks like a hair as a television camera. In a body suit, several fiber optic cameras that look like hairs will be installed in key places to provide the handlers remote viewing. Fiber optics can also be mounted in the victim, to provide a means to receive remote pictures. Fiber optic implants can be placed by needle into any site on the body. One victim of electronic mind-control, who has repeatedly pulled out Fiber Optic hairs, had a tiny fiber optic hair shot into her chest above her tank top while she was in a restaurant. Some other implants that carry out the same function look like warts, moles, or blisters.

ARTIFICIAL LENSES — One victim describes his eye implants: “They are oblong objects with a square opening in the middle of them. They appear to be located on my corneas or rapped around them to be more accurate. They are connected to rods or wires that are spread out over my facial area and under the skin like a mask. The implants also appear to be connected to cochlear implants which are the cause of the repeated voice transmissions that I hear.” Via a camera, she was able to pick up the presence of a reddish orange smear or stain covering my eye lens. The color blends with her own eye coloring so it is extremely difficult to see anything in her eyes. The lenses of the implants are not lined up evenly with her cornea. The victim with the visual implants states, “Whenever I close my eyes, I see the presence of constant red orange haze centered with a tint of whitish blue. I also see a small area of fluorescent green color. When I sleep, I am subjected to virtual reality type pictures like programs being run through a computer with a 3-D effect. There is a constant whirring and clicking effect that comes from other implants such as the ears.” In review. Visual implants are at time called visual prosthetus, but are actually attachments rather than replacements. They are oblong with a square opening in the middle of them. They are located on the cornea (rapped around them) and are connected to rods/wires that are spread out over the facial area and under the skin like a mask. The coloring of the implant is blended with natural eye colors to camouflage it. When the victim closes his or her eyes there is a constant presence of a red-orange haze centered around a small screen. There are also two orbs with a tint of whitish blue, and a small area of fluorescent green. Visual reality pictures are run like programs from a computer, that have a three-D effect. The left forehead scalp area has a whirring noise.

BIO-CHIPS that “talk” to nerve cells. Some of the readers will have already heard of the bio-chips that talk to nerve cells. Stanford Research Inst. has been working on such bio-chips. Bear in mind, public research is generally a cover for what has already been discovered.

HOLOGRAPHIC OR H-INSERT– There is one type which has been called a Holographic Insert or H-Implant. A holographic memory is created by this implant. This may or may not be the Nanobots which are capable of creating holographic images in the mind. Let’s discuss the nanobots.

HOLOGRAPHIC IMPLANTS VIA NANOTECHNOLOGY & NANOBOTS

Nanotechnology is technology pertaining to very tiny robots and tiny computers that are in the range of nanometer-size (10 to 1,000 billionth of a meter). Nano means “one-billioneth”. In other words, extremely microscopic, we are talking about robots & machines one-billionth of a meter large. The Scanning Tunneling Microscope (STM) makes it possible to see something the size of a single atom. The STM will also pick up atoms and move them. People who are interested in nano-technology have regular meetings in the Silicon Valley. A Johannesburg, South African company Nanoteq (recently taken over by the Amer. company Microchip Technology) was the company that created nanotechnology encoders (based on a non-linear logarithm that mixes transmission lines and changes codes frequently). Microchip Technology is putting these encoders into their series of microcontrollers which are EEPROM-based.

The encoders are called Keeloq hopping-code technology. They are good in protecting micro-wave, ELF, infrared and radio-wave transmissions. Microchip Corp. is creating a sub-company group called Secure Data Products to work with this type of technology. In other words, the ALEX system reported on in Vol. 2 is being miniaturized. Another Nanotechnology company is Nanosystems, which is working with the Jansen Pharmaceutica N.y. unit of Illuminati-controlled Johnson and Johnson. We know numerous companies like the two mentioned above, who are working on Nanotechnology. We also know that they are not going to tell us their trade secrets and what they have really developed. For instance, this author had a hearty laugh when he read The New York Times (11/19/96 pg. Cl) article “Feat of the minuscule: scientists make abacus with carbon molecules: invention at Swiss research laboratory may be a step toward building faster computers”, because the article is patently disinformation! According to the article a Dr. James M. Gimzewski and colleagues discovered how to make tiny balls of 60 carbon-atoms each. They call these balls “Buckyballs”. They can move these balls via what they call a “scanning tunneling device”. A picture of the teeny-tiny 60-atom balls was shown in the article. So what did they do with this ability? They built an abacus (yeah sure! Come on guys!). If the reader understands computers–a computer at the most basic level is simply a base 2 number system. Anything that can consistently move or switch can be the basis for a computer. A computer is simply an enormous amount of on-off switches, where 0 can stand for off and 1 for on, etc. The article states, “Scientists at Switzerland have invented an ultraminiature abacus in which spherical carbon molecules sliding along the microscopic copper groves act as the counting beads for performing arithmetic calculations.” (So they are using it for arithmetic, yeah sure!) IBM reported that its scientists used the STM to move individual atoms so that they spelled “I-B-M” in atoms. If you believe that the ability to arrange individual atoms and tailor-build molecules was so that IBM scientists could spell IBM, then this book isn’t for you. A more recent NY Times article (2/2/97, p. E6) discusses how Xerox Corporation has created sensors the thickness of peach fuzz. These are called MEMS (micro-electomechanical systems). The article states, “MEMS are all about doing more with less, about being lean, mean, and next to invisible.” The article is lean on facts. It does give a hint of the incredible power these little gadgets have when the writer launches into his propaganda tirade at the end of the article, “Paradoxically the fear that accompanies the fantasy of nanotechnology is not that the culture will be as stratified and fragmented as Victorian England, but that the new culture will be one that is unrecognizable to everyone alive today.” That is true, this nano technology is taking us to the place that society will not be recognizable. The age of the future is planned to be the age of robots–humans if they are to survive are to be robotic slaves for the illuminated elite. However, this is not paranoid fear as the NY Times writer implies, but it is the unfortunate reality humanity faces. Some people apparently are already experiencing it. One victim of mind-control, whose father is Military Intelligence and whose family is part of the Illuminati, claims that he has been subjected to tiny robots called nanobots. These nanobots have been featured on TV, where they have been billed as an asset for surgeons. Reportedly, these tiny robots can work off of 10-100 kilohertz of beamed power. They have coil-shaped antennas, 2 little six-pointed “wings” to attach and move themselves with. These tiny boron-carbon nanobots have all kinds of purposes. One use is for multitudes of these Nanobots to be placed into a single victim’s head, where they are programmed to migrate to certain programmed positions where they can suppress the optical signals to the brain and replace these signals with their own holographic images that can be externally transmitted to the nanobots or preprogrammed in. They are trying or have succeeded, depending upon who is talking about nanobots, in making self-replicating assemblers. In other words, they have built miniature robots that build other robots. (Sounds like something the Japanese would do.)

Nanobot researchers talk about how great it will be to have tiny robots that are smaller than a red blood cell circulating in our blood removing fat, bacteria, and viruses.

SOME SOURCES. Recent articles on nanotechnolgy include: Electronic Times (12/7/95), Electronics Weekly (11/29/95), Electronic Engineering Times (11/27/95), the L.A. Times (11/11/94, 12/21/94, 2/7/96, 2/20/96), the NY Times (4/30/94, 11/19/96, 2/2/97), the Wall St. Journal (5/12/94, 1/9/96, 2/26/96). Eric Drexler wrote Engines of Creation (Anchor Press/Doubleday, 1986), a book about nanotechnology.

Books that will provide more information on nanotechnology:

Drexler, K. Eric and Peterson, Chris and Pergamit, Gayle. Unbounding the Future: The Nanotechnology Revolution. Morrow, 1991.

Hameroff, Stuart R. Ultimate Computing: Biomolecular Consciousness and Nanotechnology. Elsevier Science Pub., 1987.

Whitehouse, D.J. and Kawata, K., eds. Nanotechnology: Proceedings of the Joint Forum/ERATO Symposium held at Warwick Univ., 21-22 August 1990. Adam Hilger, 1991.

C4. MEMEX/BRAIN LINK IMPLANTS

The public doesn’t understand that programs showing research are typically rmation to hide what’s already in use. On “Cyberlife,” 12/17/96, a TV story was done on Dr. Ted Berger, a biological engineer, at U.S.CA, who is working on a microchip that will be a substitute for the hippocampus’ memory. The story stated that in two years a brain chip can be made that mimics the pattern of brain neurons so that it can be plugged in. The New World Order’s computer-satellite system allows a. communication devices to be embedded within a victim, as well as b. memex devices that are linked to the natural brain to boast the brain’s memory. In the Vol. 2 book, the ALEX (Amalgamated Logrythmic Encrypted Transmissions) system was described which allows the NWO to pulse codes on different frequencies in an erratic fashion that makes the transmissions hard to even spot. The ALEX system is one component of their ability to secretly transmit orders and information to their slaves. When a slave receives a body-suit of implants, one implant will be a central control implant that controls the body suit of implants and receives information from an external transmitting source. Some of the slaves have had their central controlling implant at the base of their skull. The concepts that Hollywood portrayed in the sci-fi movie “Johnny Mnemonic” where an oligarchy (in league with big business and the crime syndicates) controls the world, and uses a human who has an implant that stores tremendous amounts of information is– sad to say– not so far removed from what is already happening in secret.

INTERFACE DEVICES

The biocybernetic researchers for the New World Order have working on a number of interface devices to interface (link) the human brain with computers. A number of devices have been created. There is even a biochip the size of a large organic molecule that works as a memex implant. The idea of implants is difficult for some people to accept. I am in the possession of x-rays showing implants, of anechoic chamber readings showing that victims were receiving constant synthetic telemetry signals from outside transmitting sites, and a variety of other items showing evidence that this activity is going on. For instance, Professor Ingmar Wickbom, M.D. of the University Hospital, University of Calif. Medical Ctr., San Diego on 10/6/’83 wrote a letter “To Whom It May Concern” that skull x-rays of Robert Naslund indicated implants at the base of the skull that are “possibly some form of brain transmitters”. Some of the victims I personally know have managed to extract fiber optic fibers from their bodies.

ORGANIC BIOPROCESSORS LINKED TO VIRUSES– One direction that the New World Order took was to develop biochips and bioprocessors, that is three-dimensional organic circuitry that functions as computers. The conductive velocities of these miniature organic computers (protein lattices) are at least one million times faster than nerve cells. The circuit power of a given size of miniature organic computers is at least a million times greater than the same size of brain matter. Molecular computers made of living matter can be grown from DNA templates of genetically engineered bacteria. Synthetic proteins have been developed which match what they want to make into mini-computers. The end product is a bioprocessor (tiny computer) within a cell. These mini-computers are specifically linked with viruses which migrate to specific parts of the body. Viruses are primarily nucleoproteins, some of the small ones are not even alive, and they don’t even have metabolism. They do not have a metabolism to kill with an antibiotic. The Neurotropic viruses migrate to the central nervous system (nerves), the Dermotropic viruses migrate to the skin, the Pneumotropic viruses go to the lungs, the Viscerotropic go to the abdomen, and other viruses go to other sites in the body. Because many viruses will select what area of the body they will reside in, the New World Order can tailor (in tissue-culture) their bio-implants (which consist of a virus plus a bioprocessor) so they can target where they will end up in the mind-controlled slave. Such an virus implant is also called a symbiote, because it lives off of the host, the mind-controlled slave’s own body. These virus implants have life-expectancies that are a number of years long. A number of these implants within the victim serve as spies-in-the-camp, reporting detailed records of what the host’s body is doing. Research into how to splice and dice genetic material and then recombine it has been going on for a number of decades, and is very sophisticated. There are a number of very technical books on how to do it, but only a reader familiar with the language of genetic research could decipher their techniques & abilities with miniature RNA and DNA pieces. Several genetic books/papers describe how viruses can get host genetic material or other genetic material, thus giving us a window on how they transfer the miniature computers made from DNA templates to the viruses. In the book Mechanics of DNA Replication & Recombination, Proceedings of a UCLA Symposium held in Keystone, CO April 3-9, 1983,(edited by Nicholas R. Cozzarelli, of the Dept. of Molecular Biology Univ. of CA, Berkeley, published in NY by Alan K. Liss, Inc.) one of the leaders in this field said on page 12, “I remain faithful to the conviction that anything a cell can do, a biochemist should be able to do.” And yes they have been replicating strands of RNA & DNA, creating whatever they want. The Illuminati have been using these computers-in-viruses implants at least since the 1990s. The implants are easy to insert into the victim’s body, and the specific virus transport themselves and attach themselves where they are to go. The Illuminati then build body suits of these implants. The size of these tiny implants vary from tens of millicrons to hundreds of millimicrons. Just their tiny size makes them difficult to destroy. From research  on victims, it appears that a central computer is implanted to control or interact with the body suit of implants.

PSYCHICS– One of the Illuminati’s research projects was to discover the psi gene–the genetic gene that would permit them to breed a master race with psychic abilities. One of the groups that the Illuminati has controlled which did research in this area was Nazi Germany. Mengele, in fact, was interested in the co-relation of blood types to psychic abilities. Blood type B apparently has more psychics than other blood types. People who have true psychic abilities have a more complex molecular lattice structure than those who don’t. They also have energy fields of 500 cps or higher. This is in contrast with most brain activity which lies in the 0 cps to 100 cps range. The heart operates at up to about 250 cps, and the resonant frequency for a nerve is 360 cps. In other words, the high cps. energy field is a tip off that the person is psychic. A secret program has been carried out by the Illuminati to identify every person on the planet who is capable of being psychic. They are identified and then assigned to people (a male and female) to monitor the person. Psychics are often recruited into intelligence agencies to bring them under the power of the Illuminati’s establishment. In other cases, they are simply watched and monitored, some who are threats to them are killed, and others receive mind-control. They have been identifying people with psychic abilities and then trying to track and/or control them. They also will try to recruit or place these people under mind-control or both.

C5. TORTURE/NERVE & MUSCLE STIMULATION IMPLANTS

When a body suit is placed into a slave, implants are strategically placed in their body so that if they do not comply or if the Network wants to make the person dissociative they can direct the control implant to trigger these implants to activate. For instance two implants will be place on opposite side near the uterus and one in the lower back in order to give the handlers the ability to cause lots of lower back pain. Prior to electronically putting someone into an altered & controlled dissociative state, they will wear a person down with pain to make them dissociative. For instance, if an implant in the middle (square in the heel) of the foot goes off, a ball of electricity like a sparkler is activated causing pain, anxiety and discomfort. Some describe it as a hot pin prick in the foot. One victim and her mother both received these torture implants, and she was able to locate and remove some of them from her mother. I would like to paraphrase her description of finding these torture implants, “I discovered fiberoptic type implants on the lower back and also on the line where the leg and buttock join. The fiberoptic sites on the lower back was 1″ to the left of the spine, and consisted of two holes where the implants had been inserted which were one above the other, and at a distance of 5/8’ from each other. I was able to partially remove both of these fiber implants, but knots remained under the holes where tiny parts of the implants tenaciously remained. These two back implants seemed to connect signal-wise to the implant at the junction of the buttock and leg. This latter implant could create pain in the left leg and foot.” Sometimes a crackling sound like crickets accompanies the signal to create pain. A vibrating electrical field is often used on victims of electronic control. (Unconfirmed but possible:) One victim described a device that could have a dial rotated to allow the sender to chose different types of signals to be sent. This would be pointed at a victim. As this sounds like a good possibility, it has been included here, although there is nothing to confirm such a piece of equipment which is probably if it exists

BELLDAME TORTURE IMPLANT–Nothing available to report.

SUICIDE IMPLANT–Some claim that an implanted chip has been created that will release a poison upon a signal which will kill its host. This author has seen absolutely no evidence that such an implant exists. It’s use is likely disinformation.

C6. TRACKING & I.D. IMPLANTS

This type of implant has gotten most of the public’s attention. For several years now the public has been aware that animals, military personnel as well as civilians have been given tracking implants. Objects also have received tracking implants. DCI of the CIA Bob Gates is reported to have said, “If you can’t identify people, you can’t control them.” The Wall St. Journal, 3/30/1992 reported that the FDA proposed that tracking devices onto 35 classes of medical devices such as heart valves and breast implants. The excuse was that they needed to track life-sustaining medical devices better. The list of devices to be tracked includes cardiovascular filters, defibrillators, pacemaker electrodes, heart valves, tracheal protheses, breathing monitors, portable oxygen generators, ventilators, infusion oxygen generators, ventilators, infusion pumps and various silicone gel-filled devices such as testicular implants and breast implants, and spinal implants. The Hughs Identification Device has been placed onto such objects as breast implants. These tracking implants are reported to have a life of 250 years. Their tracking I.D. number consists of #, letter, #, letter, # etc. The U.S. Navy has employed RF/ID “waterproof bracelets” for tracking individuals underwater. The U.S. military has required its personnel to take tracking implants under the pretense of being able to find them if they get lost, and millions of men and women in the military have already gotten these tracking implants. A book published by the U.S. Army War College in 1994 (entitled The Revolution in Military Affairs and Conflict Short of War) shows the Army’s interest in tracking implants. Many tracking implants were placed into military personnel during Desert Shield/Desert Storm operations. Some tracking implants are programmable and can record vital data about a person. They could also be used as a debit card for financial transactions, which is why they have gotten so much attention as the much feared Mark of the Beast. Texe Marr’s popular book Project L.U.C.I.D. exposed the L.U.C.I.D. System which will be a central clearing house for keeping track of everyone. He reproduced a diagram from an issue of Narc Officer magazine showing how the system would connect an individual’s universal biometrics card with the justice, data communications, and telecommunications systems of the World Order. Texe Marrs and others are fascinated at the choice of words & acronyms that the establishment keeps picking. Dr. Creusat, a medical doctor with Interpol is the official designer of L.U.C.I.D. He and his co-designer initially refused to reveal what the acronym L.U.C.I.D. stands for. Some speculate that it stands for the obvious: “Lucifer’s I.D.” system. It’s also strange that AT&T called their new company derived from Bell Labs (which has been involved in mind-control for the Illuminati) “Lucent Technologies”. Again some people speculate that Lucent means Lucifer’s Enterprises. And what did Lucent come out with? They came out with a new computer network called “Inferno” (another name for Hell), written in a language called “Limbo” (a place in Hell) with computer protocols called “Styx” (a river in Hell). And then on the other side of the Atlantic, a world-wide net called Demon Internet is being offered to people in Europe. (To have Demon Internet installed for you by Demon Internet, Ltd. at 322 Regents Park Rd., Finchley, London N3 2QQ costs initially £1,762.50 for the first month according to recent company literature.) Again the obvious ques tion, why are these companies using occult–even satanic terms for their products? Illuminati member and chairman of IBM Thomas Watson, Jr. set up a cryptology research group at IBM’s research lab in Yorktown Heights in NY. This group was led by Horst Feistel, and it developed a cipher code called “Lucifer”. Lucifer was then sold to Lloyd’s of London. Lucifer was created under the auspices of the NSA. Lucifer worked off of an algorithm. The NSA had set things up via IBM so that it has had a back door to anything encrypted with Lucifer. (By the way NSA’s partner in the U.K. is the brit’s GCHQ.) The paper trail indicates that L.U.C.I.D. intends to keep track of people by using biometrics (iris scan, fingerprint, voiceprint, photos, and other bio identification features) that will be encoded on cards (or implants.) DNA databanks are already giving computers an enormous ability to identify millions of americans via their DNA. Texe Marrs also calls our attention in his book about L.U.C.I.D. to the important mandatory ISO 9000 program, which makes it mandatory for all products to have an ISO 9000 I.D. number and their approval and certification. Over 100 countries have adopted the ISO 9000 standards. In 1999, use of the system, which was voluntary, will become mandatory. The government is also setting up TPN (Trading Partner Numbers). While obtaining all these numbers to do business is not directly mind-control; if a person can’t buy or sell without the approved numbers, it does tend to place a person or company under the World Order’s control. The NACCB in England and the ASQC and the ANSI have been given power to accredit people with the ISO 9000 numbers. IOS is also in some type of overseeing role in the accreditation process. Here we go, more acronym monsters to control our lives! But while attention has been focused on this, many other implants have been implanted for mind-control. It all works together. The tracking implants certainly are an external means of controlling people that will work along side of the mind-control to lock people into their Established System. The tracking implants have broader application than just to keep track of an individual’s location, or his financial records. Tracking implants can be used to send bio information on the heart beat, the BEG, EKG and other bio tracking methods. Researchers who are following the field of tracking implants will remember the article “An Eight Channel Micropowered PAM/FM Biomedical Telemetry System” in the NTC ’71 Record, p. 309. The Air Force Office of Scientific Research, NASA financed that study which involved an 8-channel micropowered telemetry system designed to sense and transmit physiological data. The system was actually successfully used. They will also remember an earlier article in the IEEE Transactions on Bio-medical Engineering, Vol. BME-14, Oct. 1967 entitled, “The Design and Use of an FM/AM Radiotelemetry System for Multichannel Recording of Biological Data.” And then they will remember an even earlier report from the Biophysics Lab, of the Aerospace Medical Labs of the Aerospace Medical Div. at Wright Patterson AFB, Ohio dated 1965 entitled, “Personal telemetry transmitter system.” The point is that tracking implant research has been with us for several decades, and is being utilized to control slaves who have body suits of implants. They have been publicly monitoring animals with bio-telemetry for several decades, it doesn’t take any stretch of the imagination to comprehend that they are also doing it with their slaves. While these articles were from the ’60s, soon afterwards a book appeared Mackay, R.S.

Biomedical Telemetry, Sensing and Transmitting Biological Information from Animals and Man. John Wiley & Sons, Inc.: NY, 1970. Faceprints are a new method which uses a math algorithm that establishes distances between eye pupils, nasal base, lip center and other facial points. The algorithm produces a 50-bit number that is person-specific. The plans are to code this along with other unique I.D. features onto the magnetic strips of I.D. cards. The American CIA developed in conjunction with the Thai police a smart identity card for use in Thailand. The Computerworld Smithsonian Award was given to the Thai Ministry of Interior for this “innovative technology” in 1990. In other words, one part of Big Brother patted another on the back. Was the CIA protecting us, Mr. & Mrs. Citizens by doing this so-called “intelligence” work, or was it working on another agenda by developing this high tech ID card? Later the military adopted the MARC ID card based on similar ideas.

Bell Communications (in NJ) developed voice activated credit cards. Reports are that colds can throw one’s voice off so that it’s rejected by the flat microchip in the voice card. When this author calls the World Order’s mind-control “total”, he means just that–it is designed to control the body, mind and spirit of a person. By taking bio information via implants, DNA codes, blood types, retina scans, hand geometry and face prints, without our real consent the World Order has effectively stolen our Fifth Amendment rights. John Adams wrote, “Property must be secured or liberty cannot exist.” (The Works of John Adams, Vol. 6:9, p. 280.) The purpose of the American government was to protect property. But they have stolen our privacy. They have put into law (contrary to the Constitution & Bill of -Rights) several laws that will force us to provide information to computer data banks that will be used to determine if we can buy or sell, if we can get employment or not, & if we are deemed politically correct or not. And those on the wrong side of the NWO may be incarcerated and programmed. While tracking implants are not mind-control per se, they will work hand in glove with actual mind-control to make sure no one under mind-control can effectively get away. Therefore all tracking devices must be seen in the broader context as being devices to assist in the implementation of total mind-control. One genius scientist who worked on the bio-chip and who still works as a civilian for the government personally told this author that he is excused for his help on the project because technology is neutral. Technology is neither good nor bad, so he claims. I disagree, and so did another scientist who did repent of helping with this infernal project, and apologized to this author. These bio-chips are going to be used for the enslavement of mankind, and for total mind-control. There is no justification, no excuse great enough to allow people to side-step their responsibility in the creation of such technology intended for evil. We have a responsibility to know how our inventions will be used before we create them. It doesn’t take a rocket scientist to know what these inventions are going to be used for. Unfortunately, this man who assisted with the bio-chip is a rocket scientist.

Section D. Direct monitoring & manipulation of the brain/mind

D1. Direct monitoring of thought waves.

For many years, the basic waves have told us basic things about the mind. Rapid Beta waves come from normal mental activity like you are doing now, alpha waves indicate relaxation, theta waves mean meditation & memories, & ultraslow deltas mean deep sleep. Cognitive demands cause the gamma waves to synchronize. Alpha (as well as Theta) oscillations both encode and access cortical codes–what we describe as K-lines in this Deeper Insights book. The thalamus & the cortex are involved in memory. People with good memories have higher alpha freks than persons with poor memories. EEGs are used to watch these waves & their oscillations. PET scans are even more revealing. Thoughts can be analyzed in terms of the various parts of the mind that they require to produce them. In word-reading the mind activates specific posterior visual areas, and when the mind must identify a noun specific frontal & temporo-parietal areas are active. (See Posner, “Seeing the Mind”, Science magazine, 10/29/93, p. 673). PET scans & BEGs are interesting, but evoked potentials tell it all. The National Security Agency has a monopoly on monitoring the evoked potentials emitted by people’s brain’s electrical flux which are electromagnetic emissions in the 30-50 Hz, 5 milliwatt range. When a person thinks, or moves their body, or sees something, the brain creates an evoked potential or set of evoked potentials. These emissions can be decoded to see what the person is thinking or doing. This is called RNM (Remote Neural Monitoring). It is reported that the Kinnecome group at the NSA is involved with this type of monitoring round-the-clock of victims of electronic mind-control using EMF equipment that is scattered across the nation. A Signals Intelligence EMF scanning network allows the NSA’s computers to pinpoint and track any individual in the United States by watching for their specific bioelectrical field. In many ways, the tracking implants and the national I.D. cards are redundant, but the World Order wants to increase their control, while keeping their best technology secret. The NSA information is not randomly passed on to any individual, but they do have their ways to filter down information to mind-control handlers if they need to. They have exhibited an amazing ability to track the two co-authors, but that doesn’t mean that they are all powerful, just because their computers can remotely detect and keep track of people. This book is evidence that there is still some elbow room for independent thought in this world. What’s more frightening is the apathy in the world to stand up to the control. But the question may arise, how can they get any good reading on the brain’s evoked potentials from a distance? The equipment is a combined use of ELF-modulated masers along with Doppler-shifted interrogative RMCT masers. This technique allows them to send syntel directly through walls. A Maser is a microwave equivalent to a laser.

TESLA WAVES USED TO READ MINDS & IMPLANT VOICES

According to reports, the Soviets were the first to discover in the 1960’s that the human brain had 23 BEG band wave lengths, of which 11 of these were totally independent. By knowing those 11 band wave lengths, and then sending signals based upon those wave lengths, the human mind could be manipulated. The person’s PRIME FREK, that is their biological frequency needs to be identified, and then it is possible to remotely implant thoughts and voices into their minds.

In the early 1970’s, the U.S. Documentation Center as well as the White House’s spokesman had both reported that electromagnetic waves could be used to communicate with “a target biosystem.” (This was brought out in the U.S. District Court of the State of Utah where inmates who had been subjected to mind-control in prison tried unsuccessfully to fight back in court.)

The University of Utah was just one of several dirty research facilities which researched on human guinea pigs how Tesla waves could be used to manipulate the mind into hearing voices. They discovered how simple it is to use these waves to override and implant thoughts into the mind, and to read the thoughts of the mind. Then they subjected hundreds of inmates at the Gunnison Facility of the Utah State Prison, the State Hospital and perhaps other Utah State Prison facilities to this brand of mind-control in order to test it.

It certainly works. Numerous inmates tried to fight the system, and the obvious mind-control that so many of them were being subjected to. Hundreds of the inmates were subjected to heavy drugs and other severe punishment when they protested. Still they continued to protest. This was in the 1970’s, now the technology is being used over the entire United States.

The Tesla waves are sent to a victim in the following sequence of events.

Computers programmed with artificial intelligence handle most electronic controlled slaves. When the slave does something the computer can’t handle then human handlers step in to help. Men and women staff consoles attached to CRAY computers where they monitor the victims that need special attention. The full fledged electronic monitoring involves an entire body suit of various implant devices in the victim’s body. From the body suit, the controllers are able to track the victim, hear what the victim hears, and see via tiny fiberoptics some of what is going on around and with the victim. The staff have pre-recorded sound bites that they usually like to select, as well as occasion actual live messages. They transmit these messages, which are picked up by satellite and relayed to whatever large TV broadcasting antenna or GWEN tower or other antenna is near the victim. The signal is then relayed to some object near the victim, which serves as a relay antenna to pass the signal on to the victim. It’s believed that some type of implant picks up the signal and broadcasts the correct Tesla wave pattern to create voices within the victim. Meanwhile, the tracking implant keeps the staff and the satellite system informed every few minutes as to exactly where to send the voice signals. The Master computer and central HQ for electronic mind control is reported to be Boulder, CO. Several places have been identified by this author as key points. One report came in that transponders are being made in Boulder, CO. The central cellular computer is in the Boulder, CO National Bureau of Standards building. AT & T is cooperating with electronic mind-control also. NORAD tracks both space and earthbound objects. They have a Cheyenne Mtn. Air Station. Although it is clear from reports from mind-control victims that NORAD is actively involved in mind-control, exactly how the different tracking responsibilities are delegated is not known to this author at this time. It appears that there is duplication of efforts, and several NWO branches maintain the same capability.

D2. VOICES / OR THOUGHTS SENT ELECTRONICALLY DIRECTLY INTO THE MIND

Brain waves are connected to thought. When thought occurs there is a great deal of brain wave activity. The brain carries out what some people call “parallel processors”–that is it breaks a thinking process down into components and works on all simultaneously. When the World Order’s researchers have attempted to tamper with the mind they can place thoughts into the mind by tampering with the processes that create thoughts, without actually having to replicate the thought they want. In other words, they are deflecting the natural process into the synthetic process they want to get their desired result.

For group mind control, or isolated individuals, ELF waves can be sent that interact with the brain’s natural waves. The human brain synchronizes with the incoming waves and the end result can be panic, sleep, or a hypnotic trance. The wrong kinds of ELF waves can even damage the brain. In 1961, Allen Frey, a free-lance biophysicist and engineering psychologist reported that humans can hear microwaves. This had been known by the military since W.W.II. To form complex words and sentences, Frey realized he’d have to approach the level of 10 -mW/(cm)², but the bottom line is microwave-created movement of cochlear hair cells can be done. In the late 1950’s, Dr. Patrick Flanagan developed an electronic telepathy machine which was called the Neurophone. He writes about the Neurophone and its capabilities to transmit acoustic (sounds, voices) directly into the brain of an individual using the electromagnetic fields in his forward to the book Angels Don’t Play This HAARP by Jeane Manning and Dr. Nick Begich. The patent office held up his patent on the machine for 12 years. Dr. Flanagan writes, “Certain types of electromagnetic signals can induce visual and auditory effects when the field around the head or body is at the right frequency, intensity and modulation levels. We are not accusing the developers of HAARP of amoral intentions for the use of this technology but the potential for abuse is there.” (Angels Don’t Play This HAARP, p. 6) First, this author highly recommends the book Angels Don’t Play This HAARP; and second, this author is going to flat outright say that the developers of HAARP do not deserve the benefit of the doubt anymore–because some of them have a clear track record of developing and using mind-control techniques. HAARP is nothing less than a mind-control project. One of the persons that people trying to investigate HAARP kept running into was Col. John Alexander. Col. John Alexander was involved with the development of -HAARP. (Angels Don’t Play This HAARP, p. 19) Trauma-based mind-control victims have identified Col. John Alexander as being one of the primary mind-control programmers. He has been a key player in a number of mind-control projects for the government. Wright-Patterson AFB, Dayton, OH also play-ed a role in research for HAARP. A number of trauma-based mind-control victims have identified Wright-Patterson as a mind-control programming center. Apparently, the Air Force used some of the brain-stem scarred whiz kids at the base to try and develop Tesla technology. ARCO (via their ARCO Power Technologies, Inc. subsidiary) was the Air Force’s prime contractor on the first phase of HAARP’s development. ARCO has company doctors who are helping program mind-control victims. One of ARCO’s board members was Dr. Simon Ramo, who is a big player with the military and the secret government. The awarding of ARCO’s subsidiary APTI for the contract smelled like a rat, because other companies were obviously better suited than this tiny subsidiary with a staff of 25 in Washington, D.C. Besides the mind-control aspect of things, the World Order set things up so that APTI has the patent (#4,686,605, Method & Apparatus for Altering a Region in the -Earth’s Atmosphere, Ionosphere, and/or Magnetosphere) for the HAARP project, so they are a natural shoe-in for the project. There were other patents involved too, and about dozen of these patents assigned to APTI have now ended up with the large Raytheon Corp. (APTI was bought by B-Systems, and B-Systems was bought by Raytheon. All 3 are working fast and furiously developing technology for the NWO.) The NWO’s Stanford Research Institute developed many of HAARP’s high-fre-quency transmitting programs with money from the Defense Nuclear Agency. (This was from Angels Don’t Play This HAARP, p.47, which cites an NTIA memo, “NTIA Preliminary Assessment of Air Force Ionospheric Research Instrument”, 10/1/1993.) Mitre Corp. was also involved with HAARP. This author has exposed the Mitre Corp. in the past as being both Illuminati-run, & a co-partner with the NSA.

When a HAARP researcher pestered the Air Force for info, he was referred to Kirk-land AFB, NM another site deeply involved in mind-control and black projects. (Angels Don’t Play This HAARP, p.63) Los Alamos Nat. Labs also is involved with both mind-control & I-IAARP. Their Blackbeard Team is connected to the Alexis Satellite, which may or may not be connected to the ALEX system which this author has been warning about. Supposedly this is a gamma ray re-search satellite, but this author doesn’t know if this is the truth or a cover story. The Air Command & Staff College’s Airpower Journal lets the “cat out of the bag” so to speak when they reveal that weapons like HAARP will be used against civilians. The military wants to use weapons like HAARP to disorient people’s mental facilities. Newt Gingerich wrote the forward to an official US Air Force book entitled Low-Intensity Conflict and Modern Technology which described how electromagnetic weapons could be used to subjugate U.S. citizens who opposed their government. Cpt. Paul Tyler wrote the chapter on electromagnetic and psychotronic weapons. A paper trail does exist of the intentions to use HAARP for mind-control by our government. For the sake of completeness, and to provide the readers with a paper trail, I’ll quote directly from this official Air Force book from the part written by Cpt. Tyler, ‘The potential applications of artificial electromagnetic fields are wide-ranging and can be used in many military or quasi-military situations… Some of these potential uses include dealing with terrorist groups…crowd control,…and anti-personnel techniques in tactical warfare. In all cases, the electro-magnetic systems would be used to produce mild to severe physiological disruption or perceptual distortion or disorientation. In addition, the ability of individuals to function could be degraded to such a point that they would be combat ineffective. Another advantage of electromagnetic systems is that they provide coverage over large areas with a single system [this is an obvious reference to HAARP] . . . . Recently, pulsed electromagnetic fields have been reported to induce cellular transcription related to reproduction of DNA…. Knowledge of mechanisms of actions of Radio-Frequency Radiation (RFR) with living systems and the assessment of pulsed RFR effects, will demonstrate the vulnerability of humans to complex pulsed electromagnetic radiation fields… Experiments with elec-troshock, RFR experiments and the increasing understanding of the brain as an electrically-mediated-organ, suggest the serious probability that impressed electromagnetic fields can be disruptive of purposeful behavior and may be capable of directing and/or interrogating such behavior.” THERE YOU HAVE IT, a PAPER TRAIL that the MILITARY WANTS HAARP’S MIND-CONTROL capabilities. Dr. Abraham Liboff of Oakland Univ. has demonstrated how low-energy circularly polarized electromagnetic waves can change the brain’s ability to keep out certain ions, minerals, and chemicals. HAARP can also be used with genetic manipulating ionized radiation and chemicals to specifically control the mind. (See Chapter 8, section 2 for a complete discussion of this.)

SUMMARY OF ELF WAVE MIND CONTROL CAPABILITIES

Naval Intelligence and other groups have conducted research into ELF waves upon the human body and mind. Some of the many things that can be done to the human body and mind with ELF waves include:

a. put a person to sleep
b. make a person tired or depressed c. create a feeling of fear in a person d. create a zombie state
e. create a violent state
f. create a state of being sexually aggressive g. change cellular chemistry
h. change hormone levels
i. inhibit or enhance M(RNA) synthe-sis/processes
j. control the DNA transaction process
k. control biological spin and proton coupling constants in DNA, RNA & RNA transferases.

But electronic control of the brain comes in many forms. Perhaps the controllers only want to carry out mood shifts. ELF waves which will penetrate walls, and even go through the earth will create mood shifts according to how many cycles per minute they are sent at. Studies have proven that the time for ELF waves to cause a shift in mood is between 6 to 10 seconds (not a long time).

ELF waves below 6 cycles per second cause subjects to become emotionally upset and this rate may also disrupt bodily functions. At 8.2 cycles/sec. the person gets an elevated high such as would be accomplished by a master of meditation. 11 to 11.3 cycles per second cause the brain to become agitated and to begin riotous behavior. ELF waves could be directed at a population to help incite riots. Research has been carried out to determine how the brain’s sensory inputs are coded. It has been determined that visual input is relayed and built into a series of changing maps. The olfactory sense has thousands of specific codes to determine smells, and combinations of these are triggered by an object. One clue that gave researchers initially the idea that different individual human brains have a common internal electronic type coding for specific thoughts is that drugs will have such common effects on the human race–even -though one obtains individuals from widely different genetic pools. The best research is of course kept secret. We primarily have to report on what is released. E.R. John in Mecha-nisms of Memory (NY: Academic Press, 1967, pp. 348-349) announced his discovery that central neuro-electrical codes are indeed used by the human brain. Information transfers in the brain have been shown to be related to neuro-electrical frequency codes, and that a brain can be manipulated by beaming those codes from an external sources. For instance, Hippocampal neurons will have burst-firing frequencies between 100-200 Hz. Here are some of the resonance frequencies for manipulating these senses:

Visual centers of mind–25 Hz
Sense of touch center–9 Hz
Auditory (hearing) ctr– 15 Hz
Motor control– 10 Hz
Subconscious thoughts–20 Hz.

If the World Order wants to cause a person to make a gesture, they use ELF-modulated microwaves that are “KEYED” to distinctive brainwave patterns that are called “PREPARATION SETS.” If the controllers want to create an emotion they use specific “EXCITATION POTENTIALS” by creating the correct resonance frek which in turn creates a specific emotional state. Victims of electronic mind-control often complain of electronic fields placed -around their bodies. Recently, when an electrical storm blew a major metro power grid, one victim of electronic mind-control lost the force field that had been encircling her body. The brain is also attenuated to the earth magnetic field. By manipulating the magnetic field around a person, the magnitude of the beamed codes needed to elicit a change in the brain can be reduced. For example J.I. Jacobson changed melatonin levels in subjects by manipulating the magnetic field in conjunction with beamed “signals”. See Jacobson, J.I. “Pineal-hypothalamic tract meditation of pico Tesla magnetic fields in the treatment of neurological disorders.” FASEB Journal, 1994, 8, p. A656. Sandyk also successfully used manipulation of the magnetic fields and reported this in Sandyk, R. Successful treatment of mul-tiple sclerosis with magnetic fields. International Journal of Neuroscience, 1992, pp. 237-250. It was discovered that if an alternating magnetic field at a distance (resonance) frequency is superimposed upon a steady-state magnetic field, calcium and other ions within the brain can be moved with little energy. When this was discovered, researchers began to watch to see if variations in the -earth’s magnetic field during geomagnetic storms and in other situations, would affect the thinking of masses of people. They discovered that there were indeed changes to the human brain as a result of magnetic fluctuations. Cognitive thinking and conscious -thought occurs between the temperatures of 308º – 312º K (or 35º – 39º C) and the fundamental wave length associated with these thoughts are approximately 10 micrometers (which is an infrared wavelength.) Signals that blend with Background Radiation can be manipulated to control the brain. The temperature of the brain directly relates to how certain signals will affect it. It is believed that structures within the thalamus are involved with modulating the temperature sensitivity of biochemical oscillators. Heterodyne Principle Used. This principle is that multiple frequencies when applied to a nonlinear device produce new frequencies which are the sums and differences of the applied frequencies and their harmonics. In other words a local oscillator (also called a strong sinusoidal carrier wave) can multiply a weak signal. A microwave signal at a frequency A is mixed with a microwave local oscillator at frequency B in a nonlinear mixer. The mixer output signal which is A minus B is a faithful amplitude and phase reproduction of the original microwave signal but at a low, fixed frequency so that it can be measured simply with low-frek measuring devices. Heterodyne signals cost more to produce but cost is no problem for the government. Multiport network analysers, which use several simple power detectors and a computer analysis approach provide a less expensive way to measure both the relative voltage amplitude & the phase. Cell phone freks used. The controllers use the UHF cellular telephone frequencies, which are installed everywhere because the human cranium operates on the same frequencies that cellular phones operate on. This was not by accident.

PULSED AUDIOGRAMS–Pulsed audiograms use extremely low average power densities of electromagnetic energy acoustic amplifier driven by the rf transmitter’s modulator, the peak power density is a critical factor which is approx. 275 mw/rf for carrier frequencies 125 mc and 1,310 mc. Acoustic noise is approx. 80 decibels. Another source, the electrical sine wave analogs of each word is processed so that each time a sine wave crosses zero reference in the negative direction, & a brief pulse of microwave energy is triggered. These voice modulated microwaves transmit words to the brain. Sounds are generated when pulsed microwaves are aimed at absorbers made of carbon-impregnated polyurethane. An Acoustical Energy Wavefront (AEW) is created by modified transducement of sound waves, which are in the ultrasound spec-trum (USS). In other words scalar energy is being employed. When people are asleep they are the most vulnerable. TV antenna can serve both as transmitters and well as receivers. It can be made to oscillate a suitable resonant frequency. By transmitting signals in the TV/FM range and then modulating them in the ELF/ULF range, they can send signals. The Nexus magazine of Oct.-Nov. ’96 p. 16 reported on Dr. Ross Adley’s research. Dr. Adley did some work for the CIA on their Pandora project (an electronic mind-control project). He recently worked at the Loma Linda Univ. Med. School, CA. His research showed that the brain will react to EM radiation. To get a reaction the frequency, amplitude, and dose of the microwave radiation has to meet certain criteria. In the 1980’s, his experiments showed that microwave carrier-waves modulated with ELF waves will modify brain tissue. Weak EM fields will affect the binding of calcium ions to neuronal sites. This type of information is the type of information that pertains to the genetic mind-control covered in Chapter 8. Dr. Adley was able to prove that a 147 MHz (megahertz) field, which at a tissue level had an intensity of 0.8 milliwatts per square centimeters, caused an efflux or release of calcium ions from the irradiated brain tissue. “This response only occurred when the ELF modulation of the microwave carrier-wave had an amplitude modulated at 6-20 hertz (Hz). The maximum stimulation of the neurones took place at 16 Hz, but to either side of this frequency-range parameter there was no effect.” (Nexus, 10-11/’96, p. 16 citing Adey, Ross W. “Neurophysiologic Effects of Radiofrequency and Microwave Radiation” Bulletin of the New York Academy of Medicine, vol. 55, no. 11, Dec., ’79) Also microwaves as they enter the brain tissue, cause thermal expansion as -things heat up at the microscopic level, which produces strains in tissue. The strains produce acoustic stress waves that are conducted through the bone to the cochle-a, and the cochlea’s stimulation by the wave gives the brain its perception of hearing a sound just as the cochlea’s stimulation produces the normal sensation of hearing. For microwaves to do this they must be at 1310 MHz and 2982 MHz at the average power densities of .4 to 2 mW/cm². The peak power densities can be 200 to 300 mW/cm2 and the pulse repetition frequency was from 200 to 400 Hz. This makes an RF auditory sound. The sound appears to the victim as coming from within or near the back of the head. 2 criteria needed to hear microwaves are the ability to hear above 5 kHz, and good bone conduction.

Section E. Auxiliary uses of electronics & electromagnetic waves.

E1. hypnotic induction
E2. polygraphs
E3. attacks against people & objects
LIQUID CRYSTALS

“ALIEN” implants

BED COILS STANDARDIZED FOR MIND-CONTROL POTENTIAL

E4. virtual reality

El. ELECTRONICS TO AID HYPNOSIS

In a normal resting state the alpha waves of a person are between 6 -12 per second, and their breathing rate is about 20-40 breaths per mm. and their heart beat about 70 to 90 per minute. External stimuli will affect these rates. If a person fixes their attention on flashes and tones, such as what happens at some concerts, the body functions will tend to synchronize around the external tones and pulsing lights. It takes about ten minutes for the human mind/body to reconfigure itself in line with the external stimuli, then that rate of the flashing lights and tones and be lowered with a resulting lowering of the body’s alpha wave rate, their breathing, and their heart beat. Electronics can be an aid to hypnotizing people. If vibrations that vibrate at the rate of six to seven cycles per second are created in a room of people, the vibrations will induce alpha waves in the minds of the people. The increased alpha wave activity makes the listening subjects more susceptible to suggestion. This is similar to the effect Vibrato has on the mind. Vibrato is a tremulous pulsating effect produced by a minute and rapid variation in pitch either by a cappella or instrumental music. Years ago, public performances of vibrato music was outlawed in England because so many listeners went into altered states. A 6- to 7-cycle/sec vibration can be mask behind other sounds. Hypnosis with headphones repeating “You do not know this” are used simultaneously along with sonics as well as electrical patterns that scramble the brain.

E2. POLYGRAPHS FOR MONITORING PROGRAMMING AND MISSION ACCOMPLISHMENTS

Tyson II Corporate Offices, McLean, VA furnishes polygraph operators for the intelligence agencies, esp. Office of Security which is responsible for CIA polygraph examinations.

E3. ATTACKS on INDIVIDUALS and objects.

A victim of electronic mind-control in VA in a letter describing her torment writes, “I no longer have the stabbing pain in my back when I go in my back yard, as I did in Richmond; however, the pain from some type of directed energy weapon(s) is just as severe here as it was in Richmond. These electrical rays coming through the airways of my home cause me all kinds of physical pain and illnesses. They kill my house-plants; they kill my shrubs; they kill my vegetables and flowers in my garden; and most of all, they cause me tremendous amount of discomfort, as well as harassment. “Can you imagine having electrical rays directed at your bottom day and night, 365 days of the year. Can you imagine what it must be like to live around oversexed SCUM?…This technology is based on Scalar Technology and the Schumann Resonances or Frequencies. It is my understanding that the Schu-mann Frequencies from 0 to 30 hertz can affect every nerve, every gland, every muscle and every emotion of a human being. In other words, a person in my neighborhood can beam these rays into my home and control my body and I am having to suffer from their stupid appetites…” (letter in author’s files) Oscilloscopes have confirmed that some Direct ELF/VLF attacks have come from only a few feet. Electromagnetic attacks sometimes hit the victims entire body, like defibrillator paddles. Masers (microwave equivalents to a laser are used for electromagnetic attacks that cause burns that look like “cigarette burns”, favorite target areas are genitals, face and nose. The average power density can be at an rf such as 400_u_w/cm². Let’s quote another victim, whose letter is also in my files. At first years ago, they began using waves that were in the infrared spectrum that were barely discernable. The waves would target her and then latch on. Over the years they have gotten more sophisticated and more sadistic. She writes, “From time to time the field broadcast from my own head was in a ‘field’ about me, but, with the added feature of ‘harrassment’ voices also being broad-cast. These ‘harassment’ voices had taken a downright filthy tone, being blasphemous words, and venally oriented…. Before I was hit with the full-blown sadistic torture program I was awakened one night by a feeling of my head being raped. A light went on in my brain and I heard voices discussing me and cruelly laughing saying, “There, got her.”.. .The first added torture (accompanied by filty langauge, the language is all filth, obscenities, threats and intimidation) was a genital-urinary prod, pulsing about twice per second, and causing nearly incessant urination…, new added features … are body bangs and head bangs.. .The arrogance with which they announce what torture will be next is unbelievable… .Other sleep deprivation techniques are loud noises, and the interposing of visual phenomena. They seem to have devised a computer imaging which taps the visual nerves–these are like bad dreams. I have had almost no normal dreaming since this system was locked onto me. Over the years she got to understand her harassers better. They have called themselves “social workers” and referred to her as “the package.” They have enjoyed talking about her in front of her, and harassing her by talking to each other in public about the things she thought about the previous night. Finally, one more account of a victim who is constantly harassed. “I am being tortured with synthetic telepathy of emotive and voice bytes played over and over again in my brain to positively or negatively reinforce and ultimately con-trol my behavior. I get the sound on my left temporal lobe and in the right and left ear canals. I also get microwaved when I sleep and have vibratory pulsating fields on my lower spine, genitals, stomach, brain, feet or wherever. It is always in combination with the lower spine and something else. This seems to create an amnesiacal deep sleep with no feeling of pain. If I wake up suddenly (and this is the only chance I have of finding out what they are doing to me) I sometimes feel pain when the vibrations stop.”

Other attacks/problems:

• Infra-sound attack

• magnets repelled from the cranium

• They use a “Gun” which sends an electromagnetic field which stops a car.

The Russians have been noted to have created a “wood-pecker” signal, the American version of this is the American Buzzsaw. These signals are designed to interface with the mind. And systems are designed to be carried in helicopters, or to be placed on the ground. These signals are broadcast by multiple carriers which hop from frequency to frequency anywhere from 4 MHz to 30 MHz. With the switching of these frequencies, they are creating what is know as a Levinson Transform, named after Norman Levinson. VLF (Very low frequency waves) will cause bizarre behavior in people. (They use 0 to 400 Khz for mind-control operations. The signals are apparently broken up into pieces and triangulated upon a target. Morse codes are used on some slaves to trigger them, which is sent via a number of methods. Victims often have the myelin sheathing of the brain disappearing, which is diagnosed as Multiple Sclerosis. MS has increased 100 fold over the past few years. Pre-conditioning is done by chemicals to the neuro-receptors in the brain and spine. When moving in a car or inside a store it is harder for a victim to be targeted. Also, as readers can imagine, signals being beamed from some tower or satellite will be blocked by large thicknesses of concrete, lead and -steel. In other words, there are some situations that provide limited shelter to the victims of implant body suits and syntel.

UNWANTED CHANGES

There is a complex symbiosis between mankind and the attributes of this planet. We are a life-form whose life is attuned to our environment. The human body at the cellular level has its physiological rhythms which are very attuned to the earth’s electric and magnetic fields. When cosmic radiation cycles undergo unusual modifications, including cycle inversions, the metabolism in crabs and the oxygen consumption cycles in carrots, potatoes -shellfish and rats changes. The geomagnetic field helps protect us from cosmic rays. It has been shown that solar flares influence human behavior, and psych wards have an increase in problem behavior during solar flares. The human body is a complex set of rhythms. Permit me to recall some of these rhythms for the reader: Alpha rhythms, Blood Hormone rhythms, Body temperature rhythms (which fluctuate 3º on 24 hour cycle), Cell mitosis rhythms, Cellular DNA & RNA synthesizing rhythms, Cerebral-spinal fluid rhythms, Circadian rhythms, Enzyme rhythms, Food utilization rhythms, Menstrual & Sexual -rhythms, Pulse rates, Seasonal rhythms, and Urine Electrolyte Disposal rhythms. The 60-pulse-per-second power grids (of AC) that are spread over the earth, as well as numerous other man-made activities are disrupting the 7-8 hertz frequency of the earth. There are some side-effects to our tampering with the magnetic and electrical fields of this planet, and some of these side effects may be the disruption or change of the circadian -rhythms (as well as some of the other rhythms of the human body and mind.) In fact, two researchers have research that shows how human nerve cells are affected by ELF fields. (See Becker, Dr. Robert O. Cross-Currents: The Perils of Electropollution, The Promise of Electromedicene. LA: Jeremy Tarcher, 1990, p. 233.) It was discovered by CIT researchers that the human brain has magnetite. Salmon, homing pigeons, whales, and honeybees also have magnetite, a type crystalline iron, which allows them to sense the earth’s magnetic field for finding their way around. The CIT researchers published their finding about mag-netite in human brains in the journal Proceedings of the National Academy of Sciences.

LIQUID CRYSTALS

For about 6 years this author has heard about liquid crystal implants. One military magazine should its use, and one person who was in military intelligence claims liquid crystals are used. Others claim that liquid crystals were tried and failed. It has also been reported that radio transmitting crystals, that fasten themselves to the brain have been the object of research.

Some ODDS & ENDS

• SERPENTINE SKIN

Another topic that for sure was tried by the NWO was serpentine skin. This is a type of specialized fungus that coats the skin and is used for some of its specialized features. Whether this concept actually flies outside of the lab, this author doesn’t know.

• “ALIEN” implants

This author’s take on the alien phenomena is that it is the Illuminati’s Grand Deception for introducing the AntiChrist. The aliens are materialized demons, and manufactured “soul less” bodies. It’s not the purpose here to put forth evidence concerning this Grand Deception, that would take another book, if not several books. (In fact, this author started to write it in 1993, but never got finished.) But no book discussing implants & mind-control could be complete without -touching on alien implants. There is a great overlap between “alien abductions” and mind-control. Whitley Strieber (UFO abductee and famous author) gave two workshops at the UFO Expo West LA. He was very interested in finding out about the implants that Dr. Lear and Derrell Sims had extracted and turned over to traditional medical institutions for study. While Whitley was talking about implants and our government’s connection to them, his own implant in his ear turned on and the side of his face turned red like a bad sunburn. Other UFO buffs in attendance also had their implants burn them at this point, causing great excitement at the Wyndham Hotel that day. (This information came from the internet madsongroup@earthlink.net )

There are an increasing number of “alien abductees” who are remembering seeing U.S. military personnel during their so-called alien abductions. The abductees are being taken to U.S. Military bases. (An unusual place for aliens to work, but within the realm of possibility.) The reason that the number of people who are connecting the government with the aliens is increasing is a. more people are receiving mind-control programming, therefore there are more people for which the cover stories and electroshock fail to totally hide what has happened, b. better therapeutic methods are helping mind-control victims recover their memories better, c. there have been a rising number of people like this author exposing it. Karla Turner, who was a victim of mind-control and abductions, began catching on that the abductions were being done by our government. Vol. 2 quoted her on page 184. When she began to publicly expose what the government was doing, the government murdered her. (She joins a growing num-ber of people this author has seen die pre-maturely because they were publicly exposing the truth.) Alien abduction victims have been reporting human black-or dark helicopter activity and black-or dark helicopter harassment since the 1970’s. (Perhaps as the Vietnam War wound down & ended, the U.S. government had a surplus of helicopters and delegated some to task forces that picked up mind-control victims in remote sites.) An example from this time period of an alien abduction also involving helicopters is the Betty Andreasson/Luca abduction. A number of victims have remembered the helicopters coming -around the time of their abduction. When bright lights are shined into their houses or into their cars these victims of trauma-based mind-control are programmed to see the helicopter’s spotlight as a UFO. (Helicopters also carry spoofer transmitters.) Beth Collins of Oregon reports in her book Connections – Solving our Alien Abduction Mystery. Newberg, OR: Wild Flower Press, 1966, about how helicopters were involved with her abduction experiences. She lives in an area that is a hot-bed for covert CIA activities. In her book, she provides a transcript of memories of military personnel being the guilty party in an abduction. Some victims of these abduction experiences are implanted during their abduction. Researcher Helmut Lammer reports that “alien” abductees Debby Jordan and Leah Haley had implants removed from their ears. What is significant about this, is that the bio-chip implant designed for humans which is credited to Dr. Man, best works behind the ears. (Sources: The Kansas City Star, 7/19/87 carried an article about how Dr. Man’s implants work best behind the ear. On Oct., ’87, an article by Kathy Hart was run in several papers promoting Dr. Man’s implants for protecting children. H. Lammer reported on implants & military involvement in abductions in his article “Preliminary Findings of Project MILAB: Evidence for military kidnappings of alleged UFO abductees.” The Unopened Files, No. 2, ’97, pp 64-67.) From this author’s interviews with “alien abductees” it was clear that 100% of them were victims of U.S. government trauma-based mind-control and that many of them had been taken to underground pro-gramming facilities and made to believe they were at another planet. This is happening in foreign countries too. However, this doesn’t mean that flying saucers craft do not exist, they do. And according to eye-witnesses some of the underground facilities in NM, AZ, and CO have personnel from all over the -world, Germans, Russians, British & Americans as well as aliens working side by side. (The American government denies this. Supposedly NORAD only has Canadians.) Some of these witnesses come across as credible. If their reports are true, then some implants may also have a true alien connection. Alien abductees are actually extracting implants from their noses and their feet. It is strange that -”alien” implants have gotten more technologically sophisticated over the years.

BED COILS STANDARDIZED FOR MIND-CONTROL POTENTIAL

Metal coil springs were standardized in size, are made of steel and are placed in a grid pattern in a common mattress. Standards were introduced that specify how many coils, and what tension were to be used in their manufacture. Their shape is an open ended hyperbolic which is the best suited to create a similar induced magnetic field. When one lays down the springs are compressed and have between 5 to 7 coils compressed. This makes a field of influence around the human body which is enfolded within the field of coils, which are natural antennas to incoming electromagnetic waves. Evidence suggests that the standardizing of bed springs was a carefully planned event designed to assist electronic mind-control.

E4. VIRTUAL REALITY.

Since 1989, Virtual Reality conferences-exhibitions have been held. On May 11-13, 1994, the largest conference-exhibition to date on virtual reality was held at the San Jose Civic Center and the Fairmont Hotel, San Jose, CA. Note some of the mind-control aspects of the different sessions:

Session C7–”Tactile Feedback” given by Paul Cutt. Xtensory Session C8–”The Immersion Probe” given by Louis Rosenberg, Pres. of Immersion Corporation.

Session D2–”Biomedical Technology and Biomedical Education” given by John Flynn

Session D9–”Biocybernetics and VR” given by Dave Warner, Medical Scientist at Loma Linda Univ. Med. Center During lunch Kenny Meyer discussed how simulated being in a virtual world are called various names incl. synthetic actors, situated agents, creatures and denizens. At another meal break Lt. Col. Martin Stytz, USAF, spoke on how the military was developing Virtual Reality to train men.

Session C17–AFIT Projects, that is Alr Force Institute of Technology at Wright Patterson AFB given by Elizabeth Block. (Wright Patterson happens to be a major hub for the mind-control and criminal activities of the secret government.)

Session C19–”ARPA/ASTO” given by Lt. Col. David Neyland.

The military is not the only group interested in virtual reality. A plethora of virtual reality companies has -sprung up, for instance Sense8 (which selling ready-to-use virtual reality systems), the Vivid Group which creates Mandala (which are virtual reality authoring systems), and Xtensory Inc., which creates virtual reality tactile feedback systems. The government also works through labs located on American universities working with government grant money, such as the state of the art Virtual Reality lab at the Univer. of Illinois Circle campus, which calls its virtual reality machine “the Cave.” Virtual touch has been created. This means that with a special machine for the person’s hand (for shape perception) & special glove (for texture sensing) the computer users can feel the shape and texture of an object on the screen.

Hollywood has given us movies showing the mind-control potential of virtual reality in Lawnmower man & Brainstorm. For more information on virtual reality the reader might try consulting:

• Aukastakalnis, Steve and Blatner, David. Silicon Mirage: The Art and Science of Virtual Reality. Peachpit Press, 1992.

• Laurel, Brenda. The Art of Human-Computer Interface Design. Addison-Wesley, 1990.

This author has a catalog advertizing the EMCS-X-3000-Plus Electronic Mind Con-trol System, which was invented by Cabalistic Hermetic magician Karl Welz. The ad states, “If your intentions are to take control of others and to increase your own mental powers of direct action, then the EMCS-X-3000-Plus is your system of choice!” The article has an endorsement for the BMCS system on page 19 by a charismatic minister, “…I am a preacher of a charismatic church. for reasons you may understand, I was extremely skeptical initially [of the EMCS system]. However, I gave the new tech-nology a chance to help me serve the Lord better, and I do not regret that decision! The membership of my church has more than doubled within one year … Thank you very much.” —We live in some perilous times! Maranatha!

• List of other Books on this chpt’s Subject

Bamford’s The Puzzle Palace
Becker’s The Body Electric
Becker’s Cross Currents
Brodeur’s Currents of Death
Brodeur’s The Zapping of America
Burdock, Dorothy’s Such Things Are Known (victim)
Calder’s The Mind of Man
Chokroverty’s Magnetic Stimulation in Clinical Neurophysiology
Clark’s July 20, 2019
Dawes’ Advances in…Quantum Neurodynamics
Eccles, Sir John C.’s Evolution of the Complexity of the Brain with Emergence of Consciousness
Galton’s MedTech
Green’s Beyond Biofeedback
Halacy’s Cyborg
Halperin’s Crimes of the Intell. Community
Heller’s Of Mice, Men & Molecules
Hooper’s The Three-Pound Universe
Hougan’s Secret Agenda
Hutchison’s Megabrain
Johnsons’s In the Palaces of Memory
McKinnell’s Cloning: A Biologist Reports
Mark’s The Search for the Manchurian Candidate
McRae’s Mind Wars
Pine’s The Brain Changers
Stanford Research Inst., Journal of Scientific Exploration, vol. 10, no. 1, PP. 1-111
Regan’s Evoked Potentials
Rein, Glen’s Modulation of Neurotransmitter Function by Quantum Fields
Restak’s The Mind
Rucker’s Mind Tools
Valenstein’s Brain Control

Weinstein’s Psychiatry & the CIA: Victims of Mind Cntl The American military establishment lumped syntel and a number of other outrageous “weapons of torture and control” under the official heading of “non-lethal”. Then the establishment media (TV & newspapers) such as the Wall St. Journal, Aug. 2, ‘94, had an article about non-lethal weapons where they wrote about the sticky-goo gun”, which uses goo to stop people. Do you see how they create a cover? When the public hears of non-lethal weapons they think sticky-goo guns, not implants that are torturing and controlling people.

Herman Kahn of the Hudson Institute stated that total mind-control would be in place by 2000 and could be “imposed under the rubic of mental hygiene.”


CHAPTER 7:  THE SCIENCE OF STRUCTURING
A. STRUCTURING OF MPD WORLDS
WORKING WITH PARTS OF THE MIND
CONTROL ALTERS called PROCESSORS
BASIC DESIGNS of an ALTER SYSTEM
RINGS The Ferris-wheel subsystem MULTIPLEX
DATA ENTRY POINTS
TESTING ALTERS TO SEE IF THEY CAN BE USED.
THE SCRIPTS.
Assassination Models (Delta Models).
AUTHORITY FACTORS ARE MAXIMIZED
ACCOUNTABILITY & ANONYMITY
Monkey Alters.
Plant alters.
Presidential Models
Prostitute Models.
Psychic models.
Reporting Alters.
Repunzel alter.
Transformation alters.
Internal Wall alters
Structuring Internal Programmer Alters.
STRUCTURING WITH THE GRAND DRUID COUNCIL.
STRUCTURING THE SHADOW ALTERS
STRUCTURING IN THE MIRRORS
STRUCTURING THE TAPESTRY
STRUCTURING THE ALTER FAMILIES BY SPINNING 

The programmers are experts in knowing how to mold the “clay” of blank dissociated parts of the mind into whatever piece they need. The following is a true account. The Chinese arrested a foreigner skilled in martial arts. They abused the man, but instead of becoming apathetic, he kept himself mentally & physically fit in spite of the horrible conditions of his solitary cell. The superstitious guards believed he was a magician. When the identity of the man was discovered, and the Chinese realized that he was one of the world’s greatest martial arts experts, they decided to try everything possible to destroy him. He was tortured, starved, and humiliated. The man simply went into dissociative states of trance and endured the tortures without sign of pain or emotion. The hardened guards were awed. The Chinese decided to kill the man. They figured that they could place him in a cage with a starved tiger, he’d go into trance and the starved tiger would eat him, and then they could claim that the man had been a coward. They not only wanted the man’s life but his reputation. When they threw the much-tortured prisoner into the hungry tiger’s cage, the martial arts expert took on the appearance of a demonized man. With a demonic roar, he attacked the tiger, and instantly kicked the tiger’s nose. The animal was stunned and disoriented. The man leaped upon the animal from behind, let out a terrifying scream and strangled the animal. In 20 seconds the whole affair was over.

The man looked like an incarnation of a tiger himself. In fact, the tiger had instantly feared the man the split second the master had landed in the cage. When the programmers ARE SUCCESSFUL with their STRUCTURING–they are able to create alters that match what you have just read about. Our Chinese prison story illustrates the type of end results the Illuminati want from hours of torture & training given to slaves, but HOW do they achieve such fantastic results? That is what this chapter is about.

Some of the programmed skills of the ninjitsu people (the ninja) are now being structured into Illuminati mind-controlled slaves. A disciple of the above prisoner in China wrote, [the Ninja]…”were the original practitioners of the ‘art of [mind-control] programming’. They were taught from the cradle that nothing was impossible. Not knowing that a thing could not be done, they proceeded to do it.” (The Karate Dojo, p. 101)

A. STRUCTURING OF MPD WORLDS

The purpose of the mind-control is to build a System within the mind that is a human robot. It would do no good to torture the slave and get thousands of pieces (fragments of the mind, alter personalities) if these were not structured. Very few Multiples have ever really gotten to see the deeper parts of their Systems.

WORKING WITH PARTS OF THE MIND

For many people who are unfamiliar with MPD, it can be expected that they would find it strange to watch how the programmers or the therapists work with parts of the mind. Most people mis-perceive the mind as a monolithic entity. In reality the normal mind is made up of hundreds of independent parts working in cooperation and competition with each other.

The top brain researchers (at least many of them) have come to realize that the brain is composed of many independent parts that at times work against each other. For the normal person, some of these parts can be called ego states and some small processes are called by Minsky “agents” of the mind. For the multiple personality they are called alters, splits, and purpose fragments. A normal person has a society of agents and ego states which are entities or parts of the mind which combine to make the whole thinking mind. A multiple personality does not have a society, but rather a system of parts. Whether a person has a society of agents or a system of alters, everyone experiences his or her mind as a combination of processes, conflicting motives, and internal tensions.

In order to bring some cohesion and unity to one’s actions, so that a person didn’t spend their life going in fifty different directions at once, the mind creates the illusion of self, the self image. The self-image by necessity must not change rapidly. One of the main reasons the mind creates a self-image is so it can have a single purpose to its actions. One of the functions of a self-image (of anyone) IS TO PREVENT RAPID CHANGES. Long range plans could not be pulled off if my personality were like Jane today and Tarzan tomorrow and Cheetah the next day. The mind refuses to change its self-image, even in the face of conflicting data, because self-preservation of a directed life demands continuity from day to day in our personality. Our self-image is a mental construct that stabilizes the mind’s numerous processes. It is a global attitude registered in the mind that globally affects thinking in many of the mind’s spheres. This is just one reason why the self-images constructed by the programmer for alters are so tenacious, and so difficult to change. Self-images do not want change, they are the restraints (the ball and chain) we subconsciously create so that we can’t wreck all of our plans by skipping from one idealistic goal to another without continuity. (How convenient it is to be able to construct a single brain with many different alter personalities each having its own unchanging self-image!)

Pain and Pleasure are two agents which cause the mind to simplify its focus upon either the pleasure or the pain. The brain does not want to focus on anything that is not an immediate issue. This focus on the immediate pain or pleasure by the victim of mind-control diminishes the victim from focusing on more complex mental issues.

An example of one of world’s top experts who realizes how the mind is naturally made up of parts is Marvin Minsky, co-founder of the Artificial Intelligence Lab at MIT, author of The Society of Mind, and who has been an advisor to NASA & the L-5 Society. Minsky’s research was financed by the government (the Office of the Advanced Research Projects Agency). And he and other researchers in his field got their contracts by the Office of Naval Research. (See Society of the Mind, p. 324.) His incredible book The Society of Mind has an interesting format where the numerous parts (agents) of the mind are each given their own page in the book. Minsky shows in the book that the mind is a “society” that arises out of ever-smaller agents that are themselves mindless. He does an incredibly good job of explaining how the mind works. Minsky states, “In general, we’re least aware of what our minds do best.”

The Illuminati structuring of the MPD’s fragmented mind is to create flawlessly working systems that can function without the conscious mind getting involved. In fact, Minsky describes how our conscious minds only get involved in simple mental processes that don’t work well, the complex ones that work well usually work without the conscious mind being aware of them. “Some readers may be horrified at picturing a baby’s mind as made up of nearly separate agencies. But we’ll never understand how human natures grow without some theories of how they start.

One evidence for separateness is how suddenly infants switch from smiles of contentment to shrieks of hunger-rage. In contrast to the complex mixtures of expressions that adults show, young children seem usually to be in one or another well-defined state of activity…” (Society of the Mind, p. 171)

The Illuminati has long realized that they need to split the mind of the child before its various agencies connect and the ego-states form and develop their sense of self-hood and personal identity. Although adults can be programmed, the real Illuminati multiple systems are developed from the womb up.

How does the mind make decisions? The various parts of the mind compete with each other. All the parts are in a sense equal, none sits at the top of some hierarchy. The mind does not allow any natural part, such as ANGER, or SLOTH to be permanently enthroned and to direct the other parts. Too many chiefs and no Indians wouldn’t work out. Natural parts can not order another part around. They must influence that part indirectly. That is why the following examples happen.

A young married man decides that he and his wife can not successfully work out their problems, because she is a programmed multiple in denial, who wants to manipulate his life and destroy it, while he on the other hand wants to be successful in life. One part of him is the LOYAL TO VOWS part, which refuses to quit the marriage because of the marriage vows. Another part is the GOAL SETTING part, which sees the marriage as an abusive dead end. How does the GOAL SETTING part convince the LOYAL TO VOWS part to give up (throw in the towel) and move on with life? It must indirectly trick LOYAL TO VOWS into feeling that its job has been done as well as possible, and that further concern over the vows are excused.

Another young man, a student, has his STUDY part of the mind really wanting to focus on some problems, but the BORED and SLEEPY part of him want to go to sleep. His STUDY part of the mind tricks his BORED part into allowing STUDY to go to work. He mentally creates a fictitious scare that another student will do better than he, and BORED and SLEEPY are tricked into thinking the problem is much more weighty than it really is.

A young woman bribes her eating processes of her mind, that if she follows through with her diet, she’ll reward herself with a nice meal, and that other parts of her will be rewarded with other benefits. Rather than simply diet, she must bribe different parts of herself. Of course if parts of us, lie to other parts when they try to bribe ourselves into doing something, if we are not honest with ourselves in giving the reward, then it is harder next time to bribe the part that was lied to.

In order for the non-multiple’s parts to trust each other, they subscribe to a single agreed upon character-an imaginary ideal self-image. Other wise we couldn’t trust ourselves to carry out plans. If an ordinary person has amnesia, they could create a different self-image, which again would be an enduring character. By introducing MPD, the programmers create a hidden element of distrust within a person’s mind. They no longer can trust themselves, now they must depend upon the stability of the programmer or owner. Now imagine that each of the “agents” or parts has been manipulated to think that it is a person with a personality and a history in its own little world. Because the mind is such a tremendous computer it can easily handle such mental processes.

The programmer and the de-programmer/therapist must work at “tricking” these parts into allowing the mind to do constructive things. I use the word tricking, because what is actually happening is that the therapist or programmer is using language that relates to the language of that part, but it is not language that has much external reality beyond that part. Structuring is the art of using special “languages” combined with other programming sciences to manipulate these internal worlds of the various parts. Our minds are instruments to solve practical problems. If an alter sees no practical use for a particular knowledge they will not want to learn it. This natural selecting process by the mind, helps isolate an MPD’s system of alters, because many alters do not see a need to learn anything outside of their programming.

CONTROL ALTERS called PROCESSORS

Within the system of alters, certain alters are selected to be PROCESSORS. As a system is used certain alters are destroyed, disconnected, or regulated. Certain codes are used or changed. A SYSTEM PARAGUARD is what is used to decipher codes and to distinguish what is currently happening in a system.

BASIC DESIGNS of an ALTER SYSTEM

Most Illuminati systems are configured with a Universe or Star base system. In other words, the model for all that is put in uses clusters of stars, galaxies, etc. This is used in conjunction with grids that are shaped in various configurations. The ultimate master of the slave, some Illuminati kingpin who is a programmer or working closely with programmers, will design the system so that the entire structure of the system points to himself and Satan. The alters will be geographically set up in their internal world to worship the master to whom they must give their body, soul and spirit.

A cube or double-cube system is a closed system. The programmers who use cubes love to build boxes within boxes. The smallest middle box of the system may contain the Life force of the system. Those who love paper trails, will see the occult basis for the standard Illuminati cube shape of a system portrayed on page 83 of Clausen Commentaries on Morals & Dogma, which was put out by the Supreme Council of the World of 33º of Freemasonry in 1974. This Masonic book explains that the cube represent man and the pyramid is divinity. Divinity within a man would be constructed by placing a pyramid within a cube, which is shown in a picture on page 83. You will also notice in this Masonic book that the 2 Grand Masters on page 83 are wearing crowns that have 13 jewels. The crowns serve the same purpose that rings patterned on a similar pattern represent. Crowns and rings represent authority, and it is common within the mystery religions to place 12 or 13 gems within crowns and rings. The reason that this is important, is that some important Masonic/Illuminati secrets are here, and these secrets also pertain to how the Mystery Religions (the Illum. & Freemasonry) construct an alter system.

RINGS

Within the Illuminati (which is the continuation of the mystery religions of Babylon) the ring has for many centuries represented divinity. The mystery religions’ higher understanding was that God had a ring with his name on it that showed His authority and exercised power over the earth, and that Satan imitated this many-fold in all the mystery religions that he created. For thousands of years, within the various mystery religions, hierophants have been wearing rings with particular secret symbols. The zodiac signs were assigned different stones, gems. For instance, the 12 gems of Rev. 21:18-20, which are the usual gems placed within an Illuminati alter system would correspond to the astrological signs as follows:

Jasper «»Pisces Sapphire «»Aquarius Chalcedony «» Cancer Emerald «» Taurus Sardonyx «» Scorpio Chrysolyte Saggittarius Beryl «» Leo Topaz «» Gemini Chrysoprasus «» Capricorn Jacinth «» Amethyst «» Aries

The creation of a Monarch system’s gems is in imitation of the rings of Lucifer and God (as the Illuminati understand it). This ring of gems is able to control the fruit of the trees (programs) and change the internal weather. It is based upon the story that is told the alter system that is being made about how God had a ring. Until His hand swept the heaven of air (1st heaven) fruit could not fall and die, because nothing could die.

Satan and his followers like rings because they want to be godlike. (That doesn’t mean all Satanists understand their own history.) When an alter is concerned about “Don’t lose the ring”, the alter may be referring to the ring of the gems that surrounds the pyramid at the base of the mind. This ring of gem alters may be referred to as the ETERNAL RING, and the RING OF FIRE. The achievement of divinity by a human was what constituted the hermetic marriage of the mysteries. This was the ultimate achievement by mankind. This was symbolized by a gold ring.

Within the Illuminati (which is a continuation of the Mystery Religions) rings are used for bonding (marriage commitments) and a sign of majesty or rank (such as your Masonic rings, and the ring Pharaoh gave Joseph, & King Saul’s ring, & special papal rings allowed cardinals & abbots.) The Pope has 3 significant rings, one of which is for ceremonies, and another the important Fisherman’s Ring, which is still used as the Pope’s seal.

Within the Illuminati alter systems the 7 seals of Babylon are placed into a system. The cube with a pyramid was portrayed at the 14th Masonic Degree (the Perfect Elu degree). The 4 horsemen & the seals of Babylon are talked about at the 17th Masonic degree (Knight of the East & West). Also deep within a system may be the Ring of Fire.

Within the pyramid, which is within the ring of those 12 gems mentioned in Rev. 21, is the ETERNAL LIFE FORCE, a green light coming from Lucifer. In other words, the secret heart of the system is based upon the original lie, that man could become an eternal god. The Illuminati alter structure has at its heart the original lie. An example of how rings and demonology and authority intersect, can be seen in the Grimoire of the Testament of Solomon where a ring is said to have been given to Solomon which enabled him to learn the names of demons.

Rings and chains around the neck are also worn for the extremely secret reason that the wearer is identifying himself with Lucifer who was bound by God by a ring of fire and was chained in the abyss. This is what is really behind high ranking Illuminati Freemason & clergyman Robert Schuler’s chain around his neck. The highest levels of the Illuminati have the understanding that Lucifer lost his power when Christ bound him, and that in identification with him, they wear gold chains around their neck, etc. Don’t expect to read this in the material that occult world is permitted to read, these are high level secrets. Remember, there are many different levels of occultism, and Satanism. (In the early middle ages, Christians borrowed the idea of having marriage rings from the pagan Germans & Romans. The determination of what finger to wear it on (what has become known as the ring finger), was chosen by the ancient witches because that was considered the only healing finger. Christians of course, by and large, know nothing of the pagan origins and symbology of the rings they wear.) This author has noted that many of the handlers, programmers, & Illuminati adepts wear rings. Some of the rings are quite big.

The Ferris-wheel subsystem. A ferris-wheel configuration which creates compartments shaped like a piece of pie is often a small part of a larger system, and is used to house alters, or it may have some other internal purpose with its rotation. As was brought out in Vol. 2, the Illuminati like to use configurations that appear endless such as circles within circles, boxes within boxes, triangles within triangles. Star configurations are popular Illuminati power sources within their alter systems. The position of a star, the number of points it has, and the relationship it has to other objects in the sky such as a rainbow will be significant. Some stars are placed into the system to represent a point in time when the system is programmed to do something.

When a slave is programmed with multiple functioning sub-systems (aka “systems”), the Illuminati call it MULTIPLEX. In such as case, types and names of alters may be duplicated in systems that are mirror images of each other or of a similar design. Traver reports that one MULTIPLEX system had 55 Daves per sub-system with 7 subsystems, making a total of 385 Dave alters for the 7 subsystems in just one particular slave. (see Traver, Dan. Dissociative Disorders & Mind Control, p. 84)

The construction of an Illuminati system can not be divorced from the demonology and rituals that are performed throughout the life of the system. The Illuminati use mystical terms when programming, which reframes psychological processes in the language of magic. Programming and hypnosis are referred during programming as “SPELLS”. The programmers will use fictional magical names for items, for instance, the subconscious mind may be referred to as the “HYPNOGOURD, A VINE THAT GROWS GOURDS.” Creativity and imagination will be termed “MAGIC”, and the programmer “A MAGICIAN”. The programmer would instruct his assistant in language like this, “WOULD YOU PUT THIS GAP FORGET SPELL IN?”

The Generational Spirit (or Spirits from each occult bloodline) is laid into the child in the womb. It stays hidden deeply in the system, and plays a fundamental role in the system’s creation empowering other demonic forces. In order to construct the trees that provide the structure for the internal worlds-programming, the Illuminati programmer will tell the victim the following hypnotic ritual:

“AS YOU BREATHE, REMEMBER TO SIT ERECT, AND AS YOUR SPINE STRAIGHTENS, FEEL THE ENERGY RISING [PAUSE] NOW IMAGINE YOUR SPINE IS THE TRUNK OF A TREE, AND FROM ITS BASE ROOTS REACH DOWN DEEP INTO THE EARTH. [PAUSE] INTO THE CENTER OF THE EARTH HERSELF [PAUSE] AND YOU CAN DRAW UP POWER FROM THE EARTH, WITH EACH BREATH [SHORT PAUSE] FEEL THE ENERGY RISING, LIKE SAP RISING THROUGH A TREE TRUNK, AND FEEL THE POWER RISE UP YOUR SPINE, FEEL YOURSELF BECOMING MORE ALIVE, WITH EACH BREATH, AND FROM THE CROWN OF YOUR HEAD, YOU HAVE BRANCHES, THAT SWEEP UP AND BACK DOWN TO TOUCH THE EARTH [PAUSE] AND FEEL THE POWER BURST FROM THE CROWN OF YOUR HEAD, AND FEEL IT SWEEP THROUGH THE BRANCHES UNTIL IT TOUCHES THE EARTH AGAIN, MAKING A CIRCLE, MAKING A CIRCUIT, RETURNING TO ITS SOURCE.”

The part of the system that will function within the Illuminati hierarchy will all be intimately part of either the SPIRIT TREE (that is the Caballistic Tree of Life) or the TREE OF EVIL (which is the evil mirror image of the Tree of Life). Both trees were discussed in the Vol. 2 Formula book. These trees are both totally connected to the Spirit of the AntiChrist and rooted in Lilith and Tubal-cain. The Moon child ritual is not only performed when the child is still a foetus, but also at age 3, 4, 5, 6, and 16.

When the Illuminati child is in their teens they do the Caballistic Tree of Life pathworking. The pathworking rituals are severe, and many splits of the mind will occur due to these rituals. All the alters created during this work will be arranged at the GATEWAYS that pertain to that particular ritual. Therapists who do not realize how the pathworking of the 22 paths develops entire sections of deeper alters, may incorrectly think they can simply toss out the caballistic Tree of Life from the victim. Countless deeper alters are part of this tree. It has been said in the Illuminati that in general an Illuminati system consists of “the father (core), the son (the programming), the holy spirit (the spirit Tree also called the Tree of Life).”

DATA ENTRY POINTS

The programmers have designed their systems so that one can only get into the Systems via a SEQUENCE. However, sometimes they themselves want to quickly down load information into the computer-like mind of their slaves, and they don’t want to have to go through a sequencing procedure. For quick and sloppy downloading of information to their slave or quick deletions to the programming (there is only limited access to quick deletions), programmers put DATA ENTRY POINTS into most systems. This allows for an emergency entry and/or downloading. General codes most often open these points, rather than long specific codes. The trick is being able to know where those DATA ENTRY POINTS are on the person’s alter grid or as the programmers say the slave’s SCREEN. (With the advent of lap-top computers, what the master of the slave sees if he has to refer to his own reference notes is just that a screen with the system’s layout. (Vol.2 pg. 88 gave a sample of how a page on the lap top computer or in a master’s black or grey 3-ring binder would look like.) An example of a data-entry point would be a gatekeeper which has learned the entire system via trained LSD trips and then has been programmed to keep this understanding on a subconscious level.

TESTING ALTERS TO SEE IF THEY CAN BE USED.

When a trauma is carried out upon a child, the child is then debriefed and all the splits from the trauma identified. Generally only the first 10 splits will be used to create alters, and the rest of the splits will become special purpose fragments. The programmers begin with the first split and identify how strong the split is. The programmers test for four things:

a. how well can this split take a hypnotic suggestion?

b. how creative is this split?

c. Can this split hold memory?

d. Can this split hold the structuring that will given it?

If the split passes positive on these four criteria, then it will be used to make a full blown alter. The programmers move down the line, testing the splits in the sequence that they were created. If no. 4 split is unable to pass the 4 criteria, then they know that the rest of the top splits will also have to be “thrown away” and used as special purpose fragments. If they need 12 splits from an alter, and they only get 5 usable splits from the first torture, they will retorture the alter to get more first splits. They will continue the process until they get the splits they need. Usually they can use the first 10 splits. Seldom do they use anything beyond the first 10 splits for alters, they are just to weak mentally. If an alter shows extra promise the programmer may say, “This part was going to be a bit part, but we’ll make her into a real character.” If a special purpose fragment leans in a needed direction mentally, they may take what was to be a minor part, and develop it into an interesting alter. Alters that are waiting to be used are stored as gems that the dwarfs mine, and then the programmers program them. An Illuminati system has thousands of these clean slates. Diamonds are pre-programmed alters that are stored to be used in the end-times during the reign of the Anti-Christ.

THE SCRIPTS.

Each master programmer is responsible for the scripts that he uses. He will invoke the leading geographic spirits, and even Lucifer to gain up-to-date wisdom on what is best for that time at that location. A master programmer will get assistance from his Mother of Darkness or Grande Dame. The master programmer may use a written script of his own such as Michael Aquino uses his own version of Star Wars, or he may borrow from established sources, for instance, Dr. Star of Corpus Christi, TX, who uses the The Goetia The Lesser Key of Solomon the King (Clavicula Salomonis Regis). Dr. Star especially uses the Shemhamphorash, which is the first part of that ancient magical book.

Recently Avon books (which has been owned by Hearst Illuminati family, and which has published over 30 editions of the Satanic Bible) published a book by Piers Anthony entitled Visual Guide to Xanth. This amazing book Visual Guide to Xanth is based on Anthony’s Xanth series. It contains so many programming scripts, that it is hard to imagine that Anthony is not a programmer. The scripts are too intact for it to be coincidence. The title page has a hoofed tailed Satan on his throne. It is popular among satanists to use X words, like Michael Aquino signs off his personal letters “Xeper”, rather than “sincerely”.

Anthony was born in Britian but now lives in Florida. He has had over 60 fiction books published, many of the early ones were very well promoted by the Illuminati, and became top best sellers. The back cover advertises this Visual Guide to Xanth this way, “Learn about the astonishing hierarchy–and lowerarchy–of sorcerers and shape-changers, of goblins, harpies and half-humans who inhabit this extraordinary universe! [internal worlds] Explore the perilous Ogre-fen-ogre-Fen and the inner chambers of the mysterious Castle Roogna! Revel in the history and culture of the most remarkable civilization this side of Ozz!”

The co-authors would have to agree that Piers Anthony’s story telling ability rivals, if not surpasses Baum’s Oz series. In fact Anthony has put out numerous series of books, not just one series like Baum. The Xanth series is the one that contains more of the programming scripts. For instance, a script would be used to get suicide alters to want to take drugs & champagne on an empty stomach, or to get into a bathtub of water & throw in an electric blow drier which is on.

Assassination Models (Delta Models).

A great deal was explained in the Vol. 2 book about Delta alters, Delta models, Delta teams, and Delta Forces. All of these are involved with killing humans. It is not the purpose of this section to cover what has already been written in the Vol. 2 Formula book on these various Deltas. Mind-controlled Amphibious men, (genetically altered Navy Seals–see Vol. 2 p. 26 1-262, the latter no. is a significant no. for these programmed men) are the Navy’s attempt to get something similar to what is depicted on the film Universal Solders. These Navy Seals are not allowed to be touched by other sailors when they are on a ship.

There is still a number of deeper insights that can be provided to understand how assassin personalities are conditioned to be able to kill. Researchers in how the brain functions have found that our forebrains (the thinking part that makes us humans) shut down when we are angry or frightened and the midbrain (which resembles the brain of animals) takes over. The only programming that works for the midbrain is the same type of training that works for dogs, which is classical and operant conditioning. This type of conditioning is simply stimulus-response, such as IF fire bell–THEN walk the fire escape exit plan.

When it comes to killing, the forebrain will listen to many suggestions such as orders from a gang leaders, an officer, or the pressures of life when they demand that a person kill, but the midbrain has the instinct that is born into 98% of the population NOT to kill another human. This innate human resistance to killing is far stronger than has popularly been realized, and has historically stopped most people from killing. This may surprise most readers, because Hollywood movies would lead us to think otherwise. A number of top researchers, including Lt. Col. Dave Grossman, author of the excellent book On Killing, have uncovered irrefutable (albeit still controversial) proof that historically most soldiers have secretly refused to kill in battle.

Grossman was a Military Psychology professor at West Point, as well as having a long list of other military credentials. His superb book On Killing gives numerous reasons (proofs and evidences) that numerous soldiers have typically only pretended to try to kill the enemy. Many fired over the heads or only pretended to fire their weapons, if even that. During W.W. II, Brig. Gen. S.L.A. Marshall discovered that only 15 to 20 % of men on the front line would actually use their weapons against the Germans even during action over several days. 75% of the American soldiers would not even fire at the enemy to save their own lives. He made some suggestions on how to improve this dismal firing rate. By operant conditioning the U.S. military took those dismal firing rates to 55% in the Korean War and to a 95% firing rate in the Vietnam War.

What are behaviour modification techniques that turn teenagers into reliable killing machines? These conditioning and psychological tricks are the same methods that are used on the Delta alters and the Delta systems of Total Mind-controlled slaves, and we will discuss those next. The factors that are weighed as an equation in the human mind to determine whether a human will kill another human are as follows:

· What is the benefit of the kill?

· How do recent experiences relate to the victim?

· How much physical, cultural, moral, social and mechanical DISTANCE is between the killer and the target.? The more distance the easier it gets.

· How intense is the demand from some authority to kill, and legitimate is this authority? If the killer respects the authority that is asking for him to kill, and is in close proximity of that authority he will likely obey that authority.

· Are there a group dynamic working, and if so what is the power and legitimacy of this group to absolve the killer from guilt?

· Are there any stumbling blocks from unresolved guilt from previous killings?

· What is the temperament of the potential killer?

AUTHORITY FACTORS ARE MAXIMIZED

In the programming, the programmer can set himself up as God, or a god. The programmer may also be a satanic cult leader which further increases the victim’s regard for his power and authority. The programmers of total mind-controlled slaves have tremendous potential to cause their assassin alters to overcome any resistance to kill.

ACCOUNTABILITY & ANONYMITY

A Delta Model with many multiple alters incorporates a built in ability to remove personal accountability. If need be, the person can split off a new personality to perform a particularly odious job. The alters form a peer group which works just like a military unit to inhibit the natural reluctance to kill. This is because the closer a group of persons is, and the closer bonded, the more powerful the enabling. When military units lose 50% or more, the men often lose the will to continue killing, because the group dynamic fizzles out.

The programmers who program in the programming, and then later the programmers who program in specific killing missions, have worked long hours insuring that the assassin alters feel morally distant (superior), and socially distant. The victim is made out to be an inferior being who deserves to be punished and killed. The killer will be doing a great service to his fellow man and country to kill the “target”. It may be refrained as if it is a holy mission, almost a crusade. Often times the “target” is not even spoken about in human terms. Perhaps the target is hypnotically portrayed as an ant, a bug, or some wild beast, or simply a target.

Hitler helped his military to kill by labelling non-Germans as Untermensch (subhumans). The Americans called the communist Vietnamese “gooks”, and they in turn called Americans “monkeys”. Because the mind-controlled assassin will not see the face of their victim due to hypnotic programming, they are also limited in seeing the humanness of their victims. Most of the missions for Delta slaves allow them to kill without the threat of being killed. But the Programmer may put the fear of being killed into the slave. They may hypnotically see some object of victim as a threat. One killer (due to programming) saw the men she killed as having a big penis that would hurt her, so her instinct to survive would kick in to help her assassinate these men.

Practice is given to assassins with situations similar to actual hand-to-hand killings to desensitize them to close range killing. With mind-controlled slaves usually actual live victims are used to get the slaves totally desensitized to killing. Because assassin parts are stripped of conscious thinking and empathy they are handicapped to really think about what they are doing to another human when they kill.

Still the intelligence agencies and the Illuminati know that somehow the brain still can latch onto guilt–somehow the brain still can perceive in some dim way that it is guilty of killing another human, so they cover their tracks by warrior cleansing rituals. Warriors and soldiers have traditionally done cleansing rituals when they finish a war. An example of a cleansing ritual would be a parade at the end of the war, where the country turns out to tell the soldiers what a great job they did. A programmed assassin in many cases can not receive a parade, but he can be given lots of praise for having done a great job for humanity, or his country, or whatever ideal the Programmer uses as a rationale.

Clock-Time Programming. The victim may see their head as a clock and may be tortured in such a fashion. Twelve o’clock is straight up between the eyes. Six o’clock is straight below the chin.

Monkey Alters.

The creation of animal alters has been covered in previous locations in this book and Vol. 2. However, I felt Lynne Moss-Sharmon’s description of Monkey programming was worth including here. Lynne is a victim of mind control living at Halifax, Nova Scotia. In her description of the memory that goes to her drawing no. 29 she quotes what was said during the cages, “You stupid monkey. Into your cage. Hit her and put her back in her cage. Lights on. Monkey time. Monkey business.”

Plant alters.

In the older models, they used plants and fruit, but in some of the newer models it appears that they are using samphires (combination beast-plant creatures) and hamadryads (man-plant creatures). Magic from underground springs is the cover story for how these plant-animal hybreds are made.

Presidential Models.

Include both children and adults. They carry NWO messages to world leaders. They often have passports with accordion additions stapled in, because they do so much travelling overseas. Presidential models are kept in numerous locations. If high level individuals need to slip away for nefarious use of slaves, they employ look-alikes to stand in for them, while they do their dirty activities. This is why Presidents such as Clinton and Bush got away with sexually using far more slaves than their schedule seems to indicate. Bush was a pedophile, while his double (who has recently lived in France) was a womanizer.

Prostitute Models.

Slaves designed to function as prostitutes must receive training to protect themselves. One possible problem might be a female prostitute who is accosted by an aggressive male, when she is not to allow herself to be used by him. She can be trained to jump up slap the man on the face, warn him that she kick his testicles next time, and then kiss the man in a submissive makeup fashion to smooth his bruised ego. A prostitute slave will also receive code words to let people, say people in a casino, know who she is. Deeper prostitute parts which need to perform sex for long periods of time accomplish this for their masters by switching alters and by ingesting speed. The mechanical nature that sexual alters have is illustrated by the “I CAN WALK, I CAN TALK” phrases of alters with doll programming.

Psychic models.

Both men and women slaves were created to carry out various psychic functions. For instance, the AntiChrist needs to be able to look at people and totally understand them psychologically and their systems of mind-control (alter systems, programming etc.). The abilities to successfully perform psychic functions have been tested for years before they were created within the AntiChrist.

Reporting Alters.

The construction of reporting alters is very straightforward behavior modification. For programming reporting alters, they use purpose fragment splits. In other words, these reporting alters are not given the full range and exposure to life, but they experience life from the vantage of their single purpose. Some therapists are reporting that they are converting reporting alters over by giving them ice cream. They are most likely only dealing with fronts. Since most therapists only deal with front alters, and front systems, these front reporting alters may even be set up so that these therapists think they have converted the reporting alters. The truth is that most of these reporting alters are fragments that don’t know what hunger is. All the ice cream in the world is going to mean anything to them. (Cisco will deal with these issues in her part of this book.) The point is simply, these are special purpose fragments who only see life from the vantage point of their little job.

Now we will explain what first and second stage reporting alters are, and then how they are created. Some of the first stage reporting alters are trained to respond to 3-taps, some to telephone calls, lights, and some to codes. The first stage alters are children from 6 to 10. In an Illuminati system there will be families of reporting alters. Every level (“section”) will have at least one group (family) of reporting alters. The second stage reporting alters are also children from 6 to 10, and they are taught to want Daddy’s or Mommy’s love. Girl systems seek “Daddy” (the Master) and boy systems often seek “Mommy” (the Master). They are taught to talk about therapy issues, programming issues, and movements by the system. They are linked to the computers, and the eye of the computer. Just to hear “Daddy’s voice” is gratification to them.

At stage 1 of the creation of reporting alters, they are the result of the sensory deprivation tank, and are taken from the dissociated part of the mind that feels like it doesn’t have a body, or that it is nothing. Stage 1 Reporting-special-purpose fragments of the mind are painfully shocked in some sensory deprivation environment when the hear 3 taps. The pain ceases when they open the door. They continue to be locked in place in the mind and painfully shocked until they learn the lesson, which is that the pain stops when the door is opened. Over and over they are taught, THE PAIN STOPS WHEN THE DOOR IS OPENED. When they hear tapping they want the pain to stop (probably they abreact their previous tortures) and they open the door to stop the pain. They have only one job, stop the pain by opening the door when three taps (or whatever other trigger/code/signal they are programmed for.)

Stage 2 Reporting-special-purpose alters are given a fuller view of life. They are the watchers in the system. They were created under such horrible torture that they left the body and hover over the body. These are Out-of-Body alters. They are also placed in a fogged room, where they are taught to become one with the fog. They are also told ghost stories like Casper the Ghost. Through the combination of all these programming tactics and techniques, they learn to be invisible. They hover over their assigned position in the system, invisible to all the other alters of that section. These alters have excellent rapid recall. They have none of the Straw Man programming that Gatekeeper receive to make them think they are stupid.

To reinforce the programming, the reporting alters are always treated kindly when they obey. (If you get one that hasn’t been, suspect a plant, a setup.) Internal protector alters are given the job to insure that reporting alters never miss a call, or never miss responding to a cue. They will go to work and punish lax Stage 1 alters. Again, several therapists claim to have gotten reporting alters to defect from their jobs, but haven’t dealt with their protector alters who are taskmasters. If the taskmasters haven’t been dealt with, then suspect a ruse to get the therapist to think all is well. The reason this subject is dealt with here, is that some of the top well known therapists have spread information contrary to what is actually happening. That doesn’t mean that there may not be an exception to the rule, but the Illuminati is not so stupid as to make reporting alters that defect because someone offered them an ice-cream cone.

Reporting alters are very hard to convert, because during their lifetime they are treated nicely. They experience a nice life if they behave (its the other alters that suffer.) The Stage 1 reporting alter merely says HELLO and waits for the response HELLO PRINCESS. This is a standard format. If the HELLO PRINCESS occurs, the mind automatically in a flash switches to the Stage 2 reporting alter.

To reinforce the original programming, which would lose its effect over time, the programmer hypnotically command the reporting alters to think of their programming when they see certain objects, for instance, certain types of men’s clothing, animals, certain cigarettes or lighters, certain trees etc. Everyday life is used then to reinforce their programming. The Stage 1 alters are also trained to have back-up amnesia, where they forget what they have done after they have responded to the cue. Once the job is done, the job is forgotten. Like the Vol. 2 book reported, reporting alters can perceive themselves in various shapes and figures, and they can be locked up in eggs or other containers also. The Stage 2 alters look forward to Daddy or Mommy coming.

Cisco’s system, which helped at the programming level, verifies that during the 50’s, 60’s, 70’s and 80’s none of the slaves got free. The Illuminati was not the least bit concerned about losing a slave. They had not lost a mind-controlled slave in centuries, so the recent victories in a few slaves getting their freedom in recent years are a historical first. Many therapist who make great therapeutic claims are not freeing their slaves at all, but these slaves continue to be used by their masters. The masters just laugh at the deceptions they have pulled over legitimate but naive therapists. Their reporting alters are a key to their control and they have numerous reporting alters in families spread throughout a standard reporting system. If one realizes that the same mentality that created Stalin’s USSR, or that created Big Brother is at work here, you will realize that they need a spy-in-the-camp on every block so to speak. Everybody watches everyone. They make many spies within a system of alters. The reporting alters are given some script such as “You can diffuse from supersolidity to insubstance, you can grow big or small, and can change shape to any for you wish.” This makes it easier for them to go through the internal system.

Repunzel alter.

In the internal Mother’s of Darkness castle there is often a Repunzel alter created by the Repunzel story, who has magical hair and can change her size at will. She is not an Illuminati alter, even though she resides at their castle.

Transformation alters.

In Chapter 5, in the section on how Fantasia was used as a programming script, the fairy alters (creative parts of the child’s mind) were discussed. The Illuminati also create magical alters that can transform other alters into objects. The script for this is Alice In Wonderland, although some newer scripts are also being used (like Xanth’s sorceress Vadne). When an alter is changed into an object, it does so without losing its character. This is where cartoons have been helpful to lay the foundation for visualizing this. When one enters particular internal rooms one needs to pick up certain objects in the room to get through portals to the next world. What makes the internal world difficult is that it is set up to change its appearance. An alter may think they see one thing internally and then the scene totally shifts. An alter may look into a mirror and turn into a leaf.

Internal Wall alters.

Some alters will be made into walls. This is why is can be difficult to go around internal walls. These alters shift so that no one can get around them.

Structuring Internal Programmer Alters.

The procedure for the creation of Internal Programmer Alters is several steps. After the child victim has been traumatized they are sorely in need of love. Using a drug that gives a sense of peace and ectasy, along with hypnosis, certain parts of the system are bonded to the programmer. The child alters are told to forget the trauma and merge with the programmer. It’s instinct to want to be loved, touched and comforted. This is repeated so that they feel the “peace of God” with their three primary abusers. Scriptures about the peace of God are used to reinforce this programming. These alters who feel one with the master programmer will form a cover group which will pacify any front alters who think negatively about the external programmer. These alters are in turn used to build the actual programmers. The actual programmers will be programmed to take on the characteristics of the master programmers and the Grand Dame working with them. These alters will be formed via split brain programming so they have only logic, no emotion. They can interact for years with the rest of the system and will feel no emotion for the hell and abuse that they put hundreds of other alters through. These controllers will stand behind the Grand Druid Council to insure that they carry out their function correctly.

STRUCTURING WITH THE GRAND DRUID COUNCIL.

In Illuminati mind-controlled slaves it is typical to place at the bottom of the system a pyramid shaped table with a crystal prism life force within the pyramid’s center. Around this pyramid table are the Grand Druid Council and Satan hovers over the entire thing. Mirrors on both sides surround the pyramid. The Grand Druid Council can astrally project and attend rituals. There are cover Councils to throw the unapproved seeker off. In fact, every section within the slave may have a Grand Druid Council. These are not the computers, but function closely with the computers. When the life force dies it becomes black. The slave will told that the life force of the system is within the pyramid which is inside the Grand Druid Council’s table. The pyramid will spin constantly from the energy of Lucifer, and the Grand Druid Council may well spin on their table in the opposite direction. Each position on the Grand Druid Council (GDC) is significant, because if determines what that Council person is allowed to do. (This is a mirror of real life.)

The type of programming and commands that a particular council person can carry out are determined by their position around the table. The no. 3 position has access to the center pyramid. Within the spinning pyramid are 3 programmer positions, one for each corner of the triangle. If only one programmer occupies all three positions you are dealing with a master programmer. Very often a system is programmed by lesser programmers, and the inner pyramid has more than one programmer inside the pyramid. If a group/ series of cult programmers is used, one may see them represented somewhere in the system by their cult names.

Growing through the Grand Druid Council’s table will be the generational demonic roots of a tree. Tied up at the base of the tree entwined in the roots is the life force of a foetus that has been sacrificed to empower the slave’s mind-control system, as well as connect the slave to people that he or she is teamed with. During occult ritual the foetus is eaten as a seed. The dead child is connected to the roots. Another child, the child who is connected to the memory of these rituals will also be connected to the root of the tree. This child alter will not be able to talk or scream because it is locked in the horrible memories of some humiliating ritual. This child alter may have things in its penis or rectum, it may be covered with filth, it’s skin is bruised and tender. This may be the “core”–the birth child.

In male slaves, sometimes the birth child or a first core split called “the core” is placed in the tree roots rather than the carousel. Egg shaped demonic power bases will also be set in at the root of the tree. The core of some slaves will be removed to the astral plane. The Grand Druid Council will astral project to different spheres and different ceremonies. This gets into black magic such as the 777 book of Aleister Crowley touches on, where there are colors for each planet for astral projection.

While we are discussing the deeper parts to a system, let’s discuss the compass. Each system has a compass built into it, that is incredibly important. The 4-demons (goddesses) which control the 4 directions are called Quarter-Regents. The Eastern one controls Wind & Air. The Northern one controls the elemental Earth. The Western one controls water realms. And the Southern one controls fire.

STRUCTURING THE SHADOW ALTERS

Alters which are created in the sensory deprivation tanks which have no sense of being attached to a body are used in clusters on each level (section or world) of an Illuminati system of alters. These alters are the ones who no one else can see because they have no body, and yet they are the shadows that know what’s going on in the outside world. Every level has access to what is going on in the outside world through the eyes of these shadow alters, but many alters do not care. Nor will the shadow alters tell everyone on the level. These clusters of shadows are also chained together, so that a link exists between them. They have no sense of self. They sometimes serve as directors to guide the child slave. They may protect the child by telling it to get home, to call home, or to not be frightened it will be OK. They are also willing to mislead therapists.

STRUCTURING IN THE MIRRORS

One of the movies which was developed to help program in the internal mirrors was the movie “The Hungry Glass” made in the early ’50s. Let’s review The Hungry Glass movie so that those who aren’t familiar with it, can see the programming elements of the movie. The movie is about a fictitious haunted mansion that was built near the sea by a rich man named Bellman. The mansion lays dormant for decades until a couple buy the mansion. The mansion and its window is described as “a jewel box to pull the silver off the sea.”

When they move in they experience many strange things connected with mirrors and glass. In the Monarch programming, glass and mirrors are similar. Many of the mirrors in a system are really one-way windows. The following are some quotes from the movie:

· “mirrors bring a house to life”

· “I’m great at turning nightmares into daydreams.”

· “don’t know if I saw it.. .it’s imagination playing tricks…never get it out of your system.”

· “we’re both suggestible to suggestion…

· “…saw something and imagined the rest.. .just plain fear. ..did I see something supernatural?”

· “If you want anything just scream.”

· “Miracles can be done with concentration.”

· I got the house in order with “spell, book and candle” which is a phrase referring to witchcraft.

· you “never grow old in the mirrors”. When alters of a slave look in a mirror it happens just like in the movie, they see themselves as young, which is a strong hypnotic image they have been programmed to see.

What the movie shows is that it is lethal to break mirrors. And if you go through mirrors you fall to your death. The one woman as well as a little girl are curious about the mirrors and they are pulled into the mirrors and die. In other words, the programming message is don’t be curious about the mirrors nor go into the mirrors. There are demons in the mirrors.

In the movie they use the word “bogeyman”. The room of mirrors is locked, and the message of the movie is, don’t open locked doors in your internal system. In the movie, when Gil looks in the mirror, he sees a protector of the mirrors. This in the programming is called the KEEPER OF THE MIRROR, and is a demonic entity or demons placed to protect the mirror. Things are layered and hidden in a system behind mirrors. It also gives the idea that if you look into a mirror, even if you are physically old, the mirror can lie and give you a youthful appearance.

Young actor William Shatner, of later Star Trek fame plays the leading role in the movie. He tries to rationally explain things but gives up, when explanations fail. This is encouraging the small slave who would see the movie to think, if an adult can’t figure these things out rationally, then the explanations for what I am seeing during programming are supernatural. William Shatner was raised in Catholic Montreal, Quebec and went to McGill Univ. when Dr. White (Ewen Cameroon) was carrying out programming there. He graduated in 1952 and married Gloria Rand. He has acted in a number of strange movies designed for programming, and it appears they have used him repeatedly over the years as a tie in to familiarize the slave to him. He also acted in The World of Suzie Wong (1958), The Brothers Karamazov (1958), The Devil’s Rain (1978), Teklords (1991). The Hungry Glass was produced by William Freye, who also did some other movies for the Network. In some areas of a system, the script is that only the “dead”–alters who are so disconnected to their bodies they see themselves as spirits are allowed to cross between different internal worlds by using passwords such as “ELIADE”. At other times, alters are given words to return to their “own time period” such as NICRO NECTRUM NECTO.

STRUCTURING THE TAPESTRY

A script is given for all standard Illuminati systems for an internal Sorceress to be assigned the making of tapestries. The tapestries enable alters to go into other worlds, in other words they are mirror gateways. For instance the sorceress may weave a door into the tapestry. Going into the mirror, going over the rainbow, going through walls or picture tapestries are ways that alters go from one world into another state.

STRUCTURING THE ALTER FAMILIES BY SPINNING

Spinning is used in a variety of programming purposes. We will review these together, so that a comparison can be made of the different purposes. Spinning tortures (which the victim endures while in drugged hypnotic states) are used extensively by the programmers as they construct alter systems. Programmed multiples will frequently complain of “spinning”. All at once, whole sections of alters will begin spinning and getting dizzy. During such an abreaction, you will notice that the eyes change, the victim will appear disoriented and stare, or even grimace as if being rotated at a high speed. The head and/or body will rotate slightly during the abreaction.

During the programming of such a spin program, the programmer will lay in the experience for an entire section of alters, and attach the visual image of falling into an abyss, a cyclone, a tornado, a vortex, or a whirlwind to the memory of being spun. When a system goes into spinning the power of numerous memories, and the power of the dizzy spinning makes it difficult for much of anything. Certain alters trigger the spinning and certain alters maintain the spinning. In fact some spinning alters take pride in their spinning abilities. Obviously, their programmers commended them when they did their job correctly.

Another use of spin tortures is to create spin families. The spin torture creates spin alters which have been spun off a “parent” alter. The parent alter may later be age progressed hypnotically and given care over her children alters who she or he spun off during the torture. Spinning is a way of creating dissociation, and the spin memory dissociates the spin children alters from their original source alter. This creates alters which are close together internally, but dissociated. The spin training and memories are then used to teach these alters to spin away the pain. Spin alters are used for some of the worst abuse and the spinning sensation is used internally by these alters to dissociate the severe abuse they receive.

The actual mechanisms to do the spinning torture vary. Some are rotating tables, some are more upright like a Wheel of Fortune type wheel, or “Space trainer” type machine where the victim is inside the rotating mechanism. Flashing lights are used along with the spinning, so that flashing lights can be used in the future to cause the alter(s) to abreact the spinning sensation. Verbal triggers are also placed in. The spin kittens will actually physically go around when commanded. Certain alters will be trained to re-create mentally the sensations of spinning via enhance imagery and memory training. This is so that the system will be self-governing and self-propelled. The spin traumas may be used to help create the ring within ring, circle within a circle effect that is structured into so many systems.

Programs that are put in via Spin-based traumas or attached to spin-based traumas often affect wide areas of a system, rather than individual alters. For instance, if an area of the system is mis-behaving, a tornado program, or a tumbleweed program may be set off by the internal governing mechanisms and an entire world of alters will feel the program. Victims of mind-control often speak about walls full of different faces. The walls of faces are people who are in need of help. They are shown repeatedly to the victim, to solicit the emotion of wanting to run & rescue. This then is used as the cover program for alters for them to want to run back to the cult to “rescue” their “friends”. Generally, all that will be experienced is the memory of walls of faces and the urge to run. Another element of programming, often seen in military programming, is where the victim is left in a totally dark room, and then for men, a hypnotic motherly voice is played repeatedly to them in the dark. For women, they may get their primary handler’s hypnotic voice.

More structures used to build a system

p_7-2.jpg

 


CHAPTER 8:  THE SCIENCE OF BODY MANIPULATION & PROGRAMMING 

Implants that manipulate the body and its functions have been discussed in Chapter 6. The body manipulating implants were placed there to keep all of the implant information intact in one chapter, even though some body manipulating implants are not electrically activated. When our previous book The Illuminati Formula Used to Create an Undetectable Total Mind Controlled Slave (1996) covered the 12 Sciences of mind-control, its chapter 8 on the manipulation of the human body did not cover the ancient secrets of cranial manipulation, nor the modern secrets of genetic mind manipulation via applications of radiation with chemicals.

A. CRANIAL MANIPULATION–Important Top Secrets of Illuminati Mind-control disguised as Muggings & other events.

INTRODUCTION

The information in this section exposes a previously unknown type of mind-control.

· The woman ran tripping through the woods, slipping on the wet leaves attacked by an unknown assailant for an unknown reason. The report of her mugging the next day never gets beyond the policeman who hears her story.

· A wife cries softly to herself as her husband beats her. The crime goes unnoticed in a busy world.

What do these acts of violence have in common with orthodontics, orthopedics, rolfing and other structural treatments? The shocking fact is that some of these kind of events happen for purposes of mind control. Any trauma to the head, be it an accidental fall, a fight, a bullet wound, or a motorcycle or car accident can cause permanent structural brain injury. But what passes for accidents are at times carefully designed & brilliantly executed cranial manipulations designed by the Illuminati to create specific mental and personality changes.

In order to get closer to the bottom of this type of mind-control, the author, Fritz, obtained the same books that cranial osteopaths study, and the same books that disclose the modern scientific studies of head shape/facial features in relation to personality, and then studied them. This author has tried to get as close as an outsider can get to understanding what a cranial-manipulating programmer has going on in his head. Until this chapter was published, the Illuminati’s ability to perpetrate this mind control has been a complete secret. This is the first time that this secret has ever reached the public light of day. It is a secret known only to a handful of people in the world. It is a secret that various parts of Satan’s realm have carefully guarded for centuries. How I got this secret is a long story. It is the confluence of many streams of research coming together. The people, who carry out this type of programming hate the God of the Holy Bible.

This art’s academy’s own literature speaks about “the Force”. “The Mysterious Vital Force is a Universal Power of Intelligence present in all things.” (Direct quote from the Cranial Academy’s official newsletter). This is a Force similar to Jung’s “Collective unconsciousness” and Star War’s The Force. The God of the Universe, who loves each and every person in spite of their hatefulness & rejection, has also warned that all things will be revealed.

If I didn’t write this, God would simply seek some other avenue to expose these hideous secrets. Who would have imagined that the Illuminati and a particular aspect of their mind control would end up to be connected to Transcendental Meditation, Kung Fu, modern Osteopathy, Theosophy and the Rosicrucians? None of us who research these groups are surprised that they are all tied together in the occult via the SPIN principle. However, you may be surprised by how they are also all affiliated to this form of mind control, which can be disguised as a typical mugging!

Even the Mafia are able to produce heartless criminal alters using cranial manipulation, and they don’t have the best skills at doing it either. How do victims of cranial mind-control respond? Most victims follow the subtle guidance of their mind, completely ignorant of why their mind wants to go a particular direction. Some even attribute their mental drives to the metaphysical world. This author’s hope is that the truth of this chapter will help restore free will to numerous victims of this secret mind-control technique. In spite of the extreme lack of information on this type of mind-control, it appears to have been more widely used than one might have guessed.

The benefit of this type of mind-control to the programmers is that a change in the body and head structure of a victim is permanent and undetectable, in contrast to hypnotic or drug induced states. A further benefit, is that a skilled person could be tampered with without their realization. Some of the procedures reduce the alertness of the subject, separate him from his memories and make the person more receptive to other forms of mind-control even if the subject has had no prior programming.

One example of a technique that causes a rapid adaption of the cranial bones with an accompanying neurological effect would be to flick the occiput posteriorly and inferiorly on exhalation (extension), then lift the vault (parietal) bones up from the temporal area on inhalation (flexion), then rapidly draw the vault posteriorly and inferiorly, then dislocate the sphenoid into a vertical or lateral strain position. These procedures will also speed up the appearance of aging. This is just one example of a quick procedure to control the mind of another. And as Cisco’s section will bring out, power (including power over other humans) is the goal of the occult underworld.

A lot of research has gone into producing this finished report. At first glance, the polished nature of this chapter’s report, which is replete with so many sources, may tend to mislead some people into thinking that this type of mind-control hasn’t been secret. Quite to the contrary, the pieces of the puzzle were well hidden. This type of mind-control has been very secret and it is only the result of long hard research that the many divergent pieces of the puzzle have been assembled and placed into a coherent picture for the reader. Although the possibility exists that some may misapply the intent of this chapter and use this for evil, like so much of this book’s material the really bad guys already have it. On the flip side, the potential for good, if medical science will use this secret knowledge for good is tremendous.

For instance, compare the improved appearance of Ivana Trump after her cranial work was done. This chapter has the potential positive by-product that others will be inspired to explore how cranial manipulation can be used to benefit humankind. God is in the business of turning evil into good. But perhaps in our fallen corrupted world, this secret knowledge which is being exposed in this chapter will no longer find good men worthy of this information who are also capable enough to put it to good practice. If so, then so be it. At the very least, some people will gain strength of heart to realize once again that when one know’s how God’s creation operates–it is easy to see how a paradise without problems could be created. Man’s worst enemy is man. The Illuminati are sitting on technology and knowledge that could bring about almost a virtual paradise, but they are hoarding this technology and knowledge, and suppressing it. Further, rather than helping mankind, they are using this cranial knowledge to reward those who are friendly to their Luciferian hierarchy, and to abuse those who dare to seriously impede their agenda. After you read this chapter and are aware that the secrets of cranial manipulation could rescue children with cerebral palsy, and some of the children with Down syndrome, you too will cry with this author at the needless suffering that the Illuminati have perpetrated upon mankind in their quest for total domination of this globe.

CRANIAL BLOOD PRESSURE has been kept a SECRET

Recently, a Dr. Yoshiaki Omura in New York, discovered that the blood pressure in the brain is vastly different than the rest of the body. The blood pressure in the brain has major consequences on one’s thinking (such as irritability, & insomnia) and also affects other things in the body, such as muscle tightness in the neck. High brain blood pressure is called cephalic hypotension syndrome. Yet, when this doctor went to see what the medical books/research institutions said about brain blood pressure, he found nothing. He has been making his discoveries known in speaking engagements. He recently addressed a large audience of Chinese doctors. When this author met Yoshiaki Omura, I unsuccessfully attempted to tell Yoshiaki the reason that this knowledge was suppressed was in the interest of mind-control; Dr. Omura has been treating various illnesses by working with patients’ brain blood-pressure. The diagnosis of other problems, such as the early stages of cancer, has been done earlier by Omura by monitoring brain blood pressure levels than MRI tests results.

CEREBRAL SPINAL FLUID kept SECRET

Another important fluid in the brain, discovered by others is Cerebral spinal fluid. There are many technical details about this CS fluid that are extremely important to the way the mind-body functions. In this chapter, we will discuss a number of areas of medical science, acupuncture, personology etc. concerning the brain, which when known and used by skilled practitioners can give the practitioner control over another person.

The Mystery Schools and particular bloodlines have kept much of this knowledge to themselves and continue to keep the best secrets. Daniel Whiteside, a pioneer in behavior genetics and understanding the relationship of the shape of the skull to personality, provides some important confirmations of how the Mystery Schools transmitted this secret cranial knowledge.

In his important work “The Background of Structure/Function” (pp.2-3) he outlines that Structure/Function was studied and taught by the Greek Mystery Schools, and was the basis of the Roman Empire’s psychology. The Catholic church suppressed this knowledge. This knowledge was kept alive by the Cabalistic philosophers and the Arabs, until the Knights Templars brought it back. If we build upon the information that Daniel has provided we discover that from the Knights Templars, this knowledge went to the leadership of the Prieure de Sion, who in turn disseminated low forms of it to the occult groups that they controlled. For instance, the Rosicrucian Order for North & South America in their Vol. 8 of their Rosicrucian Manual (San Jose, CA: Supreme Grand Lodge AMORC) pp. 91-108 deals with the spinal column, nerves, & the influence of color & music on the nervous system, etc. Grand Master Lewis writes on pg. 103, “The Rosicrucians were the first to have a complete outline of this system [nervous system] and to know exactly what part of the human body was connected with every other part.”

One witness reported to this author that he watched an acupuncture specialist repeatedly work on clients’ brains by inserting 3 long skinny needles through the skull. The acupuncture specialist bragged to this man that he could completely control a human via his skill with the needles. He showed this witness how he could kill pain, and how he could kill self-will by touching minute areas within the brain. He was also skilled in manipulating the mind of the client in other ways too with the needles.

There has been a great deal of research into determining what the different purposes of the different areas of the brain are. Several researchers have independently identified that the ability to make choices, that is what we call “free will”, is located near the Broadman Area 24 in the Anterior Cingulate Sulcus. Tampering with this area can disturb a person’s ability to have free will. (For more information on this one could begin with Crick, Francis. The Astonishing Hypothesis The Scientific Search for the Soul.)

Acupuncture was virtually unknown to mainstream Americans until a NY Times journalist in China reported that he was successfully treated with acupuncture in 1971. Pressure points can also be manipulated by Acupressure, which is similar to acupuncture except fingers rather than needles are used. This is just one example of a related technique which went unnoticed for decades (actually centuries by the Western World.)

The mugging-mind control information in this article has gone unnoticed by mainstream America too. Time Magazine, Nov. 4, 1991, reported that there are four types of alternative medicine, which they classified as Life-Style (such as Macrobiotics, Ayurvedic medicine, and holistic medicine), Botanical (such as Homeopathy, Herbalism, and Aromatherapy), Mental healings (such as with Crystals, Guided imagery, biofeedback and Hypnotherapy) and Manipulative/Hands-on (such as Reflexology, Rolfing, Shiatsu, Alexander tech., Chiropractic, and Acupressure & Acupuncture).

Reflexology dates back to at least 2330 B.C. in Egypt. Shiatsu is a Japanese finger pressure deep massage of pressure points is over 1,000 years old. The skull & head bone manipulations that are being exposed for the first time in this report, were used in ancient Egypt and other parts of the ancient world. That Nov., 91 Time Magazine article did not mention that acupressure/acupuncture has been knowledge that the secret societies in China studied and often kept hidden for centuries, as a part of Wushu (martial arts) in China.

For instance, in a recent Chinese book 72 Consummate Arts Secrets of the Shaolin Temple, (pub. by Fujian Science & Technology Pub. Co. Ltd., Fujian, China, 1990) by Wu Jiaming and translated by Rou Gang, diagrams and explanations are given of the important head/body points (for acupressure/ acupuncture/& kung fu.) What is important for our discussion on mind control are the Kung Fu (Wushu) points in the head. This book gives 4 points on the front of the head, seven on the side of the head, and four on the back side of the head. The Shaolin Buddhist monks have kept their martial arts (which is called “Kung-fu” in the U.S. and “Wushu” in China) a secret hidden within their temple on Song Mountain, Henan Province. This Buddhist monastery has a long history of teaching kung-fu and is exerting a big influence in the world as its type of kung fu spreads. The Japanese took kung-fu from the Chinese many years ago and then developed from it specialized forms of kung-fu, such as Karate, Judo, etc.

THE CHINESE SECRET OCCULT SOCIETY CONNECTION

The important item that this paragraph will emphasize is that the Chinese secret societies studied the pressure points on the skull completely. They learned how the skull could be manipulated and what it would do to a person. Of course this information was only revealed to the best Chinese kung-fu experts. It is sometimes referred to as the skill of bone setting. In China, bone-setters are a type of Chinese doctor which are popular to some Chinese. These bone-setters have kept their secrets within many generations of families who specialize in bone-setting and also within the secret Triad societies.

The Communist government admitted that it has failed to pry family bone-setting secrets from the families that have passed these secrets down generationally. This is due in part to the strong Chinese belief in ancestor worship and strong families. A family’s secrets are considered one source of its strength. One communist Chinese tactic to pry the secrets loose was their “folkart barefoot doctor” system which they hoped the bone-setters would join.

Junxie Li wrote in 1990 that a Chinese Kung Fu document shows that bone manipulation was practiced as early as 2700 B.C. The secrets have been passed down for many years. An American writer stated in 1983, “Traditional Chinese medicine and chiropractic are remarkably alike in their underlying theories…Through deep massage at the occiput [head bone], for example, (contemporary) Chinese practitioners find that they can bring down high blood pressure, a practice analogous to that of chiropractors.”

A Buddhist monk Bodhidharma is credited to having brought the martial arts and healing arts associated with martial arts to China. He must have been a very strong individual to have made the 2,500 miles journey which back before there were paths or maps must have been more like an 8,000 miles of perilous journey on foot from India over the Himalayas to the Chinese interior. Bodhidharma had studied big cats, dogs, bears, insects and other animals to learn how they defend and attack. His physical, mental and spiritual teachings became known later as Zen Buddhism. His monastery became the famous Shaolin Monastery. A master of the Shaolin Monastery would have two dragons deeply branded into his flesh. It is said that the Red Dragon represented knowledge in ancient China.

In the Tang Dynasty (6 18-907 A.D.) some of the Kung Fu experts at that time were Li Bai and Twelfth Sister Li of the Li family. Madame Gong Sun and Twelfth Sister Li composed a famous Xihe Sword Dance combining martial arts and choreographic arts. The Li family kept some of their secret martial arts skills (including bone setting) secret for hundreds of years, and as a top Illuminati family are secretly proud of their occult knowledge and history.

To illustrate how the head has been studied are some quotes from 72 Consummate Arts Secrets of the Shaolin Temple,

“TAJYANG ACUPOINT (Sun Acupoint)

Located on both sides of the forehead, the left being Tai Yang and the right Tai Yin. Nowadays it is generally called Taiyang Acupoint being a vital part of the head. It is ‘Dead Acupoint’ among the twenty-four Acupoints. One will be faint or even die if it is slightly seized.

TAINRONG ACUPOINT

Located on the back of ears and is in parallel with the ear. It lies on the outer-side of Fen Yi Acupoint, and is above the Tian Chuang acupoint. It is a vital acupoint of the back of one’s head. It is also a ‘Dead Acupoint’ among the twenty-four acupoints.

FENGFU ACUPOINT

Located in the centre of the low part of one’s back head and is below the Naohu Acupoint but above the Yamen Acupoint. It’s in parallel with the left and right FenYi Acupoint. It is a single Acupoint. It is a vital part of one’s back brain. It is a ‘Dead Acupoint’, too. If this acupoint is seized, one may faint or die immediately.”

Washu (Chinese Martial Arts) went underground into the Chinese occult secret societies, because the rulers feared that it would make the common people too powerful, so they frequently banned the teaching of martial arts. The teachers of Kung fu teach their pupils that Kung-Fu has both an external work with the hands, feet and body and an internal work which refers to the occult spiritual work that provides the energy and spirit to do the martial arts that Kung fu masters do.

The Shaolin Temple masters have studied the human skeleton very closely for centuries. The books Shaolin Long Fist Kung-Fu by Yang Jwing-Ming & Jeff Bolt and The Way of the Sun Dragon Chinese Martial Art of Tai-Yang Lung Tao are other examples of books in English which also show points to hit on the head. The art of manipulating the skull and other bones has travelled from the secret societies to about 20% of China’s doctors. As mentioned, this skill is called “bone setting.”

Some Kung Fu experts and Chinese doctors learn bone setting, including how to work with the skull bones. In 1974, the U.S. Dept. of Health, Education and Welfare (which has been full of New Agers) along with the Fogarty International Center of the National Institutes of Health which works with WHO of the U.N. set up a conference in Seattle, WA which focused on Health Care in China. The U.S. Government Printing Office then printed up in 1975 edited versions of the papers presented at the conference. The resulting book on Medicine in Chinese Cultures has some very pertinent information to the ancient secret Chinese art of manipulating skull bones. After W.W. II, Chinese bone setters began to use X-rays. (p. 261)

· The Chinese bone setters had their own professional associations. (p. 261-262)

· Bone-setters’ societies have been interwoven with secret societies, the link being Chinese kung-fu (martial arts) which the secret societies control. “Bone-setters get their knowledge of anatomy from practicing kung-fu, for part of the instruction is in how the bones and muscles work.” (p. 262.)

· Bone-setters, in order to practice in Hong Kong, generally find it advantageous to get (buy) protection from the Triads (Chinese Secret Societies controlled by the Li Illuminati family, as well as other powerful Chinese families.) Doctors are licensed in Hong Kong according to British standards and bone-setters have not received much recognition from the British government. But someone connected with the CIA verbally let out that they have been very interested in studying Chinese bone setting.

T’ai Chi, is the philosophy associated in China with the yin-yang. It is incorporated into the name T’ai Chi Chuan (Great Origin Fist) which are the calisthenics which many chinese practice on a daily basis. The advanced student learns 128 movements. Practitioners of the exercises can be seen exercising at dusk, especially in Kuala Lumpur. “Instruction in Chinese medicine is considered a normal part of the training to become a T’ai Chi instructor, and many instructors are said to be skilled in bone setting and the treatment of sprains and strains.

One of the most famous T’ai Chi instructors in Kuala Lumpur, an elderly man who received his training in China many years ago, is indeed famous locally as a bone-setter. It is clear that it is difficult to draw a line between T’ai Chi Chuan and preventive or even curative medicine.” (Medicine In Chinese Cultures…, p.310 Bruce Lee, who came from a very wealthy branch of the Li family, was half Chinese and half American by blood. He grew up in Hong Kong, and was taught Chinese martial arts beginning at the age of 14. Bruce Lee came to America, and was very American in his thinking. Due to his American thinking, he thought radically different from the traditional Chinese martial arts mentality, and there is strong evidence to suggest it cost him his life. He not only exposed to the western world secrets of Chinese martial arts, but he mixed various types of moves from the various oriental schools of martial arts. For doing this, he made many of the Zen martial arts masters furious.

When Bruce Lee died at 32 in 1972, his body was like a teenager’s and it was in great shape. Bruce Lee had no equal in the martial arts. The Chinese/Hong Kong press felt that he was killed by the Zen martial arts masters of China. In fact, his student Abdul described Bruce Lee as a “renegade Taoist Priest.” Whether or not Bruce and his son Brandon were killed by the Triads and/or the Secret Martial Arts Societies of China, doesn’t change the fact that Bruce Lee angered them for exposing their martial arts to the western world.

From research in this area, it is clear that there are still secrets kept by Chinese martial arts which only a few carefully chosen members of secret societies know. Bruce Lee did not make it to this inner circle. The inner groups of the secret societies trade favors. This is a standard method of payoff. Well trained martial arts cults that know some of the secrets of cranial manipulation can be asked to assault a human target. What happens if the head injury is not fine-tuned?

Laurence Miller Ph.d. in the article “Unusual Head Injury Syndromes…” (The Journal of Cognitive Rehabilitation 11-12/’94, p. 13) states, “Memory disorders are virtually universal in head injury and typically top the list of symptoms reported by patients. The ‘standard’ pattern of posttraumatic memory disorder – and indeed, for organic memory disorders generally – consists of well-preserved old memories, patchy or impaired memory for events immediately preceding the injury (retrograde amnesia) and following the injury (anterograde amnesia), and subsequent difficulty learning and retaining new information.”

This is exactly opposite of what the handlers want. They want the victim to forget the past abuse, but be able to remember a series of new commands for a new operation precisely. This underscores the reason WHY the person doing the assault needs to be skilled. There is no doubt that Chinese martial arts are being used to mug people in order to alter their thinking. The secret potential of Chinese Martial Arts to alter a person’s skull bones and thinking has been one secret worth killing to preserve. Miller also points out that frontal lobe injuries can weaken the subject’s hold over reality. Although Miller writes about accidental injuries, his article is extremely well researched about the wide variety of mental problems that develop from different injuries. The medical world have named many of these specific problems such as the Ganser Syndrome, the Capgras Syndrome, & Cotard’s Syndrome. While this kind of research is helpful to establish that different specific injuries to the head can create specific symptoms, the written material is not specific about how to intentionally create a symptom.

The ancient EGYPTIAN CONNECTION

Skull manipulation was used by the ancient Egyptian priesthood, as well as trauma-based mind-control, astral projection, and hypnosis. At least some of these secrets got passed on to later secret societies.

THE TIBETAN CONNECTION

One religious black magic group are the Tibetan monks. Their man-god Dalai Lama, is coveted as a guest of many of the top Illuminati, Mishpucka, and other occult figures around the world. In 1966, the Dalai Lama wrote the book Opening of the Wisdom-Eye, which is typically referred to as the third-eye area which is slated by the NWO to be the initiation site for the mark of the Beast. Many leading European occultists have gone to Tibet to learn from the black magicians of Tibet. Hitler imported hundreds of Tibetan monks for his Third Reich. Nazi expeditions were sent to Tibet; and in 1942, Hitler, because of his occult ideas about Asia & Tibet, was excited to plant a Nazi flag on the highest peak of the Caucasian mountains, Mt. Elbrus, at the specific time of 11 a.m.

For those who didn’t realize how dark were the secrets of the Tibetan monks, just a small sampling of books on their black magic secrets include: David-Neels’ Magic & Mystery in Tibet (1958), Bromage’s Tibetan Yoga, Beyer’s The Cult of Tara- -Magic & Ritual in Tibet (1978), the Tibetan Book of the Dead (and commentaries about it), Suzuki’s The Zen Doctrine of No Mind (1973), and Thomas’ Out of This World to Forbidden Tibet (1954).

Qigong is the Chinese word for the healing arts taught within the secret schools of Martial Arts. Tibetans go to the S.W. National University in China to learn Qigong. Dapang Qigong is a derivative of Qigong where both martial arts and healing are taught together. One of the secrets of the Tibetan monks, is the physical manipulation of the third eye. T. Lobsang Rampa, a Tibetan from one of the 10 elite families of Tibet, at the age of seven entered the Chakpori Lamasery, the Temple of Tibetan Medicine, where the Tibetan masters taught healing arts including astral projection, clairvoyance and levitation.

Their mystic arts are similar to what the Illuminati believe in and practice. For instance, they learn about the silver cord that connects people. Upper-class boys such as Lobsang received extremely severe treatment from the time they were born to insure that they were tough enough to survive the harsh Tibetan life. Lobsang described the traumas of early boyhood as “brutal”, but then adds on page 18 of his book The Third Eye, “Under this system weaklings did not survive, but those who did could survive almost anything.” Children were kept awake eighteen hours a day, and worked hard during that time. Even very small babies are kept awake, so that according to Tibetan belief “they shall not become demon invested.”

On Lobsang’s eighteenth birthday, the Lama of his monastery opened his third eye. Lobsang records the brutal ceremony in his book The Third Eye (Ballantine Books, 1956). Ballantine Books advertises on the cover of this book, “Learn the secrets of the most controversial power of the new age…The Third Eye”.” Before this author relates what Lobsang “reveals” about this great secret of new age power, let me interject an informed opinion–this story may be a cover memory to hide what this author has found out is the REAL THIRD EYE manipulation. But first, let’s see what Lobsang describes, and then we’ll discuss it.

On the evening of his 18th birthday, Lobsang went to a little room in the monastery. Three lamas of high degrees came and bound his head tightly with an herbal compress to produce some kind of drug effect upon him. They came back and removed the herbal compress, and wiped his forehead clean. Then Lobsang describes, ‘A strong-looking lama sat behind me and took my head between his knees. The second lama opened a box and removed an instrument made of shining steel. It resembled a bradawi except that instead of having a round shaft this one was U-shaped, and in place of a point there were little teeth around the edge of the “U.” For some moments the lama looked at the instrument, and then passed it through the flame of the lamp to sterilize it.

The Lama…took my hands and said, ‘This is quite painful, Lobsang, and it can only be done while you are fully conscious. It will not take very long, so try to keep as still as you can.” I could see various instruments laid out, and a collection of herbal lotions, and I thought to myself: “Well, Lobsang, my boy, they will finish you one way or the other and there is nothing you can do about it–except keep quiet!” The lama with the instrument looked around to the others, and said, “All ready? Let us start now, the sun has just set.”

He pressed the instrument to the centre of my forehead and rotated the handle. For a moment there was a sensation as if someone was pricking me with thorns. To me it seemed that time stood still. There was no particular pain as it penetrated the skin and flesh, but there was a little jolt as the end hit the bone. The pain was not sharp at all, just a pressure and a dull ache. I did not move with the Lama Mingyar Dondup looking on; I would rather have died than make a move or outcry. He had faith in me, as I in him, and I knew that what he did or said was right. He was watching most closely, with a little pucker of muscles in tension at the corners of his mouth. Suddenly there was a little scrunch and the instrument penetrated the bone. Instantly its motion was arrested by the very alert operator. He held the handle of the instrument firmly while the Lama …passed him a very hard, very clean sliver of wood which had been treated by tire and herbs to make it as hard as steel. This sliver was inserted in the “U’ of the instrument and slid down so that it just entered the hole in my head. The lama operating moved slightly to one side so that the Lama Mingyar Dondup could also stand in front of me. Then, at a nod from the latter, the operator, with infinite caution, slid the sliver farther and farther. Suddenly I felt a stinging, tickling sensation apparently in the bridge of my nose. It subsided, and I became apparently aware of subtle scents which I could not identify. That, too, passed away and was replaced by a feeling as if I was pushing, or being pushed, against a resilient veil.

Suddenly there was a blinding flash, and at that instant the Lama Mingyar Dondup said “Stop!”. For a moment the pain was intense, like a searing white flame. It diminished, died and was replaced by spirals of colour, and globules of incandescent smoke. The metal instrument was carefully removed. The sliver of wood remained, it would stay in place for two or three weeks and until it was removed I would have to stay in this little room almost in darkness. No one would see me except these three lamas, who would continue my instruction day by day. Until the sliver was removed I would have only the barest necessities to eat and drink.” As the projecting sliver was being bound in place so that it could not move, the Lama Mingyar Dondup turned to me and said, “You are now one of us, Lobsang. For the rest of your life you will see people as they are and not as they pretend to be.”

ANOTHER EXAMPLE

Bill Schnoebelen, who has publicly been exposing Satanism, writes about his experiences as a vampire and Satanist in several books. In his book, Lucifer Dethroned, he describes a third eye experience that he had during an “astral projection.” “It seemed my eyeballs were turning to molten steel. My forehead was about to explode. I felt a claw tear into my brow, right between but slightly above my eyebrows and insert itself into my brain like a white-hot poker. I tried to scream, but could not. My entire body felt like it was going to burst from being filled with roaring, flaming hot light….I felt like a fish on the end of a hook being hauled out of the water by my very brain. I screamed in pain, but it came out: ‘Glory and Love for Lucifer! Hatred! Hatred! Hatred! to God be accursed!…’

In order to interpret his third eye experience, it needs to be asked where is Bill Schnoebolen coming from? This author’s best evidence to answer that comes from personal testimony. People familiar with this author (Fritz) have contacted Schnoebolen about Fritz for years. Why has Bill Schnoebelen taken a very cold attitude to this chapter’s author (Fritz) and his work? Why has he opposed and slandered this author, and this author’s work like the Vol. 2 book, and other information that this author has been putting out to expose Illuminati mind-control since 1991. One would expect a genuine ex-Satanist to be supportive of someone who risks his life to rescue Satanists from bondage. The reason I introduce personal testimony is that I know what side of things I am on, which is God’s side, and when people like Bill Schnoebolen oppose me from the get-go, without even meeting me, it is solid evidence to me where they are coming from. From what Schnoebolen writes about his third eye experience, and from what this author has learned of third eye cranial manipulation, it appears that Bill is still under some cult deception and is very likely still under the mind-control that placed his cover memory of his third-eye experience into him.

It is very likely that both Lobsang and Bill were in a trance state induced by drugs, hypnosis and dissociation from pain, and that a screen memory was laid in on top of their sensory experience to hide the manipulation of certain midline bones such as the ethmoid, vomer, sphenoid, etc. The sensation produced by the “third eye” cranial manipulation is unforgettable, it feels like something is moving straight into your skull through the frontal bone of the forehead, and then penetrating deeply into the center of the head. In order to preserve their cranial secrets, the occult world has cleverly fabricated these kind of dramatic cover stories. What they are doing is improving the alignment of the ethmoid bone, which makes a person more sensitive to the environment, which will be perceived by some as improving one’s psychic abilities. (As a final note, when this author met with Bill, Bill’s view towards helping MPD was that it was demons that needed to be delivered. One of his supposed deliverance success stories, an Illuminati victim of mind-control, is still a multiple and still a double agent, and also actively working against this author’s work. Bill personally told this author, that while he was a Satanist & vampire he was offered to have a mind-controlled slave, but that he turned the opportunity down. Bill is not the only person publicly exposing the occult/NWO who has over the years tried to prevent this author’s information from getting to you.)

The third eye area, called the ethmoid, is physically manipulated by the monks for mind-control purposes. In the occult world, the third eye area actually extends to include the entire midline area, not just the ethmoid, but also the midline bones, and the related brain structures, especially the pineal gland. Midline bones are interesting to occultists, because the main endocrine and neurologic structures in the brain are placed around the central 3rd and 4th ventricular areas. (The first two ventricles, known as the lateral ventricles, repose on either side of the third.) The bones are one way to access these midline structures. the ethmoid is the front-most midline bone (behind the frontal, which is considered to be two bones; since in many people the metopic suture does not close). The ethmoid interfaces with other midline bones.

In the course of this book, the reader is introduced to the concept that the human brain is actually 7 brains. The 4th or mid brain that lies between the upper 3 brains and the lower three and functions as a crossroads, joins with the optic thalamus, which forms the floor of the 3rd ventricle. The ceiling of the 4th brain is the floor of the 3rd ventricle. The 3rd ventricle and the Cave of Brahma make up the 5th brain. The 5th brain is connected to the cerebral hemispheres of the Cerebrum and is critical to creating concepts and storing abstract concepts. It feeds on ideas, and reflects. (Marijuana activates this brain, and it is common knowledge among mind-control handlers that marijuana is forbidden to slaves.)

The roof the 5th brain is formed by the choroid plexus. At the front is the pituitary and at the rear the pineal gland, both exceptionally important to perception. The peptides (called enkephalins) that trigger intuitive awareness of what the 6th brain is perceiving, come from the pituitary into the Cave of Brahma. Can the reader now see why cranial manipulation that influences this area will affect our intuitive awareness?

Cranial Osteopath Ronald R. McCatty’s book Craniosacral Osteopathy discusses the pineal body and pituitary gland from pp. 78 to 86. A discussion of the techniques to influence these bodies is beyond the scope of this chapter, but there are procedures. McCatty is very skilled, but he still has a ways to go to match the skills of the inner group that does mind-control. His page 25 also discusses a direct adjustment on the Pineal body via arm rotations and breathing. The occult world’s physical manipulation of this third eye area can enhance a person’s sensitivity. (It works off of straightforward body/brain mechanics, not the spirit world). It makes the subject feel that he is more telepathic. This is one of their big secrets. This secret was passed on the Gurdjieff, who went to Tibet to learn their secrets. Gurdjieffs communities, which this author has been investigating have a very good appearance to them, but there are lots of dark secrets within these communities, which indicate that drug use and mind-control are going on amongst them.

One of the mind-control techniques used is physical manipulation of the third-eye area of the skull. In fact, a number of cranial osteopaths (such as Cranial Osteopath and Rosicrucian Robert Fulford) have thanked Gurdjieff for enlightening them about how to do cranial manipulation. Some of what the occult says about the third eye is simply cover stories to hide some of the bigger secrets. It is not known to this author if Fulford can do a third eye manipulation. (In this exposure of cranial manipulation, R.C. Fulford is of interest to us due to his impact upon the course Cranial Osteopathy took, rather than his skill. W.G. Sutherland, the leader in Cranial Osteopathy had several Rosicrucians and other occultists as early students. After his death, three of these took Cranial Osteopathy in a more occult direction than Sutherland was going. Anne Wales, as Sutherland’s editor & compiler, the person who took over his papers, also reviewed the papers of other cranial doctors, making sure she gave them all as much of a mystical twist as she could add to them. Olive Stretch was the second of the three and she and her husband ran the Cranial Academy from their living room. Upon Olive’s death, her husband married Fulford’s secretary of sixteen years, who in turn continued to run things when he died. Fulford, who is now in his ’90s, did occult philosophizing, and some believe programming, but didn’t develop the skill needed for entrance into the inner core of high level cranial knowledge.)

Rosicrucian Cranial Osteopath Robert Fulford also met Tibetans to learn what he could from the Tibetans. He became the President of the Osteopathy Cranial Association. He gives interesting talks, and writes about the Odic Force and the Vril (the light that the Nazis believed in), but it is not clear that Fulford, who is retired in Ohio, learned any deep secrets of manipulation.

However, Gurdjieff is not the only one who learned from the Orient. Cranial Osteopath Ronald Kurylowicz, of 754 Washington Blvd, Marina Del Rey, CA who is single and lives with his mother who serves as his secretary, made a special effort to learn what he could from the Chinese over a period of years, with what appears as a clear intent to use it for mind-control and malevolent purposes. The cranial group has long had an international effort to teach and proselytize worldwide. Much of this seems to be a sincere effort to spread the benefits of cranial knowledge allowed to the public. (This knowledge is often released only for substantial fees.)

When the inner core of cranial manipulation has travelled to learn from other cultures, China has been the primary focus. While in China, the inner core of cranial manipulation, who use it for mind-control, have met with their Chinese counterparts to negotiate occult relationships. Top level Theosophists have accompanied the inner core on their trips to China. In 1950, Gurdjieff came out with Beelzebub’s Tales to His Grandson Vol. 1-3. IDHHB Inc. published in 1978 some of the secret talks that Gurdjieff had with a special group of disciples. The point is simply that Gurdjieff was willing to go to the occult world of black magicians to get some of his enlightenment, and one of the techniques he learned was the manipulation of the mind via physical manipulation of the “third eye area”. One of Gurdjieff’s big disciples in New England passed on to the cranial osteopaths manipulation secrets that Gurdjieff learned in Tibet. Gurdjieff is even more mysterious, when one realizes that he an asset of Russian and British intelligence.

This raises the obvious question, what were the Nazi’s able to learn about skull manipulation from the Tibetans, the Japanese secret societies, and European occultism? It is known that the Nazi’s carried out experimentation on skull manipulation. (Some of the records pertaining to Nazi human experiments are stored in the U.S. National Archives, incl. National Archives Record Group 238, the Collection of W.W.II War Crimes Records, the OSS’s reports in Record Group 226, the Dept. of State records in National Archives Record Group 59, and Group 242. But it must be borne in mind that much of the records of Nazi experiments were confiscated and remained secret so that our government could continue the research. We see only glimpses of this research in such things as the SS skeleton collection, written about in SS letters used as Nuernberg Trial Doc. No.s 87, 88, 91. Prof. Hirt at the Strassburg Anatomical Institute received 150 Jewish skeletons for research according to a secret SS document, marked Exhibit no. 086. One thing is clear, there was no limitation for Nazi researchers as to what they could experiment on with human beings. Could the idea/chance to research in skull manipulation for purposes of mind-control have escaped those Nazi researchers who were steeped in phrenology and horse breeding?)

What did the Nazi’s learn, and what did their mind-control experts such as Joseph Mengele pass on to American mind-control programmers, or is it possible the subtleties of cranial bone manipulation somehow escaped them? The practice of bone-setting in Germany had been known as Knochenartz, Knocheneinrichter, and Wundart. In recent history, Germany has a large number of cranial osteopaths who purchase lots of American books on the cranial osteopathy. It’s this author’s opinion, that the total mind-control of NWO slaves being implemented in the Black Forest castles, Strasburg, Frankfurt, Berlin, and hundreds of other German sites includes cranial manipulation. However, in terms of Germany, this remains to be proven. In America, there is no doubt, for we have the victims (and photographic proof) to prove it.

Osteopathy is not “politically correct” within Germany’s medical establishment. Most Germans, who purchase cranial books, are occultists (usually variations on Theosophy) and not people with medical or manipulative training. Europeans tend to be much more specialists in their professions than Americans. They don’t tend to have as many people/per population practice a particular skill as America, but the ones who do are often very skilled. (This is an observation this author has heard frequently during his world-wide travels, and has also observed for himself.) For instance, in visiting Switzerland, this author learned that if a person wants to build a house he will have no option but to bring in specialists for the different tasks, while in America, it’s not unusual for people to attempt building their own. This European approach of encouraging only very skilled specialists would also apply to cranial manipulation. We would expect a few very highly technical, skilled skull manipulators, and many curious entry-level folks.

THE JAPANESE CONNECTION

The ninjitsu people (popularly known as “the ninja” in America) were historically black magicians who hired out as assassins, and were feared and hated by all the Japanese people. They are now being held out as role models for our American children. The ninja learned how to dissociate pain. They learned martial arts and the art of stealth. According to the book The Karate Dojo by Peter Urban, “They were the original practitioners of the ‘art of [mind-control] programming.’ They were taught from the cradle that nothing was impossible. Not knowing that a thing could not be done, they proceeded to do it.” It is possible that the Green Dragon Society of Japan passed on some of this mind-control training techniques to the German secret societies that were in cooperation with them prior to and during W.W. II. In other words, Dr. Mengele, the Nazi Angel of Death who carried out mind-control experiments for the Nazi’s (& the Illuminati) during W.W. II may have attempted to incorporate Chinese, Tibetan, Japanese, Ancient Egyptian and Hindu mind-control techniques into their mind-control programming/research.

THE EARLY EUROPEAN OCCULT CONNECTION

Information pertaining to this has been floating around Europe in certain circles for years. We will touch on some of the various times and places that we know parts of cranial manipulation to alter the mind was being done. Over the centuries skilled horsemen learned that they could tell the temperament of a horse from the shape of its head. The best books on horse training would have sections on determining what your horse’s temperament was based on skull shape.

The Celts were big on bone-setting. Wales has continued to preserve some of this Celtic enthusiasm. A rare book The Art of The Bone-Setter by George Matthews Bennett (London, Tho Murby publ., 1884) gives an excellent history of bone-setters in England, Wales and Scotland. It is likely that some of these men understood some things about how personality could be affected via bone manipulation in the skull.

George Matthews Bennett was a Freemason and a Druid. He was also a leading bone-setter in London, Stratford and other places. He was a descendent of the famous occult Matthews family, which had practiced bone-setting for two hundred years. His son, who also did bone-setting, was the last of that line to practice bone-setting. The skill (professional art) of bone-setting passed down in families for generations was not the equivalent of modern osteopathy.

Osteopathy had many different ideas and approaches, even though the two are similar. One of the early English books on bone-setting was The Compleat Bone-setter by Friar Moulton. In 1665, the book was enlarged by Robert Turner (an occultist/astrologer) and printed in England. In 1871, Dr. Wharton Hood wrote another publication on bone-setting in England entitled A Treatise on Bone Setting. But most of the skill of bone-setting in England was passed down as family secrets within a few bloodlines that practiced it for generations, such as the Thomases, the Taylors of Lancashire, the Maltby’s of Nottingham, the Masons of Lincolnshire, the Huttons of Westmorland (& later of London), the Crowthers of Yorkshire, and the Matthews of the Midlands. (This list occurs in the book Medical Fringe & Medical Orthodoxy 1750-1850 edited by Bynum and Porter, pub. London: Croom Helm Ltd., 1987, p. 170, note 10.) Much about bone-setting in Europe, will remain secret, because so much was taught orally and shrouded in mystery. About a dozen British bloodlines passed their trade secrets down, a number of them were Welch. However, there were also many itinerant quacks who travelled around billing themselves as bone-setters.

NINETEENTH CENTURY OCCULT CONNECTION

Bone-setter Richard Hutton gained notoriety in London in the 1800’s when he relieved the long-standing suffering of the Hon. Spencer Ponsonby. Hugh Owen Thomas, (1848-?) who was a qualified doctor, used what he knew from coming from a long traditional line of bone-setters to create modern fracture theory. His nephew, Sir Robert Jones (1857-1933) who was his apprentice, was the major ambassador for modern orthopaedic medical practices. In other words, some of the knowledge of the bone-setters contributed to modern established medical knowledge.

Charles Waterton, an English naturalist in old England, wrote in his Wanderings and Essays on Natural History that every nation in Europe had bone-setters, who were independent of the surgeons. Throughout Europe, the men and women who practiced bone-setting learned the skill from others and as a result of experience. The skill was not a text-book-learned skill, but an art that was taught via hands-on training. Many of the bone-setters never formally studied anatomy, pathology, or surgery. (See The Art of the Bone-Setter, p. 96.) Hand-in-hand with bone setting came ideas on the importance of the shape of the skull. In 1695, Balthazar Bekkar of London wrote, “Physiognomy, that is…the Observation of a Man’s Shape, must be comprehended under this sort [occult arts], for this Art foretells things by the Looks, the Features and Lineaments of the Face, by which the Genius and Humour of Men are to be discovered.” (This comes from book one of a four book series The World Bewitched; An Examination of the Common Opinions Concerning Spirits. London: R. Baldwin, 1695, vol. 1, p.30.)

THE WITCHCRAFT CONNECTION

Throughout the world, people have practiced bone manipulation. The names for folk bone-setting throughout the world of course vary from language to language. In Tahiti it was called “romy” or “rumi”. In South America, it was called “abrazo del ranchero”. In Bohemia it was called “napravit.” In Mexico, it’s been called “arreglador de huesos”, and in France “reboutage.” The Amish call it “Brauche”, and some of their bone-setters practice folk witchcraft. (This is known from the author’s own experience as an Amishman.) Bone-setting has often been associated with folk healing and the occult.

Contrary to what is politically correct today, witchcraft was not a group of poor innocent women chased by a malicious Christian society, but was a well-organized body which was a repository for the occult knowledge of Babylon, Egypt and Rome. Ex-Illuminati members have described (to this author) the ancient manuscripts of knowledge preserved in secrecy by the Illuminati down through the ages. The permission of the Grand Druid Council is needed for some Illuminati books. Illuminati members are only allowed to see certain manuscripts, if they are achieving a mastery in that field of secret knowledge.

In the middle ages, knowledge was dispensed through secret trade guilds, fraternities and bloodlines. The ancient healing/and harming secrets of the human body were secrets of the fraternal secret societies, i.e. what is known today as the Illuminati. Witches could accomplish either a healing or a harmful manipulation of the body without anyone knowing what had happened, because their arts were secret techniques that outsiders couldn’t recognize.

Secret medical and psychological knowledge was hidden by lots of cover mystical claptrap, which made the real secrets elusive to outsiders. Witches were accused of witchcraft when the harmful results of what they did were noticed, but the people had little idea of the mechanics of what hit them. Some of the trials of witches during the late middle ages were legitimate grievances, even though the ancient trial records (by today’s standards) contain no legitimate evidence of modus operandi. We are not in a position to judge their trials by our standards of evidence.

Throughout most history, the doctor-priest or the medicine man-shaman kept his health secrets to himself as occult/arcane /esoteric knowledge to pass to his chosen successors. Even today, our modern day equivalents for the medicine man & shaman –our doctors & priests are still popular careers for transgenerational pagans. And as this chapter is pointing out, there are still secrets.

The Mystery Religions of Europe studied the human head and body. One of Jacob Boehme’s disciples portrayed the Hindu chakra points back in 1736 in his Theosophia Practica. The results of tortures during ancient and medieval times upon the bodies & skulls of people was also known to a few. A relationship appears to exist between bone-setting and witchcraft, in that wherever witchcraft was strongest in England, one also discovers an abundance of bonesetters. An advance knowledge of anatomy was needed to devise the tortures used in Europe by those who were in power. It was not uncommon historically for doctors & bonesetters to provide advice for torture devices. For instance, Dr. Guillotin, a French doctor & Freemason, invented the guillotine.

There are plenty of evidences of occult involvement in the torture of people over the centuries, (even though it is politically correct to blame it on Christians). At this point it is safe to say that there was some overlap between bone-setting, witchcraft, and those who made an occupation as torturers for the state, but the complete details are not available. Some families have traditionally been involved in torture, perhaps at some point those family secrets will surface. Hands of Glory of hanged men were used as health charms. Corpses & moss from skulls, were also thought to have healing powers.

Freemason/Druid/ Bone-setter George Matthews Bennett writes, “In the North of England, the origin of nearly all the men who are fairly good at Bone-setting can be traced to the Whitworth surgery, and while, so far as I know, the Taylors, in their various settlements at Whitworth, Todmorden, Stockwood, and Oldfield-lane, were the only qualified surgeons who practiced Bone-setting; amongst the hills and dales of Lancashire, Yorkshire, and the Lake district, there were many who did so without being qualified.” (The Art of the Bone-setter, p. 106) Whether these Taylors were any relation to those Taylors today within the Illuminati, is not known.

Phrenology was very respected during the 19th century. Queen Victoria consulted the top phrenologist. Interest in Phrenology led Europeans to research what the functions of the brain are, & how the brain functions. Phrenologists Johann Gaspar Spurzheim and Scotsman George Combe “realized the potentiality to manipulate and control human behaviour” via their knowledge of the skull and brain. (Cooter, Cultural Meaning of Popular Science, p. 6) The writings of these men resulted in phrenological societies and publications springing up all over the U.S. and Great Britain.

Franz Joseph Gall, was an expert on the anatomy of the brain, having spent his life studying it. Encyclopedia Britannica says F.J. Gall was a “brain anatomist of considerable ability”. (Ency. Brit., 15th ed., vol.26, p. 327) In 1800, Franz Joseph Gall, advocated to medical science that the shape of the skull was a guide to an individual’s mental faculties and character traits. Based upon this, other researchers such as Pierre Flourens undertook experiments on animals to determine more exactly the functions of the various parts of the brain. Various men contributed ideas.

Leopold Auenbrugger discovered percussion to determine a fluid level. He applied his discovery of tapping his father’s casks to gauge the level of fluid content to the body.

Fire In The Minds of Men, by James H. Billington a leading historian, is an excellent survey of how the French Revolution and subsequent revolutions were created by a small group of leading occultists. Utopian socialists, who embraced the occult ideal of a “revolving back to the Golden Age” helped promote the idea of phrenology at the important Paris Athenee, where debates were organized concerning the psychology of personality, physiognomy, and phrenology. (For those readers who haven’t kept up with other written works of this author, the Illuminati when America was discovered believed that they historically had came from Atlantis, and that a new Atlantis could be constructed in the new world. The revolution of the United States was the first war in history called a “revolution”, and it was called a revolution because it and subsequent revolutions were to revolve us back to the Golden Age of Atlantis. They named the ocean to reach their new Atlantis, the Atlantic Ocean.)

Charleston, S.C. was a major hub for the Scottish Rite and for Reformed Judaism, both which were interlocked and used the Cabala. The main goal of the Cabala is to create a mind-controlled slave called a golem. The main principle behind Freemasonry according to Albert Pike, who was the Supreme Commander of Freemasonry in Charleston, S.C. has been the cabala. This makes it easier to understand why Freemasonry has been involved in the creation of mind-controlled slaves.

It also makes it more understandable why hypnotism (called mesmerism) along with phrenology was introduced into Charleston, SC about 1830. After the occult world introduced phrenology coupled with hypnotism to Charleston, it was also introduced by the Frenchman Charles Poyen to Rhode Is. Brown University. The entire faculty was so astonished at the power of hypnotism, that they concluded that mesmerism was a more important science than phrenology.

Initially, the elite in Charleston were interested in hypnotism (called mesmerism) combined with phrenology. The craze spread to the common people, and hypnotism was the subject of a famous intellectual debate in Charleston in 1843. Phrenology, which was a science tied to Rosicrucianism, lost favor in the south, due to the large participation of phrenologists (Rosicrucians) in the abolition movement. The Abolitionist movement was created in the U.S. by the Illuminati via the Rosicrucian groups, as well as Unitarians and Socialists who were also tied to them. For instance, Rosicrucian/ Phrenologist William Lloyd Garrison started the Anti-slavery Society in 1832. Three other notable Rosicrucian abolitionists are John Brown, George Lippard, and Abraham Lincoln. John Brown, besides being a Rosicrucian, revolutionist and abolitionist, was a practicing phrenologist. He had been trained by Fowler and Wells, who promoted the Vegetarian City that A. Still visited.

Many of the Illuminati and leading European occultists, incl. men such as Charles Taze Russell (founder of the WT Society) and Joseph Smith, Jr. (founder of the LDS Mormon church) were students of phrenology. Interestingly, Joseph Smith, Jr. on Jan. 5, 1841 had a revelation that phrenology was an occult science from “the Devil”. (Smith’s words are recorded in The Words of Joseph Smith: The Contemporary Accounts of the Nauvoo discourses of the Prophet Joseph. Provo, UT: Brigham Young Univ. Religious Studies Center, 1980, p. 61.) And yet he continued studying phrenology, and endorsing phrenology to the “Latter-day Saints” (Mormons).

Quite a number of the Mormon prophets (the top leader) such as Brigham Young, Wilford Woodruff, and George A. Smith got phrenological readings done of their skulls. The Mormon church sold phrenology books and even printed a phrenology magazine in Salt Lake City for a while, which was entitled The Character Builder from the 1870’s until into the 1940’s. George Reynolds, First Presidency secretary and later President of the LDS Seventies (a group of men like the catholic cardinals) considered phrenological readings as valid as the patriarchal blessings that the LDS church gives to its members.

Since the Mormon church is one of the Illuminati fronts carrying out mind-control, it should come as no surprise that attempts to control the human mind by manipulation of the shape of the skull have been attempted. Interestingly, official church interest in phrenology by the Mormon hierarchy died out during the time period (1940’s) that mind-control began to be scientifically carried out by the Illuminati in cooperation with different government front. Could it be that there was a grain of powerful truth in phrenology that these people wanted quietly buried?

Swendenborg, the founder of a mystical Masonic Rite, spent a great deal of time and some of his writing discussing the skull bones. This author has encountered victims of trauma-based total mind-control within the modern Swendenborg Church of New Jerusalem. Occult students of Swendenborg, including some of the Illuminati, such as some in the DuPont family, studied his ideas with fervour. (The DuPonts appear to be connected to at least one cranial osteopath.) (Because the Church of New Jerusalem does not tell the public nor its members about Swedenborg being a Freemason, etc. it would be advantageous to briefly identify to the reader who he was. Swedenborg wrote, “I live, besides, on terms of familiarity and friendship with all the bishops of my country, who are ten in number; as also with the sixteen senators, and the rest of nobility. The king and queen also, and the three princes, their sons, show me much favor.” Swedenborg, born to a well-connected elite Swedish family, was a genius who wrote an incredible amount of spiritual writings that he believed came from alien encounters. His “alien” material in his Earths in the Universe is blatantly baloney, but at that time, people had no concept of what they’d find in outer space. The “aliens” even gave him the wrong number of planets in our solar system, 9. Swedenborg wrote that Saturn is “the farthest [planet] from the sun”. He was certain of this and other ideas because of what the aliens had told him.

He also communicated with spirits. Masonic encyclopedias state that many of his ideas were Masonic. In Masonry Defined (publ. by National Masonic Press, a book based on 33º Freemason / Masonic historian Mackey’s notes), their article on Emanuel Swedenborg states, “enlightened Masons will find many Masonic ideas in Swedenborg’s writings.” In the Be Wise As Serpents book, this author documents the interlocking directorates that control the top level secret societies. The Masonic Rite of Swedenborg with its 8 degrees and two “temples”-which means “sub-rites”- has had some of the worst Satanists as its leadership.)

In spite of the ridicule of the various ideas about determining personality from the shape of the body and head, Ency. Brit. 15th ed. Vol. 25, p. 497 admits, “Nevertheless, structural differences in the body do seem to have some significance in pointing to such aspects of personality as intelligence and emotion.” The 18th and 19th century researchers were onto something, they didn’t manage to finish the job. The Nazi government, and other governments have secretly tried to finish that job. Unfortunately, it may be a long time before we learn exactly how they finished this line of research. So far, the only recipients of the 20th century research findings have been a few select people within the occult world.

An interesting story involving personality change due to changes in the skull and brain was the landmark patient Phineas Gage, who died in 1861, after an accident caused him to damage the brain’s ability to make rational decisions and to process emotions. Recently, new research was performed on Phineas Gage’s skull to understand better how his brain had been affected by an accident. (See Science, May 20, 1994, p. 1102)

Another example of how the shape of the skull and the movement of skull bones determines how the brain functions are the craniectomies that are now being carried out to relieve infants from mental imbecility due to premature skull sutural closure and microcephalus. (See The Journal of the American Medical Association JAMA, Jan. 8, 1992, p. 226.) Further, researchers into how the brain creates thoughts, who desire to remain confidential, have come to believe that the ionic crystalline structure within the cranium’s 5 cranial bone plates: the occipital bone, the two Parietal bones and the two frontal skull bones which connect at fontanellas (fissures) called sutures play an important role in the creation of thoughts. They believe that the ionic crystalline structures of the skull bones interact with incoming theta waves from the brain, and a resonance is created that causes electrons to be generated, which are then translated via a Fourier-type translation into a thought.

You are probably aware that it is the grey matter that lies next to the skull that carries out the higher level thinking that distinguishes humans from animals. These researchers have stated that they believe that the fontanellas (connections between the skull plates) allow subtle lateral motions and non-linear complex vibrations to occur. These vibrations are part of the higher thinking process. If this is true, it could have far ranging ramifications.

These researchers believe the natural resonant vibrational frequency of the skull bones (the cranium) ranges from 840 to 890 MHz in non-herzian waves. This range was reserved for VHF television, but has now been reserved for the national cellular telephone network. When the 840 to 890 range was used for television, various neurologists noted that certain signals related to particular pitches and sounds would trigger reactions in people. For instance, the NY Times 7/11/91 reported that according to a neurologist an epileptic seizure was triggered via certain television signals. Cellular phones are now being used to transmit faxes, computer information such as modems transmit, and other signals. Illuminati connected companies of IBM, Motorola, and GE are some of the companies working with cellular phone technology. The creation of vibrations via cellular phone signals in the 840 to 890 MHz non-herzian wave range could conceivably implant thoughts into a victim near the cellular phone. This raises two questions. First, IS the establishment’s big push to popularize cellular phone use, even to the point of giving out free cellular phones, part of Big Brother’s mind-control? Second, since it appears the brains ability to creatively think is related to the vibrations that are subtly made in the skull, the question naturally poses itself–can cranial osteopathy disrupt or alter the natural abilities of the cranium’s plates to vibrate?

THE MODERN AMERICAN OCCULT CONNECTION

In the United States, as in England, there were certain families who passed their bone-setting skills down as family trade secrets. The most famous bone-setting families were the Reece family (in west. Penn., and east. Ohio), the Sweet family (in Rhode Is., Mass., Conn., & NY), and the Tieszen and Orton families in South Dakota. The Sweets became orthopedists, the Tieszen and Orton families went into Chiropractic. The Irish Quain family were famous anatomists, surgeons, and physicians.

Osteopathy and chiropractic stemmed from the same occult philosophical roots, but went in different directions. Both shared the idea that the body has the ability to maintain good health if allowed to do so, and both emphasized the manipulation of bones and joints. Both were started about the same time period in America in about the same geographic area, by men who had Scottish ancestry.

A.T. Still (the founder of osteopathy) and D.D. Palmer both studied magic and metaphysics. Both attended many of the same spiritist meetings, for instance both attended the spiritualist meetings at Clinton, Iowa on a number of occasions. (Gibbons, 1980, p. 13)

The osteopath’s goal was to move bones to improve circulation. The chiropractor’s primary goal was to move bones to reduce pressure or the irritation of nerves, with the further goal of positively helping organs and tissue. A.T. Still & other osteopaths claimed Daniel D. Palmer visited Still at his house, but Palmer’s descendants say it’s not true.

Early on Still’s two best assistants were two doctors from Scotland, William Smith & James Littlejohn. Daniel David Palmer (1845-1913), founder of chiropractic, was a Freemason & an occultist. His original practice was to heal people with what he called “magnetic healing” which was a combination of laying on of hands, hypnotism and white magic. Of course it was not called white magic, it was called “magnetic healing” by Palmer.

Part of the magnetism was his own magnetic (hypnotic) personality. Palmer also knew phrenology and had a keen sense of touch concerning a person’s head. D.D. Palmer taught phrenology. D.D. Palmer was a mixture of good and bad traits. He was an excellent scholar and had good organizational skills for what he learned. One of his difficult traits was his megalomania. In 1905, at a coroner’s inquiry, Palmer refused to take an oath to swear the truth “so help me God”, because he said that “I don’t want any help from God.” It must have been hard on his pride, when his own son B.J. Palmer, who had been cruelly raised by cruel step-mothers, turned Judas and stole from his father both the honor & money that was due his father.

His son Bartlett Joshua Palmer (1882-1961) worked in a circus as an assistant to professional circus hypnotists known as Professor Hunt, and later Professor Herbert L. Flint. Later, with mysterious connections to the right people, B.J. Palmer, got the money and the political clout to get started in building a school for chiropractic. His powerful Davenport radio station, WOC, said to be the second largest in the U.S., had Ronald Reagan (our future president) as one of its sports announcers.

B.J. Palmer was connected to the occult world. He liked to encourage the idea that he was a Christ figure. New Ager Napoleon Hill, author of Think and Grow Rich (1937) considered Palmer his mentor. B.J. had prominent Masons and other elite as his personal guests. Elbert Hubbard, a friend of B.J.’s, was the person who persuaded John D. Rockefeller’s personal physician, to get Rockefeller to use chiropractic care. Later in 1963, Nelson Rockefeller would be the important person to get chiropractic accepted as legal in NY, and then appointed chiropractor Albert Cera to his Medical Advisory Committee.

Illuminati kingpin California Gov. Edmund Brown appointed 12 chiropractors to regional committees associated with the California Board of Medical Assurance. Hollywood got into the promotion of chiropractic, with the 1990 film Jacob’s Ladder which was a film exposing the U.S. military’s use of BZ (a derivative of LSD) in Vietnam to experimentally try to create aggression via drugs in American soldiers.

It appears that chiropractic occult ties have been beneficial in its fight for acceptance. The occult world has worked hard to keep chiropractic within its domain. This is why you will find Christians exposing the occult connections to chiropractic such as T.M. Clement’s book A Warning to Christians About the Origins of Chiropractic. (Moses Lake:WA, date of printing not known).

As the reader will discover other sciences involving the relationship of the mind, brain, the body and personality have also been kept in the domain of the secret societies. Like Palmer, Dr. Andrew Taylor Still, who founded osteopathy, was interested in phrenology, hypnotism, spiritism, magic. The reference book 10,000 Famous Freemasons (Vol. 4) outlines his Masonic career in Freemasonry. His writings include such Masonic phrases as “Great architect of the Universe.” His grandfather had been Scotch-Irish. His father was a Methodist Episcopal minister, who was an abolitionist who fought with John Brown and the free-state forces in Kansas.

Andrew Taylor Still ran for the legislature of Kansas Territory as a free-state candidate and won in the Oct. 1857 elections. Later, he married Mary Elvira Turner, who was from the “burned-over” district in New York. She had been exposed to abolitionist ideas, phrenology, and hypnotism (called mesmerism) which were all popular in the area she grew. Her area of NY was where Spiritism began in 1848. Horace Greeley of the NY Tribune then made these seances with spirits famous. In 1867, after his children died, Andrew Taylor Still embraced spiritistism. Still’s beliefs in spiritism included ideas from Freemason Swendenborg’s writings. (For details of Andrew Taylor Still’s life refer to the book Trowbridge, Carol. Andrew Taylor Still. Kirksville, MO: The Thomas Jefferson Press, 1990.)

A.T. Still built osteopathy on the foundation of teachings of men such as phrenologist/hypnotists such as Joseph Rodes Buchanan. Buchanan used hypnosis and manipulation of the head to radiate the cerebral fluid from the brain to the body, which was coming close to the basics of cranial osteopathy. How did A.T. Still come up with these new ideas? A.T. Still was able to study and conduct experiments on bodies by raiding Indian graves for bodies, which he says in his “Circumstances and Personal Experiences” he did thousands of experiments on.

Certainly, he was unusual in having had a boyhood interest in digging up skeletons. He also read every book on anatomy he could find. In spite of his preoccupation with digging up skulls of people, Still seems to have been a decent person. Today, the occult world dislikes him. Why? In view of the historical facts, and the historical occult campaign to denigrate who Still was, it appears Still revealed secrets. Still was interested in scientific investigation. He proved things as he went along. He was a true researcher, and contrary to many researchers he was willing to openly share his knowledge with mankind.

Andrew’s two brothers, Ed and James, were M.D.s. They may well have been loyal to the occult world, and it is speculated that this may account for part of their attempts to destroy the work of Andrew Still. It appears that in spite of Andrew’s own occult connections, Andrew Still wanted to give the world cranial osteopathic knowledge that the occult world deemed to be secrets.

Andrew Still joined Freemasonry in Baldwin, KS’s Palmyra Lodge No. 23. (10,000 Famous Freemasons, Vol. 4, p. 194). He came from a transgeneration occult background. He did speak and write with the type of terminology that the occult world uses, although today some of his “occult” writings only appear so because they are taken out of context. Recently, the Internet has a website with the “Sage Sayings of Still” with excerpts from a “spiritual diary” he kept. On the other side of the coin, the supposed sage occult sayings of Still were renounced by Still himself after he wrote them. He not only exposed occult secrets that the bonesetters had kept in the occult families for centuries, he made a point of tossing occultists out of his school.

I believe Andrew Still was one of those people that the generational occultists could say, “He grew up and dwellt among us, but he wasn’t one of us.” No wonder the occult world has had a campaign against him after he died. After Andrew died, his son Charles an excellent compassionate skillful doctor was to have taken over A.T. Still’s Kirksville Osteopathic College. Instead, a rich financial backer, Warren Hamilton, who owned pivotal shares of stock placed James Still’s grandson into the Osteopathic College’s president’s chair. The knowledge that Still tried to get to the world was now stifled. As an example of where things have progressed the Cranial Academy (the American Academy of Osteopathy) is now situated in three buildings in Indianapolis that are identical copies of the Great Pyramid, & use pyramids for their logo. (By the way one of Dr. A.T. Still’s great-grandnephews is William Still who wrote the book New World Order. William Still is descended from the doctor’s brother Thomas, who was an M.D. William’s father was a U.S. general who was part of World Order, and although William’s book was great, when one considers how the NWO order creates their own opposition and how double-agents are created, this author has some personal reservations on what is happening with William. For those who haven’t obtained a copy of the book, this author recommends it.)

Back to discussing Still’s ideas. Eventually, A.T. Still developed his own ideas for healing the body without using drugs, or the dangerous medical practices of his day. In 1874, Dr. Andrew Taylor Still, devised osteopathy, a medical practice that seeks to help the body via manipulated of the bones. 16 Osteopathic Schools have successfully sprung up in the U.S. over the years to serve the need for osteopath doctors. A few others failed. A small specialty within the Osteopathic medicine is Cranial Osteopathy which has the Cranial Academy (formed in 1946), which is a component of the American Academy of Osteopathy. The Cranial Academy is headquartered at 1020 Market Tower, Ten West Market St., Indianapolis, IN 46204 in a building that looks like 3 Egyptian pyramids.

Osteopathic students who have taken a Basic Cranial Course approved by the Academy are eligible to apply to the Cranial Academy to learn about osteopathy as it applies to the skull. Just recently, in June 20-23, 1996, they had their annual conference at Walt Disney World Village, Lake Buena Vista, FL. Walt Disney World happens to be a major mind-control programming center and the significance of this was brought out in Chapter 5.

The Cranial Academy, founded by occultist Sutherland in 1946, is affiliated with the Applied Academy of Osteopathy (this AAO is a group that is concerned with manipulative work, & also based in IN). WG Sutherland developed Cranial Osteopathic concepts. It appears that the occult world were upset enough with Andrew Still’s revelations, that they planted WG Sutherland into the new science to bring the science back into the realm of the occult world. Sutherland (and those that followed him) was not above spewing out disinformation. Another leader following Sutherland in the field was another occultist Fulford, who helped insure that the Theosophists and Rosicrucians took over the science that A.T. Still had tried to give the world in a scientific form. Fulford, almost a god to some of the doctors interested in cranial osteopathy, functions as a bulwark to prevent most doctors from learning the deeper arts of manipulation.

Only a small inner group are taught the most advanced manipulative methods and anatomical details. The crucial cranial research work is being done privately by doctors affiliated with the Rosicrucians and this research is reported only in their literature for Rosicrucians only. The American Osteopathy Association helps to keep things low key by making no reference to the Cranial Academy in their materials, and only referring to the AAO once.

In 1953, one of the leading Cranial Osteopaths, William G. Sutherland, an American of Scottish descent, formed a foundation called the Sutherland Cranial Teaching Foundation in Denver, CO to promote the teaching of Cranial (head or skull) Osteopathy as developed by Sutherland. The cranial osteopathic work is taught by the Cranial Academy, but the inner knowledge, the inner secrets that are needed to successfully use cranial manipulation for mind-control are not taught by the Cranial Academy. This is taught privately by doctors who keep their relationships to each other secret. The inner core leaders (the top 3) of this small highly proficient group were all based in the south, and have all died since 1990. They have been replaced by carefully recruited handpicked successors.

There are occasion groups in other places that do cranial work. Some research on bioenergy and bone motion was done at the Univ. of Michigan School of Osteopathy and the Upledger Institute based in Florida has taught a very mechanical and rudimentary version of cranial work. These are just side activities. The U.S. Air Force and Navy provide scholarships which cover full tuition, books and living expenses for certain applicants to go to osteopathic college for four years. This has been carried out via the Director, Washington Office, American Osteopathic Association, Cafritz Building Suite 1009, 1625 Eye Street, N.W., Washington, DC 20006.

One of the military Cranial Osteopaths is a Maj. Beverly I. Maliner, and another is David R. Lemme at the Naples, It. Naval Hospital. There are reports that this hospital along with other American military sites in Europe are being used for mind-control. However, that does not necessarily connect Lemme or Maj. Maliner with government mind-control. This author knows of no evidence that would connect them. The military has used civilians to carry out some of the mind-control on their bases for decades, so they wouldn’t have to use their own people if they didn’t want to. The military has conducted secret research into the effects of skull bone movement, and traumatic skull injuries which are still classified.

One example of many of the type of modern research done is Susan Ann Bloomfield’s Ph.d. dissertation “Site-specific changes in bone mass and Alterations in Calciotrophic Hormones with Electrical Stimulation Exercise in Individuals with Chronic Spinal Cord Injury.” Her research showed that electrical stimulation of the muscles around spinal injuries helped the bones grow.

The casual researcher will soon find out that Cranial Osteopathy is a hidden subject. One of the better books discussing the potential of Cranial Osteopathy and how it works is a hard-to-get out-of-print book Craniosacral Osteopathy by Ronald R. McCatty. As this subject is so important to mind-control, this author availed himself to find a copy of the book and to study it. Some of the techniques described in the book will be hard for regular doctors to verify. If the curious were to use standard medical tests such as X-rays or MRI (which are too big), they will not get anywhere in discovering the details of how to manipulate the skull. The science is much more minute than these tests. An M.D. who asked the Cranial Academy about cranial literature was told that their literature is copyrighted to the writers and not available to other professions. This is an example of how protective the Cranial Academy is of their knowledge and they aren’t even teaching the hard core inner secrets!

The secret cults continue their iron grip over the deep secrets of cranial manipulation. They continue their monopoly over who gets benefited by cranial work, as well as who is destroyed by cranial work.

In review, a number of sincere men have tried to develop Cranial Osteopathy including Dr. Andrew Still in 1874. Interestingly, as soon as each one of these men began discovering new techniques informed members of the occult world would take over their work, and insure that the work was kept within the confines of the occult world. For instance, Dr. Sutherland’s experiments revealed to him that Cranial Osteopathy could influence the way a person thought and their personality. In the book, With Thinking Fingers The Story of William Gamer Sutherland by his wife Adah Strand Sutherland, she writes, “It was Dr. Sutherland’s cherished dream that a day would come when the benefits to the mentally ill through the cranial component in osteopathy would be investigated to the satisfaction of scientific insistence; that it would be approved and made available institutionally, in the curriculum’s of osteopathic colleges as well as in the majority of private practices.” (Sutherland, Adah S. With Thinking Fingers. The Cranial Academy: Indianapolis, IN., p. 62).

However, clever people in the occult world saw that Cranial Osteopathy could not only be used to help the mentally ill, but to control the minds of people. They realized that this valuable information could not be shared with the world but should confined to the occult world where its full evil potential could be exploited.

Part of why it was so easy to hi-jack Sutherland’s research is that he wrote very little. He wrote only two short articles. He didn’t like to write, he liked to do research and work with people. Strangely, his wife divorced him, and a Rosicrucian lady married him. The details of it all have the feel of the occult world moving in and micromanaging Sutherland’s life in order to control his research. Two years after Sutherland died in ‘54, his Osteopathy Cranial Association was already starting to praise a new age type of “Christ” in its literature. Anne L. Wales, a Rosicrucian, archived his work, and it is through her that we have received some of his work. She makes sure that when Sutherland’s ideas see the light of day, they are steeped in occult Rosicrucian ideas. This helps insure that sincere non-occult scientists disregard what appears to be Rosicrucianism, rather than the research of a doctor.

Anne L. Wales has been more than a Rosicrucian. She was a member of the Church of Scientology, which is practicing trauma-based mind-control and which is a recruiting organization for the OTO and the Process Church which are also both practicing total mind-control in coordination with the Illuminati. This author is aware of two separate victims of trauma-based total mind-control who came out of different Rosicrucian groups. As their are several groups claiming Rosicrucian philosophy, this author hasn’t sorted out if there are any Rosicrucian groups which AREN’T being used as repositories for mind-controlled slaves. In other words, it appears that all Rosicrucian groups contain mind-controlled slaves.

Rosicrucianism (its various forms) has long attracted membership from the medical community, and there is evidence that it even recruits in the medical, chiropractic and osteopathic schools. The Rosicrucians, who like to track their history back to the alchemists, brag about their large numbers of medical members. AMORC indicates that at least 11% of its members are doctors. The Rosicrucians also hint about their secret medical experiments and secret medical knowledge. One Rosicrucian claim to fame is their mystical theories about the connections between the mind and the body (particularly the skull & nervous system).

The luxurious Clymer Health Clinic near Philadelphia offers cranial treatments at very modest prices by their staff of Rosicrucian chiropractors. Rosicrucian (& high ranking Mason) Swinbourne Clymer, MD, donated the land and funds for that clinic early this century. Clymer was a millionaire with eccentric health ideas. He financed the entire Rosicrucian Philadelphia-based group, too. His writings have tidbits that show he was an insider. Their headquarters has pyramids with capstones. Their books mention the Illuminati with great frequency. It is beyond the scope of this chapter, but there are connections between theosophy and Rosicrucianism and the Illuminati.

Theosophical groups tie in to the Nazi’s religious beliefs, and today theosophical-minded young people are showing an interest in cranial manipulation. In other words, the interconnections between the occult world begin popping up when one investigates cranial work. One outspoken Doctor of Cranial Osteopathy (DO) Donald E. Woods, recently spoke out in the journal of Cranial Osteopathy entitled The Cranial Letter against the occultism that clearly controlled his specialty. He wrote in protest, “Yet, in the past we [cranial osteopaths] have bordered both on being a cult and on being occult. We must be neither to be effectively acceptable in health care, and it can be done since osteopathy, including Cranial Osteopathy, is based on valid human physiological and anatomical truths. Where do cult and occult fit in?”….Occultism says you do not have to pay attention to any of the old rules. Everything goes. Kick the walls out. Be tolerant of everyone’s behaviour….Both the cult and the occult have the tendency to think that things outside their sphere of influence are unreasonable. They might say, “It is necessary that you belong to our group.” (The Cranial Letter, Aug., ‘94, Vol. 47, No. 3, p.9)

While this letter printed in The Cranial Letter helps establish to the reader the occult world’s influence in cranial osteopathy, the Cranial Academy may have printed this because the doctor in question is a multiple and they are possibly helping him separate himself publicly from the occult. And while the secrecy of cranial manipulation has been well kept, the Cranial Academy is considering disbanding itself, and letting the 16 osteopathic schools teach a more basic form or cranial work, which would further isolate the secrets for occult’s elect.

Osteopathy itself has been accepted into mainstream medicine and one medical reference book states, “It is important to note that the osteopathic system of diagnosis and therapy is used in conjunction with the standard medical procedures of drug and surgical therapy.” The curriculum at an osteopathic college or school is almost identical with that offered at the standard schools. The most popular school is the Chicago College of Osteopathic Medicine. There are approx. 150 osteopathic hospitals in the U.S. Most osteopaths are general practitioners and only 20% of the osteopaths specialize. Of these only a tiny percentage do Cranial Osteopathy full time. Of the small clique of DOs (Dr.s of Osteopathy) who do Cranial Osteopathy full time (Note: there are about 150 DOs nationwide that spend approx. 100% of their time doing Cranial Osteopathy–which no. was determined by this author using info provided in the Member Information Directory of the Cranial Academy.), and then based upon observations at programming sites and other criteria there is an inner circle of about 9 doctors who understand Cranial Osteopathy well enough to use their skills for the Illuminati in mind control.

Recently, there have been a number of magazine articles, for instance, American Medical News, June 26, 1995, p. 3 which discusses how osteopathic medical techniques of manipulation are becoming more acceptable to mainstream physicians and to the public. The article mentions that the American Osteopathic Assn. is getting $6 million for research. Obviously, the American Osteopathic Assn. is politically correct and moving with the stream of today’s general trend toward new age ideas, and a global government.

Many osteopath doctors specialize. A Canadian government survey of chiropractors, osteopaths, and naturopaths in Canada revealed that 66% of the Canadian osteopaths specialized (See Royal Commission on Health Services Study of Chiropractors, Osteopaths and Naturopaths in Canada. Ottawa, Can: The Queen’s Printer, 1966, p. 166), a figure much higher than revealed in a study of American Osteopaths in A Statistical Study of the Osteopathic Profession, Dec. 31, 1960, Dept. of Information and Statistics, American Osteopathic Association, May 1961, p. 2 Table 7.

In the Canadian study, osteopaths reported specializing in headaches, neurology, cranial work and cranial osteopathy. Their naturopaths reported specializing in fields including psycho-therapy, radio wave, electrotherapy, and cranial correction in mongoloids, spastics and body reconstruction. In exploring mind-control, it must be born in mind, that the American CIA was quick to recruit Canadians to help. Some of the cranial osteopaths themselves appear to be in controlled trance states, so they may well be under total mind-control themselves. These people are obviously of Celtic (probably Illuminati) bloodlines.

BONE & SKULL STRUCTURE

Bones are alive and changing. It might be helpful to review what bones are made of, and how they change and grow, just in case the reader had some misconceptions such as that bones are fixed solids that don’t change. Bones within the human body, esp. the skull give support and protection. Bone is comprised of “an organic matrix synthesized and deposited by osteoblastic activity, calcium-phosphate precipitates, and a mineralized phase of hydroxyapatite, which is primarily composed of calcium and inorganic phosphate (Robey, 1989). The primary ingredient of the organic matrix is a collagen in the form of fibers that are extensively cross-linked. applies to 90% of the matrix. There several types of collagen, Type 1 predominant. This are is Numerous noncollagenous proteins have also been discovered in bone, including some which have been identified as growth factors. Bone development and turnover is regulated by various bone cells (see Teltelbaum, 1990)

The exact method the body uses to recreate new bone is too complex to describe here, but let it suffice that researchers are studying all the minute complexities of the abilities of the body to produce bone. Old bone is constantly being absorbed and reproduced new. BMUs are important to development of new bone. (see studies like Frost, 1965, & Parfit, 1987). According to the Wall Street Journal, Feb. 23, 1996, p. Al (in both Eastern & Western editions) some physicians are remolding lopsided skulls of infants with unnecessary surgery when the only problem is the child’s sleep position, and the lopsided skull can be corrected with a head band rather than surgery.

In terms of head shapes, which can be created by skilled manipulation of the skull bones, a Vertical Strain Superior is associated with passiveness and dissociation. This is why some of the cults are either manipulating people’s heads or recruiting people that have long faces in their cults. The vertical Strain Inferior is said to be connected to criminals. The programmers for the NWO have been intentionally manipulating people’s skull to get passiveness and dissociativeness.

Daniel Whiteside and John Wesley Grossman did extremely valuable work in statistically validating the clear connections between 60 behavior traits and physical structures. The physical shape of the brain is related to how the brain’s cells are proportioned. This science is called Structure/ Function.

Daniel’s father Robert L. Whiteside was one of the founders of 3-In-One. Robert wrote an amazing book Face Language. The Air Force academy used it in three of their courses. Prior to encountering Robert’s book, this author has noticed that the Japanese and Chinese have done a great deal of research and writing in this area. Our own language has come to reflect some of our intuitive ideas about Structure/ Function such as: “He is level-headed.” “She is nosey.” “He’s a real high-brow.” and “He leads with his chin.” (cf. Face Language, p. xi-xii)

Whiteside takes 40 pages to identify traits that are shown by the eyes. Then he explains traits that are shown by the mouth area. Then he deals with overall facial traits and finally profile traits. For instance, a large difference between one side of the face and the other indicates how much the individual changes with their mood change. If the head steadily gets wider as it runs from the mouth to the ears, then the person has the trait of acquisitiveness. A person who loves to be precise with words will develop little lines that fan out from the inner corner of the eye toward the cheekbone. The 3-In-1 college doesn’t teach that the face reveals all behavior, but they teach their students what to expect from people, so that they can communicate better.

Another 3-In-1 publication Advanced ONE BRAIN by Gordon Stokes and Daniel Whiteside reveals eye modes. NLP has also been teaching some of these eye modes to detect what a person is thinking. Another publication provides charts (designed by William Mariboe) which explain different traits and how they exhibit themselves physically. For instance if the eyes are extremely wide apart, the person will either see an open viewpoint as valuable or feel inadequate. The chart then charts out how the trait (of emotional tolerance) will exhibit itself under different circumstances. For instance, in doing a job they tend to loose track of time. Perhaps the value of all this in not clear in the reader’s mind. In terms of mind-control, if you know what physical structures will give you a particular trait, you can enhance what you want by skilful manipulation of the skull bones.

The key to manipulating the skull lies in the fact that the skull bones actually float on the Cerebrospinal fluid, while the brain floats in the fluid. In the booklet The Cranial Bowl by William G. Sutherland (1984), he writes about what he calls “the moulding technic”. The moulding technic is the reshaping of the skull. He writes on page 28, “The moulding technic is especially adaptable to children, and even to the adult well along in the later period of life.” In the booklet, he goes into details about the cerebrospinal fluid.

CEREBROSPINAL FLUID

The Cerebrum (brain) and the spine float in a fluid that surrounds them. This fluid is called cerebrospinal fluid and is referred to on page 1050 of the massive anatomical reference book Gray’s Anatomy 36th Brit. ed. (edited by Williams & Warwick, printed by W.B. Saunder Co., for Churchill Livingstone). In 1920 and 1938, Weed published research on the circulation of the cerebrospinal fluid. As just one example of many of the roles that the CS Fluid plays within the brain, that has been discovered is that the carotid artery has a branch that passes upward through a water bed of cerebro-spinal fluid. The CS Fluid follows that internal carotid artery to the choroid plexus, so that it can perform the function of interchange with the arterial blood. The CS Fluid is “in command” of this exchange. (I mention this because see how this ties in with the 5th brain?)

In fact, a Fourth Ventricle Compression is the most valuable and powerful CSF technique for helping people. (It is mentioned simply to show people the effect that CSF has on some very important brain areas.) Because the brain and spinal cord float in a fluid, a brain weighing 1,500 grams in the air, only weighs 50 gr. in cerebrospinal fluid which distributes the brain weight more evenly. The fluid itself is clear, slightly alkaline with a specific gravity of 1007. About l00 mls of CS Fluid will exist to float the brain and spinal cord. The spine rests in this cerebrospinal fluid, which has waves that approximate the breathing rhythm of the body. 50% of the cerebrospinal fluid is manufactured in one part of the head (choroid plexuses), and spends its time fluxuating. It is absorbed and replenished, as other body elements are. The plexuses which are located in the lateral recesses of the fourth ventricle also put cerebrospinal fluid into the subarachnoid space, and this supplies the cerebello-medullary cistern and the pontine cistern with fluid. The cerebrospinal fluid makes up a single fluxuating system of fluid within which the central nervous system/brain operate. As the brain coils and uncoils, waves of motion (energy) fluctuate in a spiral pattern through the cerebrospinal fluid in the skull, down the spinal column and up again, so that there is motion from front to back in the head and also laterally.

As the human brain develops the CSF seems to appear at the earliest stages. The brain goes through stages of development as the brain-spinal cord divide. The forebrain develops into several items, the midbrain into two parts, and the hindbrain into the first three brains. The cerebrospinal fluid is manufactured by the body, fluctuates in a single Head-spinal cord system and then is absorbed and replenished by the body. The fluid does not circulate like blood. The fluid and the skull bones continue to fluctuate even if a person holds his breath. As long as the CSF oscillates like it should, things are fine, but if something occurs to pervert the rhythms, the health of the person goes down. Loss of sleep can influence the rhythms adversely. If the occipital motion is restricted schizophrenia can result. When severe spheno-basilar symphysis locking occurs, there is frequently manic-depression. Most people are totally unaware that these mental problems may be resulting from a CSF problem.

Very little information is let out about the cerebrospinal fluid. Very little is released to the public about how over a period of time Cranial Osteopaths can develop the manipulative skill to control and change the fluctuations of these fluids. Only a few top people are allowed in on the secrets, and those people are handpicked members of the occult world. Some of the top Cranial Doctors are under Monarch-type mind control themselves. The osteopathic libraries are staffed with people loyal to keeping cranial osteopathic secrets within the occult world. Could other doctors teach themselves? The ability to manipulate the cerebral-spinal fluid is an art that has taken years to develop, and for practitioners to learn. As stated, the tests that doctors rely on such as x-rays and MRIs are too big and clumsy to be of any value in this area. The doctors would have to ‘‘reinvent the wheel and then the automobile’’ if they wanted to self-teach themselves. It often takes two to three years of study in this area, before a doctor is able to feel the movement of the fluid.

The cranial bones have sutures between them, that allow a skilled person to move them. The sutures have been proven to move as much as 1/20 of an inch. The trained finger can perceive the natural motion of these sutures even if the natural motions are only 1/40 of an inch. In McCatty’s excellent book Essentials of Cranio-Sacral Osteopathy, (Bath, Eng.: Ashgrove Press) p. 3 he states, “Contrary to some schools of thought, all circumstances being normal, the cranial sutures (or joints of the head) do not fuse–regardless of age, race, sex, or geographic location. They are perpetually motile, influencing the dynamics of fluid exchange and mebraneous tension within the cramo-sacral mechanism.”

When early cranial osteopaths like Sutherland looked at the skull and its membranes and cartilage they realized that the 18 human bones that make up the head were actually designed to articulate (move slightly). In fact, researchers have discovered the cranium has 3 distinct oscillations. (Magoun, Harold Ives, D.O. Osteopathy in the Cranial Field, p.322).

Maud Nerman, D.O. presented the outline of an interesting lecture and lab class that she gave in 1992, entitled “Visualizing the brain under our hands” in which she taught the techniques for feeling the bones of the brain move with CS Fluid fluxuations, as well as sensing what it was doing internally. Coordinating the movement of the skull bones with the movement of the CS Fluid was called “directing the tide” by W.G. Sutherland. His Journal of the Osteopathic Cranial Assoc. reported successes doing this. Ronald McCatty teaches that “some heads are less pliant than other”. The practitioner will rest his trained hands on the head, wait, and allow the cranial motion to teach the cranial osteopath what is happening or needs to happen. The client will usually be laying down, and the doctor will be relaxed and focused. The motion of the CS Fluid is called the Cranial Rhythmic Impulse (CR1). It will pulse about 10-14 times/mm. in normal adults and 12-16 times/mm. in children. When a person is frightened the CR1 can stop for up to 20 seconds. (The mind is literally frozen.) Tranquilizers will slow the CR1 rate down, as well as poor health.

For someone who has been traumatized, such as with electroshock, the very mention of the traumatic event, will cause the CR1 to temporarily stop. The cranial osteopath does not really force any bones, but rather gently encourages a skull bone in the direction it should go. Lightness of touch is a necessity. An example of the health benefits of the trained osteopath is given by McCatty, “That kink in the straight sinus can be, and often is, one of the primary causes of epilepsy and internal hydrocephalus…” By treating the kink the osteopath takes care of the problem, where the standard method is often to give the subject strong drugs.

To give an example of how the CS Fluid (CSF) can relate to our state of mind, consider the following by McCatty, “And again, change of direction of C.S.F. from anterior-posterior to lateral is of paramount importance in the sleep-wake phenomenon. When you are standing there is parallel action of C.S.F. flow. When you lie down with your head on a pillow this alters, you impinge on one or other temporal bone, you decelerate C.S.F. activity. You, as it were, slow down the pendulum. You inhibit parallel action. By inhibiting this pendulum you automatically produce an anteroposterior swing which is parasympathetic; that is to say, the parts of the automatic nervous system that slow down the action of the heart when the body is not under stress, in order to conserve bodily energy.” This author thought it was exciting to understand better how the mind/body relaxes and slows down when we lay our heads down.

TRANSCENDENTAL MEDITATION (TM) & the HINDU CONNECTION

Years ago, back in 1974, this author was a West Point cadet who was watching the U.S. Army introduce TM into the academy. It was presented as a scientific technique, and many officers, some friends and other cadets availed themselves of the chance to train themselves in TM’s mystical method of training. A fellow cadet who was already trained in martial arts quickly learned the techniques. After initially maintaining a safe distance, this author decided to investigate TM after I got out of the military. The U.S. government gave substantial grants to get TM introduced into this country. Fortunately, Christians didn’t sleep long, and exposed that TM is Hinduism. Everyone that is taught TM is initiated into it by the TM instructor singing a puja (worship) song in Sanskrit which is a Hindu devotional song while incense and candles burn.

Until the Christians exposed this, our national government went blithely along in promoting Hinduism into our public schools. For instance, the Dept. of Health, Education, & Welfare gave a $21,540 grant for 150 high school teachers to learn TM. TM has grown to be a powerful organization, with many organizations set up attached to it. It has its international headquarters at Hotel Sonnenberg in the Swiss village of Seelisberg.

When I investigated TM back in 1975, this TM instructor who was friends of mine, talked about her experience at Seelisberg. From the conversation with her it was obvious that people had had to surrender their will to the organization to go to Seelisberg, and some mind altering experiences had taken place there. She participated in the Siddhi program to be able to dematerialize, walk through walls and levitate. But the program clearly had emotionally disturbed her and others who had been in it. Once a person is involved in the higher levels of TM, you don’t just walk away from this cult. From my personal observations, I discovered that TM is involved in some types of mind-manipulation, and that the organization is not above using deceit on unsuspecting people.

What then becomes doubly interesting is that after observing these things, I learned that TM have a large interest in the cranial osteopathic techniques which can alter the mind and personality of a person. For instance, this author has obtained a list of TM instructors in Santa Monica, CA area who are also Doctors of Cranial Osteopathy. (But bear in mind, this whole thing is bigger than labels, when people are interested in the occult they study eclectically.) These TM Cranial Osteopaths are concentrated where TM has a secret MUM Mountain, CA training site. There are cranial doctors in the nearby towns of Aptos, Capitola, Cupertino, Hollister, Los Gatos, Salinas, Santa Cruz, Saratoga and Watsonville. It’s boggles the mind that 12 cranial doctors are needed for the rural area near MUM Mountain, while L.A. only has 10. Concentrations of cranial doctors occur in close proximity to TM centers, particularly around the Maharishi University in Fairfield, 10 as well as the secret MUM Mountain training center. Other cranial DOs who are part of TM are scattered about the United States.

Another observation which I made, was that some of the people that got really big into TM are still searching for something to fill the voids and needs of their life. TM didn’t turn out to be as big of an answer as they expected. TM is not the final answer. However, the Maharishi who brought TM to America has a college in Fairfield, Iowa (the Maharishi International University) and 20 North American “heavenly communities” operating in the quest to create a heaven on earth. The Maharishi International University has been used for medical experimentation on people. The close connections between the leadership of TM and the Illuminati leadership suggests that TM is being used as another haven for the NWO’s mind-control to be perpetrated on unsuspecting victims. There are bone-setters in India also. Perhaps the Maharishi got his original interest in the potential for mind-control via skull manipulation in India. Wherever the interest came from, it is evident that TM in America is involved in skull manipulation for its mind-control results.

The 3-in-One school Connection.

If one wants to surrender oneself to a cult, and allow one’s mind to be control, in order to learn, the 3-in-1 school will be happy to teach you about what others would call phrenology and manipulation of the skull to control thinking. The school has a number of courses. They do not call their principles phrenology. Nor do they call their instruction mind-control. They identify to the student areas of the head and what type of thinking that area of the head is involved with. They also provide information so that their students can evaluate how people will act based on the shape of their heads and how that shape will interact with other shapes. The school is located at 2001 West Magnolia Blvd., Burbank, CA 91506, ph. no. 818-841-4786. They teach Ericksonian Hypnosis (good for programmers to know), Bodywork (incl. cranial osteopathy, which is good for programmers to know), and they teach NLP, Mind-controlled relationships (along with scripts), Mind-controlled adolescent problems, and a pantheistic religious philosophy/religion.

When the 3-in-1 school got started they were teaching muscle-testing and other important skills to their students (who can become “facilitators” in teaching others). The muscle-manipulation they have taught is extremely gentle and way beyond what the chiropractors knew. The school in California began about 10 years ago and then a few years later they began to tighten their hold on all their graduates and their students. The school has been drawing students from Europe, Japan, China, Russia, and South America (incl. Brazil). They have moved more and more toward being an occult cult or perhaps an Illuminati front.

When given information that their muscle techniques could be used to help multiples, they have made it clear (according to one school administrator) that they are not interested in helping multiple personalities. One school administrator named Gordon Stokes said, “We’re off in another direction.” In fact, Gordon Stokes is the founder of 3-In-1. (Technically, a co-founder, Daniel Whiteside and Candace Callaway helped. Some speculate that the Three-in-One name refers to this triumvirate, and perhaps to their relationship together.)

Gordon Stokes has been reported to be a member of the BOTA which is an international Mystery School of the Hierarchy. BOTA stands for Builders of the Adytum. It is a Qabalistic-Hermetic Order of adepts founded in the 1920s by Dr. Paul Foster Case reportedly on direction by the hierarchy. The BOTA teaches higher states of consciousness to its adepts. It is located at 5105 No. Figueroa St., Los Angeles, CA 90042. Daniel Whiteside’s parents are deeply involved in personology. And Candace Calloway’s mother, their book keeper, has also been a major figure at the 3-in-1 school. This 3-in-1 school in Burbank seems to be a finishing school for Illuminati programmers. The school ridicules people who want to examine their life or have a conscience. Christianity is considered to be an obnoxious tyrannical religion by the school. The information that they teach would be very helpful for mind-control programmers, and their occult philosophy would scare off moral people from participating.

The 3-In-1 research has been geared into how the brain works. Their research shows that if a person has more brain cells in a particular region of the brain, they are more developed in that intellectual area. For instance, if the Action-based-on-feeling area (the parietal lobe) has lots of cells, the person will be more active than thoughtful. If the person has more cells in the brain’s Conscious-associational thinking area (frontal lobes) they will think more than act. They call their system based upon this research comparative cell proportion. There were many ancient works that noticed personality traits in relationship to head shapes.

Three-In-One article “The Background of Structure/Function” states, “You can read about the basis of Structure/Function in the Hebrew CABALA’S book of ZOHAR (which is literally Aristotle’s PHYSIOGNOMONICA) as well as in the writings of Maimonides and those of almost every famous Arabian philosopher during Medieval times.” (Stokes, Daniel. The Background of Structure/Function, 1991, p. 2) The Cranial Academy’s The Cranial Letter also picked up on the connection between the Cabala and cranial manipulation.

A class on the “Cabala and Osteopathy” is advertized in the May ’95 issue, p. 9. Until Freud captured the interest of students of the mind, phrenology was psychology. Phrenology studied what could be measured, Freud got people looking for the hidden. In 1938, Dr. Edward Vincent Jones improved upon Phrenology and classic Physiognomy and developed Personology. His system was an instant hit and he was given the go ahead and conduct research on inmates at San Quentin Prison, and what is now LA’s giant USC County Hospital.

Interestingly, it was not long after Jones’ research there, that Cisco Wheeler’s father (trained as a programmer) was assigned by the Illuminati to organize covens in the San Quentin Prison. The Whitesides became disciples of Jones research and went on to statistically validate his system. One of their best students then was Gordon Stokes of Sacramento, who then moved to San Francisco to be better trained by the Whitesides. As mentioned, sixty traits have been validated statistically. By looking at the skull and head, the skin, the body tone, the eyes, and other areas, the practitioners of Structure/Function can accurately tell a person’s personality. Because this type of information has been in the possession of caballists, it is not surprising that the average person is ignorant of all this. However, the potential for good or evil with this knowledge is tremendous.

They also used Applied Kinesiology to defuse emotional stress. For this work they divide the brain into the dominant side (the left), and the alternate side (the right). Then each of these hemispheres is again divided between the fore and back brains for defusion. Applied Kinesiology is used to gain information about a trauma, and the defusion is used to release any negative emotional stress around an incident. (This also possibly could be used to dilute the emotional impact of some assignment done by a slave.)

In the first 3-In-1 newsletter of 1995, pg. 1, they write, “Self-image is the key to good learning performance. What ‘magic’ do we use to help slow learners and people labeled as ‘learning disabled’ change for the better so dramatically.” This is just one minor example, of how these groups like to reframe what they do in occult terms. The mind-control programmers need only have someone skilled in the manipulation of the cranial bones and the skull bones and they can with repeated delicate precision reshape a person’s skull and also his brain’s shape, thus manipulating the personality & looks. Photos of Marilyn Monroe (Erma Jean) during her life strongly suggest that type of cranial manipulation was done to her for mind-control purposes.

The occult world has maintained a dogged resolve to keep the deeper cranial knowledge and skills secret. Dr. Sutherland’s wife wrote his story With Thinking Fingers. She states on pg. 62, “It was Dr. Sutherland’s cherished dream that a day would come when the benefits to the mentally ill through the cranial component in osteopathy would be investigated…” If that was his dream, it is being hijacked today by those who see it as a tool for power over their fellow men.

B. GENETIC ENGINEERING

A great deal of secret experimentation has gone on in underground installations with genetics. This author has had the privilege of debriefing someone who worked at the Area 51 underground installation. He was murdered after having had several long interviews with this author. Truth is stranger than fiction. It goes without saying that the Illuminati has gathered up every hair-brained idea for controlling and manipulating the human race. That doesn’t mean everyone of them has been attempted, but they have the means to carry out very bizarre experiments in their underground facilities, such as the ones at Area 51.

There is no question that they have tried to augment natural human features and replace natural human parts. Who knows what weird transgenetic or cybernetic beings have been created? This author knows that they have been successful in some of their work at reshaping humans. This author has accumulated a great deal of information on the underground installations from eyewitnesses, but there is no way of knowing what is accurate and what is disinformation. However, a few details are definite. These underground installations are massive and they involve genetic manipulation to create new species or breed special types of people. In the Vol. 2 book, we discussed the Aquaman subspecies that the NWO has created with gills and special skin. These people look like normal people unless observed closely. They had extra genetic material inserted in the genetic material that created them. They are called Transgenic humans because they still closely resemble other people.

In order for transgenetic humans to pass their new added features to the next generation they need to mate with other similar transgenetic humans. However, the NWO has been secretly creating Chimeras. Chimeras is the widely used name for beast-men. This research is generally not for the public to see but is done in some of the underground facilities listed in Appendix 2. An example would be a creature that was half human and half some other beast.

On a BBC TV show on Oct. and Nov. 1988, the British showed the result of a gorilla being artificially inseminated with a human sperm. The experiment was done by British researchers working for the government and the result ended in a child looking remarkably like a normal person. However, the common people who viewed it were outraged. Most people are not really excited about scientists playing God and destroying the human race by genetic tampering. Of course the scientists who do these genetic games have lots of excuses and rationales, many of which have been put into print, to justify their research.

People are being bred for specific purposes by the Illuminati, just like this author bred dairy cows. Parents with certain desired features are obtained. (In fact, the Nazi’s secret superdog Lowenhertz Dogo Argentino – which looks like a race of weight-lifting dogs, and the secret 100 yr. old Paraguayan Nueva Germania colony of special bred Aryans are still in existence.)

The NY Times had an article on 9/17/92 where a Washington psychiatrist Dr. Peter Breggin accused the federal government of a genetic “violence initiative” in which the government was involved with genetic research as it relates to crime and violence. Dr. Susan Solomon, is one of the government’s leaders involved in researching violence. However, from what this author can gather, the government’s research is far more reaching that the NY Times’ article even begins to imply. By genetic breeding and manipulation, the Illuminati are trying to strengthen certain mental features. Considering that this has already been done for centuries by mankind to other species, for instance, when mankind domesticated the horse, the dog, the cat, the lama, the chicken, then it is no secret that a docile servile slave class of humans can be created. The primary goal of this Illuminati breeding is to create a class of people who can work together with others (herd instinct), and who will take orders willingly. Independent thinking and intelligence are not wanted. Educational goals and a world-wide educational system that can accommodate these types of workers is being created world-wide to deal with the eventual working-class- drones that the Illuminati want to create. The creation of this educational system at this present time has four goals, 1. to develop a group mindset, 2. to have education carried out by the multinational corporations, 3. to have students educated on the premise that truth is relative, 4. to teach compliance.

Already the public schools in America are gearing up for the government to dictate what occupations young students can study for. In other words, our educational system is being set up for mind-control, and this is to eventually work hand-in-hand with worker slaves that have the genetics needed to be good compliant stupid slaves.

There have also been studies of intelligence such as the five volume Genetic Studies of Genius started by L.M. Terman in 1925, (pub. by Univ. of Stanford Press). The World Order has specific and successful methods to create a class of technical people. At this point, people whose thinking abilities have been created by the monitoring/ manipulating of their genetics is a small but increasing number. Genetic control of breeding is unfortunately where the programmers are headed. This is not happening for the genetic betterment of the human species, this is for the perverted lusts of these demon-possessed megalomaniacs who think they deserve to rule with a sadistic iron fist. Those who mistakenly think the mind- control programmers are trying to improve the human race, need to get to know the programmers better. (See Appendix A for biographical information on some of the programmers.) Those poor gullible naive people who think that when the global masters visibly introduce the New World Order that the NWO will be tolerable if they can simply keep their noses clean, not fight back, and do their jobs, are sadly mistaken. They do not know the dark – sinister side to these global masters. As one man very close to the center of power said to a common man about the men who rule the world, “If you stepped on an ant, you would have more conscience than the global elite have in manufacturing wars and killing millions of people. They want power and they intend to amass total power no matter what the cost.”

• Another area of ILLUMINATI DECEPTION & CONTROL–

Ionizing radiation used in conjunction with chemicals to manipulate the genetics of the mind; or say this another way: USING RADIATION & CHEMICALS TO CHANGE GENETICS associated WITH THINKING.

When a retired high-ranking military man first told this author that radiation research had to do with mind-control, my reaction was probably like most people’s, puzzlement. I thought that radiation was quite lethal and that genetic research with radiation was to protect us from some kind of atomic attack. Wrong. That is a nice cover story.

Since that retired colonel (who may not have long to live) talked to me, others have said similar things. Like many things that the World Order does, if we don’t have a frame of reference of what is going on, we can live around what they are doing day in and day out and never see all the clues as to what is going on under our noses.

One trauma-based mind-controlled slave (Chris DeNicola) spied on the files of the doctor who did radiation experiments on her. She saw the following radiation file headings, & their codes: Canker Sore (D-7040), Laser Documentation (D-7000), Nautical Science (D-1015), Pediatric Radionthology (L-6542) [One idea is that this file might pertain to child alters.], Penetrating Wave Activity, Radiation Experimentation (L-6540), Radioactive Distortions, Radioactive Material Contamination, Radioactive verification, Radioactive Waves, Radionthology, Electrolite Prodigies Experiments (654-011), Laser Light Distortions experiments (654-012), & Laserlight Technology experiments (101-015). One reason, that this author is providing the code numbers of these files, is that memories of slaves who are involved in these experiments or projects often are internally coded with these file codes. The date the experiment was done will also be added as part of the code.

When this author researched their genetic research, I was utterly amazed at how many institutions world-wide are carrying out deep research into genetics–much of which will contribute to the enslavement and mind-control of the human race.

Just a sampling of countless labs working hard on this mind- control related genetic research include Brookhaven National Labs. Upton, NY; John Hopkins Univ., Baltimore, MD; Institut fur Genetik, the Free University of Berlin, Germany; Institute of Hygiene & Epidemiology, Czech.; Radiation Genetic Lab & Chemical Mutagenesis, State Univ. Of Leiden, Sylvius Labs, Leiden, The Netherlands; MIT, Cambridge, MA; Gesellschaft für Strahlen und Umweltforschung, Munich, Germany; National Inst. of Environmental Health Sciences Research Triangle Park, NC; Sandoz Labs in Basle, Switzerland; Biology Division, Oak Ridge National Lab, Oak Ridge, TN; Roswell Underground Labs, NM; Stanford Research Institute, Menlo Park, CA; Shell Labs, Kent, England; University of Michigan, Ann Arbor, MI; the Zentrallabor für Mutagenitätsprüfung der Deutschen Forschungsgemeinshaft, Freiburg, Germany.

This is just a tiny sampling of the enormous world wide research devoted to genetics that pertain to mind-control. While there are numerous surnames among the genetic researchers, because this author knows as a fact that some of these researchers are Illuminati, it doesn’t quiet one’s curiosity to see the better known Illuminati surnames such as Dupont, Hersey, Fox, Frey, Jung, Li, Paterson, Stuart, Sinclair, Sutherland, and Russell appearing among the genetic researchers doing research that pertains to mind-control.

Obviously, this author can’t give all the ways they have figured out to use radiation, along with chemicals and genetics to control the human race. I will try to give you a peek in the window. The real deep & dangerous information is of course highly classified material and protected by their mind-control of those scientists who work for them.

When I say mind-control, that includes such methods as blackmail and threats of assassination.

There is a type of radiation called ionizing radiation-that means it is radiation that gives off electrons (thus producing ions). There are many different types of ionizing radiation. Some go right through the body, some damage the cells, but the body repairs itself, some causes genetic changes, and some simply hits your cells like a sledge hammer & kills them.

The ionizing radiation that changes genetics has been the focus of an incredibly enormous amount of (mostly secret) research. Genes are instructions that tell non-life material how to organize itself into something living. A gene consists of genetic material called DNA and RNA. Genes also provide instructions for how something is to develop. As a person or animal develops, the genes interact with the environment to create what the person or animal is like. For instance, different breeds of dogs when born are more similar, than after they grow up. Different breeds of dogs have been bred for different genetic traits, and as different breeds grow up, their genes continually interact with the environment to create the adult dog.

So full genetic expression can take a life-time. The link between genetics and behaviour can be seen in this quote from the Quarterly Review of Biology (art. by T.C. Schneirla, 1966, p. 283), “Behavioural ontogenesis is the backbone of comparative psychology. Shortcomings in its study inevitably handicap other lines of investigation from behavioural evolution and psychogenetics to the study of individual and group behavior.”

Genetic psychology has revealed that the genes program in methods for an organism to adjust to their environment. So genetic instruction is, for instance, more than just the instruction “be smart, be aggressive, be tall” but it is tailoring the way a person’s develops to deal with its environment. In other words, behaviours are programmed into a person via their genes (genetic instructions) to provide mechanisms for quick, dynamic adaptions to changing circumstances. These mechanisms (created by genetic codes) may even have the person (or animal) reverse their behaviour for purposes of survival.

p_

8-1

Within the human brain (also all mammal brains) all the neurons are believed to be generated before birth with the exception of the following cells: granule cells of the olfactory bulb, fascia dentala granule cells in the hippocampus, the granule cells of the cerebellar cortex, and the granule cells of rhombic lip in the brainstem.

Its the brainstem cells that the Illuminati manipulate through brain stem scarring to produce photographic memories for their scientists and computer programmers. The germinal cells create neurons in the germinal zone. Brain cells with a common function develop from a common lineage although from different sites. After a new neuron develops in the germinal zone, they migrate to whatever location they are to live in. The complicated process of how a neuron discovers where to go (migrate to in the brain) has been not been discovered according to what this author has read. When neurons establish themselves they deal with certain neurotransmitters, that establish communication between them and other neurons.

Researchers have discovered that neurons can change their own make up to take different neurotransmitters if they decide their “environment” in the brain needs it. They also grow their dentrite connections depending on what type of connections are needed for that particular brain to function. For instance, a piano player will develop dentrite connections to be able to play well.

These discoveries show once again that even on the cellular level, genetic instructions are complex and designed to give flexibility and adaptability of the cell to the situation for the cell. Genetic programming begins at the cellular level. There is a cellular consciousness besides the consciousness that we think about. DNA structures which are inherited affect the cellular consciousness. Body memories are contained within the physiological structure. The first brain and the body work off a stimulus-response recording mechanism. Body memory and programming are stored at this level. This is an area of the brain that is always on. However, its view or perception of events is not an exact copy of what other higher brains are thinking. Your conscious mind doesn’t remember how the stairs and the room are arranged, but in the dark, you primal part of your mind helps guide your steps.

Various drugs and chemicals have been identified that influence particular learning sequences in the mind, such as imprinting. For instance, hexamethonium chloride antagomzes the nicotinic actions of acetylcholine on the ganglia, or in other words, acetylcholine will depolarize the ganglia but is prevented by the hexamethonium. The overall result is that impulses that the sympathetic ganglia would transmit are blocked. This is just one example of countless examples of how a specific chemical can affect a specific brain action.

There is a branch of genetic research called “developmental social behaviour genetics” which deals with how genetics program in social behaviours of animals and people. For instance, these geneticists study how genes create aggression, courtship, territorial behaviours, behaviours involving mothers and fathers, dominance (peeking order) behaviors, sexual behaviors, attraction behaviors, recognition behaviors, etc.

Men are very much controlled by the sexual lusts, power lusts, and aggressive behaviors. Can the reader see how genetic manipulation of these genetic based behaviors could radically change the potential behavior of a person. A fox’s genes cause him to react differently than a rabbit’s genes. Having a rabbit grow up in a fox home is not going to change the genetic instructions. (The Bible even says, Can a leopard change it’s spots?) But the World Order has figured out how to change those instructions.

Genetic researchers had to begin sorting out behaviours, and sorting out genes that affected them. For instance, genes create a person’s (or animal) reproductive “instincts”. These instructions include instructions on fighting, nest building, mating, and care of their offspring. These genetic instructions are different for different people and different animals. Researchers into imprinting have discovered that IF a set of animals (or people) is prevented from learning a particular imprint, and IF that set of animals breed, THEN they pass on a lack of ability to receive that imprint. In other words, genetically we learn from generation to generation.

Let’s say that we prevent men from naturally imprinting a sexual desire for women as they grow up. If we mate those men to women, the offspring will show a reduced ability to be heterosexual. Males seem to develop their sexuality, but females seem to react more on the basis of genetically present “releasers”. Genetic researchers have gone in and identified what people’s behavioural instructions specifically are, and how to change them. The instructions are written in DNA, and manipulation of DNA can change those instructions.

When I researched their genetic research, I found that they have developed maps for how to change genetic material to change those instructions concerning behaviour. The maps for changing human genes related to behaviour are classified, but an example of one that isn’t is found in the book The Genetics of Behaviour (ed. Ehrman & Parsons. Sinauer Assoc., Inc. publ.: Sunderland, Mass, 1976, chapter 8 figure 4.). This map shows 3 sites in a HK gene that are intentionally mutated by the scientists in order to change the way a particular fly sings its mating call. The specific changes in how the fly sings its new mating call (after the genetic code is changed by geneticists) are even graphed out in a recording graph in another book Developmental Behavior Genetics: Neural, Biometrical, and Evolutionary Approaches (ed. by Hahn et. al., Oxford, Eng.: Oxford Univ. Press, 1990, Fig. 6-1.)

Again bear in mind that we only get the crumbs of what they know. We get a map of how they can change the way a fly sings a song–while they secretly keep the genetic maps to change human behaviour! An easy example of how genetics play a role in human behaviour can be seen in how infants behave toward their mothers and toward strangers. By using twins and adopted children, etc. it could be clearly demonstrated that the behaviour of a child in how it touches its mother was genetically inherited. But remember that the genetic instructions as a child grow older are designed to give it flexibility in relationship to its environment, so the environment is going to interact with the genetics to form the final behaviours. The study of these reactions of genes to the environment is called the study of epigenesis.

Another easy example of the genetic role in human behaviour is that intelligence has been linked to brain to body size. Genes ultimately determine that ratio of brain to body size. The factors involved are largely prenatal maternal influences. A great deal has been learned in this area. Brain size relates less to body size than it is a function of body metabolism. (See Research by Lande & Martin) To give a tiny sample of the types of genetic studies done in this area:

• Hahn, M.E., & Haber, S.B. “Dominance for large brains in laboratory mice…” Behavior Genetics, 1979, 9, pp. 243-244.

• Fuller, J.L. & Geils, H. “Brain growth in mice selected for high and low brain weight.” Developmental Psychobiology, 1972, 5, pp. 307-318.

• Riska, B., & Atchley, W.R. “Genetics of growth predict patterns of brain-size evolution.” Science, 1985, 229, pp. 668-671.

Research into how to control humans genetically proceeded in several directions. First, scientists realized that radiation was the key to changing genetics. Radiation causes breaks and changes in the DNA instructions. If only one little bit of genetic DNA instruction is changed in 1 million bits of information, that change could radically change the life of the person or animal. We see that everyday cleft lips… But how does radiation affect genetics? DNA has been studied from every angle. DNA has been looked at, probed, tested with all kinds of chemicals and countless other manipulations. The scientists figured exactly how the different DNA is constructed, what makes it tick, how it joins, holds together, reproduces, etc. They can disassemble and rebuild DNA however they want. DNA is the genetic instructions.

Since radiation will affect DNA they tested a long list of ionizing radiation substances on DNA. Different radiations will break the DNA in different ways. Chemicals will join to DNA in certain ways. Long story short, there are millions of ways to manipulate genetic material, and the World Order set out to discover how to precisely manipulate certain kinds of genetic material in certain ways.

An example of how skilled they are in understanding most everything about to construct and take apart the molecules of genetic material, at Cold Spring Harbor Labs one of the 1997 courses offered students is Molecular Cloning of Neural Genes. They understand what makes a nerve cell and how to create one. This science is called molecular neurobiology. (This course at Cold Springs H.L. happens to be taught by instructors from Rockefeller Univ., Harvard, John Hopkins, and UC of Berkeley.)

One area of intense study for many years was a long-term scramble to find chemicals that would cause different types of mutations in DNA. This research was called Comparative Chemical Mutagenesis. In fact one of the books this author studied was entitled just that Comparative Chemical Mutagenesis (ed. by DeSerres & Shelby). This book’s Chapters 16-18, 22-25 are about chemical-genetic research concerning how to create genetic changes in mammals using chemicals!

When it comes to genetics, much of what is learned from studying one mammal will apply to humans. The chemical principles are the same, the DNA is written in the same code, only the genetic instructions written in that code is different. To make an analogy, this book is written in English. Once someone understands how English works, they can take apart a sentence and rewrite it. Top level Genetic scientists know how to take apart genetic instructions and rewrite them. Radiation used in conjunction with chemicals presents them a tool for the mass editing of human genetic instructions. No wonder the Chernobyl nuclear accident happened. (Insiders in the know say that it was caused on purpose.) What a great way to carry out more mind-control research.

According to public research, genetic mutations were created by scientists in mammal cells first in 1968. It is likely that this had already been accomplished in secrecy before this. Labs all over the world went about testing genetic material with specialized chemicals to see what would happen to various genetic material when it came in contact with specific chemicals. Some of the commonly- tested mutagent chemicals that were widely tested to discover their “mutagenicity” (mutagenicity is the word geneticists use to describe the power of a chemical to cause a mutation) include:

Aflatoxin B1 (AFT)(This is a mold metabolite and is not always effective without another agent.)
Cadmium chloride
Cadmium salts
Cyclophosphamide (CP)
Dimethylnitrosamine (DMN)
Epichlorohydrin
Ethylenimine
Ethyl Methanesulfonate (EMS)
Methyl methanesulfonate (MMS)
Mitomycin C (a strong mutagenic at low doses)
Myleran (aka Busulfan)
N.Methyl-N,-Nitro – N – Nitrosoguanidine (MNNG)

Natulan (aka procarbazine, this chemical was strongly mutagenic in the lab with the presence of S-9, but weak without the presence of S-9)

Tepa
Theo-Tepa
Trenimon
Triethylenemelamine
Vinyl chloride

When these chemicals (and others) were tested on genetic material, the mutations they caused in the genetic material were observed, and then the specific type of mutation each caused was charted. Some caused chromosome-type changes, others caused chromatid-type changes, and some caused sub- or half- chromatid changes (these sub-changes usually were in the mitotic portion of the cell cycle.) When the chemicals broke chromosomes they were called clastogens. Others cause chromosomes to lose genetic material by damaging the mitotic apparatus. Many of the chemicals that were first tested only produced chemical changes in the chromatid-type of change. They discovered that the protective mechanisms of animals, plants and humans were protecting against many of their induced mutations, but they also learned what mutations they could create that the body would not fix or recover from.

Along with finding out what certain chemicals would do, the World Order wanted to find out what would happen at the molecular level of DNA when subjected to different types of radiation. The key to using radiative material is that there are many different types of radiative substances, not just uranium. For instance, cadmium is radioactive and can be used in genetic manipulation. In researching radiation, the first stage is when free radicals are created. This takes only a very small fraction of a second. The next is the chemical transformation of those radicals into stable radiation substances, and finally the last stage are the effects of these substances when the body incorporates them. The effects of the radiation substances on a person may last several years. The effects of radiation take place on the molecular level of DNA.

When you and I went to school we were taught that DNA occurs as a double-helix around an invisible common axis. The core of the helix is a series of purine and pyrimidine bases stacked in a parallel array and are arranged almost perpendicular to the invisible axis of the helix. However, the reality is that DNA can also exist in three (triple) double-stranded helix structures which are called the A-DNA, the B-DNA, and the C-DNA. At high humidities the A-DNA will transform into a B- DNA if excess salt is in the area. In A-DNA the normal of the base pairs is tilted by 200 to the helix axis. In contrast, in the B-DNA the base pairs are perpendicular. In some viruses and bacteria single stranded DNA is found. DNA also comes in supercoiled in some situations.

The point is simply that DNA occurs in ways other than we learned in school. They discovered that the energy of the sugar-phosphate backbone of the DNA allows for the DNA bases to be stacked, and is the key to the stability of the DNA. The verticle stacking of the bases gives stability of the DNA helix. They discovered that the helical structure of DNA is strongly influenced by its base composition and molecular weight. I mention these only to point out, that they know all about what DNA is and how it is built and holds itself together.

The genetic-radiation researchers had to learn how the bases of the DNA held together electronically. They needed to learn how well these molecules of these different bases would accept electrons or donate electrons, because ionized radiation is substances that give off electrons or other ionizing particles. Directly ionizing particles are atomic particles that are charged such as electrons, protons, alpha (a) particles, “heavy” ions, etc.).

An example of something the researchers found is that the cytosine base was the best acceptor of all the DNA bases. They began the process of testing different radioactive substances on DNA to see how they would cause mutations. To study this type of research, this author read several books such as Effects of Ionizing Radiation on DNA (Springer-Verlag Publ.: Berlin, Germany, 1978). An example of a chapter in this book is “Radiation-Induced Degradation of the Base Component in DNA and Related Substances”. This chapter shows charts of what happens to DNA components (such as thymine, cytosine, & uracil) when they are exposed to radiation. This author wants to cover some details of the type of discoveries these researchers made to make a point that specific chemicals and specific types of ionizing radiation will produce different effects upon DNA. Although these are very specific minute details, the reason they are mentioned here, is that the bottom line is that SOME CHEMICALS WORK WITH SOME TYPES OF RADIATION TO PRODUCE SPECIFIC MUTATIONS.

They discovered that if a mutagenic such as aminoacridine dye is absorbed by cells, this dye which binds to the nucleic acids, absorbs light to such a degree that the cells are destroyed. Different variations of dyes bind to the DNA in different strong and weak binding processes. Lambda radiation was tested on DNA. They observed that positive and negative ions were randomly produced throughout the DNA and that these are chemically unstable and undergo free radical reactions to form stable radiation products. They discovered that there was a consistent “oxygen effect” which was made into a radiobiological law which described how the presence of oxygen enhances radiation damage in all forms of cell life.

Another interesting discovery was that 5-bromouracil (BU) enhanced the rate of radiation-induced free radicals forming within gamma-irradiated DNA. Researchers discovered that an naturally occurring substance in cells, the sulthydryls, would bind with iodoacetic acid and N-ethylmaleimide, which made them radiosensitive, and would result in certain mutations. Still one more example of a compound that works with radiation to cause changes in the DNA is triacetoneamine-N-oxyl (or TAN for short). This is a stable free radical that combines with DNA. TAN comes from a group of nitroxide free radicals which all have the same influence on DNA. Metronidazole (aka Flagyl) was also found to be another of the nitroimidazoles and nitrofuranes that are oxygen mimics that worked in the lab as radiosensitizers of DNA.

Chemical-Biological Weapons are referred to as CB Weapons. In a transcript attached to the Dept. of Defense appropriations for 1970 (part 6) that I have of CB Weapons researchers talking, they indicate that the United States has BZ which “brings about complete mental disorientation as well as sedation which induces sleep. First of all the individual is completely confused as to what he is doing or what he is supposed to do and in addition he has hallucinations. He cannot carry out his assigned duties nor can he remember what his assigned duties were.” The affect of BZ lasts for about 3 days and then the person will begin to recover. It can be given via the air or the water. If it is drank or inhaled it will work. It takes affect about 1 to 1 ½ hours after it is ingested. There are a number of corporations that can produce BZ in the U.S. At the time of the transcript, it was stated that BZ is $20/lb. and a lead time of six months for production.

Chemical incapacitants have been developed that affect the mental functions of the mind in various ways. Today, research and deployment continues of chemical and radioactive substances that can control people. One of the methods that chemical and radioactive materials work is to change genetic structures. Some of the genetic changes that can be created chemically, are chemical changes that affect the way the mind thinks. In a nutshell, we are looking at a situation where the thinking of an entire race could be altered via chemicals dropped into their air and water. How long would these genetic changes last? It is conceivable that some of the changes might have long range consequences. Again, the bottom line is that the World Order has at its disposal radioactive substances that can distributed in conjunction with chemicals to mind-control large geographic regions by genetic manipulation. These radioactive substances and chemicals can be distributed over vast areas by the air and water of a geographic region. It is conceivable that within a short time, the United States will experience chemicals administered via the air, or the drinking water used in conjunction with specific external stimuli to reinforce certain types of mind-control programming on a mass of people. A chemical that makes people susceptible to suggestion could be used over a geographic area while hypnotic television messages and ELF waves, etc. contribute to the mind-control operation.

Therapists are going to begin encountering victims of mind-control born in the 1960’s or later that have been subjected to chemical-radiation changes to the genetics that control human behaviour. There are already dozens of very vocal victims of both radiation experiments & mind-control that are speaking up. Unfortunately, the ones that this author knows do not have a long life-expectancy, and speaking up usually has the effect of shortening a whistle-blower’s life.

In this Deeper Insights book, the movie Jacob’s Ladder was mentioned. This movie shows a unit in Vietnam which was given a drug to make them aggressive, but the drug backfired because they killed each other. However, the reason the movie was allowed to be produced is that it was a good cover for the fact that the military did not give up, but that they actually succeeded in producing their “magic chemical potion” to turn soldiers into killing machines. The biology of aggression has been figured out. Military studies on the relationship between drugs and the ability to kill have been numerous, one example is Gabriel, R.A. Military Psychiatry: A Comparative Perspective. NY: Greenport Press, 1986. The World Order has the ability to create the warrior spirit, actually its worse than that, they have the ability to turn men into killing machines.

WHAT WE’VE COVERED

As horrible as the physical manipulation of the brain and its fluids is, and as monstrous as the genetic manipulation of the growth of the brain as outlined in this chapter are, they are only a few methods of mind-control of many that the Illuminati have at their disposal. These techniques seriously raise the question how much longer will humanity as we know it survive? The next generation of children will have to face mind-control in the form of genetic tampering and the use of chemicals already stockpiled by the NWO.

p_8-2.jpg

 

 

9-1.jpg


CHAPTER 9:  THE SCIENCE OF MIND MANIPULATION BY PSYCHOLOGICAL PROGRAMMING METHODS: BEHAVIOR MODIFICATION, PSYCHOLOGICAL MOTIVATION & NLP 

“STRIPPED” OF FEELINGS
PROGRAMMING TO HIDE REVEALING DREAMS
PROGRAMMING LANGUAGE
EFFECTS OF PROGRAMMING
FALSE IMPLANTED MEMORIES
PERCEPTION CLOUDS MEMORY

A person’s “selfhood” is hard to define, but one could view it as the central important center of consciousness to which the person has placed both trust and purpose. A professor of Pastoral Counselling defined the self as “the purposive core I have learned to trust in myself and others.” Although this author prefers his own wording as written above, the definition of “selfhood” by this professor of pastors is in agreement with this author’s. A mature person is a person who has developed a “selfhood”, a sense of self, that is able to make creative choices in line with values and plans for his or her life. By the destruction of the “selfhood” of many of the alters, the programmers derail the ability of the slave to make creative choices in line with values and plans. Not only do they destroy the sense of identity but they also destroy the development of values.

When a normal person grows up, the values, that an individual adopts, will enable that person to integrate his or her many actions into a cohesive unified agenda for living their life. What happens when a person is not able to adopt their own values, but is force fed values? What happens when the person does not even adopt any values, except to acquiesce to the brutal demands of a mind-control handler? The natural process for developing a unified agenda for life is cut short. The thinking of mankind is predicated on socialization with other humans. It is natural for people to want to work and be around other humans. The family, neighbourhood, city and nation all give an individual nurturing that fosters a sense of identity and values. What happens if an individual is cut off from society and most of humanity, in fact is even cut off from most of their own mind and will?

What typically happens in this situation is that the individual becomes demoralized, feels dehumanized, and as a person is enfeebled to deal with life. What happens when a person is not allowed to chose values freely, and allowed to give consideration to various alternatives and the consequences for these choices? It means that the person is not going to be happy with the choices they make, but will go through the motions of life in a rather dissociated manner. What happens when a person feels powerless? Feelings of powerlessness, can lead to feelings of meaningless. And meaningless makes an individual feel trapped by life. The meaninglessness imprisons a person. The person no longer has the freedom to make choices, and without choices has no real values, and without values life becomes meaningless.

The above situations are standard results of the total mind-control programming agenda. The person’s natural built-in abilities to plan their life is short circuited. The person is demoralized and feels incomplete as a human because of his or her’s lack of connectedness to their fellow humans, and as a result allows his or herself to be dependent upon the master. Because they are forced to do actions without any values, they dissociate their actions from feelings. Finally, they feel trapped because they have no values to give life meaning. A sexual slave will be forced to have sex. They are not allowed to have a value system, or else they would pick and choose who they wanted to have sex with. The result is that they feel dehumanized and they dissociate feelings from their actions. Without values, life feels like one big trap, with no purpose and no goals. The only purpose the slave has is to survive the brutality of its master, that is to stay alive.

Some slaves give up along the way, and are discarded as unsuccessful attempts by the Illuminati. The programming agenda prevents the natural God-given gift for mankind to make their own choices. As explained above, this in itself reinforces several items that the programmers have been intentionally creating such as dehumanization, isolation, dependence, and dissociation. It is built into human thinking to enjoy a sense of accomplishment. This happens when a person perceives his or her life as meaningful. The perception that his or her life is meaningful results in the person feeling power. Powerlessness and meaninglessness are two items that are related to each other when we understand human thinking. A normal child in a normal environment will naturally learn when to trust itself and when to trust others. This is important to the development of values. This is important for a person to become mature. The programmers short circuit this natural learning process.

The front alters continue learning who to trust and who not to trust, and when to trust oneself, because they hold the body from day to day. However, a special purpose child alter doesn’t experience this. Without learning how to trust, it becomes hard to make decisions by one’s self, and so the victim of mind-control transfers the right to make his or her choices to the programmer. By arresting the natural process of learning trust, the programmers detour the mind, so that it travels right where they want the mind to be.

Normally, a child would grow up, and as it grew up would realize that not everyone can be trusted. He would also come to realize that even his own self at times can not be trusted. Yet, the child would also learn that there are times that people can be trusted. This maturation of awareness moves a person from being dependent toward being independent. The programmed slave is afraid of seeking true love, and to find authentic relationships with people. Without these things, they remain incomplete and more pliable to the control of the master, who then attempts to provide in some substitute manner some of the things the slave should have developed for himself.

Many of the slave’s deeper alters do not have the capacity to creatively look forward to the future, with the understanding that they can create their own life, their own future. The process of maturation that would have given that ability to them has been prevented from taking place. If these deeper alters do not experience life outside of their programmed trance states, they will have no chance to mature and to realize that they are capable to design and create their own future. Rather, the slave endures life with anxiety and dissociation, and limits his mental horizons to the present. The big reference point the slave has is to their master and his commands.

Many of the slave’s alters are limited in their freedom to really have consciousness. Their thinking is below the definitions of conscious behavior–it is simply programmed behavior. Our consciousness has a big role in how we perceive the world. How we perceive the world in turn determines our values. The programmers can disrupt the process of a slave obtaining values in life, by disrupting the consciousness. Values in life are important in determining how we build our world-view, our frames of reference. The programmer constructs various worlds for most of the alters (except for the front alters). These alters are never given the chance for what psychologists would label “conscious behavior”. Reality is not part of the package. Choice is not part of the package.

In normal life, conscious behavior is developed by interaction between a person and his environment and the freedom to make real choices. The bare necessities are grudgingly provided in a haphazard way to the alters of a total mind-controlled slave, so that IF they are aware of their needs, it is at a very basic level, such as survival, and security and warmth. A fully conscious individual has gone way beyond that to realizing his or her’s needs for creativity, intimacy, community, justice, integrity, and spiritual fulfilment.

The challenge for the slave master will be to balance the freedom of activity and maturity of the front part of the slave’s alters, with the control that the slave master needs to accomplish his nefarious goals. It is safer to bring a slave up to have a world view dependent on others that lends itself to the owner’s agenda such as witchcraft values & a witchcraft world-view, or a Mormon/ or Jehovah’s Witness/or Catholic world-view of obedience to the church, THAN to have the slave’s front alters becoming independent self-directed mature thinkers.

It doesn’t matter whether the person’s front alters are Jehovah’s Witnesses, Mormon or Catholic, they have surrendered their personal sense of power and control to institutional control. The victim ceases to do things because of personal choice, but accepts institutional values as a cog in a machine; and the person, whether they realize it or not, loses meaning in their life. Personal choice, value and meaning in life are all related. Because man is made in the image of God, he has an inherent desire to have meaning to his life. Mankind also has a desire to be in unity with his environment. This is also a God-given desire. To make himself feel at home in this world, man spends much of his activity taming and domesticating the wild world to conform to what feels comfortable. What happens when this is stripped from a person?

In order to provide substitute answers to these desires of the slave, the Illuminati’s covens provide rituals. Rituals make the slave feel that some order is being brought out of the chaos and nonsense of life. But true meaning in life can only come from realizing the goals of our actual Creator, Almighty God. Substitutes for this, leave people unfulfilled and weak. Of course, the unfulfilled weak sense of meaning in life of the Illuminati members, can weaken some in their ability to realize their true spiritual potential. It becomes a vicious cycle of low base evil goals. Who will provide the safety for the deeper alters to move out independently in life? and then further, who will teach the deeper alters the social skills, and the other skills to step out and grow? Even if the complex programming should break its death-grip on an alter, (which seldom happens) an alter can not find freedom without some outside support system providing safety and instruction. The bondage that most deeper alters remain fixed in, is a very complex bondage of body, mind, and spirit. This complex bondage calls for group package answers, that address the type of issues that have been raised on these last two pages. The lack of this type of answer insures that few slaves will find full freedom. Partial freedom is still slavery.

On the flip side, because deeper alters have not had a chance to develop their own values, make their own choices, and experience reality, the power of the programs will be diluted simply by real life. This occurs even in the absence of intense deprogramming. One of the weaknesses of the programming is that the handlers often fail to allow alters to ever establish real personal values. Hand-me-down values that are accepted under duress or torture, are quickly discarded if the alters ever do get free.

Illuminati slaves who accept the values of the Illuminati, and progress to positions of power can be resistant to freedom, because they have internalized for themselves a value system, have some feelings of self-worth and self-competence. The Illuminati have long understood the value in having their members progress through the levels of initiation, and to pass through tests that bestow a sense of achievement upon the slave. When the Illuminati in Bavaria had their safe houses raided, their paperwork showed extensive disciple and training programs. At first glance, raising an initiate through an initiate degree system of training may not smack of mind-control, but it is like an anchor that ties in the mind-control. It is important for the Illuminati to attach an occult value system to the mind-control so that the slave is more resistant to wanting freedom, because their self-worth and identity are tied up with the Illuminati.

“STRIPPED” OF FEELINGS

Another side-effect of the total mind-control is that the deeper alters of a victim, and indeed often even the front alters are unsuccessful in morally meaningful relationships such as love and friendship. The reader may be wondering, what does Fritz mean by “morally meaningful”? Allow me to take several paragraphs to explain … Has the reader ever tried to recall a name which you knew, but your mind seems blocked? And yet, when someone offers this name or that name, you realize that it doesn’t have the correct feel, the correct rhythm, the correct beginning. Your mind can recognize what it is looking for on a subconscious level, but you are not pulling the name up to the conscious. Your mind can look for things on a subconscious level and identify what it is looking for, without consciously telling you.

Has the reader ever loved someone for many years? If you have, you know that you didn’t consciously think of them and your love for them every second of the day. Grief or love or another strong emotion can lay in our subconscious mind and yet still influence our thinking. It is not a matter of us turning this love on. It simply is there quietly in the background exerting its influence on our mind.

Grief, love, anger, and other strong emotions are similar to when our mind is seeking for a name subconsciously. These emotions seek out the appropriate scenes, and items in the surrounding area, and colors and sounds that go with the emotion that the subconscious mind feels. A blue person will notice “blue, sad” type things around them. Other things just don’t fit the subconscious fill in the blank. In other words, our emotions determine our perspective on what we see in life. Our emotional perspective guides what items our mind focuses on. This is why it is absolutely imperative for balanced human growth that a person feel compassion, love and sympathy directed toward oneself.

Feeling loved in turn opens the mind to focus its emotional-perception-guidance system on compassion, love and sympathy. In contrast with most people, many parts of total mind-controlled slaves are never meant to have feelings, or if the parts do, they repressed, suppress, and dissociate their feelings. Our emotions play a fundamental role in a person’s moral life. They transform values into actions. This is what is called strength of will, courage of convictions, etc. Emotions play a critical role in strength of will and courage of convictions.

To be stripped of feeling emotions, strips the victim of one of the ingredients to make and carry out moral choices. This helps explain why emotions are harnessed so completely by the programmers. When researchers have studied unemotional people, they find that their dealings with others are shallow, lifeless, and mechanical. The programmers want their programmed assassins, espionage agents, prostitutes, etc. to be mechanical. People rarely want to form friendships with unemotional persons. Of course, the parts that are created to interface with the public are programmed to be effacious, gracious, and to sparkle. But the deeper parts which influence the victim’s own internal thoughts, which the victim wisely keeps to himself, fail to connect with the outside world emotionally.

Having been stripped of emotions, the slave is consequently stripped of one of the most important ingredients involved in morality. An unemotional or emotionally deficient person or alter may suffer from a particular kind of a “morally-weak will”. This is because failure to do what a person believes is good and failure to restrain from doing what one believes is bad is a natural consequence of lacking emotions such as care, concern, compassion, courage, love and sympathy. Certain emotions are critical for doing and being moved to do what is right and in not doing what one knows is bad.

Friendships are one of the most valuable commodities a person can have. The victim is stripped of external friendships. They may substitute interactions within their own internal world as a way to substitute for this loss. In normal human activity, two people in love intertwine the activities of their lives into the complex whole of their love relationship. A walk together is not seen as a walk, but as a joint expression of their relationship.

Humans emotionally value what is good for their friends and lovers. Without emotional attachments, the relationship is only a facade. The victims of mind-control are taught how to create great facades. Unfortunately, they fool many of their therapists, and therefore don’t step out of the make-believe roles they play out.

Human love and friendship is one of the most vital, powerful, fundamentally good items of human behaviour. They provide the foundation for many other things. Without love and friendship, the victim’s alters live in isolation, alienation, abandonment, discontinuity, and purposelessness. Cisco’s half of the book will discuss some specific programming tactics that are used to hide the “shadow” alters that are used to take any emotions that the principally used alters might develop. What we have been covering is that one of the side effects of “stripping” the victims from feeling emotions is to cripple them from taking moral stands, from seeing love & concern in the world around them, and from reaching out & forming ties to the outside world.

PROGRAMMING TO HIDE REVEALING DREAMS

The programmers realize that the mind is able to reveal secrets via dreams. During the programming a Mother-of-darkness will be assigned to a child and she will have to wake that child up when it is in its deepest sleep to ask the child what’s happening and if the child is dreaming. If dreams are surfacing, the programmers know their programming is not holding.

When the child’s mind which is being programmed no longer releases revealing dreams, the programmers know that their programming is holding. The front alters receive repeated programming (hypnotic commands, etc.) not to dream or to know their dreams. When the programming begins to collapse, the deeper alters will begin to dream and flood with memories. The slave must have their dream sealing programs reinstated approx. every three years. If this is not done, dreams (which are actually memories) will begin to surface. A therapist can also help the victim train their mind to remember their dreams (dream state of mind).

PROGRAMMING LANGUAGE

A skilful programmer can use language to communicate at several levels. The programmer can use derogatory tones, big words that the child doesn’t understand and obscure language that confuses the child in order to humiliate, dominate and confuse the child. He can also pronounce the words with a twist in order to protect the programming. Have you ever met someone in the occult world who pronounces many of his words strange? The programmers are also big on play on words which are done intentionally to protect the programming. The victims of the occult programming must deal with symbology. Those who attempt to understand programming must also deal with the world of symbology.

The programmer must learn to think like a child and to step into the child’s world. Likewise, the deprogrammer must learn to step into the victim’s world. Certainly, the deprogrammer wants to stay grounded in reality, but he also wants to be able to understand the world that the victim must live in. The deeper parts of the victim lives in a magical world, full of demons and powers from other dimensions. When the Illuminati carry out programming, they often frame what they are doing in magical and satanic terms.

Most therapists do not want to step into the victim’s world to communicate with them. Just as the psychologists want this author to step into the psychologists’ world to communicate with them, the psychologist should realize that the victim would like the same. It is irrelevant whether the therapist believes that objects can be demonized or not. The deeper alters have spent their life-time learning how demons attach themselves to objects, and how to gain power to cause demons to attach themselves to objects. A deeper alter may have the occult wisdom to place demons into a fluid so that that fluid can be drank by a child. From their understanding of demonology, these demons are so powerful that the only non-lethal entry for them into the child is by the child drinking a particular fluid. These images are the images that deeper alters experience during the programming rituals. The language & images of the programming will be very magical, mystical and satanic.

EFFECTS OF PROGRAMMING

The mind is a holographic type of memory. The psyche of the multiple personality is a multiple image hologram. The body is set up to match the mind. When one alter switches to another, another hologram seems to take control over the mind. This is like the instructions for the body are written on a card, and when the switch occurs, the holographic cards are shuffled like a deck of cards. In fact, the programming have used this analogy as part of their programming codes.

FALSE IMPLANTED MEMORIES

Once the truth about trauma-based mind-control began coming out, a massive counterattack by the controlled establishment occurred. This counter attack was that you can not trust the memories of the victims. Numerous establishment articles call attention to memory research, especially memory research into how to implant an illusory memory.

Two examples of this massive counterattack are Bruce Bower’s article in Science News, 8/24/96, pp. 126-127 entitled “Remembrance of Things False Scientists incite illusory memories and explore their implications”.& Harvard psychologist Daniel L. Schacter’s book Searching for Memory (1996).

First, these countless articles prove that the controlled psychiatric research community is working hard at developing techniques to implant false memories. This is indeed a big part of the mind-control, producing cover memories and false identities and false histories for alters. However, these articles always ignore the enormous evidence of severe abuse and government/cult involvement in the lives of countless victims of mind-control. This author has seen first hand the Illuminati-satanic cult-CIA involvement in the lives of a number of these people. The events of these people’s lives, which this author has often witnessed, can’t be explained away by poor memory. Further, traumas that are so severe as to cause amnesia walls, are locked up by the mind and preserved. They are like a mummy in a tomb in Egypt, that is still locked up in its preserved state. Memories that aren’t locked up can deteriate and be contaminated, just like a dead body that is left to rot, but programming traumas are not in that category of memory. Remember, the mind protect itself. Research shows that the mind does not want to latch onto false memories that hurt it. For instance, when researchers try to get subjects to remember a kind parent hurting them, the mind will resist the false memory.

PERCEPTION CLOUDS MEMORY

The brain in order to be efficient uses its framework of knowledge–its world view–in which to hang new incoming knowledge. This author’s Be Wise As Serpents book considered this to be the biggest barrier to people coming to the truth. Because education, television and society in general control how people’s framework of knowledge is built, and these frameworks are built skilfully to exclude major truths that would expose how the World Order is controlling mankind, it is really difficult to speak to people about mind-control, and the control of the world in general.

The victim of mind-control has frameworks built into his subconscious that make it difficult to drive the truth into their thinking. Memories are stored as they relate to these frameworks. An efficient way around that is to speak and teach in way that the subconscious mind is spoken to, and the conscious barriers are by-passed. The mind puts up a grid to prevent non-approved information from coming in that doesn’t fit it’s accepted concept of truth. Much of this grid is fear based. The problem for the victim is that once their mind is bent a certain way by the programmers, it will naturally create a grid to protect the programmed world-view.

This is why the external philosophies-news broadcasts-disinformation from establishment magazines, etc. that are layered in on top of programming, (see Chapter 12) are like a protective coat sprayed on to make sure the foundation doesn’t weather over time. For instance, the front alters of some of the most severely tortured victims have latched onto the idea that Satanic Ritual Abuse doesn’t exist, and are actually some of the greatest public crusaders against people believing that SRA exists. The external politically-correct view is in this case protecting the deeper programming.

FALSE FEELINGS. Using drugs & hypnosis, and the creation story about God breathing things into existence, the “love” & “kindness” of the programmer is placed into Moriah the Wind. When this is done, should a gatekeeper alter hear something negative about their master, they instantly go into the melting (drug memory) where drugs made them feel one with their programmer. This is refrained during programming as “the peace of God.”

ELDETIC IMAGERY. There is a type of visual imagery called eidetic imagery. 5 to 10 % of children have it, but it is very rare in adults. Eidetic imagery is similar to a photographic memory. People with eidetic imagery can look at any object or page of numbers and when they look away the image of what they have seen is as clear as a photograph. They can focus on any detail of the image, enlarge it, make out more details than what they had originally seen, and then they can carry this image with them for several days, just like the rest of us carry a photograph. This author has not seen much info on this, & believes that further research into this topic might reveal some more methods that the mind-control programmers are utilizing. Child-hood impressions & memories can have a far greater impact and retention than adult memories. This paragraph has only introduced this subject of eidetic imagery & childhood vs adult memory ability.

FINAL SUMMATION. The programming regimen destroys the victims sense of self, so that the person has only an identity within the cult. The victim can not express rage over their own victimization, but is encouraged by the Illuminati’s satanic beliefs to express violence & rage toward others, thereby creating a mechanism to help perpetuate the mind-control. The rage also seeps out as self-punishment. A deep loneliness sets into victims, & they despair of hope. They see no place to turn to except to whatever cult is controlling them. This chapter has focused on the type of skills & knowledge psychologists study, & how this knowledge can be applied to insuring compliance by the slave.

p_9-2.jpg


CHAPTER 10: THE 10th SCIENCE — USING SPIRITUAL THINGS TO CONTROL A PERSON. 

What makes a programmed multiple tick? This chapter will provide some of the most important answers to that question. In this chapter, you will be provided with important brand-new information.

CONTENTS
PART A. Intro on the importance of spiritual programming tactics.
PART B. The history of Programmed Golem
KABBALISTIC BLACK MAGIC
PART C. The 3 foundations: Loss of identity, Fear, and Demons
UNDERSTANDING THE RELATIONSHIP BETWEEN FEAR & DEMONS
DEMON POSSESSION & SPIRIT GUARDS
The Use of Giving Demonic Assistance to entrap.
The Use of Occult Focal Points.
DOES IT GLORIFY DEMONS TO CAST THEM OUT?
PART D. A complete Chronology of how the victim experiences the early spiritual programming. Steps a through o. (by Cisco)
FINE-TUNED
HIDING THE INTERNAL SELF-HELPER
INTERJECT DISKS
PART E. Specific spiritual programming maneuvers
WHITE GOLD, other information

PART A. INTRO on the IMPORTANCE of SPIRITUAL PROGRAMMING TACTICS

It is important for therapists and ministers to understand the spiritual ramifications of what has been done. The witchcraft, spells, and demonology is a way of life for the deeper alters. The programming and the hypnotic trances are deeply embedded into the ritual life of the deeper alters of a mind-controlled slave. An enormous amount of suffering has transpired because therapists have dealt with obvious spiritual problems with psychological techniques that aren’t even remotely related to the real problem. Secular therapists can be quick to offer glib criticism of the subject of demonology, a subject they often know nothing about. (While Christians generally acknowledge that mankind is in a spiritual war (cf. 2 COR 10:3-5), they too are generally ignorant of Satan’s devices, and are not skilled in dealing with spiritual attacks from the world, flesh and the demons.)

An analogy for demonology is microbiology. Many people never see a virus, and many people never see demons. Some people still debate whether the germ theory of disease is correct. There will certainly be differences of opinion about demonology–anything said about it is bound to find someone who disagrees. But just like it has been useful for many sick people’s health to deal with viruses, victims of Illuminati mind-control have found it helpful to deal with demons. Demonology can be a useful subject for understanding programming from both a programmer’s point of view and a deprogrammer’s point of view. If this information is useful, then it will have served a purpose.

Men of God, who have found themselves in remote places (where trauma-based mind-control is not practiced), have found themselves confronted by obvious cases of demon possession that have been successfully handled by deliverance prayer. This author has personally witnessed many people who have had wonderful healings due to deliverances. I rejoice in their freedom. I pray that others who portray themselves as therapists would come to the same place that they could appreciate healings even though they do not recognize the spiritual dimension of human life, or even better yet, that they would recognize the spiritual side of humankind. In Asia, it was common for this author to see flies swarm over people and food. Demons swarm around people in that type of abundance. This is why the title Lord of the Flies (Beelzebub) is the name of a chief demon, and is sometimes used as another name for Satan himself.

Part B. The History of the Programmed Golem

KABBALISTIC BLACK MAGIC

A number of the Illuminati bloodlines (and sects) that are involved in trauma-based total mind-control are Askenazi hasidic bloodlines. Legends abound from the 15th century onward about how the Askenazi hasidic leaders created golem to serve them. These golem have been called “benevolent robots”. For those readers who are unaware of where the word golem came from, it is used once in the Word of God in Ps 139:16, “Your eyes [God’s eyes] saw my substance, being yet unformed. And in Your book they were written, the days fashioned for me.” This is believed by the Kabballists to refer to Adam when he was only a body without a soul.

Golem are believed to be soulless bodies. One can almost hear the rationalization in medieval times when torture, and black magic or a trance state ended up creating an alter personality that this magical part was viewed as soulless, because it was only created via magic. This personality (alter) didn’t exist like real people, it was merely a golem in the magicians’ eyes–therefore it could be abused or used as a robot, because it was soulless.

The use of Cabalistic black magic in mainline Illuminati programming in the deeper aspects has led this author to believe that during the torture of jews in the concentration camps–Dr. Mengele was assisted by some Askenazi hasidic black magic adepts who gave him some of the secret names of God. The Cabalistic magic viewpoint is that there are creative powers intrinsic in God’s names. God’s names are used by the Illuminati for such alters as the gems (jewels) from which other alters are created. For instance the gems will be tortured while Cabalistic black magic is employed to create more parts.

In such deeper aspects of programming, what occurs? Have the Illuminati programmers created new parts via psychologic torture techniques, have they created them with black magic or both? One thing is sure, if the “golem’s mind”–that is that if parts of the victim subjected to trauma-based mind-control remember what occurred, then it will be associated with a Cabalistic black magic ritual.

There are several other features of Cabalistic black magic that are important features of Illuminati programming. Many things pertaining to the mind-control have slipped out into public view at one time or another but are not recognized as having anything to do with programming. The European Jew Joseph Achron wrote the musical Golem Suite (1932) for an orchestra. The first piece of music introduces the golem and the last piece of music is the exact reverse mirror image of the first piece and it represents the disintegration of the golem.

In programming, the deeper alters may have a musical cord to call them up, and the reverse of that cord will “disintegrate” them back into the mind. The following excerpts are taken from Gershom Scholem’s book Kabbalah. (NY: Keter Pub. House Jerusalem, 1974.) “General summaries of Kabbalistic doctrine rarely referred to its ‘practical’ side [which Scholem go on to explain is black magic dealing with demons and blood]…” Of course not, the practical side of the Kabbala is occult–secret knowledge. It is the secrets of black magic. “Various ideas and practices connected with the concept of the golem [mind-controlled slave] also took their place in practical Kabbalah through a combination of features drawn from the Sefer Yezirah and a number of magical traditions.” (Kabbala, p. 183) The practical side of the Kabbala which was concerned with creating golem employed trances, magic and visualization. Scholem writes, “In this circle the Sefer Yezirah was nearly always interpreted in the manner of Saadiah and Shabbetai Donnolo [who was into what is known as Satanism], with an added tendency to see the book as a guide for both mystics and adepts of magic.

The study of the book was considered successful when the mystic attained the vision of the golem, which was connected with a specific ritual of a remarkable ecstatic [altered state] character.” (ibid., p.40) Two other points should be made showing the connection between medieval ashkenzim black magic practices and the programming going on today. The medieval jewish magicians would use the secret Kabbalistic names of God in accordance with detailed sets of instructions to try and create a golem. The golem in turn would say the combination of hebrew letters in reverse order. This has been done in modern programming.

Further, the “Seal of the Holy One” in medieval times was written on the forehead of the golem. This is the word “emet”. At some point the word’s first letter (an aleph) is erased and this leaves the word “met” which in Hebrew means “dead”. Such types of sealings have also been done in modern times with deeper parts of slaves.

PART C. The 3 foundations: Loss of identity, Fear, and Demons

The programming has three basic foundations, fear, rejection of God (which entails the rejection of who they are), and the entrapment by demonic possession. If the person is paralyzed in fear, unable to seek God’s help, unable to know who they are in Christ & to see God’s plan for their life, and lives in bondage to demons, then the Illuminati programming will hold.

The Word of God states that each person is intricately designed by God and developed according to His plan (Ps. 139:14-16).  A person’s self-image of who they are profoundly affects everything else about them. The Illuminati want to insure that the potential for good that the person is born with is destroyed or controlled. They want the victim to feel rejected and cheated by God. This is what Colossians 2:8 warns about, & then the next Bible verse states, “…for in Him dwelleth all the fullness of the Godhead bodily. And you are complete in Him…”

If the slave could ever be complete through their devotion to God, they would have no use for their Illuminati masters. The Scriptures in several Psalms teach that God made us in accordance with His plans for our lives. Even today He is not finished with us. “We are (present continuous action verb) His workmanship…” Eph. 2:10 A 124 pg. secret CIA book Manual on Human Resources, 1983, (recently declassified via the Freedom of Information Act) states, “When a threat is used, it should always be implied that the subject himself is to blame by using words such as, “You leave me no other choice but to…” He should never be told to comply “or else!”… The threat of coercion usually weakens or destroys resistance more effectively than coercion itself. For example, the threat to inflict pain can trigger fears more damaging than the immediate sensation of pain.”

UNDERSTANDING THE RELATIONSHIP BETWEEN FEAR & DEMONS

Dr. W. Grey Walter, of the British Burden Neurological Institute at Bristol, England did a lot of research involving drugs, electroshock and demonology. Walter would drill from 50 to 100 holes in his patients heads and then insert electrodes into their heads. The patients would walk around with a beret-like covering over their electrode implanted heads. The suborbital area of the brain was determined by Walter as being the seat of demonic fears. Walter would cause a small lesion in the paracingulate region to calm patients who saw demons. This in effect is like a miniature lobotomy. The electricity causes a selective lesion. What his work showed was that there is a connection between the area of the brain that creates fear, and images of demons that people see.

The Word of God in 2 TIM 1:7 states categorically that “God hath not given us the spirit of fear; but of power, and of love, and of a sound mind.” This means that the Spirit of fear comes from the Satan and his world system. The Spirit of fear is demonic, and it has the power to paralyze its victim. This Spirit of Fear is nothing less than a demonic anointing. That demonic anointing drives away positive angelic spirits. Christ asked, “Why are ye so fearful? How is it that ye have no faith?” The demonic anointing of fear meant that faith was lacking. If we listen to the Word of God, we get faith. (ROM 10:17). This is why it is important to the programmers that their deeper alters are programmed not to be able to read or hear the Word of God (Holy Bible). If the victim could hear the Word of God, they would receive faith, which would tamper with the demonic anointing of fear.

On a spiritual level, our fears are open doors for Satan to carry out an act. It is a vicious bondage loop, because then the victim says, “I knew it was going to happen, I knew from the beginning.” Little does the victim realize that the Spirit of Fear within them, opened the door for Satan to carry out his will in that area. In fact, it is standard procedure within the secret societies and intelligence agencies to identify what fears their opposition have, and then build upon those fears. It does no good to spread disinformation about things that the enemy is not fearful of. But if a fear is identified, they will play upon that as much as possible.

In Howard, Michael, Strategic Deception in the Second World War. Vol. 5 of British Intelligence in the Second World War. W.W. Norton & Co.: NY, 1995, p.33-34, “One of the first rules of deception is to play on the real fears,…” On page 4 1-42 Howard quotes a British intelligence directive, “It may be taken as a principle of strategic deception that it is neither economical in time nor productive in results to attempt to produce in the enemy anxiety over an area concerned with which the enemy himself has had no previous fear…Knowledge of the trend of enemy anxiety was therefore of very great value…On the foundation of fear, and having regard both to inherent plausibility and to contact identifications which the enemy was likely to have made, it was possible to build up a fictitious and misleading structure and to represent Allied capabilities and intentions as very different from what they really were.”

In this author’s previous writings, the connection between demonology and military tactics in general and specifically British intelligence have been closely documented. Military structures are based upon demon structures. It is no surprise then, that demons and intelligence groups study to determine what a person’s fears are. And it is no wonder that they attempt to instil as many fears as possible into the victim.

DEMON POSSESSION & SPIRIT GUARDS

Christians are called upon to guard what was spiritually entrusted to them by the using the Holy Spirit (2 TIM 1:14). The Illuminati do a mirror image of this, by layering in spirits (evil ones) to guard things in the system. For instance, in the VoL 2 book, the programming parallels to the movie Labyrinth were discussed in chapter 5. It was mentioned how the dogs portrayed guardians. Demons named Toto are layered in to protect the spinner kittens. If one were to try to activate the spinner kittens without going through the proper chain of command & codes, the guardian demons known as Totos, or after Dorothy’s Toto will be activated. The spinner’s in fact are often called “Dorothys”.

Some other examples of guardians spirits that are placed into a system are Bes, the spirit that rules the dwarfs; Geb, the voice behind the earth God in a system; Pan, who has various roles, including being a protector of the green wood; and Shu, which is the voice “behind the wind” which controls the internal weather within a alter system’s world. The foundations of a system are the demons layered in at the beginning. Spirits of Confusion, Despair, Torment are called down by the programmers and laid in. Lying and Perverse Spirits are brought in too.

At first this may seem like very subjective sci-fi to the reader. Hopefully, after the programming rituals are described in detail, and a basic foundation concerning what demons are is laid, the reader will have received a more systematic understanding of the topic. The goal is teach the reader programming as a programmer would understand it. The victim should not be made ashamed of demonic attachments. That serves no spiritual benefit for the victim, and only contributes more guilt and shame, and adds to the problem of giving them hope. The victim has been a helpless victim.

“Mystery” demons (which is not their actual name) are placed into the child when they are innocent babies. Part of the power of the mystery demons, is that they are able to remain anonymous within their host’s body. They remain in the host secretly generally for the person’s lifetime. These mystery demons have to answer to their chain of command. Within a victim’s alter parts, are demons which have their own ranks and commanders. Christians who carry out deliverances will deal those commanders.

The Catholic Church, which has been so active in trauma-based mind-control and in placing in the Spirits of Legion into a victim, had one of their clergy write, “Evil is Someone, Someone who is multiple and who name is legion…” (Mauriac, Francois. Life of St. Margaret of Cortona.) The Catholic Church’s official public stance is that Demon possession is rare. On Aug. 15, 1972, Pope Paul VI put out a motu proprio which abolished the order of exorcist. This office had already become rather rare, and besides included men who were mind-control programmers. Cases of “demonic possession” of Catholics are occasionally taken to places like Georgetown Hospital in Wash. D.C. which is run by Jesuits working in tandem with the CIA. Accounts of exorcisms of Catholics are filled with clues that the victims of “demonic possession” are victims also of trauma-based occult-based mindcontrol.

This writer, trying to explain a difficult subject (demonology), feels fortunate to be able to recommend a book which does a good job of explaining it, this is Howard O. Pittman’s book Demons. (Foxworth, MS: Philadelphian Pub. House, c. 1988). I originally read the book in 1992, and have had it recommended by those who work in the area of demonology. The book is written by a devout Christian who worked 28 years in the field of law enforcement during his life. The book explains such things as: how man is made in the image of God (and as such is a clone, so to speak of God;) How demon possession has come about due to man’s sovereign will allowing it; & How demons can interact with the physical world.

He explains how Satan despatches orders from his throne which go through a chain of command, and how special emphasis is placed on Christians. He explains the forms of demons, their expertise, how they can read minds, and how they have no love for their master, and no love for themselves. Nor does their master have any love for them. (I, Fritz Springmeier, your author have discovered in talking to people for years, that it is essential for people to grasp that the mind of Satan is devoid of love, and that where love doesn’t seek its own, Satan’s mind always has his own interest in both mind & action. Everything in his world system is functioning for a goal of his, they are not random events, because he is a control-freak.)

Pittman describes warring demons–which look like giant humans and are the cream of Satan’s crop.’ These warring demons are assigned to formulate wars upon the earth. While Pittman is a spirit-led Christian, it is interesting that a non-Christian historian/author William Bramley, (of the Gods of Eden), who believes that the “aliens” were viewed as angels, has found traces of proof that the aliens (angels) were involved in the creation of wars down through the history of mankind. “Now the Spirit speaketh expressly, that in the latter times some shall depart from the faith, giving heed to seducing spirits and doctrines of devils; Speaking lies in hypocrisy; having their conscience seared with a hot iron;” 1 TIM 4:1-2.

Pittman writes about 1 TIM 4:1-2, “In this passage of scripture, we are told that in the last days the devils would have their own doctrine. We know that if the Bible tells us that devils would have their own doctrines, then, most assuredly the Bible would tell us what these doctrines would be. Evidence of what the devils will be teaching is found in the following passage of scripture: ‘But he knowing their thoughts, said unto them, Every kingdom divided against itself is brought to desolation; and a house divided against a house falleth. If Satan also be divided against himself, how shall his kingdom stand? Because ye say that I cast out devils through Beelzebub.’ (Luke 11:17-18)

From this very scripture, it is clear what the devils will be teaching as doctrine. They will be teaching that THERE ARE NO SUCH BEINGS AS DEMONS! Where are these demons teaching their doctrine? They are teaching it in the churches to the Christians! They are teaching their doctrine to the very ones who have the potential to believe that these demons are real and can expose these beings. If Satan did try to reveal himself and his helpers, then his house would be divided.” Pittman warns, “From congregation to congregation, from one church to another church throughout all this land, we find preacher after preacher playing down the existence of demons and even the existence of Satan! Then, there are others who, when they admit that Satan and his demons are real, deemphasize their importance and capability. Not only are local ministers doing this, but many Christian authors are doing this through their books…The false doctrines of devils are intended to enhance the anonymity of Satan and his angels. Much of this misteaching is spread through good Christians who have been sold a lie and really believe what they say.’’ The Word of God is clear that not one sin entered into this world without Satan. Every sin committed by mankind is (according to the Word of God) the result and influence of Satan. However, because Satan and his demons are masters at deception and at staying behind the scenes, and remaining anonymous they are not discovered. They are better at such deception than the intelligence agencies that are Illuminati fronts, and to give credit where due, the NSA, CIA, and MI-6 are good at what they do.

The programmer will be looking for methods to open up a person to demons, and he will be setting up scenarios so that the victim will reject the Spirit of God in their life. 1 JN 5:18 teaches that a person’s identity in Christ protects against the wicked one, so the victim’s identity in Christ will be stolen very soon by the programmers. According to the Word of God, submission and humility before God are also said to be protections against evil spirits.(cf. JS 4:7, & 1 PTR 5:6,8,9). Resistance to catching demons, involves a person “not giving place” to the demons, (Eph. 4:27) and to be strengthened by Christ (Phil. 4:13). How does this happen? The Word of God teaches us that the Spirit of God in our life repels demons naturally. A close walk of fellowship with the Spirit of God is one spiritually natural immune-builder. We need to get Christ deeper and deeper into our lives. However, the programmer will deflect this, and say that submission and humility before God means to submit to some church authority, and of course this church authority will be part of the mind-control abuse system.

The Use of Giving Demonic Assistance to entrap.

One of the principles (giving tactics) of the spirit world is that if you go to get help from demons, they have a spiritual opportunity to enter into your life in other ways. This involves spiritual laws. People, who have been healed by occult healers, have discovered that it set them up for demonic activity in their life. Of course, it is easy to write this, but often only the victims of occult help, who have already learned the lesson the hard way, believe it.

The ultimate that Lucifer can pretend to give is divinity. Divinity is sometimes symbolized by the Illuminati as an 8 on its side or the infinity symbol. The divine within a hierarchy member is called the High Self. It also goes by the name Dian Y Glas or Blue God in the hierarchy’s parlance. The given names of Joan, Janicot, Jean, and Jonet are popular in generational witchcraft families because they mean the High Self. The cabalistic name for the High Self (internal divinity) is NESHAMAH. According to Illuminati hierarchy beliefs, the High Self can only be communicated to via symbols, music and myth that go through the unconscious mind. In other words, don’t talk to it, show it. This is part of the reason Illuminati witch covens make noise in ceremonies, dance and use objects, they believe these are essential to communicate to their High Self.

The Use of Occult Focal Points.

Another principle (giving tactic) of the spirit world is that focal points (occult objects) are used to bring demonic entities into a person’s life. I can not write a technical manual on the mechanics of how or why the presence of evil spirits is aided by amulets, rings, occult jewelry, rock & roll albums, etc., but the fact is, that demonic entities ARE AIDED. It is common for mind-controlled Illuminati slaves to keep demonized nick-nacks given by their programmers, handlers or other contact people. Generally, the mind-controlled slave’s front system is unaware of the spiritual ramifications of the occult objects.

The ancient grimoires are used in rituals & programming. Even if it is seldom that therapists work that deep in a system, it still might be useful to provide a list (for reference sake) of the ancient grimoires which are used to invoke demons:

Almadel, the

Arbatel of Magic, the

Black Pullet, the

Book of Albertus Magnus, the

Enchiridion of Pope Leo

Fourth Book of Cornelius Agrippa

Grand Grimoire, the

Grimoire of Pope Honorius

Grimorium Verum, the

Heptameron, the

Lesser Key of Solomon (aka Goetia)

Key of Solomon (aka Legemeton)

Pauline Art, the

Sword of Moses, the

Theosophia Pneumatica

The Use of giving occult power for SOMETHING IN RETURN. One of the tactics of controlling a person is to give them occult power. Generally, people who have psychic abilities and other occult powers, are reluctant to seek a true Christian faith. Because they enjoy the power they have, they will not trade leaving the occult world and their power behind for freedom.

In the case of many mind-controlled slaves, the programmer will create a legitimate spirit-filled Christian front. He knows that the spiritual principle, “A double-minded man is unstable in all his ways” will work in his favor. Even though he creates a religious front that is opposed to what the programmer wants, a thousand-minded person has no choice but to rely on the programmer. The programmer is the only one who can bring order out of chaos. The victim is so unstable with all his or her programmed and hurting parts, that these parts need their programmer to function. Evil spirits are like unwelcome visitors to our home. They can even be compared to an unwelcome mouse running and hiding in our house. That a visitor or mouse troubles us does not mean that he possesses us. Christians have problems with unwelcome mice as well as unwelcome demons. Mice corrupt our homes, likewise demons come to corrupt the House of God.

The programmer knows what encourages demonic activity. This is why certain occultic structures are built into the mind, and why the systems are set up to carry out occult rituals regularly. Some victims of mind-control are unfortunately going to witches for their therapy. A therapist who is a pagan witch, and who encourages further occult activity, is preventing the victim from gaining freedom. This is because there is a spiritual foundation to much of the control. (Readers would be surprised at how many psychologists are part of the occult world.)

How much of our life has been turned over to Christ? Many Christians have what could be termed “hidden rooms” and hidden compartments in their life & their thinking which they have not given to Christ. In fact, many Christians compartmentalize their life into their secular job and their Sunday of Christianity. In this sense, their lives are like a house with many rooms, many of which are not given to Christ, but are available for other spirits. Even the non-multiple Christian will have problems with compartmentalization in life opening a door to demons. But Christ asked his disciples to go farther than just stay in fellowship, he commanded them to heal and cast out demons. MT 10:7,8. He also commanded his disciples to evangelize. The strongest deliverance have been seen on the cutting edge of evangelism, as a testimony to God’s power.

DOES IT GLORIFY DEMONS TO CAST THEM OUT?

The threat of deliverance has the Satanic leaders of the Illuminati scared enough that they have actively disseminated a doctrine among the Christian churches that it gives power to Satan to believe in demons. There is a kernel of truth here, but it doesn’t give glory to Satan to defeat demons and to expel them. If you were fired from your job, would that glorify you? No. Defeating demons is actually showing how weak they are, not glorifying them. Healing and deliverance are part of the ministry of freedom that Christ demonstrated to his disciples, and they are to accompany the preaching of freedom (evangelism).

PART D. A complete Chronology of how the victim experiences the early spiritual programming. (by Cisco)

Steps of Programming:

a. The mother-fetus trauma
b. The Apple-Woodsman ritual
c. The 1st Ritual Theft of Birthright
d. The 2nd Ritual Theft of Birthright
e. The Satanic Wedding Prog. Ritual
f. The Lockup of the Guardian Angel
g. The Revelation of Demons
h. Providing Satanic Toys
i. The Participation Ritual
j. The layering in of witches/monsters
k. The prog. base-Fairy Tales told
1. The Ritual to Test Loyalty to Oaths
m. Prog. building blocks- Nursery Rhymes
n. The Hell Fire Ceremony
o. The Cutting the Penis Ritual
p. The Traitors Death Ritual

It is important to understand the nature and the sequence of these standard programming rituals. I, Cisco, have decided to reveal them so that the therapists will comprehend better what the programming is really all about. We have touched on a few of these rituals in our two previous books, but we haven’t spelled them out. These programming rituals in real life are extremely traumatizing, even to the hardened cult parents who often must offer their children up to abuse that even they don’t want to happen to their children. When these programming rituals happen to a child, they are so severe that they split the child’s mind. We don’t want therapists and readers falling apart by reading about these programming rituals, so you will find the descriptions of these rituals are clinical, and are written without a great deal of emotional content.

a. The mother-fetus trauma

We have written about the traumas given to the mother and fetus in chapter 1 of this book and chapter 1 of the Vol. 2 book. Between these two books, there are approximately 9 pages concerning the traumas at this pre-birth stage. It could also be explained that the intensity and nature of the pre-birth traumas relate to whether the mother is Illuminati or not.

During the 1940’s-’50s the Illuminati made it a high priority to marry members of the Illuminati to Christians for the purposes of infiltrating the churches. After a 20 year period of intense infiltration to such groups as the Southern Baptists, the Mennonites, the Pentecostal Holiness, the Four-Square, and the Assemblies of God, then they could rely upon their members within those groups to generationally continue their presence within these groups. Initially, they wanted the infiltration to be covered by marriage into these denominations. If a mother were not of the Illuminati, she was typically prepared for an overwhelming trauma to be administered during her pregnancy. If she drank coffee or tea, she could be given potent herbs daily to set the stage for later drugs administered during the torture. The herbs set the stage for drugs which would make the mind more pliable to hypnosis, because many Christians are resistent to hypnosis. When the Illuminati would finally by force grab and traumatize the mother, their goal would be to see if they could get the mother to renounce (blaspheme) Christ. They hoped to use this to blackmail the person into future submission and shame. They also were gaining experience into what kind of resistance they would face in the final takeover. An hypnotic trigger would be attached to this torture memory, and then the mother would be hypnotically made to forget the

b. The Apple-Woodsman ritual.

The powerful Tin Man Ritual is described on page 103 of the Vol. 2 Formula book. It is where the parent(s) presents the child to Lucifer, “the god of light”. The Tin Man appeared in the first picture (page 4) of our illustrated Guide to Monarch Programming. It was positioned there because it is often the first ritual memory. The child eats an apple that is poisoned and dies, and then is brought back to life because the coven has the antidote on hand. Next, the parent dedicates the child to Lucifer; if not, then the child will have its head severed by the Tin Man’s ax. This dedication mocks the Pentecostal dedication. Bear in mind, that some parents and programmers can only justify what they do, because they feel they are following “Lucifer’s orders.” They will say, “We do it to please Lucifer.” They feel Lucifer wants the child in its purest state, so they will do the moon child ceremony in the womb to allow Lucifer to plant his spirits in the fetus (which is a mockery of God’s spirit in the Christ-Child.)

c. The 1st Ritual Theft of Birthright

When the child victim is four, this ritual typically is done to them during the 10 days to 2 weeks of rituals done around Easter. The ritual is not always done at this time. If both parents are Illuminati, then their primary job is to see their children get programmed; but if only one parent is Illuminati, then the group may have to work with the child whenever they can manipulate some time to do so. Also the Illuminati have so many children to put through programming, that many simply do not start this ritual at Easter. But if they are not done at Easter, they may be told when it is done that it is the time around Easter. The programmers have certain windows of time for certain programs and schedules to follow for each child. They can be untrue to the real calendar date, and still set the internal clock/calendars of the slave correctly later.

This first ritual is to make sure the child victim experiences a staged rejection of God where they are found unworthy to be in “His’ Book of Life. This ritual like all the others that we will describe in this series are sealed with rape and the implantation of demons.

d. The 2nd Ritual Theft of Birthright

This second ritual is done shortly after the first ritual, generally a few days after. It consists of a death, burial and resurrection ritual. To die means death towards God, burial means to bury all that makes up a person’s worth, and resurrection means to be resurrected with a new name and birthed to Satan. This and the 1st theft ritual are designed to remove any bonds the deeper alters might ever conceive of having with Almighty God.

e. The Satanic Wedding Prog. Ritual

Within days of the 2nd theft ritual, the Illuminati will follow with a mock satanic wedding. Usually the father will marry his daughter, but there is a chain of responsibility and if the father can’t sexually abuse his child, then the grandfather is next in line, and then the uncle, and then the programmer. They will serve as the satanic covering for the child. At this point the rejection by God is still fresh on the child’s mind, and they want the child to at least remember the rejection, whether they remember the incident or not depends. The child may already have dissociated the previous week or two, so the programmer may simply tell it “REMEMBER THE FEAR WHEN GOD DIDN’T LOVE YOU.”

The child may really be looking forward to this wedding. They may have been dressed up nicely, and may be excited about marrying their father, even though he looks like a giant to the little infant. When their dress is pulled up and they are abused, then the fun stops.

f. The Lockup of the Guardian Angel.

The Internal Self Helper, also called the Guardian Angel of the mind, is magically locked up by the demonic power of the programmers, and a shrewd lying demon substituted in its place. The evil spirits that will be laid in will be the totems of the victim’s bloodline–the spirits of the person’s bloodlines who are to help guide the person.

Many people in the New Age movement who are under total mind-control speak about their guardian angel or their totem guiding them. An example of a total mind-controlled slave doing this are the Indian spirit guides that help Loretta Lynn. Hillary Clinton consults the spirit Eleanor Roosevelt. In order to familiarize the child with the proper demons they will be dressed up in a costume that resembles the bloodline spirit they are to become acquainted with. They will participate in a ritual in this costume.

g. The Revelation of Demons.

At this point, both the front (the light side) and the deeper occult dark side alters will be allowed to see the demons that are layered in. The front side sees them in their Luciferian form, and are scared out of their wits. They may respond to this by having an ongoing fear of monsters under their bed. The front’s fear will keep the front away from trying to go deeper into the system. Later on in adult life, the Illuminati may want the front part of the system to go through a “deliverance”, so they will think they have dealt with everything, and they don’t need to look further. (For instance, this trick was done to a programmed multiple this author has worked with, the result being, the victim gave up any type of therapy or helpful work, because they were sure they’d received the answer to their problems, which would be nice if it were true, but isn’t.) On the flip side, even though the dark side alters are also scared of the demons, who are quite terrorizing when seen by humans, the inherent need of humans to look for supernatural help pulls them toward the demonic. It is an inborn survival trait in most humans to look to supernatural help. By seeing the spiritual (even though these are dark spiritual forces), it becomes a normal function for the deeper alters to commune with the dark spiritual realm.

h. Providing Satanic Toys

The deeper alters will be given candles, knives and other ritual paraphernalia to play with. The establishment department stores with all their demonic toys are helpful, for the parent only needs to go to the local department store to buy his children occult toys.

i. The Participation Ritual

Soon after the wedding ceremony, another ceremony takes place where the child dresses up in the cult’s red and black ceremonial robes. This is meant to integrate them into the cult family. It is an opportunity for the child to feel like it is part of the group and its rituals.

j. The layering in of witches/monster scripts

The normal American fairy tales, which are filled with stories of monsters and witches, are read to the child. The goblins, warlocks, vampires, and witches they hear about will help lay a mental foundation for what will happen later.

k. Cult Fairy Tales are told.

Next, the people in the child’s life who are guiding the programming will tell the child programming stories, such as the Wizard of Oz stories and Alice In Wonderland. In the 50’s and 60’s, the Tall Book of Make Believe was popular. For instance the character Mr. Moon became a foundational part of the programming. Over the years the Wizard of Oz, Alice In Wonderland, and Mother Goose seem to have been overall favorites. The child will most often be in a trance state when these story lines are told. The children will have the stories repeated and they are expected to memorize these scripts. Because the programmers will build upon the child’s awareness of these stories, the stories are modified to better fit the future programming.

For instance, if a programming team is going to use the Goldilocks and the 3 Bears story, they might modify the story like this: The 3 bears and Goldilocks went for a walk. Goldilocks was somewhere she shouldn’t have been, so she was eaten up by the bears. Bears will eat you up. Policemen are like bears. A Policeman found her? Do you know what happened to her? Goldilocks got locked up and put in a cage. Or maybe they might say, Goldilocks was sitting where she wasn’t supposed to.– At that moment the chair is pulled out from underneath the child and the child is probed with a stun gun.

In the last 20 years, tens of thousands of children are getting “Pleiadian” programming, and it is not known what base fairy-tales are being used for this type of programming, or if they are using sci-fi stories as the base. There are tens of thousands of children with programming that can be activated to make them think they were raised on Alcyone in the Pleiades. This is to part of the Grand Deception of the End Times.

l. The Ritual to Test Loyalty to Oaths

The next step is to test the loyalty of the child slave to the oaths that were extracted from it. To prove the child’s loyalty, the coven demands that the child sacrifice another child. From what we witnessed, even after all the abuse and hypnotic tampering of the child up to this point, not one single child was “loyal” to the oath. The inborn aversion to taking a human’s life is strong, and the child will still refuse to do it. Therefore, the cult will have a member guide the child by taking the child’s hand and forcing it to sacrifice the innocent little life before them. In spite of their reluctance, the forced act begins to rip the fabric of the child slave’s mind and to sear its conscience. The cult will be sure to insure that the child is made to feel responsible, and that they are given guilt and shame for the deed.

Once the innocent victim is sacrificed, the child slave is required to cut the bloody heart out and eat it. The child has already been groomed for this, because the cult has been feeding blood in their milk as a pablum. The child has been allowed to get very hungry and then given blood so that in the end hunger is associated with death, and blood is associated with satisfying that hunger.

m. Prog. building blocks- Nursery Rhymes

The Nursery rhymes are now layered in. There is something mentally powerful about rhymes. Mother Goose nursery rhymes have been popular for over a half century for programming little children. The child’s mind will refuse some things (such as it distaste for killing an innocent child in the previous ritual), but the child’s mind doesn’t realize anything devious about the adorable nursery rhymes. The child’s mind will not put up any barriers to learning them. The child has no idea that by hearing these rhymes they are helping lay the foundation for their own mind-control.

n. The Hell Fire Ceremony.

This ceremony is basically the burning up of a child to instil in the child victim fear of disobedience and to show them what hell is all about. The reason this is done will be explained soon. This ceremony is done with one of four possibilities, a. a real baby, b. a dead miscarriage, c. a stage pretend child, d. movies.

For sure, the Illuminati will have a real bonfire, and there will be the stench of death. They will play tapes of screaming, terrified children to amplify how bad it will be in hell. Why do the Illuminati want the children to fear hell? First, if they ever do learn about the Bible, they will “know for sure” that this is the punishment that the God who rejected them wants for them. Next, the Illuminati tell the children that IF they are bad, they will suffer in hell, but if they are good in the cult, Satan their father will protect them and let them rule with him in hell. They want the child to be terrified of Hellfire and Brimstone. This ceremony is often done where there is a crematorium. The Presideo in CA was popular because a underground crematorium was there. Bear in mind, that the child by this time has lost its true self, and is simply in terror at watching a child like themselves turned to ashes. In certain types of hot fires, the child is turned to ashes so quick that the child’s figure becomes a silhouette of ashes. The Illuminati will then begin teaching the child an important item, they will teach it to take on the spirit of the child through guilt manipulation. They’ll say, “Don’t you feel really bad that this happened to her, but you can fix it by internalizing her to yourself. Take the spirit of the child into you.”

o. The Cutting the Penis Ritual.

This ritual is just as it sounds. The child is forced to emasculate another male. This ritual is intended to be severe. It again forces the child to choose between following their oaths or following what their heart tells them is a right. Because they will again refuse to carry out their oath of obedience, and will again be helped to obey, they will be an easy preplanned target of lots of shaming and guilt. This is one of the primary foundations for the shame and guilt that is built into the dark side alters. The child will be hit with sticks by the cult, while the Illuminati coven snarl, “Shame on you, you didn’t obey as you promised.” It is at this ritual, that the Illuminati coven will first begin to double-bind the victim by threatening them, “It’s you or them [the person the child slave is to hurt], you choose.” The little child sees two kinds of people in life, victimizers and victims. He or she will generally choose to be a victimizer. There will other times when the slave will not be given a choice and will have to suffer pain during the rituals.

p. The Traitor’s Death Ritual.

The child victim will be left relatively drug free so they can have full awareness of the Traitor’s Death which they witness. A person will receive the horrible traitors death during a ritual. The strong satanic alters will be built off the dissociated pieces caused by this ritual. And as is standard practice the ritual is sealed by a rape of the child to layer in more demons.

**This ends Cisco’s very informative chronology. Let’s sort out some of the specific programming maneuvers.

Part E. Specific Programming maneuvers. The MANIPULATION OF NEAR-DEATH-EXPERIENCES (NDEs)

People, who undergo Illuminati programming, will be candidates for near-death experiences. In several of the programming scripts, the victim is brought to the point of clinical death and then revived. In hospital settings, resuscitation of heart failure and other deathly events like surgery has produced tens of thousands of cases of Near-death experiences (NDE’s). According to Raymond Moody, who worked with or experienced people experiencing NDEs, the typical NDE involves the person hearing himself announced dead. Then a loud ringing or buzzing noise occurs and a long, dark tunnel appears with a light at the end. The person will meet others and a being of light, and this light-being will play back events in the person’s life, and evaluate his life, and then the person reaches a point where he must go back.

People, who experience a NDE are profoundly changed. Any profound change that follows patterns can be manipulated and the Illuminati have discovered this is simply just another way to manipulate people. The NDE experiences follow patterns. We will not go into the details of why most of the NDE explanations can’t be the actual explanations, but the bottom like is that most explanations fall short and do not explain the phenomena. The frequency and consistency of a tunnel being seen with a light at the end rules out hallucinations in terms of symbology. The mind could just as well see a gate, or keyhole, or a door as an entrance to a new world but doesn’t. Some researchers believe that the answer lies in the structure of the visual cortex, and that the dying person’s center of the visual field receives an ever increasing electrical noise while dying which produces an ever increasing circle of light being seen.

On the flip side, for those who have a biblical perspective, there are explanations that also seem to explain the phenomena. At any rate, it’s been known after Heinrich Kiuver published his research in the 1930’s that the brain has four constants in its Near-Death hallucinations: the cobweb, the grating (or lattice), the spiral and the tunnel. Drugs have been found to produce an experience similar to NDE at times too. Whatever spiritually and physically happens to cause a NDE–and there is lots of debate as to the mechanics of the cause–the common experiences that people have during NDE’s provides a pattern for the programmers to manipulate. Various people, the Illuminati, some Christians, and others believe that Eccl. 12:6-7, –which is talking about when a man dies (“dust return to the earth as it was”) and his spirit returning to God who gave it,–these various people believe that the silver cord spoken about in verse 6 is a cord that links a person to his god. This verse makes a good verse for the Illuminati who do program in wheels and silver cords into their slaves linking them to their pretending-to-be-god masters.

FINE-TUNED

One of the side “benefits” of the brain-stem scarring, the repeated tortures, the attention that is expected if the slave is to survive, etc. is that they may develop extremely sensitive perception. This extremely sensitive perception may come across as ESP, but it is really subconscious understanding of things such as body language.

HIDING THE INTERNAL SELF-HELPER

Psychologists have discovered that deep in the mind is an area of thinking they refer to as the Internal Self-helper. Psychologists who attempt to help programmed multiples have been told to find the ISH (internal self-helper) of the victim. Sometimes the “ISH” have surfaced as ‘‘angels’’ and ‘‘spirit guides’’ in a system. They may regulate which alters come out and hold the body. The therapist may point out to a person that angels and spirit guides are never internal, unless they are demonic. The Christian is permitted scripturally to only be led by one internal spirit guide, and that’s is the Holy Spirit. In some systems, the slave’s “Holy Spirit” may turn out to be a cult ISH.

The programmers were many steps ahead of the psychologists. Even years before the psychologists began looking for the ISH to help them, the programmers had foreseen this and had their bases covered. In everyday life, for normal people, the internal self-helper serves as a type of guardian angel over each person. The programmers during the early LSD trips watch for the ISH. When it surfaces, they lock it up in the person’s mind, and replace it with a demonic generational spirit, which is commanded to report any work done in the system to the master. When psychologists find the ISH and ask for its help, the ISH does cooperate with them, but this demonic ISH is also one of the principal reporting agents that reports back to the master in photographic detail everything that the therapist does. This is one big reason the programmers have always been several steps ahead of the therapeutic community.

INTERJECT DISKS

Splintered souls captured on Interject disks is a subject that is beyond verification but is mentioned here because therapists and “UFO abductees”, and SRA victims of mind-control may run into it. Readers must draw their own conclusions as to what soul interjects are–whether merely a deception, a new technology, or magical demonic manifestation.

Hermetic magic is a nasty form of magic from ancient Egypt. There are a few of the top Illuminati Grand Masters who believe they are capable of carrying out rituals to raise the dead and create interjects onto interject disks. Specialized magic is performed on the dead to raise zombies in order to splinter the zombie’s soul. The Grand Master then believes he can place the splinters of the soul on interject disks, and place these interjects into live slaves.

Interestingly, humans claiming contact with “aliens” have claimed that the aliens can separate a human soul from its body, keep it captured, recondition that soul, and finally implant the soul into another body. Some researchers are claiming that they have evidence of a holographic energy template that is associated with a physical body. Is this the soul? They believe that this template works with cellular genetic mechanisms. There is certainly more to learn about what humans are, perhaps some day these claims about zombie souls will have some scientific merit, but for now they lay in the realm of Illuminati Grand Master high magic.

I have reported upon Illuminati beliefs and practices. Likewise, an anthropologist will report on the practices & customs of a people, whether or not the anthropologist personally practices or believes like the people he observes. Of course, these Luciferian (or should one say satanic practices) are abhorrent and the author has never practiced them, so the author can’t speak from the viewpoint of a witness, but he can describe as a reporter the views of Illuminati witnesses.

One Illuminati belief is that they have managed to design equipment that can catch the soul of a dying person. This capability will play a role in the reign of the anti-Christ. When the Anti-Christ dies, his soul will be captured and he will be resurrected with demons animating the body. When a very high ranking Illuminati adept goes berserk, the Illuminati will insure that they preserve the soul of the man by killing him with equipment that is portrayed in the recent movie Lord of Illusion. This is a mask-brace that fits over the portals of the head and then is screwed into the head to capture the soul as it tries to escape the dying body. Then demons are called in to live off the soul matter.

Normally, according to Illuminati occult knowledge, the demons can only live a short time within a body, but by the mask-brace capture of a body’s soul, the demons can inhabit a body for a longer length of time and create the walking dead. This is that “line between heaven and hell” that the movie refers to. The Illuminati believe that the highest gift they can give Lucifer are captured souls. They will place souls into jars. This is the highest most secret magic of the Illuminati. Notice, that during the Lord of Illusion movie, jars are smashed during the ritual where a soul is captured.

Interviews with alien abductees reveals that some of them believe that the aliens are stealing the souls of mankind. The similarity of the Illuminati beliefs about demons, and the perceived actions of the aliens by abductees are remarkably similar. Also the Illuminati have secretly used special tubing during millions of abortions performed by their abortion clinics to capture the souls of the aborted children. (This is author is not making any claims that they do or don’t succeed, but they believe they are succeeding.)

The movie Lord of Illusion is full of Illuminati/high level Masonic symbology. The movie begins with programming concepts, first the galaxies & stars, then the yellow brick road, then a dust storm… An Illuminati phrase “Flesh is a trap, magic sets you free” is mentioned in the movie. In contrast with the movie, these things are not written to entertain the reader, but with the good-natured intent that therapists and victims may gain something by knowing better what is going on to these Illuminati mind-control victims.

The Illuminati believe that they can suck the life spirit out of a person through intercourse with what they call the Eye of Horus (the anus). This is why the leaders of this World Order (such as George Bush, Bill Clinton, and tens of thousands of others) are into sodomy, they are trying to vampirize all the years of life out of the victim to gain a longer life. Some of the sad child victims, who have been kept exclusively for this purpose do look like the life force has been sucked out of them. Sodomy has its own secret chamber on the cabalistic tree of life.

A metaphysical UFO type magazine entitled WE Walk-Ins for Evolution puts out articles on how souls walk-into a body and how souls braid themselves to other souls. For instance, there was an article “Soul Braiding” in the April-June, ‘96 issue of WE. This appears to be a reframing of various practices that the Illuminati carry out to demonize and control the minds of their people. Rather than speak of a demonization or an interject, front alters of slaves who are not Christians can use metaphysical terms like “soul braiding”. The words soul and spirit, and concepts attached to those words are important in programming. Programmed Mormon children will think they have the “Spirit of Elijah” in them, and will robotically sing their programming, “Follow the Prophet, follow the prophet.”

WHITE GOLD, other information

Since writing about powdered white gold’s ability to make a person clairvoyant, in Vol. 2, it’s come to my attention that Nexus magazine has had a recent article on this. For those who are interested in crystal travel, crystal travel is an OBE also known as astral projection and is covered in the Vol. 2 book as astral projection. Besides the silver cord, some victims have mentioned a supernatural dark red violet umbilical that connects them to the AntiChrist.

picture 1 p_10-1.jpginformation about the picture 

This is a Masonic drawing called “The Second Portal”. it shows nude boys facing a throne undergoing some type of magical ritual. The drawing appears In The Hidden Life in Freemasonry after pg. 198. in 1926, Charles W. Leadbeater, a 33º Freemason, printed his book The Hidden Life in Freemasonry. This book was written for people involved in Luciferian rituals In the higher more occult rites of Freemasonry.  In the preface, Leadbeater talks of butterflies (pp viii-ix), which has the double meaning in the occult of souls (spirits). in the last chapter, chapter 10, he gives Masonic rituals to Invoke angels (demons) through Egyptian magic. In these Masonic temples, the checkerboard square is used in a similar fashion as a magic circle for a coven. This picture is given as a paper trail to show the sex-magic rituals that take place within various Masonic groups.

The Illuminati Sisters of Light alters rarely appear in therapy because they are used in horrendous Masonic rituals, and must be buried very deep in the system. Typically, a Sister of Light would be blindfolded and taken down many flights of steps and through tunnels and would end up in an elaborate underground Masonic temple. She would be used as a nymph.  In one ritual, for example, she’d be given a golden circle band for her forehead, a cloak with a red lining, and a tunic of black silk with golden rays. The hall would have important masons of society who would be sitting in a semi-circle. The Sisters of Light are given to Beelzebub in an excruciating marriage ceremony. There is a veil which fails into 4 equal parts, which mean the 4 corners of the world. The sisters take oaths around the compass, so that the victim feels locked in no matter what corner of the world they go to.

picture 2 p_10-2.jpg
 

p_11-1.jpgabout the picture 

This was some early art work by Cisco to convey what her mind felt as a mind-controlled slave. What the picture shows is the hand of the puppet master controlling his puppet. The puppet is floating–not grounded in reality, but dissociated from the external world in order to survive. All the cities and internal worlds are grids. Everything attaches to grids. The color programming can be seen in the Green, Blue, Silver, Gold, Red, and Yellow colors of the grids. The puppet is totally in the hands of the puppet master and its hands are in a submissive hold, while the puppet master has his fingers covertly wrapped around the left side of the puppet’s head.


CHAPTER 11:  SCIENCE No. 11- INTERNAL CONTROLS 

A. TEACHING OCCULT PHILOSOPHIES
B. INTERNAL COMPUTERS
Installation of the Standard Programming
Front Programs of Front Computer.
Misinformation Computers.
Beast Computer.
Programmer Access to the Computer Areas.
C. INTERNAL HIERARCHIES
THE INTERNAL HIERARCHIES form RATIONALES

A. TEACHING OCCULT PHILOSOPHIES

This is an important ongoing aspect of the mind-control. Vol. 2, introduced this subject:

“Learning plays an important part in perception. The Programmers try to get their victims to subscribe to philosophies and ideas that will make it hard for them to rebel against their controllers. This is what is termed indoctrination. The same methods of teaching that others [any other educator would] find useful are employed. Ways of thinking are incorporated by the slave via handlers, programmers, and the cult they belong to. “Everyone tries in their own way to make sense of life. This is a natural brain function, so that the human mind can understand how to deal with the future. The mind takes raw data, and then applies some type of logic, and comes to conclusions. Once accepted these conclusions can be as hard as nails, and they will defy any attempt to change them, even in the light of new evidence. If the Programmer is smart enough, he can get an alter to logically believe anything. Once the belief is embedded, it will remain there tenaciously.”

In the previously book, it was discussed how indoctrination is done. I will provide more of the details on how indoctrination is accomplished, because it is not being done via rational logical thinking. Rather, the programmer or cult leaders want to access a person’s non-logical imaginative right brain. In order to do that he must distract the left brain.

Bill Clinton, an Illuminati handler of slaves, and a good liar, has his speeches prepared in such a way that they take advantage of the brain’s natural functioning to manipulate it. Bill Clinton, when he gives a speech will initiate it by pushing everybody’s green buttons. He will say a number of things that everyone wants to hear and will agree with. This is called “generating a YES SET’. There will be a number of these, the number of these often desired is 3. Then the second stage is to bring in TRUISMS that are facts that after the audience has already been mentally saying yes, the audience will probably accept these facts without any disagreement. Finally, after the approx. three YES SETs, the approx. three TRUISMS, Bill will plant the suggestion, such as “support me in such and such.”

On important points, Bill will move his left hand, to help imbed certain commands to his viewers. He will also use some subtle hand signals/codes to trigger mind-controlled slaves too. He will ask during his talks for people to imagine or visualize what he wants for them. Again this is manipulation directed at the right brain.

One of the most crucial things that protects the mind-control of the Illuminati is the frame-of-reference and world-view they build into people from the cradle to the grave. Our previous experience and the information we have available directly influences how we assign meaning to information we receive. The Illuminati’s control over so much of society allows them to create people’s frames-of-references. Fragments of information that people receive which do not relate to the person’s frame-of-reference will be discarded. A person needs a place in his frame-of-reference to hang information on. The person may puzzle over the tidbits of incongruent fragments, but being unable to relate them to his world view, he finds himself unable to file the fragments away in a meaningful manner.

Some of the front alters of very well controlled slaves have had world views (frames-of-references) that believe, a. there is no such thing as Satanic Ritual Abuse, b. there is no such thing as a conspiracy, c. there is no such thing as absolute truth, d. there is no such thing as sin. e. There is no connection between God, living a moral life, and finding Truth. f. there is no such thing as Multiple Personality Disorder. g. My religious organization can do no wrong.

Making a fundamental change in our frame of reference is a frightening task. This is why victims of total mind-control who have been A. programmed not to believe that a New World Order conspiracy exists, and not to believe Satanism and SRA exist, and then they are B. placed in a culture that reinforces this programming, end up being extremely hard to break free of their mind-control.

Conferences where mind-control victims can begin to see the significance of all the fragments of clues that they discarded are very valuable. This author has met a number of mind-controlled victims who didn’t know what their problem was, but had countless clues in their life. But these clues were useless fragments of information until they were given a framework to use them.

For instance, one victim of Illuminati total mind-control knew nothing about the significance of the Illuminati bloodlines, nor who the bloodlines were. She stated that her relatives were so and so, and it was then pointed out to her that she was from Illuminati bloodlines on both sides, and the significance of the bloodlines was gone over. Now a meaningless piece of information (her genealogy) had been given a framework of meaning. But this was just one area of many which the establishment has carefully controlled us to have misunderstandings about. Understanding her heritage, allowed her to understand why she was selected for mind-control, when it seemed to her that others might have been better candidates.

Occult philosophies by their very nature create frames of references that make it hard to see reality and to see the Truth in Jesus Christ of Nazareth. The New Age, Witchcraft, and Hindu idea that all paths lead to God, is utter nonsense. The idea that Christians are narrow minded is nonsense, but is a common idea taught by many people. It is narrow minded to insist that Christians must go to the same place Hindu’s end up, if Christians seek truth. The New Agers see only one track for truth seekers, since they hold all paths lead to God. The concept is even illustrated by the wheel in India’s flag. All spokes on the wheel lead to the same center point of the circle.

The Biblical Christians see two tracks for truth seekers–some don’t find God and Truth, but rather find an imitation of the truth and end up eternally lost, while some do find God and Truth. Perhaps at this point the reader is getting slightly upset because he or she is thinking, “Fritz is preaching what he believes,” and is also thinking “there is no absolute truth.” That is exactly my point. By accepting the lie–the programming lie–the frame of reference–the paradigm that there is no absolute truth, then every time a fragment of absolute truth comes to you, you will reject it.

When I showed evidence to two followers of J.Z. Knight (J.Z. Knight was/is a mind-controlled slave, who has set up an Illuminati front religion in Washington State where converts are subjected to mind-control techniques) that children were being sacrificed by Satanic covens and that this was evidence of Satanic ritual abuse, their world view could not accept the concept of absolute wrongs and sin. They responded, “These satanists may well be killing their babies, but that is not abuse, that is only your idea. It’s just your idea that it is abuse. It’s not abuse to these people.”

In review, one of the hardest shells protecting the programming of a total mind-controlled slave is when the front part of their system, which holds the body regularly, has been indoctrinated into a frame-of-reference that will not allow them to see the reality of what is being done to make and keep them in slavery. A final example of this, are the zealots of the False Memory Syndrome Foundation who are mind-controlled zealots. These zealots, who are launching a counterattack against books like this, have had their world-views carefully constructed by a combination of several techniques of persuasion, a. mass indoctrination, b. subliminal messages via the T.V. and other places in their lives, c. controlled education, and Neuro-Linguistic Programming, in addition to all their regular trauma-based programming. It’s like their world-view is the hard varnish that is first seen & heard, protecting people (even themselves) from realizing that the underlying motivation of these zealots is not their world-view, but Total Mind Control Programming.

Within witchcraft, the cosmology that is taught is that a person was originally swirls or vortexes of energy. This coupled with a belief in reincarnation, allows the mind-controlled victim’s witchcraft alters to believe that they began with some molecules of energy forming, and that death is nothing, because everything continues on a vast wheel of reincarnation. The beliefs that are inserted into people via witchcraft are conducive to locking the person into their servitude. European culture, which has been based on Christianity, has had a respect and value on life way beyond the oriental view. For centuries Europeans have marvelled about how little value human life has in the oriental view. This is because these Oriental views are identical with what is now called New Age beliefs, which are also about the same thing as witchcraft. Gnostism/ witchcraft philosophy justifies seeking and having power. Persons, who are power hungry, gravitate to this philosophy. Persons who are inculcated with the desire for power rationalize their behavior with the witchcraft philosophy which they are raised in, or programmed to believe, or “discover” to set their minds at ease.

B. INTERNAL COMPUTERS

Internal computers are elaborate arrangements of dissociated parts and memories built into the slave’s mind to cause the victim’s mind to have mechanical computer-like responses.

For years, the internal computers escaped the detection of the therapeutic community. The illustrated Guidebook introduced the subject to readers and the Vol. 2 gave the first major & so far to date the only comprehensive expose of these computers. This Deeper Insights book will provide a number of pages to deepen the readers understanding of this important subject. This is all fresh (never been exposed) material so don’t write and ask what book it came from. You may have to refer back to our previous books for a complete understanding.

Installation of the Standard Programming.

The Illuminati take a screen about 6’ by 6’. On the screen is a grid with a Greek or English letter. In front of the screen are colored flashing lights. The flashing colored lights prevent the conscious mind from seeing the screen, but the subconscious mind sees the grid. An Alpha symbol or capital A with tails at the base will be shown on the grid screen for Alpha programming. A Beta or B will be shown for the Beta Programming screen. The programming that is placed in using the different programming associated with various Greek and English alphabets can be read about in Chapter 4 of the Volume 2 Formula book and Chapter 4 in this book. The victim is strapped into a chair with their head locked in place and their eyes forced open. They must endure the flashing lights and the subliminal grid and letter on the screen.

There is a paper trail that they are using flashing lights for hypnotic control of a subject in order to place in messages at the subconscious. One of the pieces of the paper trail was an article “New Device To Induce Hypnosis Developed” in the Chicago Tribune (June 7, 1959). The article was about a Dr. William Kroger, who had tested the use of flashing lights on 200 obstetric patients at the Edgewater hospital in Chicago. Interestingly, this Dr. Kroger lived in Beverly Hills, CA and worked with a Sidney Schneider of Skokie, IL.

Schneider was skilled in electronics and Kroger was an obstetrician. The article said, “The pulsing pattern in reality an electronic brain wave ‘achieves control’ of the brain’s alpha rhythm, thus inducing a drowsy state, according to Dr. Kroger.” “The apparatus…operates on the principal of subliminal and photic stimulation of brain waves…about 30 per cent of the subjects who had received no explanation or had no knowledge of what the brain wave synchronizer would do were hypnotized to various degrees.” Now these type of machines are available to any bozo who knows where they are sold.

Another piece of the paper trail is a government study by the Defense Intelligence Agency of July 1972, entitled Biological Effects of Electromagnetic Radiation (Radiowaves and Microwaves) –Eurasian and Communist Countries, ST-CS-01-169-72. DIA,, July, 1972, pp. 77-86. This study, of which this author has a copy, in part VI is written about “Light and Color as a Means of Altering Human Behavior.” Although the report claims the communists are the ones who are using flashing light and color to alter human behavior, the real inventors were the Illuminati, and both the Americans and Russians are using flashing colored lights for programming.

This DIA study also reports on an American symposium held in the at Tulane Univ., Covington, LA in 1957 concerning the effects of flickering light on the brain. The participants of the 1957 American symposium drew up a paper with 11 conclusions, which included a. flickering light interferes with the human nervous system, b. flickering light can put a person to sleep or into a trance, c. flickering light can interfere with the brains s alpha waves, and d. “photo driving of the EEG by periodic flicker is a well known phenomenon although many subjects do not show the effect…”

During the ’50’s through at least the ’70’s, the Illuminati used flickering lights to place into the subconscious the grids used for the various computers. Each block on the grid would have codes, programs, memory and alters attached to it. In other words, dissociated parts of the mind become parts which are built into computers. The mind of victim is hijacked by the programmer.

To fully understand what the computers are, we must understand the mind-set of the programmers. The programmers are looking to Lucifer for their inspiration. An imitation of God’s Book of Life for people, is for Lucifer to construct an internal computer that will contain all the history of all the alters. It might be helpful if some items that were in the illustrated Guidebook and in the Vol. 2 book were briefly touched upon again, as we discuss how the internal computers are made. Remember, that a computer is placed one per layer (section) and that they also build in back up computers, and that the computers have coded memories stored in them, as well as coded programs.

The deepest computer is called the Beast computer, and it has an eye (the all-seeing-eye) that opens and shuts like a camera lens. It can go behind the veil, and this is in mockery of the rent veil of the Holy of Holies. When the internal computers are built, the Illuminati use a doll house with different colored rooms for the child to visualize what is being done. Each room in the dollhouse has a different color. Each family of alters (a group of alters that are on the grid together) has the exact same color code. In the Vol. 2 book, we showed the color coding differently–we showed the color coding running diagonally across the grid, it can be done in any fashion, but generally the color code for a single family (alters a-through-in on the chart) is the same, and the cover program to hide it is that the colors run diagonally. What that means is that an entire family of alters, say alters Mary 1 through Mary 13 will all be connected by a color ribbon alter (who works just for them) back to that same color of computer room. All the family get the same programming, although they hold separate memories.

This will help therapists understand the behavior & programming patterns of various alters. The Beta and Delta alters, who as the readers realizes live in entirely a deep trance imaginary life, have entirely negative programming in their computer section. The Betas and Deltas have two ribbons per alter, which is an exception to the rule. This is so they can function together–espionage, seduction, and assassination all go together. Another type of alter who gets two ribbons are the 13th alters which connect two levels. These poor alters have so much programming going off, and mixed signals, that they are real basket cases.

When a system is seen in its entirety, the more powerful system hierarchy and Illuminati hierarchy alters will be coded with Platinum, Gold, White, Purple, Bronze & Silver. Front alters who will be helpful will be coded pink and yellow. Orange alters will be perceived as helping alters, but they are actually guards, protectors, and they protect sections of the system below them, which they usually can’t see, and often don’t know that they guard. Alters coded brown, tan, grey, or clear will give the therapist & support team fits, because they are full of deceptions & cover programs, and illusions. Host alters or key front alters may have a clear or white diamond as their gemstone. Alters who cover things up may have obsidian as their gemstone. Other alters who play along with the programming may have such gemstones as Fire Opal, Topaz, and Turquoise. (Also see Vol. 2 , p. 328-29.)

Front Programs of Front Computer.

The front computer that is linked to the front section will be different than the deeper computers. It’s big difference is that its programs (which are linked to all the front alters) are logical. The logical programs of this level provide the alters with logical reasons and excuses to believe the lies, and to reason their life out. Of course they draw false conclusions from good logic using faulty information.

Misinformation Computers.

Misinformation computers are laid in on the 3, 6, 9 and 12 levels. Thousands of demons are placed into the Misinformation computers to not only run them, but to dispense misinformation. Since the demons are not under drugs or hypnosis, they are under full awareness and are very crafty in their deceptions. When memories are too clean and too complete, the therapist should suspect that they are getting a demonic false memory. Bear in mind the child is in a drugged state during much of the programming and has blurry eyes and may have their eyes rolling in the back of their head. They have their short term memories splintered by electro-shock, and are fed lies about their memories via hypnosis. Real memories are in bad shape when retrieved. (This is why some persons apply “hypnotic correction programs” to restore the memories back closer to the original event, such as reversing the hypnotic air-brushing/blurring of faces that was programmed into deeper alters. The mind put in the distortion program and seems in some cases to be able to reverse the distortion program.)

Beast Computer.

End time names such as Gog, etc. are believed to be given to some of the computers within recent years, to represent the names of the 10 countries that will make up the global government of the New World Order. For years the computers have been called “Beast” computers with the big important Beast computer laid in at the bottom of the mind in the hell pit. Remember that the core is at the bottom of the mind below the hell pit–but she is almost always never connected to the Beast computer. This is because the core receives very little programming. The core is told she is sleeping beauty and that her father Lucifer, who she is married to, will someday return for her and wake her up. Lucifer wanted the purest virgin bride he could get, so he marries as his top bride within the system the innocent core. The core is told she belongs to Lucifer. The core is protected by the false trinity in the pyramid and the Grand Druid Council. The core is linked to the Grand Druid Council, but not the carousel. In the VoL 2 book, we reported the cover program, which is that the core is in the carousel. If therapists want to take out computers they need to take them out from the first computer that was laid in, the Beast computer (at the bottom of the mind), and take them out in the sequence they were put in.

Programmer Access to the Computer Areas.

When the external programmer wants to put information into the computer he opens up the various “rooms” (areas or programs so to speak) and then the internal programmers take over. The story line used to build in access to the computer is the King’s Chamber story in Alice In Wonderland. The king comes to the chamber and he has the right to make 3 wishes (the 3-part access code). If he doesn’t make 3 wishes, everything disappears like in the Alice In Wonderland story. 3-part access codes are usually DATE, COLOR, ALPHA-NUMERIC CODE. But they could be three objects within the room, or they could be a sound, a touch, and a third-sight signal. Generally, the Illuminati have used the actual date that an alter (a part) or a family of alters was created as the actual code for that chamber of the computer. That chamber will then be linked to all the alters of that family. So lets say a family of alters was created on 4-30-64. This would normally be written on the charts as 43064 or because the Illuminati often work with things backward, some programmers will write it 46034. Which ever method, forward or backwards, will then be used consistently as the first part of the access to that family’s computer chamber.

There are 26 rooms in the dollhouse, or in other words, 13 families of alters on a grid with 13 mirror images to mirror those 13. This was very standard for years. When the programmer places the information in it is put on a mental imaginary “computer disk” or in the older models “spools”. The reader needs to remember back to the hypnotic surgery that we discussed in the Illustrated Guidebook and the Vol. 2 book, to remember that the victim has their insides hypnotically removed and the spools or computer disks placed inside of them.

Let’s say a therapist touches one of the misinformation computers, which are the most assessable. These computers will then activate mirror images and lots of demonic activity. The therapist may end up integrating demons, and working with constructs and mirror images, and the proper excitement by the real alters is even programmed in. These are what may be termed “FALSE HOPE PROGRAMS”. The system will rest and relax and the therapist will declare everything finished. (For years, the two authors have tried to explain this, but it seems to be a hard subject for therapists to understand.)

Finally, a very important warning, tampering with the computers is serious business, from the co-authors experience in working with therapists, we strongly advise them not to tamper with the computers, because the self-destruct programs are so strong. The self-destruct programs will turn the person into a vegetable, or into pure insanity if the victim survives the suicide programs. The skill level among the therapeutic community is not yet at the level needed to tamper with the computers, but we hope with the publication of this book and with more experience that that will someday become a reality. This author, Fritz, is aware of therapists that have tried to tamper with the computers, but the programming has beaten both them and this author. For instance, it took lots of work to discover that this author’s week of work with a front computer actually was only playing with a misinformation computer and its FALSE HOPE PROGRAMS.

C. INTERNAL HIERARCHIES

OVERVIEW.

The internal structuring of alter systems are built with alters being arranged in hierarchies. Often the hierarchal arrangement is a mirror of the group carrying out the programming. The CIA and other intelligence groups use SECTIONS. You will find the grids of alters arranged in SECTIONS. The Illuminati have a Grand Druid Council and other councils, which will be mirrored within the system. Alter families will be set up as mini-covens within the system, often with 13 to an alter families. HUBS will be created in reflection of how Satanic groups are organized into hubs.

THE INTERNAL HIERARCHIES form RATIONALES

Some of the structures within the programmed alters reflect the philosophies of the ancient occult world. The structures are buttressed by the occult beliefs that are connected to them. Cisco, who has helped me co-author two books on mind-control, pointed out how the ancient world had a god which could only be adored by one family. Each city had its own gods, and religion was tied to the family and the city units. This was the Religion of the Hearth, as some have called it.

The Roman Gens was an extension of this, the Gens were political associations of several families who collected into a religious union, as the Illuminati families have done. When we see how the ancient religious customs were, we see how the internal Illuminati structuring parallels this thinking. Each internal city or world is assigned a god (demon) during the programming. The Illuminati families have collected themselves into a Gen. This is an example of how the internal structuring is buttressed by some occult philosophy which will in turn buttress itself by its claim to antiquity, as if length of practice makes a mistaken superstition valid. The myths of the occult world and their symbology are very extensive. The programmers have many items to choose from as they construct the deeper internal worlds of an Illuminati slave. There is a twisted logic to many of the names they give.

The Magna Mater is the sybil, the symbol of truth, a goddess who can take the form of a city in the occult world. To apply the name MAGNA MATER to a part of the mind then creates a triple or quadruple pun–we have something that can be truth, a city, a goddess, and a sybil. The programmers thrive on puns. The personification of the stages of spiritual life which are called fairies are named White Ladies, Green Ladies, and Black Ladies. Dissociated parts of the mind can be given the name Green Ladies, and then the secret meaning attached that they are fairies that connect to the system’s spiritual development. The possibilities seem endless. Since cabalism is behind much of the Illuminati programming, and double images are so important–some systems may incorporate the dual being known as Metatron on top, and Samael on the bottom. This is the occult concept that all phenomena has an essential ambivalence. This is the Gemini concept.

Another Cabalistic concept that appears in programming is the silver palace also known as the silver thread that connects man to his origin and to his end. The palace in the occult world was to have secret chambers (dissociated areas in the subconscious) which hold treasure (programming truths). In the occult world’s beliefs, it has been said that the palace of glass represents the magically appearing ancestral memories of mankind from the Golden Age. In Druidism, the horse was linked to the solar wheel, which had more wheels within itself.

During programming: Concepts are linked in series, Concepts are mirrored, and Concepts are related to the whole. The function of occult symbols lends itself to such applications.

p_11-2.jpg

 

p_12_1.jpg

about the pic

Barbie Dolls are used for the mind-control programming. Interestingly in 1995, while fighting over Barbie dolls a 6-yr. old girl in Modesto, CA stabbed a 7-year-old playmate with a knife while telling her she was going to kill her. Police did nothing with the girl who had used the knife except to have the parents take her. One wonders what was this all about. Meanwhile Barbie Dolls have drastically changed and are now very occultic.


CHAPTER 12 SCIENCE No. 12-EXTERNAL CONTROLS 

Advertising & Trauma-based programming.
ASSET CONTROL
SURVEILLANCE.
HARASSMENT
CAR COLORS
TELEVISION
BUILDING FAMILIES AND COMMUNITIES THAT HAVE INTERWOVEN PROGRAMMING
ISOLATION
BOARDING SCHOOLS & BODY PROGRAMMING.
When controls fail, THE FINAL SOLUTION.
The Programmers

Advertizing & Trauma-based programming.

The Oregonian newspaper, Sat. Mar. 9, 1996, (p. E1) ran a story about women entitled, “She sells, She purrs, she percolates, she’s a power player: Ads reflect society’s view of women.” At the top right is an ad with a Marilyn Monroe type of model with puckered lips selling cigarettes. Below her is a picture of a girl with the caption, “You were born a daughter. You looked up to your mother. You looked up to your father. You looked up to everyone. You wanted to be a princess. You thought you were a princess.”

The themes in this article match the thinking within Monarch type programming scripts. Is this coincidence, or just a sign of the times, that so much in our lives echoes programming scripts? Some of the ads in today’s magazines are obvious manipulations of the Monarch trauma-based mind-control. For instance, Royal & Sun Alliance Insurance Group controlled by the Rothschilds had an add in a recent popular magazine which has nothing but an entire page of violet-blue haze with an eye [an allusion to the All-seeing eye] staring out of the haze along with the big caption “YOU HAVE OUR ATTENTION.” This would reinforce many of the mind-control programs. Ostensibly, the ad was for insurance.

Another ad that is an obvious manipulation of mind-control programming is an Aveda ad placed in Vogue & Vanity Fair magazines, where a woman’s face is broken up into 4 pieces and put into a glass bottle along with a white daisy type flower & a yellow flower. The caption reads ‘You, bottled.” the subcaption reads “what would you be if you came back as a pure-fume?” Notice the play on words that the programmers love.

Another more subtle example is a Virginia Slims ad which is designed to hit the subconscious of the Monarch slave. This ad has three thrones across the top of the page. In front of the three thrones is the Virginia Slims lady. The first two thrones have a chubby queen sitting on them & the third on the far right is vacant. The 3 queens are an allusion to the 3 hierarchy queens and the maiden-mother-hidden crone sequence in programming. The queen holds a scepter which adds some more power to this as a subconscious trigger. The caption reads, “Virginia Slims remembers the shortest reign of a female monarch. Queen Katrina of Valenski was crowned at 10 past the hour, lit a cigarette at 12 past the hour and was dethroned at 13 past the hour.”

The hidden meaning behind this is that the front woman, remembers on a subconscious level the threat that if you don’t remember the authority & power (thrones), and the power structure (the triad), then you shall remember the programming threat. This ad subtly reinforces the programming threats to slaves.

Other ads that manipulate programming use Wizard of Oz, Alice In Wonderland and Star Wars themes. They use allusions to the programming scripts and show subtle occult symbols. The hypnotic eye is very popular in ads. Some ads simply seem to be a reflection of how our culture has become part of the programming, for instance a Sportsman device that is sold by an add with a big caption “Split personality”, or a Merit cigarette ad that sells its product with the caption “Split personality.” A watch ad for Bulova has an empty chair with a banner over it “Personality of the year’ and the caption “Is your watch making you a missing person?”

During the programming, shifts in time certainly do make certain alters disappear, so although this ad is may not be a direct attempt to manipulate programming, it certainly is a product of today’s mind-controlled society.

>>>On the next pg. is an ad appealing directly to the thinking of a programmed multiple.>>

p_12_eve1.jpg

 

p_12_eve2.jpg

ASSET CONTROL

SURVEILLANCE.

Over the years of watching the Illuminati manage their slaves, it is clear that they like to have their slaves under constant surveillance. Often times they use friends of the slave to keep tabs. For instance, the teams that they put together are great for using to monitor other team members. If they find that the acquaintances and friends of the slave are not contributing enough, they will send out people to keep tabs on the slave.

Surveillance of a slave is done either to let the slave know that he or she is being watched (obviously as an intimidation device), or is done in line with common intelligence/police type tactics. Many times the Illuminati surveillance is so obvious, that this author has to conclude that it is intentionally so. For understanding undetectable surveillance, Hollywood movies are not teaching manuals. To watch someone’s house the people working for the Illuminati will often try to maintain about 2 blocks distance. If they have to they can use battery operated bugs or bugs installed using the wiring in the house. If they want to get high-tech they can use fiber optics or even go to satellite-ground antenna monitoring of what a person is doing. If you are looking for a bug, get a counter that will go up into the higher ranges, & expect them to stick bugs away from equipment like refrigerators and air conditioners which make a lot of noise.

They also have directional microphones called bionic ears which can be used to pick up outside sounds from a distance. Sophisticated filters can be placed on their listening devices to screen out background noise. Lasers beamed onto windows can be used to listen to conversations within a building, but these have the drawbacks of picking up building noises, & noises from the street. Laser listening devices are going to function better at night. Telephone taps are commonly done by the Network to control and monitor their slaves. There are low-tech and high-tech ways to do this. The bottom line is that all telephone conversations in this nation (U.S.), all CB-radio traffic, all radio traffic has been totally monitored since before the 1970’s. It is a given that anything you say on the telephone will be fed into a large computer which has words to watch for. Unless you believe you are a high-profile person, who is monitored 24-hours a day, it is best to stay away from mentioning trigger words in your conversation.

Often times, the people monitoring slaves team trail the slave. Teams of people can track a person on foot or in a car. Using a team is the best method in many situations. Often they tag team follow a person. They also have team formations that are used to keep track of a person, such as one person on the opposite side of the street, and one immediately behind and one far behind. Having a distant tracker allows the close one to avoid being caught if the slave tries to take evasive action or to ambush the stalker.

If the person watching the slave gets really concerned they may end up using special headlights called “blackout lights” to shadow the slave at night, which are shielded to keep the beams of light from showing in front or to the side of the car. These special lights light up the road in front of the car only, so the car remains unseen by the stalked mind-controlled victim.

There are a number of secret devices to aid the abusers in their control over environment that the slave must live in. The intelligence groups often use a radio device called AGENT ALERT which looks like a ballpoint pen which sends out a continual beeping when it is activated.

Besides their Global Positioning Satellites, intelligence has Pegasus, a ship that can monitor & record electronic transmissions while sailing offshore. After reading the mind-control significance of Pegasi, it clearer the Navy picked an appropriate horse to record electronic transmissions. Even though all slaves have Reporting Alters, & are tracked in other ways, the Illuminati often has redundant safety features to monitor their “human assets”.

Because the slave is monitored from so many different unseen methods, it does begin to seem hopeless to some to ever be free of Big Brother. If you add to all this, that the slave has been programmed repeatedly that there is no escaping their All-seeing eyes, then it is easy to see why so many slaves acquiesce & just comply.

A Vol. 2 reader, who caught onto to what the book is about, pointed out how the new film The Juror reflects their approach to control. The movie shows a controller who is obsessed with who he is controlling. This holds true in real life for the programmers too. Even though Dr. Mengele programmed thousands of people in his lifetime, he had his “pets” (Lieblings), pet slaves that he was obsessed with. In the movie, the controller says, “Do what I say.” and “If I can keep you scared, I can save your life.” These could have come straight out of a programmer’s mouth. He picks out a juror who is creative & intelligent to control, which are the criteria for selecting victims in real life. The movie illustrates some of the concepts which actually happen that this chapter 12 is trying to describe.

HARASSMENT

One of the things that the Network does to any slave that tries to break free, and the Illuminati does to any of their hierarchy slaves (like this book’s co-author Cisco) who tries to get free is to harass them constantly.

Stephen Knight who researched the Freemasons wrote a chapter in his book The Brotherhood, The Secret World of the Freemasons about how they harass any opposition. (See chapter 16, pp. 140-149). When Knight interviewed ex-Masons they were in abject fear of the Masonic system. They didn’t even want to talk about how much power the Freemasons have to ruin careers, spy, and harass people. Since Knight’s book is available for the reader, and since there are a number of books (like those from Loompanics) that are very detailed on harassment techniques, this book will only briefly touch on the subject. However, just because it is only briefly mentioned please don’t mistakenly think this is a minor topic.

The Illuminati and their co-workers the Freemasons, the Mishpucka, and CIA put outrageously great amounts of efforts into harassment.  It is not unusual for a recovering victim of mind-control to find their favourite pet killed, or human faeces in their oven, and other bizarre harassments that show the warped character of the controllers. The CIA, the Masonic leaders, and the Mishpucka keep extensive files on everyone for purposes of blackmail, and coercion. The Masonic leadership of Freemasonry in a given area will have thousands of “blackmail” files on essentially everyone of importance in their area. Upper echelon people such as judges, lawyers, and politicians are generally controlled via IRS infringements, and many of the lower echelon people are controlled through weird sexual items. This is where the Delta and Beta Monarch slaves are so helpful to the Illuminati. The Freemasons can have a sexual alter seduce a man, contrive a scene, and then an alter that is in a death trance takes the body so that the target of blackmail thinks he has killed the woman. It works great for blackmail. (This information comes from several witnesses who are informed about the blackmail files & their methods for blackmailing.)

CAR COLORS

The Vol. 2 book apparently neglected to relate how the colors of cars are used to access victims. Some victims around the U.S. are programmed to red & white cars. Autos with both colors will arrive. Red & White are the great mystical colors assoc. with the 2 headed eagle & Janus. White cars are for high ranking slaves. Very specific sexual slaves are picked up in red and black cars. In N.Y. brown Volkswagens were frequently used for accessing slaves. Two tone cars will be used to trigger particular alters to come out. Another common practice that is occurring across the U.S. is for the draconian enforcers to borrow cars from dealerships so that they can’t be traced. The license plates of cars are also used as access triggers for some slaves.

TELEVISION

The all pervasive television, which has been so common place in the lives of Americans, is used a great deal to manipulate trauma-based mind-controlled slaves. Tests by researcher Herbert Krugman have shown that TV watchers used their right brain twice as much as their left brain and released Beta-endorphin into their brains. In other words, TV watching trains the mind to go into an altered state. If a blank black frame is interjected every 32 frames on a show, a 45 beat/minute pulsation is created that puts a person into a hypnotic trance. In Vol. 2, it was brought out how the Lawnmower Man movie, displayed the symbols used to program many of the slaves. The movie was advertised with the slogan “God made him simple…Science made him a god.” This is a slogan fitting for an Illuminati member who has been programmed to think he is a god, and yet he must serve his superiors.

BUILDING FAMILIES AND COMMUNITIES THAT HAVE INTERWOVEN PROGRAMMING

The Illuminati has increasingly wanted to keep their members within Illuminati family settings. They have had more problems with placing their members into families which are not part of their mind-control than they have had with children which are raised within Illum. or cult type settings. If one or both of the parents have programming, the Illuminati often weaves the programming together so that the entire family becomes one programmed dissociative mechanism.

For instance, on a ritual night the child as it is being tucked in bed will say to the mother, “MAY I HAVE A DRINK OF WATER.” This is the code trigger for the mother to give a drug in a drink. The child is to say another trigger to the parent when they get the drink, then is programmed to drink the drug. The second trigger causes the parent to switch to a personality that feels compelled to get the family into the car and drive. The family all mechanically click into a series of alter switches and end up at a ritual. They mechanically trigger and reinforce each others programming as they return from the ritual, and end up at home with everyone’s front alters not knowing what the family has been involved with. Here we have an entire family whose testimony could reinforce each other that they did nothing but sleep at home that night!

There are some locations, for instance, two entire towns in southern Utah that are a strict offbeat shoot of Mormonism, which are entirely programmed multiples. There have been some television shows about entire towns being caught up in secret satanic rituals. It is true, but they also have occult mind-control programming along with those rituals. Here we see how an entire city can trigger each other’s programming and all be involved in the insanity of all this without full awareness. This is in fact, where the entire world is headed very rapidly.

ISOLATION

While control mechanisms are put into place world-wide, the Illuminati still must keep their children isolated from the world. To successfully raise a child slave, the mind-control’s success depends upon isolation. Children involved in cult rituals do not talk to other children. If they are caught talking, the standard punishment is to tie the child to a dead child. They want their children to shut down, and only do what they are told. They want the child to respond only to the Programmer and its Mother of Darkness. They heap lots of guilt upon any child that breaks the rules of no communication. Children still manage to learn to speak with their eyes and fingers. They become skilled at this even though they know the punishment will be severe if caught.

BOARDING SCHOOLS & BODY PROGRAMMING.

Most people would naturally think that this topic would belong to this chapter. Actually, this topic DOES NOT belong here. But it was placed here on purpose, because its placement here will emphasize its point, while not detracting from the Cranial Manipulation and Genetic Manipulations sections of Chpt. 8.

Boarding schools not only give the elite a chance to isolate, educate, and indoctrinate their children, but it is also a great way to layer in body memories that instil a subconscious ethic of elitism. It is an attitude of elitism that allowed the Pharisees to crucify Christ, the Nazis to kill Jews, and Moslems to kill Hindus, etc.

How does this layering of body memories happen? The memories of our bodies are buried within the cells of our bodies. Therapists have known about body memories for some time now. Cellular level body memories are way beyond the grasp of the consciousness. Buried into a deep unconscious repression are the body memories of the social values (elitism) that are contained in how the social elite walk, hold a spoon and knife, how a person must stand up straight with good posture, and how the person holds and uses their facial muscles. The boarding schools teach an entire world of elite mannerisms such as “keep a stiff upper lip” to “don’t hold your knife in your left hand.”

West Point performs the same programming of body memories, to insure that their West Pointers develop an elitist attitude. The effect of these body memories is to subconsciously encourage the mind into thinking that it is elite. The erect posture and military gait that this author was taught carry with them the implication of superiority. While the conscious awareness of this elitist indoctrination can be gotten in touch with and defused, there are none-the-less buried elements of body memory that resist tampering. This author would ask his fellow West Pointers, how do they feel if they walk like a general around civilians?

This type of body programming contributes to an ethic of elitism. How it is created and how it works has not escaped the detection of the elite bloodlines. This is why the British boarding schools are so strict about “good manners.” Through a plebe year of bracing, the mind develops body memories of how to stand in a military brace. Some cadets are so traumatized by their first year, they never return to a normal posture. A military brace has been proven to not be the healthiest posture. It’s this author’s contention that the military brace is insisted upon for mind-control, and not for health reasons.

Victims of mind-control have been placed in many humiliating body positions, as well as many painful body positions. It takes years of slow subconscious work as well as deep massage to pull these up and work with these body memories. For instance, during the tortures to create cat/kitten alters, the children often crouch like cats. Kitten alters will retain their body memories of crouching (hunching the shoulders) like a cat. Sometimes when their masters begin to beat on kitten alters, they will reflexively crouch like a scared kitten. And what’s with the woman called Queen Sheri who has been managing the two professional wrestlers Macho King and Randy Savage? Both of these professional wrestlers are part of a “family” called the New World Order. Queen Sheri walks around in a cat costume and facial makeup that makes her look like a real wild cat. Is this wildcat a Monarch wildcat?

When controls fail, THE FINAL SOLUTION.

The World Order can send out teams of professional killers. (What’s new?) These killers often emotionally distance themselves from their victims by thinking of their “targets” as inferior forms of life that they are “liquidating”, “terminating”, “cleansing from this planet”, etc. In 1996, a 4-member hit team took out the entire Bill Mueller family (Bill, Nancy, and 8 yr. old Sarah). Bill was a member of the Special Ops Group SOG of the Navy Seals. He had become a Patriot and a big gun dealer living in Arkansas. Someone decided he was too much of a threat and sent a team in to take not just him but his entire family out. Booz-Allen & Hamilton, Inc has been hired by the NWO to infiltrate the militias. This author has known in this area several disobedient slaves, and one therapist who lost their lives to assassins, as well as another one who committed suicide according to programming. But anymore what isn’t dangerous? Crossing the street and eating at a restaurant can kill you too. The reader knows this. This author also knows of several who were going to be killed but escaped. One troublemaker was to have been sacrfficed but broke free and hid, another was ritually tortured, buried alive, and left for dead, but managed to survive.

The Programmers

p_lewis.jpg


APPENDIX 1 – PROGRAMMERS/RESEARCHERS 

DIRTY PSYCHIATRISTS involved with MIND CONTROL
DIRTY RESEARCHERS
DIRTY TAVISTOCK CONTROLLERS
SOME OF FREEMASONRY’S MIND-CONTROL PEOPLE
REMOTE VIEWING MIND-RESEARCH
ODDS & ENDS
LIST of PROGRAMMERS (continuation from the list given in Vol. 2)
A FEW random CIA/INTELLIGENCE MEN involved WITH MIND-CONTROL
Anton LaVey–Profile of a trauma-based mind-control programmer
WHAT TO LOOK FOR.
MICHAEL AQUINO, a military/cult mind-control programmer
HIS CAREER
PERSONAL HISTORY.
UNDERSTANDING The CHURCH OF SET
UNDERSTANDING SOME OF AQUINO’S PROGRAMMING.
BACKGROUND
SEQUELAE OF ABUSE

The Illuminati set up the Josiah Macy, Jr. Foundation to direct some of the mind-control its research, and its financial affairs. Harold Abramson became one of its leaders. One of the Macy Foundation’s directors has been military intelligence chief and relative to Winston Churchill, Gen. Marlborough Churchill. Both Winston and Marlborough are of the corrupt Illuminati Marlborough family.

DIRTY PSYCHIATRISTS involved with MIND CONTROL

Dr. Van O. Austin, Utah
Dr. George Brock Chisholm, Tavistock
Dr. Lawrence D. Ginsberg
Dr. Robert G. Heath
Dr. Paul Hoch, Scot. Rite Mason
Dr. Robert Howell, Utah
Dr. Nathan Kline, Columbia Univ.
Dr. Nolan D.C. Lewis, dir NY State Psyc Inst. & Scottish Rite Mason
Dr. Amedeo S. Marrazzi, Missouri Inst. of Psychology
Dr. Sudha Tayi

DIRTY RESEARCHERS

Dr. Ross Adley, formerly of the Brain Research Center at Univ. of So. CA, now at Loma Linda Univ. Med. School, CIA, worked on ELF waves and the brain, and EM radiation.

Dr. Emmanuel Donchin, head of Psyc. Dept. at Urbana-Champaign’s Univ. of IL, worked on thought-controlled machines.

Dr. Wayne O. Evans–U.S. Mil. Stress Lab, Natick, Mass

Dr. Dave Morgan, Lockhead-Sanders, worked on the syntel

Dr. Arthur Upton, head National Cancer Inst.

DIRTY TAVISTOCK CONTROLLERS

W. R. Byon

Richard Crossman

H. V. Dicks

Ronald Lippert

Brig. Gen. Dr. John Rawlings Rees

SOME OF FREEMASONRY’S MIND-CONTROL PEOPLE

Dr. Robert Hanna Felix–33°, dir of psyc. research for Scott. Rite, oversaw the Lexington KT programming facility

Dr. Franz J. Kailman-jewish Nazi who did research at NY State Psyc. Inst. while at Columbia Univ.

Seymour Solomon Kety- exec. of Scot. Rites psychiatry experiments, & nat. dir. of American Eugenics Soc.

Winfred Overholser- overall leader of Masonic research into mind-control, sup. of St. ‘Elizabeth’s Hosp. a mental hospital in Wash. D.C.

REMOTE VIEWING MIND-RESEARCH

Private organizations doing research into RV in the U.S. are run by “retired” intelligence people.

Joe McMoneagle — “retired Intelligence officer” left govt.’s Stargate to set up “private” RV research.

ODDS & ENDS

· Hillary Clinton, who is a Grand Dame in the Illuminati, started in the early 1960s a group of mind-controlled slaves which is called Royal Project. She reportedly exercises power in the White House via 16 staffers who have been given authority over the different departments of government. One mind-control victim claims that one of Clinton’s talks gave triggers for him to kill. One of Clinton’s never mentioned cronies, who works closely with him, and travels to meet him at various locations is Charles Whitmore of Arkansas.

· One of the big areas where a great number of mind-controlled slaves congregate are MUFON meetings. An example of a slave handler, who is also a programmed slave is Dea Martin, who tells people she has worked for the government and who does aura readings. She controls her sidekick Jim Courant, a commercial airline pilot. An example of a programmed multiple with “alien” programming was serial murderer Robert Moody. Film taken of Moody in jail shows his MPD (DID).

· Kleinknecht was National Director of NASA during the Moon Flights when lots of mind-control programming was being done by both the Masonic lodges and NASA. C. Fred Kleinknecht was not only director of NASA but the Sec. General of the Scottish Rite 33°.

· The Doors Singer Jim Morrison used the occult code name Lizard King and The Exterminating Angel. He was involved with mind control.

· Col. John Alexander, (also called Doctor) who has been living in Arizona, and who has been in charge of making psychic warriors for the U.S. Army, has the inside reputation of being the Illuminati’s top mind-control programmer.

· James Monroe. It turns out that there have been two James Monroes involved in programming. The first one was bn. perhaps in the 1920’s, was 6’ tall, and he was the CIA man who set up the Society for the Investigation of Human Ecology, a CIA front for mind-control, He had a very polite front in spite of being a sadistic programmer. The second one was James Monroe Martinez, bn in 1938, 6’ tall, who was busy setting up underground bases such as the one at Los Alamos under the cover of working for GE. One report said he died in 1965. His mother owned a Catholic half-way house in Albuquerque, NM.

· There are all kinds of events happening around us that show evidence of mind-control. One example, is the case of a Catholic man quitting the monastery and becoming a NASA physicist.

· Part of the success of the mind-control lays within their child procurement abilities. The’ corrupt Finders group, which consisted of FBI/CIA men who helped procure children, were led by Marion Pettie, who was called “the Stroller” and “the Game Caller” by Finder members.

* The establishment allowed CIA programmer Dr. Louis Joyon “Jolly” West to examine Jack Ruby in his jail cell. When Ruby refused to admit to insanity, West labelled him “paranoid and mentally ill” and Ruby was placed on pills, which were called “happy pills”. Ruby believed he was being poisoned by the establishment.

· Part of the success of the mind-control lays in the fact that there is such a widespread network of pedophiles. On Channel 5, May 6, 1996, during a show “Priestly Sins,” it was stated that “at least 3000 [catholic] priests are sexual abusers of children.” The program stated that 600 priests have been reported to law enforcement within the last few years for complaints of sexual abuse of children. The show stated that catholics are silenced and punished if they speak up. Priests who speak out are penalized. For instance in 1985, a senior official at the Vatican’s embassy in Wash. D.C. discovered rampant sexual abuse and wrote a report on how it should be dealt with responsibly. The church promptly buried the report.

LIST of PROGRAMMERS (continuation from the list given in Vol. 2)

Stephen Aldrich

Morse Allen

Dr. Charles L. Brown

Col. Campbell

Dr. Cleghon

Hillary Clinton

Jack F. (Uncle Jack) & Jill Coogan

Sen. Alan Cranston

“Gen.” Earman

Don Ebner

Dr. Charles Evans

Dr. Tom Fox

Floyd & Mildred Frost & dau. Carol Frost Buls

Dr. George S. Glass

Dr. Goldshe

L. Wilson Greene

Dr. James Hamilton

Dr. Robert G. Heath

Richard Helms

Dr. Paul Hoch

Dr. Hyde

Dr. Korim (sp. not known)

Dr. Lowenstein

Mateland

Dr. Gary E. Miller

Dr. Moore

Dr. Martin Orne

Dr. Rosenberg

Dr. Woolsworth Russell

Cpt. George White (nickname/cover name Stormy)

Dr. Robert E. White

A FEW random CIA/INTELLIGENCE MEN involved WITH MIND-CONTROL

John Bacon
Tennant (Pete) Bagley
Col. Matt Baird
Bill Brown
Richard L. Conolly, Jr.
Burt Courage
Cong. Bud Cramer
Jerry Droller
Robert Feldman
Jim Ferguson
J. Peter Grace
Cynthia Hausman
Richard Helms
William J. Hood
Jack Kindschi
John McCone
Charles McKay
Cord Meyer
Comm. John R. Miller
Herbert Quinde
Wade Thomas

Anton LaVey–Profile of a trauma-based mind-control programmer

When someone coined the phrase “dynamite comes in small packages” the phrase was an apt description of Anton LaVey. (Released photographs of LaVey prevent people from realizing how short his is.) In a personal letter which Anton LaVey wrote, “With my swastika, I’m strong. My Satanic amulets give me power. I’m not a misfit anymore, with pimples and a heart murmur and flat feet.”

Anton LaVey is famous for having started the Church of Satan. He chose Walpurgisnacht, April 30, 1966 to start the Church of Satan in San Francisco. Previously he had began holding midnight magic seminars in 1960. He and his occult friends held Magic Circle meetings until he founded the Church. His Church of Satan is officially recognized by the U.S. government and the military.

He turned an old Victorian House, at 6114 California St., San Francisco into what has been called “the Black Castle”. It was for years indeed black on the outside, and LaVey would drive a hearse. Anton LaVey kept a full grown 400 lb. Nubian lion named Togare from Ethiopia at his house (which was allowed both inside & outside) that scared the neighbours when it roared. He also has kept a black leopard.

LaVey loves to play his Hammond organ music in his black castle as if his house were a stereotypical horror house. Inside the house are rooms used for rituals, occult books including books on cannibalism, coffins, a maze of secret passageways, and LaVey’s private saloon called the Den of Iniquity. He called his satanic covens “Grottos.”

This author is aware that the Church of Satan got Grottos going in the following cities: Amsterdam (Magistralis Grotto, Neth.), Boston, Chicago, Dayton, Denver, Detroit, Edmonton (Can), Indianapolis, Kansas City, Las Vegas, London (Eng.), Los Angeles, Louisville, New York, Paris (Fr.), Phoenix, Portland (OR), St. Petersburg, Seattle, Silverton (OR), and Vancouver (Can).

Undoubtedly, there are other groups, as well as a scattered following of individuals. The Church of Satan has had many Ph.D.’s. The church has had a high percentage of professionals such as: doctors, lawyers, teachers, former FBI agents, IBM executives. Cult underground film maker Kenneth Anger was a member of the Church of Satan. An ex-high priest of the Church of Satan told this author how he was recruited for the position of high priest. He was promised anything he wanted in life, any woman, any money etc.–and they made good on much of that promise. As high priest, he micromanaged everyone’s lives in his grotto. His people came to him for permission and advice and orders for everything. It wasn’t just mind-control, it was total control of their lives. But giving orders and micromanaging the lives of many people became a drag.

One of Cathy O’Brien’s abusers was LaVey’s High Priest Merle Kilgore, father of Steve Kilgore. LaVey (bn. April 11, 1930) comes from a Rumanian bloodline from Translyvania. As he grew up he love the story of Frankenstein. As a teenager he loved the occult. He dropped out of high school to be part of the Clyde Beatty circus.

LaVey likes to work from dusk to dawn. Like his ex-right hand man Michael Aquino, another mind-control programmer, both LaVey and Aquino are fascinated with the Nazis. (Michael Aquino’s wife Lillith Sinclair was formerly the head of the Church of Satan’s NY Lillith Grotto.) LaVey sports a Van Dyke beard, and a head shaved in the same fashion of executioners during the middle ages. Most of his followers never see him. Although LaVey has gotten wide press coverage, thanks to William Randolph Hearst’s newspapers and his publishing companies like Avon, LaVey is a very secretive person and very rarely shows himself to even his high priests, or even talks to them.

His Church is a collection of self-sustaining dictators. He exaggerates the numbers of his church, apparently by claiming people who come in contact with his church. Before we discuss more about his organization and their rituals, let’s touch on his role as a trauma-based mind-control programmer. Anton LaVey has openly advocated the creation of android humans. Even more startling is a music video shown on TV in which Anton LaVey personally gives a graphic description of how Anton LaVey intends to make the listener into his “mind-controlled sex slave”. The audacity of this is mind-boggling. But then LaVey has tended to be more frank than other occult figures. The approach seems to be “I’ll shock you so boldly, that you will not believe what I am saying, but will think its an act.”

Taking inspiration from Orwell’s 1984 LaVey wrote, “Up is down, pleasure is pain, darkness is light, slavery is freedom, madness is sanity…” This is actually the language that is used at times in the mind-control programming! Anton LaVey has been the mind-control handler/programmer of a number of Hollywood actors & actresses, including Jayne Mansfield and Marilyn Monroe, who both serviced him as sexual slaves. Jayne Mansfield, who was a High Priestess in the Church of Satan, shocked people when on a USO tour in Vietnam she asked for a satanic religious service. Sam Brody, one of Mansfield’s handlers, had a bitter struggle over who would control Jayne, and one of LaVey’s followers claimed to have tampered with Brody’s car. Anton LaVey has also been the programmer of his daughters such as Karla and Zeena and his son. An ex-member of a satanic cult in the Ozarks said, “If LaVey says jump, you jump.” Some of his followers call him ‘‘Uncle Anton” as if they were programmed by him. LaVey’s cover is that he is simply a showman, a buffoon. His cover has fooled many people, the truth is the man is not to be trusted and has a lot more evil power than people have realized.

LaVey has always had what some describe as a “warm relationship” with police. In fact, he was on the police force in the 1950’s as a photographer. The police were reluctant to question LaVey about the death of Jayne Mansfield (4/19/33-6/28/67) who was one of LaVey’s high priestesses and slaves in his Church of Satan. Her color was pink. Anton LaVey has been seen going onto military programming bases, and was at the NORAD area in Colorado for a while.

Dick Russell interviewed Anton LaVey with his approval. Russell wrote up the interview in “The Satanist Who Wants To Rule the World”, (Argosy, June 1975, p. 41) that the Anton LaVey believes that he and an elite force of Satanists will rule the world. LaVey took an obscure occult tract from the 30’s and some thoughts from HG. Well’s book The Island of Dr. Moreau for a ritual. From this, he came up with a ritual which includes these stanzas:

“Man is God. We are men. We are gods. God is man.”

When the reader is done reading this book, he will see how this ritual can fit in perfectly with trauma-based total mind-control. In fact, when people attend the Church of Satan’s secret rituals, once people enter the ritual room two hooded guards prevent people from exiting prematurely through the closed doors. The rituals have been reported as being very disgusting. It well publicized that LaVey uses naked human altars for rituals, after photos were published of his satanic baptism of his 3 year old-daughter Zeena in May 1967. Does the Church of Satan involve summoning demons and worshipping Satan. Yes, most definitively. For instance, here are the some of the words of an important invocation used by his satanic rituals:

In nomine Dei nostri Satanas Luciferi excelsi! In the name of Satan, the Ruler of the earth, the King of the world, I command the forces of darkness to bestow their Infernal power upon me!…By all the Gods of the Pit, I command that these things of which I speak shall come to pass! Come forth and answer your names by manifesting my desires! Hail Satan!”

LaVey’s book The Compleat Witch (NY Dodd, Mead, 1971) p. 266 advocates that one achieve self-understanding and “embrace and cherish the demon within him.” In LaVey’s book The Satanic Witch (LA: Feral House, 1969) he states that a witch to be successful must make a pact with the devil. His church loves to chant “Hail Satan”. They like Crowley’s law, Do What thou Wilt. LaVey & some of his members teach that at the core of each person is a demon waiting to be released.

LaVey loves Black Masses and desecrating anything sacred to Christians. LaVey urges people in his books and talks to bring out their “darkest” urging. He hints at human sacrifice in his Satanic Bible, by having a section on it, but is careful not to go too far out on a limb publicly. He always publicly denies that Satanists should do human sacrifices. One of the doctors of the San Francisco Church of Satan is said to have brought LaVey’s church a severed human leg from the hospital he worked at, which was basted in Triple Sec and eaten by LaVey and his group. Most of the rituals are done in secret, there are no way to confirm rumours that they eat human flesh, but knowing the mentality of some of his church members, they would do it just to check it out as a new experience.

Illuminatus William Randolph Hearst gave Anton LaVey some big help. His Avon Publishing published his Satanic Bible in 1969 (it was first released in Dec. ‘69). Since then it has reportedly gone through over 30 printings. LaVey’s next book The Satanic Rituals also was published by Hearst Avon in 1972. It talks about the power that blood sacrifices give the magician. Hearst’s papers also gave him publicity.

LaVey is always thinking of ways of promoting his theology. Years ago, he had a topless witches Sabbath on San Francisco’s North Beach. In 1990, the Church of Satan went into the Heavy Metal music business. The Church of Satan puts out a monthly magazine The Cloven Hoof which for most members is their main indirect communication from Magus LaVey.

WHAT TO LOOK FOR.

One of the most asked questions is, “Fritz, what does one look for?” One of the best covers for Illuminati kingpins is religion. Another is philanthropy. Philanthropy ties in with Illuminati beliefs that your good deeds must balance your evil deeds to gain power–it’s a Gnostic cabalistic view point. The Illuminati kingpins are great philanthropists even though much of their philanthropy is self-serving.

Perhaps giving an example of a family that is suspect due to their circumstances would help illustrate this point. There is such a family which has gone almost undetected for years, and although some people fear them, they have not been reported on. Just because the police place a person on the suspect list, does not mean that the person is guilty. Everyone deserves the right to treated as innocent, until proven guilty.

One of the groups that concern this author are the rich ultra-secretive ultraconservative Talmudic Jewish groups. This exclusive group keep their children away from contact with the outside world and send them to exclusive, semi-secret schools. An example of this would be the Reichmanns of Canada, who are billionaires, and have had some connections to the Rothschilds of England. It’s not that this author has problems with people observing their religious beliefs strictly (or in the ultra-conservative Talmudic groups, “ultra-strictly” better describes their extreme strictness). It’s great that people have standards of belief and conduct. However, the author sees the same patterns of legalism and secrecy that pervade Old Order Amish groups, — except in the case of families like the Reichmanns, the potential for mischief is great, because they are not involved with milking cows, but international banking.

While most people are simply ignorant about the Amish but are not fearful of them, people who know rich billionaires like the Reichmanns scared to death of them and a heavy cloak of secrecy envelopes them. Renée Reichmann was the great matriarch of the Reichmanns of Canada who are Talmidim Chakham, followers of the Talmud. They are not Hasidic. She is a descendent from King David, and King Solomon. She lives in Toronto. Her great-grandfather, a Gestetner, was one of the wealthiest men in Hungary. Most of her family lives in Montreal, two of her sons live in Toronto. Her children are Eva, Edward, Louis, Albert, Paul & Ralph. Samuel Reichmann is the father of the dynasty in Canada.

In 1929, his egg business made him rich. He learned how to work finances and currency exchanges between different countries to make money by tricks to circumvent legalities. Their family has also gotten Rothschild financial help, and during W.W. II they worked with Koppel, who ran the Rothschild’s City Bank in Gibraltar. Their family did a great many things during W.W. II from the trading center Tangier in North Africa. Tangier was located in a position to trade between the Axis and the Allies. Also during W.W. II, under the direction of the Bank of Spain the Reichmanns and others kept the Spanish currency artificially high, by creating an artificial demand for the currency. The Reichmanns made perhaps millions of dollars on currency exchanges during the war years.

Don Eduardo Reichman was the administrator of del Real Estate & Commercial Bank of Tangier. Eva Reichmann married a British merchant banker. Albert Reichmann is President of Olympia & York Developments Ltd. Paul sits on the board of the Canadian Imperial Bank of Commerce (CIBC) & on the board of Rockefeller Center Properties, Inc. (a real estate investment trust for some of the Rockefeller properties in Manhattan.) Albert sits on the board of the Mt. Sinai Hospital in Toronto, and on the board of Landmark Lands Co., Inc. which owns some of the great golf courses in Palm Springs, CA. The Ontario Ministry of Consumer & Commercial Relations has offices in buildings owned by them. They tried to buy banks in Israel. Their sect of Judaism has a Yesodeh Hatorah school for ultra-orthodox boys. Their children have very little exposure to outside world. Their children do not have access to newspapers, television, or radios. Ralph and Paul were privately educated in England at Gateshead. It’s a perfect setup for trauma-based mind-control.

Samuel Reichmann is known among his kind of Jewish sect as a philanthropist who supports Torah institutions. These Talmudic families consider pedigrees and genealogies very important, which is very much in line with the Illuminati’s mind-set. The reason that this family is mentioned is that the Reichmanns haven’t been mentioned in my previous books, and the circumstances that pervade the family have the earmarks for what this book is about. It may be that this family of billionaires consists of only wonderful people, but it is a given that most of the readers would be considered animals by these strict Talmudists, who would never allow any of us of the wrong bloodlines to be accepted into their “in” group. Obviously the Rothschilds are of the right bloodline.

Likewise, international bankers tend to be a Machiavellian clique, (that is not this author’s opinion, but the opinion of honest hearted person who have ran in those circles.) Why has this clique accepted a family like the Reichmann’s from such a narrow-minded judgemental sect into their fold? This paragraph is not written toward anyone specifically, it simply calling our attention a family of billionaires that no one knows about, which lives in veil of secrecy, and a religious setting that would make mind-control as easy as imaginable. (The Reichmanns would deny what’s been written here.)

There are victims of mind-control coming in to therapists from conservative Jewish groups, and at least some of these are Illuminati. The religious front could just as easily be Christian. Some of the readers of Vol. 2 reported back that the book helped them unveil the religious fronts that had helped derail their suspicions of puzzling situations that don’t add up. The next programmer to be written about uses the front of being a leader of a Satanic Cult. I say front, because Michael Aquino has created a public image for his satanic cult, and hides behind that public image. Anytime someone wants to reveal the ugly truth about him, he hollers to the effect that he is being persecuted by a wild witch-hunt. He hollers that people are just having a knee-jerk reaction to his satanic occultism, and that he is really safe.

MICHAEL AQUINO, a military/cult mind-control programmer

An OVERVIEW. Michael Aquino has been a trauma-based total mind-control (Monarch) programmer for the DIA Psychological Warfare Division. He is also a prominent public satanist. A photo of Aquino in his military uniform is in the center picture section of Carl A. Raschke’s Painted Black (San Francisco: Harper & Row, 1990.) Other books contain various pictures of him in satanic garb with ritual items. Most of the programmers have chosen to remain in the background, Aquino with his enormous ego, has chosen otherwise.

Senator Byrd (KKK leader & Freemason) and Aquino have done a great deal together over the years, and have been like a team. With the legal expertise of U.S. Sen. Robert C. Byrd, Aquino established the Temple of Set, a satanic cult as a legal religion recognized by the U.S. government and the U.S. military. This exclusive cult was designed to give these unchallenged criminals of the Network:

A. a legal organization whose membership consists of a mixed group of slaves and handlers, B. a market outlet for their illegal drugs and porn, C. a good public, legal, openly satanic front with which to attack all media coverage of ritual abuse.

The controlled media could now excuse itself from covering ritual abuse, by saying that they had been threatened to be sued by the Church of Set. Although the Church of Set has had the entire power of the establishment protecting it from investigation and criminal prosecution, the climate of control over the United States is still not complete enough for Satanists to openly get away with their mind-control. By identifying itself so intimately with the Church of Set, U.S. military intelligence has given the world an open trail of clues to help whistle-blowers expose the mind-control that has been going on throughout most of this century. Michael Aquino openly associated with men like President Ronald Reagan at the White House, again giving us the leverage to expose the secret satanic philosophies of America’s leadership. Most of these men lead double lives, and due to the mind-control it has been hard to establish (except for eye-witnesses) that they are secret Satanists.

HIS CAREER

The army has known about Michael Aquino’s Satanism from the beginning, clear back in 1968. Aquino (and some of his satanic lieutenants) received a High security clearance (reportedly level 6), and he served with the World Affairs Council.

A dozen leaders within the Temple of Set were Military Intelligence officers (for instance, Capt. Willie Browning and Intelligence Officer Dennis Mann). Aquino wrote “From PSYOP to Mind War: The Psychology of Victory” published in the establishment’s prestigious Military Review magazine. Aquino writes in this “From PSYOP to MindWar…” article, “…we shall create MindWar. The term is harsh and fear-inspiring, and so it should be: It is a term of attack and victory…” Aquino is a sadistic programmer, who loves to inflict pain on others.

Aquino has a doctorate in political science. He has two masters degrees (one is in political science, Univ. of CA, Santa Barbara, where he also got his doctorate). Aquino is Airborne qualified. He studied at the U.S. National Defense University. He was in Military Intelligence in Vietnam & Germany, and the Presideo. He was a Defense Intelligence Agency attache, and taught political science on the university level. He reported directly to the Joint Chiefs of Staff and worked one on one with the Secretary of Defense Cheney. He is a pseudo-intellectual whose ego and astronomically-large pride gets in the way of real learning.

He was the former national commander of the Eagle Scouts Honor Society. (The Boys Scout system is heavily influenced by Freemasons and contains unfortunately some perverts that try to take advantage of the system for their own perversions.) There was a massive coverup in the Presideo Day Care scandal in which Aquino was involved in. There were hundreds of witnesses of the abuse. The military and intelligence put strong pressure on the San Francisco police to get them to back down from doing anything to Aquino. During that time period, the Pentagon transferred Aquino from the Presideo back to the National Defense University, Wash., D.C. (And later he wound up in the St. Louis area.) During the investigation of the Temple of Set, the FBI claimed they had no record of such an organization. The military at the Presideo, had a spokesperson tell the press that Aquino was a good soldier who did his job. Aquino hides behind his religion. In his Scroll of Set Aquino accuses the father of the girl who pointed him out as her abuser as persecuting him because he is a Satanist. Aquino writes, “Also relevant is his profession as a Christian clergyman; I certainly doubt that he would have made such an outrageous accusation against any Lieutenant Colonel who was not known to be a prominent Satanist.” (p. 4 Oct. XXII)

The truth that everyone will realize on their own is that any loving, caring father when he discovers some pervert has severely sexually molested and tortured his daughter is going to go to the police no matter what religion the villain belongs to. In 1985, U.S. Army major Grady McMurtry of Berkeley, CA and Kenneth Grant’s OTO got into a legal battle over who was the actual chartered OTO lodge in the U.S.

Col. Michael Aquino of U.S. Military Intelligence watched the legal battle, and wrote these comments in the Scroll of Set Vol. XII no. 5, Oct. ‘86, “While sitting in the courtroom watching Judge Legge preside sternly over the slug-out, I couldn’t help wondering if he had any idea he was ruling on which group had legal claim to anal sex as the supreme religious sacrament in the United States.” Witnesses report that one of Aquino’s favorite types of sex is necrophilia, which of course can also be carried out with alters that are in a death state.

PERSONAL HISTORY.

Michael’s father was an Italian Catholic. A Canadian police document that this author has indicates that Michael’s mother was Betty Ford. Michael’s wife is Lillith Sinclair. Besides being a Satanic High Priest & Ipsissimus, and an Military Intelligence Officer in Psychological warfare, Michael was a stockbroker for a while. In 1970, he joined the Church of Satan, and led a grotto in Kentucky. Michael gave lectures on Satanism at the University of Louisville, and used his house in Louisville for rituals. Aquino claimed to be anointed as the Second Beast, the one that Aleister Crowley prophesied in The Book of the Law. (See Aquino’s The Book of Coming Forth by Night.) While LaVey shaved his head and wore horns to look the part, Aquino cut his hair in a widow’s peak, plucked his eyebrows, and had a 666 tattooed under his scalp.

UNDERSTANDING The CHURCH OF SET

His Temple of Set was set up using ranks borrowed straight from the secret Illuminati–Priests or Priestesses, Adepts, Masters (Magus or Maga), and Ipsissimus or Ipsissima. (The Order of the Golden Dawn also uses the rank of ipsissimus. His cult uses new terminology such as Setian for Satanist. It’s a common tactic of cults to use new terms to separate the cult followers from the external world.

In Aquino’s bi-monthly periodical The Scroll of Set (Vol. XIII, No. 5, Oct. XXII, 1987, pg. 2 Aquino states, “Christianity is finished as a serious contender for the minds of intelligent humans.” Aquino’s brand of Satanism attempts to pre-date Christian ideas and goes make to Egyptian Hermetic magic and mythology for its symbolism.

Aquino also studied the Black Order and the SS in Germany and attempts to incorporate Nazi occultism and symbology into his satanic orders. The Temple of Set advertised in occult magazines, computer bulletin boards, and ads in the San Francisco Yellow pages. When the Temple of Set expanded to Britain, David Austen from Kent, England, became Aquino’s High Priest in Britain.

To let the reader see just one more example of collaboration behinds the scenes of the Network, a Jesuit member of the Temple of Set continued teaching at a Catholic School after he joined the Temple. Aquino coined the word Xeper (pronounced keffer) to mean the process of evolving a higher consciousness. Scientifically conducted research by Graphoanalysts has determined that a preoccupation with x’s means a preoccupation with death. Aquino and some other Satanists show their preoccupation with death by their fascination for words that begin with the letter “x”. Aquino’s girlfriend Linda Blood has supposedly left the Church of Set and was at a conference that this author attended. She was very antagonistic toward the victims of mind control at the conference, and acted in every way like a cult plant. She was very disruptive of what the victims of mind-control were trying to gain at the conference.

He has written in favour of black magic and left hand path, but since most people don’t know what black magic & left hand path is, buzz words. Aquino stated on Ophray’s show that Satanists work “for the good of humankind.” How? By exploring the “freedom of the will.” The undercurrents of his writings in his publication The Crystal Tablet of Set is that he and his followers have power while the rest of us are basically wimps. Witnesses report how actual human sacrifices have been alternated with faked sacrifices in the Temple of Set so that it is difficult for witnesses to tell the real from the fantasy. The Temple of Set, like the Illuminati have strict rules that members are not allowed to keep incriminating items. Their precautions to go undetected resemble the Illuminati’s precautions.

UNDERSTANDING SOME OF AQUINO’S PROGRAMMING.

Like so many programmers, Aquino flies all over the country, and has victimized people in numerous states and military bases. Michael Aquino’s programming is standard military-type programming. Aquino puts in his own spirit guide into people. He likes to use his own version of Star Wars, with himself as Darth Vader, for his programming scripts. He programs in sexual and death (suicide) programs–such as the Rivers of Blood suicide protection program, and all the rest of the various types of programs.

His Temple of Set functions as a programming vehicle. The rituals are designed to break the practitioners grip on reality and logic and take them into the world of visualization, and creativity. Members of Set take on a magical name, they attempt in rituals to become another persona, which is a magical double of the person called “KA”. And this ka work is done on the astral plane. Aquino is friends with Paul Kantner who is part of the mind-control scene and who put out an obvious programming song entitled White Rabbit.

In the Vol. 2 book, the significance of Leviathan was covered. The Church of Set has an Order of Leviathan headed by James Lewis VIº of Baxley, GA. Michael Aquino is familiar with all the standard programming, the Wizard of Oz and the other fairy tale themes. He is very proficient at programming, having many years of experience. In 1981, he used Cathy O’Brien to make two HOW TO films for training military officers in the skills needed to program slaves. These two training films were entitled “How to Divide a Personality” and “How to Create a Sex Slave.” (See Cathy O’Brien’s monograph “Dick Cheney and Reagan’s ‘Hands-On’ Mind Control Demonstrations” written/released 6/92.) President Reagan respected Aquino and encouraged the military to learn his programming techniques.

Aquino likes to work with Catholic mind-control victims. He is proficient at manipulating the concept of hell and of doing satanic reversals like the Black Mass.

On the following pages are a little of the paper trail on Mind-control Programmer Michael Aquino:

· Some favorite photos of Michael Aquino in satanic garb.

· A two page letter of Aquino showing his fascination with Darth Vader. He rewrote his own version of Star Wars to use as a programming script. Programmers are given the freedom to decide what scripts they want to use.

· last page of a letter by Michael Aquino showing his preoccupation for Hitler and Nazi things.

· two pages showing the trauma that therapists discovered in children that Aquino had sexually traumatized at the Presideo Day Care Center. As readers are aware the Judicial system never pursued the case against Aquino.

· A page from the police report where the girl who claimed she had been sexually molested by Aquino was interviewed.

 

 

p_aquino.jpg

p_xeper-2.jpg

……. of women, is as much an act of violence as it is a sexual violation, it is argued here that the abuse reverberates in a chain reaction of violence-related responses in the child victim, in his or her family, and in the mental health system that is meant to serve the child. The Presidio case was made particularly poignant by the setting (the U.S. Army) and by the necessity for the victims’ families to face simultaneously the abuse of their children and the failure of goodness of the government that serves them.

BACKGROUND

At the Presidio Child Development Center. in 1986-87. a single incident of suspected child sexual abuse led to a full-scale investigation during which all the parents were informed that their children may have been victims of sexual abuse at the Center and were invited to come to the army’s Letterman Medical Center if they observed any unusual physical or emotional symptoms in their children. Here the children received medical and psychological evaluations by U.S. Army representatives.

Over time, the army, the FBI, and the San Francisco Police Department became involved in the investigations. Accusations of ritualistic abuse were made against a teacher (G) and a lieutenant colonel (“Shamby”) and his wife (Mikey’): Shamby was also a high priest of a satanic sect. It was attested that children had reported group sexual activities with other children and with a doll: playing ‘games” in Mr. G’s bed: and being brought to a house with a black room, where sexual activities of an occult nature ensued with Shamby and Mikey. Both boys and girls reported acts of fondling and penetration by Mr. G. their teacher. Clearly, this was a newsworthy event and it was quickly picked up by the media across the country.

Three years later, the army had made out-of-court financial settlements with the families of the alleged victims and the teacher was reported dead of AIDS. This case-study analysis is based on the author’s participation as an evaluator of and psychotherapist for the girls (boys were assigned to male therapists) who were alleged victims. The author’s involvement began two years after the occurrence of the alleged events when a team of lawyers was filing suits against the army on behalf of alleged victims and their families. Using process notes and evaluation records from the assessment and treatment of two of the girls (aged 3-4 when they were allegedly abused) and their families, along with anecdotal evidence from other cases, this ar-tide addresses the consequences and sequelae of institutional molestation for the child, the father, the mother, and the family system (consultation with therapists of the male victims revealed similar overall findings). More specifically, it underscores the unique features of sex and violence in the nursery when the perpetrator of the abuse is that historic symbol of patriarchal protection, the military establishment.

SEQUELAE OF ABUSE

· All the victimized children who received a medical evaluation tested negative for the HIV virus at the time of their initial evaluation. Recent research, however, indicates a possible incubation period during which negative test results can be found.

Finkelhor and Browne (1985) proposed that the experience of sexual abuse should be analyzed in relation to four trauma-causing factors: traumatic sexualization. betrayal, powerlessness, and stigmatization. In addition, they recommended assessing both the preabuse and postabuse situations in determining the psychological effects on the child victims. In the case of extrafamilial abuse, this model is applicable to the victims’ families, as well as to the victims themselves. According to Finkelhor and Browne’s model, the preschool child who is a victim of sexual abuse is at risk of severe levels of trauma, of which, in addition to the obvious sexual traumatization. betrayal and powerlessness are particularly salient factors.

Often, when a child enters a day care center, it is his or her first contact with the institutional world outside the family. At a young age, the child is asked to trust a stranger for care, succor, and daily guidance. The child relies on the parents’ assurance that this unfamiliar situation is safe and healthy. Given such assurance, the child typically allows an attachment to develop with the day care provider or teacher and literally puts him- or herself in that person’s hands.

At the Presidio, it was that very person who victimized the children, first by violating them sexually and then by warning them that, if they ever told their parents great harm would come to them and their families, and that they would probably never see their parents again. The majority of the children did not tell their parents, who did not find out about the situation until the Center sent a letter warning them that their children may have been abused.

As with incest, the preabuse situation in which the child has trusted an adult who then accosts that child creates great emotional and cognitive confusion (“If this person is caring for me and I am totally dependent on him, he couldn’t possibly be doing anything bad”). In addition, it engenders strong feelings of betrayal when the child comes to recognize that this person did do something bad to him or her and that mother and father did nothing to stop it. The severity of the trauma for children at the Presidio was immediately manifested in clear-cut symptoms. Before the abuse was exposed, parents had already noticed the following changes in their children: vaginal discharge, genital soreness, rashes, fear of the dark, sleep disturbances, nightmares, sexually provocative language (“Go down on the doll-69.” “Get it up the butt,” “Lick the doll’s twat,” “Hump on the doll”), and sexually inappropriate behavior (a four-year-old girl grabbing her older male cousins genitals).

In addition, the children were exhibiting other radical changes in behavior. including temper outbursts, sudden mood shifts, and poor impulse control. All these behavioral symptoms are to be expected in preschool children who have been molested (Haugaard & Reppucci. 1988: Mac Vicar. 1987: Sink. 1988). Of particular note were the children’s responses when they were first asked by their parents if something bad had happened to them at the day care center. One child screamed and ran out of the room. Another whimpered, “They’re going to hurt you if I tell,” and still another said, “I can’t tell, or they’ll kill you.”

Only later, after they were reassured that they would be protected, were the children able to report that “Mr. G touched my private parts,” “Mr. G had me touch his penis,” “We passed around a doll and were told to touch the doll in certain parts,” “Mr. G took me to his house to see his beds,” “I had to do something embarrassing in front of all the kids.”

These responses highlight the second salient feature of the children’s trauma: their sense of powerlessness. The children had felt powerless to tell their parents because of the grave harm they believed would coma to their families if they did. This was not paranoid or fabricated fear a trusted adult, a representative of the U.S. Army, had actually told them so. But, left to the devices of their own fantasy lives at the age of magical thinking, the children elaborated on these rears, sometimes to a bizarre degree. Their only choice was to channel the anxiety and trauma into formation of symptoms, until their parents, on the basis of the warning letter, began to question them on the matter. Only later, once the children entered the mental health system, did the full cycle of trauma, terror, and rage unfold. This phenomenon can best be understood by tracking the children and their families through the postabuse process, from discovery to treatment.

p_presidio.jpg

 


 

APPENDIX B. THE PROGRAMMING SITES

Some MAJOR MIND-CONTROL PROGRAMMING SITES with explanations of their programming. (Fritz Springmeier originally exposed many of these sites in 1993, so it is possible they have made some changes since they were originally exposed. Most of these operated for years, and may still be operating. We are aware of that some of their programming bases have been moved after exposure.) Besides these major programming sites, there are countless minor ones. For instance, some of the programming sites for water-beach tortures have been visited by the co-authors, but are not listed. The massive Boeing Plant in the Seatle, WA area with its large amount underground tunnels has been used for programming, as well as the ARCO Beaver Valley Plant in Pennslyvannia. So has the chapel at the Coast Guard Academy at New London, Conn. which was built by A.W. Mellon of the Mellon Illuminati family via their Mellon Foundation. This list is not put forth as comprehensive. Without question, this list is only the tip of the iceberg.

29 Palms, CA-

Area 51 (Dreamland, Groom Lake), NV–Area 51 is also known as Dreamland. There are a number of extensive underground facilities in the area. This was one of the first genetic research facilities in the U.S. and perhaps the first major genetic research facility. The people/workers & victims are brought in by airplane and tube shuttle. The worst cases of UFO/alien type of Monarch programming is coming out of Area 51. The eggs from slaves are being harvested and weird genetic creatures are being developed from human eggs which have been genetically mixed with other things.

Bethseda, MD–The Bethesada Naval Hospital

Bingham, UT–A red brick house, which was a closed House of Prostitution. The building was used for KKK programming. Child porn was produced in the basement, and upstairs programmed child slaves serviced KKK members. The KKK activity in the area connects in with the Illuminati controlled Kennecott Copper Co. (aka Utah Copper Co.) Russell G. Frazer, head of Bingham’s Klavern & doctor for Kennecott Copper Co. did the electro-shock to split personalities.

Black Forest, Germany–Because the U.S-U.K. and Germany do so much programming, and some of the people in the U.S. were programmed in the U.K., Germany or Russia, it is worthwhile to mention some of the German programming sites. A number of witnesses report about castles in the Black Forest which are used for programming & ritual. Basal, Sw. on the border with Germany is a important Illuminati center. Frankfurt, Berlin and Zurich are all important programming/ritual sites. The Jesuits and the Catholic churches are very active in programming in Germany.

Boulder, CO–The headquarters for EMC, a type of electra-magnetic mind control that is being broadcast to modify the thinking of Americans, and to control slaves.

Butner, N.C.–Center of Correctional Research, all types of mind control are carried out and experimented with on the inmates.

Camp Peary, VA–The CIA’s The Farm is located on a narrow strip of land between the York & James Rivers near Williamsburg, VA, used for programming CIA slaves. It has red brick buildings, and looks similar to a small college. The official crytonym was ISOLATION. People who are brought in who don’t know where they are for training are called Black Trainees.

China Lake Naval Research Base (Inyokern), CA–

This facility had a country store, and hangers, and a hospital (address for the hospital is the code- 232 Naval Air Weapons Station) which all provided sites for programming. This site has been operational since the early 1950s. Large numbers of children (batches of 1000 or 2,000 or 3,000 children were run through this facility at a time. This facility did much of the original traumas and mind-splitting tortures that created the MPD. Other facilities then specialized in further programming that was then layered in on top of the original China Lake programming. A great deal of dehumanization in cages was done to large numbers of tiny children at China Lake Naval Facility. Nimitz Hospital did drug testing of the children prior to their programming.

Colorado Springs, CO–The ALEX system programming and end-times Military programming is coming out of Colorado Springs and is connected to NORAD. One of the Colorado sites is doing alien programming with mock UFOs.

Dillsboro Nike Base–Monarch programming of many kinds

Disneyland, CA–Disneyland has been an off hour site for Illuminati and satanic rituals for years.

Programming has gone on using Disneyland as one big prop for programming. Many of the Disney movies are used for programming, and some Disney scripts are especially tailored for Monarch slave programming. The Peter Pan programming can use the ship. The space programming can use the space props. The satanic programming can use the castles. Lots of mirror programming is done at Disneyland, and Disneyworld. There is also Magic Mountain programming, and programming using the Around the World Dolls, and its theme song. Some of Wizard of Oz and the Cinderella programming was also done at Disneyland using costumes. Preverbal children are taken to Disneyland to get them ready for the scripts.

Disneyworld, FL–Disneyworld was created as the eastern counterpart to the Disneyland programming site. One of the rides in Disneyworld plays “It’s a small, small world” which is Disneyland developed programming theme.

Ft. Campbell, KT–Base programs are placed in here.

Ft. Detrick, MD–involved with medical/biological experimentation

Ft. Holabird, MD–This site is no longer in existence, but was the Army Intelligence School. CIC used the school. The place was known as “the Bird.”

Ft. Hood, TX–programming involving military uses of Delta Monarch slaves was done here.

Ft. Huahuachua, AZ–HQ for Army Intelligence.

Ft. Knox, KT –The 1st Earth Batt. was developed here.

Ft. Lewis, WA–involved with the Psychic warfare part of the Monarch Programming.

Ft. McClellen–Ft. Meade, MD–The National Security Agency was created on 4 Nov 1952. Its headquarters were Fort Meade, VA. The National Security Agency (NSA) employs tens of thousands of employees and has a budget larger than the CIA. It has also been kept far more secret, while the CIA has been used as the fall guy to protect the National Security Agency’s reputation. In the late 1960’s, under Operation Minaret and Program Shamrock, the NSA and its British counterpart GCHQ began monitoring much of the communication within the USA and UK. The NSA monitors all American calls via computers using trip words, specific names, specific addresses, specific telephone numbers, etc. NSA has several computer to record all the millions of conversations which the computers have examined and deemed worthy of recording. How the NSA can get any use out of millions of recorded telephone conversations is beyond me? What intelligence agency could adequately process so much information?

These organizations now monitor all communications within both countries. At least one congressman got upset that his phone was bugged by the NSA. (see David Corn’s article, “The case of the bugged senator” in Nation, Feb. 6, ‘89, p. 152.)

The NSA has developed a fiberoptics network called Internet computer network. An orange book is used to specify some of the NSA’s security levels.

An informant in the National Security Agency states that establishment newspapers like the Wall Street Journal and the New York Times are used to communicate secret messages which are placed within want ads, buzz words in editorials, and via other methods. Because of some of what this person told me, I have given some possible examples in this newsletter of how people might be using the papers for secret messages. For instance using Michael Jackson with his hands making some type of sign might be a signal. Manfried Adler and the US Senate Committee investigating the CIA found that 90% of the CIA’s secret messages are transmitted via the media, with the aid of coded texts and pictures.

A raised forefinger or two raised forefingers while a speaker is talking means that the message is a masonic message coming from a masonic speaker.

The Illuminati uses code words within the large establishment papers to warn their people what they are going to do with the economy. In this way, people in the Illuminati can take appropriate responses.

Goddard Space Flight Center–NASA mirror-theme programming

Grissom AFB, IND–

Hollywood, CA–One of the programmers/handlers in the Hollywood area is surprisingly Anton LaVey. This is one reason Anton LaVey has followers who will carry out his very wishes. LaVey’s children of course were programmed too. His own girls have been participating in the nude in satanic rituals since little children.

Homestead AFB, FL–

Kirkland AFB, NM–Lampe, MO–This has been the site of a CIA near-death trauma center where slaves are programmed. It is an R&R center for the CIA where they can have any sexual perversion or drug they want. This has been a large cocaine supply depot also. Hal Meadows was director of this center which is deep in the woods surrounded by cabin chalets overlooking a small deep lake. A gravel road leads to the site which is fenced and well-guarded. Hal Meadows address was Box 27, Lampe, MO 65681.

Langley, VA– Slaves for the wants of intelligence.

Las Vegas (sites in and around Las Vegas), NV–MGM’s Grand Hotel and Theme park were built for programming, but there are also some sites outside of the city used. In the general area of Las Vegas in remote sites, the elite gather for slave auctions once a year where Monarch slaves are sold and traded. One of the favorite slave auction sites was 20 miles out of Las Vegas and 10 miles off the main road into the site. The Mob is involved with Monarch slaves in Las Vegas. A blue-eyed 11 year old girl will go for $50,000. Toronto, Canada is another regular site for Monarch slave auctions.

McClellan AFB, CA – Very bad Child and adult porn using Monarch victims is distributed through this base as well as the other bases listed in this list. A T.W. Sanderson worked with Monarchs at this base.

MacDill AFB, FL –Near Tampa, FL

Maxwell AFB, AL –

Montreal, Que., Canada -McGill Univ., McGill Psychiatric Training Network, Allan Memorial Inst., St. Mary’s Hosp.- The Zombie Room (Sleep Room) in the basement, the Isolation chamber and the Grid Room at St. Mary’s Hospital were used for programming.

Mt. Shasta, CA–Underground facilities around this huge mountain in the Lake Shasta area are putting out Monarch programming that makes the people think they are in communication with aliens. This facility is for torturing & reprogramming captured runaway Monarch slaves. People are brought into the area via helicopter, plane, or flying saucer. This site is probably the largest mind-control programming center. It is in a remote wooded area. It is heavily guarded, has fences, and a large contingent of black helicopters. Mt. Shasta is equipped with state of the art high tech programming equipment. Mind-controlled slaves who are soldiers are programmed and trained at the Mt. Shasta facility.

Nashville, TN–These sites work with the Country Western Music Industry which is actually a CIA front for moving drugs to finance their dirty black activities. Fiddler’s Inn, Nashville fits in with the Monarch Programming.

Papillion, NE–

Patrick AFB,–Portland (Old OMSI, New OMSI, Bldg. Near Monarch Hotel at 8800 SE Sunnyside Rd., Mormon Temple, etc.), OR. The Old OMSI building had a back door on the west side in which slaves were taken in to the bottom floor and reprogrammed. Although security guards aren’t visible, they are there with electronic surveillance. The people running OMSI are tied in the Illuminati. The DC-3 airplane outside of the building was used in the programming as a hypnotic trigger. The submarine docked outside of the new OMSI building is also used as a programming hypnotic tool. The new Mormon Temple has an extremely high tech underground tunnel facility for programming built underneath it. Witnesses have collaborated their testimony on this high tech programming site under the Portland Mormon Temple. Although building plans are to be public information, the city of Lake Oswego makes it very difficult to view the temple’s building plans. The plans show that the foundation walls are far thicker than any conceivable earthquake would ever call for. The reason is that the foundation helps house an underground arena for the Illuminati & and their guests to watch perverse shows.

Presideo, CA (incl. Alcatraz, San Francisco)– The Illuminati and various Satanic cults used the Presideo for their programming. Split-brain & other programming was done at Letterman hospital. Fort Point was used for Illuminati ritual & programming, as well as a number of churches, underground gun emplacements and the large circular Greek column art building at the Presideo. Alcatraz, abandoned as a prison, was used for water tortures and other programming. Tunnels connected buildings, and the Mule/Horse buildings and the cemetery also were used. This is one of the older programming sites. Psychic warfare activity also was experimented on in this area. Letterman Hospital has been used for the initial drug testing of the infants before programming. Lots of isolation programming in damp cold places was done at the Presideo. Lots of porn and military programming have also been done here. Redstone Arsenal, AL– San Antonio, TX– Salt Lake City (Mormon Temple)–This underground facility works in conjunction with the Mormon hierarchy who are allowed to create slaves. The Illuminati put in base programming that still gives them ultimate control beyond the control that the Mormon programming has.

Scotty’s Castle, Death Valley, CA-Mengele (Dr.Green) programmed in some of his “internal boxes” as well as other Illuminati programming was done at this site. Mengele had a large circular red bed in the castle which he stocked with his little girl slaves, who already had kitten sexual alters. Scotty’s Castle is a castle located in Death Valley CA. It has a very interesting history. To reach the castle one is required to drive through many miles of desert. If one drives to lnyo County, CA, the same county that has China Lake Naval Testing Grounds, and Inyokern, and then you drive on Hwy. 190 into Death Valley National Monument (it is not a park or forest, dead valleys are called monuments), next you go north on a road after Stove Pipe for 35 miles.

The man who built Scotty’s Castle was Walter Perry Scott (1872-1954). Walter P. Scott was the son of an alcohol distiller and horse breeder in Kentucky. Walter did not get any formal education. He left home and went west where he worked as a mule driver, and a water boy. From there he became a horse wrangler. Because of his talent with horses Buffalo Bill made him the feature rider along with Annie Oakley in Buffalo Bill’s family show. The show travelled and Scotty was with it eleven years. During this time, Scotty made many important friendships with men of power and wealth. In 1900, Walter married and left the show. He got a loan from Julian Gerard, a NY banker, to go prospecting for gold which he failed to pay back. Julian Gerard was repeatedly sending people to hassle Scotty to get his money back. In 1905, Walter Scott (“Scotty”) scattered gold nuggets and $100 bills from N.Y. to L.A. Where he got all this gold and $100 bills is a mystery, but it wasn’t from prospecting. The idea of finding a secret mine was very obviously a cover for however Scotty managed to get his money. Scotty is well-known for his penchant to throw away $20 gold pieces as if they were candy wherever he went. Nobody believed he had a mine, strangely the IRS never got interested in Scotty. Why? The IRS went after Charles Caughlin who was exposing the elite, the bankers, the Freemasons, etc. in the early 1930’s on his radio show. There was no reason to suspect Caughlin of any cheating on his Income Tax, and the audits found the IRS actually owed Caughlin money.

However the national papers printed front page stories of the IRS investigation, and practically ignored that the man was exonerated. Yet, the IRS left Scotty alone. Hmmm. Although Scotty was married, he became intimate friends with Albert Mussey Johnson (1872-1948), a Chicago millionaire, who was v.p. from 1906 to 1926 of the National Life Insurance Co. Albert M. Johnson was born in Ohio, and lived in Arkansas and Missouri before moving to Chicago. Johnson came out and stayed in Death Valley. The stay helped his health, and he and Scotty remained close friends. In 1924, construction secretly began on a castle in Death Valley. The best of materials were used and the materials had to be hauled clear out in the desert by truck to Grapevine Canyon where the castle sits. Hundreds of workers were hired. The castle got its kitchen tiles from Spain. Special rugs were made on the European island of Majorca for the castle. Tiles for the incompleted pool came from the Mediterranean. Many of the furnishing of the castle came from cathedrals and palaces in Spain and Morocco. Draperies made for the castle were hand-tooled in selected sheepskin leather. Sixty hand-carved panels, each of a different design, were installed in the music-room ceiling. A Welte Mignon organ reported to have cost $160,000 –the finest of its kind in Western United States was placed in the music room, even though Scotty could not play the organ. Twelve bathrooms were installed. Several kitchens were installed. Tunnels and secret rooms were built under the buildings. Around $2 million (dollars of that time period) were spent on building the castle, supposedly from Scotty’s “gold mine.” The castle became known as Scotty’s Castle. It is ideal as a Satanic ritual site. It can accommodate numerous people. It is remote. It has hidden rooms and areas and tunnels.

Tavistock, England–This has been the primary programming center for England. The Rothschild programmers work out of Tavistock. A large number of slaves in America have been programmed there.

Tavistock has been doing mind-control since before W.W.ll. Under the supervision of London’s W Board & 20 Committee MI6 and MIS’s Section BIA ran double agents and mind-controlled spies/couriers during W.W. II. MI6 has had an office at Century House, No. 100, Westminster Bridge Road. MI5 offices have been in part on Curzon St. MI5 has operated behind a number of fronts, incl. their fake travel agency Casuro Holidays. MI-5’s address for mail is Room 055, The War Office, London. Special Intelligence Service (SIS) dealt with all types of mind control. Tavistock was under SIS. The British government has had their own telephone exchange with a 222 prefix, which was later linked to another secret exchange YTAN. Outsiders could dial 222 8080 to get into the secret govt. exchange. Men like mind-control expert/hypnotist Eric Trist worked for Tavistock. A six-man team which wore black berets also helped w/ mind control at Tavistock.

Two people who became terrorists after their visits to Tavistock are Angela Davis and Stockley Carmichael who went to a conference at Tavistock entitled Dialectics of Liberation in 1967. It’s main building is a bland 6-story building. The address is The Training Office, The Tavistock Clinic, 120 Belsize Lane, London, UK NWs SBA. Tel. no. 071-435 7111. The chief exec. is Anton Obholzer. The Chair of Prof. Comm. is Nicholas Temple. Both are skilled in psychology. The Tavistock Clinic was founded in 1920, and in 1946 the Tavistock Institute was created as an independent body to assist the Tavistock Clinic. The Institute does more of the research. The Royal Free Hospital at the University of London works with Tavistock Clinic, as well as the Science Policy Research Unit (SPRU) of Sussex University. A large number of Britian’s psychologist, social workers and police get their training at Tavistock. Tavistock has set themselves up as the authority on ritual abuse and MPD (DID). In other words, the primary programming site, is pretending to be the leading institution trying to solve the problem! That’s a good cover.

Tinker, AFB, OK–Tinkerbell programming is carried out here. This programming makes alters think they are like Tinkerbell in that they will never grow up or age.

Titusville, FL–At the Kennedy Space Center. Mind control testing is done, and base programming such as the Wizard of Oz programming is done here. Also NASA high tech programming is done here.

Tulsa, OK—Believed to have an Alice In Wonderland theme to their programming. Oral Roberts University is used for programming. The programming to infiltrate and capture the Christian church via the healing/charismatic movement has centered around Tulsa and Oral Roberts University.

Utah State Prison–The prison has carried out mind control for over 30 years on their inmates for the intelligence agencies with the help of the U.S. government’s power to cover it up.

Versailles, IL—Brain implants are put into Monarchs here.

Washington, D.C. area–The basement of the Pentagon and other facilities around Washington D.C. such as the Jesuit Georgetown Univ. Hosp. are involved with Mind-Control. Presidential Models are moving in and out of Washington, D.C. carrying messages and performing their sexual acts for the lusts of politicians. There is also a NASA Mind-control Programming Center in Washington D.C. Secret tunnels connect the White House to other buildings. These tunnels are used to bring in slaves. Some secret rooms in the lower White House are set aside for rituals.

Wright-Patterson AFB–Near Dayton, OH, Virtual reality programming is carried out here.

Youngstown, OH–The Youngstown Charm School has been run by Illuminatus Prosser Seward Mellon along with a U.S. Congressman named Jim Trafficant. The old stone building originally belonged to one of the railroad elite. This school is for Beta models and gives them advance sexual charm training. This school produces about 6 new Monarch slaves every three days. Mafia deals are carried out on the second floor of the charm school. A slave who is being trained/programmed at the Charm school will take a course that last a few days. The first day may be spent hanging in a dungeon which was once a basement wine celler. The torture dungeon has all the traditional torture devices, a stretching rack, whips, hanging chains, etc. In the dungeon rooms were a black Nubian goat “Satan”, a small donkey “Nester’, and a small white pony “Trigger”, as well as dogs and snakes. The slave is taught silence in the dungeon as they are subjected to bestiality.

Click here for picture 1

Click here for picture 2

Click here for picture 3

Click here for picture 4

Click here for picture 5

Click here for picture 6

Click here for picture 7

Click here for picture 8

Click here for picture 9

Click here for picture 10

Click here for picture 11

Click here for picture 12

Click here for picture 13

· We have just touched the surface of the vest network of programming sites. Two examples of an entire series of programming sites–1. the Coast to Coast campground resorts & 2. the Jesuit-run institutions, which are often programming sites incl. Jesuit College, WV. An example of the former is the Park City Diamond Caverns. KT Coast to Coast resort, which has had a sensory deprivation tank, headphones for state of the art harmonic programming. etc. These membership camp sites are used to program children. Nor have we touched upon the large numbers of programmed Russians & Eastern Europeans that are coming Into this nation. When this book was written more people immigrated to the U.S. from Russia than anywhere else. Europe is teeming with prgmg sites. incl. the Vatican. Sebulun Zuflucht in Marienheide, Ger. is about the only european attempt at deprogramming.

p_cloning.jpg

 


 

APPENDIX 3. CLONES, SYNTHETICS, ORGANIC ROBOTOIDS AND DOUBLES

PUBLICLY ANNOUNCED GENETIC EVENTS

Section A. The “Future Shock” that this topic subjects the common person to
Section B. Instructions on how to clone a person

A TECHNIQUE–INSTRUCTIONS HOW TO CLONE A HUMAN
Section C. The four types of “clones” that are used by the Illuminati,
1. actual clones,
2. synthetic people,
3. organic robotoids,
4. doubles (look alikes) How the memory of a person is transferred for the organic robotoids
Section D. Secret cloning sites (See also Appendix B, where D.U.M. bases are listed.) Simon Wiesenthal
OREGON’S UNDERGROUND SECRET CLONING FACILITY
FURTHER INVESTIGATIONS AT DULCE’S UNDERGROUND CLONING FACILITY
SUMMARY OF THE FOUR METHODS.
FINAL NOTES.
Clintons

PUBLICLY ANNOUNCED GENETIC EVENTS

1890– A rabbit embryo was successfully transplanted to a foster mother rabbit’s uterus.

1944– A human ova was fertilized in vitro, that is in layman’s terms an egg was artificially inseminated in a test tube.

1952– Briggs & King in Indiana University clone a frog.

1970s– Rand Corporation predicts that “para-humans” will be genetically created to do menial tasks in the future. In a totally different affair, Lord Rothschild, who is a physiologist who has studied genetics, warned that self-centered fanatics might set up cloning shops privately. Lord Rothschild suggested to genetic scientists that a clone controlling organization with world wide jurisdiction to license cloning be set up to protect the world from evil men who might want to clone people for evil purposes. He called his suggestion ‘Commission for Genetical Control.”

1977– Announcement of the first successful cloning of a person, which was done for someone very wealthy. This whole affair came under strong attack by the establishment. The book giving the shrouded details came out in 1978. The author went into hiding, and our Congress had a parade of establishment research doctors testify at a hearing to debunk the book and to reassure the public that medical researchers were too concerned about ethics to clone people. The author was convinced of the veracity of the cloning event, although the media/establishment doctors claimed the author wrote the book merely as fiction.

1980– Twinning (bisection of an embryo), which is a form of cloning was successfully done with horse foals, sheep and cattle had -already been cloned in this fashion in the previous years.

1981– Mice are cloned. And embryo transfer for cattle becomes a thriving business.

1983– A water buffalo embryo was successfully transplanted to a foster mother buffalo.

1984– A human embryo was successfully transplanted and born with a human foster mother.

1997–A successful human clone is publicly announced.

Scientists working in secret got serious about cloning in the early 1960’s. Abortions began to be performed wholesale at this time to provide fetal tissue for their cloning work. The young generation of Americans are asking, ‘When will cloning of people take place?” The answer is that it already has long ago. An article recently written by Andrew Kimbrell that was placed in many leading daily papers across the U.S. is quite revealing. He comes right up to almost telling people what has been going on. The article was entitle, “Science is about to Deliver.” (June 22, 1993) “…most Americans are unaware of the real-life exploits of current genetic engineers, science facts which in many cases are as chilling as any science fiction….Pigs have been genetically designed to contain human-growth genes in the hopes of creating “super pigs” that would have more meat. “…U.S. government and private researchers have expended billions of taxpayer dollars in the creation of tens of thousands of genetically engineered animals never before seen….One prominent scientist predicts that we may soon see “five-ton cows and pigs 12 feet long and 5 feet tall. “Genetic engineers.. .have cloned higher mammals, including cattle….One writer notes that “genetic engineering has the potential to create a vast army of identical clones, each produced to some preset specification. Canon fodder, scientists, opera singers, all could be manufactured to order…” “The New York Times has editorialized, ‘Life is special, and humans even more so, but biological machines are still machines that now can be altered, cloned, and patented.’ ” –(WOW! Readers do YOU REALIZE THAT BETWEEN THE LINES THEY ARE TALKING ABOUT BIONIC ROBOTOIDS–the robots that are now being created to take the place of people in high places. And the chilling idea that human-like machines will be produced that will not be treated as anything but machines–that is a chilling idea too.

In this author’s September, 1993 newsletter there were two article by this author on cloning, one entitled “Clones, Synthetics, Organic Robotoids, and Doubles” and the other article “Dulce Genetic Research/Cloning Facility.” In the month following my September ‘93 newsletter’s release, the establishment came out with stories about humans being cloned. [I felt that this was confirmation that God’s had directed me to publish the information I had on cloning 1/2 months before the secular media came out with their stories about the "first" laboratory duplication of a human embryo.]

This ‘93 cloning was the first publicly revealed & publicly accepted human cloning, but the truth is that it had already been done for about 30 years secretly. In December, 1993’s newsletter I had a followup article on cloning where I reviewed what the media was telling people about cloning after the ‘first” human cloning had been announced. My article also discussed the novel Multiple Man which is about how exact copies of the President are made. The book has some surprising similarities with what they actually did with President Carter!

Finally in September of ’96, this author’s newsletter came out with its fourth article on cloning. This appendix is not the final word on the topic. The whole topic about clones, synthetics, robotoids and doubles could have a great deal more said. This appendix is merely a review of what those four articles contained. Cloning also relates in a big way to the cranial/body manipulation that was introduced in this book. It also relates to the group mind/proxying that is being done. Perhaps at some point this author can go into the deeper intricacies of cloning, but for now this appendix will provide its information in the following format:

Section A. The “Future Shock” that this topic subjects the common person to.

What happens when a technologically backward people are suddenly confronted with a technologically advanced people? What happens is that people are called on to change, in many cases the stress is what Alvin Toffler described and called “Future Shock”. The overstimulation of new ideas, new decisions, new ways of looking at things can cause great distress to the mind and body. Radical changes to adapt to the new situation are demanded. In the case of the Navajo, one can see pickups parked beside hogans. In Nepal where I lived, the Nepalese had never gone through a horse and buggy era, so they had no word for drive in their language. When cars suddenly appeared–the first was carried into Katmandu on the backs of porters, they had no word for “drive”, so they used the words they had “sit and go.” So where we say “Let’s drive to town.” They would say literally, “Let’s sit and go to town.”

The American people have in general been kept in the dark about the limits of scientific developments. The known reasons people have not learned are varied. The Cold War was one reason. Capitalist corporate advantage is another reason. They call it trade secrets. Scientific pride and the ability to outstrip other researchers is another, and for the public just their technical jargon is enough to prevent people from closely watching the level of research going on.

But underlying most of the coverup is this: that the overall satanic plan is to keep people ignorant of these scientific advances BECAUSE they are being used quite often to control and manipulate the world. What has developed is a situation where the American people are no longer in touch with where the elite’s secret technology is. It is clear that the elite know this and are aware that some of the “Future Shock” needs to reduced if they don’t want to self-destruct society. You need to be aware (mentally prepared) that most of the readers of this will experience future shock when they read that cloning of humans is possible & has gone on for decades. The elite had a dilemma. If society isn’t moved forward to match their secret scientific advances, it will soon be like cave-men meeting modern-day men. Society won’t be capable of adjusting–only self-destructing. On the other hand they certainly can’t tell us what they are already doing, because they are using this technology against us to control us. For this reason they are giving us movies that show us things that they have already invented–but these are put forth as fiction in these Hollywood films. They hope to lesson the Future Shock, which their own secrecy has greatly contributed toward creating, while maintaining control over the general population.

SOME OF THE FILMS THAT SHOW EXISTING TECHNOLOGY:

Clone–cloning; Jurassic Park–cloning

Genesis II–underground genetics laboratories that are connected by tube shuttles.

Terminal Man–brain stem implants

Star Trek–various items. In addition to some of today’s secret technology being shown, the attitudes and beliefs shown on the two series, especially Star Trek the Next Generation are the attitudes the Satanic elite want people to have.

READERS PREPARE FOR FUTURE SHOCK

The Scriptures give strong indications that genetic monsters, the half-breed Nephalim will exist in the end times. God’s Word also forecasts that the mark of beast will be needed for buying & selling.

One item conveyed by the Bible’s book of Revelation is that totally unexpected sudden change will characterize the end times. Christians need to be prepared for unusual big changes. So great will these changes be that the nations will be distressed, and men’s hearts will fail them for fear (LK 21:25-27). The Bible predicted that knowledge shall increase in the last days before Christ returns. (DN 12:4) But that knowledge will be used for evil, because the Bible also says that the world will be totally corrupt as in Noah’s time (MT 24:37)–which was a time of the genetic monsters, the half-bred Nephalim. It also says men and horses will be out of work. (ZEC 8:10) And it is believed that Nahum 2:3-4 must be describing automobiles, and that Isaiah 31:5, and 60:8 are describing and prophesying airships in the last day. The description of the “mark of the beast” is startlingly accurate in describing the microchip which is being inserted into people’s hands and foreheads.

The information that is allowed out for the public to access has been heavily censored. Still in spite of all the intense secrecy, if a person takes the time to dig and to find key items written by scientists, enough of a shadow picture develops to allow a person to realize that they already can produce several things the public is unaware of. Many times the articles will discuss only a tiny aspect of a larger process, or will say we have the knowledge to do such and such but the actual doing is years away. And somehow people swallow that we could have the capability to do it, but aren’t. For instance, in a book that was published in 1979, Robert Gilmore McKinnel, Professor of Genetics and Cell Biology, College of Biological Sciences, University of Minnesota, wrote “It has been reported that mice and some large domestic animals have been cloned. Humans have not. Because the reproductive biology of humans…is similar to that of mice and other mammals, it is likely that humans could be cloned.” Some of the men who know what is actually being done, are afraid to tell what they know. However, I do not have neither a professional reputation nor a job to guard. I have never taken any oath of secrecy to any of these organizations of the establishment. I can simply tell you the truth without fear.

Section B. Instructions on how to clone a person.

For those who want the medical description of just one way that cloning of people can be done (and this capability has been around for at least a decade–and much longer secretly.) The idea that we don’t have the knowledge to do it is simply a myth for public consumption. Any microbiologist worth anything knows that we have the knowledge and the means–they can only claim that cloning of humans hasn’t happened because supposedly no one wants to do it.

A TECHNIQUE–INSTRUCTIONS HOW TO CLONE A HUMAN:

The ovulation and ovaries of the woman can be monitored. Just before natural ovulation, there is an increase of luteinizing hormone which is called the luteinizing hormone surge. This can be detected by either blood or urine samples. The growth of the follicle can be monitored by visualization with ovarian ultrasonography. Ultrasound diagnosis will reveal on which side of the woman’s ovaries the ripening follicle is found. This procedure will allow people to know when the follicle is ripe for the retrieval of the oocyte.

When the time is appropriate a hollow aspiration needle is inserted into one or several ripe follicles under visual guidance of the laparoscope. The oocyte is removed with some follicular fluid. Experienced laparoscopists have a success rate over 90% in recovering the oocyte. Prior to this, it is likely that the woman will have been given Clomiphene citrate, or this drug used in combination with another drug so that there will be several eggs that can be retrieved at one time.

The oocytes obtained from the ripe ovarian follicles are not fertilized when retrieved, although another process would be to fertilize first, before extracting. If they don’t fertilize first, then they can take the harvested oocytes and incubate them in a culture medium for several hours to get maturation. They need maturation because they have been taken from the ovary before ovulation, and are not as mature as spontaneously ovulated ova.

Thawed or fresh semen is washed and certifuged so that it will be diluted to the proper concentration to fertilize in vitro. The in vitro fertilization is carried out. After some amount of hours, (about 12) both pronuclei are identifiable for enucleation. The enucleation is accomplished with either one of two well-established methods. One method is to surgically enucleate it with a micropipette, another is with a bleb of cytoplasm containing both the male and female pronuclei. Either method has worked fine. These nuclei by the way have been obtained from the inner-cell mass of an early human embryo. This again is a well established practice.

Let us digress slightly and explain the method to obtain the nuclei. The zona pellucida must be removed from a cultured embryo, the trophectoderm separated from the inner cell mass, and then, the cells dissociated with an appropriate enzyme in a calcium-and magnesium-free salt solution. Going back to the cloning process, there are several methods for doing a donor nucleus (obtained from its source using the just mentioned method) with enucleated cytoplasm (obtained from the woman’s in vitro fertilized ovum). One might be to surgically implant it with a micropipette, another is fusion with an inactivated Sendai virus. Whichever way is considered most viable by those performing this will be used. And then the human nuclear transplant will be cultured until it can be placed into a human foster mother.

When the clone has reached the 8 – to 16 cell stage it will be transferred into the foster mother. If needed, the transfer can be done later, and the clone is simply frozen. When the transfer takes place, the clone is drawn into a fine plastic tube (a catheter) which, then in turn, would be introduced through the cervical canal into the interior of the uterus. — This is just one process for successfully cloning humans. Other more refined techniques may well be in use.

Section C. The four types of ‘clones’ that are used by the Illuminati:

Cl. Actual Clones. This is a person who has been grown from a test tube (called “in vitro”) or implanted womb, which has the identical genetic makeup to another person–an identical twin so to speak in terms of genetic makeup. The genetic coding has reproduced, and a new person who is an identical twin is now in existence.

C2. Synthetic People. These are “persons” who look everybit as real as a real person, but simulate human beings. Certain tissues extracted from cattle are the starting point. (This is part of the reason for cattle mutilations.) The process is an advancement of a process discovered in the late 1950’s. This 1959 experiment was reported in a book in 1968 called The Biological Time Bomb by Gordon Rettray Taylor. Taylor describes the experiment done in France, “They had extracted DNA from the cells of the khaki Cam phells and had injected it into the white Pekins, thinking that just possibly the offspring of the latter might show some character derived from khaki Campbells. To their astonishment the actual ducks they injected began to change. Their white feathers darkened, and their necks began to take on the peculiar curve which is a mark of the khaki Campbell.” The scientists working under the auspices of the Rothschilds, (who are directed by Satan himself) developed this process by working at secret breakneck speed. They developed an advanced development of the process they discovered with the DNA chicken experiment. By the late 1970’s, synthetic people could be produced by the Illuminati.

C3. Organic Robotoids. This is an “artificial life” form that is created through processes that are totally different than cloning or synthetics. Organic robotoid technology is being made to make exact as possible copies of important people such as Presidents and some of their staff. For instance, the Jimmy Carter who came to Portland a few years ago who I stood two feet away from and examined visually was not the Jimmy Carter that had run for President.

On Easter, 1979 the first robotoid model of Jimmy Carter replaced the man Jimmy Carter. By the time “Carter” was seen by me, they must have been on at least robotoid no. 100. This is why a friend of mine who was recently in Washington D.C. almost bumped into President Clinton jogging. My friend was surprised by the lack of security.

Kaiser Aluminum News which is put out by Kaiser Aluminum & Chemical Corporation put out a series of articles to a specialized audience in the 1960’s. This material was also published under the book title The Dynamics of Change (Prentice-Hall: Englewood Cliffs, N.J., 1967).

Under the title heading “GENETIC MANIPULATION” we read, “The ability to control the formation of new beings may be one of the most basic developments of the future. Recent discoveries about the nucleonic acids, the basic building blocks of life, have led to the belief that man may some day be able to treat genes in such a way that desired characteristics can be realized…”

Under the heading “MAN-MACHINE SYMBIOSIS” we read, “…Computers exist which can learn, remember, see, seek goals, reason, walk, sing on key, talk, be irritable, play games, grasp, adapt to an environment and even design improvements in themselves.. .man-like computers may one day contain plasma circulating through a viscera-like envelope, allowing them to be self-healing.”

Under the heading “HUMAN ROBOTS” we read, “…An electronic circuit that imitates two neurons, the cells of the human brain, has been built, and has enabled a robot to deal with some unexpected situations, but the neuron structure was bulky. The brain has billions of neurons, meaning an incredible miniaturization job will be necessary before truly ‘human’ robots are developed.” As the reader knows since the 1960’s when this was written an incredible miniaturation job has been done in computers. What the public knows of that minituration is incredible and that is only part of what has actually occurred. In fact, scientists are now able to manipulate DNA to create computers.

A basic thing that is needed to create a computer is material that will consistently change given some type of “signal”. This is because the computer works off of base two–or what is simply an on–off switch system, or a 0 or 1 system of numbers. Living biological material is superior to other material for making computers because the heat created by the methods in conventional computers slows the speed. For super-computers to work at great speeds they need to use biological material that will not heat up. This type of miituration has already been done. It creates computers far beyond what we are familiar with. Organic robotoids are amazingly humanlike, so humanlike that it is hard for the scientists who have created them to get used to the idea that they are not humans.

Biological computer brains for the robotiods came as a result of research into holograms. If you tear up a conventional photograph you ruin it, but if you tear up the film that produces a hologram, each piece still contains almost all the same image. This is why part of the brain of people can be removed and the brain regain what it had lost. A holographic image of a person’s brain is made, and then when the brain of a robotoid is made, the biological computer in its head is caused to form according to the holographic record of a person being copied. Some deviations from the holographic record are needed, because the “person” is a robotoid and not a person. The brain of the robotoid has almost all of the correct memory of the person reproduced, but the robotoid brain is really a computer made from biological material which is programmed, it is not a human brain.

First, “Clinton” has the energy to jog because it may well be a robotoid, and second thing, an assassination of a robotoid is not so serious. These robotoids have a biological computer-brain that is programmed. They can think in the sense a computer thinks, but secret advances in understanding the human brain, have allowed the makers of organic robotoids to have the memory of a person at a given point in time transferred to an organic robotoid. The key then for making what appears to be a clone–but they are not a real clone–is to capture the person to be copied and make a holographic copy of the brain memory and transfer that to the robotoid.

How the memory of a person is transferred for the organic robotoids. In order to successfully make human organic robotoids–in a sense to make bionic robots–the ability to simulate the personality of the person being copied was necessary. The only viable solution was to learn how the brain coded memory and duplicate that process. The brain is entering into its memory about 10 million bits of information a second. The incredible storage capability of the human brain which weighs on the average 3.25 lbs in human males and 2.9 lbs in human females is incredible. The brain can easily store 100 million billion bits of information. It’s no wonder we don’t use it all.

All the computers in the world put together do not compare with one intelligent person’s brain. Numerous tests and experiments from many different angles all showed investigators that the brain stored information as a hologram. The place in the brain where a memory is stored isn’t in just one location. Memories are stored in synapses in sequence, but they are stored in a holographic method. From what I understand, rhythmic pulses radiate from a small area of the brain like a stone creates ripples in a pond. Waves go through the cerebrum, in the way that laser light is used to create a hologram. Different frequencies are used by the brain and different neuron impulses are used to reference (tag) the different details. These tags are the brain’s own codes or reference standards for cataloging information. The brain has to be able to access the encoder/decoder (holographic code standards) for a particular piece of information to be retrieve for the conscious.

Brain injuries can destroy one decoder, and leave other decoders for a memory intact. When a multiple (a person with MPD/DID) is created layers and layers of amnesia walls (actual walls) are built into the brain, and then specific codes are created which cause the mind to bring these compartments of memory to the surface. Each compartment is built into an alter (personality) or a functioning part of the System (built somewhat like a series of computers). Where a normal person may be aware of a conscious and a somewhat subconscious track running simultaneously, the mind of a multiple runs several tracks at once.

On a local level within the brain, researchers have called a memories storage unit an engram. Polypeptidenucleic acid holds a piece of information, such as a trauma memory. Proteins and other substances are involved in the memory process. How a person eats can influence their mental abilities. But it must be born in mind that a memory is retained holographically in countless locations in the memory storage area of the brain, just as the ripples of a stone dropped into water flow throughout an entire pond. The mind will have a number of reference points from which a particular memory can be decoded. The information that is stored in the brain is both dynamic and holographic. It is not stored like a book. If the dynamic impulses of the brain cease, so do the memories. Freezing and reviving a human brain will serve to erase its memory.

I will try to explain things in clear terms if the reader will bear with me. The reason that we recogmze objects so quickly is that the brain performs what is similar to what researchers call a Fourier transfer. Messages are transmitted through Fourier-transform messages. What is a Fourier-transform message? A Fourier transform is a mathematical method where a complex wave, or a complex pattern is broken down and converted into a basically longer, but precise signal of simpler frequencies. In other words a squiggly line is hard to communicate, but via the Fourier transform it becomes a string of numbers which is quite easy to transmit. In other words, a complex squiggly line and a straight line after the conversion are both just as easy to record. The brain stores information in a form similar to a Fourier transform, so that when it must look for similar patterns, it can quickly overlook everything but another identical Fourier transform pattern. A mental comparison is done so quick that it gives the ability to the brain to “instantly” recognize people who one hasn’t seen for years. The Holograms of memory that the brain makes are transmitted through Fourier-transform messages. Holograms are hard to destroy, for each piece contains the whole. Rip a holograph in half and you still have the same picture. Rip it in half again and the same picture remains. After a great many cuts in half the holograph begins to get a little fuzzy, as it loses some of its detail, but the entire picture is still there. That is why memories begin to get somewhat fuzzy, because we are only puffing up a small piece of brain that recorded the memory. However, if we can pull up more of the holographic image of the memory we get a more distinct detailed picture.

It was secret research into holograms that gave Illuminati scientists the ability to copy the memory of an entire brain. A holographic image is made of the host’s brain and that is transferred into the biological matter functioning as a brain of the robotoid. Since the body and brain of the robotoid are not identical to the original person being copied, adjustments have to be taught and programmed into the mind of the robotoid. The entire process is sophisticated, but then so are many manufacturing processes today.

C4. Doubles (look alikes). There is an ongoing program to find look alikes for prominent people, as well as a program to create secret identical twins (which are separated at birth and never see each other).

George Bush’s double was promiscuous, while George Bush is a pedophile. His double was living in France after Bush was no longer President. By the use of doubles, (or one of the synthetics or organic robotoids) the elite are able to sneak away and perform satanic rituals. On certain occasions, if Clinton or Bush only needed to do low level tasks in front of the public, they could have their double substitute for them. The Illuminati working with several organizations has had a look alike operation where doubles of certain key people are found and then used.

In the book Desert Shield and The New World Order pub. by Northpoint Tactical Teams, Topton, NC, if you look on page 32 you will see a picture of the original FDR who had a mole over his eyes and then you will a see a picture of the double of Roosevelt who they used, who had no mole and had different ear lobes. Roosevelt may have died prior to when it was actually announced.

Over the years I have seen numerous photos exposing either the Robotoids or the doubles that they use. This author’s previous S’ ’93 article had some pictures about the dead Pope Paul VI, who my Be Wise As Serpents book said was murdered. This recent Pope was replaced with a double who had had plastic surgery. As a double gets older the plastic surgery will not look as convincing, because time changes people differently. One ex-Catholic said the whole thing sounded like science fiction. It does sound far out at first, but the evidence is there for people to see. For myself, the ex-Illuminati have told me about the double’s program. From what I understand the double or look-alike program has been more successful than the robotoids and synthetics. The reason is that people live longer and are more dependable in some ways. The project to find look alikes for prominent people has been very successful. Plastic surgery has also been done to help touch up the doubles.

Section D. Secret cloning sites (See also Appendix B, where D.U.M. bases are listed.)

Ada, Oklahoma’s underground facility is being used to clone humans. The other cloning facilities are turning out weird creatures. Due to the processes involved they give off lots of gamma radiation (Gamma is at the far end of the electromagnetic wave spectrum–it is even a longer wave than ultraviolet). Because they give off Gamma radiation, these facilities must be deep underground. The cloning is done at level 7. The average depth (according to one of the men who built these Deep Underground Facilities – D.U.M.) is 5,600’.

The secret government has been building them no stop since W.W. II. I personally have only been in an underground city in Oahu, HA, but I have spoken to others who are wanting to save humanity and stop the NWO, and these witnesses know a lot about the underground facilities.

One of the men who betrayed the human race and helped with the cloning was Austrian born Simon Wiesenthal. Simon Wiesenthal, was a US intelligence agent with a photographic memory (perhaps a scarred brain stem). Wiesenthal seriously hunted Nazis that were not on the CIA’s payroll or CIA associated groups. Simon Wiesenthal, under the disguise of being a great Nazi hunter, actually assisted protecting the FBI’s and the CIA’s agents who were Nazi criminals. Wiesenthal tried to stop CBS from doing a show exposing the FBI-Nazi connection.

Jewish Intelligence (the Moussad) knew all about the hundreds if not thousands of Nazi War criminals that worked for American Intelligence and the FBI, but never went public about it. Instead they occasionally used the information as leverage against American intelligence. One of the code no.s for Simon Wiesenthal given by a Monarch slave was something like 063 097. If someone else knows the full and correct code for him, go ahead and share it.

Unholy Trinity is a book written about how the Vatican, the US State Department, and MI-6 smuggled Nazis out of Germany at the end of WW II. An entire book could be written about the thousands of die hard Nazis who have been working for American intelligence, however Simon Wiesenthal’s name is mentioned here because he helped start the cloning for the worst elements of the NWO.

OREGON’S UNDERGROUND SECRET CLONING FACILITY

In at least one of my newsletters, the secret cloning facility at Bull Run near Mt. Hood, OR was discussed. Bull Run is a large tract of forested land with some water reservoirs/lakes that is set up to help provide water for the Portland Metro area. My house on Lincoln St. was also near 8 reservoirs that were built at nearby Mt. Tabor. These reservoirs at Mt. Tabor were for Portland drinking water too. The Mt. Tabor reservoirs have simple single fences on their perimeter, and people are able to throw garbage into these reservoirs if they want to be nasty. However, the Bull Run water supply which is very isolated is extremely well protected. It is rare that people would stray up into the area anyway. People are told that this large tract of land is simply for Portland’s water supply, and yet several years ago a Patriot military unit reconned the area after getting info from me. They were able to identify 3 strongly guarded rings of defense at the Bull Run reservoir. The area has lots of electronic surveillance, etc. It is either the most valuable water on God’s green earth, or there is something else in the vicinity of Larch Mountain (south of the famous Multnomah Falls which sit on I-84)–something besides a water reservoir. Of course, those in the know, know that it’s an underground facility which the CIA use. It’s not an accident Tektronics here in the Portland area does work/research with holograms.

FURTHER INVESTIGATIONS AT DULCE’S UNDERGROUND CLONING FACILITY

My article about Dulce [which I investigated in person on foot] also sparked a small group of dedicated Christians to try to retrace my steps and find the Duke facility. They reported back to me that they found nothing and that the reservation police and the local people claimed they’d never even heard of any underground facility. All I can say is that, doesn’t that strike you as fishy that all kinds of people have been up in that area looking for the site, interviewing the Jicarilla Apaches that live in the area for years, talking about Dulce over Art Bell’s Radio show, etc. and locals have never heard anything about it?? At the very least they should know that other people looked for the site. The reservation and town of Dulce, NM have a small population. There is little that everyone doesn’t know about what goes on in the area, and yet they are surprised by the topic of an underground facility? The whole thing smells like the key people in the area have been convinced to keep their mouths shut & pretend they know nothing.

My comments: sometimes when you’re looking for a rat, you’ll smell it before you see it. According to someone who has worked in the Dulce Underground Facility the openings on the north and SW face (Aztec Cliffs) are still in use. Actually the cliff that has a face that looks like an Aztec on Mt. Archeleta has been cemented shut because hikers kept straying into the area. A deep needle detector which could detect metal or magnetism deep down could reveal the Dulce Underground Facility–but people who get this close often disappear.

SUMMARY OF THE FOUR METHODS.

This Appendix covers 4 different methods that have been used to make copies of people, these were cloning, creating synthetic duplicates, creating organic robotoids, and finding look alike doubles. [Programs for all four of these methods have had almost unlimited funding by the intelligence/Illuminati elite.]

Next, the basic principles for creating a synthetic human were covered. Synthetic humans were in some ways found to be superior to the robotoids that were created. The first few years of robotoids were fraught with problems. [Since my inside information is somewhat dated, I cannot give readers the status of current robotoid abilities, however, I believe from what I’ve seen that the program continues.]

The synthetics were people who had their genes altered to look more like the person they were to copy. The robotoids were the formation of new beings that look human but are actually bionic robots. Their memories were created by using living “brain tissue” which is some type of programmable living biological matter, and programming this material as a sophisticated computer. In order to get the memory of the person being copied, a holographic image of the person’s brain is made and transferred to the robotoid. Because the robotoid “brain” is not functioning like a human (although the end result is nearly identical so that viewers have to know what differences to look for), there are of course some adjustments that have to be made after the holographic image of the host is transferred to the living biological matter that will function as the brain of the robotoid. Lord Willing, this author may write some more on this topic later. The ability of the Illuminati to copy people using the 4 methods listed above, are not going to be the deciding factor in their moves to control the world, but it does give them a great deal of flexibility in their operations. This author frequently reflects on the words of the Illuminati Grand Master who told Cisco, who was then a child, while touring a cloning facility, “Never, never think you are seeing who you think you are seeing.’

FINAL NOTES.

As this author’s reflects back on what’s gone into this first part, he can’t help thinking about how God will reveal all things that are secret. (See Dan, 2:22 and other verses). The prophet Daniel called him the revealer of secrets.” The secrets which are revealed in this book are minuscule compared to what God Almighty will reveal in His day. And as this author reflects back he realizes that there is so much more that could be said.

This author has neglected to get my information about the Clintons into this. For instance, this author interviewed a woman who went to school with Hillary, and two of Hillary’s mind-control victims. Our establishment media have neglected to tell the American people about Bill Clinton’s roots & ties in Hot Springs, Ark.

Hot Springs is a city that has forty-seven thermal springs which have brought the jet set from all over the world. The mafia syndicate & their nightclubs made Hot Springs a hot bed of vice, gambling, prostitution. During the 1920’s the territory so popular with organized crime, that they classified the territory “neutral ground” like they did Hollywood. In the early 1960’s, Hot Springs had the largest illegal gambling operations in the entire U.S. Billy’s uncle Roy was a politician in Arkansas’s legislature connected to all this mess. And Bill Clinton’s uncle Raymond Clinton, who had a Buick dealership, was tied to all this corruption.

Bill & his brother Roger’s cocaine habits are well known by those familiar with them, as well as their wild parties at the Coachman’s Inn, Little Rock, Ark. What are not known are Hillary & Bill’s membership in the secret Illuminati.

And for some reason some of their more intimate associates are also not known, such as Charles “Chip” Whitmore, a Satanist & programmer. Chip & Bill have met often on a weekly basis over the years. This continues, for instance when Bill was in England so was Chip, when Bill went to Florida so did Chip. Chip played drums with mind-control programmer Jerry Lee Lewis. He was also a friend of Jack Ruby. (It’s a small world at the top of corruption.) Chip owns Cash McCool’s Tavern. He is 5’6, glasses for his poor eyesight, has good hearing, and has a filthy mouth. He changes the car he owns & drives every 3-5 months. Chip had a programmed girl murder a man, and then the Network got him off of his murder charges. Chip’s family’s Villa Mare in Little Rock was pictured in the opening shots of Designing Women.

Chip Whitm ore has been in charge of assassinations in his area, and controls the local law enforcement in Arkansas. Jack Stevens, said to be the largest investment banker in Little Rock, is CIA/part of the Network. He exchanged information with Chip via their mutual black cleaning lady. Further, Whitmore & Stevens tie in with a string of corruption that extends into the Assembly of God churches & other parts of Churchianity.

Over Chip is a Dr. Paul Palmer. The media just gives us glimpses of the depth of occult corruption. For instance, Insight magazine Feb. 26, ’96, page 48, in an article by Suzanne Fields had a photo of Hillary’s backside wearing what appeared to be a golden dragon on her black coat when she went to court to talk about the Rose Law Firm billing records. She has sometimes been called the Dragon lady for good reasons. Will today’s modern equivalents to shamans, our psychiatric community help protect us from murderers like Chip Whitmore? Not likely.

The Biographical Directory of Fellows and Members of the American Psychiatric Association reveals that in 1957 there were 7,104 American members in the American Psychiatric Association. Of those 7,104, a total of 1,253 had moved to America from Germany and Eastern Europe. This helps us understand the enormous influence Operation Paperclip had on America. Operation Paperclip was the CIA’s project to smuggle Nazi criminals into our nation, some of which have now made Penn’s campus infamous. No wonder the False Memory Spindrome got started at Pennsylvania University. We were warned by a psychiatrist in a Weekly World News story of Jan. 9, 1996 about a strange new sleeping disorder where people die after seeing a hooded robe figure chase them. This new “Deadly Dream Syndrome” sounds strongly like mind-control. Perhaps there is no way to have given the readers anything but a drop in the bucket.

Some of the details that got left out on the way include:

the Seventh-Day Adventist church’s secret cooperation with the government to supply young men (1,500) for government experiments called Operation Whitecoat;

how the Dept. of Energy set up hotlines for victims of radiation experiments, in other words the fox is in control of where the victim goes for help;

Peter A. Petito, “Mr. Intelligence” in Italy, and his connections to the Network;

William Randolph Hearst’s costume parties and his half dozen homes like San Simeon;

Torrance, CA’s Penthouses and Disney’s mind-control;

the Masonic peace sign of uplifted hands with wrists crossed in the film 1984;

the movie Army of Darkness with its mirror image programming, “London Bridges falling down” programming ditty, etc.;

how FEMA works with the 6th Army that Aquino was part of, how Voodooism uses Waterfalls for healing such as at Sardo, Haiti;

how Mothers of Darkness alters are trained to love a marble, fed the marble, care for it, and then to shatter it with a hammer until its fine like salt and then to repeat the process and only split the marble but not crush it as part of their training to program;

how a certain torture is done to make the victim think they have a butterfly as a head with the head of the butterfly in their third eye area;

how scribbling is used to anchor programming in child victims;

programmed soul-ties to aliens;

Mr. Greenjean’s (of Capt. Kangaroo) talk of Mr. Moon & how it was used for programming;

the blood sacrifices under the Temple Mount on March 13th this year;

the Masonic corruption in Arcadia, FL and the G. Pierce Wood Memorial Hospital;

how secret meetings of the CIA have studied how UFOs could be used as “clever hostile propaganda” trick to take advantage of the populace’s gullibility; how Mengele’s family never claimed his bones–they knew they weren’t the real ones, and how the International Red Cross gave him an I.D.S. to travel with; South Africa’s occult Shu Shung Palace… maybe someone else will pick up where this author has left off, the mind-control is all around us!

Posted in DEEPER INSIGHTS INTO THE ILLUMINATI FORMULA | Tagged: , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , | Leave a Comment »

TRANCE FORMATION OF AMERICA

Posted by ItsHellWithoutJESUS on October 1, 2010

PUBLIC NOTICE

This book contains sexually explicit quotes and irrefutable anatomical details of perpetrators and is therefore recommended for mature readers only.

By Cathy O’Brien

TRANCE FORMATION OF AMERICA

TRANCE Formation of America is the documented autobiography

of a victim of government mind control Cathy O’Brien is the only vocal and

recovered survivor of the Central Intelligence Agency’s MK-Ultra Project

Monarch mind control operation. Chiseled deep into the white stone of

the CIA’s Langley, Virginia headquarters is a partial verse lifted from the

Holy Bible and writings of Saint John…” ami the truth shall make you free.”

This statement, like the agency, is total reality. The building that it is

engraved upon houses the world’s most successful manufacturer of lies

to facilitate psychological warfare.

The “Company” uses truth and technology as their raw materials to

produce “pure” lies for control of you and America’s allies. Within the pages

of TRANCE Formation of America you’ll find the truth.

US. GOVERNMENT MIND CONTROL

On August 3rd, 1977 the 95th U.S. Congress opened hearings

into the reported abuses concerning the CIA’s TOP SECRET mind

control research program code named MK Ultra. On February 8th 1988,

an MK Ultra victim, Cathy O’Bnen, was covertly rescued from her mind

control enslavement by Intelligence insider Mark Phillips. Their seven

year pursuit of Justice was stopped FOR REASONS OF NATIONAL SECURITY.

TRANCE Formation of America exposes the truth behind this criminal

abuse of the Unconstitutional 1947 National Security Act

FOREWORD

by Mark Phillips

“… with liberty and justice for all”

4

Preamble to the United States Constitution

My name is Marquart (Mark) Ewing Phillips, born May 17, 1943 in

Nashville, Tennessee, I have no criminal record and I have never been

adjudged insane, I am not a scholar, professional writer, or mental health

physician. While I lack the official published academic credentials, I am

recognized internationally by mental health and law enforcement professionals

as an authority on the secret science concerning external control of the mind.

The purpose of Part I of this book is to document how this reputation was

gained. This brief and highly condensed contribution is intended to provide an

understanding of why, when, and where I embarked on a study of the most

secret technology known to man: Trauma-based mind control. Through the

publication of declassified United States Government documents, our U.S.

Department of Defense (DOD) admits that this ancient wizard’s mechanism for

control is so dangerous that most information pertaining to it must remain

Classified as TOP SECRET. As tbe employee of a DOD subcontractor with

exposure to mind-control research, I was required to sign an oath of secrecy.

To this day I am restricted by law from revealing certain specific information

that directly pertained to my employment as, among other “sensitive”

exposures, a U.S. DOD subcontractor in mind-control research.

This super secret technology is an evolved system of remote human physical

find psychological manipulation that has only recently been officially recognized

by accredited mental health physicians for what it is, absolute mind control.

My first encounter with mind-control research began in the late 1960s in

Atlanta, Georgia on the Emory University campus at the Yerkes Primate

Center, It was there that I learned about primate behavior modification-the

basis for human mind control. Part I of this book is my attempt to impart an

understanding of how this and other exposures would prepare me for the

Challenge of a lifetime.

What I witnessed, in terms of technology, at the Yerkes Primate Center and

Other government sponsored research facilities, combined with years of personal

research into this science of mind manipulation, did not adequately prepare me

for what I would be exposed to in 1988 through an unexpected chain of events.

This exposure came in the form of personal acquaintance with the human results

officially entitled by DOD as, among other cryptic file titles, MK-Ultra.1

1 have outlined this noxious introduction in hopes that the material provided

by one MK-Ultra survivor, Cathy O’Brien, will incite a legitimate federal

investigation of her claims.

I was able to liberate MK-Ultra victims, Cathy O’Brien and her daughter,

Kelly, from the invisible grip of this U.S. Government secret weapon of

control. In the process, I also helped Cathy recover her mental and physical

health. However, I have not been successful in enlisting the cooperation of my

government to pursue the justice issue. There is a reason for this failure to

obtain justice that you, the reader, NEED TO KNOW. I have been told

repeatedly, “Justice is not obtainable, For Reasons Of National Security.”

This book is primarily the autobiography of Cathy O’Brien, who did not

volunteer for service to her country, but was used her entire life against her

innate, voluntary will for perpetuating criminal activity by many so-called

leaders within the U.S. Government. These “treasonous leaders” did volunteer

for political “service” to our country. They must be held accountable for their

actions.

Together, Cathy and I have dedicated our lives to the pursuit of justice and

rehabilitation for her and Kelly. All avenues for justice and rehabilitative relief

have been blocked For Reasons Of National Security. The question arises,

whose security? Cathy O’Brien provides the logical answer. Perhaps after

reading this work, you will inspire others to read it. Collectively, as patriots,

we can make a positive difference for Cathy and Kelly, our government, and

humanity, by having our voices heard. In my opinion, our great United Stales

Constitution does not need to be amended it needs to be enforced.

The grim reality we must all embrace is that there is, in human terms, no

justice, and no revenge adequate to equal what these two, and many other

victims of this U.S. Government secret weapon experienced. The only

remaining remnant of opportunity for justice for these survivors would be

derived from a public forum expose of what they experienced. What these

survivors need to witness is the mass dissemination of their story and a radical,

positive change in their government’s management of secrets. This would be an

acceptable, though belated, substitute for justice. Their hope lies in the belief

that-

“Truth lives a wretched life,

but always survives a lie,”

1 Weinstein, Harvey M., M.D., Psychiatry And The Cia: Victims Of Mind Control

American Psychiatric Press, 1990.

CHAPTER 1

Sometimes words, or groups of words, found in the English language have

many definitions or meanings. Within each meaning there may be different

logical and Literal perceptions of the application of a given word. However, the

words mind control usually conjure up a single response. This is most

unfortunate due to the vast differences of perception contained within the

reference.

For example, if you have access to a late 1980s Random House or later

Webster’s New Collegiate Dictionary and reference mind control, you will

notice there is a conspicuous absence of a listing. Should you go one step

further and secure a college professor’s teaching copy of Oxford’s Companion

To The Mind (Oxford Press 1987), you can reference practically anything

concerning research of the mind without a reference to mind control. Perhaps

you may now realize that through Random House, Webster and Oxford Press

omissions, you are a victim of information control.

Mind control is sometimes loosely defined as information control. This

being one of many accepted ways to define the term should immediately rase

questions of distrust towards your information sources. Since what we think is

based on what we learn, manipulation of a mind, or a nation of minds, can be

accomplished through control of information. With thought control being a

result of information control, many avid researchers of mind sciences simply

label it “soft” mind control.

These days, we live in a world in which the continued existence of

multinational businesses and governments depends upon instant communications.

However, with consideration to the so-called problem of.

information overload, it would appear to most people that we hear and see

enough to make rational decisions concerning our individual lives.

Unfortunately, this is not true. What we don’t know, as evidenced by mindcontrol

atrocities, is quickly destroying society as we have known it

The answer to this problem is glaringly apparent. We, as citizens of a

supposedly free country, should not permit our government to restrict any

information that protects criminal activity under the guise of National Security.

Secret knowledge equals power, with the end result being control.

Therefore, despite the deliberate efforts of those persons in control of national

media information management (who are not media employees), results of

secret mind-control projects gone awry have been leaking out for years through

the media. People are literally waking up to the mind-control reality because

there is an obvious lack of logical explanation for certain sensational news

events. What really happened at Jim Jones’ Jonestown and with Sirhan Sirhan,

John Hinkley, and Lee Harvey Oswald? And, more importantly, why did it

happen? The simple common denominator existing among these persons has

been publicly slated by the media, based on research of their medical histories,

is mind control.

In reality, information control is but one component of mind control.

Whereas “brain washing,” a term coined by an investigative journalist writing

about Korean War P.O.W.s around 1951, described the results of what the

Chinese regarded as thought reform.

The term brainwashing denotes to most people the destruction of a person’s

memory. This slang term continues to be used by the news media in place of

the all encompassing term, mind control. In reality, applied brainwashing

techniques are similar to those used in trauma-based behavior modification.

During the past three decades, a significant number of religious groups

worldwide has been cited by the mainstream news media as destructive cults.

An emphasis on the word destructive is necessary in defining these groups as

cults. Random House Dictionary defines cult as “a particular system of

religious worship”. By this definition, the word cult would encompass all

religions. These so-called destructive cults have been publicly denounced by the

news media for using brainwashing, thought reform, and mind manipulation

tactics on their believers. However, there is an obvious lack of expressed

concern by these same media as they fail to address the underlying issues of

mind control, the power basis for abuse.

Perhaps the reporting news media can not, for some reason, publicly open

the proverbial Pandora’s Box. Is it plausible then to consider that closer

scrutiny, by the media and the public, of these destructive cults’ leadership

could reveal a solid connection to government sponsored mind-control research?

These arc questions that, in themselves properly addressed, would provide

important answers to this social epidemic involving physical and psychological

abuse. The answers that an in-depth professional investigation would provide

could be the first step in resolving the rash of problems that destructive cults,

serial killers, and sexual child abusers, thrust upon society.

As consumers of national news media supplied information, we continue to

invent half-truths which, in this case scenario, is seeing and hearing only what

results from mass mind manipulation.

Historians provide us a glimpse into the future through recorded events of

the past. It appears that throughout recorded history, man has, towards the end

of each millennium, returned to a focus on certain types of bizarre human

behavior. For example, there has been in the past 150 years a resurgence of

wide spread interest in the occult “black arts” which include satanism or

Luciferian religions. These constitutionally protected “religions” use trauma to

control the minds of their followers.

Mind-control practices within the occult groups (according to survivors

adjudged credible and law enforcement officials) have been accredited with

bridging the gap between applied science and Shamanism. Occultism as a

manner of religious expression has been around for thousands of years. Only in

the last 150 years has science aggressively pursued the truths regarding mind

manipulation hidden within the occult belief systems themselves.

According Lo the Random House Dictionary, occultism “is the practice of

alleged sciences claiming knowledge of supernatural agencies which are beyond

the range of ordinary knowledge.” Once again, it is a reminder that secret

knowledge equals power.

In 1971, the New York Times reported a story on the Central Intelligence

Agency (CIA) and occult research, the basis of which was gained through a

collection of documents released by the U.S. Government Printing Office under

the Freedom of Information Act. This was a report to Congress and clearly

showed that the CIA was interested in the cause and effect clinical findings that

occult religious practices have on the Black Arts practitioner’s and/or the

observer’s mind. Of particular interest to the CIA were the heightened levels of

suggestibility that certain occult rituals produced in the minds of the

practitioners. Cannibalism and blood rituals were ranked highest in the order of

importance to their research.

Behavioral psychology teaches us that control of human suggestibility is

recognized as the fundamental building block for external control of the mind.

This suggestibility factor alone potentially creates a human rights legal issue

when we consider constructing laws to protect people from overt or covert

mind-control practices. Consideration to the human suggestibility factor could

result in all forms of consumer oriented service and/or product advertising

becoming illegal. Advertising and the marketing of services and/or products

through communications can be justifiably defined as a type of psychological

manipulation, (nought reform and/or mind manipulation which results in a form

of behavior modification, A patriot friend, Steven Jacobson, published his book

entitled Mind control in America2 in 1985, eloquently exposing the science of

mind manipulation through advertising. The basis for successfully modifying

human behavior requires mind manipulation techniques that, when expertly

applied through advertising media, become a form of “soft” mind control.

Factoring in suggestibility through the tactile senses as the “Achilles’ heel”

of the human race renders everyone vulnerable to becoming, on some level, a

victim of soft mind control.

The controversy of what is and what is not mind control rages on among

scholars in the schools of law, human rights, and mental health. All lhe while

the confusion of issues provides a form of legal protection for practitioners of

trauma-based mind control, the only known form of remote human control that

is absolute. All other forms of mind control, including chemical and electronic

manipulations, are considered by mind-control experts as temporary.

There are laws protecting U.S. citizens’ rights to practice their religious

beliefs and freedom of speech. There are no laws which specifically protect

leaders of destructive cults and/or practitioners of trauma-based mind control.

However, because of the U.S. Government’s use of mind control and the broad

diversity of legal opinion concerning the accepted limits of free speech and

religious practices, the legal loop holes for criminals employing mind-control

techniques on their “flocks” for personal gain remain open.

For every problem there exists a solution.. The formula for problem solving,

rests firmly on the quality of the supporting research information concerning the

nature of the problem. Legislating laws specifically to protect people from

mind-control abuses would be futile. Practically every civilized society inexistence

has some law and/or group of laws which would protect the people

and punish the practitioners of mind control. Laws are enforced according to

lawmakers’ interpretations of the specific legal language. The lack of

enforcement of laws already on the books that could protect us from mindcontrol

abuses stems from applied legal interpretations and cover-ups of survivor

testimony by the CIA and National Security Agency (NSA) For Reasons

Of National Security.

Mind-control atrocities, if committed by anyone who could be linked to

government sponsored projects, are typically ignored and covered up. Access

to the courts by these hapless survivors is thus stonewalled by government paid

so-called legal experts who receive their orders from the National Security

Agency.

Defining the term “mind control” is akin to defining the limits of the 1947

National Security Act. The basis for the solution to the National Security

controversy is simple. It is known as: Truth logically applied.

It is an obvious truth that the National Security Act has been interpreted, not

to guard the integrity of military secrets, but instead to protect criminal activity

of the highest order.

Repeal of this Act and replacement with the established rules of military

conduct concerning National Security that do not infringe upon the

constitutional rights of America’s citizenry or the rights of its allies would result

in compliance with the Constitution.

2 ISBN # 0-911485-00-7

CHAPTER 2

SALESMAN, AD MAN, MIND MAN, PATRIOT

MY PERSONAL EVOLUTION

“Every revolution, bloody or bloodless, has two phases. The first is the

struggle for Freedom; the second the struggle for power. The phase of the

struggle for Freedom is divine. He who has participated in it invariably feels,

physically, that his best and most precious-inner self has come to the surface.

We know that being faithful to the TRUTH stands higher than our own

participation in governing the country—and that is why we must not have a

suciety that would reject ethical norms in the name of political mirages.”3

As I was saying to my grandmother, Mamaleen Johnson, “My life has

turned into a nightmare and I’m wide awake,” tears were streaming down my

face, dripping off my chin onto her patent leather shoes. She affectionately

patted my shoulder as she listened.

The words we exchanged, the room’s wallpaper and furnishings, my

beloved grandmother, Mamaleen. even the taste of my tears combined with a

feeling of overwhelming grief-it is ail there etched into my memory.

This was the summer before I was to enter my second year of school in

1950. The first year remains a blur with cause.

Life for me and my family had changed dramatically over the previous year.

So radical a change that it had taken almost a year for me to realize life was not

becoming any easier to live. My stuttering was getting worse. The rare

moments I could speak coherently were limited to short sentences devoid of the

word “you”, and then only to my mother and grandmother. Occasionally when

angry I could speak clearly, or when alone in the woods while talking or singing

to trees. Apparently my frustration with oral communication due to stuttering

had been intensified by a trauma I experienced the previous year. Little did I

know then that this trauma would positively and negatively influence my future

and the lives of others I would know for the rest of my life.

On a hot and sticky Tennessee July day in 1949, my father helped boost first

my mother, then me, into the saddle astride our four-year-old high-spirited “gift

horse” Wojac. This was to be my first ride on the back of an animal. The

excitement of the moment combined with stuttering rendered me, literally,

speechless. As I recall and from photographs taken at the time, I was wearing a

sweat-soaked, pale yellow cotton shirt, dark tan shorts, brown socks, and dirty

tennis shoes. At six years old, I was very thin and did not take up the remaining

saddle space behind my mother.

With the reins in my mother’s hands, the horse responded to her polite

command of “Come on, Wojac. Giddyup.” He began slowly walking down

our driveway to the narrow crushed limestone road beside our property. Upon

reaching the gravel road, the horse turned or was guided left, momentarily

disappointing me as I knew we were only going for a short ride. It was only

about a quarter of a mile to the busy paved intersection that would be dangerous

to cross. (Had my mother decided to go in the opposite direction, we could

have ridden for a couple of miles before reaching any automobile traffic.)

As quickly as the horse made the turn from our driveway onto the country

road, my mother nudged his flanks with her heels. With another command of

“let’s go,” the horse responded with a mild jerk of motion and he began a fast

trot down the middle of the road.

The horse’s speed, in retrospect, was too fast for safe travel on gravel. Not

knowing this then, I was not scared until I saw the crossroads looming closer, I

can hear myself half shouting “BBBBBetter slow down. MMMight BBBBe a

CCar CCComming.” Before I could enunciate the last words, my mother began a

slow sideways slide off the saddle. I could not see her face as she disappeared

under the horse, and the reins disappeared with her. The horse bolted full speed

ahead. In the blink of an eye, my realization of being alone in the saddle with

no way to control the horse washed over me. Quickly, I tugged on his mane to

no avail. It was in this instant I determined that the runaway horse was not

going to stop for the crossroads. I jumped. As I recall, the fall was swift and

my abrupt landing in the sharp rocks was not painful, though it seemed that my

body would never stop rolling. Panicked and with the dust beginning to settle, 1

sat up, blinked the dust and sticky blood from my eyes, and looked about for

my mother. She lay in a disorganized heap beside the road. I ran to hen

The first mental impression 1 experienced was that she was just wide-eyed

dazed from her fall. Then I noticed her eyes weren’t blinking and around her

head was a thick puddle of blood. Not wanting to leave her in the road for fear

she would be run over, and not strong enough to pick her up, I began screaming

in the direction of our home in hopes that my father could hear me. Almost

immediately he responded by sprinting to us”, all the while shouting, “What

happened? What happened?”

For the “life remaining in me” I could not answer for, as usual, I was

speechless. As he knelt down to speak to my mother, he stopped mid sentence

when he apparently saw her eyes in a fixed gaze and that the back of her skull

was crushed inward. Instantly he picked her up. and as we were running back

to the house, he commanded my eleven-year-old sister to call an ambulance.

To this day I cannot recall how we got to the hospital.

The grisly scenes of this tragedy were not my nightmare. It did not play

over and over again in my mind, for 1 had dissociated from it. I had voluntarily

and autogenically created a memory barrier of this trauma. This is a normal

human response. Had I been tortured after the trauma, I would not have been

able to voluntarily recall either the accident or the torture. Hence the basis of

this book.

The nightmare began during the subsequent recovery year when we realized

my mother would never be herself again. She had lost over a quarter of her

brain when the horse stepped into her skull. Permanently gone was her ability

to smell, taste, and hear in one ear. These were the physical handicaps she

developed. Her resultant emotional condition would become evident to me

many years later. As a child, this new awareness of my mother’s condition had

minimal impact on me compared to the fear I lived with, moment to moment,

due to my father’s chronic alcoholism. Years later my sister would follow his

lead into a losing battle with the bottle. I was safe, as alcohol made me stutter.

After being told so many times during my developmental years that my

mother’s condition was attributable to her brain damage, and that my stuttering

was because my brain was not working correctly, it occurred to me at some

point to learn about the brain. For years after the accident, 1 overheard adult

conversations about my mother’s brain. My curiosity peaked about the brain

and the resultant invisible mind and had set the course for my life’s interest.

Somewhere in this time period, I fantasized I would learn enough about the

mind and brain to help my mother and myself.

As a child, my attention span was regarded as abnormal. I was considered

very bright, yet my grades in school reflected something different. Although

not properly diagnosed, I was most likely suffering from what is now termed

Attention Deficit Disorder (ADD). The handicaps of stuttering and ADD were

to become my first personal improvement challenges once I was out in the

world on my own.

This “on my own” objective came at an early age. I was barely sixteenyears-

old when I left home to begin my pursuit of happiness. My first efforts

resulted in total failure. However, I could not return to my parents’ home

because they were now divorced.

Young, broke and rejected, I was able to determine two things. First, I

must learn how to communicate if 1 were to enjoy any success in life, I went

about this task methodically, first by enrolling myself into a local night college.

In the classroom I studied speech, business law and psychology. At the library;

I studied brain functions and their effect on the mind. I was not degree oriented

because I could not earn enough at two jobs to attend the required classes to

graduate, but my studies were slowly providing me a usable skill. Secondly,

somewhere during this period of learning 1 began to realize I possessed a natural

ability to sell. Perhaps this ability to persuade others resulted from my

childhood experience of having to “read people” through their body language

rather than talking with them.

My first real job in sales was so successful that my client base was reduced

by my employer. I responded to this action by moving on.

The Vietnam War was heating up and I was eligible for the draft. No

longer in school, 1 knew that my number would be drawn soon. And it was.

Little did 1 know that my prayers for a deferment would be answered and would

afford me an exemption from military duty. I would soon be working for the

Ampex Corporation and with the U.S. Department of Defense in a civilian

capacity. The defense work closely associated me with top research scientists

working in the area of primate and human behavior modification. Ironically, I

learned more about the mind from my casual relationships with these scientists

than I did working at the various research sites. The sites included teaching

hospitals, state mental institutions, military bases, National Aeronautics and

Space Administration (NASA) facilities, and the Yerkes Primate Center.

Th e following years of my corporate employment in national and international

sales evolved into sales and marketing management positions in an

executive capacity. My personal life, in terms of loving relationships, was

again in shambles but my career and ongoing mind, brain, human behavior

research was rewarding enough to compensate for my lack of emotional

expression. The secrets I had learned so well concerning powers of persuasion,

both conscious and subliminal, had long since become a functioning part of my

mind’s arsenal of defensive and offensive tools of control. I resolved then and

there to become a “control freak”. Instead, my fantasy was not to learn

what I could control but what was controlling me.

Then, around 1986, a peer friend of mine observed that I had arrived in the

perverbial “comfon zone” in terms of presenting profitable ideas for others to

set upon, and advised me to go into business for myself. Shortly thereafter he

provided me an excellent example by resigning his six-figure executive

marketing directorship and nominated me as a candidate for his replacement.

Ironically, for the first time in my life, the nomination was rejected because I

did not possess at least a master’s degree in business management or

communications. His assistant was given the position, and I was subsequently

offered the assistant’s vacated position with no hope of promotion, which of

course I refused. Soon thereafter, my friend, free of his corporate golden

handcuffs, established his own firm which became a very successful business.

Around this same time a childhood acquaintance, long since socially

separated from my life, reappeared long enough to introduce me to his country

music entertainment friend, Alex Houston. From this introduction I learned this

acquaintance, Ray Myers and his wife, Regina, are alleged pedophiles who

reportedly sexually molested Cathy’s daughter and their own children. It

seemed that Houston was looking for someone with international business

negotiating skills who could assist him in putting together a large enough sales

deal to finance a manufacturing operation. After spending a few days of

complimentary consulting time with him, I had made some rather interesting

and intriguing observations about the man and his ideas. First of all, Houston

did have a legitimate, potentially profitable idea concerning the manufacture of

an electrical capacitor device that could increase energy efficiency for large

industrial consumers. Secondly, Houston favorably impressed me as a

calculated risk-taker. Thirdly, Houston agreed to finance my production of a

marketing plan for presentation to potential foreign buyers. And finally,

Houston agreed that I would run the company as President, if and when I sold

that plan, I thought. “No problem!”

The intriguing part of this “budding” relationship was my awareness of

Houston’s propensity for dishonesty. I felt an urgent need for legal advice on

how to insure contractual protection from Houston. Within days, Houston and I

had conceptually and contractually agreed to start up the business. I designed a

logo and assigned the name UniPhayse. The contracts we entered bound both

of us to our respective areas of commitment and was iron clad. Houston’s

willingness to participate in my legal protection maneuver further perplexed me,

because of the obvious ”honesty type” clauses contained in the agreement. At

the time, in my mind, I had determined that if Houston could “keep it clean”

and perform his role, we would be able lo make this company successful. If

not, I owned the company lock, stock, and barrel and could still make it work.

Months later, with business and marketing plans in ray briefcase and a

demonstration model of the proposed product in hand, Houston and I boarded

an airplane to Hong Kong. We were met upon arrival by a tall, well-dressed,

Korean gentleman who introduced himself as William Yoon. He owned an

international shipping company. His ships carried practically everything from

scrap metal to Chinese silkworm missiles all over the world,

Mr. Yoon, as he preferred to be called, in keeping with Far Eastern

protocol, was interested in negotiating a joint venture company with his friends

in the most populated nation on Earth, The People’s Republic of China. All

arrangements had been made by Mr. Yoon’s staff for Houston, myself, and him

to fly to Beijing the following day to begin negotiations with the Mining

Ministry. After several days of exhausting discussions through an interpreter

almost entirely between myself and the deputy director of the Chinese Mining

Ministry, it appeared as though we had a workable deal.

An elegant banquet was ordered by our gracious Chinese hosts, and it was

there I learned that the Mining Ministry was a part of the Chinese Ministry of

Defense. Feelings of patriotism welled up in me for the first time in my life. I

was aware that China was engaged in supplying missiles to Libya, a Middle

Eastern country with whom the U.S. was in conflict. The Chinese were

swapping missiles and other weapons for cheap Libyan light crude oil. The

Chinese were about the only country in the world who dared defy the Reagan

Administration’s trade embargo. These fleeting thoughts of being involved with

the Chinese military felt treasonous to me. Although uncomfortable with the

idea of a business venture with such potential for political disaster, I reminded

myself that hundreds of other U.S. companies were already in China. Houston

refused to discuss the subject.

During the return flight from Beijing to Hong Kong, I confided my patriotic

concerns to Mr. Yoon knowing that he would soon become my business

partner. He eloquently relieved my fears of potential disaster with a

complicated explanation that made sense at the time. This man politely

informed me that we could not lose money as he and I would have interim

control over all product sales revenue generated outside of China, By Chinese

law for joint venture companies, 60% of all manufactured product must go

outside China.

Houston and I returned to Tennessee and I briefly met his wife, Cathy, for

the first time when she greeted us at the gate. She appeared to me to be young,

beautiful, very dumb, and dressed like a prostitute. I paced my walk to be

several steps away from her as we headed to the baggage claim area.

Within a few weeks of this visit, a delegation of Chinese electrical engineers

and finance experts were flown to our Tennessee office for more negotiations

and to collect technical production data (we held) for future manufacturing

purposes.

Soon after the delegation departed for China, I received a mysterious phone

call from someone at the U.S. Department of State, aka the State Department.

It seems someone in my Chinese delegation had earlier been refused entry into

this country due to his being identified as an international weapons supplier for

terrorists. This telephone voice assured me that there were no problems that

would arise and that this information was not to be publicized. I thanked him

and assured him the information was secure.

A couple of months later, my new Hong Kong partner, Mr. Yoon, invited

me, my wife, Houston and his wife, Cathy, to come to China for the official

signing of the Chinese joint venture agreement. When I asked Houston if he

and his wife would attend, he flatly replied, “No”. He had already booked his

“act” and could not cancel. I then offered to escort his wife and mine to China.

He responded “no” again, that it was too far and too expensive for a pleasure

trip. I was relieved because I had already learned enough of the Chinese language

to know our partners did not like or respect him, and Cathy’s demeanor

embarrassed me. I later learned that Houston’s “gig” was to “trancesport”/

transport Cathy and little Kelly to the infamous Bohemian Grove for

prostitution.

My trip to China with all the pomp and circumstance went well as expected,

even though my wife and I were in the process of separating for a divorce.

However, just before I was prepared to return to the U.S., I received some

extraordinary information from a man who showed me Chinese Ministry of

Defense credentials that gained my full and complete attention. This man was

in possession of a file on me that could have only been gained through a

thorough investigation of my past professional associations. His English skills

were only strong enough to roughly, nervously translate some of the file’s content.

This man had photographic proof of a U.S. Department of Defense

security clearance I once held. He acknowledged that the “Chinese knew all

about me”. Thoughts of blackmail raced across my mind. These thoughts

instantly disappeared when he began to voice his government’s true concerns.

Their concerns were about Alex Houston and his involvement with the CIA,

drugs, money laundering, child prostitution, and the big one he saved for last,

slavery. No mention of mind control was offered, although he did comment

that Houston was a “very bad man” and his crimes were “of the White House”.

Disbelief was in order but not possible, due to the wide array of “Eyes Only”

stamped and initialed (official) CIA letterhead and U.S. Government documents

he slowly flashed before my eyes.

My first response to this “officer” was that Houston was too stupid and

crooked to be connected to U.S. “intelligence”. This comment was quickly

countered with a gut wrenching photograph of Houston. He was smiling a

demonic grin while apparently having anal sex with a small, very young,

frightened Black boy. Later he was identified to me as being Haitian.

When confronted with this horrific information and the apparent validity of

it, I asked, “What do you (your government) want me to do?”

He replied, “Get rid of him, distance yourself from him and all of his

associates”.

I responded by asking him how he thought I could accomplish this task. He

stated, “Any way you choose”. I told him that regardless of what he had seen

of American television concerning violence, the only way I knew was to force

him out by purchasing his company stock, and I needed money to do it. He

said, “Give us the figure and make the arrangements. It is done.”

I had returned to Tennessee with a Chinese government contract for

products valued at thirty-one million dollars. Stapled to it was a telex letter of

credit made out to me and the company from Houston’s bank connection the

New York branch of the now infamous Bank of Credit and Commerce

International (B.C.C.I.). The amount was one million dollars in U.S. funds.

The contract was worth approximately ten million dollars in gross profit for Mr.

Yoon and me.

Given the charge by the Chinese to immediately discharge Houston of his

duties, I knew exactly what my plan of action would have to be. Any other

approach to resolving this problem could backfire and all would be lost. And

since a former, indirect employer of mine (when I worked for Capital

International Airways), the CIA, was implicated, I knew one mistake and it

could cost me my life. A comforting thought prevailed and I reminded myself

Houston was not only corrupt, but stupid. The CIA must not have respected

him either. Otherwise why would he have had to go outside his circle of

powerful perverts to recruit me for an international business deal.

I drove to my office to begin the process of discovering something Houston

“must have done” that would breach the performance contract he and I had

signed when we started the company. Houston was out of town supposedly

doing one of his entertainment gigs, so I had complete, unobstructed access to

all files, his included. As I had mentally predicted during the long flight from

Hong Kong, the entire ferreting process took about fifteen minutes. It seemed

that Houston and the old acquaintance who had introduced him to me were, as

they say, “selling out the back door”. I collected the shipping bills and,

ironically enough, the bank deposit slip Houston had retained when he cashed

and deposited the customer’s check. There was even a letter copy where

Houston had specifically instructed the customer not to discuss his account with

anyone at our company other than Houston himself or bis pervert friend, Ray

Myers. Upon this discovery, I phoned the local Korean lawyer (whose business

card I had been given by Mr. Yoon while in Hong Kong) to begin the stock

transfer process. With pleasure, 1 wrote Houston’s letter of resignation.

With this problem in the process of being resolved, I left the office to visit

an old, dear friend (now deceased) who had maintained powerful U.S. and

foreign intelligence connections. I needed answers 1 could trust with my life.

This “retired” Air Force General from the Intelligence division would be my

source.

The word “slavery” delivered in broken English by the Chinese Intelligence

officer shouted in my ears during the short drive to a local hotel lobby, a

comfortable place my “spook” pal selected for us to talk in private. In the few

short minutes of the drive, I had my questions (for him) mentally noted. I

wanted so much to gain the most from our meeting. The slavery word had

triggered a dark question in my mind, blocking other constructive thought, as I

was not comfortable with introducing the term mind control into my

presentation. I knew 1 could speak freely about anything to this trusted friend.

I wanted desperately to avoid the words mind control, not for reasons of

comdemnation, but because they represented a secret I had patriotically maintained

for twenty years.

After my arrival and the light chit chat of social niceties had been exchanged

between us, the air changed to one of seriousness. I briefed him on my business

involvement, and began a methodical line of questions concerning the file the

Chinese Intelligence officer had presented on me and, especially, on Houston:

shortly, my friend interrupted me in mid-sentence, smiled a toothy grin, and

said, “Flash, you’re still the same, and you know damn well what I mean.”

“Yes”, I replied.

The spook was referring to a ’70s rock ballad titled “Still the Same” by

singer Bob Segar that was assigned to me years earlier by mutual poker-playing

buddies who identified with my passion for successful risk-taking. I despised

gambling. My passion was “risk management” and poker gave me a

recreational outlet for it. Although my friends each paid dearly, they soon

learned my poker strategy was not so much “card counting” as it was my ability

to read their body language. This included the micromuscle spasm responses

around their eyes, Houston also lost to me at cards. The message the General

was implying, roughly translated, was that I was once again “lucky as hell” to

have survived my brief business relationship with Alex Houston.

The discussion went down hill from that point directly into the dreaded

arena of mind control. After several minutes of listening to details concerning a

huge, invisible CIA slave trade going on world wide, the talk became more

regionalized to Tennessee. I learned that Cathy and her little girl were victims

of trauma-based mind control. They were slaves and the “soul” property of my

Uncle Sam. I learned that everything 1 knew in theory and application about

external control of the mind was fully operational and encroaching on the

private sector of society.

I was growing numb. The first words out of my dry mouth were, “How

would you spring these people out of it?”

He smiled and said, “I wouldn’t! What are you going to do with them if

you did get them out?” Before I could answer, he interrupted and said, “Look,

you’re still the same, but nothing else is with Uncle. Now most of the CIA,

FBI, and the MOB (Mafia) are the same, and they’re making their moves on the

military.”

I responded, “I already know that, but how do I save these two people?”

He said, “OK. Get the mother on the phone while her handler is gone. Use

the usual hang up code of dial and ring twice, hang up call back, ring once,

hang up and call back. Tell her you’re God, Give her a biblical passage.

They’re all Christian based programmed around here.”

Understanding that this procedure would gain Cathy’s full attention, the

General continued, “She’ll do anything, and I mean anything—except toast

Houston—that you command her to do. Remember, God commands. Find

yourself a preacher who knows the Bible and get a double-bind verse. You

know what to do—for God’s sake. And, listen, if you do this, you’re on your

own.”

“Mark, this is nuts,” he pleaded. Go to China and take them with you,

Forget about this Red, While and Blue cesspool. It’ll clean up. There’s lots of

good guys in the inside busting their asses to stop this mess, but you’re not

going to save the world.”

I injected, “No, just my ass and a couple of people who Uncle considers

something other than human,” Then we briefly chatted about some fine points

of the rescue and how to legally stop Houston from taking her back. I never

saw this friend again.

Walking back to my car, I listened again in my mind to his haunting words.

and my own life suddenly seemed like a scratched phonograph record with the

needle following the same groove over and over again. The thoughts in my

head were suddenly very unpatriotic – a far cry from the feelings I had expressed

in China concerning Mr. Yoon’s involvement in shipping Chinese missiles to

Libya.

Now I felt pure rage for what my country had become during the years after

I had bowed out of doing defense work. For once my own mind seemed to be

my worst enemy. Hatred for everything consumed me,

I loved what my country had once represented to me, but now I was

ashamed to be an American. And unbeknownst to me at the moment, soon I

would be ashamed of being a male, based on Cathy and Kelly’s memories.

During the long, usually boring drive to my secluded house in the

wilderness southwest of Nashville, I distinctly recall considering the inherent

risks in the formula I was given for “stealing” two slaves from under the cokefilled

noses of the CIA. My concerns were not of whether I could do it, but

related to my friend’s question of, “What are you going to do with them?”

My thoughts went blank as I muttered to myself, “Life is getting complicated

again”, I then consoled myself with the old adage of “first things

first”.

Within a few days, I had played God and coordinated the move of Cathy

and her 8-year-old daughter, Kelly, out of Houston’s house into a nearby

apartment. All of this was totally unbeknownst to Houston. As instructed, I

had deliberately placed the powerful coded suggestions into Cathy’s mind.

These commands partially bridged her own amnestic true perceptions that Alex

was going to kill her. Little did I know that the message I was provided to

block Houston’s former control of her was true.

Cathy and Kelly seemed to me to be very disoriented and somewhat

disconnected from reality. In their new, sparsely furnished kitchen, I listened

quietly to Caihy excitedly explain that “God had sent me” to her. She “knew”

this was true because her hands seemed to automatically open her King James

version of the Holy Bible to Psalm, Chapter 37, verse 37, which proclaims for

the literal minded, “Mark, the perfect man”.

Not only had I placed this biblical reference by a covert suggestion in her

mind while playing God on the phone, but just now in her home moments

earlier, I had broken the spine on her Bible so that it would “magically” open to

that page. She said, “See, God did it again for you to see”.

Using a deprogrammer’s language trick, I replied in a “reversed” response,

“Well, I’ll be damned. You are right. That’s the only explanation left—that

could explain all this”, I was anxious to change the subject so as not to risk

alerting any one of her observant personalities to my well contained laughter. I

had been warned that programmed slaves were hyper-observant.

In retrospect, I could not have had thoughts of being sacrilegious. I was and

remain deeply spiritual, but my earlier years of researching religions for life’s

answers had turned me cynical and cold of man’s interpretation of the Bible,

Koran and Buddha’s teachings. This attitude 1 privately harbored towards

organized religions did nothing to squelch the dread I felt wash over me for that

moment.

In my attempt to change the subject from religion, I had remembered the

Nazi mind-control research performed under Himmler’s command on the

families of northern European multi-generational Satanists. Christianity,

particularly Catholicism, was Himmler’s pick of the religions’ litter for

targeting “Chosen Ones” for his hideous mind-control experiments. These

Chosen Ones were to be the robotic leaders of Hitler’s New World Order. 1

then asked Cathy what religion she was before she met Houston. She replied,

“Mormon, but I was a good Catholic before then”.

My mind swirled from that shocking revelation. 1 again quickly changed the

subject and suggested we go out to dinner and discuss her new job as my

assistant starting the following the day. But tonight we would discuss her

divorce plans.

Later that evening, I began my search for a secure phone to find someone

from past associations I knew were CIA connected on an officer’s level. I

needed a get-well-quick formula or a clean mental health referral who could

help these two wide-eyed unfortunates. I was informed there were none and

that I knew more about “that mind stuff” than anyone who would talk.

I returned home to find my phone ringing with an anxious Alex Houston,

who had returned from a “vacation” at Boys Town in Nebraska, on the other

end exclaiming that he was looking for his wife. She had ” disappeared”.

I faked not knowing anything and suggested he come to my house the next

afternoon to go over some urgent business. The next morning, I located a

lawyer, for Cathy, and she had the divorce papers drawn up.

That afternoon I had Granville Ratclift, a local Sheriff’s deputy 1 partially

trusted, who occasionally watched my house when I was out of town, waiting

inside my house to witness and legally serve Houston with the divorce papers

and his termination notice from the company. My last words to Houston which

I recorded on tape were, “You could get hurt if you mess with me or them.

Alex, get out!” (Now, I hope Houston lives to be a hundred years of age.)

Getting the legal jump on Houston to project Cathy reminded me that I

needed to attend to my own divorce needs. My wife mutually agreed her life

could be more emotionally rewarding without me. She moved to Florida and

set up house with her mother. We filed for a noncontested divorce. I agreed to

sell the house and what remained of our joint possessions.

Still unable to secure expert help for Cathy and Kelly, I maintained their

safety by moving them into my house until it was sold. It was during this time

that I was approached by a neighbor who said he had seen someone through his

binoculars wearing a gun and taking pictures of my house. Other such intrusive

visits by unknown persons followed suit. I was getting real nervous.

I again called on a CIA operative I knew who worked within Nashville’s

corrupt law enforcement elite who, days later, informed me to “get my ass out

of there now-someone wanted me dead!” When I asked why, he said, “You

know damn good and well why!”

The house sold quickly and I had already decided to walk away from my

company, my contracts, and the one million dollars on deposit as a letter of

credit at B.C.C.I. in New York. Mr. Yoon came to Nashville, He purchased

Houston’s stock. I returned Mr. Yoon to the airport. My last words to him

were, “Farewell, friend”. He knew nothing of what was going on and I have

never seen or spoken with him again. That afternoon I cleaned out my office,

handed the keys to the landlord, closed out my personal and company bank

accounts.

I had become angry beyond anything I had ever experienced. In retrospect,

this was the birthing process of evolution from man to patriot.

I now only wanted answers to what was going on in my government. We

needed to be safe while I searched for these answers. My next stop in this

pursuit would be Las Vegas, Nevada, Once there, I met with some powerful,

underworld characters I had befriended back in my aviation days at Capital

International Airways while “packaging” gambling junkets for these characters.

I felt confident that these guys would protect me at least until I could find out

what and who Cathy knew. I was reminded by these men that they were a part

of the CIA’s new funding operations. One of them flippantly remarked while

chomping his Cuban cigar, “You can’t hide an egg in a hen house, fella”.

My contact then coldly informed me that I had become involved in

something that affected our National Security. I lied to this “wise guy” and

cryptically responded, “Oh, well. I’ll take them (Cathy and Kelly) to Alaska

and play like a voiceless chameleon”. In retrospect, this spontaneous lie must

have worked to protect me from “red shining” myself to become the recipient

of a CIA/MOB hit.

Cathy and I continued to stay “parked” in Las Vegas for a few more days

waiting to retrieve Kelly from a last minute (suspected CIA) court ordered visit

with her biological father, Wayne Cox. Later, I would learn from Kelly’s

medical reports that she had spent Christmas vacation “in hell.”

I was now alone in my mind, scared, and going broke fast. Once again I

felt totally alienated from everything and everybody in my life. At this

moment, 1 began constantly reminding myself that I was doing the only thing I

knew for sure was right. Realistically, I was astride the proverbial tiger and I

could not get off its back and survive.

3 1991 Roman Catholic Weekly

CHAPTER 3

THE RECLAMATION OF CATHY’S MIND

“The greatest gift anyone can give

another is a good memory.”4

It was now the week after Christmas 1988. I was fulfilling half of my

pledge to the Vegas mob. With all of our remaining personal belongings

containerized and secretly in transit on a different ship, I, my “new family” and

pets were ferry-bound for Anchorage, Alaska. The sixteen hundred mile trip

through ice and snow would take about three days to complete. Unfortunately,

it gave me time to think.

Due to our negative cash flow situation, realistically I knew there was no

place to run or hide from the CIA. Cathy and Kelly seemed happy and believed

they were safe. This was my number one priority! For me, I had to trust that

my escape plan would convince interested CIA personnel that we no longer

represented a threat to their security. The plan was based on an ancient

psychological warfare formula developed by the Romans, I wanted to portray

myself as akin to a character in a bad Reagan (western) movie and ride into the

sunset never to be heard from again. Thinking to myself that where we were

headed geographically, there was no sun to set, at least until spring. Late one

night about mid way into our voyage, 1 sought the solitude that the outside

forward deck would afford me. I was thankful for the wind-driven sleet and

snow that stung and closed my eyes and opened my mind for focused thought.

At the time, 1 was psychologically “strung out” from a combination of rage and

unbearable emotional headache.

To safeguard my precious teenage son, Mason, from being hurt and/or

unwittingly used as a pawn to force me to remain silent, I had virtually

destroyed our father/son bond. I loved and missed him very much, and still do.

The resultant emotional pain from the deception and separation seemed to be

compounding within me and was consuming-my being.

I had, in the course of rescuing Cathy and Kelly, shunned and insulted my

son, collapsed my company, simultaneously orchestrated two divorces and sold

all personal treasures. I worried I would never see my elderly mother again.

Her health was deteriorating. The tailored clothes I wore no longer fit me, as I

had lost over forty pounds and looked skeletal. Chronic insomnia, a symptom

of the severe depression I secretly fell, was slowly driving me mad. My own

short-term memory was beginning to fail. I had noticed for the first time in

over thirty years that I was stuttering when enunciating certain words. I knew

this was just the beginning of a long and dangerous expedition in search of

answers.

As I stood alone, with eyes closed, on the ship’s ice-covered steel deck, a

strange feeling of relief washed over me. I had somehow managed to remember

from where I could draw “emergency strength.” I began silently praying for

inner strength and guidance through a meditation technique I’d learned years

ago. Immediately, I experienced a feeling of peaceful self-assurance that we

would survive to tell our story.

Suddenly I became aware that the icy wind was freezing my face and hands.

I was elated that I could feel again. Apparently I had repressed my tactile

senses along with my emotions. For the first time since I learned of Cathy’s

and Kelly’s mind-control existence, I felt functionally alive.

I opened my eyes to discover I wasn’t alone any more. A voice was coming

from somewhere. I looked around and saw, crouched down and wrapped in a

dark green blanket almost beside me, the source of the voice. Again I heard,

“Hey man, you OK?” This good man whom I later came to know and respect

was Mark Demont. He was a classic example of what Alaskans term a “sour

dough”. Roughly defined, a sour dough was anybody from the “lower 48″

(states) who was disenchanted with their home and low on money. We were

both sour doughs and refugees from a sick society gone mad from CIA drugs,

media violence, and uncontrolled greed.

I offered him a cigarette and my hand in friendship, something I had not

done voluntarily in almost a year. We agreed to stay in contact after our

arrival.

About two days later, we landed safely at the Juneau docks. We were told

by the ferry’s Captain that it was the coldest day of the decade. The ship’s

thermometer read a minus forty degrees fahrenheit. For me, this was an

anticipated weather condition, and for Cathy and Kelly, a physical challenge.

I had spent about two years in Alaska around 1980. It was then that I

helped my former boss from Capital International Airways, George Kamats put

a new carrier on line known briefly as Great Northern Airlines. I left Alaska

back then, not because of the environment, which I loved, but due to my

inability to cope with Kamats’ daily tirades. This rigid fellow had a long,

colorful history working for other CIA controlled airlines. Among other jobs,

he had held top executive positions of authority with the infamous air support

section of the U.S, Forestry Service, Air America, and Evergreen (CIA) carriers.

Now I was back in Alaska, unemployed, and knowing I was being tracked

like an animal by the same organization I had previously indirectly worked for,

the Central Intelligence Agency. Having slept the past couple of nights, I was

feeling much better and the thoughts of being tracked did not concern me. I

recall having more productive things on my mind. I could not allow raw fear to

become any part of my daily diet of thought process.

Cathy and 1 dedicated every possible moment to locate a house we could call

home. We finally found a fourplex apartment that was inexpensive, with two

bedrooms and a heated garage. We had to have a heated garage for my three

beloved pet raccoons and two dogs. Our new home would never have furniture

beyond a TV, two beds, and a table and chairs. This inconvenience never was

discussed. We were comfortable.

After settling into “our place” in the remote rural town of Chugiak, we

immediately began doing normal things. We enrolled Kelly in a great public

school, met our new neighbors, and played in the snow. All of this was being

enjoyed in a traditional family way-something Cathy and Kelly had never

before known.

Our remaining meager resources were disappearing before my eyes. The

cost of asthma medication that Kelly now required to keep her alive was over

$400 per month. I strongly suspected that much of the reason for her declining

health resulted from the two weeks “in hell” she had recently spent with alleged

serial killer, Wayne Cox, She told me so, by detailing the hideous satanic

rituals she and her four-year-old step brother, Jacob, had been subjected to,

Fortunately, I had held onto my expensive Niton camera, guns, and

personal jewelry items. These were the last real assets I had remaining to sell.

I sold them and the proceeds paid our living expenses for five more months

until Kelly’s health needs and circumstances forced us on welfare.

During this five-month period, with Kelly in school and no telephone to

distract us, I began intensifying my deprogramming efforts with Cathy, Most

stays, our work started the moment we returned home from taking Kelly to

school. As soon as Kelly was in bed at night, after dinner and homework, we

resumed our “session”. We worked like this day and night, seven days a week,

focused intensely on the deprogramming process, until I would pass out from

exhaustion around three o’clock in the morning.

The deprogramming formula for pulling Cathy’s fragmented mind back

together was inherently free of problems. The small problems I did experience

with the formula stemmed from having to “expertly” apply it based on my

educated memory of almost twenty years previous. I had no communication

with any recognized authority other than Cory Hammond to guide the initial

therapy. My single greatest challenge was to learn how to control Cathy’s

constant state of trance as she journaled her memories.

In spite of reporting to the FBI that I was a hypnotist, I knew that if the FBI

and CIA could prove through my admissions 1 was using hypnosis on Cathy,

her testimony in court would be worthless. Therefore, the threat of reprisal

from the CIA was averted. In fact, through my own intensive research of

hypnotherapy I learned how to control Cathy’s trance states. T regarded it as

unhypnotizing her. Eventually I would be regarded by mental health physicians

as an “expert” in the application of this little-used clinical tool for recovering

memory.

Aside from my learned deprogramming skill, the balance of the formula I

used consisted of elements which are actually rules of ethical therapy conduct.

Those therapy rules were strictly enforced, Cathy understood and agreed that,

in order for her to have absolute control of her mind, she must place total trust

in me and the therapy regime.

1. I maintained a constant vigil to ensure Cathy’s physical and psychological

safety from all outside influences.

2. No memories could be verbalized by Cathy until after they were written

by her. The only questions I could ask were history oriented and directed to

Cathy’s presenting personality that was recovering the memory. Those

questions could only address the who, what, when, how, and where of the

memory. Even if I could have known the answers in advance, 1 could not

inject. Our perceptions would have differed radically and could have created

more memory barriers between personality fragments.

3. I fundamentally explained mind control to Cathy and she then understood

that what happened to her was not her fault. However, she understood she was

becoming responsible for her actions here and now. Through therapy, she was

asserting control over her own mind.

4. We devoted many hours to “intellectual discussions” of Cathy’s learned

religious beliefs and they were “logically” debunked, just as if 1 were explaining

how the illusions of a magician’s tricks worked lo confuse reality.

5. No expression of emotion by Cathy would be permitted during the

memory recovery and journaling process. I never asked her “how does that

make you feel?” This is as important as the safety issue for the rapid recovery

of memories.

6. I provided Cathy adequate food, vitamins, water, and sleep to restore her

failing physical health.

7. I taught Cathy how to view her memories on a “mind movie screen”

rather than re-experience them through the mind’s “virtual reality” mechanism.

8. I instructed Cathy how to trance herself and control the depth of her

trance state through a self-hypnosis technique (some regard as meditation). This

was put in place to avoid possible contamination and/or confusion of her

memories, which might have happened had I used a hypnotic induction

technique known as guided imagery.

9. Cathy was not allowed to read books, newspapers, or magazines, to

watch TV, or to discuss with Kelly anything she recalled. Cathy had

experienced a lifetime of information control and therefore had minimal

contamination of memory to sort through. This rule was also understood and

respected by Kelly, whose memories were beginning to surface.

10. All behavior patterns and social habits Cathy exhibited were reexamined

through logical discussion between us. All pre-established behavior

patterns, including daily routines, were re-scheduled or stopped completely.

11. I required her to wear a wrist watch twenty-four hours a day, to alert me

of any “lost time” she felt she was experiencing. Losing time, without trauma,

is a strong indication that personality switching is occurring. Whereas being

able to account for time is an indicator that recovery is occurring.

The memories Cathy was recovering were horrible beyond anything I had

ever heard anyone speak about, I often wondered if I had fallen in love with

Cathy as a result of my developing the psychological malady known as the

Stockholm Syndrome. Those thoughts never bothered me for I knew I had

grown to love Cathy. I had heard enough horror from Cathy and Kelly to know

I was now suffering from Post Traumatic Stress Disorder (PTSD). The

symptoms of this disorder went unnoticed by Cathy and Kelly because they too

were PTSDed, and had been all their lives.

My own health began to deteriorate rapidly. My regained body weight

began to melt away once again. I was experiencing incredible stomach pain,

vomiting, and diarrhea. I was literally living on a patent medicine known to

ulcer sufferers as Maalox. A “secure” phone call to a doctor friend in the

“lower 48″ produced the name of a local internal medicine specialist I could

trust. Aware of my predicament, my physician friend made the appointment on

my behalf for this doctor to prepare certain in-office tests. One of the tests,

using a fiberoptic stomach tube, showed that as a result of a water borne parasite,

there were holes in the walls of my stomach. He recommended

emergency surgery. I replied, “No. How much longer can I live with this

before surgery?”

He said, “It depends on how well you can follow my instructions”*

“No problem,” I said. Within a few days of feeding myself intravenously

and taking the prescribed medications, I began to recover.

It was during this recovery period that I began my telephone search for

answers to speed Cathy’s recovery process. Again I was told by my former

“well connected” associates that I knew it all. I was not convinced. However,

my persistence soon paid off as one particular phone call resulted in my striking

proverbial “pay dirt”.

The medical books on clandestine experimental research for treating

dissociative disorders mysteriously appeared “on hold” for me at the Eagle

River branch of the Anchorage Public Library. I was covertly alerted to pick

them up on a certain day at an exact time. I complied.

As I was leaving the library, a middle-aged woman with a grocery sack in

her arms approached me. She asked if the library was open. I thought this odd

since I was walking out the opened library entrance. My curiosity was short

lived when she asked, “Have you read any good books by Dr. Milton Erickson

lately?”

I replied, “No, but I am checking one out by (psychiatrist) Dr. William S.

Kroger entitled Clinical and Experimental Hypnosis,”

“Oh, yes,” she said. “I’m a real fan of Dr. Kroger and he is a real fan of

Dr. Erickson who you know is considered the father of subliminal mind-control

(theory) research. She began walking away and turned, smiled and said, “Enjoy

your books and use the book, Mark.”

I assumed she was addressing me by name while referring to the book itself.

I also concluded from this comment that she was obviously the person

responsible for delivering the books to the library. Soon I learned she was

referring to a bookmark placed inside one of the books which provided me a

desperately needed communications vehicle. Recorded on the book-mark” was

a toll free 800# with a time and date to use it. I used this 800# and many others

similarly provided me for a communications vehicle to covertly access the

spooks’ (spies) subway to information. For two more years, this method provided

me with telephonic guidance through a maze of mind work with Cathy.

When 1 called the bookmark “800″ number, it was answered by an

electronic voice which said, in part, “Please enter your employee number now”.

I complied, using a series of numbers that I had been previously “assigned” by

someone who must remain anonymous because I do not know their identity.

The next sound 1 heard was that of a phone being rung. After exactly eight

rings, my call was answered by someone I did not know. He asked, “What’s

the problem?” I fell like a vacuum cleaner salesman with his foot in the door,

delivering a canned sales presentation. I began nervously emphasizing my

desperate need for a quicker therapy regime for Cathy.

The voice asked, “Have you read the books?”

“Yes,” I replied. “But many of the clinical terms were foreign to me.”

The voice then instructed me to go back to the library and “pick up a psych

reference book on term definitions”. I then interrupted his instruction to ask if I

could speak with somebody who could make this deprogramming process go

faster. He said, “Well, there are only two deprogrammers in this country-one

in Boston (Massachusetts) and the other in Phoenix (Arizona) and neither one

could be of much help or be trusted with the kind of information you are getting

(from Cathy).” He hesitated, then said, “You’re going to need a referral,

which I can’t provide. But you know how to do it”

I asked, “A referral for what?”

“To have the chance to speak with a doctor who knows about this and might

be of some value,” he told me,

“OK,” 1 said. “Who’s the doctor?”

“Cory Hammond, out of Salt Lake City (Utah).”

“Gees,” 1 said. “That’s Mormon headquarters, and that was the last

religious trauma base for Cathy.”

‘Yes!- the voice continued. “But you can trust this doctor if you’re careful

and don’t give up too much (information) on yourself. He’s paranoid like all

the rest (who know about mind-control atrocities) but he could be of some help.

Oh, be alert. Everybody’s watching this guy so anything you say, they (the bad

guys) will know.”

“Thank you very much,” I replied.

Somewhere in the process of finding a referral professionally acquainted

with Dr. Hammond, I telephoned dissociative disorders specialist, Dr. Bennett

Braun, a well-known and published psychiatrist in Chicago, Illinois. I learned

from our conversation that he had an entire hospital unit dedicated to therapy

for people like Cathy and Kelly. I wondered at the time why his name wasn’t

previously provided to me for a consultation. As a result of this brief telephone

encounter, I learned that Dr. Braun had a number of patients on a long waiting

list for a “bed” within this facility. The doctor then provided me the name and

telephone number of a “friend” he confided in, People Magazine senior

investigative reporter Civia Tamarkin,

Contacting this People/Time Life magazine reporter was to be my biggest

single judgement error in the pursuit of helpful information. I would soon learn

she was indirectly responsible for nearly costing me my life, and did indirectly

cost Kelly her chance for “expert” therapy- which is another book in itself.

When I first spoke with Civia, she dropped important names like a maple

tree drops leaves after a frost. I audio tape recorded practically all

conversations with this seemingly well informed source, then and in the years to

follow, Civia first provided me the name and phone number of the Boston

“deprogrammer,” an ex-Moonie programmer by the name of Steve Hassen.

Next, she provided the name and phone number to contact Jolyn “Jolly” West at

UCLA. Reluctantly, she gave me the referral I needed to communicate with

Dr. Cory Hammond. “The later contact being the only “briefly helpful” one

with whom I would speak.

Maximizing my PTSD impaired judgement, I telephoned programmer Steve

Hassen, for advice on how to help Kelly (only), which resulted in his coming to

our home in Alaska, Apparently, his agenda was to traumatize Cathy by using a

well-known code to trigger her to run for her life—from me. The method he

employed could have been effective, but fortunately for Cathy and Kelly, his

robotic delivery like his moral ethics was very poor. I learned that Hassen’s

voiced and recorded professional respect for his UCLA psychiatrist friends, Dr,

West and Dr. Margaret Singer, derived from sinister reasons. Little did I know

that Dr. West had worked for the CIA in Project MK-Ultra mind-control

research for decades, it seems some of Dr. West’s CIA supported research had

been exposed by a Congressional investigator of the MK-Ultra Project in the

1970s. However he survived the public scrutiny because the U.S. Government

had, in essence, halted further investigation of him and his work under the

National Security guise. His only reported crime was for killing an elephant

with an overdose of LSD in the presence of school children. These facts I

would learn after Cathy and I spoke with him by phone and subsequent disaster

struck us, This too is another story in itself

The phone calls between Dr. Cory Hammond and myself were informative

and supportive. He proved himself to be the single, most valuable live

information asset I would know in my quest for expert therapy advice. Later

Dr. Hammond delivered to the mental health community through a symposium

presentation in 1991, the whole truth as he knew it on the topic of mind control.

His advisory instruction to me on a particular Erickson technique for painless,

non abreactive memory recovery, called “revivification”, literally saved my predious

Cathy from reliving the horrors as she remembered them. This man is my

personal hero.

Spring in Alaska was a very different experience from what I was accustomed

to in Tennessee. The Alaskans just refer to it as “break-up”. In place

of hearing the sounds of chirping birds, I listened to the drip noises from the ice

melting off everything. The streets had become an ugly brown mush. For

spring as normally a welcomed seasonal change, it was depressing to say the

least. The only good news was that the days had slowly changed from darkness

to warm sunlight. With this seasonal change, a time bomb I did not know

existed began its countdown. Kelly’s asthma and behavior were radically

deteriorating for no apparent reason.

One Friday morning in May, Cathy received a call from Kelly’s school

principal requesting we pick her up as soon as possible and have her examined

by a doctor. The school nurse said Kelly was having a severe asthmatic attack

that did not respond to the medication she had with her. We picked her up only

to find that her condition seemed to improve miraculously at the sight of us.

But this improvement would be short lived,

The following Sunday, Kelly’s coughing became almost constant. She had

exhausted our supply of an important asthma medication which she regularly

used in her respirator pump, I covertly substituted distilled water and sat with

her while she struggled for her breath. Using an Erickson technique of guided

imagery, I began telling her a story about a little girl who huffed and puffed and

climbed a mountain. The story I told ended with the little girl reaching the top

of the mountain only to be so tired that she fell asleep in a bed of wild flowers,

Kelly responded by breathing normally and actually falling into a sound asleep

for a few hours, only to awaken and repeat her coughing spell. I returned to

her bedside and 1 asked why she coughed.

Kelly, somewhat agitated, responded, “I have asthma”. I repeated the water

substitution trick and she responded favorably and said, “Dad, Wayne (the

father and alleged serial killer Satanist) told me I was gonna’ die.”

I said, “Well, he’s not a doctor”.

Kelly continued, “He really did say that over and over and over again.”

I then asked, “When did he say this?”

“When school’s out,” she replied.

I asked, “What do you mean?”

She robotically repeated, “When school’s out.”

“Do you remember when Wayne said this to you?” I asked.

“In bed,” she continued. “He thought I was asleep and he was talking on

the phone to Alex (Houston) and then to me,” I knew then Wayne Cox had

programmed her to die using a clinical technique known as hypnosleep. Alex

Houston was guiding Cox through the program.

I interrupted her (as I saw she was entering a deep state of trance) and

responded, “Well, school’s not out and tomorrow you will be well enough to go

back to school.”

As I suggested, Kelly did feel good the next morning and returned to school.

This day would be her last day in Birchwood Elementary.

Only a few hours passed before Cathy and I again were called, this time by

the nurse who became agitated when Cathy truthfully answered her question,

“Didn’t you take her to the doctor?”

Cathy said. “No. but we will.”

Later that evening, Cathy, Kelly and I would make the last of our

emergency drives to seek medical help for Kelly.

At Anchorage’s Humana Hospital, Cathy and I met with the young, very

bright and beautiful physician, Dr. Lorrie Shepherd, who seemed perplexed

and, perhaps, frightened as to Kelly’s unexplainable deteriorating condition. I

requested a private meeting and she complied.

After about thirty minutes of my explaining what Cathy and Kelly had been

rescued from, I defined mind control for her. Learning this, Dr. Shepherd then

consulted with a local female psychiatrist, Dr. Pat Patrick to evaluate Kelly,

The evaluation was completed and Dr. Patrick invited Cathy, and eventually

me, to her office for a consultation. This was to be Kelly’s first official

evaluation that indicated she suffered from Multiple Personality Disorder

(MPD),5 a serious psychological disorder resulting from severe and repeated

trauma.

I then asked Dr. Patrick if she could arrange for a sexual abuse specialist to

verify if Kelly had been abused. She complied. The results were positive. Dr.

Patrick and Cathy seemed almost relieved at this validation. The result

sickened me.

Kelly’s asthma stabilized at Humana and she was transferred to Charter

North Psychiatric Hospital for in-hospital care. Dr. Patrick apparently provided

the best care she knew. Unfortunately it was inadequate. Months passed and

the State of Alaska welfare authorities began to realise Kelly was not improving

and her ineffective care costs were mounting by thousands of dollars weekly.

Dr. Patrick, Cathy, and I, with the cooperation of the Tennessee Violent

Crimes Claims Commission, began searching for a hospital that would accept

Medicaid insurance. Finally, one was located in Owensboro, Kentucky which

advertised a specialty in working with ritually abused children. Kelly was

transferred to this facility and the State of Alaska paid all the bills for her move

there. Later we would learn that this elegant hospital facility was nothing more

than a human warehouse that collected whatever fees the federal and state

governments would pay them per child resident. A pretty place to see, but the

care for Kelly would prove to be “less than nothing”.

During the summer before Kelly was transferred to this Kentucky hospital,

and Cathy was recovering satisfactorily, I felt it was safe to leave their side so

that I could find work. We desperately needed money to travel, to live, and to

return to the “lower 48″ with Kelly in the winter.

I quickly secured a job at Alaska Business College as an interviewer of

prospective students. My sales “performance” resulted in my being promoted in

two weeks from an admissions representative to Director of Admissions. I

banked as much money as possible from my earnings over the next five months

to provide for our move, to be closer to Kelly. The thought of the separation

agony that would exist between Cathy and Kelly served as a reminder of my

ongoing separation from my son, whom 1 had not heard from in almost a year.

Cathy, on ill advice from me, called her father and begged for some

financial help for Kelly’s sake. Her father wired $500 to confirm our location

and commented, “This is America. Unless you come back to Michigan alone,

no more money!” It was this statement that triggered Cathy’s repressed

memories of her own tortured childhood by this alleged pervert and slave

salesman, Earl O’Brien.

Soon the FBI telephoned Cathy and told her that she needed to “voluntarily”

conic to the Anchorage FBI office for questioning. Upon arrival, Cathy was

informed that she was under federal investigation for attempting to extort

money from her father.

Cathy looked strangely relieved when she heard these charges. Later I

would learn that she felt better knowing for sure she was not “crazy” or

delusional and that her father did in fact do those things to her and her brothers

and sisters.

The FBI Agent was openly sympathetic and reportedly the DOJ “inspired”

investigation was subsequently dropped upon his recommendation. This agent

went on to secure a cash donation through his Mormon church that enabled us

to leave his jurisdiction.

It is noteworthy that during this same time; through another special agent at

the Anchorage FBI office, 1 was interrogated for “what I knew” regarding an

unrelated crime involving my ex-wife and her lawyer boss in Florida. I knew

nothing, I now know that the FBI was, in effect, attempting to destroy my

credibility as advocate for Cathy and Kelly through their investigation efforts of

me. Their case against my ex-wife and her lawyer was solved, and her lawyer

accomplice was convicted of first degree murder. My ex-wife became a state’s

witness and was acquitted.

However, days later I would “see” my ex-wife being arrested and processed

on the popular national television show “Unsolved Mysteries”. That

unfortunate case involved only one homicide and made the national news for

weeks to come. In contrast, Calhy’s testimony, with proofs provided FBI

officia1s, was filed and deliberately covered up—For Reasons of National

Security.

The fall season in Alaska was now quickly giving in to winter and the

“termination dust” (snow) was re-coating the surrounding mountains. The air

was definitely becoming nippy. The change of seasons signaled another change

within my new family. Kelly was going to be transferred soon to the Kentucky

Valley Institute of Psychiatry (V.I.P.).

Cathy and I had been saving every dollar I could earn during my brief

tenure at Alaska Business College in preparation for our move back to the

“lower 48″.

I realized now that Cathy had gone into a state of recovery known as

“fusion”. She had long since stopped switching personalities and had become a

beautiful, intelligent, and logical lady. She was no longer susceptible to anyone

triggering her to go against or away from me. She continued to journal her

traumatic memories and was professionally adjudged stable.

The passage on ships and ferries out of Anchorage to Seattle was booked

solid for months ahead. They would only accept freight and/or vehicles. 1

purchased two, one-way tickets on Alaska Airlines and brought our family car,

a 1976 AMC Pacer, and remaining belongings to the Anchorage docks for

shipment.

Suddenly, as we packed our bags and were ready to board our flight, a

nearby volcano erupted and halted all air traffic in or out of Anchorage for the

following two weeks. We waited anxiously for the airport to reopen. We

would leave first and Kelly and her nurse would soon follow. This would be

the first step of what would be an endless journey in our pursuit of justice.

4 Mark Phillips’ motto

5The term Multiple personality Disorder (MPD) Is now clinically referred to by mental

health professionals as Dissociative Identity Disorder (DID).

CHAPTER 4

TRUTH AND CONSEQUENCES

JUST US PURSUED AND JUSTICE DENIED

Our much anticipated arrival into the Seattle (Washington) International

Airport terminal heralded a new beginning. Cathy appeared to be openly

optimistic that perhaps, at long last, Kelly would soon have her chance for

recovery. Privately, I felt much less hopeful, I knew from past personal

experiences and through my “insider sources” that mental health physicians

from the private sector of society had little acquaintance with secret U.S.

Government mind-control research. The only mind-control informauon these

doctors had access to for the most part was from the hysterical comments

supplied them by their troubled patients. Hysteria, in this case, as a symptom

of misinformation is highly contagious, and therefore spread throughout the

mental health profession. Many practitioners displayed symptoms of the

“ostrich syndrome” to me, their peers, and patients through fear and chronic

denial.

It was 1990, the beginning of the last decade of this century and the

millennium, and most mental health physicians remained in a state of denial

concerning the existence of mind control. Mental health as a science is barely

one-hundred years of age. Truly an industry in its infancy in relation to the

other recognized healing arts.

Due to mental health’s infancy and the fact that it is rooted in the archaic,

mystical theories of Jung and Freud, combined with the non-availability of

government controlled research information, the term “mental health” is viewed

by patients and doctors alike as an oxymoron. Patients I have interviewed who

suffer from dissociative disorders frequently refer to the profession as “mental

hell,” and their well-intentioned provider as “the rapist”. Unfortunately for all

parties concerned, in many reported instances these cruel labels are consistent

with the quality of the care provided. Whereas I strongly support, in concept,

the healing arts existing in the fields of mental health that could be applied in

the treatment of mind-control patients, I cannot foresee their application in

meeting the needs of these patients without some radical changes in our National

Security Act. Afound 1970, I recall witnessing a “mild” case in point. 1 was

overseeing the video taping of a TOP SECRET psychiatric experiment involving

a young man who had suffered brain damage resulting from some type of severe

head trauma. This patient was ambulatory. He could not remember anything,

express himself, or for that matter, think. He was not brain dead. He was

mind dead. Through the application of a combination of experimental drugs

and hi-tech electronic technology involving harmonics, his brain was being

“retrained” to permit constructed thought processes to commence. The brain

scar tissue that was inhibiting his ability to think was being chemically and

electronically by-passed. I equated this experimental procedure to the “hot

wiring” of an ignition switch of an automobile to preclude the use of a key.

The extraordinary procedure and subsequent results of this experimental therapy

was meticulously recorded. The record, tape, and doctor notes were dropped

into a security envelope and were taken by courier to Fort George Meade,

Maryland.

What made this case so memorable was the event that immediately followed.

I overheard the experiment’s attending physician complaining bitterly to his

nurse colleague that “his” patient in an adjoining ward, who was not a “DOD

guinea pig,” through application of this method, could “probably recover”. The

doctor’s complaint addressed his being prohibited from applying state-of-the-art

treatment for his patient by virtue of his DOD oath of secrecy. This doctor was

frustrated at being forced to serve two masters. The DOD being one master

held control over his career through his medical license, liability insurance, and

the secrecy oath he had signed. The second master was the doctor’s own moral

and ethical standards, supported by the Hippocratic Oath he had signed upon

becoming a physician.

Thus without benefit of the voluminous DOD research findings and

technology developments, the medical field of mental health is in its learning

curve for establishing models to provide patients state-of-the-art care. In other

words, mental health providers themselves are quickly becoming the second

group of mind/information control victims.

The mental health profession is in a sate of crisis and his arrived at the

proverbial crossroads of failure and success. The road to success through the

application of available technologies appears to be blocked FOR REASONS

OF NATIONAL SECURITY.

As a direct result of DOD management of mind research secrets and the

resulting federal information containment practices, mental health providers are

on the defensive with their patients, the courts, and more recently with certain

special interest action groups. These groups are attacking the mental health

professional as a target for destruction. Well-funded organizations with very

questionable agendas, such as the False Memory Foundation (FMF) and the

Church of Scientology, have publicly denounced mental health as a profession.

The Church of Scientology has emerged as the apparent leader in publicly

denouncing the mental health profession. Through the church’s Washington,

D.C. based “human rights” lobby group, it has launched a massive negative

propaganda campaign accompanied by numerous lawsuits against ethical drug

companies and mental health providers.

Scientologists believe their church’s ffounder, L. Ron Hubbard, has

discovered a cure-all for mental illness through behavior modification.

Hubbard, a successful science fiction writer, allegedly acquired knowledge of

subliminal mind control through his military service with U.S. Navy

Intelligence. He named his behavioral modification program Dianetics after his

first wife, Diane.

The False Memory Foundation is a lobby group which is primarily utilized

by persons charged with sexual abuse. The FMF is desperately attempting to

develop legislation that restricts therapy for persons suffering from dissociative

disorders as a result of trauma. This organization’s stated beliefs include that

repressed memory is a myth. FMF has found the mental health profession’s

Achilles’ heel.

To date, the model for developing an effective therapy regime for dissociative

disorders (which are as a result of repeated trauma) has not been

published by either the American Psychiatric Association or the American

Psychological Association. The difficulty in developing a model is due to a

number of factors. The primary factor involves national security secrets

concerning classified mind-control research.

In the present climate, referring mind-control victims to mental health

professionals for treatment would be tantamount to subjecting a patient needing

delicate surgery to a surgeon who was blind-folded and hand-cuffed. The

knowledge of these conditions produced the private opinion I withheld from

Cathy when she professed optimism for Kelly’s latest recovery opportunity.

Nevertheless, Cathy was nearing complete recovery and we both recognized we

were doing all we could a( the moment to provide for Kelly’s needs.

Perhaps identifying “who” within our government is interested in

withholding vital medical research findings and technologies information from

the mental health profession could provide a foundation of understanding.

From my personal experiences while working for Capital International Airways.

I formed a strong opinion that addresses this question. However, the answer

that mirrors my perception was later eloquently provided by a Washington.

D.C. news correspondent and journalist, Linda Hunt, in her book Secret

Agenda. The historical basis for this book are the declassified DOD documents

identifying Project Paperclip as being the secret importation/relocation of Nazr

and Fascist scientist into the United States over a forty-year period.

These brilliant criminal scientists were primarily focused on two areas of

research, rockets and the mind. They were placed in positions of authority in,

among others, prestigious universities, colleges, industries, and NASA. Over

the years, these imported criminals have directly influenced our society with

advanced rocket technologies and mind-control applications through U.S.

Government sponsored research. According to Secret Agenda, Nazism, as a

philosophy and form of government, is alive and destroying our country, in

part, as a result of Project Paperclip.

I can attest to this statement from personal knowledge gained during my

employment at Capital international Airways, which is named as one of the

primary transporters for Project Paperclip.

These were background facts for some of the thoughts that rushed through

my mind on our Jong drive from Seattle to the Southeastern U.S. I was anxious

to discover the end results of my telephone campaign in the pursuit of justice I

had waged while in Alaska.

Our first destination would be Huntsville, Alabama. This southern U.S. city

is famous for its tourism centerpiece, the NASA owned U.S. Space and Rocket

Center. The town also boasts of being home to more Pentagon, black-budget,

U.S. dollars per capita than anyplace in America. Cathy harbors a very

different opinion of this town, its police force, and the NASA research facility.

For Cathy and Kelly, Huntsville had been a place they were regularly taken to

by Alex Houston for hi-tech torture and the production of child and adult

pornography films.

This trip to Huntsville would be different for Cathy, except for one aspect of

her previous experiences. Both she and I would receive our first threat to our

lives in our pursuit of justice from law enforcement. This was surprising to me

and “normal” for Cathy.

The lead-up to this threat began with my phone call to a Huntsville based

legal aid group known as the National Association of Child Advocates. This

organization publicized that it was formed through the leadership efforts of the

local district attorney ‘Bud’ Crammer, who is known to his constituents as “Gun

Ban Bud”. After supplying this advocacy center with Cathy’s recollections of

her past experiences in Huntsville, we were contacted by two Huntsville City

Police Department “vice” detectives. Their names were Jeff Bennet and Chuck

Crabtree.

Upon our arrival into Huntsville, these two vice cops escorted us and our

trailer to a local apartment used for staging drug buys. The place was

furnished, complete with audio and video bugs throughout every room. When I

asked Bennet if the “place was bugged,” he flatly denied it. From this lie I

knew with certainty that Cathy and I were there to be specimens for whomever

to study, I knew “who,” and we gave them our best performance to mislead

them. This action probably saved our lives.

After weeks of “delays,” the two vice cops sat down with Cathy and me for

discussion. She supplied them a myriad of testimony including detailed physical

descriptions of two particular perpetrators, their names, and location maps of

where they lived and allegedly produced child and adult pornography. The two

perpetrators, themselves Huntsville policemen, were also helpful assets in the

campaign for electing District Attorney Bud Crammer. Their names were

Audie Majors and Sergeant Frank Crowell.

After Cathy had exhausted all of her recollections, Crabtree and Bennet

ordered us to “leave Huntsville now while we were still alive, and shut up if we

intended to stay that way!”

Later, Cathy and I would learn that Crabtree and Bennct had notified every

law enforcement officer in over five states to whom we had provided

information, They reported that we were a pair of “professional con artist

criminals”. Perhaps they were able to accomplish this discrediting tactic as a

result of police reports we filed in other states, which included a reference to

our “bud experience” with the Huntsville Police Department. In addition, the

Nashville office of the FBI was responsible for perpetrating Crabtree’s and

Bennet’s discrediting lies. This FBI action ceased after resident-agent-in-charge

Ben Purser was told by a friendly district attorney that I now could prove the

identity and prosecute those responsible for the character assassination. The

harassmet stopped,

It is interesting to note that ‘Bud’ Crammer would in less than a year, be

elected to Congress. Within months after his election, Bud was rewarded for

years of alleged containment practices. Allegedly Bud has been covering up

investigations for the intelligence community, DOD, and of course his number

one financial supporter, NASA.

The wife of an Atlanta, Georgia physician, Ms. Faye Yeager, did however

survive Bud’s wrath in court. Her “crime” was advocating for and protecting a

child who had been horribly abused. This courageous lady had her day in court

and won. Now she has filed a counter-suit in Federal court. Reeling from

Bud’s “second hand” threats to our lives, we returned to Nashville, Here we

learned that the Kentucky V.I.P. hospital administration had suddenly declared

Kelly’s State of Alaska medical records “to be in error”. V.I.P. said she was

“fine!” This statement was supplemented by “you best come here now and pick

her up or we’ll give her to Kentucky Child Services and they will find adoptive

parents.”

This was a terrifying development since Kelly could not function outside a

restrictive environment. She had been declared suicidal and homicidal by three

attending physicians and/or therapists. Cathy and I were homeless. We

brought Kelly back to Tennessee where she, Cathy and I stayed in my mother’s

tiny two-bedroom home. This living arrangement would not last. Kelly’s

asthma (program), destined to separate her from her mother, returned within 48

hours. We rushed her, gasping for breath, to Vanderbilt Hospital in Nashville

for emergency treatment. Again Kelly’s condition worsened to the extremely

critical point, then returned to normal. Her attending doctor thought he had

seen a real miracle until he learned about mind control.

Vanderbilt Hospital physicians who reviewed Kelly’s past medical and

psychiatric records recommended that she be moved to the worst child

warehouse we’ve seen so far, Crocket/Cumberland House, the “home for

broken butterflies” (see photo). Because Cathy and I were both unemployed

and Kelly only had Medicaid insurance, the State of Tennessee demanded

temporary custody. Their demands for custody were legally legitimate and

morally equated to extortion for they had no intentions of seeking expert therapy

for Kelly.

Through a lengthy two-year court proceeding, with five lawyers opposing

Cathy, we had a partial victory, Kelly was transferred to Charter Hospital in

Memphis, Tennessee where again she did not receive MPD/DID therapy, but

for the first time did receive genuine empathy from a social worker, Abbott

Jordan.

During this period, my life and liberty was threatened by the Nashville

Metro Police Department. This verbal death threat was delivered by Metro

Homicide Captain Mickey Miller and echoed by his friend and subordinate Lt.

Tommy Jacobs. Miller said, “You best forget this woman; walk away from all

this now before your health changes.” Jacobs said, “There’s nothing wrong

with that kid that her father (Cox) can’t fix. She just has allergies. You’d best

forget you ever heard of either one of them.” I have all this conversation on

audio tape.

Within a few months of these threats came others threatening both our lives

and liberty from every branch of law enforcement within the State of

Tennessee. This included the Nashville office of the FBI. The latter was in the

form of a “clerical mistake” on the part of the FBI that was to be a “frame up”

for my supposedly threatening the President of the United States, George Bush.

This charge was totally groundless and was subsequently dropped, but only after

I secured a lawyer

It was now 1991, and Cathy and I had determined that we must proceed

with “phase two” of our pursuit of justice through a well organized information

dissemination campaign. The funding for this project would indirectly come

from the assistance of Bill Ross who also provided constant moral support,

Cathy and I have always fell uncomfortable exposing gentle persons like Bill

Ross to such horrific information as pertains to trauma-based mind control.

However, we have learned over the years through our public speaking

engagements and consultations with physicians and others that, generally

speaking, people appreciate knowing WHY they are no longer “at the top of the

food chain,” Bill Ross like hundreds of others never gave up hope that we

would live to tell our story.

Five years have passed since we returned from Alaska. The lessons learned

through this trail-blazing effort in our pursuit of justice should never be taught

to anyone. No person should have to experience the heartache, desperation, and

grinding poverty that Cathy, Kelly, and I have had to live with-

During the winding down portion of our information dissemination

campaign, Cathy approached me with an idea she thought could help us win

public support. She had repeatedly commented that she wanted to rescue

Seidina ‘Dina’ Reed, daughter of actor/singer Jerry Reed of Smokey And The

Bandit fame. According to Cathy, she had been used repeatedly in pornography

productions with Seidina over the years and had bonded with this once beautiful

woman.

Seidina’s husband, David Rorick, aka Dave Roe, was then her alleged

sadistic handler. It is noteworthy that Roe allegedly received his training on

how to maintain a slave, using specific tortures, from Alex Houston. Roe lived

and reportedly loved, with Houston before he met Seidina. Cathy and I naively

believed at the time that Jerry Reed was not involved in his daughter’s

enslavement as was Cathy’s father. Furthermore, we were convinced that Jerry

Reed, with his numerous connections into politics and the entertainment

industry could be a powerful ally. This was not to be.

I rescued Seidina and in minutes after the rescue, she began talking, but not

until I had discussed my plan in person with her famous father and his agent at a

Brentwood, Tennessee restaurant. Reed had more Chan enough time to warn

Roe that I was armed and on my way to his house. All evidences disappeared.

Years later a U.S. Customs Enforcement officer informed me that I had

“somedoby” connected to Reed, possibly Reed himself, suggesting “I might be

blackmailing him.” This “clean” customs officer knew I had rescued Seidina

from Roe’s enslavement and that I had audio taped all meetings with Seidina,

Jerry Keed, and his wife, Prissy. He was openly concerned for my safety and

that Reed was lying so as to frighten me away.

Within two months after the rescue, Seidina and her mother filed criminal

charges, including sexual child abuse (of Seidina’s four-year-old son) against

Roe. A “spook informant” working within the Nashville District Attorney’s

office alerted me to these charges and the anticipated outcome. No action was

taken FOR REASONS OF NATIONAL SECURITY.

Seidina had been prostituted to, among many others, heads of state, and to

the Arabian Ambassador to the U.S., Prince Bandar Bin Sultan. According to

an involved witnesses of one of her encounters with Bandar (a friend of

George Bush) she was one of his favorite slaves. We’ve never heard from

Seidina or any member of her family since the rescue. This trek through hell in

our pursuit of justice taught nothing to Cathy that she had not already been told

by her abusers. For me, I learned the hard way that our Constitution was only a

beautiful plan that had been stolen, plundered, and replaced FOR REASONS

OF NATIONAL SECURITY.

Today, Cathy, Kelly, I and all true patriots stand at the proverbial

crossroads of revolution or evolution. Through armed revolution, we patriots

will perish and the emergence of a totally government controlled society will

herald in another period of “dark ages”. As a proud gun owner, armed with

inside knowledge, I know we are technologically out-gunned. Whereas if we

choose to evolve through the challenges to our psyche that developed

communicat ion technologies present we can reinstate our Constitution and set

our people free. Revolution or Evolution-change in life as we know it is

inevitable.

Each of us must now take a stand to commit a portion of our individual time

and diminishing resources to support the action groups and individuals who are

not afraid to work at taking back our government through mass exposure of its

crimes. We must seek new leaders who will be committed to doing the most

with the least. These leaders share the battle cry that SILENCE DOES (indeed)

EQUAL DEATH. 6 Hund, Linda, Secret Agenda, St. Martin’s Press 1991

ALEX HOUSTON

48

PART II

by Cathy O’Brien

AN OPEN LETTER

Mind control is absolute. Under MK-Ultra Project Monarch trauma-based

mind control, I lost control over my own free will thoughts – I could not think to

question, reason, or consciously comprehend – I could only do exactly what I

was driven to do. Those who controlled my mind, and ultimately my actions,

claimed to be “aliens,” “demons,” and “gods”. But it was my experience that

these perpe-TRAITORS of New World Order controls were/are bound by

fully, human confines, despite their terror-tactic claims and illusions. The

true laws of nature, and the same laws of man do, indeed, apply to them.

While they manipulated me by my religion, my maternal instincts, and my

genuine concern for humanity – they never “possessed” my innate being. They

could make me one of them. They never took into consideration the

strength of the human spirit. They did not even know it existed. Ask why.

DEDICATION

This book is for Kelly, in order that she is understood and granted her right

to qualified rehabilitation for the MK-Ultra Project Monarch Mind-Control

abuses she endured at the hands of our country’s so-called leaders.

This book is dedicated, as am I, to Mark Phillips for rescuing Kelly and me

from our mind-controlled existence, and clearing the way to recovery for Kelly

by lovingly assisting me in the restoration of my mind, memory, and ultimately

my free will.

ACKNOWLEDGEMENTS

A special thanks to those unseen, whose presence have been evident. And

a special thanks to those unsung – you know who you are.

TRANCE-FORMATION OF AMERICA

My name is Cathleen (Cathy) Ann O’Brien, born 12/4/57 in Muskegon,

Michigan. I have prepared this book for your review and edification concerning

a little known tool that “our” United States Government is covertly, illegally,

and un-constitutionally using to implement the New World Order (One World

Government). This well documented tool is a sophisticated and advanced form

of behavior modification (brainwashing) most commonly known as MIND

CONTROL. My first hand knowledge of this TOF SECRET U.S. Government

Psychological Warfare technique is drawn from my personal experience as a

White House “Presidential Model” mind-control slave.

Much of the information enclosed herein has been corroborated and

validated through brave and courageous “clean” members of the law

enforcement, scientific, and Intelligence communities familiar with this case

These individuals’ efforts helped me to understand and corroborate what

happened after a lifetime of systematic physical and psychological torture

orchestrated to modify my behavior through totally controlling my mind. Some

of these courageous individuals are employed by the very system that controlled

me and live in fear of losing their jobs, their families, or their lives. They have

gone as far as they dare towards publicly exposing this tool of the engineers of

the New World Order-to no avail. This book is a grassroots effort to solicit

and enlist the public and private support of Human Rights advocates, the

recognized, respected doers in America to expose this invisible personal and

social menace. This can be done by well organised, cooperative citizens with a

passion for justice, who have expressed interest in restoring our Constitution

and taking back America. This copy you hold is for your edification and

action.

While these pages have been condensed for your quick perusal, there ane

literally thousands of files of documentation that support much of what I am

reporting. Thanks to those dedicated individuals who found a means of

manipulating the system more cleverly than the perpetrators, the documents

referred to were declassified for release right at the source!

It is my patriotic respect for the principles of truth, justice, and ultimately

that freedom on which America was founded that compels me to expose the

world domination motivations of those in control of our government, commonly

referred to as the Shadow Government. By taking back America NOW, we can

maintain the integrity of our country’s history and future by detaining its

destined course of being recognized world wide for the mind-control atrocities

unleashed on humanity that literally begin where Adolph Hitler left off.

Hitler’s version of world domination that he termed in 1939 the “New World

Order” is currently being implemented through advanced technologies in,

among others, genetic mind-control engineering by those in control of America.

Senator Daniel Inouye, (D. HI) commented about the operations of this

secret government before a Senate Subcommittee and described it well as “…a

shadowy government with its own Air Force, its own Navy, its own fund

raising mechanism, and the ability to pursue its own ideas of ‘national interest’,

free from all checks and balances and free from the law itself.”

The expertise of my primary advocate and skilled deprogrammer, Mark

Phillips, developed through his U.S. Defense Department knowledge of “Top

Secret” mind-control research and researchers, was responsible for the

restoration of my mind to normal functioning. As a result, I have recovered the

memories related in this text, and having survived the ordeal, have reached this

point of enormous frustration. In 1988, through a series of brilliantly

orchestrated events, Mark Phillips rescued me and my 8-year-old daughter,

Kelly, from our mind-controlled existence and took us to the safety of Alaska

for rehabilitation. It was there that we began the tedious process of untangling

my amnesic mind to consciously recall what I was supposed to forget,

Many U,S. and foreign government secrets and personal reputations were

staked on the belief that I could not be deprogrammed and rehabilitated to

accurately reveal the criminal covert activities and perversions in which Kelly

and I were forced to participate, particularly during the Reagan/Bush

Administrations. Now that I have gained control of my own mind, I view it as

my duty as a mother and American patriot to exercise my gained free will to

expose the mind-control atrocities that my daughter and I endured at the hands

of those in control of our government. This personal view of inside Pandora’s

Box includes a keen perception of how mind control is being used to apparently

implement the New World Order, and a personal knowledge of WHO some of

the so-called “masterminds” are behind this world and mind dominance effort.

Most Americans old enough to remember recall exactly where they were and

what they were doing when President John F. Kennedy was shot. His

assassination traumatized the nation and provides an example of how the human

mind photographically records events surrounding trauma. The traumas I

routinely endured during my mind-controlled victimization provided me the

latitude to recover my memory in the photographic detail in which it was

recorded. The direct quotes 1 have included in the following pages depicting

carefully selected events, are verbatim. I apologize for any obscenities quoted,

but this was necessary to maintain the integrity of the statements and accurately

reflect the character of the speaker(s).

While I am free to speak my mind, Kelly, now 17, is not so fortunate.

Kelly has yet to receive rehabilitation for her shattered personality and

programmed young mind. The high tech sophistication of the Project Monarch

trauma-based mind-control procedures she endured, literally since birth,

reportedly requires highly specialized, qualified care to aid her in eventually

gaining control of her mind and life. Due to the political power of our abusers,

all efforts to obtain her inalienable right to rehabilitation and seek justice have

been blocked under the guise of so-called “National Security”. As a result,

Kelly remains untreated in the custody of the State of Tennessee-a victim of the

system—a system controlled and manipulated by our abusive government

“leaders” – a system where State Forms make no allowances to report military

TOP SECRET abuses – a system which exists due to federal funding directed by

our perverse, corrupt abusers in Washington, D.C. She remains a political

prisoner in the custody of the State of Tennessee to this moment, waiting and

hurting!

Violations of laws and rights, Psychological Warfare intimidation tactics,

threats to our lives, and various other forms of CIA Damage Containment

practices thus far have remained unhindered and unchecked due to the National

Security Act of 1947 AND the 1986 Reagan Amendment to same which allows

those in control of our government to censor and/or cover-up anything they

choose. Now, with our country free from outside threats as a result of the fall

of the Soviet Union, our “free press” is reportedly no longer encumbered by

censorship. This fact alone should free us to pursue justice, but it has not.

Please ask why.

Hence the purpose of releasing this book at this time. After seven long years

of being unjustly and painfully seperated from my daughter, while our abusers

have had full access to her through a corrupt and manipulated system, it is my

fervent hope and intent to solicit help from you in the form of advice, expertise,

and public outcry concerning this very solvable problem.

I could not prevent the traumatic mind-control abuses Kelly endured due to

my own victimization, yet she is depending on me now to expose the truth and

enlist the help that the Juvenile Court has restrained her from seeking. I dedicate

this book to Kelly, and all others like her, and to every American unaware of

the mind-control atrocities prevailing in this country. What Americans don’t

know is destroying them from the inside out. Knowledge is our only defense

against mind control. It is time to WAKE UP and arm ourselves with the truth,

restore the constitutional values of freedom and justice for all, to retroactively

enforce the 13th Amendment, and take back America!

CHAPTER 1

MY INTRODUCTION TO HUMANITY

My pedophile father, Earl O’Brien, brags that he began substituting his

penis for my mother’s nipple soon after I was born. My multgenerational

incest-abused mother, Carol Tanis, did not protest his perverse actions due to

(reportedly) having similar abuse as a child which caused her to acquire

Multiple Personality Disorder.1 My earliest recovered memory was that I could

not breathe with my father’s penis jammed into my little throat. Yet I could not

discern his semen from my mother’s milk. I do not recall thinking, but I am

aware through education that this early sexual abuse distorted my primitive

concepts of feeding, breathing, sexuality, and parental perceptions.

I recall as a toddler being unable to run (I could barely walk) to my mother

for help as my instincts demanded. Through my gulping sobs, my terror rose as

I tried to clear my throat of my father’s semen and draw a breath of air. My

mother finally arrived at my side. Rather than comfort me, she accused me of

throwing a temper tantrum and “holding my breath”. She responded only by

throwing a glass of cold water in my face. 1 was shocked! As the water

splashed my face, I knew she would not help and it was up to me to save

myself. I automatically Multiple Personality Disordered. I was, of course, too

young to logically understand that what my father was doing to me was wrong.

I accepted his strangling sexual abuse as a normal and natural part of my home

life, and split off a personality to deal with the pain and suffocation to satisfy

his perversions. Therefore as a child, I was dissociative of my father’s abuse. I

was totally unable to recall his sexual abuse, even in his presence, until 1 saw

and felt his penis. Then the terror, which was my conditioned response,

triggered access to that part of my brain that previously endured the trauma, I

was remembering the abuse and how to deal with it. This part of my brain

developed into a personality of its own-which belonged to my father-which he

rented out and later sold to the U.S. Government as will be explained and

detailed in the following pages.

Other parts of my conditioned mind dealt with other abusers, abuses and

circumstances. My father was (as revealed by my own investigations)

apparently a multigenerational incest child from a large, poor, and horribly

dysfunctional family. His mother earned a living as a prostitute for local

lumbermen after his father died when he was two years old. My father’s

brothers and sister were all sexually and (occult) ritually abused just as he was.

They grew up to be drug addicts, prostitutes, street derelicts, and pedophiles

who also sexually abused me and my brothers and sisters. I developed more

personality splits to deal with the traumas of these torturous relationships.

My mother’s dysfunctional family also appears to be multigenerational, but

of a slightly higher socio-economic class. Her father owned the building

occupied by a Masonic Blue Lodge he led, and managed a local beer

distribution business with her mother after completing his military career.

Together they sexually abused my mother and her three brothers, who in turn

sexually abused me.

My family often went camping on the vast wilderness acreage surrounding

my grandfather’s Masonic Lodge in Newaygo, Michigan. Large bluffs referred

to as “The High Banks’ overlooked the White River flowing through his

property, which is where we pitched our tents. My mother’s brothers, Uncle

Ted and Uncle Arthur “Bomber” Tanis, often accompanied us and sexually

abused my brother and me.

It was deer hunting season in or around November, 1961, when my father

took the family camping on The High Banks to hunt with my uncles. That

night, as my brother and I were being sexually passed around the campfire to

satisfy pedophile perversions, a lost hunter stumbled into our camp. My father

shot him when he attempted to run; the rifle’s blasts piercing my brain and

further fragmenting my mind. I sat dazed in a dissociative trance while my

mother methodically picked up the campsite and my father and uncles disposed

of the body.

As my father drove us away from the crime scene, we were stopped by

several hunters who had the road blocked in a desperate attempt to locate their

missing companion. They described the man I saw my father kill, and said they

heard gunshots. Reality intruded on my dissociative trance, and I screamed

and cried hysterically until I no longer knew why I was crying.

My Uncle Ted2 soon became a street derelict. Uncle Bomber died a few

years later from alcoholism in his early forties. And my father became more

financially and politically connected.

My mother’s oldest brother, Uncle Bob, was a pilot in Air Force Intelligence

and often boasted that he worked for the Vatican. Uncle Bob was

also a commercial pornographer, producing kiddie porn for the local Michigan

Mafia, which looped back to Mafia porn king and U.S. Representative Jerry

Ford. I split off more personalities just to deal with my Uncle Bob, his

“friends,” and the perverse business he shared with my father.

My father’s sixth grade education had earned him a job as a worm digger

for local sport fishermen. By the time I was six years old, however, his

pornographic exploitation of my older brother, Bill, and me had provided

enough income to move us into a bigger house nestled in the Michigan sand

dunes. My father was right at home there. The tourists and drug dealers who

littered the eastern shore of Lake Michigan further supplemented his income by

paying for perverse sex with us children. My father also became involved in

illicit drug sales.

Soon after we moved, my father was reportedly caught sending kiddie porn

through the U.S. mail. It was a bestiality film of me with my Uncle Sam

O’Brien’s Boxer dog, Buster. My Uncle Bob, also implicated in manufacturing

the porn, out of apparent desperation informed my father of a U.S. Government

Defense Intelligence Agency TOP SECRET Project to which he was privy.

This was Project Monarch. Project Monarch was a mind-control operation

which was “recruiting” multigenerational incest abused children with Multiple

Personality Disorder for its genetic mind-control studies. I was a prime

“candidate,” a “chosen one”. My father seized the opportunity as it would

provide him immunity from prosecution. In the midst of the pandemonium that

ensued, Jerry Ford arrived at our house with the evidence in hand for a meeting

with my father.

“Is Earl home?” he called to my mother, who nervously stood behind the

screen door, hesitating to let him in.

“Not yet,” my mother replied, her voice shaking. “He should have been

home from work by now-I know he’s expecting you.”

“That’s OK”. Ford turned his attention to me. I was standing outside on

the front porch, and he crouched down to my level. Patting the large, brown

envelope containing the confiscated porn tucked under his arm he said, “You

like doggies, huh?”

“Buster is a nice doggy,” I replied. “He’s funny.” Not understanding why

the dog had been whisked away when the porn was confiscated, I complained,

“Buster’s gone.”

“Buster’s gone?” Ford asked.

“Yeah. My Uncle Sam took him away,” I told him.

Ford laughed loudly at the irony of my statement. In my limited view, I

thought he found it humorous that Buster was gone. My father pulled into the

driveway, honking the horn of his new, tan convertible. Ford stood up. With

his fly eye level to me, I noticed his penis was erect and reached for it as

conditioned.

“Not now, honey,” he said. “I have business to tend…” Ford went inside

with my parents to officially seal my fate.

Not long after that my father was flown to Boston for a two-week course at

Harvard on how to raise me for this off-shoot of MK-Ultra Project Monarch,

When he returned from Boston, my father was smiling and pleased with his

new knowledge of what he termed “reverse psychology”.

This equates to “satanic reversals,” and involves such play-on-words as puns

and phrases that stuck in my mind like, “You earn your keep, and I’ll keep what

you earn.” He presented me with a commemorative charm bracelet of dogs,

and my mother with the news that they “would be having more children” to

raise in the project. (I now have two sisters and four brothers ranging from age

16 to 37 who are still under mind control.) My mother complied with my

father’s suggestions, mastering the art of language manipulation. For example,

when I could not snap my own pajama top to the bottoms in a childish effort to

keep my father out of them, I asked my mother, ”please snap me”. She did.

she would snap her forefingers against my skin in a stinging manner. The pain

I felt was psychological as this proved to me once again that she had no

intention of protecting me from my father’s sexual abuse.

Also in keeping with his government-provided instructions, my father began

working me like the legendary Cinderella. I shoveled fireplace ashes, hauled

stacked firewood, raked leaves, shoveled snow, chopped ice, and swept—

“because,” my father said, “your little hands fit so nicely around the rake, mop,

shovel, and broom handles.”

By this time, my father’s sexual exploitation of me included prostitution to

his friends, local mobsters and Masons, relatives, Satanists, strangers, and

police officers. When I wasn’t being worked to physical exhaustion, filmed

pornographically, prostituted, or engaged in incest abuse, 1 dissociated into

books. I had learned to read at the young age of four due to my photographic

memory which was a natural result of MPD/DID.

Government researchers involved in MK-Ultra Project Monarch knew about

the photographic memory aspect of MPD/DID, of course, as well as other

resultant “super human” characteristics. Visual acuity of an MPD/DID is 44

times greater than that of the average person. My developed unusually high

pain threshold, plus compartmentalization of memory were “necessary” for

military and covert operations applications. Additionally, my sexuality was

primitively twisted from infancy. This programming was appealing and useful

to perverse politicians who believed they could hide their actions deep within

my memory compartments, which clinicians refer to as personalities.

Immediately after my father’s return from Boston, I was routinely

prostituted to then Michigan State Senator Guy VanderJagt. VanderJagt later

became a U.S. Congressman and eventually chairman of the Republican

National Congressional Committee that put George Bush in the office of

President. I was prostituted to VanderJagt after numerous local parades which

he always participated in, at the Mackinac Island Political Retreat, and in my

home state of Michigan, among other places.

My Uncle Bob helped my father decorate my bedroom in red, white, and

blue paneling and American flags. He provided assistance in scrambling my

mind according to Project Monarch methodologies. Fairy tale themes were

used to confuse fantasy with reality, particularly Disney stories and the

Wizard of Oz, which provided the base for future programming.

I had personalities for pornography, a personality for bestiality, a

personality for incest, a personality for withstanding the horrendous

psychological abuse of my mother, a personality for prostitution, and the rest

of “me” functioned somewhat “normaily” at school. My “normal” personality

provided a cover for the abuse I was enduring, but best of all it had hopehope

that there was somewhere in the world where people did not hurt each

other This same personality also attended Catechism, a weekly class at our

Catholic church, St. Francis de Sales in Muskegon, Michigan.

My Catechism teacher was a Nun, or “Sister.” Although I could not

consciously think to protect myself from abuse, I had decided that becoming a

Nun would provide me with the kind of life I sought. I could not rely upon

my family, the police, or politicians to protect me. The church appeared to be

my answer, and I listened diligently in class and prayed religiously. I learned

all about the political structure of the church, and was prepared for my first

Confession,

The Catholic beliefs I was taught include the idea that man is not fit to

talk to God (the Father) directly, but must have a priest intercede instead. This

is the purpose of going to Confession. I was instructed to tell my sins to the

priest (also referred to as Father), who would relay the message to God. He

would then supposedly tell me how many “Hail Marys” and “Our Father”

prayers to say as my penance, or punishment. My Catechism teacher gave the

class several examples of “sins,” which included “sex outside of marriage.”

When the Priest, Father James Thaylen, slid open the little screened partition

in the closet sized confessional, I began as 1 had been instructed, “Forgive me

Father, for I have sinned….” I then proceeded to tell him that I had sex with

my father and brother, to which he responded that I should “say three Hail

Marys and one Our Father and 1 would be forgiven?!”

I knew then that I had to either believe that this Confession thing was a

hoax, or that God condoned sexual child abuse. That night, my father had a

talk with me. Apparently he was the “Father” that the priest had interceded to.

My father instructed me that “from now on,” I was to simply say “I disobeyed

my parents” when I went to Confession and nothing more!

The next time I went to Confession, I did exactly as I was told. The veiled

screen came off the Confessional partition between me and the priest, and a

penis was stuck through the window, “God said that your penance is to treat

me as you would your father. And remember, ‘whatsoever you do to the least

of your brothers, that you do unto me’.” After performing oral sex on Father

Thaylen, I emerged from the Confessional where all the other kids were waiting

very impatiently for their turn. My teacher scolded me for taking so long and

told me to add a few extra “Our Fathers” to my penence. When I told her 1

already did my penence, she told me again the “order of things” to the

Confessional r i t u a l—which did not fit anything I had just experienced!

Without ever consciously knowing why, I abandoned the idea of becoming a

Nun as that part of me, too, split off from what was left of my “normal” base

personality.

I continued to maintain an illusion of normalcy for school,5 excelling in my

studies due to my photographic memory and in spite of my chronic “daydreaming”.

I had plenty of friends and played enthusiastically at recess,

expending large amounts of energy in my subconcious effort to escape my own

mind. And I lost myself in the books my father suggested I read: the Wizard

Of Oz, Alice In Wonderland, Island of the Blue Dolphins, Disney Classics, and

Cinderella—all of which were used in conditioning my mind for what soon

would become mind-control programming.”

My television viewing was restricted and monitored in keeping with my

father’s gained knowledge. I was, however permitted to watch the “best” of

movies: The Wizard Of Oz, Disney Classics, Alice In Wonderland, and

Cinderella—over and over and over again.

When I was in second grade, my Brownie Troop marched in the Memorial

Day Parade in which then Michigan State Senator VanderJaut also participated.

At the end of the parade, he took me into a nearby motel and had me perform

oral sex on him before sending me back to where my Brownie Troop was

waiting. My Brownie leader and peers thought it commendable that

VanderJagt took me with him. They gathered around to hear all about it. I

noticed a white splash of semen on my sash, and hurriedly explained that he

had “taken me for a milkshake” as 1 wiped it. away. Having to cover for his

perversion to my Brownie Troop infringed on my school personality, and the

“normal” remainder became even smaller.

With the memory of this incident compartmentalized in my mind. I made

so conscious association to VanderJagt when my t h i r d grade teacher

announced that we were taking a field trip to the State Capital in Lansing,

Michigan where he was in session. Once at the Capital, I was ushered away

from my classmates and taken to an office where he was waiting with his

friend and mentor (soon to be President) Gerald Ford. VanderJagt lifted my

skirt, pulled down my panties, and placed me on his desk for sex with him and

Ford. Afterward they laughed as VanderJagd placed a small American flag in

my rectum and instructed me to wave it. He then presented me with a Kennedy

pen inscribed with the motto that would lead me for the rest of my mind-controlled

existence, “Ask not what your country can do for you. Ask what you

can do for your country.”

VanderJagt then escorted me back to the balcony of the Legislature where

my classmates were gathered. He put his arm around me in front of all my

classmates and presented me with the American Flag he had just had me wave

for him and Ford with my rectum. My school personality split off again, but I

still maintained the hope that somewhere, someday, 1 would find a place where

people didn’t…what? 1 could not remember what 1 was seeking to escape.

1Multiple Personality Disorder (MPD), now known among mental health professionals as

Dissociative Identity Disorder (DTD) is the mind’s sane defense to an insane situation. It is a

way of dealing with trauma that is literally too horrible to comprehend. Incestuous rape violates

primitive instinct and surpasses pain tolerance. By compartmentalizing the memory of such

horrendous abuse, the rest of the mind can function “normally” as though nothing had happened.

This compartmentalization is created by the brain actually shutting down neuron pathways to a

specific part of the brain. These neuron pathways are triggered open again when the abuse

recurs. The same part of the brain that is already conditioned to the trauma deals with it again

and again as needed.

2Uncle Ted had also cried hysterically the night of the murder. Several years later, he

almost killed himself when he drove his car into the White River near the place of the murder.

3Gerald Ford, aka Leslie Lynch King, Jr., served on the appropriations subcommittee for

the CIA and was appointed to the Warren Commission to investigate the assassination of

President John F. Kennedy while I knew him only as a pom boss!

4My mother often voiced complaints that she “could not see faces,” which personal

experience has taught me indicated that she was suffering from on going physical and

psychological traumas, and therefore was not in control of her senses.

5Had my teachers been educated in the obvious signs of child abuse, my “illusion of

normalcy” would have been interpreted as a cry for help. Dissociative trance daydreaming,

tones of helplessness and sexuality in drawings, and the electric prod marks on my face should

have been recognized.

6These same themes were routinely used in creating Project Monarch slaves. This fact

emerged through years of networking with mental health professionals.

CHAPTER 2

THE RITE TO REMAIN SILENT

On May 7, 1966, I was dressed in white from my Catholic veil to my white

patent leather shoes as was mandatory for making my first holy communion. I

was standing outside the newly built, twisted concrete structure of Muskegon’s

St. Francis of Assisi Church waiting for the ceremony to commence when Guy

VanderJagt, who was affiliated with the church, strode across the lawn towards

me.

Crouching down on one knee, VanderJagt said, “You look beautiful today.

You are as beautiful as your name. Cathleen is Gaelic for “the pure,” and it is

clear to me that you are flawless in your purity. Ann means “grace”. It is by

the grace of God, not your actions, that you are pure. Pure at heart. You are

covered by the blood of our Lord and Savior, just like the cross on which he

hung. This is for you.” He opened a black velvet box, revealing a rosy cross

necklace. Like the Kennedy inscribed pen he had presented me with at the state

capical, the meaning behind the rosy cross necklace would lead me through the

rest of my mind-con trolled existence.

VanderJagds pedophile comrade in Project Monarch, Father Don, joined us,

reaching deep into the pocket of his robes to present me with a delicate blue

charm of the Holy Mother. It was to be worn in conjunction with the rosy cross

“to symbolize your service to the holy Catholic church,” Father Don told me,

which I would “promise to serve and obey”.

As VanderJagt fastened the rosy cross and blue virgin around ray neck, he

told me I was now dressed appropriately for the ceremony in red, white, and

blue. I could feel his breath on my neck as he fastened the necklace and

instructed, “When Father says ‘Body of Christ’ and you say ‘Ahhh men’… you

acknowledge that Christ is God made man, and that you know what men are

for. When Father gives you the host, it will stick to the roof of your mouth

unless you suck it off his thumb.”

I hurried to line up with my Catechism classmates for the procession into the

church for our holy communion mass.

“Body of Christ,” Father Don said, holding up the host.

“Ahhh… men,” I responded as instructed, sucking the wafer off his thumb.

After services, VanderJagt and Father Don talked with me briefly while my

parents congregated with other parishioners. Father was telling me, “…God

has chosen you for work within his holy church. You are a Chosen One,1 my

child…”

Later that evening, VanderJagt attended the reception that my parents were

holding for me at our house. He talked with my father awhile, but spent most

of his time talking with my Uncle Bob, who had recently flown in from “a

mission over seas”. My Uncle Bob and VanderJagt were friends, and remained

so throughout the years. As the party dispersed, VanderJagt drove me back to

church for a “special evening service with Father Don.”

VanderJagt unlocked the rectory door of the old church across the street

from the new St. Francis structure, explaining that we had to “have a very

important talk now that I had eaten the body of Christ.” The talk, blood

trauma, and sexual abuse that ensued conditioned my mind to readily accept

prgramming throughout the years that deliberately merged both U.S.

Government and Jesuit mind-control efforts for New World Order controls.

“I work for the Vatican, and now, so do you,” VanderJagt told me. “You

have just entered into a covenant with the holy Catholic church. You must

never break that covenant.”

Still capable of questioning at that time, I asked, “What is a covenant?”

VanderJagt answered, “A covenant is a promise to keep secrets, the secret

that the church knew all along. The Pope has all the secrets locked away at the

Vatican. Your Uncle Bob and I have been to the Vatican. It is time you

entered into the holy covenant and learned the secrets of the church that were

written long before Christ even came into being. The Dominican monks kept

the covenant that Noah carried into the new world. They kept the secret with

them. It was written on parchment and kept in a secret place in the Vatican.

They took a Vow of Silence to never reveal its location, or its content. You

must enter into the covenant. You must carry the secret to your grave. Keep it

secret from your mom, dad, everybody.”

VanderJagt proceeded to fill my suggestible young mind with biblical

interpretation that laid the groundwork for future “inter/inner dimensional”

programming themes utilized by Project Monarch programmers to control the

compartmentalization of memory synonymous with MPD/DID.

“Christ saw them all,” VanderJagt was telling me, “They are dimensions,

places you can see on your way to death.- That’s why they’re called diementions.

You must remember that Christ died and came back to tell us

everything he saw while he was on his way to heaven. He was gone three days,

but it was much longer than that where he was because time isn’t the same in

other dimensions. Purgatory is one other dimension. Hell is one. And there

are lots of others in between. Oz is another dimension. The sky is not the limit

to all the worlds out there wailing to be explored. You can travel in and out of

ail these dimensions, learning the secrets of the universe. You have been

chosen to explore these oilier worlds for the church. Listen in the stillness and

you will hear his voice guiding you3 on your missions. The rosy cross is like

Dorothy’s ruby slippers. Never take your rosy cross off, Cathy, when traveling

other dimensions and you will always be able to return home.”

Father Don joined VanderJagt in a ritual which bathed me in the blood of a

slaughtered lamb, and subsequently, through this hideous blood trauma, locked

their stated perceptions and a basis for mind-control programming deep in my

mind. This basis for programming was anchored in the Vow of Silence which

the Jesuit monks take “not only to keep secrets, but so they can still their mind

and hear their inner guidance.” Certain that the “Rite to Remain Silent” which

they had performed would ensure that I keep their secret Father Don and Guy

VanderJagt subjected me to their pedophile perversions. The two joked that I

had become “a good Cathy-lick”.

After the Rite to Remain Silent was installed, the voices of my multiple

personalities that I had previously heard in my head ceased. In the silence of

deliberately created memory compartments, I could only hear the voices of my

abusers who created them… commanding my silence.

Silence for who and what I knew was involved in Project Monarch Mind

Control.

My family routinely vacationed at Mackinac Island, Michigan which is a

small island positioned in the Great Lakes close to the Canadian border

Mackinac Island, with the Governor’s Mansion and historical Grand Hotel, was

a political playground where I was prostituted by my father to, among others,.

pedophiles Jerry Ford, Guy VanderJagt, and later U.S. Senator Robert C. Byrd.

The mind-controlled part of me that was prostituted there perceived Mackinac as

another dimension, the timelessness of which was enhanced by the island’s antiquated

styling. Automobiles were forbidden on the tiny island, which relied on

horse drawn buggies or bicycles for transportation. Once when Lee Iaccoca was

attending a cocktail party at then Governor Romney’s Mansion, I overheard him

comment, “What better place for auto execs to get away from it all than on an

island with no cars?”

Mackinac Island, due to its geographic location, provided an air of

friendliness between the U.S. and Canada that formed my childish perception

that our countries knew no boundaries. This political view was further

enhanced by my father always taking the family to Niagra Falls where my mind

was to be symbolically “washed of all memory” or what had occurred in

Mackinac. Niagara Falls’ numerous, powerful waterfalls were in reasonably

close proximity to Mackinac Island, and shared the border between the U.S. and

Canada.

When Pierre Trudeau was elected Prime Minister of Canada in 1968, I often

heard it said, “Pierre Trudeau is one of Ours, you know.” I first heard this

phrase cryptically referring to Trudeau’s loyalty to the Vatican when Father

Don was discussing h im with my famer one Sunday after mass. This fact

circulated quickly among those I knew who were involved in the Catholic/Jesuit

aspect of Project Monarch.

The summer after Trudeau was elected, my father took the family to

Mackinac Island as usual. Climbing on a large statue on the grounds of the

Governor’s Mansion, I could see across the field to the Grand Hotel. I noticed

Canadian flags flying amongst the American flags that lined the front of the old

hotel. As I slid down off the statue, Guy VanderJagt approached with a drink

and a cigarette in his hand. Palling my hair into place he said, “Straighten your

shirt, I’ve got someone important for you to meet,”

“I knew someone important was here because of those flags,” I said, tucking

my shirt in my pink shorts.

“When I was at the Vatican,” VanderJagt began, “I was told that Prime

Minister Trudeau is a friend of the Pope. He thinks like one of us. A true

Catholic. He likes Cathy-licks.”

VanderJagt led me upstairs in the mansion, where Pierre Trudeau was

lowering the window shades in a dimly lit bedroom crowded with antiques.

VanderJagt closed the door behind me. Trudeau’s tuxedo coat was neatly

draped over a chair, which left him in his formal pants, while shirt, and a bright

red cummerbund which caught my eye. “I like your sash,” I said.

“Hasn’t anyone taught you Silence yet?” His somber, gruff attitude was

softened by his smooth, silky voice.

Triggered into the part of me that endured the Rite to Remain Silent, 1

assumed Trudeau knew all about interdimensions according to my deliberately

formed perceptions. I could not/did not understand that interdimensions

actually equated to the inner-dimensions of my own compartmentalized mind.

Likewise, I did not understand that “Keys to the Kingdom” referred to knowing

the codes, keys, and triggers to my controlled mind. “Guy said you like Cathylicks,”

I said, repeating what VanderJagt had told me. “Are you the Keeper of

the Keys?”

Trudeau seemingly bore his cold, dark eyes right through me. “You can

learn more from the school of thought than you can by asking precocious

questions. Haven’t you learned that children are to be seen and not heard?”

“Is that a precocious question?” I asked. “What is a precocious question?”

Trudeau sighed with impatience. “That is irrelevant. What matters is that

you shut your mouth, still your mind, and enter the school of thought. Silence is

a virtue. Listen to the silence in the stillness of your mind. Go deep inside

your mind,” he slowly led. “Deeper and deeper where it’s quiet and still…”

Trudeau expertly manipulated my mind with sophisticated hypnotic

language. Not only did he enlist my Silence for the pedophile perversions he

indulged in, but he instructed my “school of thought” in a manner that equated

to programming. He laid a foundation for Air-Water programs that is a mirrordimensional

theme often used by NASA and others involved in Project

Monarch. Playing off his own name “Pee-Air,” he added a perverse twist to

the theme that he accessed each time 1 was prostituted to him.

Had I been capable of fear, I would have been afraid of Pierre Trudeau.

Trudeau’s slow, deliberate movements masked the brutal power of his body

much the way his smooth, soft voice pierced my mind and intruded on my

thoughts. The icey cold touch of his effeminate, manicured long fingers

contrasted with the heat of his perversion… a perversion for which he blamed

me and my “temptuous, contemptuous ways”.

In my childish ignorance, I believed Trudeau’s demeanor and forward

combed hair were characteristic of his French descent. “I know all about the

French,” I had bragged to my new “Grandpa” Van while visiting his home in

Milwaukee, Wisconsin,

My mother’s father had died shortly before Kennedy was assassinated, and

my Grandmother quickly latched onto a wealthy, highly political businessman

from Milwaukee. She met Grandpa Van Vandenburg on the passenger/cargo

ship that traveled the waters of the Great Lakes, the Milwaukee Clipper. The

Clipper transported cargo including Cadillacs from Vandenburg Motors to

Canada, as well as the drugs sanctioned by the local Coast Guard via the U.S.

Government that my father distributed. Sometimes 1 accompanied my father to

the docks in Muskegon to pick up the drag shipment, which usually involved

prostitution. Jerry Ford and Guy VanderJagt combined business with pleasure

in the ship’s casinos on occasion, which is where the connection between my

Grandma and Grandpa Van was reportedly made. Grandpa Van knew Jerry

Ford, and subsequently was acquainted with Pierre Trudeau.

“What do you know about the French?” Grandpa Van asked me as I sat on

his living room floor petting the dog he just brought home. Improperly cued

and dumfounded by his question I remained silent. “I know you’ve met Pierre

Trudeau,” he prompted. “I also know you love doggies. So I bought this dog

for your grandma now, so you could enjoy him, too. His name is Pepe. He’s a

French Poodle,”

“I know all about the French.” I said, mentally comparing the large French

Poodle in front of me to Trudeau. “They have pretty nails…” I stroked Pepe’s

painted toenails. “They have funny hair…” I petted Pepe’s clipped fur. “And

they pee a lot,” I giggled.

“You’d better take him outside, then,” Grandpa Van told me, attaching

Pepe’s leash. After walking the dog past what felt like every tree in the

neighborhood, I announced that 1 would call him “Pee-pee”.

Uncle Bob filmed Pepe and I pornographically on numerous occasions,

producing bestiality films that I would later learn Pierre Trudeau was privy to.

Pepe remained a part of my experience long after Grandpa Van divorced

himself from my Grandma, and long after I developed beyond Trudeau’s

perversion for little children.

1 was slow to grow into adolescence. By the time I was thirteen years old,

my breasts were tender and beginning to swell, which made me “too old” for

VanderJagt’s pedophile perversions. When my father brought me to Mackinac

Island for routine prostitution at the Political Retreat, VanderJagt introduced me

to a new friend he had made now that he was in Washington, D.C. as a U.S.

Congressman-U.S. Senator Robert C. Byrd, Democrat from West Virginia.

Byrd had been a U.S. Senator as long as I had been alive, serving as Senate

Whip and later as President Pro Tempore of the Senate and as the all powerful

Senate Appropriations leader. Byrd commanded attention and respect from all

who came in contact with him, particularly from my father. When we were left

alone in his room, he loomed over me in a threatening stance. His cold, blue

slitty eyes locked onto mine. I undressed and climbed into his bed as ordered.

I was momentarily relieved to find that his penis was abnormally tiny—so small

it didn’t even hurt! And I could breathe with it in my mouth! Then he began to

indulge himself in his brutal perversions, talking on and on about how I was

“made just for him” due to the vast amounts of pain I could withstand. The

spankings and police handcuffs I had previously endured were child’s play

compared to Senator Byrd’s near death tortures. The hundreds of scars on my

body still show today. With VanderJagt, sex was a matter of “how much I

could give,” whereas with Byrd it was “how much I could take”. And I was

forced to take mote pain than any human could logically withstand. I was

dedicated to Byrd at age thirteen which meant he would be directing my future

in Project Monarch, and my father would raise me according to his

specifications.

My MPD/DID existence became more regimented from that point on. I was

kept physically worn down to the point of exhaustion in order that I be

sufficiently receptive to my father’s limited hypnotic programming capabilities

to condition my mind for mind control. The pornography I was forced to

anticipate in became much more violent immediately after Byrd, switching me

from predominantly pedophile and bestiality themes to torturous versions of

sadomasochism (S&M). My father and mother worked in tandem daily to

“break my spirit,” destroying any remnants left of my self-confidence, tearing

down my self-esteem, and thus annihilating my free will urges. They

conditioned/taught me my dreams were reality and my reality were dreams, that

black is white and up is down. “Good night, sleep tight, dream about your

mommy and daddy” is what I heard every night. This was intended to confuse

my mind to believe incest in the middle of the night was “just a bad dream”.

My television, books, and music became even more strictly controlled and

monitored that before. This was not only to infringe on my last minuscule

freedom of choice, but for total mind-control conditioning purposes.

For example, the annual televising of Judy Garland’s Wizard Of Oz was

celebrated as a grand holiday around my house. This was to prepare my mind

for future base programming on the theme that I, like Dorothy, could “spin”

into another dimension “Over the Rainbow”. After all, “Birds (Byrds) fly over

the Rainbow…” was a theme that became a part of my life.

My father insisted I watch the Walt Disney movie Cinderella with him,

paralleling my existence to Cinderella’s—”magically trance-forming from a dirty

little slave to a beautiful Princess”. In typical “reverse psychology” humor, he

referred to pornographic photos when singing “Someday my Prince (prints) will

come,” or by placing literal sexual emphasis on “will come”.

My brother, Bill, who was often featured in kiddie porn with me, was not a

“chosen one” for Project Monarch (beyond supplying more children to be

dedicated in later years). Yet my father figured that “what was good for me

would be good for my brother”. He took us to see Walt Disney’s Pinocchio,

explaining that my brother and I were his puppets still in the carving stage. The

distortions of reality that these and other Disney theme movies provided when

coupled with my father’s government trained conscious and subconscious

controlling influence, began to further erode our ability to discern fantasy from

reality. My brother, now 37, remains psychologically locked into those

traumatic childhood years and is obsessed with Disney themes and productions

to this day. His house is decorated in Disney memorabilia, he wears Disney

clothes, listens to my father’s instructions on his Disney telephone, and

maintains “When You Wish Upon a Star” as his favorite song, which has locked

his children into the same theme.

My father also instructed me to watch Alfred Hitchcock’s horrifying movie

The Birds with him. This reinforced in my mind the movie’s theme that there is

“no place to hide from the birds/Byrd”.

I was quickly beginning to lose all ability to question anything but my own

judgment. It was easy to believe that there was indeed “no place to run, no

place to hide,” which is a necessary and primary psychological basis for

government/military mind control. In later years, “who ya’ gonna call?” and

Ronald Reagan’s quip “you can run, but you can’t hide” echoed deep within my

mind. After all, even if I could think to seek help, who would help me? The

police? The church? My parents? Relative? Politicians? School? There was

no one left that would help me, I sensed.

My television programming was then expanded to include the shows that

every Project Monarch Mind-Control slave I knew had to watch: I Dream Of

Jeannie, The Brady Bunch, Gumby And Pokey, and Bewitched. I could relate to

the Genie pleasing her master, who was a Major for the Air Force in I Dream

Of Jeannie. This served to confuse the reality of my own experiences with the

fantasy of television production. I told all outsiders that my family was “just

like the Bradys”. Through Gumby And Pokey I was led to believe that I was as

flexible as these animated clay performers. Therefore, I was capable of being

physically maneuvered into any sexual position. The mirrors depicted a

doorways to other dimensions and adventures interlocked with my Catholic

conditioning and Alice In Wonderland and Wizard Of Oz theme programming.

In Bewitched, it is the normal new door neighbor that is considered crazy rather

than the witches. This is another reversal that was applied to my bizarre

existence. I was one of the only kids in my school that listened to country

music. But then, Senator Byrd fancied himself a country music fiddler and it

was “my duty to love what he did”, I was ordered to listen to country music or

no music at all. Music was my psychological avenue for escape, a dissociative

tool. But this, too, was used in setting the stage for my future as a Project

Monarch “Presidential Model” mind-controlled slave.

As suggested, I read the Boxcar Children Series over and over again, I

empathized with the trials, traumas, and tribulations the children endured while

they fended for themselves from their boxcar home along the railroad tracks.

My father often made train sounds at me in passing to subconsciously remind

me that I was currently “in Train-ing” on the undeterable track of the “Freedom

Train.”4 This term, taken from Harriet Tubman’s underground railroad for

slaves, reversed the meaning of the word “freedom” to confuse one’s “one track

mind” and instill the belief “I am free to be a slave”. This also reinforced my

training to stay on track-the plan (track) laid our for me. My father would

often quip, “When God passed out brains, you thought he said ‘trains’ and got

in the wrong line”. Convicted (capital crime) career criminal, country music

entertainer, and CIA operative Merle Haggard often used well documented

cryptic language in his songs pertaining to government mind-control slave

operations. He released songs including “Freedom Train” and “Over the-

Rainbow”. My father told me repeatedly that Merle Haggard was my “favorite”

singer, and his songs reinforced my programming.

Of course, Senator Byrd remained my “favorite” fiddler as ordered. He

played train songs like “Orange Blossom Special” while making train sounds on

his fiddle. Sometimes I was his captive audience, bound and gagged, while he

played his fiddle. Other times he instructed me to spin round and round like a

music box dancer in order to add “new dimensions to our sex”.. These new

dimensions included more and more physical pain through “kinky” torture.

My father took advantage of his new political connections and advanced

himself occupationalIy, manufacturing camshaft auto parts at a local factory.

Soon he was promoted to a sales management position due to his connections

within the Pentagon Procurement Office and General Services Administration,

coupled with what he had learned about double bind hypnotic persuasion. He

continued to supplement his income by sexually exploiting us children. This1

now included brazenly prostituting me to Muskegon Coast Guard officials while

on cocaine runs to and from the base. Meanwhile, my father took us all to

church every Sunday, and my mother stayed busy having babies to raise in the

Project. In true pedophile fashion, he surrounded himself with children by

coaching little league sports, chaperoning school and Catechism activities, and

becoming involved with the Boy Scouts. All of this made him appear to be a

model citizen and “pillar of the community”. The illusion was fonned. The:

parts of me that knew otherwise had no choice but to remain Silent.

1Project Monarch slaves were referred to as “Chosen Ones”.

2Torture to the point just before death, such as with Death’s Door programming, was

jointly used by the Catholic Jesuits and the CIA in Project Monarch.

3It was the voices of my mind-control programmers and handlers that I later heard guiding

me.

4″Freedom Train” is the internationally recognized cryptic code term for Project Monarch

slave operations that I heard repeatedly throughout my victimization.

CHAPTER 3

MY FIRST PRESIDENT

Muskegon, Michigan is a coastal tourist attraction, and home of the annual

Seaway and Coast Guard festivals which bring people to the town from all over

Michigan. VanderJagt remained publicly visible through opportunities such as

these. My father often could be seen with Vanderjagt and was photographed at

his side white judging festival events like the kiddie parades, sand sculpturing

contests, and so on—all of which I entered and won. In later years, my father

polished and shined the red paint of his 1966 Ford convertible to chauffeur

VanderJagt through the local parades. This only served to reinforce the illusion

that my father was a “pillar of the community”.

In 1973, Senator Byrd instructed my father to send me to Muskegon

Catholic Central High School which was overseen by the director of St. Francis

of Assisi Church, Father Lepre. The Catholic church, of course, has its own

political structure, with the Pope presiding over all. The strong political ties

between the Catholic church and the U.S. Government was overtly evidenced

by the much publicized relationship between the President and the Pope during

the Reagan Administration. Of course, I had been privy to this political

relationship ever since my First Communion-a relationship that the Rite to

Remain Silent was intended to cover. My experience with Catholic Central’s

direct involvement in Project Monarch’s physical and psychological

conditioning further confirmed the union between the U.S. Government and the

Catholic church.

When Senator Byrd changed my school from public to Parochial, he also

destroyed through dissociation my school personality. I no longer viewed

school as my haven from abuse, as it was controlled by the church and, as I

later learned, monitored by a corrupt segment of the C.I.A.

By the time I enrolled in Catholic Central, the cliques and groups had

already been formed. 1 had a personality to fit in with the “good” kids and one

that interfaced with the “bad”. It did not take long for the “good” kids to notice

1 also got along with the “bad”. I soon found the only kids that could relate to

me were the other known Project victims. We clung together in a close knit

group, herded around like the proverbial sheep by those in the school who knew

we were MPD/DIDed and under mind control. We each switched personalities

as circumstance demanded, most often in unison. We were ritually traumatized,

constantly tranced, and then programmed during school hours. Since 1 no

longer had my singular “school personality” and was constantly switching

instead, the compartment of my brain that held school memory was no longer

consciously retrievable. Therefore, I had no basis for continued learning aside

from what I could photographically memorize from class. My grades appeared

erratic, ranging from A’s to failing. And some A’s received I did not earn

academically.

In my required religion class, Sister Ann Marie bad been leading us in study

on the topic of Confession, This was to prepare us for the kind of Confessions

we were to be giving Father Vesbit, who was also our school principal. The

day Sister ordered us to Confession, I refused to go. I unconsciously feared 1

would be sexually assaulted again in the Confessional, this time while my

teenage peers waited impatiently outside the door. Sister made an example out

of me to the class, saying I was a “Satanist” and that I was “going to hell”.

With seemingly no escape from the occultism that proliferated at the school, I

could no longer differentiate between Catholicism and Satanism.

Whatever Senator Byrd’s purposes in sending me to Catholic school, no one

seemed to notice that I had no reason to religiously adhere to Catholic

principles. Therefore, the applied reversal of Satanism held no “spiritual

magic” to it either. The wedge of anti-superstition that the Catholic school was

inadvertently driving into me only served to discount the occult principles and

superstitious traumas that they were attempting to use to control me,

Satanism is often used as an extreme pain/violence trauma base in Project

Monarch Mind Control, reportedly due to the previous German Nazi Himmler

Research. I did not adhere to the desired helplessness attitude that this was

“spiritual warfare” and out of the realm of mankind’s ability to stop.

Regardless of my religious beliefs or disbeliefs, I experienced the “results” just

the same. Being subjected to and witnessing trauma so horrible, while my body

was raped, tortured, and ravaged by men literally drove me out of my mind.

Catholic Central did increase my endurance capabilities as planned,

however. I signed up for the two-mile run in the girls’ track team as ordered.

Muskegon Catholic Central led the state of Michigan in high school athletics,

using mind-control technique to “modify” their star athletes and cause them to

excel beyond pre-established records. The school gained national recognition

for its contribution to professional leagues with their manufactured programmed

athletes. But, like Tommy LaSorda’s Dodgers, Catholic Central’s consistent

victories began to raise suspicions and questions. This created a public scandal

for the school that threatened to close its doors in 1975.

The girls’ and guys’ track teams converged after school for practice. I was

among the few females singled out for coaching by Coach Cheverini and his

hypnotic mind-control methodisms due to my Project Monarch victimization. I

was instructed to run 13 miles per day (another corny satanic ploy) to get in

shape for my two-mile race. I often ran with a male friend who was the record

holder for the two-mile in guys’ track. He and I were friends, sharing much

due to our similar Project Monarch victimizations. Together we learned how to

shut out pain and fatigue when we ran. We tranced into a fast pace set in our

minds by Coach Cheverini with no comprehension of time or distance. We

perceived the track as our “Yellow Brick Road” in accordance with the Oz

theme programming. Senator Byrd’s plan for building my physical endurance

through Catholic Central’s coaching methods proved successful for allowing me

to survive his intensely torturous sexual perversions.

In addition to routine trips to Mackinac Island and Niagara Falls, my family

often took camping trips to “get away from it all”. In reality, I was taken to

key places for ritual abuse, prostitution, and pornography. In the fall of 1974,

my father announced we were going to go camping “back in time” to an old

fashioned festival in the small remote town of Cedar Springs, Michigan for their

annual Red Flannel Days celebration. My mother told me to pack my jeans and

sweaters and my Catholic school uniform which she had washed and pressed for

the occasion.

Cedar Springs was quiet, with the festival events including dilapidated

amusement rides set up in a small parking lot, and contests where local farmers

pitted their mules and horses against each other to see whose could pull the most

weight. The main (and only) street of town was lined with the few local

businesses, including the town’s red flannel underwear “long Johns” factory. In

the center of town, a mock, single, jail cell had been erected to hold any and all

parade participants who failed to wear the required red flannel underwear. The

jail was guarded by quasi Keystone Cops. I was amused when the townsfolk

began lining up to march in the parade, with very few remaining to watch it, A

mentally retarded man carried the baton to lead the parade, followed by kids on

bicycles, hay-wagons of old folks, a grade school band and people walking-all

in their red flannel underwear. The grand finale’ of the parade, the town

firetruck, was approaching, surrounded by numerous motorcycle police. I

heard folks whispering “the President is coming”. I assumed they meant the

President of the underwear factory. I was wrong. I watched in horror as the

firetruck rolled to a stop, and Secret Service helped then President Gerald Ford

as he stepped down to the pavement.

My father was excitedly tugging on my arm, half dragging me through the

wall of Secret Service agents, to talk with President Ford. I looked around

nervously as my father made the necessary arrangements with Ford to prostitute

me to him later that evening. VanderJagt, who never missed a parade it

seemed, was signing autographs. As he smiled at me, someone roughly

grabbed my arm. Nervous and startled, I screamed. The crowd laughed as a

Keystone Cop threw me in the jail, scolding me for not wearing my red flannel

underwear when I was talking to the President. I was trying to be

inconspicuous in hopes no one would see me with the likes of Ford, but then,

they did not know him as I did. The Keystone Cop rattled on and on about

“how lucky” I was until my father paid my bail and I was released from the

cell.

That night, I wore my Catholic uniform as instructed and went into a

dissociative trance as my father drove me to the local National Guard Armory

where I was prostituted to Ford. Ford took me into an empty room, pushed me

down on the wooden floor as he unzipped his pants and said, “Pray on this”.

Then he brutally, sexually assaulted me. Afterward, my memory was

compartmentalized through use of high voltage. I was then carried out to the

car where I lay in the back seat, muscles contracted, stunned, in pain, and

unable to move.

When we got back to Muskegon, my father sent me to the beach as always,

to let the repetition of crashing waves against the beach “wash my mind free of

memory” while I watched the sun set. I was totally locked into the belief that

truly there was “no place to run,” not even to the President of the United States.

I remember that the “sane” part of “me”-my innate personality-seemed to

die after seeing Ford as President. I recall walking up the steps of Catholic

Central High School one morning, reaching for the door, and crying

uncontrollably. I cried myself into a heap at the top of the stairs. I did not

even know why I was crying. As an MPD, I rarely cried at all. But I was still

sobbing hours later when school let out. Someone found me, but I do not recall

to this day ever leaving the school steps. I never really experienced “emotion”

after that day until I was rescued, deprogrammed and reintegrated in 1988.

Now all of my brain was functioning through a wide variety of memory compartments,

also known as multiple personalities, with no part of me left “free”

of abuse. Now it was as though I had “no place to run,” not even in my brain.

This drove me out of my mind which is exactly what my abusers needed for

total control.

CHAPTER4

THE MOST DANGEROUS GAME

When I learned of a pending rendezvous with Senator Byrd in Traverse

City, Michigan (VanderJagt’s headquarters), I stole some candy at a local

convenience market hoping to go to jail and escape my encounter with Byrd. I

was caught, and the police were even called. But, of course, my poetically

powerful abusers would not allow for me to have a police record. The entire

matter was not-so-mysteriously and suddenly dropped. My only “punishment”

was to have a conference with the school principal, Father Vesbit.

Father Vesbit knew I was part of Project Monarch, and handled the matter

accordingly. He raped me in the school’s private chapel after school while

holding a Satanic ritual involving several of my project friends. Kids often

attached nicknames to their teachers, and there were only a few of us who knew

the reason why Father Vesbit was called Father “Fuzzbutt”. His backside was

covered with thick black hair. He “counseled” me on several occasions, once

remarking, “I thought kids in your situation were all part of the Exchange

Student program.”

My Uncle Bob Tanis was visiting our house soon after that. He had flown

in from what he claimed was a “black ops” Air Force Intelligence operation. I

know now that in typical CIA mode of operations, he was relating a story of lies

salted with some truth. His point was to inform me that the Catholic Church is

“justified” in its involvement with our government due to the Priests’ “hearing

confessions from mobsters and spies”. He also explained that Exchange

Students were “spies in the making” that Priests found, through Confession,

were problems. Thus they were considered expendable and transferred out of

the country. He then suggested to my father that I see the school guidance

counselor, CIA Operative Dennis DeLaney, immediately. My father

enthusiastically told me that DeLaney was a long time friend of his from St.

Francis who “knew how to handle kids like me”. Arrangements were made for

me to see him after school.

DeLaney began by informing me that he was “aware of everything” and that

he knew just what I needed “to put me back on track”. He said that my family

needed to lake a trip to the Teton Mountains of Wyoming. He even provided

maps and information in an envelope for my father. He turned off the lights in

his office, and turned on a slide projector. He showed me scenes of the

numerous waterfalls of the Tetons, all of which were to “wash my brain” of the

reality that I was performing oral sex on him as ordered while the slides ran.

Then he scheduled a follow up appointment for further “counseling”.

This trip to the Tetons would provide a change of scenery tram the usual

Mackinac/Niagara Falls trip, but I could no longer hope for a change in the

direction life was leading me. I was told my life was “predestined,” and all I

had to do was follow the road stretched out before me, i.e., the “Yellow Brick

Road”. I was destined for Wyoming, but would not know why until I arrived.

I confirmed the family trip to the Tetons when 1 saw DeLaney for my follow

up “counseling”. He informed me that he had already talked to my father about

the trip, as well as our upcoming trip to Disney World in Florida. I was not

surprised to learn of an additional trip. Nor did I have the capacity to become

excited, suspicious, or apprehensive. I was aware that DeLaney was heavily

involved in Project Monarch, not only because he was accessing my sexual

personalities again, but because he was helping to pave the way toward my

destiny of total mind control.

During Christmas vacation of 1974, my father flew us all to Disney World

by route of Tampa, Florida. Ignorant of geography, it did not occur to me that

Tampa was out of the way to Disney World until my father drove the rented van

to the gates of MacDill Air Force Base. Military personnel met me there and

escorted me into the base TOP SECRET high tech mind-control conditioning

facility for “behavioral modification” programming. This was the first in what

became a routine series of mind-control testing and/or programming sessions on

government installations that I would endure throughout my Project Monarch

victimization.

Whether I was in a military, NASA, or government building, the procedure

for maintaining me under total mind control remained consistent with Project

Monarch requirements. This included prior physical and/or psychological

trauma; sleep, food, and water deprivation; high voltage electric shock; and

hypnotic and/or harmonic programming of specific memory compartments/

personalities. The high tech equipment and methodisms I endured from that

time on gave the U.S. government absolute control of my mind and life. I had

been literally driven out of my conscious mind and existed only through my

programmed subconscious. I lost my free will, ability to reason, and could not

think to question anything that was happening to me. I could only do as I was

told.

After the MacDill Air Force Base experience, my home life worsened. The

controls and conditioning that my father and mother executed on me tightened

even more. I was no longer permitted to have any contact with my own

brothers and sister (I only had one younger sister at that time). This stopped me

in my subconscious efforts to protect them from my father’s abuse, and left me

with a desperate, empty aching for the loving relationships I previously shared

with them. Of course, I never was able to protect them any more than I could

defend myself or later protect my own daughter. However, until government

programming began, 1 had routinely “baby sat” them every evening and took

them for long walks that lasted for hours in my feeble attempt to keep them out

of my parents’ range. Subconsciously I believed I was making a difference.

The day my youngest brother told my mother he much preferred my company

over hers was the day I could no longer be near him or my other brothers and

sister. Apparently I was making enough of a difference that my parents were

compelled to separate me from them. I was ordered to my closet-sized bedroom

in the garage as soon as I got home from school or work. I could not speak to,

look at, or hug my brothers and sister. I was not permitted to eat dinner with

my family, although they let me out of my room to set the table, wash dishes,

and do other chores. If I ventured from my bedroom to use the bathroom and

was caught by my mother, she said, “nobody rattled your cage” and ordered me

back to my room in the garage.

In the summer of 1975, my family drove all the way from Michigan to the

Teton Mountains of Wyoming. I was ordered to ride in the back storage area of

the family Chevy Suburban since 1 was forbidden to associate or communicate

with my brothers and sister. So I dissociated into books, or into the

metaphorical, hypnotic suggestions from my father and tranced deeper as I

watched the prairies seemingly endless sea of “amber waves of grain” streak

past my window. Once when we stopped at a gas station, my father took me

inside to show me a stuffed “jackalope” mounted on the wall. Due to my

tranced, dissociative state and high suggestibility level, I believed it was indeed

a cross between a jack rabbit and antelope. It was 100+ degrees in the

Badlands when it cooled down at night. The intense heat of the day accentuated

my ever increasing thirst. My father was physically preparing me though water

deprivation for the intense tortures and programming I would endure in

Wyoming,

Dick Cheney, then White House Chief of Staff to president Ford, later

Secretary of Defense to President George Bush, documented member of the

Council on Foreign Relations (CFR), and Presidential hopeful for 1996, was

originally Wyoming’s only Congressman. Dick Cheney was the reason my

family had traveled to Wyoming where I endured yet another form of brutality—

his version of “A Most Dangerous Game,” or human hunting.

It is my understanding now that A Most Dangerous Game was devised to

condition military personnel in survival and combat maneuvers. Yet it was used

on me and other slaves known to me as a means of further conditioning the

mind to the realization there was “no place to hide,” as well as traumatize the

victim for ensuing programming. It was my experience over the years that A

Most Dangerous Game had numerous variations on the primary theme of being

stripped naked and turned loose in the wilderness while being hunted by men

and dogs. In reality, all “wilderness” areas were enclosed in secure military

fencing whereby it was only a matter of time until I was caught, repeatedly

raped, and tortured.

Dick Cheney had an apparent addiction to the “thrill of the sport”. He

appeared obsessed with playing A Most Dangerous Game as a means of

traumatizing mind-control victims, as well as to satisfy his own perverse sexual

kinks. My introduction to the game occurred upon arrival at the hunting lodge

near Greybull, Wyoming, and it physically and psychologically devastated me.

I was sufficiently traumatized for Cheney’s programming as I stood naked in his

hunting lodge office after being hunted down and caught. Cheney was talking

as he paced around me, “I could stuff you and mount you like a jackalope and

call you a two legged dear. Or I could stuff you with this (he unzipped his

pants to reveal his oversized penis) right down your throat, and then mount you.

Which do you prefer?

Blood and sweat became mixed with the dirt on my body and slid like mud

down my legs and shoulder. I throbbed with exhaustion and pain as I stood

unable to think to answer such a question. “Make up your mind,” Cheney

coaxed. Unable to speak, I remained silent. “You don’t get a choice, anyway,

I make up your mind for you. That’s why you’re here. For me to make you a’

mind, and make you mine/mind. You lost your mind a long time ago. Now

I ‘m going to give you one. Just like the Wizard (of Oz) gave Scarecrow a

brain, the Yellow Brick Road led you here to me. You’ve ‘come such a long,

long way’ for your brain, and I will give you one,”

The blood reached my shoes and caught my attention. Had I been further

along in my programming, 1 perhaps would never have noticed such a thing or

had the capability to think to wipe it away. But so far, I had only been to

MacDill and Disney World for government/military programming. At last,

when I could speak, I begged, “If you don’t mind, can I please use your

bathroom?”

Cheney’s face turned red with rage. He was on me in an instant, slamming

my back into the wall with one arm across my chest and his hand on my throat,

choking me while applying pressure to the carotid artery in my neck with his

thumb. His eyes bulged and he spit as he growled, “If you don’t mind me, I

will kill you. I could kill you—Kill you—with my bare hands. You’re not the

first and you won’t be the last. I’ll kill you any time I goddamn well please,”

He flung me on the cot-type bed that was behind me. There he finished taking

his rage out on me sexually.

On the Long trip back to Michigan, I lay in a heap behind the scats of the

Suburban, nauseated and hurting from Cheney’s brutality and high voltage

tortures, plus the whole Wyoming experience. My father stopped by the

waterfalls flowing through the Tetons to “wash my brain” of the memory of

Cheney, I could barely walk through the woods to the falls for the process as

instructed, despite having learned my lessons well from Cheney on following

orders.

The next year when our “annual” trip to Disney World rolled around, my

father drove, pulling his new Holiday Rambler Royale International trailer. (I

slept outside in a tent because I was not permitted inside it since “I wasn’t

family”.) My father dropped me off en route at the Kennedy Space Center in

Titusville, Florida where I was subjected to my first NASA programming.

From then on, I was “obsessed” with following the “Yellow Brick Road” to

Nashville, Tennessee. Moving to Nashville was all I could talk about. If

anyone asked me the question I could not think to ask myself “Why?”, I would

respond by reiterating it was something “I had to do”.

I had gone through the motions of my senior year in a dissociative trance. I

became further distanced from religious values by my religion class teacher.

Brother Emmett. This was due to his promotion of cannibalism via Pier Paul

Reed’s book Alive, and by his teachings at a religious ‘corseal’ retreat I attended

that included occult ritual at ST. Francis Church. I graduated from Muskegon

Catholic Central High School in our bicentennial year of 1976. I was led by

Senator Byrd to revise my plan to attend Hope College like I had promised

VanderJagt as a child. This new plan was for me to temporarily attend

Muskegon Community College, because my “real education” was to come

through mind-control programming-not school. In order to be exhausted, as

was necessary for my “real education,” I worked three menial jobs in addition

to attending college.

During my first semester of college in 1976, I made plans to take a trip to

Nashville with my Project Monarch friend from Catholic Central. (She remains

an expendable victim to date, and therefore her identity must be protected from

public release for her safety.) My father explained that I was to stay at the

Fiddler’s Inn in Nashville, see the World Famous Printer’s Alley row of sleazy

country music nightclubs, and attend the Grand Ole Opry on Friday night, as

ticket arrangements had been made through a “friend,” in spite of their scarcity

during the Thanksgiving holiday.

I never thought to associate Fiddler’s Inn with Senator Byrd’s fiddle playing

when my friend and I arrived in Music City, U.S.A. Nor did 1 find it odd

when a country music “star” entertaining at the Black Poodle nightclub in

Printer’s Alley began directing my activities. My friend and 1 were provided

with free passes to the Black Poodle to encourage us to return each night where

entertainer and CIA operative Jack Greene and his Desperado band were

playing. During breaks between sets, Greene and his band would sit with my

friend and me to manipulate our suggestible minds. I was told it was “my

destiny” to have met band member, Wayne Cox, who had been trained for

paramilitary mercenary operations under Louisiana’s U.S. Senator J, Bennett

Johnston, I soon learned that everyone associated with Greene was involved in

his CIA “Freedom Train” operations. When I told Greene that my friend and I

would not be returning on Friday night due to attending the Grand Ole Opry, he

told us that he would be working the Opry that night. He made arrangements

for us to come back stage and see him immediately following his segment. He

explained that the “security” guard at the Opry, Nashville Metro Police Lt. Bob

Ezell, was a good friend of his and would let us in.

At the Opry, my friend and I sat in the audience watching as Jack Greene

introduced his “special guest,” U.S. Senator Robert C. Byrd. At the sight of

Byrd, I went into a pre-conditioned deep trance and robotically went through the

motions of following Greene’s instructions. Once backstage, Greene pointed

out his dressing room, which he was sharing with Senator Byrd, and ordered me

in. The personality that had been sitting in the audience had perceived Byrd as

an entertainer and could not, or would not, think further. But as I walked into

the dressing room and saw Byrd perched on the edge of the mirrored vanity in

his boxer shorts, I switched into the child personality that had known him as a

U.S. Senator on Mackinac Island since age 13, and responded sexually.

Afterward, Byrd was claiming me as “his,” excitedly telling me that he had

“always wanted his own little witch”. I soon learned the enormity of this

statement.

Jack Greene’s band member, Wayne Cox, later told me that playing music

behind Senator Byrd at the Opry was not the only way he “backed him”. He

also backed him politically and in Freedom Train operations. Cox then made

arrangements for my friend and me to stay the remainder of our trip at his

trailer in Hendersonville, Tennessee. There was no choice but to comply. The

following night, after Jack Greene completed his show at the Black Poodle, he

drove my friend and me to a nearby participating after-hours club, the Demon’s

Den. There, Cox was to pick us up and take us to Hendersonville. Instead, we

were slipped a drug and taken “on a tour” of Union Station, Nashville’s then

abandoned train station, where supposedly the only train still running through

there was the Freedom Train.

Senator Byrd’s attempted cultivation of superstition through my Catholic

schooling should have maximized the impact of the occult ritual I was subjected

to in the tower of the old stone and slate turn-of-the-century train depot. But

the pain and horror was sufficiently effective in itself—even without my

adhering to superstition-to produce the intended mind shattering results. Cox

took my friend and me on a “flashlight tour” through the rubble of Union

Station, until we came to a homeless man sleeping on the ground. Cox ordered

me to “kiss the railroad bum good-bye,” then shot him between the eyes while I

was still only inches away1. He then used a machete to chop off the man’s

hands, which he put in a zip-lock bag. He then led us up the rickety stairs into

the lower of the old depot. There Jack Greene, his band members, and others

dressed in black robes were gathered around a black leather alter in a room lit

by candles and draped in red velvet. In total shock, I was laid on the alter and

subjected to rape and torture while the participants indulged in sex, blood, and

cannibalism ritual.

The next day I woke up on Cox’s couch, vaguely aware that I had suffered a

“bad nightmare”. When I stood up, I passed out from blood loss. I was

bleeding profusely from the vagina. It was all I could do to prepare to drive

back to Michigan, and my friend was certainly not in a stable frame of mind to

help. I did not know what happened to me, nor was I able to question it. I had

a new “obsession” on my mind. I had been programmed at the ritual to move

to Nashville and marry Cox, as ordered by Senator Byrd.

Back in Michigan, I made the announcement to my parents that I was

moving to Nashville to marry Cox, as it was “predestination”. What they

would not tell me was that my father had just literally SOLD me to Senator

Byrd in exchange for lucrative military contracts that made him a millionaire

overnight—a millionaire on a sixth grade education—a perverse, child exploiting

criminal, immune from prosecution, working as a CIA operative for the U.S,

government! That mind shattering occult ritual I endured in Nashville marked a

new life of wealth and prestige for my father white thrusting me into a new

phase of my torturous existence-and I had no choice in any of it!

1Nashville Metropolitan Police Lieutenant Bob Ezell, who also acted in the capacity of

Grand Ol’ Opry security guard, covered up the murder.

CHAPTER 5

TINKERING WITH THE MIND

It was 1977. I was a 19-year-old mind-controlled programmed slave in the

CIA/DIA Project Monarch Freedom Train operation, literally owned by U.S.

Senate Majority Leader Robert C. Byrd, who was then a 20-year incumbent and

on the Senate Appropriations Committee, As Byrd’s “own little witch” (sex

slave), I would also become involved in covert government operations. I now

understand that this required more memory compartments/personalities than I

had developed. Hence one more reason for the mind shattering occult ritual,

and my “predestined” marriage to Cox. In typical Project Monarch structure,

Byrd was my “owner” and in control of my life, while Cox became my primary

“handler” and followed Byrd’s orders to ensure that 1 was at key locations and

events at appointed times and to maintain me under mind control. Cox

reportedly was not paid cash for his role like my father was. Instead, he either

followed orders or would be prosecuted for distributing drugs and being the

occult serial killer that he was and is to date. Cox’s primary role was to shatter

my mind further through repealed occult trauma as well as father my daughter,

Kelly, to be raised in the genetic mind-control studies of Project Monarch.

I moved to Nashville, as ordered, to marry Cox, who took me to the

backwoods of his hometown swamp in Chatham, Louisiana for months at a time

for occult traumatization. Cox had been brought up in witchcraft by his

mother, and admittedly longed for her sexually and ritually. Together they

subjected me to their beliefs, which included what equates to a weakened

version of mind control used by witches for centuries, anchored in superstition

rather than scientific fact. These superstitious beliefs seemingly conflicted with

Cox’s mercenary training to the point that his killing raged out of control. For

example, Cox would murder a human through repeated stabbing with a knife,

believing that the “departing spirit” and splattered blood gave him power to

control my mind. In truth, it was my aversion and subsequent traumatization by

the event that caused me to dissociate and trance, leaving my subconscious open

to his suggestions and those of others. During the three years I was with Cox,

he ritually impregnated and aborted me six times, consuming several of his own

offspring and preserving the others shaped in ceramic for sale in his interstate

occult body parts business. Cox’s M.O. for murdering always included

removing the hands with a machete, as the “Hands of Glory” he kiln-dried in

the ceramic shop of his and his mother’s house were in demand and thus

distributed throughout the occult underground supply network. Cox’s protected

cocaine and body parts distribution routes included Texas, Arkansas,

Mississippi, Tennessee, and Florida.

Cox and I traveled to Florida on several occasions as his mother’s parents

lived in Mims, which is only minutes away from the NASA Kennedy Space

Center in Titusville. Cox, like my father, made sure I was there for mindcontrol

testing and programming as ordered. Cox perceived me as a “Chosen

One,” and often used this CIA Project Monarch term when referring to me and

for proudly “justifying” his leaving me at the NASA installation.

Cox had a variety of belief systems that he applied to various situations, all

of which were superstition based. He believed in spirit communication or

“divine guidance” through nature spirits and demons, that Satan must be

appeased, that Jesus is an alien, that the Bermuda Triangle is a door to another

dimension, and that the end of the world is near. He ‘religiously’ carried a

Bible with him everywhere-including to occult rituals-quoting scripture like a

theologian. He justified “eating the body and drinking the blood,” “being

washed in the blood,” and even “murdering children” according to the story of

God testing Abraham by ordering him to murder his son, Isaac, by knife on an

alter. Jim Jones was one of Cox’s idols, as was Charlie Manson, and he touted

the Jonestown massacre as a prime example of the “power of (CIA) mind

control”.

Cox demanded I become a Mormon in the Church of Jesus Christ of Latter

Day Saints. This was to “prove” that Satan was everywhere-particularly in the

Monroe, Louisiana Mormon church where he led occult ritual, and in the

Hendersonville, Tennessee church that the so-called Freedom Train rolled

through.1

Cox’s determination to instill his religious superstitious beliefs in me was

side-tracked by J. Bennett Johnston in his Shreveport, Louisiana office early in

the summer of 1978.

Cox’s mother, Mary, had driven us to Johnston’s office near Barksdale Air

Force Base as ordered. As she knocked boldly on the obscure metal door, 1

read the attached metal sign: “General Dynamics Research and Development”.

A smaller sign near the doorknob read; “Unlawful to enter premises without

prior authorization. All violators will be prosecuted under penalty of federal

law.”

Johnston, wearing a light blue, leisure suit and smelling strongly of body

odor, opened the door. “Well, hey Senator,” Mary drawled in her backwoods

Louisiana dialect, “I brought the children to see you like you said.”

Johnston looked at her with annoyed disgust. “I see that,” he said matter-offactly.

He then proceeded to instruct Mary to wait outside a moment while he

talked with Cox, then to take him on to her home in Monroe where I could be

picked up at the Airport a few days later.

Cox and I were ushered into Johnston’s barren military-style furnished

office. Several Presidential and military photographs hung on the wall and

served as the only decor. Johnston sat on the front of his military issue desk

and talked to Cox’s subconscious mind using cryptic, hypnotic Disney Peter

Pan theme language,3 as he apparently had done in the past when Cox had a

mind left to control.

“As long as your ticker’s running, chat crock-a-dial you’ve been feeding

over the years will be running right behind you. (Peter) Pan knew how to stay

a step ahead of the game and stop the inevitable process of becoming gator bait

himself by offering to give him a hand now and then.”

Cox dismembered his murdered victims and distributed the “Hands of

Glory” to fellow Satanists and occult traumatized/ Peter Pan theme programmed

mercenaries, while feeding “left over” body parts to an alligator that lived in the

Swamp behind his house. This was indicative of Cox’s twisted, murderous

response to Johnston’s traumatic Peter Pan theme programming… a

programming that I was about to experience “first hand”.

Cryptically instructing Cox on Senator Byrd’s orders, Johnston continued,

“I’ve got to hand it to that Pan. His livelihood of creating hookers for the

Captain (Hook) was indeed lucrative. And speaking of creating hookers, a little

Byrd told me that a shift from routine hand-ling to a theme that is alien could

prove lucrative to you.” Revealing his intent to ensure my military mindcontrol

programming, Johnston told him, “I’ll lay a little groundwork and set

the patten for countdown. Then I’ll send her out to launch for you, and it’s

your job to man the craft from there…”

Cox was ordered out of Johnston’s office, and he turned his full attention to

me. When alone with the Senator, Johnston manipulated my mind, and

ultimately my beliefs and perceptions, for future programming. He referred to

a picture of himself shaking hands with unknown Navy brass as he dramatically

told me, “I was there that fateful day in 1943 when a hole was ripped in the

fabric of time through what later became known as the Philadelphia

Experiment. All those fine boys vanished along with their ship in a bizarre

twist of events that parallels the Atlantis disappearances. A vortex was created

in an effort to slip dimensions and become invisible to the enemy. It was a

success beyond the highest expectations and launched us all into universal

travel. It is no wonder at all that we have had a man on the moon. Traveling

to distant planets and galaxies is Mickey Mouse stuff in comparison to the high

tech wizardry of trans-dimensional travel. Trans-dimensional travel

circumvents all measures of time, including distance and speed. When the

fabric of time was torn, we opened ourselves up to intergalactic travel—both in

and out of this dimension – and in and out of the future, as well as the past. We

can alter the course of history by traveling back in time to alter events, or we

can blast off into the future and gain wisdom and knowledge of events yet to

come. We can control the future by controlling the past. At present, this is a

relatively easy task according to the theory of relativity and abilities gained

through the Philadelphia Experiment. I came back an ET (extraterrestrial)

myself. And our ship relumed to this Earth as a spaceship.3 I gained the keys

to the universe on that fateful day, and I carry them with me now, sharing only

a Key or two at a time with those who are Chosen. You are a Chosen One

(Johnston was deliberately interfacing with Rite to Remain Silent conditioning),

and therefore must learn the ins and outs of interplanetary travel. Your mission

is trans-dimensional. You can span infinite dimensions by learning from me.

Take it from me, you’re going places, kid. And I’ll teach you to get there by

riding the light. I’ll teach you the groundwork, and you do the light work. The

key to the universe lies in the speed of light. The only way to travel is by beam

of light. You will learn to go to the light… Your mission is to learn how to

Tinker with time. I’m going to take you on that journey myself. Come with

me now. It’s time we were leaving this plane and boarding another.”

Johnston took me the short distance from his General Dynamics Corporation

provided office to the Barksdale Air Force Base airfield. He was apparently

well known at Barksdale, and a small cargo plane was ready to lake us to our

destination-Tinker Air Force Base in Oklahoma.

Once we were airborne, Johnston accessed my sex programmed personalities

for his own aggressive perversion. His use of cocaine further accentuated his

hyperactive demeanor as he brutally slung me around the back of the small

plane while he had sex with me. At one point the pilot hollered from the

cockpit “Hey, you’re creating turbulence. Knock it off, will you.”

Johnston laughed and responded, “What the fuck do you think I’m doing?”

By the time we arrived at Tinker A.F.B., my arm was beginning to show a

dark bruise that extended from my shoulder to my elbow. A uniformed man

greeted us as we walked across the airfield. Johnston apparently knew him

quite well, and referred to him as “Cap’n” (which tied in with the Peter Pan

theme programming I was about to endure). When he noticed my arm, Cap’n

reminded him, “Hey, that’s not necessary, you know.”

“Yeah, I know. Take care of it for me. Here…” Johnston took the straps

of my tank top and pulled them down around my forearms (which still could not

cover the bruise.) “There, that just about covers it.” He smiled and continued,

“You look like a Southern belle that way rather than a damned ol’ Yankee

anyway,”

Cap’n said, “She’ll be a Tinker-belle by the time we’re through here today.”

Then, referring to Johnston’s primary purpose in actually escorting me to

Tinker he asked, “How are your South American operations progressing?”

“I’ve got to talk to you about that,” Johnston answered. The two talked as

though they had worked in tandem on given mercenary operations/assignments

in the past. “I may need a few of your boys to back me on something.”

“Back you, or cover you?” the Cap’n retorted.

Johnston laughed, “Both if you’ll front the operation.”

Johnston had previously “justified” his use of Tinker (Peter Pan theme)

programmed niind-controlled mercenaries to me by saying, “Mercenaries are

missionaries who follow their inner guidance system rather than their old Uncle

Sam. Politics hinder the route to freedom, and these boys slip under

international laws, undetected, to carry out the work the military boys only

dream of doing..”

I was escorted away from the two by a nurse, who purported to be tending

to my injured arm. In fact, she was preparing me for the “Tinker-belle cage”4—

an electrified metal cage with an electrified grid bottom. Locked inside, 1 was

subjected to high, direct current voltage to compartmentalize the Peter Pan

theme mind-control programming that 1 endured. Like Peter Pan’s Tinkerbelle,

I learned to “ride the light” as a means of travel.5 Additionally, my instilled

Tinker-belle theme mind manipulation included a sense of Never-Never-land

timelessness that was rooted to my “natural” inability to comprehend time due

to my MPD/D1D.

Back in Louisiana, Cox and I shared a subconscious understanding of Peter

Pan themes and “riding the light”. The difference between us was that Cox

consciously activated Tinker Air Force Base programming within Johnston’s

band of mercenaries, while my trance was perpetual whereby I could “Never-

Never-Land.”6

I was with Cox on numerous occasions when he was running guns and/or

cocaine, and activating specified mercenaries for operations as instructed by

Johnston, In the course of these travels I saw numerous underground arsenals

and stockpiled weapons that were known to Senator Johnston, but were not on.

military installations. I was also privy to government sanctioned cocaine

operations.

On one such cocaine run in 1979, I traveled with Cox to a remote area in

the Ouachita National Forest near Hot Springs, Arkansas to “watch for fairies

like Tinker-belle” and “ride the light”.

We sat in the brush near a railroad track until we saw a light approaching

from the Eastern sky. At the time I thought I would be “riding the light” as I

was led to believe, but in retrospect I recall my personalities being deliberately

switched and a helicopter landing in a nearby clearing. Cox and I unloaded

approximately 200-400 pounds of cocaine from the van he had driven, and

stacked it in the helicopter. We were then flown to a small airport that

appeared to be no more than a dark, fenced-in clearing where 1 saw a row of

metal buildings that looked like mini-warehouses. While the cocaine was

unloaded into a warehouse, Cox and I were taken by car to a nearby grey stone

hold. The driver led us upstairs, and knocked on the Penthouse door.

“Yeah,” a voice answered,

“I got a Tinker-belle and a Peter Pan here to see you, Sir,” the driver called.

“Send ‘em in.” Cox and I walked into the suite where then Governor of

Arkansas Bill Clint cm was shuffling through a briefcase. Clinton and Johnston

were cohorts in illegal covert operations that emanated from Tinker Air Force

Base.

Cox spoke up. “Senator Johnston said a little (Senator) Byrd told him that

you are one of Ours.”‘

“So what does that make you?” Clinton asked impatiently.

“A Chosen One,” Cox nodded his head toward me.

Clinton asked me, “Chosen by whose order?”

I cryptically delivered the proper coded response, which cued Clinton to

proceed. “What brings you here?” he demanded.

Interpreting his question literally as is “natural” for programmed MPD/DID

slaves, I answered, “I rode the light, Sir.”

Clinton rolled his eyes, and looked back over at Cox who was nervously

rocking back and forth as he so often did. “State your business,” Clinton

ordered.

“Uh,” Cox cleared his throat, habitually picked his nose as he rocked back

and forth and said, “Well, uh…” Clinton looked disgusted.

“Get him the fuck out of here!” he ordered the driver. Cox was immediately

escorted out,

“That’s better,” Clinton said. Using standard Jesuit hand signals and cryptic

language, he triggered/switched me and accessed a previously programmed

message.

“Senator Johnston sent me to give this to you.” I handed Clinton a thin,

large brown envelope, “And I have some fairy dust guaranteed to make you fly

high.” I took the personal stash of cocaine that Johnston was sharing with

Clinton from my pocket.

Clinton snorted two lines of the coke immediately. He smiled. “Tell Ben

I’m impressed.” He showed me to the door.

The severe torture and mind-control programming that I was enduring at

Tinker Air Force Base had prepared me for this simple “mission” and many

others. Although Cox’s out-of-control occult serial killings polyfragmented my

multiple personalities as intended by Byrd, it was Johnston’s alien theme mind

conditioning that locked me into absolute robotic helplessness. After all, had I

been capable of rationalizing, I would nave found that the thought of

interdimensional travel and aliens was no more bizarre to me that Cox’s

murderous actions or having found out pornography king Jerry Ford held the

office of President.

When my daughter, Kelly, was born in February of 1980, Cox’s former

employer. Jack Greene, traveled to Louisiana to meet with me in keeping with

his role as Nashville’s CIA Freedom Train “conductor”. He took me aside and

explained that since Cox had fulfilled his (genetic) role in producing Kelly,

Senator Byrd had ordered me back to Nashville. Greene talked at length,

hypnotically reviving my original programmed “obsession” to move to

Nashville. He told me that Cox had proven too insane to follow orders

anymore as was evidenced by my extremely poor health (much of my hair bad

fallen out) and by the stench of decaying human flesh that permeated the area

surrounding his remote Chatham, Louisiana swamp house.

If I had had a mind of my own, I know in retrospect I would have felt as

though 1 had been released from a prison dungeon. But I could only respond by

telling Cox matter-of-factly that I had received “divine guidance” to move to

Nashville at once to a home that awaited me. Cox had no choice but to comply

with Byrd’s orders. Kelly and I moved to Tennessee when she was only three

months old, and Cox temporarily moved with us in order to apprise our new

handler of the latest details of our victimization. Within weeks, Cox moved

back to Chatham, Louisiana to live with his mother (even to this date). Now he

reportedly raises goats for sacrifice and carries on his occult serial killing

activities unhindered due to his immunity from prosecution because of whom

and what he and his mother know.

1Substantial information regarding the saturation of occultism in the Mormon church is a

published fact, circulated among the Bishopric, then released by Bishop Pace in on effort to

restore morality and freedom of thought to church members.

2Senator Johnston’s dual and triple cryptic language perplexed me at the time. In

retrospect, I understand how this component of mind control allowed for undetected

proliferation of criminal covert activity, even when overheard by strangers, to the extent that I

believed it must be occurring in “another dimension” as I was told.

3Johnston “validated” his ploy in my mind by arranging for me to see his “space-ship”-a

then TOP SECRET experimental aircraft which would eventually be known as a Stealth fighterat

a military installation near Baton Rouge. The classified triangular Stealth was so alien to me

at the time that it looked more like a spaceship than the U.S. fighter plane it actually is. This,

in combination with his inhumane demeanor and my previously instilled belief in transdimensional

travel, convinced me he was the “ET” he purported to be.

4I understand this is referred to as a Woodpecker grid.

5″Riding the Light” scrambled my future experience of being transported by military

helicopter or airplane to robotically carry out some program for the government. This “trancedimeasional”

travel caused my earthly experiences to be perceived as having occurred in another

dimension.

6 I remained in a Post Traumatic Stress Disordered (PTSD) trance.

7Same Jesuit reference used to describe Pierre Trudeau.

CHAPTER 6

UNITED STATES MILITARY &

NASA MIND-CONTROL TRAINING

Soon after moving to Tennessee, I learned that Senator Byrd had simply

exchanged one living hell for another for me. My new mind-control handler,

CIA operative and country music ventriloquist/ stage hypnotist Alex Houston,

seemed only to pick up where Cox had left off. As “destined,” Kelly and I

moved into a run-down old trailer on Houston’s property, which adjoined Jack

Greene’s farm in Goodletsville, Tennessee. I was subjected to further occult

ritual on Greene’s farm, and was ritually impregnated and aborted again, this

time by Houston. A difference between Cox and Houston was the superstition

factor; Houston knew exactly what he was doing and why he was doing it, in

accordance with tried and proven scientific U.S. Government mind-control

research and development. I gleaned this knowledge from conversations I

overheard between him and “those in the know”.

Alex Houston was 26 years older than I, and claimed to have gained his

knowledge of stage hypnosis and government mind-control methods from the

military while entertaining overseas in Bob Hope’s USO tours. After the tour,

Houston reportedly moved to Washington, D.C. where he and his alter-ego

dummy, Elemer, were regulars on the Jimmy Dean television show in the ’60s.1

According to Houston, he was regularly booked to entertain in officers” clubs

on military bases due to his involvement in covert government operations.

During the brief interim period that Cox resided on Houston’s farm with us,

he played music behind government mind-controlled slave Louise Mandrell and

her husband/handler, R.C. Bannon. Cox had previously worked with Louise’s

sister, Barbara Mandrell, at the onset of her government sponsored career in the

1960s, traveling overseas with her in the same U.S,O. tours that launched

Houston’s career. Irby Mandrell, the Mandrells’ father and manager,

reportedly sexually abused all three of his daughters and eagerly thrust them

into their mind-controlled existence much the same way my father had sold me.

His daughters, too, were owned by U.S. Senator Robert C. Byrd.

Cox was soon fired from his position with Louise due to his insanity. Once

when Houston was traveling with the Mandrells as he so often did throughout

the years, Irby Mandrell relayed the events that prompted his firing of Cox. He

told Houston and I that Cox had become an embarrassment to him while

traveling.

“I knew he was weird,” Irby Mandrell said. “That’s OK. I can live with

that. But when he pitched a tent behind the hotel so he could hear the trumpets

sound, signaling him to march to Missouri,2 I said, ‘Start marching, son.

You’re done. You’re through in Nashville. Don’t ever come back.’ That’s it,

he was done.”

Houston reminisced with Mandrell about the U.S.O. days, and inquired as

to how he had tolerated Cox back when he played music behind Barbara.

“Oh, yeah. I remember he (Cox) had somewhat of a brain back then.” Irby

Mandrell continued, “Barbara was just a kid back then with the talent of a full

blown star. I thought she had what it takes to make it in the industry. Then the

Byrd came along and introduced us to the latest in technology.”

Houston interrupted, “Are you talking about (music) equipment or the kind

they’ve got in Huntsviile (Alabama’s NASA mind-control training center)?”

“Both,” Mandrell replied. “But it was Huntsville that launched her to the

stars. The doors opened wide after that. Byrd took a lot of pride in Barbara,

and the doors just kept opening. With my baby’s talent and the Byrd’s

influence on her mind and career, there was no way we could lose.”

When Houston became my appointed mind-control handler in 1980, Byrd’s

influence on my mind boosted Houston’s “entertainment” career. His travels

had expanded to accommodate covert drug and money laundering operations

across the U.S., in Mexico, in Canada, and throughout the Caribbean.

Houston had, and has, a great deal of “no show” money, but I was never

permitted access to it. Poverty was one more means of control I endured, as

slaves like myself were not afforded the freedoms that having money allows.

When I was working three menial jobs during college, all of my money was

taken from me by my parents. All money earned by Cox’s cocaine and body

parts enterprises was reinvested in the coven and drugs, leaving us dependent on

charities for our basic necessities. With Houston, 1 had to “earn” every penny I

spent on groceries and necessities over and over again, which made “earning my

keep” a deliberately impossible cycle. This kept me financially dependent and

further hindered my ability to escape, even if I had known enough to attempt it.

My innate protective maternal instincts as a mother may have been accentuated

due to my past unsuccessful attempts to protect my brothers and

sisters (I now had two sisters). It was my desperate need to keep Kelly safe that

drove me to the point of “fight or flight” when I was transferred to Houston. I

had long ago lost my ability to “fight,” but my new maternal instincts compelled

me to “flight”. I did all I could to save Kelly and myself from Houston and her

fate in Project Monarch. Since I had no ability to reason and was amnesic, I

“fled” to my parents’ new house in affluent Grand Haven, Michigan, I had no

concept of what I was running from or to. I arrived with my baby daughter in

my arms, the tattered clothes on our backs, and what few donated belongings I

had acquired for Kelly. Within a few days, my parents received and followed

Senator Byrd’s instructions, and turned me back over to Houston—who, in turn,

sent me back to Louisiana for further conditioning.

After three more months of intense, nonstop tortures by Cox, 1 could not

think to follow maternal instincts and barely knew my own name. I had no idea

how old I was, where I was, how long I had been there, and what had happened

to Kelly during that time, Kelly’s own testimony and current programmed

poly fragmented Multiple Personality/Dissociative Identity Disorder reflects the

high tech, sophisticated conditioning and torturous trauma she endured during

this and numerous ensuing times that we were separated. When 1 was returned

to Houston as orchestrated by Byrd, my brain contained a series of new

compartments ready to be programmed and led.

Intensive mind-control behavior programming began at once, and Houston

ensured that I was taken to my appointed destinations under the guise of his

travels in the country music industry. In the early 1980s, my base

programming was instilled at Fort Campbell, Kentucky by U.S. Army Lt.

Colonel Michael Aquino. Aquino holds a TOP SECRET clearance in the

Defense Intelligence Agency’s Psychological Warfare Division (Psy Ops). He

is a professed Neo-Nazi, the founder of the Himmler inspired satanic Temple of

Set, and has been charged with child ritual and sexual abuse at the Presidio Day

Care in San Francisco, California. But like my father and Cox, Aquino remains

“above the law” while he continues to traumatize and program CIA destined

young minds in a quest to reportedly create the “superior race” of Project

Monarch Mind-Controlled slaves. I quickly teamed that Aquino did not adhere

to his profoundly professed occult superstition any more than I did. His

“satanic power” was in the form of numerous variations of high voltage stun

guns,5 which he used on me regularly. Although Aquino used occultism (blood

trauma) as a trauma base, his programming was high tech and “clean”—not

muddled in a proverbial witches’ brew of ignorance. He quickly dispelled the

Cox influence, and began programming me according to Byrd’s specifications

as his “own little witch” for sadistic sex, covert CIA drug muling, black mail,

and prostitution operations.

During the three months I was back with Cox, a muscle in my upper vaginal

wall was cut and dropped in preparation for Houston to flesh carve a hideous

witch’s face4 for Senator Byrd’s perversion. Aquino provided the ancient

instructions on how to mutilate me, and Houston used silver nitrate and hot

exacto knives to carve the details of the face without any form of anesthesia.

By flexing the muscle downward, the face protruded out of my vagina. Not

only did this surgery give Byrd a vagina suited to his minute, underdeveloped

penis, it also provided an equitable “curiosity” to be displayed over and over

again in both commercial and non-commercial pornography and prostitution.

On the 1981 anniversary of John F. Kennedy’s assassination, I was forced to

“marry” Alex Houston for appearance sake. Earlier that month when I had

been taken to Washington, D.C for prostitution purposes, Byrd informed me

that I would actually be “marrying” him when I “pledged my vows” to

Houston.

“It is a covenant between the two of us,” Byrd had said, “It is me that you

will honor and obey ’til death do us part,” Byrd then instructed me to pick up

my wedding dress from a nearby D.C. store. Throughout the years, Houston

often joked about the significance of my Washington, D.C. wedding dress—

which was depicted in pornographic photos and a commercial video to

“commemorate our wedding night”,

Alex Houston’s “best man,” Jimmy Walker, was also a photographer for

Larry Flynt’s sexually graphic commercial pornography magazine, Hustler.

When I met Byrd after the ceremony at Nashville’s Opryland Hotel as ordered,

he presented me with a “wedding gift”—a rose patterned crystal crucifix

deliberately designed to anchor “our wedding” in my Catholic/Vatican instilled

beliefs. The Larry Flynt photos depicting me in my wedding dress with the

crystal crucifix to “commemorate our wedding night,” was standard lock-in

procedure for all mind-controlled slaves I knew who were forced to “marry”

their handlers/owners.

Houston’s booking agent, Reggie Mac (MacLaughlin), of United Talent and

later of MacFadden Agency in Nashville, Tennessee, had been booking CIA

involved country music acts into key locations to aid the execution of covert

government operations. For example, Houston’s ventriloquist act “Alex and

Elemer” would be scheduled to perform at a county or state fair near

Washington, D.C., where I would be picked up by car or helicopter and

escorted to the White House or the Pentagon. The ensuing activities would be

compartmentalized in my memory in a manner that caused me to believe 1 had

simply been traveling in the country music industry, and no one “back home”

would be suspect of my absence. Another example would be that Houston

“entertained” at Byrd’s West Virginia State Fair every year, which gave a

legitimate appearance to my presence there, when in fact I was being prostituted

to the Senator I had “married.”

During the early ’80s, Reggie MacLaughlin primarily booked Houston into

areas that were conducive to my mind-control programming with Aquino. I

was first subjected to Aquino’s tortures and programming in Fort Campbell,

Kentucky; Fort McClellen in Anniston, Alabama; and most frequently, at

Redstone Arsenal and Marshall Space Flight Center in Huntsville, Alabama.

Military mind-control was fast, effective, and highly technological, but it was

the NASA programming that launched me as a “Presidential Model”, Even

though Aquino instilled my programming on both military and NASA

installations, he had access to the latest technological advancements and

techniques through NASA. These included mind foolers such as sensory deprivation

tanks, virtual reality, flight simulators, and harmonics. By the age of

two, Kelly had already been subjected to Aquino and his programming through

these latest technological advancements, which shattered her fragile young mind

before her base personality had a chance to form. Rather than use occultism on

Kelly, Aquino traumatized her through sexual assault and high voltage tortures

of the mind and body. She, like I, to this day carries numerous scars from this

“non satanic” abuse base. I know, from years of research, NASA technology

and Aquino’s programming, combined with the Project Monarch standard sleep,

food, and water deprivation and high voltage, made Kelly a subject of state of

the art genetically multigenerational MPD/D1D psychological mind-control

engineering.

In 1981, Byrd personally joined Aquino in Huntsville, Alabama during one

of our programming sessions. NASA cooperated fully with Byrd on any and

everything, since it was Byrd’s Senate Appropriations Committee that

determined how much and/or whether NASA received government funding. I

lay naked on the cold metal table, tranced and photographically recording every

word and detail of my programming and every word that Byrd and Aquino not

so privately discussed. Byrd was providing Aquino with specific details of

certain perversions he wanted me equipped to fulfill or perform. Additionally,

they talked about scrambling my immediate memory with two private porn films

they were arranging to have produced locally. These were titled How To Divide

a Personality and How To Create a Sex Slave. These films are the kind NASA

became involved in producing for the dual purpose of “scrambling” memory

and documenting their mind-controJ procedures. The resident Huntsville,

Alabama pornographers were two local cops, one of which was (and is) a

Sergeant.5 This served NASA and the CIA well when cover-up was necessary.

The How To Create a Sex Slave film depicts the common “spin” programming,

which in essence is the combination to unlocking or accessing a

specific programmed act. For example, the compartment of the mind that holds

memory of incest is stimulated to open when the original abuse is eminent.

Seeing my father’s penis would “trigger” a specific response, supposedly

opening the neuron pathways of my brain to allow the part of my brain that

dealt with his actions before to deal with them again. With “spin”

programming, the trigger of seeing my father’s penis is replaced with a

combination of specific verbal commands and a specific number of physical

spins so that anyone with tbe “combination” could access that particular part of

my brain. The part of my mind containing “knowledge” of the original abuse

by my father learned to “like” painful, sadistic sex. Senator Byrd wanted me

programmed in such a way that he could decide if he wanted me to scream and

cry when he whipped me, or if he wanted me to become sexually aroused and

“beg” for more. After programming, when I met with Byrd, I would “dance”

like a music box dancer, twirling round and round until Byrd’s fiddle music

stopped. My mind precisely calculated how many revolutions I had made

whether I was capable of conscious counting or not (much like a normal person

wakes up at a particular time without an alarm clock), and the desired results

were produced as accessed.

This is but one simplified example of sex programming, and I was

programmed for more than sex. But this particular incident of programming at

the U.S. Army Redstone Arsenal would change my existence entirely and set

the stage for my role in covert government black, budget-type operations as a

“Presidential Model”.

Seeing and/or knowing that Kelly was being tortured and programmed

proved to be a detriment to my own mind-control programming, such that the

common “cross-programming” of mother and daughter was rarely viable. In

the fall of 1982, Houston was scheduled to perform at the State Fair in Senator

Byrd’s home state of West Virginia, Byrd arrived at our hotel with LT. COL.

Aquino, who took Kelly with him, supposedly for programming purposes, I

was left alone in the hotel room with Byrd, whose KKK affiliation fueled his

rage over my having been recently prostituted to black entertainer and CIA

operative Charlie Pride. Although I had had no control over the situation to begin

with, Byrd expended his fury on me rather than on Houston who was

ultimately responsible for the incident. He took out his whip and began beating

me as he had so many times before. Only this time it seemed to last forever,

Byrd was still whipping me when Aquino returned with my tranced and

traumatized daughter. I regained consciousness enough to pull myself up off

the floor when 1 heard Kelly’s hysterical cries. Byrd ordered me to the

bathroom for a cold shower to stop the bleeding. My body could not carry out

his orders, and I collapsed again in the bathroom, smearing blood all over the

floor. Kelly’s cries again revived me, and I crawled to the door to find Byrd

sexually assaulting her and Aquino disrobing to join them. One small window

in the bathroom appeared to be a possible means of escape to obtain help, but

Byrd caught me and knocked me to the floor. The whole bathroom was smeared

in blood by the time he threw me into the shower and turned the cold water on

to slow the bleeding.

Later that afternoon, Kelly and I stood hand in hand in the afternoon sun at

the State Fair where Senator Byrd was about to make a speech to his.

constituents. My blouse stuck to my freshly whipped skin as Byrd walked onto

the stage, and the crowd cheered. Although Byrd periodically sexually abused

Kelly throughout her Project Monarch victimization, the horrific incident in-

West Virginia was the last time 1 was able to instinctively think to respond at

all. Aquino’s mind-control programming further insured it, as did Byrd’s

access to high tech mind-control equipment via West Virginia’s Jesuit College,

where he claimed the role of “Head Friar”.6

Kelly has reported enduring much sexual abuse by both Byrd and Aquino.

Aquino apparently incorporated sexual abuse with his mind-control

programming and sex training of her, and shared more such events with Byrd.

It was also my experience that Byrd’s sexual perversions were heightened when

Aquino shared in the assault. Traumatic events such as this one in West

Virginia reinforced my own programming through conditioning, and further

locked me in to Byrd’s seemingly inescapable control.

The majority of my programming, as well as a large part of Kelly’s, was

again Oz theme based. This means the combination of codes, keys and triggers

to access me were related to L. Frank Baum’s story, The Wizard Of Oz.

Whether or not it was Baum’s intention (or for that matter Walt Disney’s, Lewis

Carroll’s, etc.), it is evident that his psychologically intense story was used for

manipulating minds. Much of The Wizard Of Oz lends itself to themes

commonly used by perpetrators. For example, nearly all MPD/DIDs have

suffered the loss of pets during ritualized torture. And all of Baum’s primary

character Dorothy’s nightmarish experiences “over the rainbow in Oz” stemmed

from her desire to risk her own life to protect her threatened pet. Abusers use

this lesson to condition the victim to drop all resistance and cooperate or “I’ll

get you, my pretty, and your little dog (or child) too.” The “over the rainbow”

scramble of dreams vs. reality provides abusers a theme by which to manipulate

an MPD’s subconscious perception of switching personalities. Oftentimes this

theme is transdimensional as is Oz, or that which was just experienced was “just

a bad dream” like Dorothy was told upon her awakening in her own bed back in

Kansas.

CIA cryptic language is manipulation of the English language such that

words have a double meaning (aka ‘double binds’ in mental health

terminology.) It works much the way as communication through “inside jokes”,

among people familiar with each other. Perhaps this is a reason for the

government’s use of professional comedians as slave handlers. Since mindcontrolled

slaves’ minds function consciously through their subconscious, which

has no way of discerning fantasy from reality or intended meaning from literal

meaning, cryptic dual level language is especially effective. Many CIA covert

operations I was involved in occurred in public. Anyone who overheard the

conversation would have discerned something very different from what actually

“trance-spired”. For example, one of my Washington, D.C. Secret Service

escorts linked arms with me like Dorothy did wiih her companions when

walking the Yellow Brick Road. This would have appeared to be normal

behavior, or even romantic, to outsiders. But to me it was a signal to “stay the

course” (Bush’s quote) and follow directions. Arm in arm we walked through

the crowded Air and Space Museum of the Smithsonian to the nearby NASA

headquarters. There he read the “Service Entrance” sign on the door

accentuating syllables ever so slightly so that I heard him cryptically command,

“Serve-us, En-Trance”.

1 Jimmy Dean is knowledgeable of, and a willing participant in criminal covert activity including the use of

mind-controlled slaves.

2 “Marching to Missouri” is a Mormon based belief that interfaced with the CIA’S FACTION OF THE COUNTRY MUSIC

industry being transferred to Branson, Missouri in the mid 1980s.

3 120,000-volt stun guns leave two indented prod marks or moles two inches apart, while the cylindrical stun gun

USED primarily in the vagina and rectum leaves prod marks/moles 3/4 of an inch apart.. A look into trash-magazine

publisher Larry Flint’s Hustler will show prod marks on the mind-controlled slaves he photographs, particularly on the

throat, near the lips. and on the back.

4 The “witch’s face” has also been referred to as that of a baphomet and Jesuit monk.

5 I photo identified the Sergeant and his (jailer) officer in 1990, and Mark’s and my lives were threatened through

then-District Attorney, now U.S. Representative, Bud Cramer (D. Huntsville, Alabama) of the Congressional

Permanent Intelligence Committee as a result of this revelation!

6 To a literal mind-controlled MPD/DID slave, the term “Head Priar” equates to “head frier”, meaning high

voltage to the brain.

CHAPTER 7

CHARM SCHOOL

After Aquino instilled my base sex programming, I was often taken by

Houston to Youngstown, Ohio to attend the sex slave training camp hell hole

referred to as “Charm School”. Houston often performed in the Youngstown

area at county fairs, Fraternal Order of Police shows, or any little country

music entertainment gigs that would bring us in the proximity of the dreaded

Charm School. On occasion, Kelly would go through the torture process with

me. But usually Houston delivered me to the door for training with other CIA

and Mafia slaves my age, and then left taking Kelly with him. When Charm

School was in session, there were several girls being tortured and trained at

once. 1 have seen and known numerous girls to go through Charm School, but,

understandably, few are reported to have survived or recovered their minds

enough to talk about it.

Charm School was reportedly operated by an identified member of the.

Mellon Banking family (Byrd’s Endowment for the Arts’ largest contributor).

The operator took the name and role of “Governor” from the movie My Fair

Lady, in an attempt to confuse my torturous reality with movie fantasy. In the

movie, Governor is the cockney title given the professor who transformed a

female street urchin into a functioning high society lady. Additionally,

Mellon’s use of the title, Governor, was intended to create scramble for the real

Governor who frequented the school as though it were only a whore house. I

am referring to then Governor of Pennsylvania (and later U.S. Attorney

General, now secretary for the United Nations) Dick Thornburgh.1 Aquino provided

some of the programming at Charm School and everyone I knew in

government operations was at least aware of it. Then Youngstown Sheriff, now

U.S. Representative Jim Traficant, was usually present. He capitalized on his

ability to portray himself as “Lurch” by slowly opening the door and saying,

“Walk this way – To a literal slave in training, this means walk like he is

walking-like Lurch, Egor, a street whore, Scarecrow, and so on.

Once the door closed behind me. Charm School meant I would be charmed,

mesmerized (hypnotized), and programmed to be a high class prostitute for

select politicians. I did learn their way to walk, I learned when to talk, how to

dress, how to sit, stand, and all the rest. Table manners were not taught as they

were not needed since slaves endured food and water deprivation when

working. Above all, we were taught how to gratify any sexual perversion. Just

as Traficant opened the door to Charm School for slaves, he oftentimes was the

one to “test” their newly learned sexual skills to determine when or if slaves

could leave.

A typical three-day course at Charm School included the usual factors of,

sleep, food, and water deprivation; trauma; high voltage; and programming.

Often times experimental or tried and proven CIA manufactured “designer”

drugs were administered which produced specific brain wave activity to

maximize and/or compartmentalize programs. I usually spent the first day

hanging in the dungeon. Charm School is housed in an identified stone

historical railroad barren’s former residence, and the basement was in fact a

wine cellar dungeon. It was dark, damp, and musty and was decorated in

classic torture chamber fashion. It was complete with various hanging chains, a

stretching rack, whips, and altars including one specially designed for bestiality

sex. As I hung by my wrists, I could hear and smell the animals in the next

cells—a black Nubian goat called Satan, a small donkey named Nester,

sometimes a small white pony referred to as Trigger, and various dogs, cats,

snakes, and others. All Charm School animals were trained to sexually respond

to the smell of urine. When someone, such as Dick Thornburgh who

particularly enjoyed this kind of kink, entered my cell and urinated on me, I

knew I would soon be released from my chains and led to the animal altar for

bestiality lessons, pornography, or to please a perverse onlooker. I was hung

by my ankles, stretched on a rack, burned, and tortured repeatedly. My feet

and hands were chained to a wall for what was termed “off the wall sex.” I was

taught “Silence” in Oz fashion since screaming did not produce results anyway

unless they wanted it for pornography. This was implemented with an

electronic canine bark collar normally used to train a dog not to bark.

I was repeatedly filmed pornographically, and always taken upstairs to the

“Master’s Chambers” for prostitution to participants, including the real

“Governor” of Charm School, then Pennsylvania Governor Dick Thomburgh,

Congressman Jim Traficant,2 Lt. Col. Michael Aquino, and others. When Kelly

was with me, she endured the same and we were forced to see each other

physically tortured as further psychological trauma. This was to ensure I could

never remember the who, what, when, or where of our bizarre enslavement.

This is what is sometimes referred to as cross-programming.

In spite of the deliberately created amnesic blocks, I developed a subconscious

sympathetic understanding for other Charm School slaves that

extended outside the walls of this man-made hell. This understanding emanated

from the depths of my being, creating a compassion for other mind-control

victims mat compels me to give voice to their silent pleas for help to this day.

I became close friends with one such victim, who must remain anonymous

in order to survive to eventually recover. This beautiful blonde and I had

numerous opportunities to be together throughout the years, as Houston’s

government sponsored travels routinely took him into her home state of

Pennsylvania while Dick Thomburgh was Governor.

My friend and I were photographed together for Larry Flynt’s commercial

pornography publications, and featured in the illicit films that contributed to

funding CIA covert operations. In addition to this, she and I were able to spend

two weeks together when her husband/handler traveled to Houston’s farm in

Tennessee for instructions on handling his new “bride”.

I was “made of honor” for my friend’s “wedding,” which was no more a

marriage than mine to Houston. As was customary with Project Monarch

slaves, her marriage to her handler equated to marriage to her mind-controi

owner, U.S. Senator Arlen Spector.

The “wedding” I was forced to participate in was for pornography purposes

only, and it took place in Arlen Spector’s Conneaut Lake house in

Pennsylvania.

Spector’s stone house was located in a wooded, remote setting and was

masculine in decor. Side rooms were either designated for perverse sex or were

furnished with antiquated NASA virtual reality and programming equipment.

The musty smell of Spector’s playhouse was overpowered by the scent of roses,

which he symbolically presented to his slave on their “wedding” day.

My friend’s “wedding” photos included Catholic themes, and the crucifix

featured was rose cut crystal similar to the one I received from Byrd,

Regardless of how this girl was depicted, her innate morality was apparent to

me. She and I were referred to as “minor/mere cats,” due to the similarity of

our victimizations. Like me, she was controlled through manipulation of her

religious beliefs and maternal instincts. The delicate rose tattooed on her left

wrist signifying her role in government operations did not detract from her high

class projection any more than Spector’s immorality could mar her innate

goodness. Once Arlen Spector officially became this slave’s owner, her Charm

School status rose to “Presidential Model”.

In addition to Charm School, 1 endured extensive programming to prepare

me for future operations. Houston was often booked into Oklahoma fairs,

Masonic Lodges, F.O.P. Conventions, and so on, in order that 1 be back in the

vicinity of Tinker Air Force Base for further programming. My Tinker-Belle

conditioning further enhanced my photographic memory through direct control

for receiving and delivering government messages which amounted to a

computerized compartmentalization of my brain, so to speak. I was also trained

in covert criminal operations, such as international drug mule transactions for

funding the Pentagon’s and CIA’s Black Ops Budgets,

Houston’s CIA orchestrated travels in the country music industry led me to a

TOP SECRET military/NASA installation at Offit Air Force Base in Nebraska.

The “you can run, but you can’t hide”3 conditioning was deeply ingrained in my

mind there through a technique that was later used on Kelly, as well as on other

mind-control slaves, I was taken underground to a so-called ‘secret’ circular

room where the walls were covered with numerous screens showing satellite

pictures from around the world. These satellites are referred to as the “Eye in

the Sky”. An Air Force official explained to me that my every move “could be

monitored via satellite”. On a separate four-screen viewer, he demonstrated

what in retrospect was a contrived pre-recorded slide show, with the scenes

changing as rapidly as he spoke and typed it into the computer.

“Where will you run?” he asked me. “To the Arctic? The Antarctic?

Brazil? The mountains? The desert? The prairies? The hills of Afghanistan?

The city of Kabul? Devil’s Tower (Wyoming)? Would you try to run to Cuba

and live among our enemies? We can find you there. There is truly no place to

run and no place to hide. The U.S. Senate (the picture was of Byrd)? The

White House? Or to your own backyard? (My father was depicted waving from

his front door, cupping his hands over his mouth saying, “come back” just like

Aunt Em in The Wizard Of Oz.) “The moon? We got you covered. You can

run, but you can’t hide.” This had been sufficient to convince me in my

suggestible stale that my every move could be monitored.

During the course of my training/conditioning, I was routinely prostituted to

Senator Byrd in Washington, D.C., at the West Virginia State Fair, NASA in

Huntsville, Alabama, and at the Opryland Hotel in Nashville, Tennessee. One

such night when 1 was to be prostituted to Byrd at Opryland Hotel, Lt. Colonel

Aquino was scheduled to join him in perversely assaulting me. Much to my

horror, Aquino arrived early, in full army dress uniform, backstage at the

Grand Ol’ Opry. When I saw Aquino talking with the Vatican based Project

Monarch slave runner, Kris Kristopherson,4 whom I had known since 1979, my

personality programmed for Opry events “short circuited”. Under

circumstances such as this, a multiple without programming would have

switched personalities autogenically, whereas I could only switch upon

command, I backed away, dazed, right into a soft drink machine.

Kristopherson saw me as 1 backed further between the wall and the machine.

“What are you doing in there, little lady?” Kristopherson asked. The

Colonel wants to see you,”

Aquino had walked over and sarcastically asked, “What are you doing in

those machine wires? That could very well be a shocking experience for you.”

All experiences with Aquino or Kristopherson resulted in high voltage electric

shock torture, and apparently neither had any regard for human life.5 Aquino

used the opportunity to reinforce his belief that I “had no where to run, no

where to hide” from his “power”- his stun gun.

While I untangled myself from the wires, Kristopherson and Aquino

continued their banter at my expense, Kristopherson held up his key ring and

jingled it, catching my undivided attention as conditioned, while he told

Aquino, “You’re gonna need the Keys to the Kingdom to work with this one

right here.”

“Keys to the Kingdom,” of course, referred to my previously instilled

(Enter/Inter)”Inner-dimensional” Catholic programmed personalities. Since

Aquino was my primary mind-control programmer at the time, Kristopherson

was informing Aquino of programs previously instilled in childhood via the

“Rite to Remain Silent”. By jingling the keys, he was demonstrating his control

over me and his momentary edge on Aquino.

“I got ‘em,” Kristopherson was saying as he jingled the keys. “She’s mine

unless you wanna play ball. Besides, you have to. The Byrd sent me.”

“I’ve been expecting you,” Aquino said with a smile. Events later that night

proved that Aquino had been supplied the keys to my previously established

Jesuit based programming, which he and Byrd used and altered to suit their own

perversions.

Byrd monitored all of my programming “progress,” and often tortured me

with his whip and pocketknife. He picked up where my mother left off, to

destroy any self-esteem I might have inadvertently developed. He said, “There

is no place for you to turn because if you could think to talk no one would ever

believe I would have anything to do with the likes of you.” He often threatened

me that I was considered “disposable” because, after all, “The first Presidential

Model, Marilyn Monroe, was killed right in front of the public eye and no one

knew what happened.”

Byrd’s threats and cruelty were unnecessary as I could no longer think to

seek help anyway, but he loved to hear himself talk and would often drone on

and on and on in his infamous long-winded recitations, while I was

photographically recording every word he said. He detailed the inner

operational structure of the world domination effort, including psychological

warfare strategies, and explained how he had and would utilize his “expert”

knowledge of the Constitution to manipulate it and the so-called U.S. Justice

System, and more. His loose lips provided me yet another means of surviving

and staying a step ahead of “the game” once Kelly and I were rescued from our

mind-con trolled existence.

Senator Byrd revealed his “justifications” for criminal activity to me as well.

He used me as a sounding board even though he knew 1 was incapable of input

or response. He rehearsed in keeping with his motto “The only way we can

fail, is to fail to think of an excuse.”

Byrd “justified” mind-control atrocities as a means of thrusting mankind into

accelerated evolution, according to the Neo-Nazi principles to which he

adhered. He “justified” manipulating mankind’s religion to bring about the

prophesied biblical “world peace” through the “only means available”—total

mind control in the New World Order “After all,” he proclaimed, “even the

Pope and Mormon Prophet know this is the only way to peace and they

cooperate fully with The Project.”

Byrd also “justified” my victimization by saying, “You lost your mind

anyway, and at least you have destiny and purpose now that it’s mine.” Our

country’s involvement in drug distribution, pornography, and white slavery was

justified” as a means of “gaining control of all illegal activities world wide” to

fund Black Budget covert activity that would “bring about world peace through

world dominance and total control”. He adhered to the belief that “95% of the

(world’s) people WANT to be led by the 5%”, and claimed this can be proven

because “the 95% DO NOT WANT TO KNOW what really goes on in government”.

Byrd believed that in order for this world to survive, mankind must

take a “giant step in evolution through creating a superior race”. To create this

“superior race,” Byrd believed in the Nazi and KKK principles of “annihilation

of underprivileged races and cultures” through genocide, to alter genetics and

breed “the more gifted-the blondes of this world”.

As Byrd’s captive audience (literally), I absorbed information that the other

so-called masterminds behind the New World Order would never have revealed

for security reasons. But Byrd regarded me as “his” object, a game-piece that

he could strategically move through life as though he were playing a chess

game. He perceived me as totally under his control with no possibility of my

ever being rescued, surviving, and recovering my mind and memory. Byrd

likely would have talked to a post, and I filled the role as his silent sounding

board.

My CIA Operative mind-control handler, Alex Houston was often scheduled

to perform at the Swiss Villa Amphitheatre in Lampe, Missouri, which is yet

another installation where 1 was programmed. Swiss Villa was a cover for a

CIA Near Death Trauma Center of which there are several across the country.

It is a remote, high security resort, enclosed with military barbed wire fences,

that swings its guarded gate open to the local public for country music concerts.

The small Amphitheatre covers the covert activities occurring inside, which

includes U.S. Government CIA cocaine and heroin distribution operations and

mind-control projects.

Swiss Villa, like the Mount Shasta, California compound, was also used as a

training and operations camp for the Shadow Government’s paramilitary

projects referred to by Senator Tnouye (D. HI). I learned that this not-so-secret

military buildup, sanctioned by corrupt members of our government, consisted

of special forces trained robotic soldiers, numerous black unmarked helicopters,

and the highest technological advancements in TOP SECRET weaponry and

“Star Wars” electro magnetic mind-control equipment. These paramilitary

compounds were intended for global policing of the New World Order through

the Multi-Jurisdictional Police Force.

“A Most Dangerous Game” was often played at Swiss Villa and involved

CIA agents, politicians, and others who would attend the resort just for the sport

of hunting humans. Kelly and I both were hunted at Swiss Villa. The tortures

and rape after being caught were extensive and sufficiently traumatized our

minds for ensuing programming, as well as for creating memory

compartmentalization for the high level operations we witnessed behind the

villa’s patrolled fences. It was at Swiss Villa that I was taught “THE Most

Dangerous Game” was one where a slave tried to escape and reveal what he or

she had learned. If the hunters could not catch and stop the slave, then the

black helicopters patrolling the area would. And if all else failed, the “Eye in

the Sky” would locate him or her, and a torturous death was supposedly

imminent.

According to my abusers, my deprograminer and primary advocate Mark

Phillips and I have embarked on “THE Most Dangerous Game” through efforts

such as releasing this book and turning a spotlight on the Shadow Government

to reveal its members’ identities and their crimes against humanity, Mark

Phillips and I are determined to beat them at their own “game” by arming the

“95%” with the truth that perpetrators “don’t want them to know!”

1Dick Thomburgh is listed in Houston’s CIA memo book which is now in my (and others’)

possession.

2Please note that, while still Sheriff of Youngstown, Ohio, Traficant wis investigated and

subsequently indicted for federal racketeering, drug distribution, and Mafia connections.

However, he was acquitted through careful CIA jury manipulation and he went on to become the

U.S. Representative he is to this date.

3Once gaining “eyes to see and ears to hear,” this “you can run, but you can’t hide” theme

is so widely used it is visible from Hallmark greeting cards to Interstate overpasses to the lock-in

song by the rock group, Police’s “I’ll Be Watching You”.

4A good friend of mine who remains a victim to date was “married” to Kristopherson on

the night she wed her mind-control handler-much the way I had “married” Byrd when I wed

Houston. The crucifix used to her Larry Flynt “wedding night” porn photos was mirrored

rather than crystal.

5Kristopherson nearly strangled me to death with his penis, which had further sexually

excited him, late in the summer of 1987 during another incident related to Byrd.

CHAPTER 8

CIA’S WAR ON DRUGS OPERATION:

ELIMINATING COMPETITION

I no longer had any mind of my own. I was absolutely void of free will and

was now totally robotic. So was Kelly, We wore our Charm School smile at

all times, and did exactly what we were told to do. The only characteristic

noticeably out of place was Kelly’s age-inappropriate programmed vocabulary

and mannerisms. Outsiders attributed this to her traveling within the country

music industry. My public image was a programmed personality that always

smiled, looked and talked like the proverbial “air-head” blonde that kept outsiders

away by socializing only within my controlled environment. This

lifestyle appeared quite normal for my role as Houston’s much younger “wife”

in the country music industry.

When we were not traveling, I began each day at 4:00 A.M. with a

minimum of 2 hours aerobic exercise. Afterward, I tended farm animals and

did other chores, then cooked Houston a large country breakfast which neither

Kelly or I were permitted to share. Houston would then order me to work to

exhaustion on his 100-acre farm while he watched. These chores included

hauling, stacking, and feeding out hundreds of bales of hay to our livestock

each year; maintaining miles of electric fencing; cutting acres of grass with a

push mower an average of twice weekly; busting concrete with a sledge hammer

and mixing and pouring new cement; digging by hand and maintaining a two

acre vegetable garden for canning; cutting, hauling, and slacking firewood for

Houston, his neighbors, and friends; shoveling pick-up truck loads of creek

gravel to fill in enormous potholes in the gravel road leading to 11 rural

residences including Jack Greene’s; and anything else Houston could think of

that would wear me down. Houston’s exhaustive, slave-driving work orders

made my father’s seem benevolent in comparison. The “best” of days were

rough.

I ate “like a bird (Byrd),” following Byrd’s orders of 300 calories per daywith

no sugar or caffeine. My metabolism was low. I was trained to compute

calories like a machine, eating more like a rabbit than a “bird”, I had to count

every calorie, from a simple taste of what I had to cook for Houston to semen.

Houston ensured thai Kelly and I never got more than two consecutive hours of

deep per night. He accomplished this through automatic mental “alarm clocks”

that woke us up at two- hour intervals-Kelly with asthma, and me with panic.

These tactics contributed to Kelly’s and my total inability to resist mind control.

Traveling in the country music industry was no easier than existing on

Houston’s farm in Tennessee. It certainly lacked the glamour that outsiders

usually associate with entertainment industries. CIA covert drug operations had

permeated the industry. Entertainers were used to buy, sell, and distribute

cocaine brought into this country by the U.S. government for the purpose of

funding the Pentagon’s and CIA’s Black Budgets. Nashville’s local

government, from my perspective, was totally corrupted by these criminal

covert operations. Cover-up, murder, drugs, and white slavery prevailed.

Entertainers usually made n big only when they participated in CIA operations

and/or were slaves themselves. I know of numerous entertainers in need of

rescue and deprogramming from their mind-controlled existence, because it was

discovered that voices could be harmonically tuned through mind control to

captivate audiences. To quote my father, “Spies, like singers and actors, are

made, not born”. These entertainers have endured much of the same

programming as I to permit them to carry out government operations in the

course of their travels.

Norwegian Caribbean Lines (NCL) cruise ships depart regularly from

Miami, Florida and travel throughout the Caribbean and Mexico. NCL

provides pleasure cruises to the public complete with “entertainment” like that

of Alex Houston while carrying out CIA operations. Sue Carper, former

director of entertainment procurement for all NCL cruise ships, would ensure

that government covert activities staging were properly orchestrated. She

rotated entertainers like Houston from ship to ship in order to avoid the scrutiny

of clean U.S. Customs and Immigrations inspectors. I routinely took cruises

with Houston, muling cocaine and/or heroin out of Haiti, the Bahamas, Mexico,

the Virgin Islands, and Puerto Rico to fund covert operations. While I was

robotically carrying out transactions as ordered, I was also prostituted to South

and Central American drug lords and politicians, as well as filmed

pornographically. Houston made sure I was in the right place at the right time

and switched me into the proper mode for each activity I was forced to carry

out. In the early 1980s, this included passing messages to and from Senator

Byrd, Baby Doc Duvalier, my Cuban contact, Puerto Rican drug lord Jose

Busto, and others.

In keeping with NCL’s Caribbean operations, Byrd adjusted his use of

programming themes to include the mirror-reversal, interdimensional, Air-

Water mind-control theme used on me by NASA and the Jesuits. I often saw

dolphins playing in the ocean while being transported from port to port via the

Cruise ships, but the popular “whales and dolphins” mind-control theme was

avoided in favor of a theme more suitable to my experience-that of the Sea-

Bird-Robert C. (Sea) Byrd. He told me, “Atlantis1 has long been the epicenter

of alien activity. The path is so well warn that there are holes in the fabric of

time and space whereby airplanes and ships, even people, timelessly seemingly

disappear, transformed into another dimension alien to this world. Likewise,

we (aliens) came in, entering through the mirror reflection of the hole in the

fabric of space, the deep blue sea. Some of us entered Earth’s plane as whales

and dolphins. And when we emerged from the sea, some of us came flying out.

Or is that in? At any rate, we are here. Watch for the flying fish when you are

out to see/sea. When you see one, you will know it is kin to me. A flying fish

by any other name is a C. Byrd. A sea bird. Robert C. Byrd.”

The drug business was booming for the CIA, and the only “War on Drugs” I

witnessed was that launched by the CIA against its competition. As quickly as 1

brought the NCL suitcases of drugs into the Port of Miami, they were usually

transferred to Houston’s factory custom-built Holiday Rambler motor home.

Concealed compartments were built into the walls for hiding the illegal drugs.

If I drove the drug-filled motor home on to Nashville rather than deposit the

drugs en route at Warner-Robbins Air Force Base in Macon, Georgia, the bulk

was stored in the Hendersonvilie Mormon “food storage” Bishop’s Warehouse.

Some cocaine was delivered to a music distributor in Nashville, Tennessee,

where it was carefully packaged in participating entertainers’ cassettes, for

delivery along their carefully scheduled travel routes. Houston always kept a

large amount of the cocaine for his own use and distribution. Oftentimes he

ordered that I deliver the drugs to specific entertainers at the Grand Ole Opry

and/or at the local shopping mail when we were not traveling. Most often,

however, the larger loads of drugs remained concealed in the motor home for

distribution to CIA drug drops while we traveled the country music industry.

These CIA drug drops included an abandoned amusement park near

Youngstown, Ohio; Diamond Caverns2 campground in Park City, Kentucky;

and Swiss Villa Amphitheatre in Lampe, Missouri. I was aware that tons of

drugs were being handled via our military, but the hundreds of pounds I muled

were targeted for exclusive private distribution.

An example of a typical Caribbean drug operation centered around the NCL

port of call. Key West, Florida. Houston took Kelly and me to a nearby tennis

court under the guise of playing tennis. In reality, I was to meet with CIA

Operative Jimmy Buffett, who devoted more time to the proliferation of CIA

criminal covert activity than he did to his music career cover. Buffett was

playing tennis. Referring to him as though he were to be my tennis instructor,

Houston said, “There’s your instructor. As soon as he gathers the balls, he

should be over here to meet you.”

Noticing us, Buffett strode over and shook hands with Houston. “Hi,

Jimmy/ Houston said as though they were old buddies.

“Hi, Alex and Elemer,” Buffett responded, sarcastically using Houston’s

stage name.

“Oh,” Houston said. Never one to know an insult when he heard it, he

continued, “What do your friends call you?”

“What does it malter to you?” Buffett asked. “Uncle calls me Jim. I take it

you’re not the contact,”

Houston pointed to me, “She is”.

“That’s more like it,” Buffett smiled. “A little Byrd told me I’d be meeting

with a Diamond in the Rough.”3

“I prefer a Diamond in the Buff,” he said, “I’ve got a studio across the

street.”

As we walked toward his studio, I was oblivious to the meaning behind his

conversation. with Houston and commented, “I understand you’re an instructor.

I wish I had brought my racquet.”

“I’m not that kind of an instructor,” Buffett explained, “I’m a point man for

Uncle. And you’ve got an appointment with me. I have some instructions to

give you.” As we entered his studio, he said, “Welcome to paradise,” and

gestured me in. We went into the small living quarters, which may have

appeared even smaller due to the electronic equipment, acoustic guitars, and

furniture that filled the room. A black mirrored coffee table, atypical of

cocaine users I’d known, was the clearest spot in the room, A gold razor blade,

cocaine residue, an ashtray full of marijuana roaches, and a fanned deck of card

with the queen of hearts on top lay on the table. Tropical plants further

cluttered the room. Standing between a perched, stuffed parrot and a banana

tree, Buffett was saying, “Key West is a key place to be. It’s the key to the

Caribbean – Cuba, Panama – anyplace that means anything to Uncle these days, I

hold the keys. I’m keeper of the keys and I hold a few of yours.” Looking at

his parrot, he continued, “The bird/Byrd says you respond to pair-o-dice, look

deep into the parrot eyes.”

I did as instructed, and Buffett popped out the bird’s ruby red eyes, which

actually were dice, into his hand. “Roll your eyes high while I roll my pair-odice,”

he ordered as he rolled the dice across the table. Stopping at the deck of

cards, he picked up the jack of diamonds. “I am a jack of all trades,” he

cryptically continued. “And I trade in whatever Uncle orders. An order has

been placed. You must follow orders and go to that place. Go to the White

House Inn at the pier. Carry your laundry bag (full of cash) with you, and see

the man in black. (My Cuban contact almost always wore a conspicuous black

trench coat.) There is a launderman on the dock itself. They do all my

laundering for me, and will be expecting you. Watch for the sea-man with the

duffel bag. When you see the military green duffel bag, approach the desk.

When he says, “I need this laundered, but I do not have the time,” you say,

“Welcome to Paradise. I will make sure it is cleaned and delivered on time.”

Then give him your duffel bag of ‘laundry’ and say, “This has been properly

laundered for you”. Take the duffel bag. It will be light as a feather. Return

to the Inn and enjoy the buffet.”

Changing modes, Buffett unzipped his shorts as he asked, “Do you like a

buffet? I have a Buffett buffet for you now. And if is Paradise!”

I carried out the drug transaction as ordered, the whole ordeal lasting a

matter of minutes. A buffet was spread in the courtyard of the White House Inn

at 4:00 PM just as Buffett said it would be. But due to the food and water

deprivation necessary to maintaining my mind-controlled trance, Houston forbid

me from carrying out this last part of Buffett’s instructions,

Alex Houston Enterprises was another side business that Houston used to

cover for his CIA criminal covert activities. It included the relabelling of G.E,

capacitors for the “energy savings” companies, Queen Electric and Phase Liner,

he shared with his former wife and first CIA mind-controlled slave. She was a

Catholic processed Puerto Rican blonde beauty. These G.E. capacitor banks

were sold internationally as energy saving devices, when in fact they provided

one more means of transporting drugs from the U.S. around the world.

It was Houston’s G.E. capacitor scam that provided me insight into the

elaborate Long Island docks drug network run by U.S. Congressman Gary

Ackerman (D. NY).4 I first met Ackerman in 1981 when Houston was booked

into the Woodberry Music Festival with known CIA mind-control victim

Loretta Lynn.5 Lorctta’s road manager, Neo-Nazi pedophile Ken Riley, who

was also Alex Houston’s best friend, often assisted Houston in handling me.

Riley in turn handed my Charm School programmed keys, codes, and triggers

to Congressman Ackerman, who skillfully accessed my Alice In Wonderland

mirror theme programming. After snorting a couple of lines of coke, he

stepped into the center of a three way mirror where he positioned me and

proceeded to sexually gratify himself in my throat. Ken Riley, and other

involved members of Loretta’s band, all laughed as Ackerman stumbled around

the room while pulling his pants up from around his ankles and complaining that

he “couldn’t stand for sex like that”. The term “Ackerman syndrome” was

coined after that in reference to sex that drained a man of his energy, and

circulated among “those who know” for years.

1NCL cruise ships routinely pass through the so-called “Bermuda Triangle,” and Byrd did

not miss this opportunity to tap into old programming base installed by Senator L. Bennet

Johnston.

2When Mark and 1 turned in detailed information on this drug drop to law enforcement,

our lives were endangered to the point that a foreign Intelligence officer intervened and

subsequently saved our lives through a timely tip-off.

3 “Diamond in the Rough” was a term used to describe an MPD/DID slave actively engaged

in programming via torture conditioning.

4Congressman Ackerman’s Caribbean cocaine and Asian heroin operations have not

hindered his position on the Congressional Post Office and Civil Service Committees, nor the

Asian and Pacific Affairs Committee. It is important to note that, as a matter of Congressional

record, Ackerman openly opposed compulsory drug tests for all federal employees.

5Senator Byrd proudly claimed Loretta as his mind-controlled slave and told me, “I

literally made Loretta what she is today, and she is maid to order”. Loretta’s son and secondary

mind-control handler, Ernest Ray, told me, “I know what the Byrd did to my mother. I can get

away with murder… All I gotta do is call him and I’m free as a bird/Byrd.”

CHAPTER 9

RONALD REAGAN’S AMERICAN DREAM:

A PANDORA’S BOX OF NIGHTMARES

My mind-controlled existence became more complicated after Senator Byrd

introduced me to then President Ronald Reagan in the fall of 19821 at a White

House political party. Byrd told me, “When you meet the Chief, imagine him

with his pants down. He’s most comfortable knowing you are imagining him

with his pants down. He doesn’t want formality.” Former president Ford had

conditioned me to dread the Office of President, and I mechanically went

through the motions of meeting Reagan,

Reagan admittedly had seen the How To Divide a Personality and How so

Create a Sex Slave videos made in Huntsville, Alabama. He acted very pleased

with me as though I had participated in them willingly. Within the first few

minutes of meeting Reagan, he was giving me acting tips to utilize in

government operations and pornography!! “When you become your part, your

performance increases, which in turn increases your ability to do your part—for

your country. ‘Ask not what your country can do for you. Ask what you can

do for your country’-your part,” he instructed. Somehow, Reagan’s reminder

of Ford’s and VanderJagt’s conditioning to Kennedy’s quote seemed more

patriotically significant than “simply” sexually entertaining politicians by

waving a flag in my bottom. After gazing deep into his self-professed

“kaleidoscope eyes,” each metaphorical phrase he spoke became life and breath

to me.

Reagan explained to me that the illegal CIA covert activities I was forced to

participate in were “justified” as they funded covert activities in Afghanistan

and Nicaragua. He explained, “America’s Freedom Train is spanning the globe

and sex is but a sidetrack to the ultimate course of freedom. Our job of

procuring and transporting arms is the most difficult part of all. But it can and

must be done. How can a man with no arms fight? These operations are

necessary as American people raise too much hell about violence already, and it

is better they’re not informed of our supporting wars they cannot understand the

significance of.”

I realize now that Reagan twisted reality to fit his personal perceptions

rather than to adhere to Byrd’s philosophy of providing “excuses” for what he

deemed “the order of things”. In typical Reagan fashion, he did not perceive

mind control as slavery, but as “an opportunity for those who otherwise would

have nothing in life”. He claimed that multigenerational incestuously abused

children like myself, or “previously impoverished baseball players from third

world countries and slums, are provided an opportunity to ‘be all they can be’

through making a ‘contra-bution’ to society, our nation, and the world, by utilizing

their talents to maximum potential.” With this altitude, Reagan displayed

pride in the sick role he played as The Wizard Of Oz, directing Project Monarch

slaves like myself.

That night. Senator Byrd acted in the capacity of a pimp and prostituted me

to Reagan. Referring to me as though I were a machine, Reagan asked Byrd,

“Does she run on chemicals?” meaning specific CIA drugs.

Byrd answered, “She takes it in spurts”. 1 noticed that Reagan’s eyes lit up

with perversion and understanding of Byrd’s statement, which meant that I

“shared” whatever drugs were in his system through his urine. Reagan later

told me he preferred sex slaves equipped for this task since he, as President,

should not have to get up in the night to urinate,

“Well,” Reagan said, holding up his glass, “All I’ve had to fuel her with is

alcohol. That’s not much of a jolt from a “whiz of a Wiz(ard).” Byrd

chuckled at Reagan’s Oz cryptic joke and removed his gold cocaine vial from

the inner pocket of his suit. He and Reagan discretely turned their backs to the

party while Byrd “spoon fed” Reagan the drug up his nose.

Before I left with Reagan, Byrd informed me that “Uncle Ronnie doesn’t

sleep with his mommy (Nancy),” and that he preferred snuggling into his LL

Bean, light blue flannel sheets in his nightshirt and ridiculous nightcap because

“they’re warmer, softer, more comfortable, and don’t snore”.

Later, in his bedroom, Reagan accessed my sexual programming, and I

became “my part” as a prostitute to “Uncle Ronnie”. Reagan did not move

during sex. After all, that was “my duty”. And my duty was to please him,

whatever it took, and it took more time than anything. Reagan never hurt me

(he always made sure someone else did that) and used this as a “bond” to the

little child (“Kitten”) personality he always accessed for sex. Reagan’s most

apparent personality kink was his love for bestiality pornography.2 According

to my handlers, his passion for pornography escalated its manufacture and

distribution during his Administration. He wholeheartedly approved and

encouraged the porn industry for funding covert activity.

Many commercial and instructional (private) pornography films I and others

participated in, referred to as “Uncle Ronnie’s Bedtime Stories,” were

manufactured solely for his pleasure-oftentimes according to his instruction,

using Freedom Train slaves. After my initial meeting with Reagan, I was used

in numerous films that were produced predominantly at Youngstown Charm

School and/or by his “Chief Pornographer”3 Michael Dante, specifically to

satisfy his perversions. These included a wide range of cryptic themes, but

were mostly bestiality. Reagan often watched the videos while I was prostituted

to him, requiring me to re-enact the porn however possible.

I first met Reagan’s Chief Pornographer Michael Dante, AKA Michael Viti,

at an elite Nashville hotel where he was attending “charity” Golf Tournament

festivities. Like CIA Operative Charlie Pride’s Pro-Am Golf Tournamenl in

Albuquerque, New Mexico, this “charity” tournament provided a cover for the

cocaine and white slavery operations that dominated the event. Houston and I

often attended such “charity” events, as did Dante, but it was only after having

met Reagan that Dante’s and my paths crossed as arranged.

Dante took me to his hotel room after our initial introduction. He snorted a

few lines of coke, looked me over as though 1 were merchandise, and accessed

my sex programming. He then arrogantly asked me if I knew who he was. He

told me he lived in Beverly Hills, California and made movies. I thought he

was referring to his box office flop, Winterhawk, until he said, “Uncle Ronnie

sent me. He wants me to make movies with you as your ‘contra-bution.’

We’re gonna have a good time, then he’s gonna have a good time, and

everybody’s happy. You’ll like that, won’t you Baby? Get dressed. We’re

going back downstairs and make arrangements.”

Dante telephoned me often, professing “our love” through command

reinforcements and making arrangements to meet me in specific places for

producing Uncle Ronnie’s Bedtime Stories and commercial porn. These

locations included, among others, Tennessee, Florida, the Caribbean, and

California. He often talked of owning me in the future, painting a picture of

what life would be like living with him. His attitude toward women was

atypical of slave owners and handlers, and he often quoted scripture to justify

his dominance. “No arguments,” “speak only when spoken to,” “take a good

beating now and then just to keep you in line,” “see to all my comforts and

housework,” and “be on call 24 hours a day when I need a good whore”. He

gave me a slave bracelet—a trademark of his porn—and said, “A woman needs a

chain. It’s a public reminder of total commitment and devotion. A reminder of

the chain-of-command. A woman is tied to her man. No man should be tied to

a woman.”

Dante’s Connecticut Italian roots are in the Mafia, and it was a wellestablished

fact that organized crime and government had a close working

relationship where criminal covert activities were concerned, I met many of

Dante’s associates, and we already shared a few common contacts who were

conduits between the Mafia and CIA. These included Congressman Guy

VanderJagt, former President Gerald Ford, then Governor of Pennsylvania Dick

Thornburgh, Congressman Jim Traficant, Congressman Gary Ackerman, and

Ronald Reagan.

Dame related to me, “When Reagan was Governor (of California), we went

to Dodger (baseball) games together and sat in the Press Box. I got to know

him real well and we got along. So, he and Tommy (LaSorda, Dodger manager

and their mutual friend) and I would continue partying after the game. I

brought him a few girls (slaves) and we did business. Really. Tommy LaSorda

brought us together-you’ll like him. I’ll take you to meet him. We’ll go to

games together all the time, every chance we get. You’ll love that, won’t you,

Baby? You like a Press Box, Baby? Dick says you do.” I wasn’t surprised

that Dick Thornburgh had talked about his previous, perverse sexual activity

with me at a baseball game back East any more than I was surprised to learn

that Dante knew Thornburgh through their mutual political and baseball ties.

Dick Thomburgh was Governor of Pennsylvania during my tenure as a

Presidential Model mind-controlled slave. He used his influence to bring

Houston into Pennsylvania state and county fairs year after year for the purposes

of cocaine and pornography distribution, as well as for prostitution of me to him

on a regular basis. Thornburgh was a heavy cocaine user, and was deeply

involved in CIA covert activities-particularly Project Monarch. He was a firm

believer in mind control, not only for sex training and government operations,

but for sports. An avid baseball fan, Thornburgh had much to share with

Reagan, Dante and LaSorda,

I had been giving Handwriting Analysis lectures on NCL’s Norway cruise

ship (my cover for covert operation) in 1987, and Thornburgh and his friend

Chicago Cubs Baseball Scout Jim Zerilla were in attendance. Afterward,

Zerilla offered me a job with the Baseball Commission analyzing handwriting of

their “million dollar babies” baseball players before they were signed up.

Thomburgh explained that the job may not fit into my schedule. Nevertheless,

we met on several occasions during the course of the cruise, always for sex, but

business was discussed as well.

My programmed mind contained a “baseball computer” that was created for

Reagan, and used by many including Thornburgh. LaSorda, Dante”, and Zerilla.

It was packed with the binds of statistics in which they were interested; the

codes, keys, triggers and hand signals of certain mind-controlled baseball

players. Zerilla and Thomburgh were cruising en route to the Dominican

Republic to the CIA baseball mind-control farm to scout out new slaves. They

talked excitedly about the prospect of winning large sums of money through

gambling on rigged games. I had been aware for years that many pro players,

particularly LaSorda’s Dodgers, were mind-controlled and triggered to win or

lose according to their owners’ bets and favors. The Dodgers, Reagan’s

“favorite American pastime” ball team continuously won, including the World Series

during his Administration. The Mafia was in on the bet rigging, and

information was passed to certain ones through Thornburgh and others as

gleaned from my “baseball computer” programming.4

To this day I am not certain who instigated the plastic surgery to which I

was forcibly subjected, but soon after meeting Reagan and Dante I was

scheduled for breast implants. Perhaps it was done for pornography. Perhaps it

was Reagan’s preference. I tend to believe it was a combination of the two and

ordered since my breasts were no longer lactating. In the first commercial porn

film Reagan had directed Dante to produce in St. Thomas, U.S. Virgin Islands

my breasts were still tender and swollen from silicone implant surgery.

My appearance was not the only “make over” I endured after meeting

Reagan. Aquino and I were called to Washington, D.C. to revise my base core

programming to override Senator Byrd’s control for security reasons. Since

Reagan had been shot, he took extra precautions to ensure his safety which

included directing Aquino as to how he wanted rne programmed. Much to

Aquino’s dismay and embarrassment, Reagan admired the occult role that this

Army Lt. Colonel played for mind-control traumatization purposes, as it fit in

with the public promotion of religion Reagan had launched. Reagan claimed to

believe that the masses were easiest to manipulate through their religion, as

were mind-controlled slaves like myself.

While Reagan had Aquino in D.C., he demanded that he wear his black

ritual robes to a White House party to reinforce the controlling superstitions of a

few South/Central American diplomats. Aquino appeared foolish in the eyes of

his peers. They knew Aquino’s image was only a guise for Psychological

Warfare, but his appearance at the White House in costume made Aquino look

like he believed his own facade. Aquino got even with Reagan. Minutes before

I was prostituted to Reagan that evening, Aquino ordered me into a closed side

room where he very quickly had intercourse with me. When he finished

ejaculating, he slapped me on the behind and disrespectfully said, “Take that to

the Chief.

Earlier that day, Reagan instructed Aquino how to program me in keeping

with “spin” programming depicted in the “How to” videos. “Program it,”

Reagan said, referring to me as though I were an object, “under number one. I

like the number one. It’s the first, the best, and it promotes confidence—like

‘I’ve won’,” I observed Aquino giving him the intellectually disgusted look he

reserved for anyone with the fortitude to make a suggestion to him, but

tempered his reaction by giving some thought to the request. Since the “How

to” videos showed the 6th revolution to “ignite the heat of hell” for sex, no one

would suspect I had sex programming under the first revolution. It would take

some modification of my initial programming, but Aquino was sold on the idea.

By programming me according to Reagan’s instruction, Aquino would be able

to provide added protection for Reagan whereby any program I was under at the

time would immediately become replaced by Reagan’s number one as quickly as

I saw him. This effective safety measure infuriated Byrd the first time he saw

me instantaneously switch out of his control in Reagan’s presence.

Additionally, Reagan discussed how Aquino could use me on various

military and government installations to provide “Hands-On Mind-Control

Demonstrations” of the “latest advancements in training” by displaying the

diversity of my “Presidential Model” programming. Reagan said the Hands On

Demonstrations could “educate our boys in the military to the wonders of the

mind-control phenomena.” “Hands On” meant my sex programming would be

used to “peak their interests and lock (bond) them in.” After all, “entertaining

the troops is a long time American tradition.” Aquino did the programming,

and Reagan began making arrangements for the demonstrations—which brought

me back around to Dick Cheney. Cheney would be acting in the capacity of my

“Commander” for the Hands-On Mind-Control Demonstrations and other covert

operations from then on.

1Since I had no concept of time under mind control, the ’80s seemed like one long day to

me, whereby discerning exact dates is extremely difficult. Furthermore, I was programmed to

believe that every encounter with certain individuals was “the first time”. I do know that I had

been conditioned and programmed in preparation for Reagan since 1978 ai NASA’s Cape

Canavaral in Titusville, Florida.

2Reagan preferred illicit pornography videos such as bestiality, while his favorite

pornographic magazine was Larry Flynt’s Hustler.

3 Although Hollywood’s Dante rivaled Larry Flynt for the title of “Chief Pornographer”

producing video versions of Hustler’s stills, Flynt was unequivocally the official White House

Pornographer. Dante’s covert filming of political perversion for blackmail purposes failed to

gain him the international notoriety Flynt maintained through his New World Order collogues

such as Presidents Reagan, Bush, and Ford; CIA Director Bill Casey; U.N. Amhossador

Madeleine Albright; Senators Byrd and Specter; Congressmen Trafficant and VanderJagt;

Governors Thornburgh, Blanchard and Alexander; and various World Leaders such as Prime

Minister of Canada Mulroney, President of Mexico de la Madrid, and Saudi Arabian King

Fahd…to name a few…

4Having been out of circulation since my rescue did not preclude my ability to “predict”

winners according to political favors: from George Bush, Jr’S Texas Rangers to the Toronto

Blue Jays’ victory during the Canadian political heal of NAFTA.

CHAPTER 10

“COMMANDER” DICK CHENEY & REAGAN’S

“HANDS ON MIND-CONTROL DEMONSTRATIONS”

Please note: In order to maintain the integrity of documenting my experiences

using precise and photographic detail, I have recorded events and

quotes as they occurred in reality. Please excuse any offensive and foul

language, but this is the way Cheney presented himself,

1 was attending another White House cocktail party where, as usual, I was

taken aside for a meeting and escorted to a large office. There, Reagan and

Cheney were having their “before cocktail party” cognacs, and Reagan’s cheeks

were already flushed. He was in a hurry and quickly explained the purpose of

the meeting,

“You’re the kind of girl who could hold a man in line. (He was cryptically

referring to the lines of military personnel I was forced to have sex with.)

That’s why I’ve selected you to tour a few Air Force Bases with the Colonel

(Aquino) and demonstrate for our boys in the service what a Presidential Model

is trained for, a kind of ‘hands on’ demonstration. But you’ll have to audition

for the role.” Reagan drained his glass and gestured toward Cheney as he

strode for the door, adding, “Do what he says. He’s your commander.”

It had been eight years since I had been hunted and brutalized by Cheney in

Wyoming, and apparently he wanted to see how my programming had

progressed before agreeing to use me in Reagan’s “Hands-On Mind-Control

Demonstrations”. He grabbed me roughly by the hair and slung me onto a

black leather chair, tipping my head backwards over the high studded arm.

“Audition here,” he snarled. Since I last saw him, 1 had undergone Wizard Of

Oz Tin Man programming, which he accessed to accommodate his large, thick

penis. He placed his hands on my jaw while he said, “Soon we’ll have you

purring like a wetl oiled machine. All of your moving parts are pivotal and

gliding with ease. Melt into my hands. I’ll hold your jaw to keep it from

slipping while you slip through a window in lime.” He then jerked my jaw out

of joint, and roughly gratified himself in my throat.1

As he lit his cigarette, I slowly regained focus enough to realize I was in

pain. The back of my head hurt from being thrust into the studs on the chair,

and I slowly lifted my head. My owner, Senator Byrd, had just walked in and

realized Cheney had already completed the “audition”. Referring to

compartmentalizing my memory via stun gun high voltage, Byrd asked, “Did

you fry her?”

Cheney, ‘cocksure’ of himself as always, answered. “She can’t have fucked

all of Washington” (indicating that no one would believe me anyway, even if I

did reach this point and talk). Cheney put out his cigarette and said as he went

out the door, “She’ll work. Tell Ronnie she’ll work.”

When Byrd saw that my lips were bleeding, he called Cheney a “son of a

bitch” under his breath, as this damage would prevent my fulfilling other

assignments that were planned for me. Byrd touched his finger to my swollen

lips and tasted the blood (and Cheney) several times. Then he slapped me hard

across the face, which re-aligned my jaw but caused more blood to flow down

my chin. He took a box of tissues from the desk and threw it at me, the corner

hitting me in the forehead. “Wipe yourself up. You’re just getting started. I’ll

see to it you get what you’ve got coming to you.”

Fortunately for me, Byrd had cause to return to the formal cocktail party

and did not have time to brutalize me further. My face was battered, mouth

torn, and my throat felt torn and stretched. I had difficulty swallowing for

some time, and could not speak. I certainly was in no condition to return to the

cocktail party, and was escorted out by agents/guards.

Before I could leave Washington, Byrd made good on his threat and

arranged for me to meet with Cheney in a blue bedroom in a part of the White

House so remote that “no one could hear my screams and moans”. But Cheney

implemented Oz theme “Silence” conditioning anyway as he proceeded to

brutally sexually assault me.

“Byrd tells me you need a good whipping. But I’m not certain which

instrument you prefer, so I brought them all.” Cheney had a riding crop, a

whip, and a cat-o-nine-tails laid out on the bed. He beat me quick and hard as

though he were releasing his tensions rather than savoring my pain like Byrd

did. I regained consciousness when Cheney slid a pillow under my neck,

steered me by the hair, and bent my head back. Survival instinct kicked in

when he positioned himself above my head, I hoped to satisfy him before he

became deadly brutal again. But he quickly pulled out his liquid cocaine

sprayer, sprayed my throat, then proceeded to get rough. At one point he

yanked my head aside and asked, “Was that a tooth?” and grinned. It was

imperative that 1 kept my teeth off him because, according to Aquino’s

programming instruction, I was subject to death if a tooth was ever felt by

anyone. Cheney knew this was my programming and manipulated me with it

often. I resumed “satisfying him as though my life depended upon it, because,

of course, it did.” This is another Aquino programming line Cheney knew and

used. When he was gratified, he flopped over and slept. I had been instructed

to leave immediately because Cheney absolutely did not want me near him when

he slept (some insiders say he is paranoid), and I began dressing. I was

escorted out.

In preparation for ”running bases” for Reagan’s Hands-On Mind-Control

Demonstrations, I underwent a great deal of programming by both Aquino and

Cheney. Cheney laid the ground rules while Aquino carried out Uie

programming derail and performed the demonstration with me on various

military and NASA installations.

Reagan wanted the demonstrations to include all programming depicted in

the “How to” films, additional programming instilled since the videos were

made, delivery of drugs when applicable, and sex according to Aquino’s

instruction with whomever/however many were present at the lecture. Cheney’s

personal “touch” to the demonstrations was to have me programmed to

vaginally internally electric prod myself with a high voltage cylindrical cattle

prod-truly an example of total mind control.

I was routinely escorted arm-in-arm “Oz style” by two agents to Cheney’s

downstairs office in the Pentagon. Sometimes Byrd took me in. Other times

Cheney walked me through the building, particularly if we were going to his

“Bunkhouse” personal quarters. Cheney’s office was equipped with black

leather furniture, a huge messy brown desk, massive book shelves, and an hour

glass that he always used in keeping with Oz programming, to assure me that

my life was on the line under his command. As a programmed MPD, I had no

concept of time. The hour glass was a visible way for me to see “my time.

runing out” and actually grasp the concept.

The first time I reported in, Cheney shuffled through the clutter on his desk,

picked up a paper and began reading:

“Number one. I am NOT your friend, and I don’t want to see you unless I

order you to report in. Number two. Follow the Colonel’s (Aquino) orders, as

it is the chain of command. What he orders you to do, is a command from me,

follow it to the letter, as though your life depends upon it, because (he looked

up and grinned wickedly) of course, it does.” His cold eyes bore into mine as

he walked around to the front of his desk, “Any questions?”

I knew he “was NOT my friend,” but he already “saw me” sexually on other

occasions. I was perplexed and hesitated. Even though I remained silent,

Cheney sensed my hesitation and became enraged. He got up in my face,

poked my breast bone with his finger and roared, “Don’t even THINK to

question anything I say! There is no question as to what I do, what I think, or

what I say, because 1 am absolutely above questions-especially YOURS!! Your

orders are clear. Now get out of here! I have work to do!”

Throughout the next three years, U.S. Army Lt. Colonel Aquino used me in

the Hands On Demonstrations on numerous Army, Navy, Air Force, and

NASA installations across the U.S. according to Reagan’s plan and Cheney’s

orders. The Top Brass privy to the demonstrations ranged from three at a time

to roughly twenty. In closing, Aquino always “persuaded” them to line up

while I was forced to perform sexually on command with each one. The larger

groups were physically painful, while the smaller groups often involved

unapproved variance from the routine, such as revealing Reagan’s bestiality

perversions. The wide array of “switching” my personalities that Aquino

incorporated into the demonstrations, and the vast amount of high voltage and

torture to which I was subjected, left me exhausted and physically devastated for

days after each one of Reagan’s Hands-On Mind-Control Demonstrations.

1My jaw is permanently damaged From Cheney. I have chronic TMJ.

CHAPTER 11

“POPPA” PHTLIP HABIB

My (CIA operative) handler, Alex Houston was scheduled to perform with

country music entertainer Loretta Lynn at the Playboy Club in Atlantic City,

New Jersey in the spring of 1985, and he admittedly did not want me there for

the performance. He explained that after his show, he intended to “dress up

like a carrot as lunch for the Bunnies” and I would only be in his way. But 1

had White House business to attend with a different land of “rabbit”. Reagan

had arranged for me to meet with his personal attache”, Philip Habib (now

deceased), who always played the cryptic rote of the Alice In Wonderland White

Rabbit to mind-controlled slaves. Houston had no choice but to take me along

once the orders came down.

CIA operative Ken Riley, the Neo-Nazi pedophile who functioned in the

capacity of Loretta Lynn’s road manager and Project Monarch Mind-Control

handler, was Alex Houston’s closest friend. Riley often made arrangements

through Loretta’s and Houston’s shared talent agent, Reggie Maclaughlin, for

all of us to travel together—particularly when it involved government covert

operations such as this Playboy Club gig did. Loretta’s singing career and

political ties into CIA covert operations have always been synonymous. Riley

escorted her in and out of the White House on numerous occasions during the

Reagan Administration, By natural attrition, this put Riley in a secondary role

as a “backup” handler for me as he often returned from D.C. with orders for

and/or concerning me. Houston and Riley shared much: CIA covert operations,

country music interests, Neo-Nazi and U.S. Government mind control, Project

Monarch methodologies, slave running1, pornography, cocaine, and pedophile

activities. Kelly and Riley’s young daughter were often filmed pornographically

together, and endured the sexual assaults of Houston and Riley2 together on

numerous occasions.

This trip to Atlantic City provided me an opportunity to talk with Loretta

while her husband, Mooney, Riley and Houston met for business. Loretta and I

had so much in common that our time together had been restricted from the

time we met in Minneapolis, Minnesota in 1981 and discussed our

victimizations.3 While alone in Loretta’s dressing room at the Playboy Club,

we discussed a wide range of topics from motherhood to the White House. We

talked about Reagan in terms of his role as The Wizard Of Oz, but mostly we

recited the general praises we were trained to say. We talked about Reagan’s

“favorite” music by Air Supply, which he had supplied to us both via Riley.

Air Supply’s cryptic NASA/Project Monarch theme recordings became “life and

breath” to us both according to Reagan’s intention, which locked in our

programmed devotion for him. We discussed the recent Inauguration party

Loretta had attended at the White House. (I was aware she had entertained

there as Houston relayed information to Riley pertaining to his recent trip to

Panama to meet with Panamanian Dictator and CIA operative Manuel Noriega

in order that Riley deliver the information to Reagan during the Inauguration

party.)

Loretta and I switched personalities spontaneously as we inadvertently

triggered each other with the shared cryptic language to which we were

accustomed. We discussed forbidden subjects including Noriega and Byrd until

J Riley and Houston caught us and separated us as though we were a couple of

naughty kids. I learned more than I was supposed to about Loretta while in

Atlantic City, but was never permitted another opportunity to speak with her so

freely.

This trip to Atlantic City was multi-purpose, which was not unusual for

government operations in which I was forced to participate. I had a major

cocaine transaction involving Noriega to attend at the airport; a message to

deliver to Philip Habib pertaining to the Contras, and another programmed in

by Habib in answer to Reagan; country music “entertainment” aspects; and

prostitution to Habib according to Reagan’s instruction.4

As the sun was setting over Atlantic City, Houston activated the Project

Monarch Oz programming that was used for high level covert operations, and

had me dress accordingly. I wore real and faux diamonds to signify my

“Presidential Model” business role, rubies to signify my Oz programmed

prostitution personality, and emeralds to signify my Oz programmed drug

business. This physically indicated to my contact(s) which mode of operation 1

was under at the rime. Rarely did I wear all three indicators at once, but they

certainly applied in this operation with Habib. Houston led me down the

waterfront boardwalk toward the hotel casino where I was to meet Habib,

walking like the Oz Scarecrow and singing, “Follow the Yellow Brick Road”,

Houston led me up the elaborate escalators of the hotel to a high stakes

gambling area where Habib was playing cards. The guard at the door did not let

Houston through, and I was sent to Habib’s table on my own. When I

approached, Habib leaned back in his chair to hear while I quietly recited in Oz

cryptic, “I’ve come such a long, long way to see you, Uncle Ronnie sent you

something.”

“What would that be?” he asked loudly as he leered at me and chuckled. I

could not respond because 1 was under heavy program. He handed me his room

key and pulled me close as he hypnotically whispered, “Use the key. Put it in

the lock. Turn. Open the door, and step through a window in time.” The other

gamblers at Habib’s table were getting impatient, and I quickly exited the

gambling room.

When I arrived in Habib’s room, two of his bodyguards accessed my

programming. “Chiefly speaking,” I began reciting Reagan’s message.

Arrangements were made for the two guards to pick up a fair sized shipment of

cocaine the next morning that was arriving on a small military “brass” airplane.

Houston and I would then board the plane and fly to D.C. where 1 would

complete my part of this operation;

When Habib arrived, he ushered me into the bedroom part of the suite and

began disrobing, down to his boxer shorts and gartered socks. Referring to a

recent Dante porn film I was used in, he said, “1 liked your ruffled tennis

panties…” then threw me a pink teddy and ruffled panties resembling the tennis

outfit commanding, “Put it on.” I complied. He threw me a stuffed toy cat on

the pillows and explained, “That kitten is going to keep this Kitten (pointing to

me) from screaming. We’re going to play Tweedle Dee and Tweedle Dum.”

(S&M games) Habib physically resembled the violent Alice In Wonderland

characters, especially in his boxer shorts. The hysterical controlled laughter that

rose in my throat would only have intensified his abuse and was (fortunately)

choked back by terror as he begun attaching heavy rope ties to the four posters

of the bed. On command, I crawled onto the bed and lay on my stomach while

he tied me so tightly I was stretched. He shoved the stuffed cat under my

mouth, then entered me roughly from behind and said, “Come to Poppa”. The

intense pain as he brutally sodomized me was outweighed by a high voltage

stun gun as he jolted me repeatedly to create the perverse jerking movements

and rectal muscle constrictions he desired. I soon passed out from the blinding

high voltage of his stun gun. It was nearly 3:00 AM when I stumbled out the

door with the stuffed cat in my hands, nauseated, disoriented, and in extreme

pain. The cool, ocean breeze helped revive me as Houston marched me back to

the Playboy Club.

Houston knew I had been programmed with a message for Reagan that I

would deliver the next morning in D.C. As usual, he began to access it

immediately. His quick timing somehow permitted him to penetrate the

electricity and programmed codes (designed to keep the information repressed)

and accessed the information. Houston kept a written record of any messages he

was able to access (along with photos and ledgers) for his personal profit and

future blackmailing purposes, should he need to protect himself. In this case, I

surmise from Houston’s Panama activities, conversations I overheard between

him and Riley, and my recollection of the messages he accessed, that his

purpose in extracting this information was for his personal profit in backdoor

dealings with Noriega. I understood it was these kinds of dealings that

eventually contributed to Noriega’s downfall with the CIA.

Morning arrived before I was allowed to sleep, and I felt exhausted and

“spacey” as I waited by the curb for Habib’s bodyguards to pick Houston and

me up and take us to the airport, A small military airplane was parked in a

restricted fenced in area as we arrived at the airport. The two bodyguards

conducted their business and quickly loaded the trunk with the bundles of

cocaine as planned. Houston and I boarded the airplane and flew to

Washington, D.C. where I delivered Habib’s message to Reagan. The bank

transaction numbers later checked out to be a Cayman Island account number.

Philip Habib was directly involved in various DIA/CIA Operations I was

forced to participate in throughout the Reagan/Bush Administrations, Although

Dick Cheney maintained his role as my Commander for these Operations,

Habib directed my actions where International “Diplomatic Relations” were

concerned, Cheney orchestrated events from behind his desk, whereas Habib

was active in the field as Reagan’s attache’.

The following Operations, documented in their entirety from my experience

perspective only, most likely involve other aspects to which I am not privy. In

typical DIA/CIA manner, scam “need to know’ information resulted in the “left

hand not knowing what the right hand was doing.” Nevertheless, the overall

criminal purpose of Operation Carrier Pigeon and Operation Shell Game,

documented herein, does not change.

1Riley, over time, owned several slaves.

2Riley, like my father, Wayne Cox, and other, remains apparently immune from prosecution for

his crimes against children and humanity, as it is considered a matter of “‘National Security” under

the 1984 Reagan Amendment to the National Security Act.

3I still have the handwritten note from Loretta that prompted out forbidden conversation and I

hope that someday Loretta will gain the piece/peace-of-mind that comes with rehabilitation.

4In the course of deprogramming, I found retrieval of this information much quicker than it

would have been had Houston not accessed it previously, against government policy, and for his

own personal gain.

CHAPTER 12

OPERATION CARRIER PIGEON

The term “Pigeon” is one with which I have been familiar since the early

1980s when I first began delivering messages between my “owner” Senator

Byrd and Puerto Rican drug lord and CIA operative, Jose Busto. Houston had

simply explained to me then, as we fed the flock of pigeons roosting at the Old

San Juan Cathedral, that Pigeons were used as messengers. The DIA’s U.S.

Army Lt. Colonel Michael Aquino often activated my Pigeon programming

during the Hands-On Mind-Control Demonstrations.

Dick Cheney further defined the term “Pigeon” when I learned of Operation

Carrier Pigeon in the mid ’80s. He said, “You have been selected from the

flock (of programmed slaves) for the Carrier Pigeon Operation for the purpose

of carrying messages from point A to point B as ordered. Pigeons, once they

fly the coop, find no freedom in flight, but carry out their task of delivering

their message from point A to point B by the shortest possible route—a direct

route. I will direct your route and you will deliver messages as ordered.”

But no one defined my role as a Pigeon more eloquently that President

Reagan during the course of Operation Carrier Pigeon.

The cryptic “pigeon language” utilized by all participants in the operation

was intermixed with The Wizard Of Oz, Alice In Wonderland, and “Genie in the

Bottle” cryptic programming themes. While Pigeon meant messenger, “Carrier

Pigeon” referred to the U.S. Air Force aircraft that actually transported the

arms and drugs. “Pigeon Droppings” included the sometimes multi-national

dispersal of the arms and drugs after they reached their destination. “Pigeon

Holing” meant covering up the criminal activity. These definitions, as I

understood them then and understand them now, may well include deeper, more

diverse meanings than I have perceived.

Habib’s favorite programming theme was Alice In Wonderland, Through

The Looking Glass due to its international recognition and relation to the ultraeffective

NASA mirror, time, and infinity space programs for instantly

dissociating programmed participants. He habitually spoke in Alice In

Wonderland cryptic language, and even used it for sex as was evidenced by his

Tweedle Dee and Tweedle Dum brutal games of perversion. Due to Habib’s

orchestration of Operation Carrier Pigeon, this CIA covert operation was

littered with Wonderland mirror themes from beginning to end.

My CIA handler, Alex Houston had just returned from a brief solo trip “to

Florida” with an elaborately wrapped box. “it’s from a friend of yours,” he told

me as he handed me the box. “Let’s go into the bedroom so you can unwrap it

and see it through the “Looking Class’.” Cryptically triggered, I mechanically

walked to the bedroom as ordered.

I removed the silver metallic bow and wrappings from the box and Found an

expensive, elegant dress made of an unusual shimmery silver fabric. A sheet of

plain white stationary written in Philip Habib’s recognizable shaded blue script

lay on top of the dress. It read:

The heat you radiated when we last met

melted my mirror.

I had it made into a dress just for you,

cut to accentuate your figure

so that when you melt into it,

You lose yourself into

the pool of liquid mirror.

Step into the Looking Glass

Sink deep within its pool

and straddle dimensions in time.

I’ll see you there…

along with my friends.

It was signed: “Passionately, Phil Habib,” with his name written upside

down under a line as though it were a mirror reflection.

Houston knew there would be a note, and ordered “Let me see your note,”

snatching it from my hands. He gestured toward the dress. “Go ahead and try

it on while I read this note. Now let’s see, what does it say? ‘Come to

Poppa’?”

I took the dress from the box. It did not feel like anything I’d ever felt

before. It was cold like satin, but thin like silk. I started crying quietly, afraid

that Habib would somehow show up if I had it on.

“Put it on and I ‘ l l zip you in,” Houston said as he took another note from

his wallet and read it as I undressed:

There’s a pair of magic shoes to wear with your dress,

Something in-lightening,

to transport you faster than the ol’ ruby slippers (Oz)

The shoes, like the dress, are made just for you,

and when you wear them you’ll be fit for a King,

I’ll send them for you at the appropriate lime.

Houston tucked the note back in his wallet, “See. You’re not going

anywhere now. You’ll meet him at the White House when you have shoes to

wear with it. Just slip it on.”

I did. Houston accessed Habib’s Wonderland brutal sex programming for

his own gratification. Afterwards I hung the dress in Kelly’s closet with my

other trigger-significant clothes; out of sight, out of mind. Until the shoes

arrived…

Habib “sent the shoes for me” soon afterward. They were shiny black with

what appeared to be silver lightening bolts down the high heels and sides. In

place of dinner thai night, Houston gave me a “Wonderland Wafer” (MDHMAXTC

CIA designer drug “Ecstasy”). The wafer, like all those supplied by

Habib, bore his trademark that read “Eat me”. I began to prepare for the night

out as instructed. Houston zipped me into the dress, and turned me to face the

mirror. As I slipped into the shoes, Houston took another note from Habib out

of his pocket and read:

Something in-lightening to tranceport you faster

than the ol’ ruby slippers.

Click your heels together (I obeyed) and be there in a snap.

Electrifying-with the rumble of thunder.

Boiling through time

So you won’t be late for a very important date.

Houston hit me with his stun gun and I passed out. He then drove me to the

Nashville airport where I boarded a small plane to Washington, D.C.

I found myself at the White House with Byrd, attending another small

cocktail party of about 20-30 people. After we spoke with Reagan, Byrd

pointed me in the direction of Philip Habib and sent me over to him. My eyes

were locked on Habib’s as he hypnotically said:

Melt into your melted mirror

for an electrifying ride.

Look deep into the black

of my melting mirror eyes,

See you reflecting me, reflecting you,

reflecting me–you-me–you-me

until we melt together and sink deep

into the other side.

Habib took me to a quieter spot in an adjoining room and held up another

wonderland Wafer as he said in Alice In Wonderland cryptic, “Welcome to

Wonderland, Kitten. This is a very important date. I haven’t time to explain.?

He gave me the wafer and continued, “Eat it, and I’ll take you through the

door.”

Habib took me by the hand and led me to the doorway of another room. It

was a dining room of sorts where an informal array of guests was gathered. As

soon as Habib appeared in the doorway, King Fahd of Saudi Arabia quickly

excused himself from the table and approached. He was wearing a multicolored

robe and headwear with a black-brown rope band. I was instantly repulsed by

his “wicked” lecherous gaze, I stepped back into the other room in fear. Habib

introduced him. “This is one of ‘my friends’ I mentioned in my letter.”

I robotically responded, “It’s a pleasure to meet you” and extended my hand

as taught in Charm School. Fahd bent over to kiss my hand. As he did, his

evil black eyes bore into mine as he softly said, “Your beauty warms my

embers. See them glowing deep within the darkness of my eyes-igniting into

flame-black flame.” He laughed wickedly at the effect of his use of NASA

hypnotic conditioning,

Habib slapped him on the shoulder as though they knew each other well and

there were no formalities between them and asked, “Am I right? Is that fit for a

King?”‘

The three of us went into another room that appeared to be a guest bedroom

that Habib was occupying. He closed the door and told me, “Diplomatic

relations are very important. You know the old saying ‘when in Rome do as

Romans do’. Well, he’s a King. Get on your knees. His wish is your

command. Satisfy his deepest wishes. It’s your turn for a magic carpet ride, so

turn your Genie free.”

Fahd was sitting in a chair by a coffee table. As I knelt on the carpel in

front off him, his piercing black eyes seemed to stab into my brain like swords.

I could not turn away. He stroked my neck with his index finger, activating

oral sex programming. “I have heard about you and am in-tent on having you.”

Somehow he found the slit in his robes and parted it as he continued, “Come

into my tent- A feast has been spread for you.” He spread his legs and exposed

his penis—one of the nastiest I had ever seen—like a black nightcrawler worm

that smelled and tasted strongly of spice. Habib watched as I carried out my

orders, much to the pleasure of Fahd,

Then Habib went to the chest of drawers and began pulling out his electric

prod and bondage equipment as he explained. “Now let me introduce you to my

other ‘friend’. I need to bottle up a message with your Genie and send it out to

sea. You know what to do. Begin undressing now.”

I did as I was told and lay on my stomach on the bed while Habib

sodomized me. He used his electric prod equipment and programmed me with

a message to deliver to General Manuel Noriega while on an upcoming NCL

cruise.

I was at sea on board an NCL cruise ship bound for their private island in

the Bahamas, Stirrup Cay, which was to be my rendezvous point with Noriega,

“Bottled up” in my mind through the recent ‘Genie in the Bottle’ programming,

was a cryptic message from King Fahd to Noriega. It was a moonless night

whereby the Caribbean waters appeared as black as the night. I could not

distinguish the sky from the sea in accordance with NASA hypnotic

conditioning. T gazed, totally entranced, from the rear of the cruise ship.

Houston used the opportunity to hypnotically enhance Habib’s previous programming,

while traumatizing me with the threat of being thrown overboard.

The thought of “treacling water in the inky blackness while the lights of the ship

fade further-and further–away-until all is black and I sink-to the depths of the

sea” did not seem so horrible in tight of the fact that I was to be the bearer of

bad news to Noriega in the morning.

Upon arrival to NCL’s Stirrup Cay, Houston and I began our usual walking

trek to the farthest end of the island where the CIA operations radio station and

equipment were located. In a hidden cove on the island’s back side was a

smaller island of sufficient size to conceal Noriega’s personal yacht, anchored

behind it. As Houston and I made our way along the cove’s beach, we came

upon an old wooden boat half buried in the sand and a man sitting beside it.

Because I was in a different personality, I did not recognize the man as my

contact who ran the Stirrup Cay control lower for drug trafficking and covert

activity. 1 asked him how he got there. He began his charade, which, due to

the depths of my trance, I believed in its literal text, while Houston heard quite

a different story:

“I shipwrecked.” John (the name I called him) pointed to the boat half

buried in the sand, “That’s all that is left of my boat.”

I asked, “Why haven’t you been rescued?”

He cryptically replied, “I sent a message in a bottle and I expect a response

real soon. Good thing I had these coconuts (he was carving one) and all that

‘sugar’ in the hull to sustain me.”

Houston laughed, immediately realizing that ‘sugar’ meant cocaine and said,

surprised, “In the hull?” as he bent down to look inside the wreck. I looked,

too. There was more white cocaine and (dark) cocaine paste than I could mule

(carry) in one walking haul, even wilh both of my tote bags full. But I could

not comprehend reality in the midst of this charade, and therefore commented

that he was fortunate that both the “white and brown sugar” had made it through.

the wreck.

Houston said, “So, they cast you away, huh?”

My contact laughed and sniffed, “Yeah, cast me away with all that ‘sugar’—

that’s nothing to sniff at.” He looked up as Houston informed him a speedboat

was approaching, 1 looked out across the cove beyond the little island and

finally noticed Noriega’s yacht. A “black mirror” finish speed boat, which

matched the upper smoke glass windows of Noriega’s yacht, was approaching.

John told me, “Probably has something to do wilh that message I sent. Help me

wave him in.” I did. He handed me a coconut and, using it as a scramble and

excuse for me to join him on Noriega’s yacht, persuaded me to board the speed

boat with him. Houston stayed behind to guard the cocaine that had obviously

already been delivered from Noriega’s yacht.

When we pulled up to the rear of the yacht, I was helped on board by

Noriega’s armed guards. I noticed there did not seem to be any big parties

going on as was customary, and Noriega seemed unusually abrupt and

businesslike. He was not drunk this time. Upon command from John, I

delivered Fahd’s message:

“1 am under command to deliver a message from King Fahd. The

Caribbean is becoming volatile. Trouble in Jamaica, Trouble in Cuba, Even

trouble in Panama. Dominican Republic must be launching point for missiles

and artillery that are being channeled though Cuba. Concluding arms deal,

Carrier Pigeon must be detained until all transactions are cleared. Banco de

Panama to receive Contra Aid after all steps leading to me have been swept

away by the shifting sands (of Lime), and all pigeon droppings pigeon holed.

Our business is concluded. Let us part on friendly terms,”

My personal perceptions of history as it happened in reality remains

somewhat distorted, as I had no access to “news” outside of my mind-comrolled

environment. In order to keep my memory retrieval free of contamination, I

completed the deprogramming process before “educating” myself through books

And news. I have since learned that what was reported as news was often

distorted propaganda, and many events were never reported at all. Therefore, I

do not know of the “troubles in Jamaica and Cuba” to which King Fahd

referred. I was aware, however, that due to outside scrutiny, Houston had

recently met with Jamaican officials in Kingston pertaining to ceasing the long

standing criminal covert operations. As for Cuba, 1 only knew that I was no

longer meeting with my Cuban contact. In Panama, I knew Noriega himself

was the object of controversy. The “arms deal” was the final stage of Operation

Carrier Pigeon where the planes were to wait in Saudi Arabia until all bank

transactions were cleared and the load was ready for disbursement. Saudi

Arabian King Fahd would then fund the Contras via Noriega for Reagan after

all evidences had been properly covered up—just as he had done in Afghanistan.

After the shipment, there would be no further deals through Noriega involving

Fahd, because Noriega could no longer be trusted. Besides, Fahd had increased

diplomatic relations with Mexico for covert operations, and Iran-Contra was just

beginning to heat up.

Noriega did not seem to be upset by the news of losing Saudi Arabian

business, although he was somber and took some time to respond. His

translator was working over some complex computer equipment after I

delivered the message. I left Noriega’s yacht with John and a brief message for

Dick Cheney at the Pentagon.

Back on Stirrup Cay, Houston was anxiously waiting to begin transporting

the cocaine back to the party area of the island. There, NCL workers were

cleaning up from the cruise ship’s beach party cookout, which was NCL’s

excuse to stop the ship. After I muled the first heavy load of cocaine in my tote

sacks, Houston approached one worker familiar with the drug operation and

informed him we had a heavier load than usual and needed to make another trip.

The worker directed us to a huge empty food container used for transporting

cook out supplies from the ship, and gave us the key. We locked the first load

in the container, and I took my empty tote sacks, plus another straw bag back.

for another haul. With the second load, Houston even carried some cocaine:

himself. We had to run quite a distance through the island woods in an attempt

to make it back to the ship’s shuttle before scheduled departure time. When we

arrived, the beach was nearly deserted, as all the passengers had been taken

back to the ship. All that remained was the food container and the NCL worker

who was hurrying us onto the shuttle and on board the ship, which was waiting

for us.

When the cruise ship docked at the Port of Miami, Puerto Rican drug lord

and CIA operative Jose Busto was acting as a U.S. Immigrations officer

(commissioned by the Drug Enforcement Agency through the CIA), which he

often did for NCL. Busto helped us clear ship undetected with the large load

of cocaine. The drugs were packed into suitcases, then loaded into Houston’s

specially made motor home which was parked in NCL’s guarded, restricted

parking lot. Most of the cocaine was dropped off as usual at Warner Robbins

Air Force Base in Macon, Georgia, to be distributed to destinations unknown to

me. The money generated by the sale of cocaine was supposedly used to fund a

major arms shipment into Saudi Arabia. These weapons were reportedly

distributed among several neighboring countries. The profits were then relayed

into Reagan’s Contra Cause.

A large quantity of cocaine was retained by Houston for his own use and

delivery for personal profit through his country music industry contacts. Some

of the cocaine would be delivered by me to Saudi Arabian Ambassador, Prince

Bandar Bin Sultan, Fahd’s own “Homing Pigeon”.

I carried a message from Warner Robbins Air Force Base in addition to the

message from Noriega agreeing to Fahd’s terms back to Dick Cheney at the

Pentagon. Cheney then prepared me for the final phase of the operation. This

was a meeting with Prince Bandar (who Cheney, Houston, and others referred

to as Sultan) in Nashville, Tennessee where he often visited corrupt friends.

There, I would relay a message of agreement to Fahd’s terms between Noriega

and the U.S., as well as confirm all Air Force flights (Carrier Pigeons) and

bank transactions. In turn, Fahd’s “Homing Pigeon” would relay the messages

to Fahd so that the seemingly long running drugs for arms deals would draw to

a successful conclusion.

Dick Cheney cautioned me, “Sultan will be in Nashville having dinner with

friends at the Stockyard.” (The Stockyard was a popular country music dinner

club known for its CIA criminal covert activity involvement.) Cheney glanced

at the list on his desk and continued, “Among others, those friends would be

(Mayor) Fulton1 and (Sheriff) Thomas.2 They are considered a threat to the

operation. They’re not discrete. Thomas in particular is not to be trusted–he’s

an ass and too crooked. So, Sultan must leave the table before the message is

delivered. Any questions? Good.”

I certainly had no questions this time. I did not need him to caution me

about Nashville’s Mayor Richard Fulton whom Houston had prostituted me to,

and Sheriff Fate Thomas. I had known the pair for years, had been cautioned

about them before, and had no respect for them at all. Together Thomas and

Fulton had indiscreetly perpetuated the total corruption that had permeated

Nashville’s $2.8 billion country music industry, which ran the city of Nashville.

They ran the city’s business from a bar—the Stockyard-while they drank and

openly used cocaine. If I had had the capacity to wonder, I would have

wondered what a “Homing Pigeon” so critical to the conclusion of this

international criminal covert operation was doing with such low level sleaze.

As it was, I could only sense relief at not having to deal with them, too.

Prince Bandar Bin Sultan’s reputation for sex and drugs was widely known

in Nashville. But much of my information pertaining to his activities came

from one of my closest Project Monarch friends. She is an entertainer’s

daughter who was prostituted regularly to Sultan when he was in town, which

was often.

When Cheney was through with me, Byrd escorted me to the White House

to see Reagan, who also cautioned me about the Prince. Reagan was aware of

Habib’s having activated me sexually with King Fahd, and made it clear that my

scheduled rendezvous with Prince Bandar would not include the usual sex.

Reagan joked in Byrd’s presence, “Birds (Byrds) may well be eaten by a

Kitten. (Reagan’s pet name for me), but not Homing Pigeons. Homing Pigeons

taste foul.” Byrd laughed. Reagan continued, “Homing Pigeons have one

purpose. Passing messages. Throughout history world leaders have passed

messages to and from each other by way of pigeons. Messages that have set the

course of events that have altered the course of history. Homing Pigeons are

loyal and dedicated to their task, flying over seas, yet never pausing long

enough to even quench their thirst-giving no thought to their own needs. When

a pigeon is released, he takes a direct course to his destination. Dedicated to

delivering the very messages on which history was founded. Why, even Noah

relied on a pigeon to traverse the seas to bring back a message of hope. It is

your duty to attach an added message to the Horning Pigeon-one of peace,

from our homeland lo his: One from the President of the United States to King

Fahd of Saudi Arabia, … (Omitted due to international ramification.)”

Byrd was visibly inspired by the speech. I was literally saved by the bell

from another boring, long winded recitation that Reagan had just inspired in

Byrd when Cheney telephoned me back to his office. It was still morning and

Cheney had appeared very busy, hurried, and irritable when I had seen him just

a short time earlier. My heart was heavy in expectant anticipation of the

physical and sexual brutality Cheney’s moods normally incited. Yet I was

relieved to escape the torturous “picture painting” competition that experience

had taught me Byrd and Reagan were about to embark on. My heart lightened

when my escort left me at Cheney’s office and I noticed his foul mood had

changed dramatically.

“I understand you ordered me to report in, Sir.” Cheney looked up from his

desk where he was shuffling through papers and tying up loose ends before

leaving his office.

“Sit down.” he ordered, “I just got word that the Genie in the Bottle ‘Castaway’

Operation is complete and I intend to pop a cork or two of my own in

celebration of its successful conclusion. I have time on my hands and want you

to join me. The bunkhouse is being prepared…” Cheney apparently thought of

something, went to the door and told the guy who had escorted me, “Make sure

there’s some Wonderland Wafers in the bunkhouse,” He walked to his desk,

picked up the phone and said, “I’m outta here” into it and slammed it down. I

followed Cheney out the door, and we turned to the right rather than the left

outside his office and walked to his personal quarters referred to as the

bunkhouse. It was decorated in Cheney’s western style in browns and tans,

with leather furniture. There was no food (maybe some nuts stashed

somewhere), but plenty of bottles of alcohol.

I was swollen and bleeding vaginally, the bottom of my shirt was soaked in

blood, and my belly hurt deep inside when my escort finally came for me early

the next morning. Staying around Cheney while he slept was as deadly a

mistake as removing his clothes or questioning him-it was forbidden. This

time he broke his own rule, and did not even punish me for it when morning

arrived. He had spent so many hours drinking alcohol and using his enormous

penis as an assault weapon that he passed out shortly before my escort arrived.

As I walked into the hall, I doubled over from pain. My escort turned to

Cheney and remarked, “Christ, Cheney”.

Cheney lifted his head and proudly slurred, “Now you know why they call it

‘Dick’”.

Back in Tennessee, my CIA-paid gynecologist, who knew I was under mind

control, covered for my abusers as usual and wrote me a prescription for

swelling and pain, I was still in pain and ill from my exposure to Dick Cheney

and his high voltage torture and brutal sex when Houston drove me to

Nashville’s Stockyard Nightclub for my rendezvous with Prince Bandar Bin

Sultan.

A waitress led me to the Saudi Arabian Ambassador’s table where he was

drinking with Mayor Fulton, Sheriff Thomas, and Metro Police Chief Joe

Casey.3 I approached him and said, “If you please, Sir (Oz), I am under

command to deliver a message to you from the Pentagon. There is to be no

horse play (sex games). We must get down to business.” There was laughter

from everyone at the table. I continued. “My message is brief and I only need a

moment of your time away from your dinner.”

The Prince’s face grew more serious and we left the table. He touched the

waitress” arm and she pointed to a door across the hall that ted to an empty

room. We stood just inside the room, and I quickly delivered ray Pigeon

cryptic message:

“The Carrier Pigeon (Air Force airplane) will take flight… and will keep its

promise (the agreed load) while all transactions (both bank and distribution) are

procured through the designated diplomatic channels (Habib.) Your bonus, one

crystal, three cuts await you. The President of the United States gives his word

to King Fahd: …”

He told me his driver would meet me out from of the Stockyard and

instructed me to put the cocaine in the back, I left the building to rejoin

Houston at the car in order that the cocaine could be delivered. A white stretch

limousine was pulled up in front of the Stockyard; Chief Casey’s assigned

Metro Police Officers guarded the area, and the cocaine was transferred into the

back seat of the Prince’s limo. Houston and I immediately left the area. My

part in Operation Carrier Pigeon was concluded.

1Richard Fulton and his bank were under Federal investigation as of 1991.

2Fate Thomas is currently serving time in a Federal penitentiary for bribery and extortion.

3Recently under Federal investigation for corruption.

CHAPTER 13

OPERATION SHELL GAME

Sometime prior to the death of CIA Chief William Casey, I was in

Washington, D.C. for a briefing on Operation Shell Game. Iran-Contra was

politically explosive at this time, and U.S. Senator Allen Simpson (R.Wyoming)

had a plan to set Panamanian General Manuel Noriega up to take the fall for

cocaine aspects of the investigation. Noriega had become yet another source of

embarrassment to the Reagan-Bush Administration. The need to convince him

to he discrete about his involvement in U.S. criminal covert activities had

reached alarming proportions. Noriega had been an intricate part of arming the

Nicaraguan Contras for Reagan, as well as an international hub in the cocaine

operations that funded the black budgets for ultra secret projects such as Project

Monarch. My CIA operative handler, Alex Houston’s shadowy back door drug

dealings with Panama further exemplified the kind of “honor among thieves”

rules that Noriega routinely and openly violated. My role, my “Contra-bution,”

was but a small part of the over all picture. Nevertheless, Operation Shell

Game was one of the more significant and informative covert operations in

which J had been forced lo participate.

My role began one cold, rainy day when Houston dropped me off at the

Washington Monument where I was met by two agents, who triggered me to go

with them by flashing their IDs. They escorted me 10 the large White House

uffice where T had first met Cheney to “audition” for the Hands-On Mind-

Control Demonstrations some years before. As usual, Cheney and Reagan were

drinking, this time to excess for so early in the day. Reagan’s cheeks were

flushed and his voice slurred as he greeted me, “Well, hello, Kitten. Dick and I

were just discussing the plight of the Contras since this Ollie North thing broke

out.” Cheney’s alcoholic foul mood was immediately apparent. He was

agitated as usual at Reagan’s informality in my presence. Apparently I had

come in during a serious discussion about tran-Contra as Reagan’s mood was

more somber than I had ever seen it. He took a drink and looked out the

window. “Americans believe in their country-baseball, hot dogs, and Ollie

North.” Cheney snorted a laugh at what seemed to be an ongoing joke between

them about “hot dogs and Ollie North”. Reagan continued, “And I believe in

the Contra cause and all that we have accomplished. And I’m damn proud of it!

It’s not ‘Law and Order’. No, it’s Order and then Law. Order must come first

because without it, law would be ineffective. Sometimes we must rise above

and beyond the law to establish that order (he glanced seriously at Cheney)—or a

new (world) order. As President, that is my responsibility. Establish order

through democracy by spreading democracy throughout the world. With order,

there is peace. Right now in Nicaragua the people are crying out for

democracy, for peace, and I cannot turn a deaf ear to them. Not even in view

of Ollie North’s troubles. True Americans know he is a hero. That’s why we

must rise above the law to establish order by fulfilling the wishes, the hopes, the

dreams of those brave men fighting for freedom by doing our part in spreading

democracy.” Reagan was gesturing into the air, apparently lost in the poetry of

his own ranting.

Cheney lost patience and jumped from his chair to sneer at me and poke his

finger in my chest while he said, “Order is all that matters, and you’re going to

follow mine.”

Reagan turned back to us. “I’m glad you brought that up, pick. Kitten,

you have a role in establishing this order With the same patriotic passion that

burned in your bosom for the freedom fighters of Afghanistan, you will carry

out your orders for the Contras. Dick will define your role and provide you

with all you need and all you need to know from the ol’ Wizard’s bag in the

basement (Oz programming in Cheney’s Pentagon office). So, you run along

now and do as he commands.”

Senator Allen Simpson was in Cheney’s office when we arrived. Cheney

flipped over the hour glass to let me know my life was on the line according to

Oz programming. Cheney gestured to Simpson and began, “Operation Shell

Game is Simpson’s brain child, so he’s master of the game and he’s going to

teach you the rules. The objective of the game is to see ‘who’s left holding the

goods”. Pointing to Simpson, he commanded, “Listen to ‘im”,

Simpson stood up and began cryptically talking. “You are going on a

‘Princes’ Cruise’ (Noriega’s Yacht). The Baby’s Ear Shell is your pass key. I

will provide you with yours at the appropriate time.” He took the “shell” out of

his wallet. It was approximately 1 1/2 inches long and was translucent pink,

shaped and detailed exactly like a baby’s car. Simpson noticed the relief cross

my face as I realized it was not a real baby’s ear. He smiled. “These are but

empty shells of the life they once possessed. Like you are-empty and void of

life. A shell. In one ear and out the other. I have your ear now LISTEN, If

they hold the pass key, you listen. When you hold the pass key, you speak. In

one ear and out the other-never again to be retrieved,”

He returned the shell to his wallet and continued, “Listen. Follow orders.

The Colonel (Aquino) will be there and you will follow his orders and provide a

demonstration Hands On style for the General (Noriega). It will be different,

yet the same, so follow the Colonel’s orders closely.”

Cheney roughly grabbed my hair and pulled my head back, got right in my

face and said, “Or, I’ll get her, my pretty, your little girl. Follow orders as

though her life depends upon it because it does. Or the next baby’s ear will be

taken from Kelly. So listen. When you see the baby’s ear, you will listen,”

He spun my head in the direction of the hourglass as he released my hair. He

was sneering and Simpson looked as though he thought Cheney overdid it. I

was relieved it would not be my job to “soothe Cheney’s savage beast” sexually

that day.

Cheney look me back to the White Rouse office where we had started. He

and Reagan shared another drink. Reagan patted my hair back in place where

Cheney had pulled it, which made me feel safe somehow since I could not

comprehend that he was behind my ordeal with Cheney. Reagan switched my

personality to where I no longer regarded him as “Chief,” but instead as “Uncle

Ronnie”, He did this by reaching into his Jelly Belly jar and giving me one.

Certain colors and flavors triggered certain programmed responses. Uncle

Ronnie must have had other “Kittens” conditioned to the military green watermelon

ones because he kept an excess amount of these in his numerous jars.

Cheney said, “How in the hell you drink cognac and eat those goddamn jelly

beans is beyond me.

Reagan responded, “Well, Dick, you don’t have to have a Jelly Belly if you

don’t want to. I was just giving one to Kitten, here.”

“Damn right I don’t have to have a Jelly Belly, but you’re going to have a

jelly belly if you keep that shit up.” Cheney finished his drink.

Reagan chuckled, “Now, you know I watch my figure..”

“Figure this,” Cheney interrupted. “What are you going to do with the

Contras?” Cheney slammed down his drink and headed for the door,

“Exactly what I’ve been doing.” Reagan turned to me, “C’mon, Kitten,

Let’s take a walk, I need my evening constitutional,”

Reagan was in no mood for sex, and it was a relief to be away from

Cheney, He took me outside for a walk in his “Secret Garden,” where he said

he goes to “think and solve the world’s problems”. We walked down a cement

path he referred to as a “Yellow Brick Road”. After sitting quietly on a cement

bench for awhile, he said, “If you follow the Yellow Brick Road, it leads right

to the Wizard’s lair-the Oval Office, How would you like to see where Uncle

Ronnie really solves the world’s problems?” I felt like a little girl with her

daddy going to see where he works with no real concept of the experience. The

guard at the Oval Office door ensured I was returned to my escorts when

Reagan was through “sneaking me in” to his office. I was then taken back to

Washington Monument where Houston was waiting in the car as though T had

never been gone at all.

Operation Shell Game brought me back in touch with former President

Herald Ford early one misty fall morning. Ford’s continued relationships with

my abusers had given me cause to remain in touch with him throughout the

years; particularly since he and my father were still jointly active in the

Michigan organized crime drugs and pornography operation that had launched

me into Project Monarch so many years before.

Ford was about to embark on a game of golf with my father on the

otherwise “Closed for the Season” golf course next to my father’s expensive

house in affluent Grand Haven, Michigan. My brother, Mike, was with my

father and me as we rendezvoused at the Club House with Ford and the Secret

Service personnel assigned to him. Ford told my father he would “catch up

with him and Mike at the third hole” and to “leave us to our business”. I was

maintained in “Silence” until Ford and I were out of range of the Secret Service

men, and I recited a message from Reagan instilled prior to the Shell Game,

“If you please, Sir,” I began in Oz cryptic, “I have a message for you from

Uncle Ronnie. It’s a ‘humming telegram’ (oral sex game) to see if you agree

that our National Anthem should be changed to America the Beautiful,”

(Reagan was actually serious about changing our National Anthem.)

Ford responded, “We may have to see about that later. First, we’ve got

some other ‘holes’ to attend before the sun gets up any higher,”

As he teed up his golf ball I asked, “Do you still golf a lot now that you’re

no longer President?”

Re said very seriously, “I golfed a lot when I was President. But now, I

just keep up with events from the golf course. I’ve earned the privilege of

monitoring the progress of America’s Freedom Train at my leisure.” He turned

to face me, “Do you play golf yet?”

“Very well, Sir, when permitted.” (Houston always ensured he won.) Ford

was openly amused by my answer and handed me his club. “Give it your best

shot.” I outshot him the first stroke and his amusement vanished. I gave him

back his golf club as ordered.

At the end of the second hole, Ford said, “I’d like to have a word with

you,” He took me over to some trees off the fairway and turned to me with his

arms crossed over his bulging chest, raised himself up taller, and bore his sharklike

eyes into mine. “Lend me your ear”, I had the Baby’s Ear Shell with me as

ordered, took it out of my back pocket and handed it to Ford. He began talking

as though I were a machine and he was dictating a message. “Take this

message to Dick Cheney, Pentagon. The Mob has agreed to transfer the $2.3

million (porn profits) to the Bank of Credit and Commerce International. Let’s

pool our money now and we’ll be swimming in it. This operation has been an

enterprising success. Let’s keep it that way. Cease agreement with Panama.

All Mexican channels are implemented (cocaine and heroin). Hail to the

Chief.” He took a step away and added, “And you (he poked my chest like

Cheney) lake care of my friend, Dick. Here…” he handed me the Baby’s Ear.

For meanness he added “over and out,” and did the sign of the (satanic) horns at

my eyes which deepened my trance significantly since 1 had been conditioned so

heavily to this by Byrd.

After he hit the golf ball, he asked, “How’s my friend, Allen Simpson,

these days?”

“Very well, Sir.” I noticed he bristled as be missed another shot. His

temper was rising. When he wanted to add more to his message, he took out

his frustration on me,

“Gimme that fucking shell.” He wiggled his fingers at me. That wasn’t the

pass phrase and I did not trigger. He grew louder and more agitated, “Where’s

that Baby’s Ear.” I still could not respond. “Lend me your goddamn ear!!” he

roared at me. Close enough.

“Yes, Sir,” I responded meekly as I dropped it in his hand.

He proceeded. “Tell Simpson to take care of my friend Dick Thomburgh.

Get back to me on it.” He returned the ear. We could see my father waiting at

the next hole and Ford said he might “bean him one” with his next stroke. He

swung, but missed my father.

When we met up with my father at the third hole. Ford set up his ball first,

of course, and waving his club at me said, “Get out of here before I get teed

off,” My father pointed the way with a thumb over his shoulder and let out a

shrill whistle. My brother, Mike, walked me through the bushes and back to

my father’s house.

My sister, Kelli Jo, was waiting tearfully for my return. She was MPDed

and horrified of Ford. She and my little sister, Kimmy, and I had all been

forced to sexually gratify Ford just prior to a special ordered porn film titled

Three Little Kittens whereby his semen was filmed “anonymously”. I was

aware that Ford had initiated both of my sisters the way he had me in Cedar

Springs, and they, too, dreaded his brutal and degrading sexuality. I hurried

past my sister to make sure my daughter, Kelly, was OK. Cheney’s threat to

her life was ringing loud in my ear.

I did not see the Baby’s Ear shell spirt until Kelly and I arrived in

Bradenton Beach, Florida. I drove the motor home into Florida with Houston

and Kelly along, and dropped Houston off at the Tampa airport, since he did

not have a role in Operation Shell Game. He “had business at Boys Town in

Omaha, Nebraska” where the wayward boys were being traumatized and

sexually abused in accordance with the Catholic involvement in Project

Monarch. Survivor Paul Bonacci of the infamous Franklin Cover-up case has

named Alex Houston as one of his abusers there in Boys Town. Houston often

went to Boys Town or other similar “vacation resorts” while I was on covert

government business. Kelly and I drove on to Bradenton, where we checked

into a participating campground on the bay across from “MacDill Air Force

Base. It, too, was “Closed for the Season”.

The recreation room of the campground was actually a harmonics

programming operation, and the offices were filled with elaborate computers

consistent with high-level CIA operations. The day Kelly and I met with

Senator Simpson, I had been instructed by campground workers to drive to

nearby Santa Maria Island where we were to collect unusual shells. Kelly and I

were on the “wild side” of the island hunting sand dollars because they had

“BIRDS” in them. As we walked through the shallow water, Kelly scared up a

Stingray, which sent us screaming for the shore. Simpson was on the beach

laughing, looking out of place in his cagney hat and grey suit with legs rolled

up and polished shoes in hand. He seemed familiar with the beach. When we

reached the shore, he struck up a conversation about shells. It wasn’t until he

told us about the Baby’s Ear Shell and opened his wallet to retrieve it that I

triggered and knew who he was. As he look it out, he also flashed his ID

signalling us to go with him. Considering Kelly, he had slipped a shell into the

sand for her to find that looked like an eye in a spiral, He used this as a

hypnotic induction to control her, comparing it to Bush’s Eye in the- Sky.

Simpson showed me the shell in his hand and began, “You. You alone will

take the shuttle boat to your Princes’ cruise. It will leave the dock from your

own backyard (Oz) at 7:30 pm. Dress appropriately (Houston had ensured the

proper attire had been packed). You will be escorted to the conference room

and on into the lop deck. You will see as you approach the ship (Noriega’s

yacht) the top deck is surrounded in black mirrors. Look deep into the mirrors;

that is where you will be. And where I will be when next we meet,” We

walked a little further up the beach to where the motor home was parked and,

referring to the Baby’s Ear, Simpson said, “They’re very rare indeed. This one

is the right ear. You must go to the other side of the island, out Long Boat

Key, to find its match. The Colonel (Aquino) has the baby’s left ear and will

meet you at the Pier at 4 pm. Stop at the little market on the corner and call.

Then it’s just down the street a little ways.”

I followed instructions robotically. Kelly and I watched from the pier as

four big, armed (with machine guns) emotionless (programmed?) guards

scanned the area as Aquino emerged from a car. Kelly said, “Mom, let’s go”.

I remembered Cheney’s threat and assured her I would protect her, though I

could not comprehend from what.

When Aquino approached with two Dobermans on leashes, I told him

Simpson had sent me there looking for the left baby’s ear. He opened his hand

to reveal “all that was left-the baby’s ear-the dogs had devoured and consumed

the rest of the baby.” It was bloody, ragged, and bluish rather than pink.

Whether or not this was an actual baby’s ear, the impact was the same. I put

Kelly further behind me away from the dogs. I stood traumatized and

entranced, ready for command. Aquino instructed me in full detail on the

night’s activities, and that I was to leave Kelly with campground personnel until

my return.

That evening I was taken lo Noriega’s yacht in the bay via a small

motorboat. I triggered and tranced further as I approached the familiar “black

mirrored” yacht according to plan. I was helped onto the back of the yacht by

Panamanian “palace” guards who kept me there at gunpoint until 1 was cleared

and my Baby’s Ear pass key accepted. I was escorted past the Air Force Base

officials, their wives, drug people, and the vast amounts of cocaine laid out for

them. I recognized several of the guests, including Oliver North and Puerto

Rican drug lord Jose Busto. I was led up the stairs to the conference room

where Aquino, Noriega, and Simpson were waiting. Simpson! I realized I

must “be on the other side of the black mirror” and I gazed out into the

darkness.

Simpson spoke softly, “You’re on the other side of the black mirror now

(NASA programming), peering though the blackness out to sea. Sea of black.

Riding on a sea of black, drifting, drifting from the winds. Deep into the

blackness. Drifting through the sands of time. Black sands, yielding shells—

such as this Baby’s Ear.” He pressed it into my hand signaling it was time for

me to speak, I addressed Noriega,

“If you please, Sir, I have a message from the President of the United Stales

of America: The successes we have enjoyed in our shared endeavors are now

history in the making, whose course cannot be altered-regardless of the

imminent lifting of the veil by well intentioned do-gooders. As this veil is

lifted, it may shed light on you. So you must have your house in order, as does

Ollie North, and cease any and all detectable activity I will do my best to keep

you under shield and out of view if you comply with these orders and cease all

detectable activity at once.”

Noriega reacted as anticipated, obviously insulted by me message. In the

ensuing moment of chaos, Aquino hypnotically waved his hands in front of

Noriega and dramatically spread out his satanic black cape (worn for impact on

Noriega’s superstitions) which appeared to fill the room. Noriega all but bowed

to him as Aquino’s control over him was complete.

Aquino’s manner was side-show-style rather than the usual somber tones

used on Military bases for the Hands On demonstrations. “General, for vour

entertainment and in respect and appreciation of your successful enterprising

‘Contra-bution’, the Chief has sent his Presidential Model to demonstrate the

latest technology in mind-control advancements. With the flip of a switch, this

Pigeon becomes a Kitten (I began undressing). Quite a different animal.”

Because of Noriega’s superstitious beliefs, the whole idea of switching

personalities apparently frightened him. I know Noriega believed whole

heartedly in mind control, but could not grasp the concept of multiple

personalities (which I now believe he perceived as demonic possession).

Therefore, he did not adhere to the idea of one slave being trained for both

business and pleasure. Aquino, whom Noriega already perceived as a “devil”

working for Reagan, was manipulating his beliefs masterfully. The impact of

this demonstration and Operation would prove to be Psychological Warfare of

the highest order.

Aquino ordered me to lie on the bed and invited Noriega to look closer at

what the “Wizard”-”his Chief (Reagan) – could create. Noriega stepped closer

to see what Aquino was pointing out to him between my breasts. A large,

carved baphomet appeared. Aquino had hypnotically regressed me to the time

of its making which caused it to seemingly “suddenly appear” right before

Noriega’s eyes. Noriega jumped back, ignorantly terrified of this scientific

phenomena. I believe Noriega stayed in the room for the rest of the demonstration

simply because he was frozen in fear. Aquino hit me with a cat-o-ninetails

and I shrieked in pain. Noriega jumped, Aquino hit me with it again, this

time activating me to respond sexually as though pain were pleasure-a mindcontrol

concept that Noriega more readily grasped. Then Aquino pointed out

that the baphomet had disappeared. While Noriega looked, Aquino used Byrd’s

Hypnotic induction as he cut me “between the breasts with a knife saying, “In

like a knife sharp and clean, I’ll carve out what I want.” My trance had been

deepened to the extert that my circulatory system was slowed. Therefore I did

not bleed until Aquino hypnotically changed my trance level. He then told

Noriega that the baphomet carving had “retreated to the depths of my body and

soul, possessing me and inciting the heal of hell.” He commanded me to show

any “face”, the vaginal mutilation carving of the baphomet face. As I did,

Aquino offered Noriega my sex. As predicted, Noriega’s eyes bulged in terror

and revulsion. While Aquino told him his “rejection of me had killed me,” I

ceased breathing and moving as conditioned. Noriega was dumfounded as

Aquino laughed wickedly and threatened, “Even death will not permit her-or

you-escape from the Wizard’s power.” He explained that I was the “Wizard’s

own” and “under his spell” and could therefore “re-energize myself and come

back to life.” He put a vaginal prod in my hand and ordered me to masturbate

myself with it, pushing the button to electrically jolt myself internally upon

command. Noriega’s eyes were enormous. He paled to a sickly grey, his

mouth fell open and he ran out the door while Aquino assured him that he had

“NO where to run, no where to hide from Reagan’s powers.”

Noriega predictably interpreted the demonstration as a threat from the depths

of HELL, which should have been enough to heed Reagan’s commands to break

the drug trafficking ties immediately. (Apparently this is not the case as is

evidenced by Noriega’s continued Florida incarceration.) Aquino and Simpson

doubled over with laughter as they congratulated themselves on a job well done.

Simpson finally ordered me to dress and escorted me to the back of the yacht to

ensure the guards put me on the shuttle boat rather than kill me because of Noriega’s

horror.

As I approached the dock of the campground, the boat driver told me I

would find Kelly asleep in the ‘recreation’ room. 1 ran to her, and, fearful of

Cheney’s threat, made sure her ears were still intact. I was immensely relieved

to find them still there and to know she was “OK” (I could not think to wonder

what she had endured in my absence.) I illogically felt like a “good mom” for

“doing my part right so Kelly could live.” Never before had I experienced such

a sense of danger to us both and my relief was proportionate. I lovingly held

her in my arms the rest of the night.

CHAPTER 14

CLINTON COKE LINES

I met up with Bill Clinton again in 1982 at a county fair in Berryville,

Arkansas. Alex Houston was “entertaining” there due to the close proximity of

the CIA Near Death Trauma Center (aka slave conditioning and programming

camp) and drug distribution point at Swiss Villa in Lampe. Missouri. I had just

endured intense physical and psychological trauma and programming, Clinlon

was campaigning for Governor and was backstage with Hillary and Chelsea

while waiting to make a speech. Clinton stook in the afternoon sun with his

arms crossed, talking to Houston about him and “his people” (CIA Operatives)

being looked into specific areas for the dual purpose of entertaining and carrying

our specific covert drug operations.

From my perspective, those who were actively laying the groundwork for

implementing the New World Order through mind conditioning of the masses

made no distinction between Democratic and Republican Parties. Their aspirations

were international in proportion, not American. Members were often

drawn from, among other elitist groups, the Council on Foreign Relations. Like

George Bush, Bill Clinton was an active member of the CFR, Bilderbergers, and

Tri-Lateral Commission. Based on numerous conversations I overheard.

Clinlon was being groomed and prepared to fill the role of President under the

guise of Democrat in the event that the American people became discouraged

with Republican leaders. This was further evidenced by the extent of Clinton’s

New World Order knowledge and professed loyalties.

Clinlon understood that I had just been through “hell” in Lampe, and took it

all in stride as he focused on his speech. He not only was well aware of the

mfnd-control tortures and criminal covert activities proliferating in Arkansas

and the neighboring state of Missouri, but he condoned them! Just as there are

no partisan preferences in this world dominance effort, neither are there any

strong individual state considerations or boundaries, either. I knew from experience

that Clinton’s Arkansas criminal covert operations meshed with the

Lampe. Missouri center where he routinely tended business and claimed to

“vacation.” staying in the compound’s resort villas.

In 1983, Houston took me to Lampe for routine trauma and programming

while he was scheduled to “entertain” at the amphitheatre. Also scheduled to

perform were Bill Clinton’s and George Bush’s friends Lee Greenwood and

CIA operative, slave runner, and country music singer Tommy Overstreet

Greenwood and Overstreet were active in both the Lampe, Missouri and

Lake/Mount Shasta, California CIA compounds. Clinton was flown in from

Berryville, Arkansas by helicopter for the shows as well as for a business meeting.

Before Clinton arrived. Greenwood and Houston were in the backstage

dressing rooms snorting fine after fine of cocaine, Houston, always eager to

make an extra penny to pinch, attempted to prostitute me to Greenwood, “She’s

the real performer,” Houston said. “She performs all kinds of sex acts upon

command. For a small price, she’s yours.”

Greenwood laughed, and referring to my Huntsville. Alabama NASA

programming said, “I’ve spent more time in Huntsville than she has, and I

know full well who and what she is-a ‘space cadet’ programmed for sex. She’s

a modified version of Marilyn Monroe.”

Tommy Overstreet had waited in and heard what Greenwood said. “How

much time have you spent in Shasta?”

“Shasta?” Greenwood looked arrogantly at Overstreet and smiled knowingly

as he said, “You don’t ‘spend time’ in Shasta, you maintain the concept if you

can. I haven’t lost any time there, either, if that’s your next question. I go

there quite a bit Enough really to override Houston’s suggestion with ease and

take what I want, when I want, and how 1 want it.”

Greenwood began expertly accessing my sex programming and told the

others in the room, “You all can come and go as you please, but I’ve been made

an offer that I am going to use.” He ordered me to undress and bend over the

desk where he roughly sodomized me as he said, “You’re going to think it’s

daddy all over again”.

When Greenwood was through with me, I was ordered out into the

amphitheatre concert area. During intermission, I met up with Swiss Villa

manager Hal Meadows, Tommy Overstreet, and Governor Clinton in the hall.

Clinton was wearing a cap that read “Diesel Trainer” which I was told to equate

literally as “these-will-train-her”. Puzzled, 1 looked at his cap and asked, “Are

you a conductor?”

Clinton smiled and said, “Of electricity”. Overstreet laughed as he

continued, “Actually it means I check cabooses. How’s yours?” I squirmed.

Apparently Greenwood had bragged about sodomizing me. They laughed even

harder as Clinton said, “Still running, I’m sure”.

Houston stepped out of the dressing room to greet Clinton, “Hi, bud.”

Houston extended his hand. “I hear you made Governor.”

“I hear you deliver a hell of a one liner,” Clinton replied, cryptically

referring to cocaine and NOT Houston’s so-called comedy routine. “I’m always

aspiring to achieve new heights.”

“Well, come on in,” Houston invited. “I have enough (cocaine) to put us all

into orbit.” I walked into the dressing room with them as Houston was saying

to Clinton, “I suppose there are no limits for you since you’re across the (stale)

line.”

“What line?” Clinton feigned surprise and ignorance. He looked at Hal

Meadows as he continued, “You mean I’ve left that state of mine? In the state

of mind I’m in, there are no boundaries anyway.” He walked over to the table

and snorted a line of cocaine. “I come here to get away from it all. This kind

of business is pleasure.”

“So where’s that young wife of yours?” Houston asked, referring to Hillary.

“She’s with friends.” Clinton sniffed the coke further up his nose. “She’s

minding her own business. I’m just here to unwind, see the show, maybe do a

little hunting (referring to A Most Dangerous Game). I’ve got a bird

(helicopter) ready to fly me back when I’m through. Hey, speaking of ‘Byrd’

(he gestured my way) I hear she’s moved up to the big house (White House).”

Referring to his friend and mentor Senator Byrd he asked, “So what’s his

position now?”

“The same.” Houston answered. “Probably like this…” Houston

pantomimed a lewd sodomy pose while everyone laughed. “He still runs the

show.”

Clinton kept his eyes fixed on Houston’s “caboose” and said, “Why don’t

you show her (referring to me) me way out and show me that again?” If 1 could

have thought at that moment, I would have realized Bill Clinton was/is

bisexual. My personal sexual experience with Clinton was limited, but I had

witnessed him engaged in homosexual activity during an orgy at Swiss Villa.

Immediately following the Swiss Villa incident, Houston was scheduled as

usual to perform at the county fair in Benyville, Arkansas. There, Houston and

I had been visiting with long time Clinton Mend and supporter, H.B. Gibson,

when we parted company to attend a private meeting at the mansion of Clinton’s

bisexual friend and supporter Bill Hall, Hall had reportedly made his fortune in

the pre-fabricated log home business, and the Clintons were slaying in a guest

villa patterned after those at Swiss Villa. Hillary had taken toddler Chelsea to

the villa while Clinton and his aide/bodyguard attended the meeting. Tommy

Overstreet was also in attendance as this directly coincided with the recent

Lampe meeting. We all sat in Hall’s sunken living room on two couches facing

each other with a black mirror coffee table between us. Hall had cut numerous

lines of cocaine on the table, and everyone present—including Bill Clinton—was

inhaling it through $50 bills rolled into straws. The conversation ranged from

CIA, drugs, and politics to the Swiss Villa Amphitheatre and country music. At

that time, a major effort was underway to move Nashville, Tennessee’s country

music industry to the Lampe area (it has since literally moved to nearby

Branson), in closer proximity to the CIA cocaine operations that leached the

industry.

Tommy Overstreet was attempting to convince Hall, who was obviously no

stranger to the drug (cocaine) business, to join the high level CIA cocaine

operation that was funding covert activity. They discussed the possibility of

Hall transporting cocaine from Berryville, Arkansas to Nashville, Tennessee to

be in on the ground level of what would soon be one of the largest and most

prolific CIA cocaine operations—the Branson, Missouri country music industry.

By enlisting now, the contacts and customers that Hall would procure could

“politically and financially bolster him for life”. Additionally, Overstreet

discussed the viability of using Hall’s own company trucks to transport the drug

throughout Atlanta, Georgia; Louisville, Kentucky; and Jacksonville, Florida as

well as Nashville, Tennessee and Lampe, Missouri. These key CIA cocaine

routes coincided with Hall’s established truck routes, according to the insiders

present at the meeting. Hall was being offered the “opportunity of a lifetime”

as his role would also include laundering money through his business to fund

the black budget covert operations. Hall appeared nervous and skeptical, and

Clinton and Overstreet attempted to maintain a “light” atmosphere by joking

that Hall could change the name of his trucking line to “CLINTON COKE

LINES”.

Hall was not convinced and began to raise questions as to the longevity of

the operation and how he was going to protect himself. Although Hall was very

adept at the cocaine business, he voiced concern that he found it easier to trust

those who were not with the CIA operations lhan he did U.S. government

protected participants. Clinton reassured him that it was “Reagan’s operation,”

but Hall was concerned that some faction of the government would “shut it

down like a sting operation” without warning and leave him literally holding the

bag, Houston laughed and explained that “no one was going to cut it (the drug

business) off.” He assured them it was far too lucrative and that there would

“always be a market” for drugs-a market controlled by those criminals

implementing their New World Order.

Clinton added to what Houston “said, talking in local colloquialisms.

“Bottom line is, we’ve got control of the (drug) industry, therefore we’ve got

control of them (suppliers and buyers). You control the guy underneath ya’ and

Uncle (Sam) has ya’ covered. What have ya’ got to lose? No risk. No one’s

gonna hang ya’ out to dry. And whatever spills off the truck as it passes

through (he laughed and snorted another line of coke) you get to clean up.”

Hall smiled at his friend, which was apparently interpreted as consent.

Clinton motioned for his aide to get his ledger. Overstreet began pulling out his

paperwork, and Hall neatly cleared the table of the remaining coke lines.

Clinton gestured to me and told Houston, “Get her out of here”.

Houston didn’t move and laughed. “She’s a Presidential Model. She’s kept

secrets bigger than yours.”

Clinton responded, “I don’t care. Get her the fuck out of here,”

Hall’s wife led me away and locked me in a back bedroom. After an

indeterminate period of time, I heard her telephone Hillary at the guest villa.

She then drove me up the mountain through the dark to meet with Hillary.

Although I had previously met Hillary we had very little to say to each otherparticulariy

since I was still dazed and tranced from the tortures I had endured

at the CIA Near Death Trauma Center in Lampe. Hillary knew I was a mindcontrolled

slave, and, like Bill Clinton, just took it in stride as a “normal” part

of life in politics,

Hillary was fully clothed and stretched out on the bed sleeping when Hall’s

wife and I arrived. “Hillary, I brought you something you’ll really enjoy.

Kind of an unexpected surprise. Bill ordered her out of the meeting and I look

her to my bedroom and made an interesting discovery. She is literally a twofaced

(referring to my vaginal mutilation carving) bitch,”

“Hmm?” Hillary opened her eyes and sleepily roused herself “Show me.”

Hall’s wife ordered me to take my clothes off while Hillary watched. “Is

she clean?” Hillary asked, meaning disease free.

“Of course, she’s Byrd’s,” she responded, continuing the conversation as

though I were not there, “Plus, I heard Houston say something about her being

a Presidential Model, whatever the hell that’s supposed to mean.”

“It means she’s clean,” Hillary said matter-of-factly as she stood up.

I was not capable of giving thought to such things back then, but I am aware

in retrospect that all Presidential Model slaves I knew seemed to have an

immunity to social diseases. It was a well known fact in the circles I was

sexually passed around in that government level mind-controlled sex slaves were

“clean” to the degree that none of my abusers took precautions such as wearing

condoms.

Hall’s wife patted the bed and instructed me to display the mutilation.

Hillary exclaimed, “God!” and immediately began performing oral sex on me.

Apparently aroused by the carving in my vagina,2 Hillary stood up and quickly

peeled out of her matronly nylon panties and pantyhose. Uninhibited despite a

long day in the hot sun, she gasped, “Eat me, oh, god, eat me now”. I had no

choice but to comply with her orders, and Bill Hall’s wife made no move to join

me in my distasteful task. Hillary had resumed examining my hideous mutilation

and performing oral sex on me when Bill Clinton walked in. Hillary

lifted her head to ask, “How’d it go?”

Clinton appeared totally unaffected by what he walked into, tossed his jacket

on a chair and said, “It’s official. I’m exhausted. I’m going to bed.”

I put my clothes on as ordered, and Hall’s wife drove me back down to the

mansion where Houston was waiting for me. The meeting apparently had been

a success. I heard discussions throughout the remaining years between

Houston, his agent Reggie MacLaughlin, and Loretta Lynn’s handler, Ken Riley

pertaining to Hall’s successful branch of the CIA cocaine operation emanating

from Arkansas, No discussions were as poignant and revealing as those

between Alex Houston and CIA operative country music entertainer Boxcar

Willie.

Boxcar Willie burst onto the country music scene after an ad campaign of

high tech hypnotically persuasive produced television commercials that

strategically made him an overnight, sensation and “star”. The country music

industry’s Freedom Train needed a conductor to lead the industry and fans to

Branson, Missouri, and Boxcar Willie was placed in the driver’s seat. Like the

Pied Piper of Hamlin, Boxcar Willie succeeded in his role of trance-ferring the

industry in close proximity to the Lampe CIA cocaine operations.

Boxcar Willie was one of the primary ground level contacts that Bill Hall

made after Clinton convinced him to cash in on the cocaine benefits of the

country music industry transfer. Houston and Boxcar Willie discussed Hall’s

lucrative dealings throughout the years in my presence while traveling the

country together, billed on the same shows, including performances at the Swiss

Villa Amphitheatre, I had much contact with Boxcar Willie personally since my

government sponsored cocaine runs often coincided and intermeshed with his.

But 1 never knew Boxcar Willie as well as my daughter, Kelly, knew him.

Kelly has named Boxcar Willie as one of her primary sexual abusers in three

different mental institutions, and has voiced frustration at the lack of justice.

“Why am I the one locked up while my abusers remain free?” she constantly

pleads. I assure her I am doing all I can to blow the whistle on Boxcar Willie

for hex, and expose his role in transferring the country music industry to close

proximity of the Lampe, Missouri CIA cocaine operation as outlined by Bill

Clinton.

1Loyalty to the sovereign of our country is non existent under New World Orders.

“President” Clinton poses no more leadership or loyalty to our country than Ronald Reagan did

since both follow(ed) New World Order directives from former U.N. Ambassador and CIA DIRECTor

George Bush,

2Hillary Clinton is the only female to become sexually aroused at the sight of my mutilated

vagina.

CHAPTER 15

NO MORE BEATING AROUND THE BUSH

It was a sunny, fall day in 1983 when U.S. Congressman Guy VanderJagt

met with my CIA operative mind-control handler, Alex Houston, my then 3 1/2

year old daughter, Kelly, and me on the steps of the U.S. Senate in

Washington, D.C. Kelly appeared familiar with Vanderjagt, although I had

never previously remembered seeing her in his company. Even so, I could not

think to realize he was, in fact, sexually abusing her just as he had me when I

was a child. VanderJagt knelt on one knee in front of her to talk with her,

assuring her that “today was a special day” because she would “see Uncle

George (Bush) while mommy sees Uncle Ronnie (Reagan)”. He stood up and

took her by the hand, saying in Alice In Wonderland cryptic language, “Let’s go

on an Adventure together” and led her quietly and robotically away.

I met up with Kelly again that afternoon at the White House, both of us

literally “on our toes” and standing at attention in Reagan’s office. In

retrospect, I wonder at the measures of control inflicted on my 3 1/2-year old

child to cause her to perform so robotically and behave “so well” as she silently

stood with the plastic smile and unblinking eyes, in the presence of President

Reagan, Vice President Bush, and (later Defense Secretary) Dick Cheney.

Reagan appeared to gaze at Kelly, with her long blonde hair cascading down the

back of her blue pinafore dress, completing her Alice In Wonderland

Appearance. Reagan seemed to pose no direct threat to her sexually as he said,

“She is adorable, a model child”,

Reagan then gestured towards Bush and said, “This is my Vice President

George Bush. People don’t usually know what the role of the Vice President is

because he’s always behind the scenes making sure everything that the President

wants done happens the way it’s supposed to.” He looked at me and said

matter-of-factly, “I catch the public’s attention (he made a gesture in the air that

was eye catching) while the Vice President carries out orders.”

Bush’s close friend, Dick Cheney, said, “And gives them”.

“Right,” Reagan said. “An order from him is like an order from me.”

Bush was wearing canvas boat shoes and a cardigan sweater as he knelt on

one knee in front of Kelly in order to talk to her on her level. Bush used the

children’s television program Mr. Rogers’ Neighborhood to scramble/confuse

young victims’ (like Kelly’s) memory of contact with him and his sexual abuse.

His physical resemblance to TV’s Fred Rogers was deliberately exaggerated by

his choice of clothes and mannerisms, and is further compounded by his

developed vocal impersonation. Using his best Mr. Rogers voice he said,

“Come here, Little One. I want to ask you something. Do you watch Mr,

Rogers’ Neighborhood?”

“Yes, Sir,” Kelly responded.

Bush told Kelly, “Well, I’m kind of like Mr. Rogers when he makes his

puppets move and talk—like your daddy (Houston, ventriloquist) does with

Elemer (his dummy). Only I’m like Mr. Rogers because I have lots of puppets-

-only mine are people. I even have a King (Fahd) just like Mr. Rogers.1 I pull

the strings (he pantomimed marionette hand movements) and I talk through

them. They say my words and we create all kinds of exciting Adventures.

Right now I’m building a new Neighborhood (the New World Order). The

stage is set, and I have hold of everyone’s strings. I need you to help me—

together we can pull your mother’s strings. She’s in my Neighborhood. That

means you’re in my Neighborhood, too.”

It seems obvious to me now that Bush was referring to those actively

engaged in implementing the New World Order through chaos and mass mind

control (aka media conditioning) as “The Neighborhood”. Of course I was

unable to consider disputing Bush’s statement, and Kelly was certainly not of a

mind to see beyond Bush’s twist on her favorite television program. Kelly’s big

blue eyes grew even wider as she responded, “I am?”

Bush stood up and took her hand, “C’mon. Let me show you my

Neighborhood,” He led her out the door.

Kelly became violently physically ill after her induction into George Bush’s

“Neighborhood.” and from every sexual encounter she had with him thereafter.

She ran 104-6 degree temperatures, vomited and endured immobilizing

headaches for an average of three days (as is consistent with high voltage

trauma). These were the only tell-tale evidences aside from the scarring burns

left on her skin. Houston forbade me to call a doctor, and Kelly forbade me to

comfort her, pitifully complaining that her head “hurt too bad to even move”.

And she did not move for hours on end. Kelly often complained of severe

kidney pain, and her rectum usually bled for a day or two after Bush sexually

abused her. My own mind-control victimization rendered me unable to help or

protect her. Seeing my child in such horrible condition drove my own wedge of

insanity in deeper, perpetuating my total inability to affect her needs until our

rescue by Mark Phillips in 1988.

Kelly’s bleeding rectum was but one of many physical indicators of George

Bosh’s pedophile perversions, I have overheard him speak blatantly of his

sexual abuse of her on many occasions. He used this and threats to her life to

“pull my strings” and control me. The psychological ramifications of being

raped by a pedophile President arc mind-shattering enough, but reportedly Bush

further reinforced his traumas to Kelly’s mind with sophisticated NASA

electronic and drug mind-control devices. Bush also instilled the “Who ya

gonna call?” and “I’ll be watching you” binds on Kelly, further reinforcing her

sense of helplessness. The systematic tonures and traumas I endured as a child

now seem trite in comparison to the brutal physical and psychological

devastation that George Bush inflicted on my daughter.

As soon as the door closed behind Bush and Kelly, Dick Cheney reached

over to Reagan’s desk from his seat and flipped over the hourglass. (Oz) “Her

(Kelly’s) time is running out. You’d better pay attention and follow orders as

though her life depends on it, because from now on (heh heh) it always does! If

you make one mistake—one—then I’ll get her, my pretty.”

Reagan said, “George is like a director. He makes sure the stage is set to

implement the New World Order as I envision it. Then he makes sure everyone

has a script and knows their pan. He tells them how to speak and when to

speak it. How to dress and (patting my head) how to wear their hair. He gets

everything and everyone in place and hollers, ‘Action!’” Reagan shouted

through his hand as though it were a megaphone and rambled on, “All the

world’s a stage. I’m the Wizard. But he is directing the show so you better pay

attention and learn your part well from him.”

Cheney interrupted, “George and I will be working closely on a few projects

together, and when you see him, you’ll see me. When you’re given orders

from him, you’re given orders from me.”

“She knows the chain of command, Dick,” Reagan injected, referring to his

perception of who was in charge, and in what order. President, Vice President,

Habib, Cheney, Byrd, etc. may have been the chain of command in Reagan’s

mind, but Cheney’s definition was necessary to my understanding. From my

perspective, the chain of command was clearly Bush, Cheney, Habib, Reagan,

Aquino and lastly, on a par with my handler, Houston, Byrd, all of which was

subjet to change at any given moment. Cheney just rolled his eyes at Reagan’s

comment and never slowed down as he continued, “Right now a stage is being

set and you will be directed by the Vice President on just how he wants you to

do your part in setting the stage for Mexico’s role in the New World Order.”

Reagan jumped in again, “With the world in order, there will be world

peace. By strategically placing an American Patriot dedicated to the cause of

spreading democracy in all parts of the world, we can influence the thinking of

every nation’s leader and paint for them a picture of freedom and American

values that they’ll never forget. They’ll spread it to the people and the whole

planet will be of one mind—one purpose-one cause. Freedom. You’ll be

talking with some of these friends and leaders from time to lime on my behalf.”

Bush slipped back into the meeting, without Kelly. Cheney continued,

“Taking orders from me and your new director-the Vice President. Lesson

number one. You know what Miami Vice is. Undercover drug agents taking

control of the drug industry. A Vice President is just that-an undercover drug

agent taking control of the drug industry-for the President.”

Bush spoke up. “Mexico is a problem. They’ve got lots of drugs, but not

the brains nor lhe means to sell it outside their own country. So how can we

take control of their (growing) drug industry when we can’t even get our hands

on it? It’s your duty as an American citizen to open the routes and initiate

freedom from poverty throughout their nation by offering them cash as a means

of enticing their drug industry right into our grasp by bringing it right up to our

doorsteps.”

“Operation Greenbacks for Wetbacks,” Cheney said, laughing. Bush

laughed with him.

Bush regained his composure to conclude, “Your assignment begins in

Miami with NCL (Norwegian Caribbean Lines) and ends when you return from

Mexico with word of success.”

Cheney caught my eye with a hand gesture that directed my gaze from Bush

to the hourglass, which was running out fast. By then I was deeply tranced and

lost touch with my surroundings all together while my trance was timelessly

deepened for further programming, I left the White House with a message for

the Vice President of Mexico, Carlos Salinas de Gortari, from the Vice

President of the U.S., and with one very sick child.

1Mr Roger projects through puppets on his show, and one of his key characters from the

Land of Make-Believe is King Friday the 13th.

CHAPTER 16

OPERATlON GREENBACKS FOR WETBACKS

My CIA mind-control handler, Alex Houston and I boarded the Norwegian

Caribbean Lines ship bound for Cozumel, Mexico, with a large, black, soft side

suitcase packed full of cash and a proposal of “prosperity” from the U.S. This

proposal, programmed in me by Vice President Bush, was supposedly initial

diplomatic groundwork for the North American Free Trade Agreement

(NAFTA).

It was my understanding then that the North American Free Trade

Agreement was considered a significant step in implementing the New World

Order through mind manipulation of the masses. According to Byrd,

propaganda disguising the true purpose of NAFTA included the concept of “free

trade” which the U.S. and Mexican governments had long since shared. “Free

trade” of child and adult mind-controlled slaves, cocaine, heroin and businesses

has been not-so-secretly proliferating for years. My own father joined the “run

for the border” via U.S. State Department and Mexican subsidized business

incentives and opened yet another branch of his U.S. Department of Defensegiven-

business in Mexico. This was part of the “free trade” agreement that I

know personally has been operating smoothly from at least 1984. In an effort to

maintain the illusion that the agreement would not create a negative economic

imbalance between Mexico and the U.S., tourist areas of Mexico were

deliberately built up, enhanced and Americanized with U.S. dollars. These

funds were provided through CIA covert Black Budget operations of drug and

slave trading, as well as directly through the Senate Appropriations Committee

of which Senator Robert C. Byrd is chairman as of this writing.

I certainly do not purport to understand international business, nor have I

attempted to “educate” myself through what 1 know to be propaganda slanted

and filtered periodicals. How money interfaces in world markets has been well

documented. For example, who supports whom in which financial endeavors

is apparently far too complex for even BCCI attorneys and investigators to sort

through. My personal perspective on Mexican, U.S., and Saudi Arabian

buildup of Mexico’s economy is limited to my own experiences. My understanding

is further affected by deliberate misinformation from the criminal

perspectives of those who were in control of my mind’s knowledge base and

actions. From time to time, Senator Byrd used me as a robotic sounding board.

He told me what he wanted me to hear, and this was structured more toward

stroking his own enormous, warped ego than it was to educate me in world

finance.

Senator Byrd claimed “the money game is simply a game of control,” and

lives by his adopted Golden Rule of “He who holds the gold makes the rules,”

He told me in so many words that “by appropriating funds to all (viable)

projects ushering in the free trade agreement, and allocating lesser amounts to

U.S. social systems such as our ‘criminal’ justice system, I control our country

and our place in world markets. All the world is a stage, and I own the

theater!…you can bank on it!”

Senator Byrd’s twisted reality echoed in my mind when America was bought

(stolen) and sold by Presidents Bush and Clinton in the recent passage of

NAFTA. “I would never run for President—Oh, I’d win if I did,” Byrd

bragged. “But why should I run for an office that is beneath me? I can make a

President look good, or I can make him look bad by strategically appropriating

funds.” Byrd and others I knew boasted that he was one of those (corrupt

power brokers) responsible for Bill Clinton’s being “chosen” and elected to the

office of Presidency. And the last minute bids and dealings with those

Congressmen holding NAFTA’s deciding votes proved “strategic

appropriations” indeed made Clinton “look good” in his NAFTA “victory”.

At the La Celiba Hotel in Cozumel, Houston maintained my food and water

depravation for mind-control purposes, even during our dinner meeting in the

hotel’s restaurant later that evening. Although the restaurant was “officially”

closed due to the late hour, a mariachi band, one waiter, four stationed armed

guards, my Mexican dignitary contact, his two assistants, and handler, Houston

and I were present. During the meeting, arrangements were made to meet with

Mexico’s then Vice President Salinas the next afternoon at a nearby military installation.

I would also deliver a message as usual from Senator Byrd at the

nearby Consulate’s office pertaining to U.S. financial support for creating

propaganda to insure the illusion of economic equality in Mexican tourist areas.

These funds were simply to further the ongoing shared goal of easing into New

World Order domination through carefully contrived smoke and mirror tactics.

The next afternoon, Houston escorted me to the high security fenced

government installation for my meeting with Salinas. According to Bush,

Salinas was regarded by the Reagan-Bush Administration as superior in power

to Miguel de la Madrid who was officially President of Mexico at that time.

The upcoming Mexican “election,” which was no more an election than

Reagan’s second term, was to place Salinas in the office of President to coincide

with Bush’s destined Presidency. To insure that this “strategically placed

American Patriot” would be voted into position, Reagan informed me that the

U.S. would “guard the integrity” of “elections” by covertly “overseeing” them,

among other strategies. Salinas was to be President at all costs.

Although President de la Madrid was considered by Bush to be the stepping

stone to the ultimate reign of Salinas/Bush’s (already established) diplomatic

relations, he was regarded with all due respect in a manner conducive to “no

margins for error”. His full cooperation was tantamount to establishing Bush’s

and Salinas1 goals via free flowing drug markets and Mexico’s cooperation in

subversively funding and supplying Reagan’s Nicaraguan Contras. De la

Madrid worked in close association with Salinas so that a smooth transition of

power would maintain U.S.-Mexican relations and efforts already in place.

“A message to Salinas is a message to the President,” Cheney had explained.

Not only would the message be relayed to de Ja Madrid, but for the

most part Salinas was the one responsible for working with George Bush since

they would both come into power during the most critical point in the promotion

of NAFTA—passing it by the American people and into law. President Reagan,

Mexican President de la Madrid, Vice President Bush, and Mexican Vice

President Salinas were all “of one mind—one effort” toward economic expansion

and growth for our southern “neighbors in the New World Order” through what

I experienced was based on “free trade” of drugs, children, and pornography.

Vice President Bush told me that this (criminal) activity was regarded as

Mexico’s “only means of rapid economic advancement and freedom from

poverty since the people were slaves to their own inability to advance in world

markets.”

When I arrived at the military installation with the aforementioned suitcase

of cash in hand, I was taken to Salinas’ “office” through a series of electronic

gates guarded by officers in white uniforms. Salinas sal at his desk, which was

small and functional (i.e., military issue), set on a highly polished wooden floor

in a vast room virtually void of decor and personal effects. This created an air

of military practicality. I set the suitcase in front of Salinas and began relaying

the message I had been programmed to deliver

“I have a message from the Vice President of the United State of America to

our neighbors in Mexico. America is willing to share its wealth through a trade

agreement with Mexico. We’ll trade our cash for control over Mexico’s

cocaine and heroin production. By controlling your drug industry, we can open

the border between our countries to allow a free flow of cocaine and heroin into

the U.S., bought and paid for in American dollars to build Mexico, Eventually

this could dissolve the border between our countries altogether as Mexico’s

economy grows to match ours. If we begin today, this dream could be realized

by the turn of the century-sharing the same continent, sharing the same wealth.

Why? The drug industry already dictates what the Mexican government can or

cannot do. By giving the U.S. control of your drug industry, Mexico regains

control over her government. Re-established power backed by U.S. dollars will

bring Mexico on an economic par with America. We can begin by spreading

the word through the (drug) cartels that the U.S. is covertly willing to open the

borders to free drug trade by making agents available to show you the passage

and routes through which the drugs are to be delivered. Only U.S. agents can

bring Mexican heroin and (South American) cocaine across the border, and

likewise they will bring the cash in. Explain to those select few who control the

drug empires that the cruise line (NCL) agreement is going into mass

expansion, tearing down the border between our countries enough to allow for

as many drugs to come in as Mexico can deal out. When do we begin? Immediately.

The cash is at hand. (I gestured toward the suitcase which Salinas

unzipped to find full of cash.) Deliver whatever amount of brown heroin you

have at hand as a means of confirmation to the agreement. Keep the change as

a token of the change and good fortune that has befallen Mexico from its

neighboring nation.”

As I finished Bush’s message, Salinas immediately took a note pad from the

desk and scrawled a quick note. He passed it to a guard who was stationed at

the door. He stood up, smiled, and leaned over his desk as he extended his

hand in a warm handshake. I was escorted out. Houston found me on the front

steps of the installation and together we were escorted through the barbed wire

fences and back onto the streets of Cancun,

I waited in a small clearing nearby for an indeterminate length of time,

playing with a large iguana. Finally, a taxi cab driver pulled up and honked his

horn three times, signaling me to pick up a fist-sized ball of Mexican brown

heroin. The heroin was crudely wrapped in brown paper, tied with twine, and

measured approximately the size of a baseball. As quickly as the cab driver

left, Houston, who was standing some distance away with two uniformed men,

signaled me to join him. We were then driven to the airport where we boarded

a U.S. Air Force aircraft to Washington, D.C.

Immediately upon arrival at Andrews Air Force Base just outside of

Washington, D.C, I was taken to Senator Byrd who then escorted me to Dick

Cheney’s Pentagon office for a meeting with Vice President Bush, 1 was ill and

vomiting from the high voltage administered in Mexico to compartmentalize my

memory. I was allowed to use Byrd’s magnetic pass key card to unlock the

maze of doors that led to the Ladies’ Room. I was still wearing my

inappropriate-for-D.C. cruise clothes and carrying the heroin in my tote bag

when I met with Bush to confirm Mexico’s agreement to his proposal. Bush

took the heroin for himself, obviously pleased with the quality of the product.

Cheney laughed and told Bush he needed to “confiscate the Contra-band”.

Bush replied, “Over my dead body” as he laughed at Cheney’s Contra joke.

“If you don’t share some of it, that could be the case,” Cheney said. “Pitch

it here.”

Bush struck a pitch pose, wound up, made a fake out pitch, and joked in

baseball banter, “It’s a ‘high fly’ ball. You’re going to have to steal.” He

tossed the heroin in the air, caught it, and strode for the door, Cheney got out

of his chair, pointed to the door, and ordered me “Out”.

Houston and I were flown in to Montego Bay, Jamaica and transported to

Ocho Rios to board our next NCL cruise ship.

CHAPTER 17

ABOUT FACES

Soon after Kelly was inducted into George Bush’s “Neighborhood” through

horrific sexual abuse, Bush enforced his controls on me. Our mind-control

handler, Alex Houston, had taken Kelly and me to Washington, D.C. for

separately scheduled meetings with Bush. Kelly had already been escorted by

agents to her rendezvous with him that morning, during which Lime I had been

ordered to one of U.S, Senator Robert C. Byrd’s offices located in the nearby

FBI Hoover Building. There, Byrd reinforced his holds on me by claiming

control of the Justice Department and “proving” once again that I had “no

where to run and no where to hide”. My horror reaction was compounded

when Byrd looked at his pocket watch and notified me in Alice in Wonderland

cryptic language, “You’re late, you’re late for a very important date,” referring

to my meeting with Bush.

I sprinted from the Hoover Building, encountering Houston who waited just

outside. Houston hurried me to the Smithsonian where I waited for my escorts

as instructed at the “Face Changing” exhibit. This computerized exhibit

illustrates how an individual’s face can take on a radically different appearance

by slightly altering any single feature.

The exhibit fascinated me as a programmed MPD since multiples often

experience the unnerving phenomena of routinely not recognizing themselves in

a mirror due to switching personalities. A multiple’s face often changes slightly

with each switch, which “validates” the religious communities’ perceptions of

so-called “demonic possession” in occultism. Logic quickly dispels this belief

when it is realized that everyone’s expression changes according to emotion, by

skin color and tones, blood pressure, and by tightening or relaxing specific

micro muscles. An MPD’s face changes are more exaggerated when these

natural conditions are combined with the results of sophisticated programming/

“Charm School” teaches subconscious control over these natural phenomena as

a ready-made disguise on government slaves such as myself, as welt as to

enhance sex slaves’ “beauty” to their maximum potential. I was incapable of

thinking or logically understanding my fascination with the display, as I stood

totally enthralled, waiting for my escorts as ordered.

As the escorts approached, I was relieved to see Kelly with them. Though

she was visibly tranced and traumatized, the fact that she was alive was all I was

capable of grasping. When she saw the “Face Changing” exhibit, she excitedly

exclaimed, “Uncle George just read me a book about this!” Before I could hear

anymore, I was led away, leaving Kelly with our handler, Houston.

I was then quickly taken to Bush’s Residence Office, which here-to-fore was

unfamiliar to me. Although it had slate blue, plush carpets and fine furnishings

like the White House office, lattice work and smaller rooms provided a different

air. I sat in a hard-back wooden chair as ordered, while Bush carefully

positioned himself in front of me on a little wooden footstool. This allowed me

clear visibility of the large book that he held in his lap. All illustrations faced

me, while all text except the last page was printed in the holder’s direction.

This book was a unique, high tech piece of art specifically designed to enforce

Bush’s favorite method of programming, “You Are What You Read”. The

juvenile face depicted on the front of this hardcover book gave it the appearance

of a children’s storybook. It was entitled About Faces.

Bush explained the dynamics of “changing faces” and “becoming what I

read”. Although I had been conditioned to this idea all of my life through

Disney stories, The Wizard Of Oz, Alice In Wonderland, etc., I was not

prepared for Bush’s version of “You Are What You Read” programming

explanations. The illustrations themselves were elaborate, consisting of mirrors

and hypnotic depictions. He seemingly made the book come alive in my mind

as he read page after poetic page of hypnotic, metaphorical language, all the

while creating powerful illusions. His impersonations of the characters further

enhanced the desired affect of fantasy becoming reality. This extraordinary effort

to scramble reality would have worked-perfectly-had it not been for

another victim and myself discussing it only a few days later. The purpose of

Bush’s book was dearly explained within the first few pages, which included

the following passage:

1 am the Vice President when circumstance demands,

And I am your Commander, you’ll follow my commands.

The first command’s important – It is one you will heed,

When I send you a book, you are what you read.

Throughout my tenure as a Presidential Model mind-controlled slave, I was

provided specific books according to Bush’s program. These books, delivered

through pre-established channels such as Ken Riley, Alex Houston, and even

Ronald Reagan, came complete with specific commands on how they were to be

interpreted and used. Some books were used to instruct me on operations; some

were an attempt to scramble my memory with fantasy; others were used to load

my mind with pertinent data such as bank account passbook numbers, and so on.

I was provided a paperback book entitled Afghanistan, from which I

absorbed history, current political events, and the strength of the Afghany

Freedom Fighters. I have since learned that the book I read was never publicly

released in the text it was provided me. According to instruction, the book was

delivered back to Bush as quickly as I finished memorizing it, I wonder in

retrospect if any part of it contained fact beyond how I was supposed to

perceive it.

I read stories of espionage, including Robert Ludlum’s Bourne Identity, and

William Diehl’s Chameleon. Mostly I was provided steamy sex novels for

further training as well as scrambles. Kelly was conditioned to fairy tales,

Steven Speilberg’s ET, NASA NSA operative George Lucas’ Star Wars, and the

nightmarish Never Ending Story. Steinbeck’s classic Of Mice and Men caused

Kelly constantly to quote the dependant character of Lenny for years saying,

“Tell me what to do, George”. She still does this each and every time I am

allowed to visit with her in the mental institution. The attending therapist overseeing

the visit has yet to pick up on this programming cue, and I am forbidden

by Juvenile Court order not to discuss Kelly’s past or therapy.

Bush’s most effective example of “You Are What You Read” in his book

About Faces occurred during his reading of the page depicting lizard-like

“aliens” from a “far-off, deep space place”, Claiming to me to be an alien

himself, Bush apparently activated a hologram of the lizard-like “alien” which

provided the illusion of Bush transforming like a chameleon before my eyes. In

retrospect, I understand that Bush had been painstakingly careful in positioning

our seats in order that the hologram’s effectiveness be maximized.

U.S. Army Lt. Col. Aquino’s occultism provided trauma sufficient to

maintain my Project Monarch Mind-Controlled existence despite his inability to

affect my core spirituality. Therefore, I was not routinely subjected to the other

favorite “trauma of choice”-alien themes-lite many slaves (including Kelly) I

knew had been. The effect of Bush’s illusion hologram on such victims is

binding and strong. Even Aquino envied the mind shattering effects of Bush’s

alien theme visual traumas to the extent that he wrote and published his own

comic book sequel to Lucas’ Star Wars. While occultism is easily dispelled

with reason and fact, Bush’s alien theme continues to be reinforced through

NASA’s involvement in mind-control atrocities. Additionally, California’s 24-

year incumbent Senator Alan Cranston of the Select Committee on Intelligence

has perpetuated this trauma base for decades, as have others. Despite my

having escaped routine “alien” theme traumas, Bush’s “You Are What You

Read” hologram proved devastatingly sufficient for him to gain total control of

my robotic mind from that moment on untii my rescue in 1988.

By the time Bush reached the last page of his About Faces book, I was so

traumatized I instantly “became what I read” when I read the last verse aloud as

ordered:

I am a True Patriot living an American Dream,

I will become my role when you pull my string.

I will become my part, so I can ‘be all I can be’

‘Cause just like the Vice President, I am what I read.

CHAPTER 18

IN THE MEANTIME

My life seemed to lead me at an accelerated pace after being subjected to

Reagan and Bush. My handler, Alex Houston egotistically claimed it was his

and Elemer’s (his alter-ego dummy) popularity that kept us traveling so

extensively within the country music circuit. When we weren’t traveling the

Caribbean and Mexico via NCL ships, or driving his cocaine loaded motor

home to strategically booked shows across the U.S., we were routinely moving

in and out of Washington, D.C. All along the way, my daughter and I were

either prostituted, used in commercial pornography, or filmed in Michael

Dante’s “Chief” bestiality pornography as ordered by Uncle Ronnie Reagan.

Occasionally our travels would take us to Michigan, where Houston made

certain we stayed with my family. Trips to my father’s house were devastating

but informative. My mother had developed deep, psychological scars above and

beyond her own MPD condition and became an insomniac. My father by this

time was routinely traveling to London, Germany, and Mexico, and taking the

family to Florida’s Disney World and Washington, D.C. My older brother,

Hill, still worked for and with my father, traveled with him annually to “hunt”

In Cheney’s Greybull, Wyoming lodge, and maintained his wife and three

children under trauma-base mind control according to my father’s instructions.

My brother, Mike, ran a video store to front some of my father’s and Uncle

Bob Tanis’ lucrative porn video business. My sister, Kelli Jo, became a belly

dancing contortionist excelling in “gymnastics” since she became “as flexible as

Gumby” according to her prostitution programming. She worked her way

through school in children’s day-care centers, admittedly spotting, for my

father, abused children for potential “chosen ones” candidates. In 1990 she

graduated to open a licensed day-care, “Little Learners” in Grand Haven,

Michigan for my father. My brother, Tom (Beaver), is a Compu-Kids (CIA

Project) programmed computer genius. My brother Tim broke his leg (in the

same place my mother had broken his leg years before) due to following my

father’s sports programming above and beyond human capability. And my

youngest sister, Kimmy, became hysterically obsessed with “Mr. Rogers,”

expressed immense fear of her huge “electric” doll house that lit up at night to

look like the White House, and was under a doctor’s care for anorexia by age

seven, I look forward to the day I can help them all, and justice is served on my

father.

Since I was using parts of my brain I would not have used under normal

circumstances, I developed the ability to read backwards as naturally as I could

red forwards. Houston tapped into this typically occult-based phenomenon as a

means of “scrambling” road signs to promote amnesia of where we were

traveling. He further compounded his effort by conditioning me to read

phonetically and literally, and alternated his “scrambling” methods. “Zoo”

became “ooz” and “ooz” translated to “oz”. Arkansas read “Our Kansas”, and

Missouri became (and was!) “Misery”. East became West, and highway 66

became 99. When 1 traveled, I “literally” did not consciously know if I were

coming or going. If an outsider happened to ask me about where I’d traveled, I

mechanically replied, “The towns all run together and look alike after awhile.”

Commands delivered in the same language twisting manner were natural for me

to follow. “Role with it” was easier for me to become according to Reagan’s

acting definition than it was to go with the flow by “rolling with it”. Phrases

like Wyoming Senator Alan Simpson’s “In a switch of an “I” (personality)/

“eye”(hypnotic blink)/ “i”(the letter), complaint becomes compliant. The parts

of my brain I was forced to function with were not conducive to “normal”

thinking.

Nor could 1 have appeared “normal” to outsiders had they cared to see

beyond my superficial programmed cover personality, I did have occasion to

mix with “outsiders” at the local library where I took Kelly for her books on

days when we were not traveling. By age 6, she tested at the 7th grade reading

level. I also emerged from my closed environment to tend to Kelly’s schooling.

She maintained straight As, but her poor attendance record threatened to violate

state requirements. Once when the librarian asked where Kelly would be

traveling to waive library book due dates, or the teacher inquired as to Kelly’s

absences, I gave the usual response of, “the towns all run together and look

alike after awhile.” If they pressed for specifics, I ran through a series of

religious phrases such as “praise the Lord”, to compensate for my lack of

answers. People tended to overlook and accept “religious fanaticism”

personality peculiarities, which combined with my “role” traveling the country

music industry, kept outsiders at a distance for years.

My “religious fanatic” cover personality was cultivated at the Brentwood,

Tennessee Lord’s Chapel “nondenominational” (Pentecostal) church, through

the CIA Operative preacher -Reverend” Billy Roy Moore (who has since fled to

Arkansas due to a local murder scandal),

Moore transported cocaine from the Caribbean for the CIA, at least during

the Reagan Administration, under the guise of so-called “missions,”1 i.e.,

Christian ministries. It most likely was not the intent of the Christians

dedicated to their Caribbean ministries to be used by the CIA and Moore to

inadvertently mule drugs into our country. Even CIA agents operating under

“need to know” partial information were denied the full scope of what they were

actually participating in. Many seemingly willing participants were

manipulated, provided “justification,” and deliberately misled to believe they

were serving their country, rather than destroying it from the inside out.

“Pastor” Moore combined his knowledge of Kelly’s and my programming

keys, codes, and triggers with his use of metaphorical language to maintain

and/or direct our mode of operation. Moore’s “following” consisted primarily

of government mind-controlled slaves and handlers, including the Mandrells.

Jack Greene and his slave, the Oak Ridge Boys, and others. He instructed us on

how to vote, which political issues lo support, and to follow other “religious”

political leaders such as his and Manuel Noriega’s friend, evangelist Jimmy

Swaggart. “Religious counseling” from Moore equaled to maintaining mindcontrol

programming through “God’s Orders”, And “God’s Orders” often came

by telephone,

Houston constantly prostituted Kelly to anyone “in the loop” who was

willing to pay. When she wasn’t being prostituted, she was being filmed

pornographically. By 1984, Michael Dante routinely filmed Kelly in

pornography, since kiddie porn was as lucrative as bestiality. He filmed Kelly

and me in Las Vegas, Nevada and various other locations throughout the

Caribbean, California, Florida, Tennessee, and in my home state of Michigan.

This created professional conflict with long lime kiddie pornographers

formerly associated with Houston. Houston’s close friend in Waycross,

Georgia, pedophile Jimmy Walker, managed the Okefenokee Swamp Park and

had participated in black budget funding operations for years on both the

cocaine and pornography levels. His counterpart, Dick Flood, refused to

participate to any more pornography after Dante came on the scene. Even the

Huntsville, Alabama NASA/DIA/CIA-appointed “law enforcement” officers

could rarely succeed in their bidding for Kelly’s video taped performances

unless directly ordered by Senator Byrd. Dante considered himself her future

owner as well as mine, and maintained control of our porn “business” ventures

through serious U.S. Government and international Mafia methodisms/

connections.

Jimmy Walker, the same photographer who had taken pornographic

“wedding night” pictures for Larry Flynt, recently had other photographs of me

published in Hustler. When Dante found out, he was furious. Larry Flynt and

Dante both worked for the CIA, had Vatican and Mafia connections, and

deliberately appealed to Reagan’s perversions using project Monarch Mind-

Controlled slaves. What Flynt could not “legally” publish, Dante ran through

the underground. Flynt and Dante lived on oposite coasts, which, despite their

similarities, still was not far enough apart to sooth their differences. Waving

his hands in dramatic Italian gestures. Dante furiously spouted a string of

obscenities over Flynt’s publishing photos of what he deemed “his property”,

Accusing Flynt of going to extremes to gain favor/protection from the

government, Dante shouted, “He’s a bigger whore than the girls he promotes!”

Michael Dante’s pornographic filming abilities served several purposes.

Aside from producing porn according to Reagan’s own (well known)

perversions and instructions, Dante was present during many key international

government “gatherings”. Oftentimes when I and others were prostituted to

various government (New World Order) leaders, Dante had hidden cameras

filming perverse sexual acts apparently for future blackmail leverage. These

videos were scandalous in proportion and were usually ordered by Reagan.

Dante turned the videos over to Reagan, and covertly kept copies to protect

himself. Dante converted a small room of his Beverly Hills mansion into a

security vault, where he kept his personal copies of the international blackmail

porn tapes there.

Among these internationally scandalous tapes are numerous videos covertly

produced at the supposedly secure political sex playground in northern

California, Bohemian Grove. According to Houston, Dante’s high tech

undetectable cameras used fiber optics, and fish-eye lens were in each of the

elite club’s numerous sexual perversion theme rooms. My knowledge of these

cameras was due to the strategically compromising positions of the political

perpetrators I was prostituted to in the various kinky theme rooms.

I was programmed and equipped to function in all rooms at Bohemian Grove

in order to compromise specific government targets according to their personal

perversions. “Anything, anytime, anywhere with anyone” was my mode of

operation at the Grove. I do not purport to understand the full function of this

political cesspool playground as my perception was limited to my own realm of

experience. My perception is that Bohemian Grove serves those ushering in the

New World Order through mind control, and consists primarily of the highest

Mafia and U.S. Government officials. I do not use the term “highest” loosely,

as copious quantities of drugs were consumed there. Project Monarch MindControl

slaves were routinely abused there to fulfill the primary purpose of the

club: purveying perversion.

Bohemian Grove is reportedly intended to be used recreationally, providing

a supposedly secure environment for politically affluent individuals to “party”

without restraint. The only business conducted there pertained to implementing

the New World Order, through the proliferation of mind-control atrocities,

giving the place an air of “Masonic Secrecy”. The only room where business

discussions were permitted was the small, dark lounge affectionately and

appropriately referred to as the Underground.2

Sex slaves were not routinely permitted in the Underground for security

reasons, leaving the lounge’s small stage as the only source of “entertainment”.

This entertainment ranged from would-be talents such as Lee Atwater, Bill

Clinton, and George Bush to CIA Operative entertainers such as Boxcar Willie

and Lee Greenwood, On one occasion I was instructed to meet with former

President Gerald Ford in the Underground where Lee Atwater was picking and

singing. As I waited through the smoke-filled room to Ford’s table, Atwater

interrupted his song to cryptically acknowledge my unwelcome presence by

singing choruses of “Over the Rainbow” and Byrd’s song for me “Country

Roads” while emphasizing the lines of “Almost heaven, West Virginia”.

My purpose at the Grove was sexual in nature, and therefore my perceptions

were limited to a sex slave’s viewpoint. As an effective means of control to

ensure undetected proliferation of their perverse indulgences, slaves such as

myself were subjected to ritualistic trauma. I knew each breath I took could be

my last, as the threat of death lurked in every shadow. Slaves of advancing age

or with failing programming were sacrificially murdered “at random” in the

wooded grounds of Bohemian Grave, and I fell it was “simply a matter of time

until it would be me”. Rituals were held at a giant, concrete owl monument on

the banks of, ironically enough, the Russian (rushin’) River. These occultish

sex rituals stemmed from the scientific belief that mind-controlled slaves

required severe trauma to ensure compartmentalization of the memory, and not

from any spiritual motivation.

My own threat of death was instilled when I witnessed the sacrificial death

of a young, dark-haired victim at which time I was instructed to perform

sexually “as though my life depended upon it”. I was told, “…the next sacrifice

victim could be you. Anytime when you least expect it, the owl will consume

you. Prepare yourself, and stay prepared.” Being “prepared” equated to being

totally suggestible, i.e., “on my toes” awaiting their command.

After returning to Tennessee, Houston attempted to distort my Bohemian

Grove experience by instructing me to “prepare myself for imminent death”.

He ordered me into a bathtub of cold water, placed ice cubes in my vagina, then

transferred me to his bed. There he tied a coroner’s type tag on my toe, and

hypnotically deepened my trance to the point where my heart and breathing

were nearly stopped. Then he gratified himself on my cold, still body through

faux necrophilia—reportedly one of his favorite perversions. Houston had

“perfected” his perversion to the extent that he handed the keys to my deathstate

programming to Lt. Col. Michael Aquino for use in Reagan’s Hands-On

Mind-Control Demonstrations. My death-state also further equipped me in my

role of “anything, anytime, anywhere with anyone” to be accessed at Bohemian

Grove.

The club offered a “Necrophilia” theme room to its members. I was so

heavily drugged and programmed when used in the “necrophilia” room, that the

threat of actually “slipping through death’s door” and being sacrificed “before I

knew it” did not affect me. My whole existence was balanced precariously on

the edge of death as a matter of routine anyway. My robotic state did not

permit me the “luxury” of self-preservation, and I could only do exactly what I

was told to do. My necrophilia room experience was only for the purpose of

providing Dante a compromising film of a targeted member anyway.

Other perversion theme rooms at the Bohemian Club included what I heard

Ford refer to as the “Dark Room”. When he not so cleverly said, “Let’s go to

the Dark Room and see what develops,” I understood from experience that he

was interested in indulging in his perverse obsession for pornography. In the

Dark Room, members had sex with the same mind-controlled slave they were

viewing in porn on a big screen television.

There was a triangular glass display centered in a main through way where I

was locked in with various trained animals, including snakes. Members

walking by watched elicit sex acts of bestiality, women with women, mothers

with daughters, kids with kids, or any other unlimited perverse visual display.

I was once brutally assaulted by Dick Cheney in the Leather Room, which

was designed tike a dark, black leather-lined train berth. As 1 crawled through

the leather flaps covering the narrow entrance, 1 heard Cheney play on the word

“berth/birth” as the soft blackness engulfed me. With the small opening

covered, the blinding darkness enhanced the sense of touch and provided an

option of anonymity. Cheney jokingly claimed that I “blew his cover” when I

recognized his all-too-familiar voice and abnormally large penis size.

There was a room of shackles and tortures, black lights and strobes, an

opium den, ritualistic sex altars, a chapel, group orgy rooms including poster

beds, water beds, and “kitten” houses. I was used as a “rag doll” in the “toy

store,” and as a urinal in the “golden arches” room.

From the owl’s roost to the necrophilia room, no memory of sexual abuse is

as horrifying as the conversations overheard in the Underground pertaining to

implementing the New World Order. I learned that perpetrators believed that

controlling the masses through propaganda mind manipulation did not guarantee

there would be a world left to dominate due to environmental and

overpopulation problems. The solution being debated was not

pollution/population control, but mass genocide of “selected undesirables.”

1Moore often operated under the cloak of World Vision.

2 The wooden sign was carved to read: U.N.DERGROUND

CHAPTER 19

E.T. PHONE ROME

Anyone attending the Bohemian Grove on a regular basis was referred to by

those in the know as a “Grover”. One such Grover was Ronald Reagan’s then-

Secretary of Education, Bill Bennett, Bill Bennett, who later became “Drug

Czar” during the Bush Administration, wrote the so-called Book of Virtues and

was/is? vying for the office of President. Bennett is apparently very close to his

brother and fellow Grover, Bob Bennett. Although Bob Bennett holds the

position of Legal Counsel to President Clinton, it is apparent that the brothers

recognize no party lines.

It was clear to me that there were no partisan differences amongst those

ushering in the New World Order, any more than there was loyalty to our

Constitution. The close relationship I witnessed between the Bennett brothers,

like the marriage between Clinton’s and Bush’s 1992 campaign managers James

Carville and Mary Matlin, should raise questions as to their agenda,

When Bill and Bob Bennett together sexually assaulted my daughter, Kelly,

and me at the Bohemian Grove in 1986, I had already known Bill Bennett as a

mind-control programmer for some time. Bennett anchored his Jesuit/Vatican

based programming of me in my Catholic conditioning initially instilled via the

Rite to Remain Silent. Through further manipulation of my “innerdimensional”

perceptions, Bennett believed he had forever compartmentalized

his personal secrets of perverse sex with his brother, Bob, and my then six-yearold

daughter. Bennett also had manipulated my mind in accordance with

Vatican “Orders” via Byrd’s Jesuit College programming center in West Virginia.

He used his role as Jesuit programmer for the purposes of carrying out

his efforts as Education Secretary to implement Education 2000.1

In order to program my mind for my role in bringing Education 2000 into

the “Volunteer State” of Tennessee’s school system, Bennett used sophisticated

mind manipulation to set the stage—the same kind of mind manipulation

propaganda executed on national and international scale, Bennett’s penchant for

manipulating minds is apparently rooted in his knowledge of Catholic/Jesuit

mind-control techniques.

When I met Bennett at a White House cocktail party in 1984, I was wearing

the rosy cross necklace that Guy VanderJagt and Father Don had presented to

me during my first communion, to signify the mode of program I was operating

under at the time. Byrd had ordered that I wear it for the occasion.

Byrd was already talking with Bennett when a White House butler led me in

to see Byrd.2 Byrd was saying, “I was just talking about you with my friend,

Secretary of Education3 William Bennett.”

“Bill,” Bennett corrected, sweeping his lecherous gaze over me as though I

were merchandise. “How do you do?”

‘”As I am told, thank you,” I said as I extended my hand as trained.

Bennett clumsily fingered the rosy cross necklace, blowing his alcoholic

breath in my face as he said, “Your necklace is as beautiful as you are, and no

doubt, as significant in purpose. Where did this come from and what does it

mean to you?”

“From my first communion,” I responded. “Guy (Byrd interrupted to

clarify ‘VanderJagt’) gave it to me to consummate my holy communion.”

Byrd corrected me, “Commemorate your holy communion.”

“She doesn’t need a translator, Bobby,” Bennett laughed, “I’m hearing her

loud and clear.”

Byrd left me with Bennett, who went into a long winded recitation on an

interpretation of the Bible deliberately intended to further distort my Catholic

instilled perceptions. “Christ was an alien in this land,” he was saying in

accordance with his learned Jesuit mind manipulation techniques. “Once he

landed in Earth’s plane, it was plain to see he was a leader in interdimensional

travel, We (Jesuits/aliens) followed his lead since he was the first to slip into

Earth’s dimension. In Christ’s transformation from porpoise4 to purpose, he lost

his will to Earth’s demands. He lost his porpoise, so to speak.” Totally

“trance-fixed,” I listened as Bennett rallied on and on. “When Christ emerged

from the deep to inhale of Earth’s atmosphere, time began ticking. It was not

recognized or acknowledged until Christ’s passing, however. We began

marking time with his death. BC-AD-or is that AC-DC?” Referring to high

voltage used to compartmentalize memory, he continued, ‘No, AC in DC stops

time. At any rate, we followed his lead, He referred to you as sheep. He

knew you needed to be led. He led us. He led you. He led us to you. We’re

here to lead you. The transformation is perfected now, updated with the latest

in alien technologies whereby we no longer have to follow Christ’s course to the

grave. We can transcend dimensions free of the confines of Earth’s

gravitational pull. The time is now, and we are here to lead you. We know

your mind. That’s how we make you mind. Make you mine. Make you a

mind. Make you mine. Journey with me now…”

Bennett manipulated my perceptions until, at last, he informed me, “You

and 1 will be working closely together on a global education project.” Sweeping

his hand around the crowded room, he continued, “This atmosphere is not

conductive to the kind of work we need to be doing. Something else just came

up that demands immediate attention. Let’s complete tonight’s business with

pleasure, beat it out of this dimension, suspend your suspended animation, and

get with the program.”

In one of many White House bedrooms available for such purposes, Bennett

led me into bed. I told you we were going to beat it out of this dimension, and

that’s exactly what I intend to do. A little Byrd told me you like a whip. Since

I am not the Senate kind, I’ll just represent the majority by giving you what you

need most.”

Bennett apparently found perverse pleasure in whipping me. With my wrists

bruised and my body slinging with pain, Bennett lit up a cigarette and

cryptically asked, “Was that your first cum-union with an alien?”

He threw me my clothes, and ordered, “Make yourself presentable. Make

sure your wrists are covered. I’m not waiting around for you, I’ll see you in

THE morning.”

Bennett left. After awhile I was escorted back to Byrd, with whom I spent

a brutal, short night. On the way to his room, Byrd told me, “You’ve got work

to do come morning with Mr. Bennett. Working for him is like working for

me. We are working in conjunction with the state Governors in an effort to

implement the global 2000 education formula for the future. I am excited at the

prospect of meddling in the future through what I accomplish today. Since I

hold this country’s purse strings, it is up to me to delegate as much funding as is

neccessary to implement the educational program. I’ve withheld funding and

withheld funding to the point where the individual states must rely on federal

funding to get them out of hot water financially. I am ready to do just that so

long as they follow my guidelines. Mr. Bennett is working out the details of

this plan, and will be sharing much of that with you. I need you to do what you

do best by enlisting the full cooperation of state government at the upcoming

Governor’s Convention. I have never demanded Conventional sex of you

before, but this time is different. Persuade these Governors at their weakest

moment—bring them to their knees while you are on yours, and convince them

that global education is the gateway to the future if there is to be any future at

all.”

Early the next morning, deep underground in the NASA’s Goddard Space

Flight Center mind-control lab near D.C., Bill Bennett began preparing me for

the program. NASA uses various “CIA designer drugs” to chemically alter the

brain and create exactly the mind set required at the time, Huntsville,

Alabama’s NASA drug of choice, “Train-quility,” created a feeling of absolute,

peaceful compliance and a sensation of walking on air. The drug administered

this time was sufficiently similar to Tranquility to create total compliance. The

bearing I had endured the night before had rendered me helpless, anyway, and I

could barely crawl up onto the cold, metal lab table as the drug took effect.

In the darkness surrounding me, I could hear Bill Bennett talking, “This is

my brother, Bob. He and I work as one unit. We are alien to this dimensiontwo

beings from another plane.”

The high-tech light display swirling around me convinced me I was

transforming dimensions with them, A laser of light hit the black wall in front

of me, which seemed to explode into a panoramic view of a White House

cocktail party-as though I had transformed dimensions and stood amongst

them. Not recognizing anyone, I frantically asked, “Who are these people?” .

“They’re not people, and this isn’t a spaceship/ Bennett said. As he

spoke, the holographic scene changed ever so slightly until the people appeared

to be lizard-like aliens. “Welcome to the second level of the underground.

This level is a mere/(mirror) reflection of the first, an alien dimension. We are

from a transdirnensional plane that spans and encompasses all dimensions.”

“Infinite dimensions,” Bob injected, “Infinite dimensions spanned simultaneously-”

Bill said, “No limitations”.

Bob softly sang, “Let freedom ring”.

“There truly is no where to run and no where to hide from us. We’re who

is looking from behind the Eye in the Sky,” Bill continued,

“We’re watching you,” Bob said. He sang a line from the popular rock

song “I’ll Be Watching You”.

“I have taken you through my dimension as a means of establishing stronger

holds on your mind than the Earth’s plane permits,” Bill Bennett was saying.

“Being alien, I simply make my thoughts your thoughts by projecting them into

your mind. My thoughts are your thoughts.”5

The brief message Bennett programmed me with pertaining to Education

2000 was to be directed to state Governors at the upcoming convention while

delivering a packet of information:

The children. We must consider the children. Think for a moment beyond

tomorrow. Our children are the future. Their future lies in education. We can

control the future today by regulating education. Our thoughts and plans for the

future-put in their text. A text they can understand. Children’s textbooks.

The highest levels of government, the most brilliant minds on the face of this

m – Earth would like input into the future by way of the children. You, as

Governor, are in a position to provide that link. Global Education 2000 is

ready for implementation. Look into it. Look into it and see the future.”

1Education 2000 was designed to increase our children’s learning capacity while destroying

their ability to critically think for themselves. You can learn more about Education 2000, also

referred to as America 2000 and Glohal 2000, through reading: Educating for the New World

Order by B.K. Eakman, published by Halcyon House ISBN # 0-89420-278-2-3441000, and A

Critique of America 2000: An Educational Strategy by Kathi Simonds, published by Citizens for

Excellence in Education,

2Anytime I was taken to “see Byrd,” I was deliberately reminded of his name, (Robert) C.

Byrd and “its alien mirror reversal,” Sea-Byrd as a triple bind lock in.

3Bill Bennett, who was still acting as Chairman of the National Endowment of the

Humanities in 1984, was designated (tapped) to became U.S. Secretary of Education through his

allegiances to George Bush and the New World Order. In 1985, Reagan (Bush) officially

appointed Bennett as Secretary of Education. Apparently Byrd considered my “Neeed to Know*

Bennett as Secretary of Education pertinent to my role in the Global Education project.

4Jesuit/NASA based whale and dolphin programming suggests that water is a mirror to

other dimensions and is the means by which aliens have mixed with our population.

5If this were so, why did he have to audibly tell me?

CHAPTER 20

NEW WORLD ORDER OF THE ROSE

Still feeling drugged from the programming session instilled in me by Bill

Bennett at the nearby Goddard Space Flight Center, I attended a White House

cocktail party later that night as instructed.

Dressed “to Order,” I wore a slinky, black dress that gathered at one hip

decorated in rubies, with a red rose barrette in my hair. “The Chief called for

her,” my Secret Service escort told the butler as he left me at the door. The

lights were dim and the air was formal as the butler led me through the

unusually large crowd of people. He released my elbow, aiming me in the

direction of then President Ronald Reagan,

As I walked through the crowd toward Reagan, I saw familiar faces

associated with the ”Order of the Rose.1″ Across the room, Bill and Bob

Bennett were laughing with Dick Cheney. Then-Governor of Pennsylvania

Dick Thornburgh was engaged in conversation with Senator Arlen Spector.

Within the farthest reaches of my expanded peripheral vision, I saw George

Bush talking with his U.N. confidant Madeleine Albright2, Knowing I could

see him as though I had eyes in the back of my head, Bush subtly signaled me

to join them.

“You know Madeleine Albright,” Bush began, Expertly using terminology

from previously instilled Catholic Jesuit beliefs, he continued, “She’s the

reverend mother of all sisters (slaves). She’s so close to God that an order from

her is an order from Him.” Albright snickered, apparently impressed with

Bush’s “witty” manipulation of program verbiage. “She rose in the U.N.

through me to implement the New World peace process.”

Albright said to me, “I hear you’re a world (whirled?) piece”.

“Who told you that?” Bush demanded.

“Larry Flynt, for her stint in Jamaica3,” she quickly explained.

Bush threw up his hand in apparent disgust at the idea of sex relating to

someone with two digits in their age. “Spare me,” he said.

“That’s my job,” Albright said matter-of-factly with a smile of pride. She

shooed me away while condescendingly saying, I’ll see you tomorrow at the

OAS (Organization of American States) office. Now, you run along and go

play.” Noting that her nonspecific orders left me unable to determine which

way to turn, literally, she aimed me back in the direction of Reagan.

Reagan was dressed in a dark, navy blue suit and red silk tie. His red

rosebud4 boutonniere instantly triggered me into a Jesuit “Order of the Rose”

sex slave mode. “Well, hello, Kitten,” Reagan said, blowing his cognac breath

in my face as he bent over to kiss my hand.

“Uncle Ronnie…” I said, sexually responding as conditioned.

Reagan turned to the man beside him and said, “Brian, this is one more of

those benefits of the New World Order I was telling you about. Kitten, this is

Brian Mulroney, Prime Minister of Canada.”

The connotations of my childhood experience with the former Prime

Minister” of Canada, Pierre Trudeau, suggested that Mulroney was Jesuit—as

did the mode I was operating in. He, too, was wearing a red rose boutonniere

signifying his involvement and commitment to the Order of the Rose.

“It’s a pleasure to meet you, Sir,” I said as I extended my hand.

“The pleasure is mine,” Mulroney said as he kissed my hand, “Please, call

me Brian.”

“Yes, Sir, Brian,” I responded, my brain still whirling with the NASA

designer drugs.

Chuckling but insisient, Mulroney reiterated, “I am not a Sir”.

Reagan jumped in, “He is a Prime Minister, which means he is more

important than your average Minister, and certainly more important than any

Sir. Brian is my friend.”

“Oh, Brian,” I said, finally understanding,

“O’Brien is her father’s name,” Reagan told Mulroney, “She is of Irish

descent and hails from Michigan.”

Brian turned to me, “I’ve been in your neck of the woods here recently-in

one of my favorite get-aways-on Mackinac Island,”

“Mackinac Island was her launch point into the project,” Reagan explained

in terms used by those familiar with mind-control operations. Mulroney

apparently was aware of my mind-controlled state and leered at me as though I

were merchandise, Reagan noticed his interest and proceeded to function in the

capacity of a pimp. “I highly recommend you take her along with the rest. She

is an excellent game piece for you to use in any position. And there’s security.

Her head is in the ethers and come tomorrow, she wouldn’t knew you from the

man in the moon. I’ll give you the keys later.”

Expertly using Order of the Rose signals and triggers, Mulroney said, “Just

give me the key to her heart, and she’s mine.”

“You are wise in the ways of the world,” Reagan commented.

“I have to be on top of things. It’s a New World Order,” Mulroney said

matter-of-factly.

As a guard led me away, I heard Reagan tell Mulroney, “You will be on top

of the world soon”.

I was searched by uniformed Canadian bodyguards and pointed in the

direction of one of the White House’s many bedroom suites. When I opened

the door, I saw three blonde sex slaves undressing and preparing the bed—one of

whom was my close friend and Senator Arlen Spector’s slave.

I excitedly called my friend’s name. “What are you doing here?” I asked as

we hugged each other.

“Small world,” she said, as she always did when we were thrust together in

various places for prostitution and/or pornography. This universal term was

often used among those familiar with the Small, Small World Disney-developed

mind-control program.

I hugged my friend again, “Wow, it is a small world. I’m so glad you’re

here.” I had no comprehension of our predicament and could not see beyond

the moment

“Hell girls! It is a small world!” Mulroney entered and strode across the

room, tossing his coat on a chair and loosening his tie. “Watch it get smaller

and smaller as we rocket further and further away.” He slipped out of his

shoes, suspenders, and pants while he continued his hypnotic metaphors.

“Soaring through the sea of black space. As the world gets smaller and smaller

and smaller, then sinks into the black sea of space.” Removing his boxer

shorts, he announced, “I brought you here for a purpose…” and proceeded to

access our sex programming.

In retrospect I know it was no coincidence that my friend and I were

brought together to satisfy Brian Mulroney’s perversion for mind-controlled

slaves. Identically mirror programmed, we operated in unison. The delicate

red rose tatoo on my friend’s left wrist signified her enslavement to the (New

World) Order of the Rose to which Mulroney belonged.

My friend and her young daughter reportedly were often transported across

the U.S.-Canadian border at Niagara Falls for prostitution to Mulroney. The

sexual abuse of her precious child was used as a trauma base to maintain control

of her mind just as Kelly’s abuse traumatized me, Mulroney had previously

accessed sex programming at Niagara Falls in my friend and me-along with our

daughters-to satisfy his sanctioned perversions as though it were “business as

usual”. Had I been capable of connecting events, I would have felt enormous

relief that our daughters were not forced to participate in his sexuaJ assault this

time.

“Mission” complete, I slipped on my dress and prepared to leave, Mulroney

pointed to me and cryptically said, “I’ll be seeing you around. Maybe I’ll see

you in Mackinac. May be. somewhere in time.” In three lines, Mulroney

expertly tied the immediate moment to childhood cues and current Mexican

NAFTA operations, as well as prepared me for my next encounter with him on

Mackinac Island,

1″The Order of the Rose” was an emblem of those ushering in the New World Order.

“Orders from the Rose” were orders From George Bush.

2Reagan first introduced me to U.N. Ambassador Madeleine Albrighi as “my mentor” in

Jesuit operations in the Caribbean “Madeleine Albright is a Saint,” Reagan told me, forming

my perception of her “The Mother Teresa of the Caribbean.’

3While I was in Jamaica under Albright’s (via Bush’s) instruction, Larry Flynt

photographers took advantage of my being there to use the picturesque Dunns River Falls as a

backdrop for pornographic photos to be used in Hustler.

4Reagan’s red rose triggered a sexual mode usually used to compromise/blackmail

dignitaries and lock them into loyalty to the Order of the Rose.

CHAPTER 21

GLOBAL EDUCATION 2000

My programmed role toward implementing Education 2000 according to the

plans of those ushering in the New World Order brought me back in contact

with former Governor of Tennessee, Lamar Alexander, and eventually Canadian

Prime Minister Brian Mulroney,

I had met Lamar Alexander in 1973, at a satanic ritual I was subjected to in

an affluent neighborhood of Nashville, Tennessee. Lamar Alexander presided

over this sex-oriented occult ritual with full understanding of my Project

Monarch Mind-Control victimization and the impact his actions were having on

my mind. It was my experience then, and intermittently throughout the years,

that Lamar Alexander’s sexual perversion was to bring his victim to the point of

death through oral suffocation.

During the course of publicly exposing Tennessee’s need for education

reform as instructed, I was in contact with Commissioners, Superintendents,

Mayors, and Lamar Alexander. Lamar Alexander, who followed Bennett as

Bush’s Secretary of Education, worked in close association with Bill Bennett to

manipulate the minds of the masses to accept Education 2000 as the ONLY

means of education reform. When Ned McWherter was moved into the office

of Governor to rubber stamp federal projects, Lamar Alexander maintained

influence over state politics. At the same time, he maintained influence over

national politics through his role as chairman of the National Governor’s

Association in 1986.

As the J984 Governor’s Convention drew near, I met with Lamar Alexander

at the Stockyard nightclub where he was drinking with his long time associate

and partner-in-crime, Nashville’s Mayor Richard Fulton. In the basement bar

of this old, converted stockyard was a modified antique “Shoe Shine” booth,

where the term took on new meaning. A key to a private shoeshine booth could

be obtained by those in the know through Stockyard owner, Buddy Killen. This

closet-sized booth was lined in mirrors and had a small bench where Lamar

Alexander sat after our business was concluded. I knelt at his feet as ordered to

perform oral sex. Programmed sex slaves such as myself were trained to go

long periods of time without drawing a breath, and users such as Alexander

stretched this time to the maximum.1

On this occasion, Alexander apparently exceeded the maximum. 1 do not

recall completion of my programmed task. It was afterhours when my mindcontrol

handler, Alex Houston, dragged my limp body from the booth, roused

me, and ordered me out of the building. Buddy Killen opened a back door that

once was a cattle run, and Houston half-dragged me out the back exit unseen.

The night of the Convention, Alex Houston’s youngest daughter, Bonnie,2

was to join me. Bonnie and E were close to the same age, and together we

dressed for the occasion. As a prostitute, Bonnie was familiar with Lamar

Alexander and his perversions but nevertheless was excited at the prospect of

seeing “old friends” at the Convention via Louise Mandrell,3 who would be

entertaining there. The comradery between Alex Houston and trby Mandrell

that developed during Bob Hope’s U.S.O. tours in the 1960s lasted for decades

due to their shared involvement in running mind-controlled slaves for Byrd.

Bonnie shared in this friendship with the Mandrells and was looking forward to

seeing her “friends” in the band.

I, too, was looking forward to talking with Louise Mandrell, but for a very

different reason. Barbara had just endured her near-fatal car crash, and I was

deeply concerned for her welfare. Throughout the 1980s while traveling under

the guise of the Country Music Industry, Alex Houston toured with Barbara

and/or Louise Mandrell on a regular basis. Occasionally Barbara and I saw

each other in “church,” the Hendersonville Lord’s Chapel. This church was an

offshoot of Billy Roy Moore’s Lord’s Chapel, and was pastored by his mindcontrolled

slave, Mike Nelson, who became close friends with Barbara.4 Alex

Houston and I were present when Mike Nelson broke program, and attempted to

flee for his Life with Barbara Mandrell. The pastor was subdued with a stun gun

and immediately relieved of his position, while Barbara frantically sought

answers to the questions the two of them had managed to raise.

Alex Houston was touring with Louise Mandrel] in 1984 when Louise had a

“premonition” of Barbara’s imminent demise—much the same way Loretta Lynn

“psychicly predicted” her son’s murder. Like the murders of Loretta’s son and

Country Music entertainer Keith Whitley, I was aware of Barbara’s planned

accident before it occurred due to Alex Houston’s direct involvement. These

traumas were also used as a means of locking in my mind-controlled belief that

I had “no where to run and no where to hide”. Worst of all, I could not think

to speak of what I knew due to my own absolute mind control. While Barbara

physically survived her ordeal, her voice was silenced as planned.

When Bonnie and I arrived at Opryland Hotel, we hurried to the ballroom

where Louise Mandrell would be performing. My concern for Barbara

detracted me from my appointment with Lamar Alexander until one of Louise’s

dancers who knew of my role put me “back on track”.

“What are you doing here?” he demanded. “You’re supposed to be at Rhett

Butler’s restaurant NOW.”

I hurried to the restaurant where Lamar Alexander was having dinner with

Senator Byrd and several governors. Byrd was participating in the function for

reasons unknown to me, but 1 was aware that he had fiddled at the Opry. Byrd

stopped eating just long enough to acknowledge my presence, “Where have you

been?”

“I was checking on Barbara over at the show,” 1 replied as Lamar Alexander

excused himself and walked over.

Putting an arm around me and turning me away from the table, he

whispered, “You could wind up just like her if you don’t get with the program.

You’ve got programs to hand out. But right now, you’re interrupting my

dinner. Have you had anything to drink?”.

“No, Sir,” I replied, traumatized at the magnitude of his threat.

Lamar Alexander instructed me to leave immediately, order a grasshopper

from the conservatory bar, and wait for further instructions.

It was a matter of routine for me to order a “grasshopper” from Opryland

Hotel’s conservatory. The ice cream “drink” was specially made—always with a

hypnotic drug in it. As sometimes happened, the waitress was unfamiliar with

the process, and conservatory harp player and CIA operative Lloyd Lindroth

interceded. The drug had the same effect as that administered at the D.C.

NASA programming center by Bennett, and my mode was robotic compliance.

After the drug kicked in, Lloyd Lindroth instructed me to proceed to the

main ballroom of the Hotel, where Lamar Alexander would be meeting me.

The outer lobby of the ballroom was decorated in wall-size murals that extended

to the top of the gothic ceiling. A life-size steam engine depicted on the far wall

appeared to be racing toward the grand staircase. I had seen the murals

numerous times before, but never had they seemed so real as they did to me that

night on the NASA drug. The heavy double doors leading to the ballroom

caused me to feel very small as I pulled with all my strength to open it. Inside,

the room was a sea of black suits and ties, and I was relieved when Lamar

Alexander ushered me back out into the lobby.

Alexander positioned me near the train mural as a cryptic indicator to those

in the know ihat I was a “trained” mind-controlled slave. I was provided a box

of brown envelopes packed with the Education 2000 information I was to hand

out to the governors. Alexander instructed me on exactly what I was to say in

conjunction with the message Bennett had programmed me with in D.C. Then

he returned to the ballroom, where he apparently acted in the capacity of a

pimp.

“Are you waiting on the train?” a paunchy governor asked,

“No, Sir,” I answered. Then, as instructed, I said, “But 1 do have a packet

of information with your name on it. Shall 1 take it to your room for you?”

“Oh? And what is my name?” he asked.

“Governor,” I responded. There actually were no names on the envelopes.

“Astute,” he responded. “And what is it you have for me?”

“This packet,” I answered, handing it to him. “And anything else you want

compliments of Lamar Alexander and (tapped) Secretary of Education, Bill

Bennett.”

According to some of the men, Alexander had cued them as to my position.

Others, such as then Governor of Pennsylvania, Dick Thornburgh and Ohio

Governor Dick Celeste already knew me,

“I’ve got a packet of information with your name on it.. “I was saying as I

bent over to lift one from the box.

“I don’t think so,” Governor Blanchard of Michigan interrupted. “Bill

(Bennett) wouldn’t stoop so low as to insult me that way. I’m doing the same

thing here you are, but from a very different approach. The figures I offer

reflect the success of Education 2000 in the Michigan school system.”

I recognized Governor Blanchard, and was well aware of Michigan’s

ranking first in the nation in education. “Speaking of which,” he continued, “I

believe I see your mother more often than you do these days since she is

working in the schools. That little sister of yours (Kimmy) is a prime example

of what proper instruction can produce. Your little sister is coming to

Mackinac to further her skills. Your whole family is a prime example of how

good Education 2000 works.”

I finally met up with Bonnie again in Lamar Alexander’s room as the night

came to a close. “Bonnie, how’s that snake of yours?” he asked. Bonnie, who

had been filmed pornographically by CIA commercial photographer Jimmy

Walker with Dick Flood’s snakes, had a pel boa consticter,

“Great!” Bonnie laughed. “How’s yours?”

” Constricted,” he replied,

Bonnie unzipped his pants as she admittedly had done numerous times in the

past, playfully sayings “Let it loose!”

Lamar Alexander began removing his pants. Referring to me in Project

Monarch terms he said, “When 1 first saw you, you were a worm with no hint

of being a butterfly.”

“Daddy (Alex Houston) said she was a diamond in the rough,” Bonnie

volunteered,

“She shines now”. Turning to me he said, “I know you are a shoe shiner,

and mine need a shine.”

Bonnie, also familiar with the Stockyard booth and Lamar Alexander’s

meaning, laughed when he said, “Why don’t you both take a foot.”

Task complete, I went to Byrd’s nearby room as instructed. He was in the

bathroom preparing himself for bed, “Louise had her feathers fuffled over

Barbara’s collision with destiny and 1 had to smooth them down a bit,” Drying

his dough grey hands on a towel, he turned to me and said, “Looks lite you’ve

had your wings spread a bit tonight.”

“I wore a path up and down the stairs,” I stated.

Much to my relief he said, “I’m not going to fiddle with you farther. I just

wanted to give you something to remember me by–Bye.” He

compartmentalized my memory with his stun gun.

Soon thereafter, Kelly and I were transported to Mackinac Island. Michigan

to meet with Canadian Prime Minister Brian Mulroney at then-Governor James

Blanchard’s mansion.

Houston led Kelly and me to a horse drawn carriage as quickly as we

stepped off the ferryboat onto the timeless, antiquated island, I noticed that the

Canadian flags were again flying at the Grand Hotel, but was of no mind to

question, Kelly sat quietly beside me, apparently drugged as our carriage took

us through the woods to the Governor’s mansion.

The guests in the mansion were reminiscent of the recent Tennessee

Governor’s convention: Michigan Governor Blanchard, Ohio Governor Dick

Celeste, and Pennsylvania Governor Dick Thornburgh. Guy VanderJagt and

Jerry Ford were also present. Mulroney appeared to be the guest of “honor”.

He reached out his hands and greeted me, “I told you I would see you

somewhere in time! I slipped time, space, and distance to be here this evening.

You and I have some ground to cover.”

“Yes, Sir. President Reagan’s Global Education Secretary Bill Bennett has

sent me to deliver this education packet directly to you.” I was to deliver a

large, brown envelope of documents similar to those handed out at the

Governor’s Convention.

Blanchard excused himself. “I’ve already heard the schpiel,” he said as he

turned to his other guests, leaving Mulroney and me alone,

“Global Education is the wave of the future,” I recited as programmed. As

the world gets smaller and smaller due to higher technology spanning the globe,

our children must be educated in the ways of the world. Education as it is,

barely equips them for life in their own backyard. We need to become involved

in our children’s education for the sake of their future and our legacy. Global

education is the way. The only way, Look into it…” I handed him the

envelope. “…Peer into the future.”

Mulroney uncrossed his arms long enough to accept the envelope, which he

casually tossed on a chair. “I am interested in the children, the legacy we leave

them, and how we shape their future by the way we record our history in their

test.” Using Order of the Rose cues, he signalled me to photographically record

his words for future delivery. “Tell Mr. Bennett(sss),” he hissed, cryptically

revealing his knowledge that Bill and Bob Bennett worked together using

reptilian-alien themes, “implementation is high. I’m already sold on Global

2000 and have additional points I would like for them to consider. Headsets at

every computer station for openers. Double the impact with dual learning.

We’re being thrust forward at warp speed, and the generations of the future may

need an added booster to bring them up to speed. A united global effort using

your education package as a basis is destined to bring the future into a clear and

present reality.”

Business complete, Mulroney triggered my sex programming and led me

upstairs to the bedrooms where Kelly was robotically waiting, entranced under

Orders of the Rose,

1I have witnessed girls die of suffocation from this practice oven though 3 to 5 minutes

without breathing is common.

2While Bonnie was not raised in Project Monarch, Houston’s pedophilia and stage

hypnosis techniques rendered Bonnie unable to control her own actions. Bonnie is a multiple

with a record of prostitution in need of therapy and care.

3Irby Mandrell openly discussed Senator Byrd’s direct involvement in the Project Monarch

government mind-controlled victimizations of his incestuously abused daughters with Houston.

“Having babies can be a lucrative way to feather your nest-that’s what the Byrd taught me.”

Mandrel! continued, “Louise was a little withdrawn, and she needed to come out of her cocoon

and spread her wings. I ran the idea by Byrd, and he said ‘If she doesn’t have a talent, let’s

make her one. What is a band without a fiddle?’ And viola, there she is. Another star on the

rise launched from NASA City, USA (Huntsville, Alabama).”

4Friendships between mind-controlled slaves are usually forbidden, and conversations are

kept to a minimum lest cross-programing triggering occurs. Throughout the years, my own

relationship with the Mandrells was limited to a superficial basis, whereas Irby Mandrell

employed Houston’s hypnotic abilities to maintain mind control over his daughters while

touring.

CHAPTER 22

MY CONTRA-BUTION

U.S. and Mexican relations were flourishing in the successes of NAFTA’s

groundwork, while polictical differences pertaining to Nicaragua remained a

minor point of contention. Since the Catholic Vatican’s Intelligence arm of

Jesuits were working closely wilh U.S. Intelligence to usher in the New World

Order, they used their established influence in Mexico and Nicaragua to provide

a common ground for “diplomatic relations”. My dual mind-control victimazation

by the ClA and the Jesuits since childhood, and my previous “diplomatic

relations” in Mexico thrust me into the role of messenger and prostitute

to Nicaragua’s Daniel Oriega.

Were President Reagan’s Nicaraguan Freedom Fighters fighters OF freedom

or FOR freedom? My mind-controlled existence rendered me incapable of pondering

such questions. Nevertheless, I had a programmed “passion burning in

my bosom” for the Contras as was patriotically instilled through torture, when

I embarked on my “peacekeeping mission” to Nicaragua for Reagan tale in the

summer of 1985,

I boarded NCL as usual to reach my appointed destination. Since Nicaragua

was not a port of call for NCL, I flew from the Yukatan of Mexico to a remote

military airstrip in Managua. It was in this small mountain top clearing that I

met with Commandant Daniel Ortega, as had been arranged through the

Vatican.

I was dressed seasonably in shorts, with my long blond hair lucked hack in

a French braid. Onega’s attire, too, was reflective of the casual air to meeting.

His tan, military uniform had worn thin, and was free of any protocol insignias.

The dark, rose-colored sunglasses he peered through apparently had not

changes his somber view of the “noble cause” he claimed to represent. A man

of few words, he greeted me with an order, “Come with me.” I rode wilh him

in silence as he drove a jeep the short distance across the airstrip to a small,

near, two story, white, frame house.

As we came to a stop in front of the house, Ortega said In a sad, slow voice.

“I have needs like any man. But I feel like a whore myself for accepting your

President’s offer.”

His bedroom was clean and functional, with numerous assault weapons scattered

around, I did not see any modern conveniences or personal effects, but

Ortega seemed to be at home in his surroundings.

Ortega’s demeanor was that of a man who bad abstained from sex longer

than most in bis politcal position. As he slowly unbuttoned his shirt, I noticed

a Catholic medallion with the secret Jesuit ascension/descesion symbol on it,

a common accessory among Jesuit spooks. He sat in wicker chair as 1 followed

his silent lead in gratifying him orally.

While he chain smoked cigarettes, I sat in front of him on the floor, and

relayed Reagan’s message to him as programmed. I began. “President Reagan

has sent me as a messenger of peace.”

He casually interrupted. slowly looking me up and down. “I’d like to have

a piece in a few more minutes.”

I continued, “Your people have endured many hardships Throughout their

existence. He (Reagan) only wants to help. The American people want to see

peace and freedom in your land. Mexican and U.S. relations are growing

stronger by the day, and it is imperative that we resolve your conflict in order to

resolve our own with the Mexican government We have come to the

agreement with Mexico that the Nicaraguan conflict must be resolved for the

sake of your people as well as our own, I am here on a peacekeeping mission

representative of Vatican-based common ground shared by both Mexican and

American governments, to enlighten you to our peaceful intentions. The unified

effort of Mexican-American Catholic missions is to promote peace in your

region, while only enhancing your culture. The world is rapidly turning toward

world peace, and Nicaragua is way behind the times—from technology and

education to government ideals and religious convictions. Pope John Paul is

praying diligently for peace in your region, and has joined forces with President

Reagan, Mexico, and even the Soviet Union to ensure that peace. He (the

Pope) knows your goals, he knows your motives (I leaned forward, almost

whispering from my own instilled belief), he knows your soul. We can all

work in tandem to achieve that peace. Nicaragua, small though it may be in

relation to the rest of the world, is a significant stepping stone toward unifying

world powers. It can no longer be a source of contention and disagreement.

Your people must be free. Free to worship God through your holy Catholic

church. That is first and foremost on President Reagan’s agenda, as well as the

Pope’s and President de la Madrid’s. A New World Order is coming into being

with or without you; it is an inevitable process that cannot be stopped. A whole

new world of peace awaits us all. I can see you are a peace-loving man. It

emanates from your being. Blood has flowed across your land so heavily that

your people are drowning in it. Together we can cauterize that wound.

Replace blood flow with cash flow. Americanization can upgrade your

technology at a rapid rate. Your people could compete in world markets by the

turn of the century. Your future global position has already been determined by

geography alone. Flow with it. Lead your people out of poverty. Educate

them in a manner conducive to their destined position in world markets. Free

them from their struggles that have held them captive for so long. Allow the

church bells to ring with good news of peace, prosperity and freedom. You can

achieve all of your goals for your country’s advancement with our help.”

Ortega thoughtfully finished smoking a cigarette, and lit up another as he

confidently replied, “Tell your President that I have seen his freedom, and

listened to” his words projected through yet another example of it. He paints a

beautiful picture suspended within his framework. A picture can appear serene

to its beholder while it is being gazed upon. I cannot worship a graven image,

and the picture he paints is just that. We have fought too hard and too long,

spilling sweat and blood across this land in our determined effort to maintain

human values instilled in us by our forefathers, who gained their profound wisdom

from the original Catholic missionaries. These values are the same as

those portrayed in President Reagan’s painted picture-only ours are real. His

have only surface value, like any other painting. If I were to concede, I would

only be framed within me picture he paints, hung on his wall like a trophy. I

will not mislead my people, in spite of his offers of wealth and position, I am

true to my convictions, and when he is true to his, then we will meet on

common ground and have something of substance to discuss. For now, words

are only a waste of our time.”

Ortega put out his cigarette, and pulled back the covers on his bed. “I’ll

lake you somewhere pleasant.” He took a well-used opium pipe/bong off his

dresser and handed me a nozzle, I had been trained to accept any drug given to

me with the only exception being the strictly forbidden marijuana. I hesitated

until Ortega assured me it was opium. As the drug took affect he said, “This

could be the way to world peace.” Sex with Ortega was at very least free of

pain and perversion. Unlike most I was forced to have “diplomatic relations”

with for the Reagan Administration, he fell asleep when he was through due to

the difference between opium and cocaine.

The honk of a jeep’s horn outside awoke him. As I prepared to leave, he

said, “Wait”. He took a small, 1/4 inch or so ball of black opium from his

personal stash, wrapped it in the cellophane from his cigarette package wrapper,

and said, “Give this to your President and tell him that you and I found more

peace with this substance than he’ll ever impart on the surface of his painted

globe,” As he closed the door quietly behind me he said, “Come back and see

me when you have more to offer. “

I was immediately returned by plane to Washington, D.C. where my

“mission” had originated. This time I was taken directly to Bush’s office,

where I delivered Ortega’s message verbatim. Eliminating most of the

dialogue, Bush instructed me to deliver a partial message to Reagan. Unable to

perceive message content and people beyond my “Need to Know” mindcontrolled

limited view, I had no concept that Ortega’s message would have a

negative impact. It never occurred to me that Ortega had proven himself to be

as much a hypocrite as he purported Reagan to be by using me as a prostitute

and messenger of bad news knowing full well that I had no free will with which

to make the message more palatable. Bush’s revision of Ortega’s message

added fuei to a proverbial fire that I didn’t even know was burning when I

delivered the message to Reagan.

Bush was with Reagan and me in Reagan’s secondary office (to the Oval

office) of the White House as I relayed the message as instructed, “Daniel

Ortega is a peace loving man, who seeks the same resolutions that we do. But

he told me to tell you-(I dug in my purse for the opium) that he and I found

more peace in this substance-(I handed the opium to Reagan) than you’ll ever

impart on the surface of your painted globe.”

Bush smiled as Reagan’s face instantly turned beet red with rage. Bush then

reacted and spun up out of his chair, look the opium for himself, and told

Reagan, “Settle down. There’s more. It seems the only peace she spread was

between her legs.” He headed for the door, saying, “I would reconsider my

position if 1 were in your shoes—considering what’s filling hers.” Bush dropped

his gaze down the back of my legs to my shoes as he continued, “It’s running

down both sides of her legs.”

Obviously I wouldn’t be subjected to sex with Reagan that day. I was

quickly excused and flown back to Mexico, where I resumed my NCL cruise.

With my memory of the event compartmentalized through high voltage, 1

believed at the time that I had never been gone at all.

CHAPTER 23

WHIRLED VISION

In the fall of 1985, the same part of me that met with Ortega was walking

with (Reagan appointed) CIA Director William “Bill” Casey through the

arboured rose garden of his Long Island estate. Casey began by manipulating

my Jesuit/Vatican programming base personality with the expertise indicative of

the current union between Catholic and CIA operations. Casey, whom Reagan

referred to as a “man of Vision,” was forming my Jesuit mind-control

programmed “understanding”. “I have a World Vision,1 one of peace. By removing

the more violent factions of societies world wide and replacing them

with faithful leaders of one world government, and the one world church, global

unification is eminent. It is a beautiful vision, and it came to me in my dreams.

God has moved me to move men. I’ve moved them here and I’ve moved them

there—now it’s time to remove them. My World Vision encompasses the globe

and puts to rest any and all tensions, strife, overpopulation, and starvation. My

vision is a World Vision, and the churches see it my way as evidenced by their

support of the cause.”2

Referring to my mind-controlled involvement in Haitian operations via

NCL, Casey further defined ‘the cause,’ “Your heartfelt mission in Haiti has

helped in my World Vision quest for her people to abandon hedonistic voodoo

and turn their eyes to God and Godly ways. By their own design, they have

created an atmosphere of evil whereby a plague will be visited on their land.

The Lord has so moved me to move men who share our goals into place, and

re-move those who stand in the way of peace. It is for this reason that your

mission in Haiti must be brought to a close. Baby Doc, in his tireless devotion

to saving the demonically possessed cannot bear the burden of watching his

people die the wretched death unleashed upon those doomed for hell. We are

left with no alternative but to heed the word of God and spare him from

annihilation. For this reason, we will send in the missionaries (Jesuit

Mercenaries) to inoculate the population with a vaccine that will spare only the

good of heart by virtue of its design. All attempts to maintain Haiti within the

loop of financial gain will cease. Tourism must be stopped for the sake of the

innocents visiting a plagued land. Despite our differences, Baby Doc has

complied with the Vatican’s orders to the test of his abilities in his demoninfesled

land, and must resign his post. We owe it to him to transport him to

safety. It is our duty as Americans and followers of God to obey the commands

of our Lord and Master and enforce the World Vision. It is your duty as an

American and follower of God to instill the understanding that God has spoken,

and a plague is imminent. Baby Doc is being prepared for transition and awaits

word of direction. You will provide him with that word.”

With my perceptions distorted and Catholic Jesuit programmed

“understanding” instilled, I was prepared to “religiously accept” any and all I

was told. I believed that the revolution in Haiti was a holy war, never capable

of realizing it was a test run battle for the minds in this 4th world country.

The devotion I felt toward the Haitian people was more than a religious

understanding of these alternately Catholic-Santeria3 voodoo worshippers. I was

actually subconsciously recognizing other tortured mind-controlled slaves in this

human created hell called Haiti. Consciously, I now know it was due in part to

the visible stun gun/prod marks, plastic ever-present smiles that never quite

reach their dead appearing eyes. The children clung to their wide-eyed

mothers, as they performed their tasks in robotic servitude. I had recognized

these characteristics in other slaves throughout the years, but never had I seen a

whole country entranced. My compassion for the Haitian people penetrated into

the realm of the spiritual, into a part of me that mind control and manipulation

of religion could never touch,

Casey and I had been walking through the garden, guarded by more armed

men than the President, It wasn’t that I was a threat, 1 couldn’t even think to

save myself. It was that Casey and his World Vision were a threat to humanity

that so many guards were needed. The men appeared to be U.S. Secret Service

officers according to their attire, weapons, and earphone headsets. One guard

conspicuously placed his hand to his headset, listening as though it were remote

control. He walked briskly over to Casey, who signaled me to leave with an

escort who instantly arrived at my side awaiting instruction.

“Take her to my chambers,” Casey told him, “Clear her mind. I have

something I need to instill,” Robotically I followed my escort into Casey’s

office library. The room was barren, dark, and hot-just as described in a book

I had been given to read in keeping with You Are What You Read

programming. It produced a sensation of having somehow stepped into the

novel Chameleon by insider William Diehl. The mind scramble of the book

and reality instantly commenced,

“It’s warm in here,” the agent said, unbuttoning my while eyelet blouse.

“Bill (Casey) likes to keep it this way in case-he (Casey) gets a chill and his

blood runs cold. Chameleons4 are naturally cold blooded. Make yourself

comfortable white I turn up the heat. Mr, Casey doesn’t want to hear a peep

out of you, so I’ll warn you now-be Silent.” He deliberately triggered and

activated the Jesuit programmed part of me that believed in my Vow of Silence.5

The walls have ears and the plants have eyes, so your silence is tantamount to

success. I’m going to leave you to reflect in Silence, Bill will be along any

minute.”

Had I been capable of “reflecting,” I would have questioned the validity of

Casey’s dramatic position of “religious overtones” on Haitian policy. Like

Reagan’s, Casey’s sincerity did not ring true considering the fruits of his labor,

But then, 1 could not consider any more than I could reflect, and 1 sat in a state

of what felt like suspended animation awaiting my instructions. I could not

anticipate nor dread what was about to happen as futuristic thinking was left in

the hands of my controllers. Had I realized the scramble of reality with

William Diehl’s book, I could have “psychicly” predicted what happened when

Bill Casey strolled in.

Casey walked over to his highly polished, dark wood desk and opened the

top drawer. Casey’s desk was one of the few furnishings in the large, airy

room. The dark, polished, reddish-wood paneling seemed even darker with the

midnight blue carpeting curving slightly up the wall. Heavy, gothic maroon

velvet drapes blacked out the sun from the windows behind his desk,

“I can see quite clearly that you have taken a Vow of Silence, Maintain it.

Maintain it and Lisssten,” Casey hissed, using preset triggers. He reached into

the drawer and took out a foot-long, maroon box with a diamond embossed on

the top.

“1 received a box, quite anonymously as I do from time to time,” Casey said

in keeping with the book scramble. “The box has your name on it. I expected

to open it and find the usual pierced chameleon and found, instead, a weapon

intended for one.”

He opened the box in front of me. Inside, laying on a bed of cotton, was an

elaborate dagger with a handle of the same rose crystal from which the crucifix

Byrd had presented me on “our wedding night” was made. My first personal

meeting with Casey promised to be torturous as I recognized Byrd’s

participation in the grisly ordeal.

1 listened, deeply tranced, as Casey said, “Is it a knife or a crucifix? I can’t

tell. Both symbolize martyrdom as far as I’m concerned. Note the rose pattern

cut into the crystal. Now, I wonder who would have sent me this to give to

you.”

Even under mind control I knew, as I was supposed to, that Byrd had

provided him with the knife. My worst fears were confirmed when Casey

began using Byrd’s hypnotic induction, “In like a knife, sharp and clean, I’ll

carve out what I want.” Casey sliced through the front of my bra, exposing the

area between my breasts where Byrd routinely cut me with his pocketknife. He

pierced into my breastbone deeply so that I believed I would split, and indeed

did split off a personality fragment compartmentalizing this event. Using

standard Jesuit-based infinity program, Casey instructed me and programmed

me with messages that I would deliver as though my life depended on it.

“You must go to the Citadel and warn our Dominican brothers of impending

doom to their neighbors in Haiti. From the Dominican side (of the Haitian

island) you will be flown to Port Au Prince where you will meet with Baby Doc

(Duvalier) at his Palace. He is already receptive to your word, and knows that

my words are your words and your word is Silence. You must tell General

Cedras his Order is from The Rose.” Casey touched the white rose in his lapel,

signaling me to photographically record his words verbatim.

When he was through programming me with his message, Casey told me,

“As quickly as you complete this mission, you must depart Haiti, never to

return again.” Casey used excessive high voltage to compartmentalize my

memory. I recall being nauseated and i l l from his stun gun as I departed his

Long Island compound/home via ferry programmed with messages to Cedras

and Babv Doc.

Haiti had recently been dropped from the NCL itinerary as a Port of Call,

but the Dominican Republic side of the island remained open to tourism. When

Houston and I debarked the NCL ship in Puerta Plata, we walked past a World

Vision cargo ship that was being unloaded at the dock. I recall that a soft ocean

breeze gently lifted the hem of my white, gauzy dress as I weaved my way

through the dockload of World Vision freight to a waiting automobile.

Religion and politics apparently mix in the Dominican Republic as

evidenced by the inseparable mixture of Catholic Missions, old forts, statues of

Christopher Columbus, and Catholic Shrines. As we drove past the mountain

tramway that takes tourists up and down to the rustic Citadel and Catholic

Shrine at the top, Houston perpetuated the “Chameleon” book scramble. Dually

referring to Cedras and the short donkey ride from the tram to the Citadel

depicted in Diehl’s book, Houston threatened to put me on the rickety tram

saying, “Some Jackass will see you at the top.”

In an area reserved for covert activities, out of view of tourists, I met with

General Cedras in his Citadel office. Dressed in the eerie, Jesuit, dark, hooded

robe, Cedras completed Casey’s “Chameleon” book scramble scenario as we

walked through the ancient structure to his office. Cedras’ demeanor made him

appear more as a militant than a “spook,” despite the corny monk’s attire. With

his hood down his back, Cedras’ sharp, craggy features and darting steel blue

eyes kept my full attention. I had seen him at a monastery in Santo Domingo as

ordered before,6 when Haiti was still being used by the CIA for Operation

Watchtower to transport cocaine and Contra weapons from Cuba.

Alone with Cedras and properly signaled, I began photographically reciting

Casey’s message, “I have word of warning from the Vatican by way of the

honorable and faithful William Casey. He sends word of impending doom that

is to befall your neighbors on the darkside in Haiti. Voodoo manifest itself in

mysterious ways while the way of the Lord is clear. Evil must be stopped at all

costs. The cost shall be in terms of human casualty, as a plague is being visited

upon the land. Those who fornicate with devils shall be infested with the

plague. Woo unto them who have stood in the path of World Peace. By God’s

design the New World Order shall come into being with or without the Haitians.

All American operations in Haiti are now destined for your ports. Your people

(the CIA-UN operated Dominicans) will flourish in peace and prosperity while

the dark side (Haitians) drown in the blood of this holy war that they have

brought upon themselves. Close your borders swiftly and maintain guardians at

the gate lest the Haitians infest your land with their evil plague. Inoculation of

the masses shall be masked in the body and the blood shall carry the doom. As

more and more Haitians turn to God in their final hour, the communion they

partake will be Satan’s own. With their God as the scapegoat, your Island in

the Son (sun) will be freed of the vile and wicked. I have seen a vision, a

World Vision, and it is through communion with the ancients that we have been

granted the Keys to the Kingdom7 to unlock the gates of hell. The holy water

sent herein has the blessings of the Vatican and must be sprinkled like rain upon

the Haitians. Our God reigns, and he rains rivers of blood upon the Haitian

masses, and he reigns supreme upon your mission. Your mission is clear. You

serve communion and let God son them out. Those who serve the body of

Christ are covered by the Vatican, those who serve voodoo evil shall be covered

in the blood of their own. It is clear our God reigns. Lei the games begin.”

Combining the cryptic language of Cedras’ CIA and Jesuit operations,

Casey had weaved numerous cryptic commands into his message. Had I been

inadvertently accessed, the instructions would make little sense to those not cued

to the language. Cedras was listening religiously, fully grasping the magnitude

of Casey’s instructions. I concluded the message, “The holy water with the

Vatican’s blessings will arrive at 1 PM today by way of World Vision, The

blood shall host the plague.”8

I was relieved to depart Cedras’ presence without being subjected to his

usual perverse sexual brutality. This would be someone else’s job this time, as

my programmed trance was maintained until I delivered Casey’s message to

Baby Doc Duvalier on the “dark side” of the “Island in the Son”.

Houston took me to the small CIA-operated airport at the foot of the

mountain where I boarded a small, white airplane destined for Port Au Prince,

Haiti. When we landed, the pilot walked me over to Baby Doc’s Tonton

guards, and ordered that I be taken to the Palace. He spoke in rapid Haitian

French, and lifted my symbolic, rosy cross necklace for emphasis to the guards.

Reinforcing my insLiiled belief thai the Catholic emblem would protect me, the

guards treated me with the respect that apparently was reserved for identified

Jesuit spooks. I was driven by white Mercedes to the Haitian Presidential

Palace. Looking even more conspicuously out of place in contrast to stark

poverty than his fleet of Mercedes, Baby Doc’s Palace was decadent. I stood

reverently in. the foyer waiting for my arranged meeting to begin, unable to

question Baby Doc’s luxurious surroundings in view of the despair and

starvation around him.

I had met with Baby Doc throughout the early ’80s in the capacity of a

Project Monarch prostitute. All Haitian-based U.S. covert operations were run

by a bed-ridden old man referred to as “Ol’ Charlie,” who resided at the El

Presidente Hotel until his death in the mid ’80s. During my tenure as a mindcontrolled

messenger and prostitute in Haiti, I had been forced to attend a

voodoo ceremony for my (and others’) traumatization purposes. I was ordered

to perform oral sex on Baby Doc as his dark-windowed Mercedes slowly

proceeded through the crowds of Haitians on their way to the ritual. With my

Haitian missions previously established with Ol’ Charlie for business and Baby

Doc for prostitution, my meeting Baby Doc for business was unprecedented.

“What brings you here?” Baby Doc spit the words at me in English. I had

been led into his library by three armed guards, “I have no need of a Catholic

whore,”

Baby Doc’s applicable knowledge of the English language was limited by his

intellect whereby an aide filled the need for an interpreter as 1 delivered Casey’s

message.

“I come in the name of peace. I have a message for you from William

Casey, sanctioned by the Vatican, The Pope is in agreement with U.S. policy

in Haiti. He has seen a vision, a sign from God. The vision is a World Vision,

whose people are reaching out to yours with charily in abundance. The goods

and services provided require only that the people of Haiti anoint the sick, feed

the hungry, and clothe the poor through his servants of World Vision. Their

mission will separate good seed from bad and restore peace in your region. The

peace that shall be visited upon your land amongst your people is imminent, but

not before the rivers run red with the blood of the wicked. The vision is

plague, and your people will fall in the streets pleading for mercy, and you will

not be here to hear it. The lime has come for you to leave. It is God’s will that

you escape the plague with blessings from the Vatican, never to return to your

homeland. Prepare for your exodus today for tomorrow holds a promise of

doom. Using your prophetic wisdom, warn the masses of impending doom and

arm them with World Vision. The vision is one of peace’ for those who flock

to the tents and churches for salvation. Your destiny is clear, and the Vatican

has cleared the way for your departure.”

With Casey’s message delivered, Baby Doc’s Tontons returned me to the

same airplane I had left a short time before. I flew in silence, unable to think to

comprehend the magnitude of what had just transpired. Events to a mindcontrolled

slave are all perceived as first and last times. Therefore, Casey’s

instructions that I would “depart Haiti, never to return again” seemed business

as usual to me. Flying over the mountains that separate Haiti from the

Dominican Republic, I noticed the gentle people below bathing in the

waterfalls, toilessly washing their bright clothes on the rocks, and primitively

hauling goods in the baskets balanced on their heads. An occasional goat ran

across the barren land, and the children, bellies swollen from starvation, played

with slicks and vines. With my mind-controlled and spinning with

misperceptions, my whirled vision, like Ortega’s rose colored glasses, prevented

me from seeing the reality of New World Orders.

1World Vision was/is a Jesuit controlled organization that led churches to give them money

under the guise of spreading world peace. What they were not saying was what the money was

actually funding-a world peace plan under mind control.

2 Perceptual distortions of the virtues that good people hold most dear is one reason for the

proliferation of criminal activity within such organizations as World Vision. There are those

within affected factions of such organizations, the Catholic church, and even the U.S.

Government that operate under distorted perceptions referred to by the CIA as a “Need to

Know” basis–and they “Need to Know” that their minds, religion, and/or perceptions are being

deliberately manipulated.

3Since the Catholics had joined forces with the United Nations to overtake the world

through mass mind control, the Jesuit influence on Haiti was complete. By maintaining much of

the ceremony, placing literal interpretation on “eating the body and drinking the blood,” and

providing a mirror reversal of good and evil, Catholicism and voodoo, like Catholicism and the

United nations, became one in the same.

4The term “Chameleon” is a term used to describe spies who are expertly trained to blend

into any environment at any time unnoticed-just as an MPD mirrors the one they’re with.

5The Jesuit Vow of Silence was installed through the Rite to Remain Silent of my

childhood. Now I know, like so many others in Intelligence, that “Silence Equals Death”.

Knowledge is our ONLY defense against mind control.

6Byrd had told me that Cedras was “a strategically placed chess piece that the CIA, Jesuits

and U.N. moved around” to usher in their New World Order,

7″Keys to the Kingdom” was defined by Bill Bennett in accordance with Jesuit

programming as follows: “At the onset of Christianity, the Apostles compiled all the

information that they had obtained from Christ and built the Holy Catholic Apostolic Church.

Christ intended it to be the one world church then—the truth, the light, and the way. The secrets

were kept in the ark of the covenant, and passed down generation after generation. And

generation after generation Christ caused for more to be written-the fruits of his labors

expounding on the truth. Now the ark has become archives—a wealth of information. This

information is accessible to very few— the very few who hold the Keys to the Kingdom”.

8Interpretation of the final message is left to the minds of the masses who can still discern

truth. My conclusions are “clear”, bused on conversations overheard and my experience as a

White House sex slave. Although Byrd and Reagan, among others, had prostituted me to

officials in AIDS-infected countries, they used no protection against “the plague” when having

sex with me.

9There can be no world peace without peace-of-mind, and there is no peace-of-mind under

mind control. Haiti, once a prototype of New World Order controls has now been used up and

discarded by the CIA and Jesuits. U.N. “peacekeeping forces” have created a smoke and

mirrors illusion of “peace” by keeping it FROM the Haitian people.

CHAPTER 24

A-HUNTING WE WILL GO

On December 4, 1986, I turned 29 years old. Usually mind-controlled

slaves were discarded, “thrown from the Freedom train,” at 30; but I argued

with Houston when he told me my government abusers only had one year left to

“use me up”. I had had no conscious awareness of the passing of time, and

believed I was still only 24. Regardless of what I believed, my abusers did

their best to “use me up” physically and psychologically before even a month

had passed.

I was in Washington, D.C. on a routine trip, which included being

prostituted to President Reagan. “Uncle Ronnie’s” cheeks were flushed from

excitement and cognac as he told me, “I always take two weeks off for

Christmas to go back to California.” Reagan interrupted himself to break into

an old Hollywood style song and dance, “California here 1 come…” The While

House, he claimed, had always been confining to him, and he appeared

genuinely excited about his upcoming trip. “I look forward lo this trip every

year because I get to see old friends. Oh, I still work while I’m there-the

President’s work is never done-but at least I’m there. It’s about time you see

where I call home.” Then, quoting the Wizard of Oz, he said, “‘There’s no

place like home.’ And you’re about to see why. Say it with me, “There’s no

place like home. There’s no place like home’.” Then he instructed me in Oz

cryptic, “Click your heels. There’s no place like home.”

Blue-white light seemingly exploded in my brain, like being hit with deadly

low voltage AC electrical current. Reagan was “setting the stage” for an

attempted mind scrambling time slip, to be reactivated at an upcoming meeting I

would have with him in Bel Air, California.

The motor home was packed to the walls, and the walls were packed with

cocaine as Houston, Kelly, and I departed on our long drive to California.

Houston had planned several “tourist stops” along the way that proved as”

nightmarish as the California ordeal itself.

In Las Vegas, Nevada, Houston kept Kelly and me busy prostituting us to

everyone he knew “in the know” and in attendance at the Country Music

Association’s annual convention. Weary of being sent from room to room, 1

was back in the lobby literally trying to catch my breath when I saw Michael

Dante. He was dressed in an expensive, light grey silk suit and dark glasses,

looking more like a Fed than a mobster, leaning on a post, waiting for met

“Our love” he professed over the phone for mind conditioning purposes was

certainly not apparent now. “You’re late,” he growled as he looked at his

watch. He ordered me into the Ladies’ Room to activate programming by

having me “lose myself in the infinity mirrors that lined the walls. With my

mind set like he wanted, he then used and directed me in commercial

pornography. Later, he did the same with Kelly.

At the Grand Canyon, Houston traumatized Kelly and me in preparation for.

the upcoming events in California. While hiking down the canyon, Houston

attempted to anchor hypnotically all of the trip’s events behind the death and

insanity programming to which he was subjecting us. When we stopped for a

late afternoon lunch in the Canyon, Kelly collapsed in a state of shock, unable

to eat. Houston was pleased because he “got to eat it all himself”. I was, as

usual, undergoing the food and water deprivation. I was so thirsty, I could not

think to eat. Kelly’s condition magnified my own terrified state, and I did all I

could to keep Houston from supposedly pushing her over the edge. I carried

her for hours all the way out of the canyon, without pausing to rest. In my own

mind I wanted to believe I was actually able to protect her. The fact was,

Houston was wearing me down physically to ensure that I could not protect her

at our next destination: Lake/Mount Shasta, California.

George Bush was highly active in both the Lampe, Missouri and Shasta,

California retreat compounds. Just like Lampe, Shasta’s cover was country

music. According to everyone 1 knew, singer and songwriter Merle Haggard

supposedly ran the show at Lake Shasta, diverting any and all attention from the

nearby Mount Shasta compound. Shasta was the largest, covert mind-control

slave camp of which I am aware. Hidden in the wooded hills, military fencing

corrals an enormous fleet of unmarked, black helicopters and more mindcontrolled,

military robots than I saw in all of Haiti. This covert military

operation served its own agenda, not America’s. I was told and overheard that

it was a base for the future Multi-Jurisdictional Police Force; for enforcing

order and law in the New World Order. In the center of the high security

compound, was another well-guarded military-fenced area that was regarded as

a “Camp David” of sorts for those running our country. George Bush and Dick

Cheney shared an office there, and claimed the outer perimeter woods as their

own hunting ground where they played “A Most Dangerous Game”. Predicated

on conversations I overheard between the two, it was this world police military

background that earned Dick Cheney his cabinet appointment as Secretary of

Defense1 with the Bush Administration.

Houston stayed at Haggard’s Lake Shasta resort while Kelly and 1 were

helicoptered to Mount Shasta for our scheduled meeting with Bush and Cheney.

The helicopter pilot directed our attention to the military fencing surrounding

the outer perimeter of the compound. Rarely did pilots ever speak to either of

us, but this one smiled wickedly as he told us we would need to know the outer

limits for A Most Dangerous Game.

As soon as we arrived at Bush and Cheney’s inner sanctum, I noticed

George Bush, Jr. was with them. It was my experience that Jr. stood by his

father and covered his backside whenever Bush would become incapacitated

from drugs or required criminal backup. It appeared that Jr. was there to serve

both purposes while his father and Cheney enjoyed their work-vacation.

Hyper from drugs, Cheney and Bush were eager to hunt their human prey in

“A Most Dangerous Game”. They greeted me with the rules of the game,

ordered me to strip naked despite the cold December winds, and told me in Oz

cryptic to “beware of the lions and tigers and bears”. Kelly’s life became the

stakes, as usual, which resurrected my natural and exaggerated programmed

maternal instincts. Tears silently ran down my cheeks as Bush told me, “If we

catch you, Kelly’s mine. So run, run as fast as you can. I’ll get you and your

little girl, too, because I can, I can, I can. And I will.”

Cheney, daring me to respond, asked, “Any questions?”

I said, “There’s no place to run because there’s a fence—the kind I can’t get

over. I saw it”

Rather than physically assault me. Cheney laughed at my sense of “no where

to run, no where to hide and explained that a bear had torn a hole in the fence

somewhere, and all I had to do is find it. He lowered his rifle to my head and

said, “Let the games begin. Go.”

Wearing only my tennis shoes, I ran through the trees as fast and as far as I

could, which wasn’t very far at all. Bush was using his bird dog to track me,

the same one that had recently been used with me in bestiality filming as a

“Byrd-dog” joke on my owner, Robert C. Byrd. When caught, Cheney held his

gun to my head again as he stood over me, looking warm in his sheepskin coat.

Bush ordered me to take his dog sexually while they watched, then he and

Cheney ushered me back to their cabin.

I pulled on my clothes and sat in the office part of the cabin awaiting

instructions. I had no idea where Kelly was, nor do I in retrospect. Bush and

Cheney were still in their hunting clothes when the programming session began.

Bush said, “You and I are about to embark on A Most Dangerous Game of

diplomatic relations. This is my game. You will follow my rules. 1 will have

the distinct advantage of hunting you with my Eye in the Sky (satellite). I’ll

watch every move you make. As long as you play the game by my rules and

make no mistakes, you live. One mistake and I’ll get you, my pretty, and your

little girl, too. You die, and Kelly will have to play with me. I prefer it that

way. Then it will be her Most Dangerous Game. The cards are stacked in my

favor because, well, it is my game! Are you game?”

There was no choice. I responded as conditioned, “Yes, Sir! I’m game.”

The parallels to The Most Dangerous Game that had just occurred in the woods

were deliberate and intended to make retrieval of memory “impossible” due to

cryptoamnesia scrambling.

“Good. Then let the games begin. Listen carefully to your instructions.

You have no room for error.” Cheney flipped his “game timer”—an hourglass.

Bush continued, “This game is called the King and Eye, and here’s the deal.

You will be establishing stronger diplomatic relations according to order

between Mexico, the U.S., and the Middle East. Your role will require a

change of face at each new place. I’ll chart your course, define your role, and

pull your strings. You’ll speak my words when I pull your strings. There is no

room for error,”

Cheney was half lying across the plain, military issue style desk in an

apparent drug stupor as Bush talked. Still wearing his hunting coat and hat,

Cheney aimed his rifle at me from the desk and threatened, “Or a-hunting we

will go.” Bush finished Cheney’s threat by singing, “We’ll catch a fox and put

her in a box and lower her in a hole.”

Bush looked at Cheney and burst out laughing. The sight of him dressed in

his hunting clothes with a huge bore, double-barreled shotgun to his shoulder

inspired Bush to tell him he “looked tike Elmer Fudd”.

Cheney, imitating the cartoon character, said, “Where is that waskily

wabbit?”

Operation The King and Eye would involve Reagan’s #1 envoy Philip Habib

(who cryptically played the Alice In Wonderland role of the White Rabbit with

slaves such as myself) and Saudi Arabian King Fahd. So when Bush referred

to the two as “Elmer Fahd and the Waskily Wabbit,” he and Cheney laughed

until they cried. Since both were already high from drugs anyway, they had a

great deal of difficulty maintaining composure long enough to complete my

programming.

1Dick Cheney has no official U.S. military history to justify his position as our nation’s

former Defense Secretary under President George Bush.

CHAPTER 25

BUSH BABY

It was late evening when Bush and Cheney finished programming me with

numerous messages pertaining to the immediate opening of the Juarez, Mexican

border to free (drug and slave) trade. They then took me downstairs to the

living quarters of the western cedar and redwood structure where Kelly soon

joined us. George Bush, Jr. deposited my obviously traumatized and withdrawn

child at the door. Referring to The Most Dangerous Game she told me in a

quiet, defeated and sad voice, “I was caught same as you”.

In retrospect, I do not know if she was actually hunted (I can only hope she

was not). Regardless, this reinforced the fact that 1 had been caught and

therefore was “responsible” (when in fact I was not) for everything that

happened to Kelly from that point on.

The decor of the residence area reflected Cheney’s primitive, rustic, western

preference. Like his “ultra secret” Pentagon Bunkhouse, use of leather was in

abundance. The main room was small, but appeared larger due to an infinity

mirror on one wall. The room was decorated in mirror fashion with one side

looking like the other. Centered between two facing black leather sofas was a

coffee table littered with drugs and paraphernalia. Bush and Cheney were

sitting in matching black leather recliners angled towards the large stone

fireplace where a fire was blazing, illuminating and heating the room.

Heroin, Bush’s drug of choice, was in abundance and Cheney joined him in

using it. The smorgasbord of drugs laid out supposedly included opium,

cocaine, and Wonderland Wafers (MDMHA-XTC aka ecstasy), which indicated

to me they intended to celebrate their vacation with abandon. 1 had seen

Cheney stumbling drunk before, but this was the only time I saw him use heroin

and give it to me. Kelly, too, was subjected to the drugs.

Bush attempted to sell Cheney on the idea of pedophilia through graphic

descriptions of having sex with Kelly. Both were already sexually aroused from

drugs and anticipation. Cheney demonstrated to Bush why he did not have sex

with kids by exposing himself to Kelly and saying, “Come here”. Upon seeing

Cheney’s unusually large penis, Kelly reeled back in horror and cried, “No!”

which made them both laugh. Bush asked Cheney for his liquid cocaine

atomizer as he got up to take Kelly to the bedroom. When Cheney remarked

how benevolent it was of Bush to numb her with it before sex, Bush replied,

“The hell it is. It’s for me.” He described his excited state in typical vulgar

terms and explained that he wanted it to spray cocaine on his penis to last

longer.

Cheney said, “I thought it was for the kid.”

Bush explained, “Half the fun is having them squirm.” He took Kelly’s

hand and led her off to the bedroom.

Cheney told me that since I was “responsible” for Bush’s assault on my

daughter by being caught in A Most Dangerous Game, I would “burn” (in hell).

He burned my inner thigh with the fireplace poker, and threatened to throw

Kelly in the fire. He hypnotically enhanced his description of her burning to

traumatize me deeply. As he sexually brutalized me, I heard Kelly’s whimpers

coming from the bedroom. As her cries grew louder, Cheney turned on

classical music to drown out her cries for help.

At 4:00 am, as ordered, Bush Jr. (and his helicopter pilot) came to retrieve

Kelly and me. We were flown (by helicopter) back to the Lake Shasta area

where Houston and the motor home awaited us. Bush’s assault of Kelly proved

to be a mind shattering experience for me, and physically devastating to Kelly.

She was in dire need of medical attention and was unable even to move.

Houston threatened to stop the motor home in the Yosemite area and throw me

from a steep cliff if I didn’t settle down. His threats and commands could not

control my hysteria, as much of his control programming had inadvertently

shattered. Fearful he would lose both his “money-makers,” Houston permitted

me to telephone Kelly’s doctor and begin administering medicines. As for me,

he arranged for assistance in picking up the pieces in order that I complete my

primary purpose in traveling to California, i.e., meet with Mexican President

Miguel de Ja Madrid and finalize plans Co open the Juarez border.

CHAPTER 26

NEW WORLD ORDERS

There was “no time to lose” in bringing me back around to a functioning

level. I knew I had work to do. Although I was to be “used up” by my 30th

birthday, I do not believe it was Bush and Cheney’s intention to expedite the

process so quickly. Apparently it was their incompetence due to overindulgence

of drugs and subsequent abuse of Kelly in my presence that

destroyed parts of my maternal-based programming. Regardless of their

“excuse,” Houston drove us to San Francisco, California where Temple of Set

(Satan) founder U.S. Army Lt. Col. Aquino made some emergency “repairs”.

I was not taken to a hospital or a mental institution, but to a brain/mind

research and development lab on the U.S. Army Reservation at Presidio. There

are many facilities such as this one across the country at various CIA, military,

and NASA compounds where hyper-advanced government knowledge is put to

the test, developed and modified. Those I met who had expertly learned the

scientific mechanics of the brain in conjunction with the ins and outs of the

mind used their gained secret knowledge to manipulate and/or control others.

The only thing Mark Phillips, Byrd, and Aquino had in common was the belief

that “secret knowledge equals power”.1 Byrd explained to me that New World

Order “powers were strengthened” by allowing the mental health community

only partial and/or deliberate misinformation through their organization lobby,

The American Psychiatric Association (APA), concerning treatment modalities

for severe dissociative disorders being created through mind control! Perpetrators

believed that withholding knowledge and the proliferation of deliberate

misinformation allowed them control over their secrets, and subsequently over

humanity. They may be correct if no one can or will react to the information

presented in this book.

Intended or not, I overheard a conversation pertaining to death and the mind

between Aquino and a lab assistant as I lay on a cold, metal table in a deep

hypnotic state, Aquino was saying that 1 had come close to death numerous

limes which “increased my ability to enter other (mind) dimensions en route to

death”. I had listened to Aquino talk at length about such concepts before, as

though he were trying to convince himself of some interdimensional time travel

theory. “Whether in principle or in theory, the results are the same,” he

claimed. “The concept of time is abstract in itself.” Hypnotic talk of pastpresent-

future set my mind in a spin that, when combined with Alice In

Wonderland/NASA mirror world concepts, created an illusion of timeless

dimensions. I now know that the only “dimensions’ I experienced were

elaborate memory compartmentalizations of real, earthly events by real, earthly

criminals, and certainly not by aliens, Satan, or demons.

After moving me from the table to an elaborate box, Aquino then shifted my

mind to another area of my brain, claiming to have taken me into another

dimension by way of “death’s door”. This was accomplished while I was

subjected to sensory deprivation combined with hypnotic and harmonic reprogramming.

The seemingly coffin-like structure was transformed in my mind

to a crematorium, where 1 endured the sense of increasing heat while “I slowly

burned” through hypnotic suggestion. Aquino then “pulled me through death’s

door” and into another dimension, “void of time”. Parts of my programming

were “recreated for the recreation of world leaders,” i.e., U.S. President

Reagan, Mexican President de la Madrid, and Saudi Arabian King Fahd.

In my next recollection of awareness, Houston, Kelly, and I were in

Hollywood, where Houston claimed the motor home “broke down”—an over

used attempted memory scramble. He sent me down the street to telephone

Michael Dante, who lived nearby in Beverly Hills. Dante was expecting Kelly

and me to join him in his Beverly Hills mansion for several days as bad been

previously arranged by our handler, Alex Houston. Kelly and I waited at the

phone booth as instructed until Dante arrived to pick us up in his midnight blue

Ferrari. As soon as I sat down, Dante said, “I got something for you, Baby,

Give me your arm.” Heroin was a common “vice” he shared with Bush, and he

shot me up with the drug right in front of Kelly.

Later that evening at his house, Dante told me that he refused to “handle

damaged goods,” and that he would not be my next handler as previously

planned. Not only was I “not fit to live with” him, but I was not “fit to live” at

all. I am not certain what he meant to accomplish by these threats, but I know

in retrospect that this was not his decision to make. Besides, 1 never perceived

existence with him and his professed “love” as a “future” anyway- Instead, he

said he would go along with the original plan long enough to acquire Kelly”.

The next day, hours before I was to meet with de la Madrid, L.A, Dodgers

baseball team manager Tommy LaSorda, George Bush, Jr., and star pitcher of

Jr.’s Texas Rangers, Nolan Ryan (who was also a banker) were at Dante’s

house working out the details of money laundering and bank transactions for the

imminent opening of the Juarez border cocaine, heroin, and white slavery route.

The common bond of covert criminal activity overrode any professional baseball

conflicts between them. All three were in town to be in attendance at various

gatherings and parties of Reagan’s, who would be arriving in a matter of days.

And all three appeared to have an understanding of my function as Reagan’s

“Presidential Model” mind-control sex slave.

Dante was gathering the necessary clothes and props for the evening

rendezvous with de la Madrid. LaSorda, Nolan Ryan, and Jr. were standing in

the entrance way of Dante’s house attempting to activate my “Baseball Mind

Computer” programmed personality fragment that had inadvertently been

shattered by Bush and Cheney’s traumas at Shasta. Dante told them, “She

knows more about baseball than you and Tommy (LaSorda) put together. Go

ahead and ask her something. Anything.”

Much to LaSorda’s amusement, Nolan Ryan asked, “How many times does

Fernando Valenzuela (Dodger pitcher) touch his hat if he’s going to throw a

srewgy (screw ball)?” I could not respond, although I had once known more

statistical data than would ever be in print,

Jr. hollered, “Hey, Dante”. What’s with your baseball computer here, huh?

Are we supposed to say a magic word?”

“I don’t know,” Dante responded. “Could be drugs. Her sex is working

fine, though. Give it a whirl.”

Jr. declined, saying, “No thanks. The Baseball Computer sucks enough.

Listen, we’ll see you later.” Jr. had never shown any interest in me sexually.

Like his father, he had only shown sexual interest in Kelly, who had been away

with him most of the day. As he turned to leave, he stroked me under the chin

and cryptically said, “Have a Ball tonight”.

LaSorda, who had not been on his Ultra Slim Fast-sponsored diet yet, said,

“Speaking of balls, mine could use a little attention here.” He unzipped his

pants.

Dante told me, “We gotta get dressed. Three minutes.” Three minutes was

a trigger for me to perform a specific, oral sex act. I knelt on the floor and

pushed up LaSorda’s enormous belly, resting it on my head as I groped for his

penis as ordered. Dante’s two Great Danes came in as Jr. and Nolan Ryan left

I had been forced to participate in a bestiality film with these sex-trained dogs

earlier that day, and I had to fight them off as I sexually gratified LaSorda

before getting ready for “the Ball”.

1Mark Phillips explained to me that, by revealing their “secrets” their power would

diminish. “Good always prevails through positive application, whereas the bad guys are

hindered and slowed in their criminal endeavors through having to cover-up their negative

actions with lies to support lies. This inevitably allows the truth to emerge,” Mark said.

CHAPTER 27

HOTEL CALIFORNIA

Dante threw me a short, red, slinky dress with rhinestone straps and a pair

of “glass slippers” to wear to “Cinderella’s Ball”, The shoes, like Oz ruby,

slippers and Philip Habib’s “magic lightening boll” shoes, were to trance-form

me into the personality fragmenl ihat had been pre-programmed for the event,

Dante escorted me to the party/”Ball” where I was to meet with Mexican

President de la Madrid. Dante had been bragging about his “second home in

Malibu” ever since I first met him, and the place was opulence personified. I

do not know who actually owned “his” second home in Malibu, California, but

Reagan’s influence was evident in the decor. From the front, the white stucco

house gave the illusion of being two-story. The view overlooked a secluded

Pacific bay, and revealed three levels built into a cliff. Through the smoked

glass wall panels that spanned the back, the three stories, lavishly carpeted in

red, white, and blue provided a patriotic view. All levels had a beige-white

interior decorated in gold and crystal. An enormous chandelier hung from the

“cathedral ceiling, illuminating all three levels at once from the greatroom which

overlooked the bay.

I was told that Uncle Ronnie (Reagan) would be arriving the next day. It

was my “patriotic duty” to attend de la Madrid’s welcome party and “wear

down any resistance he may have” in order that Reagan’s business meeting with

him would “go smoothly”. This was not the first time I heard this excuse for

being politically prostituted, nor would it be the last. In reality, I was to do the

initial dirty work, delivering messages, and encourage de la Madrid lo use drugs

and party with abandon. The diplomatic relations between the U.S. and Mexico

were already strong, but this phase of the operation requited total commitment

from de la Madrid.

Dante and I waited at the top of the staircase as de la Madrid, accompanied

by two bodyguards, climbed to the red level of the house. I greeted de la

Madrid, “Welcome to the U.S. and (seductively) welcome to the Hotel

California.” His deep-throated laugh indicated he had been cued to the

ramifications of my cryptic statement. “Hotel California,” taken from a popular

song by the Eagles, stated “you can check out anytime you like, but you can

never leave.” To de la Madrid this confirmed the permanency of his

involvement in the criminal, covert operations in which he was conspiring.

Blackmail was openly initiated to ensure that each criminal participant

understood that if one fell, they all fell. Maintaining “dirt” on each other

through this Mafia-style method was seemingly the only way these criminals

implementing the New World Order kept each other “honest.”

De la Madrid and I went into a nearby bedroom, followed by Dante and the

bodyguards. Dante then activated the programmed message instilled at the

Shasta resort from Bush to de la Madrid. I recited, “If you please, Sir, I have a

message to deliver to you from the Vice President of the United States.

Welcome to our Neighborhood. As you know, Salinas and 1 have worked out

the details towards implementing our plan to open the Juarez border tomorrow.

In preparation and celebration of this accomplishment, this little party tonight

will bring you face to face with a trusted few who are integral parts of this

endeavor, and give you the latitude to see firsthand the friendship and honor

among the (government-involved Mafioso) family members, I regret that I

could not be here in person to greet you, but Ron (Reagan) can show you the

ins and outs of the organization better than I. The transaction numbers have

been recorded, and are available to you for cross reference purposes and to

uphold the integrity of the players involved on your end of the Juarez border.

Your commitment today ensures you of a higher economic standard of living for

your people, increased relations with the U.S., an influx of American industry,

and a position of high esteem in the New World Order, With your ‘Seal of

Approval’ we can dissolve the Juarez border and make way for a future of

prosperity for Mexico. For now, relax and enjoy your stay.”

One of de la Madrid’s guards was shuffling through some papers from a

briefcase, and he told Dante he would like the bank transaction numbers. Dante

switched me to “You Are What You Read” Passbook programming, and I

delivered the numbers intended for the border guards to de la Madrid as

ordered. A computer of sorts was used to calculate and confirm the numbers.

Aware that the meeting was being filmed by one of Dante’s high tech “hidden”

cameras, de la Madrid held up a paper-wrapped ball of Mexican heroin.

Speaking directly at the camera, he cleverly said, “A token of appreciation, Mr.

Bush, Something for your private stock. The finest heroin available. Enjoy.”

Dante strode across the room and said, “I’ll take that and see to it that he

gets it myself.”

“I’m sure you will,” de la Madrid laughed. He then put all but one paper

back in the briefcase. I was instructed to present the elaborately embossed

Mexican Presidential Seal (of Approval) to pre-appointed Juarez border guards

as proof of de la Madrid’s commitment, then deliver it directly to Bush for his

file on the future NAFTA agreement.

Prepared to present a modified Hands-On Mind-Control Demonstration to de

la Madrid, Dante said, “You’ve heard from a Carrier Pigeon (messenger).

You’ve seen her in a mode to accept program. And now I will demonstrate

some of her sexual modes.”

“That will not be necessary,” de la Madrid told him. “I have been given a

handful of keys that I would like to use on my own, including the one to destroy

all memory. Not that it matters when we are monitored (he gestured toward the

camera), but nevertheless I was instructed to do it.” Dante did not seem to

know this was not the first time I was sexually prostituted to the Mexican

President.

“She rides a horse well,” Dante said, referring to both the rare practice of

heroin to supposedly block my memory of this event, and a Reagan-inspired sex

act. Dante stuck a needle in my arm. “May I recommend a ride for you?”

“I am on one now that I would like to maintain,” de la Madrid answered,

referring to cocaine use and his running nose. Dante laid out several generous

lines of the white drug on a black mirror. He stroked me under my chin

triggering Reagan’s sex Kitten personality, picked up Bush’s heroin, and

ushered the two guards out the door.

De la Madrid, fully aware of my pornography exposure, said, “You like

cameras? Let’s give them something to watch.” He snorted two more lines of

coke, undressed, and further activated my sex programming with the verbal and

physical keys and triggers Reagan had previously provided him. At one point

he enthusiastically commented that “if I have my way, the Free Trade

Agreement will include a few top of the tine (he snorted another line of coke for

emphasis) “models” (vaginally) carved and trained like you.” De la Madrid had

long been obsessively fascinated with my vaginal mutilation carving. He was

perversely excited at the prospect of the Juarez border joint venture drug deal

including protected “free trade” of mind-controlled slaves. He reiterated his

desire the next day during a meeting with Reagan.

CHAPTER 28

“FREE TRADE” OF DRUGS

AND SLAVES AT THE JUAREZ BORDER

The next day. Dante drove me to a Bel Aire mansion high on a hill where

another party was underway. As I joined those who had gathered on the

manicured lawn, I recognized many of the same Mafia people who had been at

the Malibu retreat aka “Hotel California”. This was a welcome party for

President Reagan who had just arrived. He was walking across the yard toward

me with his friend. Jack Valenti, who was the president of the powerful Motion

Picture Association of America. Reagan looked his role amongst his mobster

friends, his beige coal with fur collar draped over his shoulders revealing a dark

grey, pinstripe suit underneath. In retrospect I remember him as dressed like

the one mobster I did not have to meet, John Gotti. As soon as my eyes met

his, 1 was knocked to the ground by a familiar blue-white blast (high voltage)

like the one I had recently experienced in D.C.

When I came back around and my eyes refocused, Dante was holding me

up. Reagan said, “Well, hello Kitten”.

“Uncle Ronnie, how’d you get here?” I asked in child-like innocence.

“The rainbow, Kitten, the rainbow,” he answered in Oz cryptic, “I told you

I was coming home. There’s no place like home, and you said it with me. So,

here we are. I keep a little piece of the rainbow in my pocket so I can get back

over it (to D.C.) anytime I want to. I make a wish, and click my heels, and

I’m gone.”

For the moment, Reagan succeeded in confusing my mind with Oz cryptic

metaphors, reconfirming to my child personality that he was indeed the

powerful Wizard. As we went inside for a brief meeting, my personality was

deliberately switched to the one that had dealt with de la Madrid the night

before.

The grey-white stucco house was decorated in plush Presidential blue

carpeting and deep, cherry wood tones. The “office” was small and further

crowded by those of us present for the meeting. De la Madrid was comfortably

seated, as was Jack Valenti. I was not privy to Valenti’s exact role in opening

the Juarez border, I only know that he was well educated lo the particulars of

this meeting. Dante and I remained standing since we would be leaving as

quickly as I heard what Reagan, who was shuttling papers and pacing the room,

had to say.

“Well, Kitten,” Reagan said to me, “this is your death sentence: You’ll go

out ia a blaze of glory.” I was not surprised to receive confirmation of my

imminent death by Reagan. I had heard about death by fire from seemingly

everyone involved in establishing “free trade,” through Mexico, of our nation’s

children for drags. Reagan’s use of patriotic metaphors and puns while matterof-

factly informing me he ordered my death was reflective of his often

displayed lack of respect for human life. What reflected his character even

more were the crimes he was involved in that prompted him to cover-up

through “sentencing- me to death. I had witnessed the criminal foundations of

NAFTA, which in turn could threaten the successful implementation of the New

World Order should these secrets ever be revealed. Initial “Free Trade”

including drugs and white slavery extended beyond the U.S./Mexican border. It

routed U.S. traumatized, robotic, mind-controlled children into Saudi Arabia,

while building up weapon stockpiles in Nicaragua and Iraq. Although I was

considered to be no threat, predicated on the (erroneous) belief that I could not

be deprogrammed to regain my memory of these events, my death would

provide extra insurance to those involved. I was nearly “used up” anyway, and

recording my death via “Snuff Film” was agreed upon as proof to De la Madrid

and other leaders at risk, that I had indeed been silenced through death,

I could not think to respond to Reagan’s “death sentence”. Dante wanted to

make sure I grasped the point as he graphically expounded, “The next time I

ignite your (sexual) flame. Baby, it will consume you, body and soul. And you

will burn, Baby, burn. And I’ll take your ashes and scatter them to the wind.

I ‘m going to blow you away. On film.”

Upon hearing something cryptic to which he could relate. Valenti laughed at

Dante’s twist of words. Referring to the old, porn, blue pencil editing term

“Blue movies,” he added, “Blue blazes”.

Dante laughed with him. “We’ll call it ‘Who In Blue Blazes Was That?’

Or, how ’bout ‘Cream-Ate’?”

De la Madrid noticed Reagan was not laughing and said, “That’s like

erasing a Mercedes to film a stunt,” He leaned forward in his chair closer to

Reagan, lowered his voice and said, “It is my desire to have seven just like her

roll off the assembly Line and shipped to me prior to the agreement’s

completion.”

Reagan agreed, responding, “Those (blonde-haired, blue-eyed) fine kids on

the relay to Saudi Arabia are top of the line, but they don’t have what she’s

got.”

“Two faced Ones are hard to come by,” de la Madrid quipped, referring to

my vaginal mutilation and Presidential programming code. He cut his eyes over

to me, touched himself and cryptically continued, “—from one perspective,

anyway. And I like having ‘One’ I can ‘count on.”

Reagan chuckled while Dante shifted his feet and unfolded his arms long

enough to cough-laugh. Valenti seemed to be bored of cliches or was missing

many of the cryptic double meanings, but judging from the tone of the meeting,

that was just as well. “I’ll mention it to Bobby (Byrd) and delegate your order

to him,” Reagan told his Mexican counterpart. “It should be relatively simple

to slip one in for you every few shipments or so once the Juarez border is open

to such free trade activities as planned.” Reagan spoke as though he were distracted

and thinking of something else, even when he looked my direction.

“If you please, Sir,” I began, “I have the Presidential Seal of Approval and

am prepared to fulfill my role.” Dante looked at his watch, aware that 1 was

scheduled to be at the Juarez border by the “stroke of midnight”. Reagan

walked over to see the paper I had received from de la Madrid the night before.

“OK. Well, farewell. Kitten,” Reagan said, as he kissed my cheek. He

added in Oz cryptic, “I’ll see you on the other side (of the rainbow in D.C.).

Click your heels…”

My world spun black. Someone had hit me with a powerful stun gun and I

was down, feeling as though Dante was half dragging me as he led me to his

car, which was already idling in the circular drive. We soon pulled up to the

motor home at the gas station on Hollywood Boulevard, where he had picked

Kelly and me up several days before, Kelly was already in the motor home,

vomiting sick and horribly traumatized. She had been convinced by someone

that I had been killed. Houston attempted to create a hypnotically induced

“time slip,” acting as though I had only been gone a few minutes. We drove

quickly, stopping only for fuel in order that I be in Juarez at the appointed time.

There 1 robotically presented the Presidential Seal of Approval to the proper

officials as programmed, officially opening the border to “Free Trade” of

crimes against humanity. Houston and I had hurried across the Juarez border

where we were met by the Mexican official in charge. The guard looked to be

in his late 40s, with classic, rugged, Mexican features. He stood approximately

5’11″, had black hair, an unkempt moustache, black beady eyes and a paunchy

belly protruding over his short, squat legs. He spoke excitedly in Spanish, with

a harsh, cold lone to his voice as he spit out the necessary words in English,

“Give me the Seal”, He snapped his fingers, impatiently hurrying me. He took

the Presidential seal and knocked me face down on top of a small, barren metal

desk while he closely inspected the document. Even Houston was unusually

quiet while this particular uniformed guard paced the small tower room,

sweating profusely while he talked on his walkie talkie. Finally, he accessed

and verified the bank transaction codes provided through whom he said was

George Bush, Jr. He concluded the encounter by taking a stun gun from his

belt and jolting me with it, supposedly to erase my memory.

I was nauseated and weak from high voltage and the ordeal as Houston and I

made our way back across the border. My empty stomach rolled, prompting

Houston to lie, “I told you not to drink the water”. In reality, I had had nothing

to drink since the champagne at the Hotel California, and 1 hadn’t eaten in days.

I was thoroughly exhausted when we reached the motor home in El Paso, but

Houston was sexually aroused from cocaine and the criminal events that merged

Mexico with the U.S. at the Juarez border.

CHAPTER 29

THE LIZARD OF AHS

After the opening of the Juarez border, I was kept actively busy according to

the plan to “use me up” before my 30th birthday death sentence. I was

subjected to a brutal (near death gang rape) “celebration benefit” at an identified

Masonic Lodge in Warren, Ohio to “celebrate the free trade benefits” gained by

involved East Coast politicos. Centers such as the nearby Youngstown “Charm

School” went into mass production of slaves to mule drugs or be part of the

mind-controlled sex slave “trance-sport operations”. Mexico was not the only

country reaping the economic benefits of criminal free trade.

After Kelly’s ordeal in California, Dante and Houston were criminally

exploiting her for literally “all she was worth”. Subsequently, she missed an

extraordinary amount of schooling. When she was in school, she was

experiencing difficulty with her peers. These factors prompted plans to send

her to a local Catholic school the next year, where her unusual behavior would

be overlooked and covered up,

Soon thereafter, Senator Byrd came to Nashville to fiddle at the Grand Ole

Opry and, as my handler. Houston, remarked, “fiddle around with me” at the

Opryland Hotel. Byrd explained that close association with me had become

volatile due to my roles in Iran-Contra and NAFTA, and therefore he would be

distancing himself from me. He spent most of “our last night together” working

on his memoirs for a voluminous book on the U.S. Constitution he was writing

(now published at taxpayers’ expense), which focuses on his long-winded Senate

(filibuster) speeches.

Byrd attempted to strengthen my programmed “loyalty bond” to him to keep

me quiet “until death do us part”. He told me, “If it was up to me, I would let

you live”. He talked at length about how our time together had been infringed

upon by both de la Madrid and Reagan, Bitterness over their stronger controls

on me was evident as he mocked their self appointed roles as the Wizard and

Lizard of Oz. De la Madrid’s fascination with U.S. mind-controlled slaves

reportedly inspired him to combine Bush’s lizard-like alien themes and his reputed

Mayan roots/lizard man theories with Reagan’s Oz themes to claim the

role of Lizard of Ahs. From Byrd’s ramblings, it appeared that his mockery of

their roles was due to their having decided how “his” slave would die, and had

nothing to do with caring that I would be killed. Byrd maintained his

“bonding” programming charade all night. He played his fiddle and sang “to:

me” in place of his usual torturous whipping and brutality. Sex was, for the

first and last time, painless.

Byrd had not distanced himself too far from me, though, where government

operations were concerned. When I was “over the rainbow” in D.C. during the

summer of ’87, it was business as usual with Byrd. I was escorted to Goddard

Space Flight Center where Byrd was waiting for me in a sterile hallway near the

brass-trimmed, mirrored elevators. He was loaded down with items, which he

deposited on a small table as he greeted me. He picked up a NASA ID badge

and clipped it on my nipple, the metal teeth biting me with their serrated edges.

When I (softly) cried out, he said, “Oh OK. I l l wear it,” removed it, and

clipped it on his white lab coat. He handed me a NASA lab coat like his and a

white hard bat. His hard hat suggestively and “humorously” said HARD in

bold red letters. My hat said NASA, in a mirror reversal of the standard bold

red lettering. When I read it in a mirror, it appeared as though I were on the

wrong side of the mirror and needed to step through (according to Alice In

Wonderland/NASA programming). It also clearly indicared to those-in-theknow

that I was under mind control. Byrd looked at his pocket watch

prompting a wave of terror in me, and said in Wonderland cryptic, “We’re late.

As the elevator drops down the rabbit hole, we’ll reverse time in order to get

there a few minutes early.”

Bvrd spun me around to face the elevator’s mirrored doors saying, “Look

deep into the mirror and be all that you can be by becoming infinitely lost in all

that you see.” Byrd timed his hypnotic induction so that wben he ordered.

“Step through the mirror,” the doors opened and we stepped through.

As the elevator supposedly went “down 99 (taken from Aquino’s corny

reversal of 66) levels to the depths of hell,” Byrd told me the Earth “spins faster

and faster at the core, causing us to spiral downward in a tornado effect.” I

dropped deeper in my hypnotic trance. The elevator doors opened to what

appeared to me as an exact replica of the floor we just left. However, this

floor’s hallway led to a computer room and sanitized-looking lab area. Several

of the scientists working there were amused by our hats, prompting Byrd to ham

up his comedic act, Byrd ignored the fact that these NASA workers, like many

others, may have deliberately stroked his entertainer’s ego because they relied

on his appropriations for funding,

Byrd made me robotically announce to the workers, “He’s taking me to your

leader.”

“I’m the Commander, here,” the apparent director of the underground lab

said. The workers again busied themselves as he stood, arms folded defensively

across his chest, while his bespectacled intelligent eyes darted the room

surveying the situation. The Commander had a few, grey strands salting his

short, dark hair, yet his build was surprisingly youthful and trim for his age.

He and Byrd apparently knew each other quite well. Byrd strode over to him,

dragging me along. “Tom,” Byrd called to his 50ish 6’1″ friend. “This is your

specimen of the day that I promised I would deliver. I will be most interested

to see what you can deliver since diplomatic relations with Mexico depends on

it. Not that I want to increase any pressure you may feel, but we need seven

more just like her to stuff in the mouth of his royal Lizardry (de la Madrid) to

keep him from spilling his guts on the project.”

“It’s just as well, my friend,” the Commander said, stroking his chin

without uncrossing his arms. “That way he can’t talk without implicating

himself.”

“That’s the way the Chief feels about it,” Byrd agreed. “He’s already in

deep anyway, but this order (for slaves) hits him closer to home since they’ll be

serving him personally.”

We walked to a clinical, sanitized area that had a maze of small rooms

where I was undressed and prepped for the lab. A nurse of sorts injected me

with the NASA “Tranquility” drug and instructed me to put my lab coat back

on. “Walk this way,” she ordered as she led me down the hall, swinging her

hips in an exaggerated manner. I immediately complied. The Tranquility drug

had no recreational affects, but produced an attitude of peaceful compliance to

all orders given. As we approached the theater-type lab, a small group of men

who would be in attendance were talking with Byrd and the so-called

Commander. They looked at us and laughed at my literal compliance to walk

like the nurse.

1 was then led by the Commander to a “backstage” entrance which was

actually a glass-encased lab surrounded by seats in ascending rows. Scientists in

NASA lab coats looked down on the lab table where I lay as the Commander

wired me up to a computerized machine. A camera was positioned high in one

comer of the room, filming all that transpired. I was aware through

conversations between Byrd and the Commander that de la Madrid had

requested a video of the latest advancements in mind-control technique being

used to create his seven slaves. In reality, the camera was filming scientific

methodisms salted with “comic” misinformation as a humorous “no” to his

request.

Since I was considered “used up” and my death was imminent, the

Commander told the scientists to “feel free to fuck the lab specimen”, “But

first,” he said, “before you satisfy your mental and physical curiosities sampling

the President’s (Reagan’s) wares, we must satisfy El President’s (de la

Madrid’s) perverse intellect with a little space humor.” He turned to one of the

technical workers and said, “You’re going to have to edit this tape for de la

Madrid’s benefit and take this part out while we prepare her for an ‘off color’

chameleon joke.”

A live lizard encased in a glass test tube of sorts was inserted in my vagina,

The camera was focused on the area while my legs were spread in a birthing

position. Acting as though I had conceived while having sex with de la Madrid,

the Commander said, “Now for the finished product, which in layman’s terms

equates to the reproductive offspring of a Lizard breeding machine.” He

dramatically snapped on a rubber glove and probed me as though he were

giving me a gynecological exam. In fact, he was opening the trap door of the

Lizard’s tube to turn him out. Very slowly, the sluggish lizard poked his head

out of my vagina and crawled out onto the metal table, “This concludes all of

the experimentation demonstration of the cloning of a Presidential model,” the

Commander said,

I apparently had been selected as the prototype for the seven programmed

slaves de La Madrid had requested. De la Madrid was interested in NASA

programmed staves that would be vaginally mutilated like I was. He was

sexually obsessed with the hideous carving. 1 have no way of knowing what, if

any, technological advancements were actually provided to de la Madrid via the

film. I only know that deliberate misinformation tainted the methodologies

depicted, and that I had never experienced programming or testing before or at

the time by any such methods.

This video created for “his Royal Lizardry” was one of many cryptic lizard

themes that NASA used in its Mexican operations. All of my programmed

roles in Mexico involved the prolific, local, iguana lizards. De la Madrid had

relayed the “legend of the Iguana” to me, explaining that lizard-like Aliens had

descended upon the Mayans. The Mayan pyramids, their advanced

astronomical technology, including the sacrifice of virgins, was supposedly

inspired by the lizard aliens. He told me that when the aliens interbred with the

Mayans to produce a form of life they could inhabit, they fluctuated between ahuman

and Iguana appearance through chameleon-like abilities. “A perfect

vehicle for transforming into world leaders.” De la Madrid claimed to have

Mayan/alien ancestry in his blood, whereby he transformed “back into an

Iguana at will.” De la Madrid produced a hologram similar to the one Bush did.

in his You Are What You Read initiation. His hologram of lizard-like tongue

and eyes produced the illusion that he was transforming into an Iguana. While

in Mexico, I was always ordered to wait by rocks where the abundant Iguanas

sunned before being “trance-ported” to my scheduled meetings with “his Royal

Lizardry,” the Lizard of Ahs.

CHATTER 30

IN THE INTEREST OF TIME AND SPACE

Senator Patrick Leahy (D-Vermont), who served as vice chairman on the

U.S. Senate Intelligence Committee in 1985-86, was a “friend” of Senator

Byrd. Leahy’s position on Byrd’s Senate Appropriations Committee, coupled

with his former position in Intelligence, afforded him an inordinate amount of

power and influence. While 1 had cause to have contact with Senator Leahy on

numerous occasions, Kelly was apparently more familiar with him than I. This

was evidenced by our meeting with him in Vermont in the late summer of 1985.

Alex Houston was booked to “entertain” at the State Fair in Rutland,

Vermont. The entire trip proved to be a whirlwind of covert activity for me,

during which time 1 obtained a packet of papers from an unidentified operative

with orders to hand deliver them to Senator Leahy. Kelly had been kept as busy

as I, since Boxcar Willie and other CIA operative pedophiles were in abundance

at the fair in Leahy’s home state.

President Reagan had given me specific orders to carry out while in

Vermont, which included delivering a message to “Patrick” for him. He also

told me, “When you go to Vermont, be sure and go by (“buy”) LL Bean.”

Literally interpreting what he suggested, I asked, “The whole store?”

“No,” Reagan laughed. “I meant stop by there. 1 didn’t mean buy the

whole store. I already own it. Just buy a few things, like an LL Bean Swiss

Army Knife.”1

When Reagan said he “already owned” LL Bean, I thought he was referring

to the amount of shopping he did there.” He wore LL Bean shirts, sweaters, and

slippers; slept on LL Bean flannel sheets in his LL Bean pajamas; and carried

his “Presidential” black, LL Bean, Swiss Army Knife, with which he cleaned

his fingernails. But I learned the real significance of Reagan’s statement when I

“stopped by” the Vermont LL Bean outlet on the final day of Houston’s lengthy

Vermont State Fair engagement.

The LL Bean outlet, located near the fop of supposedly the highest mountain

in the pristine forest, appeared to be a store front for CIA covert activity.

When I asked the ‘clerk’ assigned to Kelly and me for a black, Swiss Army

Knife, his response was indicative of familiarity with government covert

operations. Using the old familiar statement (trigger), he ordered Kelly and me

to “Walk this way,” as he led us through a storage area and out the back door.

There, a black, unmarked helicopter was waiting on a pad for us.

The pilot flew us a short distance to the top of a mountain, where we landed

in a clearing next to a house that appeared to have no other access. The place

was run like a fortress, and two guards in suits met us as Kelly and I emerged

from the helicopter. The guards escorted us into the house, keeping Kelly while

I met with Senator Leahy.

I walked into an office-type room that had a panoramic view of the

wilderness, where Leahy was leaning against a highly polished, wooden desk.

He was wearing an orange flannel shirt that lost its purpose in crispness. It was

my experience that Leahy’s surroundings, like his appearance, were as sanitized

as possible.

I delivered the documents and message as ordered. Leahy then proceeded to

explain that he was aware that my death was imminent due to my groundwork

participation in NAFTA, and that subsequently Kelly would be traded to the

West Coast pornography operation. Not only did he obviously want to join in

on “using me up” before my 30th birthday, but he had “tracks” to cover-up

where Kelly was concerned.

Most of my traumatic encounters with Leahy were alien-themed, but be

often relied on my Catholic upbringing to drive his points into my mind. From

my perspective, Leahy was unquestionably one of the most intelligent criminals

of this entire Shadow Government. His carefully contrived chameleon-like

characteristics provided him the latitude of appearing to share the principals and

beliefs of whomever he was masterfully manipulating on both a national and

international level. He won Reagan’s respect through their shared diplomatic

ties to the Vatican, and his Irish-Catholic heritage. While he appeared publicly

to oppose Byrd on Senate Appropriations issues, they actually worked together

behind the scenes in their shared world dominance efforts. Again from my

perspective, Leahy was a loner who had his own agenda and answered to no one

I knew. Leahy’s intelligence was often manifested to me by triple depth

meaning to his words and actions. Everything he did was for a deeper purpose,

and this trip to Vermont proved to be no different,

Kelly and I had been given what felt like a sophisticated variation of Lhe

NASA CIA-designer drug, Tranquility, which turned us into the robotic mindcontrolled

slaves that Senator Leahy preferred. As the drug was overtaking me,

I attentively listened to what Leahy was saying.

“God condones that one,” Leahy said, referring to both my role in NAFTA

and his pedophile abuse of my daughter. “Of course, God is not the one you

need to be concerned with. He is a passive God, One who’s passed on and

lives only in a Bible. The God you need to be concerning yourself with is the

all-seeing, all-knowing God. That great, big, Eye in the Sky. It sees all,

records all, and transmits the information right where it’s needed. Let me give

you some sound advice-Keep your mouth shut and none of this need be known

anywhere. Only your Vice President (Bush) will know for sure, and he’s been

keeping secrets all his life. I’m not suggesting George Bush is God. Oh no, he

is much more than that. He is a semi-God, which means he is straddling the

heavenly and earthly planes in order that he take action on what he sees with his

ever watchful Eye In The Sky.” Content with his metaphorical manipulation of

my literal mind, he finished, “Now, that’s enough fore-play. Go get the kid.”

Kelly was standing quietly and robotically just outside the door with the two

guards. They ushered us down the hall, through an ornately carved door, and

into Leahy’s bedroom. The room was highly effeminate for a man, decorated

in pastels, white eyelet, and huge billowy pillows. When the Senator walked

in, Kelly groaned, “Noooo, not you again”, Leahy signalled Kelly with his

hand, thus switching her into total silence and submission. Then, accessing

specific personality fragments that previously recompartmentalized in my mind

from Bush’s and Byrd’s sexual abuse of Kelly, Leahy began undressing. His

pale skin looked even whiter against the white eyelet sheets, which seemed to

accentuate the perversity of his pedophile actions with my daughter that I was

forced to watch. His torturous abuse complete, Leahy ordered Kelly and me to

follow him downstairs to his “torture lab”,

I had seen and experienced basement “spy conditioning” torture chambers

before both in the U.S. and Mexico, and Leahy’s “torture lab” looked more like

a NASA lab. His access to the latest advancements in electronic/drug mindcontrol

technology was consistent with his ability to use it. I was immediately

strapped to a cold, chrome and stainless steel table by the two guards. Leahy

began reciting, “Cross your heart and hope to die, Stick a needle in your eye”.

A wirey “needle” was pushed slowly into my right eye while Kelly was forced

to watch. This entire ordeal was directed for trauma purposes primarily at

Kelly since Leahy figured I would be dead soon anyway. “If you holler, if you

cry, Kelly will be the first to die. Pray to God and Bush will hear, because his

Eye now has an ear.” Leahy interrupted his poem to explain that 1 was now a

“computer-eyesd” link-up to Bush’s Eye in the Sky, with the needle-like

“antenna” transmitting every word Kelly spoke. He continued wilh me, “Each

word you speak, each breath you sigh,’Your eye trance-mits to the Eye in the

Sky”. Kelly believed it, which locked her into silence. Leahy’s secret was

safe-for the moment.

While I was literally out of my mind from intense pain, Leahy utilized the

opportunity to program me with what he said was financial information to

deliver to Byrd. This required no “personality”, therefore the shattered

fragments Leahy had deliberately shifted me into when raping Kelly would be

ideal to “computer-eyes” his message. He told me that my body was a conduit

to link him up to the Eye in the Sky, where he was transmitting the information

for storage until such time as Byrd accessed it. “Only the tiniest little prick can

access the compuLer-eyesd’ storage bank,” Leahy said, laughing at his own

double meaning mockery of Byrd’s penis size.

This was not the first time Leahy transferred apparently sensitive U.S.

Government intelligence information to Byrd through me. I had photographically

recorded numbers in my mind’s “computer banks” ever since

Leahy prepared me for the task some months before at White Sands Missile

Base in New Mexico. It was there in the TOP SECRET mind-control area of

the base that Leahy subjected me to extreme tortures and high-tech

programming. Combining purposes as usual, Leahy was saying, “Funding will

continue to be approved as long as (mind-control) Projects such as this continue

to receive your full attention”. I was treated like a lab animal with no apparent

regard for whether I lived or died. I was put in an electrified metal walled and

floored cell, referred to by some as the woodpecker grid, which provided

inescapable physical torture.

In spite of his tortures, intelligence, high-tech methodism, and sophisticated

mind manipulations. Senator Leahy failed to cover his “secrets”—including his

sexual abuse of Kelly. He did succeed, however, in causing Kelly and me to be

hospitalized from his torturous abuses upon our return to Tennessee. I had

suffered excruciating pain and irreparable damage to my right eye, while Kelly

psychosomatically suffered respiratory failure due to his extreme traumas. The

physical manifestations of the psychological devastation wreaked on us by

Senator Leahy failed to raise questions from outsiders as to the cause.

Equally worthy of mention, are numerous other high profile perpetrators

that Kelly and I had exposure to over the years. These individuals, in spite of

the CIA’s “need-to-know” M.O. of maintaining “the left hand does not know

what the right hand is doing,” were in positions to be knowledgeable of Kelly’s

and my victimizations. All of them accessed our programming either for drug

distribution, banking/message delivery, mind-control demonstrations, or, most

often, for their perverse sexual gratification.

These too numerous individuals and events are significant chapters in my

life who, in the interest of time and space, will be fully exposed in a

forthcoming book. Rather than point a finger at these individuals for reasons of

“vengeance” (there is none comparable), they must be publicly identified for all

our sakes and, above all, for our children’s sakes. Therefore, a list of perpe-

Traitors has been compiled and strategically distributed for posterity, as well as

to prevent these individuals from interfering in any Congressional hearings2 that

should be forthcoming as a result of this exposure.

1Black LL Bean Swiss Army Knives were a coded indicator of White House-level

operations. Red LL Bean Swiss Army Knives, and regular Swiss Army Knives were a standard

CIA indicator with which I was also familiar.

2Please support us in this effort by writing your Congressmen.

CHAPTER 31

THE KING AND EYE

Saudi Arabia threaded in and out of most operations in which I was

involved, primarily due to their purchase and routing of weapons, drugs, and

blond-haired, blue-eyed programmed children. According to George Bush’s

claims, Saudi Arabia was in essence a controlled financial arm of the United

States. Saudi Arabian King Fahd and his Ambassador to the U.S., Prince

Bandar, provided a front for the unconstitutional and criminal covert operations

of the U.S. This included the arming of Iraq and the Nicaraguan Contras; U.S.

involvement in the Bank of Credit and Commerce International (B.C.C.I.)

scandal; and funding of the Black Budget through purchase of our nation’s

children to be used as sex slaves and camel jockeys. Since the U.S. “won”

control of the drug industries through the so-called Drug Wars, Saudi Arabia

played an integral role in distribution. It was my experience that Bush’s claim

of having Saudi Arabian King Fahd as his puppet was, in fact, reality. It was

only natural that criminal diplomatic relations with Mexico interface with Saudi

Arabia under the circumstances. After all, King Fahd and Mexican President.

Miguel de la Madrid were active members of George Bush’s elite

“Neighborhood” in the New World Order. Before I left Washington, D.C., it,

was “my duty as a (programmed) American Patriot” to participate in initiating

the King and Eye branch of Operation Greenbacks for Wetbacks.

While plans were being finalized for a clandestine 3:00 A.M. meeting at

L’Enfante Hotel which I would be attending, 1 was rushed around D.C.

gathering last minute messages and information. I had no choice in leaving.

Kelly at Bush’s Residence Office where Houston had dropped us off earlier in

the day for my initial briefing. Congressman Guy VanderJagt was in Bush’s

office along with Dick Cheney when we arrived. Before taking Kelly upstairs

to the residence area, VanderJagt told Bush his story about taking my virginity

when I was a small child. He recommended Bush do the same to Kelly before

someone else “beat him to it”. Bush laughed and replied, “What makes you

think I haven’t?”"

VanderJagt look Kelly by the hand and led her upstairs while Bush and

Cheney began giving me my instructions. Bush joked about working “grave

yard” in the “shadows” for “the White House night shift” of the King and Eye

operation. Cheney began my instructions with the usual threat to Kelly’s life,

and was interrupted by a phone call ordering me over to the White House, The

whole time 1 was gone, I experienced a sensation of panic and dread at having

had to leave Kelly at Bush’s. Although I could not think to reason, the Shasta

experience had left me with an incomprehensible subconscious fear for Kelly’s

life that was compounded by Cheney’s most recent threats. I was apprehensive

when I was returned to Bush’s house late that evening for completion of my

instructions. A party was underway, and I was dismayed to see the place so

crowded yet void of children.

As I made my way through the crowd, Cheney saw me and started across

the room towards me, I spotted VanderJagt nearby, who had been drinking

excessively, and anxiously asked him where Kelly was. He said, “Upstairs

sleeping, George is expecting you”. I wanted desperately to go to Kelly, but

Cheney, who was drunk as usual, had reached me by that time.

“Walk this way,” Cheney slurred. He imitated the Oz Scarecrow’s walk as

he led me through the middle of the crowd to Bush’s office. Bush was busy

behind his desk, and his tension was apparent. He said, “Phil Habib is doing a

number on his highness’ (Fahd’s) head, I want you to do a number on his

‘dick’”.

“Please,” Dick Cheney groaned at the term. “That means give him a Royal

fucking. Wear him out. You’re going on a magic carpet ride tonight, little

Genie, down through the rabbit hole, through the minor and we’ll meet you on

the other side.”

“Good. He’d better have a smile on his face when we walk in (to the 3:00

A.M. meeting),” Bush told me as I went out the door. “If you do your part

right, he will.”

I was escorted to L’Enfante Hotel where I was to be prostituted to King

Fahd. I had been exposed to him sexually before, but this was my first time

with him and his five young girls. Physical likeness characteristics strongly

suggested that these Saudi Arabian girls were his own children. Their ages

ranged from approximately ten to twenty years old. Indicating Genie-in-the-

Bottle programming, of which Fahd was familiar, 1 bowed and said, “Your

wish is my command”, Fahd’s first wish was for information, which I told him

I would deliver later at the meeting. Fahd “disrobed” as his girls removed my

dress. Then they “prepared” me as ordered by “washing me” with their tongues,

while the youngest briefly performed oral sex on him. The girls were ordered

aside while I proceeded to sexually gratify Fahd according to his instruction and

those I had received earlier from Cheney and Bush. When I finished doing “my

part” in the name of “Diplomatic Relations,” Habib was at the door to escort me

out. I was to meet with Fahd again at 3:00 A.M. in Habib’s suite.

As I stepped out the door, Habib was impatiently hopping up and down like

be was energized from cocaine. Using his role as White Rabbit, he said in

Wonderland cryptic, “We’re late! We’re late! For a very important date!” He

led me downstairs to the entrance of the hotel, where Bush and Cheney had just

walked in looking ridiculously conspicuous in their trenchcoats.

Bush immediately ordered Habib, “Call in” and gestured to the phone across

‘the lobby. Habib turned and hurried for the phone. Cheney dashed up the

stairs, leaving me alone with Bush. Bush said, referring to Habib, “Don’t you

love to see the wabbit hop?”

When Cheney returned a moment later, my (identified) Secret Service escort

led me to the boutique area of the hotel to wait while the meeting in Habib’s

suite got under way. 1 had endured water deprivation for some time, which my

escort noted as we sat near a fountain. He told me his orders were, “You can

lead a whore to water, but you can’t let her drink,” He teased me further,

stating that he knew I could “suck the humps of a thousand camels dry.” At

last, he took me on to the meeting in Habib’s room, where Bush, Cheney,

Fahd, and Habib were in the midst of discussion.

Bush accessed the messages and bank transaction details I was programmed

with at Shasta, and ordered me to relay an account of my meeting with de la

Madrid and subsequent opening of the Juarez border. The complexities of this

meeting, compounded by my being privy only to certain parts, should not be

documented here out of context. I do know that Bush was setting the stage for

implementing the New World Order, using Mexico and Saudi Arabia’s roles for

cover and for further expansion of U.S. covert criminal activity. This included

the arming of Iraq with weapons and chemical warfare capabilities. The

message Reagan had me programmed with earlier that day was further evidence

of this. I delivered Reagan’s message to King Fahd as ordered:

“Greetings to King Fahd from President Reagan. The negotiations you are

about to embark on are not only critical to the world peace process, but may

solidify U.S.-Saudi relations beyond your wildest expectations. You have my

word that what appears to be the building up of forces in Iraq is but a mirage in

the whirlwind. And when this operation is completed and the dust finally

settles, you will see that the sands have shifted in time, running out on our

adversaries and shifting all power and control to our unified effort. United we

stand to conquer all in the name of world peace and world order, and I am

confident that together we can not fail. The more Saddam destroys is that much

less for us to do and deal with when we implement the Order. In the meantime,

we all have much to gain and not a moment to lose.”

It was raining by the time I was escorted back to Bush’s residence where

Houston was waiting to take Kelly and me back to Tennessee.

1The Alaska state-appointed child sexual abuse physician’s exam and photos corroborate

that, for once, Bush may have told the truth.

CHAPTER 32

A PLACE TO RUN, NO NEED TO HIDE

Alex Houston had maintained his capacitor distributing business cover

throughout the years, routinely changing company names and customers. By

summer’s end in 1987, Houston had stumbled onto a legitimate sales inquiry

from the Peoples Republic of China, Unable to profitably manage a legal

business, he look on a partner whom he said checked out to have a curious but

inconclusive association in U.S. Intelligence. This partner was Mark Phillips.

Houston had forbid me from meeting Mark until his background check was

completed and his allegiances understood. As much as he was intrigued with

Mark’s past, Houston was enthralled with his propensity for conducting international

business. In exchange for Mark’s cooperation, Houston and he formed

a legal corporation. Mark Phillips became President and CEO of Uniphayse. It

wasn’t long thereafter that he won Houston’s confidence through repeated

professional successes, and Houston permitted me to meet him.

I sensed right away that Mark was very different from the other men I

encountered routinely. He treated me as though I were a person, and his eyes

revealed no sexual interest in me at all. Instead of discussing world domination,

slavery, pornography, drugs, and genocide like the other men 1 knew, he

introduced me to the raccoons he had years ago rescued from certain death and

then tamed. I was deeply impressed with how his “wild” pets loved and trusted

him. 1 could not think to trust, ask for help, or even question at the time what

it was that made Mark different.

In the fall of 1987, Kelly was enrolled in Nashville, Tennessee’s St. Pius

Catholic School. Her unusual behaviors were addressed in school counseling,

but their causes and/or origins were never addressed. Kelly still laughs at the

absurdity of being counseled to vent her “anger” by scribbling the source of her

anger on a piece of paper and then jumping on it. With her “anger” being

caused by extreme physical and psychological tortures and sexual abuse, it could

not be so simplistically relieved. Houston had forbidden Kelly to display

emotion, and had so conditioned her. Once, when he savagely beat her for

laughing, I huddled in a corner holding her for hours. That did not positively

affect her enormous nurturing needs any more than jumping on a piece of

paper. With tears streaming down her face, she opened her bedroom curtains

and cried out to what she believed was “Bush’s Eye in the Sky”. “Why do you

hate me? Why do you hate me so much, world, when I love you? 1 want to die

now. 1 can’t take it any more.”

That, as evidenced by the near death asthma attack she endured, further

proved that Houston’s tortures were too much for a seven-year-old child to coexist

with. In retrospect, that remaining part of her mind that could question

why her existence was too horrible to comprehend was locked away- And so it

goes in the “life” of a mind-controlled slave.

In December 1987, my 30th birthday launched the final countdown to my

death. Houston was in regular contact with Michael Dante (as telephone

receipts prove), and arrangements were finalized for Kelly and me to be

transferred to California. There, I was supposed to be burned alive in a snuff

pornography film and Kelly would become the property of Dante. But first, I

had orders to conclude my part in Operation Greenbacks for Wetbacks by

meeting with de la Madrid. Houston had booked a New Year’s NCL cruise to

Mexico for all three of us.

Kelly and I were walking among the Mexican pyramid ruins in Tulum,

when Houston pointed out an iguana lizard sunning itself on a rock near the

parking lot. As Kelly and I approached the iguana, two Mexican Secret

Servicemen emerged from a dark blue Mercedes. They used the keys, codes,

and triggers to our programming that had been provided them to hypnotically

create the illusion that the iguana was trance-forming into de la Madrid. This

control technique was to build an amnesic block to ensure against memory

recall.

In reality, we were transported by automobile to de ta Madrid’s tacky

museum-style house nearby. There, Kelly and I were taken into his all too

familiar bedroom by a uniformed matronly woman. De la Madrid’s bed was a

king-size waterbed set in a darkwood canopy frame. This time the bedspread

was a plush black-blood red, which de la Madrid pointed out to Kelly as he set

her on the bed. It was my experience that de la Madrid’s bed was in itself a

NASA technology adventure.

Mounted inside of the canopy was a movie screen where de la Madrid

viewed porn videos and/or NASA-provided films. From his bed I saw replicas

of the NASA Goldstar multiscreen monitors that were routinely used in

“experimental” mind-control conditioning. By filming the actual NASA

multiscreen grouped monitors, the resultant video provided the illusion of seeing

a Goldstar multiscreen when shown on a (single) screen such as was built into

de la Madrid’s bed canopy. For example, once when I was in his bed, the same

light blue sky with moving clouds was depicted on the monitor screens that

NASA had used to lock-in my programming “Somewhere in Time,” de la

Madrid showed on his canopy movie screen. He further enhanced the effect by

having me hypnotically “float/drift” on his waterbed which he had covered with

a spread of similar light blue sky with clouds print. My previous NASA

programming was easily accessed “Somewhere in Time” through this simple,

but nevertheless complex visual triggering method. The pornography shown

was of me from previous taping, alternating with a built-in video camera

projecting our sex acts onto the screen as they occurred.

This time de la Madrid said, “Let us end where we began…,” referring to

my witnessing the rape of my daughter in Shasta. He ordered me to undress and

recline against the headboard of his bed. At the foot of the bed, he began

pulling Kelly’s jeans off as he said, “You gave birth to her, just as you gave

birth to the border agreement, and now your role is through on both counts. The

tears she will shed as you burn cannot extinguish the flames of passion you have

passed on to her. Your intense sexuality has been regenerated in her, and this

hormonal experiment in genetics will successfully evolve for generations to

come. Your role is complete. And thanks to my friends in Washington, NASA

has perfected the formula and given birth to the technology of mirrored

procreation using recreated bloodlines. The only detectable difference makes

the blood run cold. Reptilian. See for yourself”

De la Madrid gestured up toward the canopy screen, where the NASA

created video of my “giving birth” to the lizard was depicted. By this time, the

NASA provided designer drug for mind control, “Tranquility,” had been

administered and was kicking in full force. My eyes were hypnotically fixed on

the video as he began performing oral sex on my daughter. She, too, was

rendered helplessly defenseless by the drug and quietly complied with his every

demand. Using specific commands, de la Madrid ordered me to spread my legs

and display the vaginal mutilation carving. He positioned himself over Kelly’s

face, smothering her with his penis while he performed oral sex on my carving.

When at last we were returned to the NCL cruise ship, Kelly and I were

vomiting sick from de la Madrid’s abuse and the high voltage trauma that

followed. An unusually large shipment of cocaine and heroin had been loaded,

which was transferred into the walls of our custom built motor home once we

docked at Key Biscayne, Florida. Houston supposedly stayed aboard ship for

the next week of his engagement, while I drove the motor home full of drugs

and my sick daughter to Houston’s farm where we resided in Tennessee.

By the time Houston returned to Tennessee from his NCL cruise, Ken Riley

had already emptied the motor home and dispersed the drugs as previously

planned. The only business Houston had to attend was implementing the final

phase of trance-ferring Kelly and me to Dante and being updated on Mark

Phillips’ latest successes.

Houston immediately began programming me to not take anything but

Kelly’s and my clothes when sent to Dante At the same lime, Mark Phillips

and I had reached a level of communication that was new to me. Although I

had no conscious understanding of what he was saying, the truths he spoke

resounded throughout the depths of my being. For instance, when he showed

me his “Back to the Future” Delorean sports car, he wisely cryptically stated,

“Sometimes you have to know where you’ve been in order to know where

you’re going.”

Just before Kelly and I were to leave for California, Mark asked me to help

him force Houston out of business by providing him with the files on suspected

(corporate) criminal activity that Houston kept hidden at our house. Not only

did 1 gladly do so, but “somehow” I was able to ask for Help in return. I asked

him to help Kelly and me get away from Houston before I was killed and Kelly

was sentenced to a fate worse than death. Mark assured me that he would help.

The day Houston intended for Kelly and me to be transferred to Dante, I felt

a strange compulsion to telephone Mark and notify him. That morning,

Houston drove to Mark’s office believing he was going to meet with him later

that day. But Mark had brought a team of movers to the house, and rescued

Kelly and me. He had brilliantly intercepted us as we were being passed to our

intended destination! Mark even understood Kelly’s and my need to rescue our

farm pets from Houston’s abuse. He not only found good homes for our livestock,

but he had arranged for them to be loaded and transferred during our

frantic rush to move out of Houston’s house. Within two hours, Mark safely

moved Kelly, me, our pets and livestock to freedom. Despite brilliant

orchestration, pandemonium broke out when it was discovered that Kelly and I

had been intercepted and detoured from our intended demise.

“Wake up, sleeping beauty,” Mark said as he gently roused me with a cup

of fresh coffee. “Welcome to a new day.”

My eyes opened. I had never experienced such kindness before, and it

seemed like a whole new world to me. Mark presented me with a beautiful

watch, which he strapped on my wrist. Noting my wonder and surprise, he

explained, “Now you will always know that 1 gave you the time of day.”

The time of day? No one had ever given me their time before. They only

took mine. And I never wore a watch before. I did not even know what month

or year it was, let alone the tune of day. I had no concept of time, which Mark

explained I must always monitor from that moment on.

“You say someone is trying to kill you. Why?” Mark asked. I could not

think to answer. I was totally amnesic. All three of us were now in grave

jeopardy, literally dodging bullets while I desperately sought the answers. How

could I have requested help when I did not even know who and/or what I was

running from? Somewhere inside were the answers, and I intended to uncover

them all. Fast. Now there were three lives on the line.

Mark understood that safety was tantamount to memory recovery. At the

same time, none of us could be safe until I could recall who and what we were

up against. Mark quickly sold everything he owned, including his DeLorean,

retaining only basic necessities. He also sold the motor home which had been

awarded me in my divorce from Alex Houston. Using these funds, Mark took

Kelly and me to the peaceful wilderness of Alaska.

February 4, 1988 marked the beginning of life for Kelly and me, free from

our mind-controlled existence. It also marked the beginning of a new kind of

survival as we embarked on “The Most Dangerous Game” of international

proportions. Despite death threats and attempts, intimidation and cover-ups, we

have survived these past seven years by refusing to keep secrets-which is in

itself “another story.”

1As quickly as the accuracy of my deprogramming notes were corroborated and/or

verified, abstracts of various experiences and identification of abusers were vastly disseminated.

Those who read these abstracts over the years, literally watched me gain piece/peace-of-mind

(reintegrate.)

NINTH PRINTING
Since the first printing of TRANCE was released in
September 1995, many of the hard-to-comprehend
details have been verified and miraculously managed to
surface through our controlled medias. Please help us
any way you can to provide this book to anyone who will
further research its contents and thus shine the light of
truth on the psychological warfare plan that is being
silently waged against humanity.
Please remember, for as long as your thoughts remain
free, and consider the psychological annoyance power of
a single mosquito in a room with no light.
This book will remain in a print until justice prevails,
the technological antidote for Kelly is provided, and unbiased,
uncensored mass news media attention is given to
the contents of this book. Thank you for your support.

Posted in TRANCE FORMATION OF AMERICA | Leave a Comment »

WAKE UP AMERICA, THE ILLUMINATI IS UPON YOU!

Posted by ItsHellWithoutJESUS on April 5, 2010

JOHN TODD, THE ILLUMINATI AND WITCHCRAFT

http://www.kt70.com/~jamesjpn/images/illuminati-witchcraft.jpg

Copyright 1980 © by Jacob Sailor

John Todd’s testimonial of his experience in witchcraft and of the Illuminati


Part One


ONE THING I’D LIKE TO SAY BEFORE I GET STARTED, it never seems to fail that when I’m done a few of my brothers and sisters in the Lord have fear in their hearts. There is no reason to have fear in your heart. It seems like every time we talk about the Enemy, Christians become afraid rather than stirred up and fighting mad! So I just ask that if you have this fear in your hearts when this is over, that you just simply get in your prayer chamber or up front or someplace alone with the Lord and discuss the matter with Him.

THERE IS NOTHING TO BE AFRAID OF WHEN IT COMES TO THE DEVIL; HE WAS DEFEATED 2,000 YEARS AGO! And that’s why I’m here; he was defeated 2,000 years ago! I think the thing that made me the most mad when I got saved was that I’d served somebody since I was a child, for over 20 years, that was defeated over 2,000 years ago! And I guess the only reason why I served him was that I didn’t realize who he was until I got saved, it took that enlightenment.

AS BROTHER BERRY PREACHED THIS MORNING ON THE DEVIL BLINDING GOD’S PEOPLE’S EYES and THE WORLD’S EYES, take it for a fact, he can do it! For some 20 years I served him as a priest and as a high priest, and later as a Grand Druid and had many thousands of people serving him under me, and never once did I even realize who I was serving.

THERE WERE MANY THINGS THAT I LEARNED IN WITCHCRAFT, I’m not going to tell you what they were, but there were many things that I learned and many things that I taught as a standard teaching in Witchcraft. As you go through apprenticeship or as you go through what we call the “Outer Court,” you are told to do things and you don’t ask why you do them. If you do ask why do them, they tell you that you’re being naughty and that you shouldn’t ask, mainly because they don’t know!

I NEVER DID KNOW WHY I WAS DOING THE THINGS I WAS DOING OR WHY I WAS TEACHING THE THINGS I WAS TEACHING. They worked, so we did them. After I got saved, it took salvation for me to find out why they worked. And I guess after knowing that, there is no way you can go back to what you came out of. Very quickly tonight–well, I can’t be really quickly, but I’ll try–I want to give my testimony, and then I want to turn it over for questions and answers.

I’VE LEARNED THE HARD WAY, AFTER FIVE YEARS, and IT’S NORMAL FOR ME TO SAY THE THINGS THAT I SAY, but it’s astounding for you to listen to them. And I realize that when the meetings are over that many things I say are strange to Christians. Most of you grew up in Christian homes, or even if you were in the World, you were not very close to what I was into, so when I say things, to me they are everyday things.

I GUESS THAT’S WHY WE HAVE SUCH A SUCCESSFUL MINISTRY WITH THE PEOPLE IN DRUGS and THE PEOPLE IN THE OCCULT, because they tried to tell Christians for years the things they’d been into and the things they’ve experienced, and they look at them like they’re crazy. Then I come along and I say, “Oh! Oh, sure I’ll listen to you, I’ve been there!” I know the same things, and I’ll sit there and I’ll listen and they find it very outstanding that I believe in them, because I’ve experienced them too.

SO I DON’T GASP AT SOMEBODY WHEN THEY TELL ME THEY’VE SEEN DEMONS or floated things through the air or received answers on Ouija boards or made people do their own will by spells, because I was there and I know it’s so, but at the same time I know how weak it is compared to what I have now.

WE WENT TO ST. PAUL WHEN THEY WERE GOING TO HAVE THEIR CONVENTION THIS YEAR, which they called off. They’re having it right now in Washington, D.C., this is the last night of it, and it was in all the front pages of the newspapers down there. Christians throughout the United States say, “You don’t really expect us to believe that witches are that organized!”–No, they’ve just got Senators and Congressmen and top witches down there all in one convention, they’re not organized, not at all!

BUT ANYWAY, WE WERE THERE, and MANY WITCHES CAME UP TO ME and ASKED ME WHY I WOULD BECOME A CHRISTIAN. See, witches have the opinion that Christians are either the most evil thing that ever lived or they’re the most foolish people that ever lived. They wanted to know why I would become a Christian. I said, “Because I’m more powerful now than I was when I was a witch!”–That’s not the real reason, but I said it in words they would understand. And they couldn’t grasp that. I know how they feel.

WHEN I WAS IN WITCHCRAFT I NEVER CONSIDERED CHRISTIANITY UNTIL THE NIGHT I GOT SAVED. I never once considered it was an answer, I never considered that Jesus was an answer and thought that the things in the Christian church were foolish, at the least, and dangerous at the most–and I guess they are dangerous to Witchcraft. But to explain what I’m talking about very quickly:

I COME FROM A FAMILY CALLED THE COLLINS. Some of them on this side of the Atlantic Ocean from England have changed their name to Todd back prior to the Civil War. That’s not to say that all Collins are Todds or the family that I came from, but this family brought Witchcraft to the United States.

I WAS IN PHILADELPHIA THE OTHER NIGHT and I DON’T UNDERSTAND WHAT IT WAS ALL ABOUT, but after I left there the newspaper decided that their greatest campaign would be against me, and many things I said in my testimony they said they checked out and weren’t so. It’s funny, we checked them out and they still were so!–Like many things that I’ll mention tonight.

WE EVEN WENT AS FAR AS TO SAY THAT WITCHCRAFT STARTED OUTSIDE OF SALEM, MASSACHUSETTS, and EVEN NAMED THE BAY THAT THE WITCHES LANDED AT that they named after the head witch, my ancestor, Frances Collins, and the newspaper said that place didn’t exist. It exists. We looked at the map and it was still there! We don’t quite understand quite what they were up to, but I guess they confused enough people to disregard it. We were wondering when people were going to get around to this, but anyway, I came from the Collins Family.

LET ME QUICKLY REMIND YOU, NO WITCHES WERE EXECUTED IN SALEM. There will be a book coming out shortly on this from Chick Publications. Except for one prostitute, everybody executed in Salem were Christians, and they were tried and convicted by a jury and by a pastor who was not a pastor but a slave trader hired by the Collins. The church was built by the Collins and the jury were all members of the Collins’ church. Needles to say, they weren’t Christians, they were Witches. We went back there and researched it!

BUT TO GO ON QUICKLY SO I DON’T CONFUSE YOU TOO MUCH … OF COURSE I’VE ALREADY DESTROYED YOUR HIGH SCHOOL HISTORY LESSON, I have a habit of doing that. I’ll destroy more than that before the night’s over! But when I was a youngster I started practising Witchcraft. I cast my first spell when I was eight, and I started studying for the Priesthood when I was 13. I was asked to join the Outer Court of the coven there in Columbus, Ohio, where I grew up, and at 14 I was initiated.

I WOULD LIKE TO ADD THIS BEFORE I GO ON, WHEN THE SERVICE IS OVER I WOULD BE GLAD TO TALK WITH ANY MASONS PRESENT, and I will compare my initiation to Witchcraft word for word, action for action, with yours. They are identical without change, and I’ll be glad to discuss the matter with you.

AFTER THAT AT 18 I WAS INITIATED A HIGH PRIEST. This made me the ruling pastor, more or less. You see in Witchcraft, church is a little different, only the ministers meet, and they meet once a month. The congregation doesn’t even know who is in it. They only go to their particular priest and ask for a favor, they never come together. But at 18 I was made the High Priest.

THAT MADE ME DRAFT-EXEMPT FROM THE U.S. ARMY OR FROM THE U.S. MILITARY SERVICE, because all of the denominations or Brotherhoods of Witchcraft are Federally recognized tax deductible churches and therefore their ministers do not have to serve! I stayed 4-D status, but a lot of us at that time thought it was important to get Witchcraft started at the different military bases, so we enlisted anyway, and that was in 1968.

WHEN I WAS DISCHARGED IN 1970 THERE WAS A COVEN IN EVERY MILITARY BASE IN THE UNITED STATES and EUROPE IN ALL FOUR BRANCHES OF THE SERVICE! So it grows very quickly. But I served Vietnam, flew back and re-enlisted for six years and served 30 days of my six-year term, went to Germany for that time. And up until this time I thought Witchcraft was just like being a Baptist or being a Catholic, it was a religion. I didn’t realize there was anything to it except Witchcraft, and this is where most Witches are at. In fact at this time I believed in a godhead system of gods and goddesses and believed in it very devoutly, I’d been raised in it all my life. I believed in the psychic powers and that’s all I believed in.

SO WHILE I WAS IN GERMANY ONE NIGHT, AFTER TAKING SOME DRUGS and DOING A LOT OF DRINKING, I GOT IN A SHOOT-OUT in the middle of downtown Stuttgart with an officer, and the officer got killed. Now the Army has a strict no-no about shooting officers, they don’t like it, so they placed me in solitary confinement, and there I am, waiting for Leavenworth more or less.

WE’D ALREADY OFFERED A PLEA TO THE JUDGE THAT WE WOULD PLEAD GUILTY IF HE WOULD GIVE ME 30 YEARS and CALL IT QUITS, and he tore it up and laughed at us. So I was pretty sure what was in for me, and I just sat there. And eventually through a riot that had happened at the stockade just a few days prior and a man being placed in solitary confinement with me and then released from the stockade, I got word back to the U.S. by phone of the predicament I was in.

I HAD BEEN IN GERMANY SUCH A LITTLE TIME THAT I HADN’T HAD TIME TO START A COVEN IN STUTTGART, and I had no way of getting the word out. So the man placed a phone call to Los Angeles, collect, to my foster mother and told the predicament I was in. I had told him to tell her to cast a spell on the jury so they’d think I was a real nice person, and that’s all I thought they would do. I’d seen spells like this work many times–I’ve seen them work recently many times in courts–but I was not expecting what took place!

ABOUT THREE DAYS AFTER THE MAN MADE THE PHONE CALL, MY CELL DOOR OPENED and THERE STOOD A SENATOR and A U.S. CONGRESSMAN, a couple of Generals and an Honorable Discharge. The Honorable Discharge gave no reason as to why I was being discharged; I just had an Honorable Discharge like I’d served all my time. I had all my time and rank and grade, even my top-secret security clearance.

I WAS TOLD THAT MY COURT-MARTIAL RECORDS HAD BEEN DESTROYED and that my military file would be placed with a top-secret security clerk so nobody could get into it, and that was the end of it. The Senator and the Congressman left, I went to Ft. Dix and drew the rest of my papers and stuff, and headed for Columbus, Ohio, scratching my head the whole time wondering what type of spell was so good that it had Senators and Congressmen doing its bidding!

I STILL DIDN’T KNOW WHAT WAS GOING ON, SO I ARRIVED IN OHIO and I AGAIN BEGAN ASKING QUESTIONS THE DAY I ARRIVED THERE. I was told they had been expecting me and here was an envelope with a one-way first-class ticket to Kennedy Airport in New York City, $2,000 for spending money, and I was to get on the next flight and they would make a phone call and tell them I was coming. That was fine except I wanted to know who “them” were. They said I would find out when I arrived, so I got on the plane, took off, landed at the airport and sure enough, somebody was waiting to meet me.

–A PERSON WHOSE BOOKS I HAD READ and WHO I HAD THOUGHT WAS ONE OF THE GREATEST WIZARDS, MALE WITCHES, THAT HAD EVER LIVED, and I felt very privileged that I could be staying with him learning more about Witchcraft from him. Now I gave his name–which I’m going to give a minute–in Philadelphia last Sunday night. I even gave his job at the time that I was staying with him, except the newspapers called the university that he was supposed to be working for and the university denied he’d ever been there.

IT’S FUNNY, I EVEN SAT IN HIS CLASSES AT THE UNIVERSITY. They have a way of covering things up. He has his own college now for Witches, and his name is Dr. Raymond Buckland, and at that time he was head of the Anthropology Department at Columbia University, although Columbia University likes to say that he never existed now.

BUT I LEARNED WITH HIM FOR AWHILE, LEARNED A LITTLE MORE IN MARYLAND, WENT TO CALIFORNIA and STUDIED SOME MORE. During this process I began to learn what most Witches don’t know, and that is that the gods they’ve been worshipping don’t exist, that they’re imitated by what we call “familiar spirits” or spirit guides, demons–witches don’t call them demons, they like to call them spirit guides–and that there is only one god and his name is Lucifer.

NOW THIS WAS A SHOCKING THING TO ME SINCE I WAS RAISED TO BELIEVE THAT THE DEVIL DIDN’T EXIST. You see witches aren’t Satanists, they don’t believe in Satan, and I was quickly explained to that Lucifer was a good god and not an evil god, and that Jesus was the imitator. So I learned, and I learned many things, both of Witchcraft, and I also learned why the Senators and Politicians were there!

THEY WERE THERE BECAUSE WE WERE THE RELIGION OF A POLITICAL ORGANIZATION CALLED THE ILLUMINATI, and I was told all about the Illuminati and its history. I was schooled in the things that it had done, and the things that it was going to do, and the things that I was going to do. And before I go on, I want to show you a few things that will help explain. (Charts:)

THIS THING YOU SEE UP HERE IS ON THE BACK OF YOUR ONE-DOLLAR BILL, and WHAT IT IS IS THE SEAL OF THE ILLUMINATI. America tells us it’s the reverse side of the Great Seal of the United States, the only problem is that the United States has never sealed one document with it, ever, and never intends to! It was in existence before the United States was in existence, and I invite you, if you know your Latin, to look at your one-dollar bills later, and down at the bottom you will see some Latin.

IT SAYS: “THIS NEW ORDER THAT BEGAN 1776″–THAT MEANS NOT THE 4th OF JULY, BUT MAY 1st, 1776, THE CREATION DAY OF THE ILLUMINATI. It consists of three pyramids in a sphinx, which I’ll go through very quickly. We’ve put a few blocks up here, but there are hundreds of blocks in each pyramid. This is the political organisation. This is the middle pyramid. This is some of the political and police organisations that they use, and we’ve put up ones that mainly concern the United States.

ON THE TOP OF EACH PYRAMID YOU WILL SEE A CAPSTONE WITH AN EYE IN IT. The capstone is the Rothschild Family or Tribunal that rules the Illuminati, they were the creators of it. The eye is Lucifer, their god and their voice. The first 3 top blocks are on every pyramid. (See above photo.)

THE TOP BLOCK IS WHAT I WAS INITIATED INTO, THE COUNCIL OF 13 CALLED THE GRAND DRUID COUNCIL. They only take orders from the Rothschilds and nobody else. They’re their private priesthood. The Council of 33 is directly under them, that is the 33 highest Masons in the World. The Council of 500, some of the richest people in the World–there are 500, actually, some of the richest people and conglomerates in the World–it’s their real power as I’ll show you in a minute.

I DON’T THINK YOU CAN SEE MUCH OF THE WRITING ON THIS, BUT THIS IS THE ORGANISATION OF WITCHCRAFT. The Golden Dawn is the 4th block up there, and it’s the Rothschild’s private coven. The Aquarian Arts Festival is the organization that ties all of the Occult Brotherhoods together in St. Paul, The Witches Church of America I was a member of. The Church of All Worlds is located in St. Louis. These are denominations like Northern Baptist, Southern Baptists, Independent Baptists, etc.

THE NATIONAL COUNCIL OF CHURCHES, THE SATANIC BROTHERHOOD OF AMERICA, SCIENTOLOGY, UNITY, is the main platform for Witches to be speakers at towards what they consider to be Christian people. The Church of Wicca is another denomination; it’s in Greenfield, North Carolina.

THE AQUARIAN ANTI-DEFAMATION LEAGUE IS AN ORGANIZATION THAT WAS FORMED BY ONE OF THE GRAND DRUIDS, ISAAC BONOVITZ, and the American Civil Liberties Union. Its purpose is to pass laws and to sue Christian churches in Federal court for defaming Witches and the Occult, and they have been winning millions of dollars in the Federal courts.

THE GARNARIAN BROTHERHOOD IS THE TRADITIONAL WITCHCRAFT IN ENGLAND. The Order of the Rose Cross–another word for it is Rosicrucians–they are a sacrifice order. And the Holy Order of the Garter is another traditional English Witchcraft group. (Points:)

THIS IS THE MOST IMPORTANT SYMBOL: THIS IS THE POWER OF THE ILLUMINATI. Without the Sphinx the mystery of the Illuminati would have no power. This is where all of its power comes from. You will notice the head of it is the Rothschild Family and the Council of 500. Under that, the Rockefellers, Duponts, Kennedys, Onasises and other families. Queen Juliana is also on the Council of 500.

OVER IN THE CENTER IS ITS HEART, THE BANK OF ENGLAND, THE BANK OF FRANCE, THE FEDERAL RESERVE ACT. Most people feel the Federal Reserve Act is a government organization. It is not! It has nothing to do with the Government of the United States; it is a stockholder company owned by individuals. Much of the stock is owned by non-Americans.

MANY BANKS and FAMOUS CORPORATIONS ARE OWNED OR CONTROLLED BY THE ILLUMINATI. We tell Christians across the U.S. that housewives and husbands cannot shop any day or any week without buying from a company that the Illuminati owns, it is impossible.

PHILLIP ROTHSCHILD ORDERED ONE OF HIS MISTRESSES TO WRITE AN 1100-PAGE BOOK that would describe to all witches how they would take control of the World through the Illuminati: It’s called Atlas Shrugged. (By Ayn Rand) One of the things in it is happening on the front pages of the newspapers across the United States right now. In fact she spent a third of the book describing how they would raise the oil prices and then later destroy the oil fields and then they would also completely shut down the coal.

IT ALSO DESCRIBED HOW THEY WOULD BLOW UP GRAIN MILLS, how they would derail trains. Their sole purpose is to bankrupt their own companies and destroy their own companies until they destroyed the currency of the whole World, and still be so financially strong they would withstand it!

NOW TO GO BACK TO MY OWN TESTIMONY WHILE EVERYBODY GETS A BREATH! I know you thought you were going to hear a lot about spell-casting or spooky ghosts, but I surprised you, I’ve got something more spooky to tell you! Anyway, as I learned all this, I was taken up to Colorado Springs, outside of NORAD Center about a mile in the same location, and placed through an initiation for the Council of 13, and then I moved to San Antonio where I lived until I was saved and ruled a 13-state area that I had from there.

WHEN I WAS SAVED I HAD 5000 COVENS, IN OTHER WORDS, CHURCHES, TOTALLING 65,000 PRIESTS and PRIESTESSES. That’s just the ministers, not the congregation, so it is quite large. This State wasn’t one of them, this is run by Mrs. Buckland, but Ohio was one of them, so it’s close enough. I lived there until I was saved on Labor Day of 1972. And what led to my salvation was this:

THE GRAND DRUIDS MEET EIGHT TIMES A YEAR ON THE WITCHES’ SABBATH AT VARIOUS LOCATIONS IN THE WORLD. I hosted the last meeting that I attended, it was held in San Antonio at the Casino Building. A courier from the London Embassy, a member of our State Department, brought a sealed courier pouch–so Immigration couldn’t touch it–to the meeting and left it. It had never been opened from the time it had been sealed at the London Embassy.

DR. BUCKLAND CUT THE SEAL ON IT and TOOK OUT SIX LETTERS THAT WERE SEALED WITH THIS ILLUMINATI CREST. The first four were just business, money that we were to pay here and there and so on. Actually, the Grand Druid Council is nothing but glorified bankers, they write millions of dollars worth of checks to people in political and religious fields every month. But the last two letters led me to want to get out.

I HAD, AS A CHILD, ACCIDENTALLY ATTENDED A FEW SUNDAY SCHOOL CLASSES because I had nothing better to do, and during those classes I heard about the Book of Revelation and a few things in it–which was very strange, being back in the early ’60s to hear anything like this, at least in the particular kind of church I was going to which was kind of liberal. So I had a little background of what the Christians felt was in their Bible. I thought it was foolish, but I had a little background.

NOW EVEN THOUGH I WAS A PART OF SETTING UP A WORLD GOVERNMENT, I ALWAYS KIND OF SNICKERED THAT THAT WAS EVER GOING TO HAPPEN, that we were serious, that it was kind of a little game we were playing. As long as the Rothschilds had all of the money to spend on our plans, we went ahead and spent the money. So I never took it seriously until we opened the last two letters.

NOW IN THE FIRST LETTER THAT WE OPENED OF THOSE LAST TWO, WAS A CHART, and IN THAT CHART IT LISTED AN EIGHT-YEAR PLAN FOR WORLD TAKE-OVER ENDING IN THE DECEMBER MONTH OF 1980. Since I have gotten out, I have not seen one thing fail or be delayed on that time chart. I’m not saying that it won’t be delayed, but it’s going to take a lot of Christians doing a lot of serious praying which I haven’t seen yet. Next, the last letter we opened contained–now I’ll have to quote it and then I’ll have to explain, it, since witches say English but they say words that may not mean anything to you–it said:

“WE HAVE FOUND A MAN WHOM WE BELIEVE TO BE THE SON OF LUCIFER. We believe that through his works and our backing he can become ruler of this world, stop all wars, and bring peace, finally, to this war-stricken World.” Now that literally meant that we had found a person so fantastically-powered that he could convince people he was their only salvation. Now that literally meant in Christian terms, he was demon-possessed like nobody had ever seen! (Ed: The Antichrist, 1Jn.2:18; Rev.13.)

AFTER READING THAT ON AUGUST 1, 1972, I DECIDED IT WAS TIME TO LOOK ELSEWHERE TO GET OUT. Now this hadn’t been a new idea, before I was made a Grand Druid I had thought about getting out.–So had a young actress in California that was ordered executed and left hanging with her throat cut by one foot–which is one of the tarot cards–to tell all witches that she had betrayed witchcraft and this was her death. And after seeing this and what happened to Sharon Tate, I decided I’d stay in. But now I wanted out. I didn’t know how to get out and I didn’t consider Christianity at all a way out, but I wanted to get out.

SO A MONTH ROLLED AROUND and I GOT DEEPER INVOLVED IN DRUGS. In fact, the night I was saved I weighed 149 pounds because I was doing $150 a day worth of methedrine speed–mainlining it–what the street people call “crystal.” So I was literally in a paranoid mess anyway because of this drug, and all these plans hadn’t made me any more restful.

SO ONE SATURDAY AFTERNOON A BAPTIST PREACHER CAME ACROSS ME IN ONE OF OUR OCCULT STORES. He was there because overnight, just about, he had come to realize that Witchcraft was real, when he had always considered it a fable about witches flying on broomsticks with warts on their noses and pointed hats. The way he’d found it was he’d found his daughter an initiated priestess of a Witchcraft coven! He’d caught her casting spells in her bedroom one night.

SO IT BECAME VERY REAL TO HIM, and AFTER MUCH PRAYER and FASTING, HE DECIDED TO TRACK DOWN A FEW WITCHES and see if he couldn’t witness to them. He wasn’t getting through to his daughter so he though he’d go to the head of it and if they got saved, maybe his daughter would get saved. So he found me in one of our occult stores called “The Spanish Bazaar” there in San Antonio and started to witness to me.

Part Two

HE KNEW WHO I WAS BECAUSE I WAS GOING BY MY WITCHCRAFT NAME, LANCE, and just about everybody in town had seen me on television or read about me in the newspapers about Witchcraft. So he started witnessing to me and I told him in certain profanities that I didn’t care for it and that I would like him to leave. So when this failed he decided that he wasn’t going to get past the demons that were in me, so he started ordering the demons to be quiet. Then he proceeded to pray for me whether I liked it or not, and the prayer went something like this:

“I DEMAND THAT SATAN STOP GIVING YOU HIS BENEFITS, INCLUDING DRUGS, I ORDER THAT TO BE SO IN THE NAME OF JESUS! And I command Satan to stop communicating with you supernaturally and I break your power of Witchcraft till you come face-to-face with the Gospel, and then I command your mind to be set free so that you can perceive the Gospel and make you own mind up.”–Now this was necessary in my condition because I didn’t have my own mind. And then he left.

I THOUGHT HE WAS CRAZY, SO I WENT UPSTAIRS and DID SOME MORE DRUGS because I couldn’t understand why I was feeling the way I was feeling, and that was not too well at that moment. So that night, I didn’t have anything to worry about, I did all my drugs up because I was expecting a very large shipment of drugs to come across at Laredo, Mexico.–Except something happened that had never happened before: The drugs got busted! The wrong guard that was not on our salary was on the border that night, and they even brought the wrong car across that had the wrong license number.

EVERYTHING THAT COULD HAVE GONE WRONG, WENT WRONG, and THE SHIPMENT WAS BUSTED and I WAS WITHOUT DRUGS. So when I found out about it, I made a few phone calls around different areas in the U.S. trying to find some drugs that could get to me very quickly. Most people had already used theirs up or were at the end of it, and I was told that I’d have some Tuesday morning–and that’s a long time to wait for an addict as bad as I was!

SO ABOUT MONDAY NIGHT, LABOR DAY NIGHT, AS I WAS GOING THROUGH EXTREME PROPORTIONATE WITHDRAWAL, I got in my car and started to drive it out of the parking lot and almost drove it in the river! So I left it there and I went for a walk. I walked about four or five blocks and I came upon a movie theater. Now it was just an everyday movie theater–it’s still there to this day–shows just regular pictures, not anything to do with the Christian Church, so I thought I was pretty safe. I paid my money and went in, sat down three rows back and wanted to get right into the movie.

AND THE MOVIE WAS CALLED “THE CROSS and THE SWITCHBLADE.” Now that my seem funny to you, it was not funny to me at the time. So I sat there trying to make wisecracks at the movie all night and became interested in Nicky Cruz. See, you think with one mind–I think with the same mind with now as a Christian–but as a witch I thought with a different mind: Dave Wilkerson was the enemy and Nicky Cruz was the hero.

SO I SAT DOWN THERE and I THOUGHT, THIS GUY’S PRETTY GOOD, THERE’S NOTHING WRONG WITH HIM, maybe he’ll convert the preacher over … and then he got saved! Now that term meant nothing to us, but when he changed from the old Nicky Cruz to the new Nicky Cruz, that meant something, that was impossible!

THE CORNERSTONE OR THE WHOLE FLOOR OF WITCHCRAFT is that you cannot cast a spell, you cannot mix a potion, you cannot do a rite without a firm knowledge of astrology. It is the base for all practices in Witchcraft, and one of its teachings is that you are born a set personality and there is nothing you can do to change from that set personality, and mine was pretty raunchy as it was. (See No.107.)

SO IF NICKY CRUZ CHANGED, THIS WAS A MIRACLE THAT WAS NOT UNDERSTANDABLE TO ANY WITCH. So going out of there I was in a very confused state of mind, not realizing much of what had happened even to the point that I forgot I was even going through withdrawal. And as I walked out the door a young man walked up to me, handed me this tract and said, “Here, this is for you”–and turned around and walked off! Didn’t give anybody else a tract, just left, and the tract was called “Bewitched,” it was on Witchcraft. (See Nos. 290, 291, 666.)

NOW, I WAS RAISED IN A SUPERNATURAL WORLD. All our lives we had spent listening to spirit guides, and since that preacher had prayed for me, my spirit guides had not said a word to me. I was in a vacuum, much described like this: Have you ever gone through a trial where you pray and pray and you feel like you’re not getting through? Well, this was the way I felt, and nothing was coming through. I was in a vacuum.

AFTER 14 YEARS OF DEPENDING UPON THESE SPIRITS TO TELL ME EVERYTHING TO DO, NOBODY WAS TELLING ME ANYTHING–because this preacher had taken authority over them and had ordered them to be quiet. And as I was reading this booklet I had sense enough to know that something was trying to get to me, something was trying to get through, but none of my spirit guides would be giving me books on Witchcraft that was telling me the Devil was behind it!

SO I THREW THE BOOK AWAY and WAS IN A BIGGER STATE OF CONFUSION THAN I’D EVER BEEN. I walked back to where my apartment was in the Casino Building, and it consists of several nightclubs back there, and I walked into one, the Club Aquarius. I walked to the back of the club and sat down in the office back there by myself and tried to think things out.

I SPENT SEVERAL HOURS TRYING TO THINK OF A CHRISTIAN CHURCH THAT I COULD GO TO and ASK QUESTIONS OF THAT WE DIDN’T OWN THE MINISTER OF. Now, that may seem kind of strange to you, but as an ex-Grand Druid it’s not strange at all. Much that you see in churches that you just think is liberalism, is Taoism. I’ll go over that more simply: They’ve taken the money and rejected the Lord!

IT’S KIND OF HARD FOR A MINISTER THAT’S NOT SOLD OUT TO GOD TO TURN DOWN HALF-A-MILLION DOLLARS if it’s laid down as a bribe, and they can get even higher. In fact, one church I know of got eight million dollars in two years, and another one got ten million dollars in one year! So, they can receive some money.

ANYWAY, I DIDN’T HAVE A MEMBERSHIP LIST WITH ME SO I DIDN’T KNOW WHO WE OWNED and WHO WE DIDN’T, and I was afraid to call the wrong pastor because that could get me killed. So I sat there thinking a little bit and I remembered that the night before, one of our witches that was a prostitute in a downtown area had come screaming into the nightclub the night before about the coffee house called the Greengate Club.

STRANGE PLACE … IT USED TO BE A BURLESQUE PLACE ABOUT THREE MONTHS PRIOR TO THAT, and THIS MINISTER CAME IN and PREACHED AN UNINVITED REVIVAL . The revival took about 15 minutes and 20-some people got saved, including the dancers, bartenders, the band, people in the congregation and the husband and wife that owned the place.

SO WHEN THEY GOT SAVED THEY DECIDED TO TURN IT OVER TO A BAPTIST CHURCH that they were going to–the Baptist Church that was praying and fasting for me! Now don’t confuse Jack Taylor with the Pastor that came in, he was from another church. But he couldn’t get his church to pray and fast for witches since his church thought he was crazy when he said “witch.” So he called up Castle Hills, which was well-known for working in the power of God, and they asked some people to pray and fast and they got about 500 people to pray and fast over that weekend that I’d get saved!–And I firmly believe that had a lot to do with it.

SO, SHE HAD TOLD ME ABOUT THIS PLACE and SHE HAD WANTED US TO BURN IT DOWN, BUY IT OUT OR SOMETHING, BECAUSE IT WAS RUINING HER BUSINESS. I mean, here’s a prostitute propositioning a soldier, and here’s somebody over here preaching the Word of God to him! It doesn’t work. So she was very upset, and I decided I would go look this place up. So I walked on over by the bus station and went in. It was about two in the morning and the place was supposed to close at midnight.

NOW I FIRMLY BELIEVE TO THIS DAY THAT GOD BREAKS COKE FOUNTAINS, because when I came in there the manager had stayed to fix the Coke fountain as it had broken down just as he was ready to close. So I walked in and he started witnessing to me, and it was fine for about, oh, 45 minutes to an hour, and I brought up Witchcraft. So, in a white, kind of ghostly-like face, he called the Pastor and said, “I’ve got this witch down here!”

AND THE PASTOR SAID, “WELL, WE’VE BEEN PRAYING and FASTING THAT HE’D GET THERE, GO AHEAD and WITNESS TO HIM. We’ll just call everybody up and start praying!” So they started praying and he started witnessing to me more, and started showing me things in the Bible, started praying for me. Pretty soon he was praying, and I was praying and the Lord was saving me!–And I’ve never forgotten it.

YOU SEE, I WAS BORN IN A WITCHCRAFT FAMILY WHERE I INHERITED EVERYTHING MY PARENTS HAD. In other words, I inherited their demons, or ones just like the ones they had. So I was never free from the time the doctor spanked me on the bottom in the delivery room until that night of ’72. And you may have felt great when you got saved, but I don’t think you felt as great as I felt when I got saved! We may argue that point.

BUT FOR THE FIRST TIME, I COULD THINK FOR MYSELF WITHOUT THIS HEAVY, LIKE COTTON IN MY HEAD, is about the only way you could describe it. And my feeling was that if they killed me going out of that place, then I would die happy!–And I walked out, not really thinking about any danger. The next night I was back and saying, “You know, I would like to live long enough to enjoy this!”

THE REASON FOR THAT IS THAT YOU DON’T LEAVE WITCHCRAFT ONCE YOU’RE INITIATED–ONCE YOU’RE IN, YOU’RE IN! To prove this point, there have been since my salvation about 500 people saved out of Witchcraft–that’s not very many when you know how many millions are in–and 50 them have been killed in five years! My life is in danger all the time, my wife’s and myself, and all the people that have come out.

THEY START AT $10,000 BOUNTIES and WORK UP TO SEVERAL HUNDRED THOUSAND, but it’s not just witches. I have a few contacts still back in the Illuminati that will do me favors every once in awhile; they don’t understand why I would want to be a Christian, but they don’t think I’m all that bad. Well, I had them run a computer check through one of the computers they have in New York that the occult owns to keep tabs on everybody.

I WANTED TO CHECK OUT A FEW OF THE CHRISTIAN MINISTERS THAT I MIGHT KNOW THAT HAVE THIS SAME PROBLEM, and Brother Berry’s name came up and they’ve got $10,000 on that man’s head. Jack Chick of Chick Publications, Dr. Van Impe, Joe Boyd, Dan Hartree, my pastor Roland Rasmussen and many others, to go on and on. The witches have felt these men are such a danger to them that they have decided that they are better dead than alive and are willing to spend millions of dollars to make sure it happens.

SO IT IS A WARFARE, and IT GOES ON, and IT’S GETTING WORSE and WORSE, and we had to pray much before we came out to the East Coast. Everybody said I was crazy when I moved to L.A. to minister to the people out there, but they don’t know the East Coast! It’s been an experience, and we ask that you pray for us as we go around ministering.

MY WIFE IS USUALLY WITH ME ON THE ROAD, but she had to go back to Los Angeles on an emergency, and we ask that you pray for her while she’s on the road. I think what I’ll do now is simply open it for your questions and I hope that I have the answers. If you have a question, just raise your hand. Let’s see if we can do this without turning the lights out. Yeah, we can, praise the Lord! (Shows:)

THESE ARE TYPES OF JEWELRY THAT WERE CREATED BY DEMONIC INSTRUCTION TO VERY IMPORTANT PEOPLE. Christians are astonished when I tell them that the greatest Wizard that ever lived, male witch, was King Solomon. When he backslid he really backslid! And as great as his writings were in our Bible, they were as great in the Witchcraft bible! The very initiation rites and how to prepare Witchcraft bibles, how to conjure demons up, everything, even how to commit human sacrifice are writings that he created.

AND BEFORE I TELL YOU WHAT THEY MEAN I WANT TO SAY THIS: IT WAS IMPOSSIBLE TO BUY THIS JEWELRY, except for the Ankh outside of a witchcraft store until a few years ago. They were hand-made by silversmiths belonging to the priesthood and sold only to initiated witches in occult stores. Since then, the Illuminati have decided that one of the greatest tricks they could play on the Christians was to put this jewelry around their necks and on their hands.

THE REASON IS, THIS STUFF ATTRACTS DEMONS, THEY CLING AROUND WHERE IT’S AT. Now, if you’re shocked to see the Star of David up there, that’s because it’s just recently been called the Star of David. For thousands of years it was called the Hexagram or the Crest of Solomon.

NOW WHEN A WITCH WANTS TO PRACTICE WITCHCRAFT, SHE’LL GET IN A PENTAGRAM, that’s the five-pointed star in the circle, their strongest form of protection. Then they will lay this six-pointed star, or hexagram–which means “to hex” or to cast black magic or to put a spell on somebody–they’ll put it in a circle on the floor and this will cause the demons to appear at their instruction.

IT IS THE MOST EVIL OF SIGNS IN WITCHCRAFT. I know I may not be getting through to you what I’m trying to get through, but it’s dangerous to have it. The pentagram, the pinnacle with the one point up, means Witchcraft; two points up means demon-worship or Satanism.

IT IS INTERESTING TO NOTE THAT THE EASTERN STAR SYMBOL IS A TWO POINTS UP, FIVE-POINTED STAR. This symbolizes the goat head, which Satanists believe is representative of the Devil, and they use this goat head and worship it like they are worshipping the Devil.

THE ANKH MEANS THAT YOU DESPISE VIRGINITY, believe in fertility rites, practice fertility rites and worship the sun god Ra. The sun god Ra is the Egyptian name for Lucifer.
THE PEACE SYMBOL UP THERE IS NOT THE PEACE SYMBOL. I didn’t have to do the initiation that contained the broken cross because I was born into Witchcraft & it wasn’t necessary, & people who have no Christian background do not have to do it. But if a person raised in a Christian church–whether they were Christian or not–wants to join Witchcraft, they would have to take a ceramic cross & turn it upside-down & break the cross bars down, symbolising their rejection of Calvary & the Christian Church.

THIS IS SAID TO BRING YOU PEACE OF MIND WHILE YOU PRACTISE WITCHCRAFT, that’s where it got the word “Peace Symbol” from. We called it the Peace Symbol for the last 20 years, they’ve called it the Broken Cross for the last several hundred. Now which are you going to believe?

AFTER THAT YOU HAVE WHAT IS CALLED THE UNICORN’S HORN, OR THE ITALIAN HORN IS WHAT THEY ARE CALLING IT NOW SO THEY CAN SELL IT. Literally, the translation is: “You trust the Devil for your finance.” If you don’t trust the Devil for your finance, don’t wear it. I can guarantee it has just the opposite reaction in a Christian’s life. The last symbol is the symbol that initiated priests & priestesses, coven members, wear to show they have been initiated.

NOW CHRISTIANS ASK ME, “WHAT’S THIS GOT TO DO WITH THE CHRISTIAN CHURCH?–WE DON’T HAVE TO WORRY ABOUT IT!” This morning we cast demons out of a young man who got delivered from this who had his initiation scar on his wrist who was a counselor & a member of Word of Life Ministries, the Word of Life Christian Club Ministries. They are everywhere, people!

THE YOUNG LADY WHO TOOK MY PLACE GREW UP, WAS RAISED & WAS A MEMBER OF THOMAS ROAD BAPTIST CHURCH in Lynchburg, Virginia, Jerry Falwell’s church. Jerry doesn’t know it, but that’s where she grew up & was raised, & she now sits on the Council of 13. So, they are everywhere. Next question? (Question inaudible on tape.) Well, the Bilderbergers are in the 500. I didn’t know you would know that term, so I didn’t use it.

(QUESTION ABOUT TRILATERAL COUNCIL.) I’m sure you couldn’t see the pyramid, but it was on the pyramid. The Trilateral Council is the Inner Council of the CFR, Council of Foreign Relations, which is the American name for the Illuminati. They are not there without full knowledge & they are handpicked by David Rockefeller, the leader of the Illuminati in the United States. OK? (Inaudible question.) I don’t know. I wasn’t over that state.

LET ME ASK YOU A QUESTION, IS IT A UNITED METHODIST CHURCH? Well, that’s because the United Methodist Church has accepted the Omega Brotherhood, an organization started in Phoenix by United Methodist members who believe seances are Christian practice, & it is now accepted in the United Methodist Church. So he can be that & not be kicked out.

(QUESTION: WOULD YOU BRIEFLY OUTLINE THE STEPS REMAINING IN THE WORLD TAKEOVER PLAN BETWEEN NOW & 1980?) If the Pastor has no objections, OK. The reason I ask this is that it can be pretty frightening & pretty unbelievable. I like to leave that to the last question so they’ll believe everything else I have to say before I say this! They usually reject everything after that because they’re sitting around in shock!

WHAT REMAINS IS THIS, THEY ARE IN THE PROCESS OF A TRIAL-&-ERROR RIGHT NOW, & THEY TEST THINGS. Last year they tested what it would be like to be without fuel to heat your homes. This year they are going to see if they can’t starve you, absolutely shut all electricity off in the East Coast. Now the timetable in the book Atlas Shrugs ended with this: “When the lights of New York City go out for the last time, we will have the World!”

NOW, THAT MEANT THAT TOWARDS THE END THEY ARE GOING TO CUT THE CITIES OFF COMPLETELY. There’ll be a Teamsters strike, nothing will move for months, I mean nothing will move. These strikes will be more violent than the coal miners’ strikes are right now, & the coal miners will strike again.

THEY ARE IN THE PROCESS OF DESTROYING ALL STORED FOOD & FARMLAND IN THE FARMER’S STRIKE so that we will be without any food in the cities or in the country or anywhere except what is in the Federal storehouses. The air controllers will strike & nothing will fly over the skies of the U.S. except military flights. The longshoremen will strike & nothing will come off the boats, & the train engineers will strike & nothing will move. In other words, nothing is going to move at all.

NOW IF YOU LIVE IN A LARGE CITY, HOW ARE YOU GOING TO GET YOUR FOOD if they don’t bring it to you? Everything will be paralyzed, nothing will move. At the same time there will be riot & revolution within the United States, in fact the whole World will be in it.

IT SEEMS STRANGE, & CHRISTIANS CANNOT GRASP THAT A MASS MURDERER LIKE CHARLES MANSON WILL BE RELEASED FROM PRISON. You should have heard the vote when he was up for release a month ago. He was kept there by two votes. Two votes kept him from leaving prison. Now, they didn’t want him out, & let me explain something, he did not go there because the jury found him guilty.

THEY COULD NOT HAVE SENT HIM TO PRISON IF THE ILLUMINATI DID NOT WANT HIM TO GO. He went there for a reason, & we have talked to prison officials across the U.S. & people belonging to the motorcycle clubs & so on, & we have received the same answer: He has them united.

THERE IS A MASS ARMY WITHIN EVERY PRISON FROM COAST TO COAST. They have been promised weapons, military weapons. To verify this, the U.S. Army has said, & so has the Marine Corps, that in the last five years they have lost many of their small arms weapons to theft in the United States. That includes hand-held ground-to-air, heat-seeking missiles that can take a DC-10 out of the sky at 40,000 feet. One of the largest storehouses is in Baltimore & the second largest is in Philadelphia for these weapons, so they are very close to you.

HE HAS BEEN GATHERING AN ARMY, & OUTSIDE OF PRISON IT AMOUNTS TO OVER 100,000 PROFESSIONALLY-TRAINED MILITARY PEOPLE. They have been hiring ex-Green Berets, Rangers, Navy, to train them in camps–one is down in West Virginia to give you an example–to train them in special forces tactics. Every one of them is as trained as a Green Beret, & that is very well-trained! Manson will be released either next year or the following year, they haven’t decided yet.

I’LL TELL YOU THIS, THE ONE THING THAT WILL HOLD THEIR PLAN UP IS IF THEY DON’T GET THE GUN LAW PASSED. These people will refuse to go out & cause havoc if people will be shooting back at them, so they have been promised that all the guns will be confiscated before they make their move. Now, they have been promised they will get this country, what they don’t know is they have been set up.

THEY HAVE BEEN SET UP JUST SO THEY WILL KILL A CERTAIN AMOUNT OF PEOPLE: The figure at the present is that in the first year, one million people will be butchered. I use that term because that is about how to describe what will happen, & I will leave it to your imagination & your prayer life as to who is scheduled to be killed.

THIS IS JUST SO THAT THEY CAN GET THE NATIONAL GUARD CALLED OUT. They recently passed a law that gives the President the right to suspend the Constitution & Congress & call Martial Law & call out the military. Now that would seem too harsh to us right now, but what happens when millions of people are getting shot at & killed?–Then they will be calling for it to happen! That’s some of the stuff that’s coming about. Some of it is legislation that is being passed right now.

HOUSE BILL 41 WENT THROUGH THE HOUSE & IS BEFORE THE SENATE RIGHT NOW. If it passes, it will pull much of the Federal tax deduction status of many of the Christian churches, & the ones that keep it, the people who give to them, their names will be printed with their addresses, their phone numbers & their work addresses of every giver in every Post Office in the United States. It’s called House Bill 41. This will give those radicals your dwelling address & where you work so that they can come & look you up!

ANOTHER ONE WAS THE MARTIAL LAW ACT, WHICH HAS BEEN PASSED, & THE ANTI-HOARDING ACT. It is the one thing they fear. See, the whole thing is, if you can be independent of Federal help, their plan won’t work. You must be dependent on the Federal Government for every bite of food, every light bulb in your house & every warmth that you feel coming through your homes. You must be dependent upon them.

NOW THE ANTI-HOARDING ACT FORBIDS YOU TO STORE OVER ONE-MONTH’S FOOD SUPPLY, to store medical supplies or fuel supplies over a month at a time. There is a reason for it–their reason. The last one is called the Genocide Act, some of you may have heard of it. They defeated it eight years ago but now it looks like it is going to get passed, it’s before the Senate now.

IT CAN PUT YOU IN FEDERAL PRISON FOR CONVERTING SOMEBODY FROM THE FAITH THAT THEY WERE BORN INTO BY THEIR PARENTS. In other words, if you convert & Catholic, a Jew or a witch, & their parents press charges, you an go to Federal Penitentiary for it, & it’s getting ready to pass now. (Inaudible question.) Well, you’re talking to an ex-Illuminatist who knows that there is no such thing.

ANYBODY COMING OUT OF THE ILLUMINATI CAN TELL YOU THAT THE COMMUNIST PARTY IS RUN BY ILLUMINATISTS, NOT COMMUNISTS. History will show it, that sometime back in 1776, Adrian Pike–then the head of the Illuminati, also head of the Masons at the time–said that they needed to create a political party that would frighten the World & keep it fighting each other until they could bring peace to the World–& then Karl Marx showed up. Now if you go to the British Museum, you can find two checks for several thousand pounds made out to Karl Marx, signed by Nathan Rothschild. OK?!

AND I CAN GO INTO MUCH HISTORY ABOUT THE COMMUNIST PARTY, HOW LENIN & TROTSKY BOTH STAYED AT THE KRUPP MANSION IN NEW YORK, financed by Rockefeller & Krupp & Swifts & others: How they put four million dollars worth of Jacob Swift’s gold to finance the revolution, sailed from New York Harbor where their ship was confiscated by the British Government as it tried to run a blockade during WWI.–How Woodrow Wilson called & ordered their release so America wouldn’t go into the War, & how they were sent on their way. There’s much history about it.

(QUESTION: WHAT DOES WITCHCRAFT HAVE TO DO WITH THE MASONS?) Well, other than the 33 highest Masons who are on the Council of 33, most Masons do not realize that they have taken the same rites that makes a person & witch. They have taken the same rites to become a Mason, except that we cut our wrists & they don’t cut their wrists, that’s the only differences!

IT IS EXACTLY THE SAME. I could lay a drawing of our temple down, your temple is laid out the same. I can describe our Witchcraft rites, yours are exactly the same. We’ve been doing it for 8000 years–what’s your excuse? (Question about the organizations involved.)

LET ME READ OFF THE ORGANIZATIONS REAL QUICK: B’nai B’rith; American Civil Liberties Union; the Scottish Rites–by the way, Witchcraft is supposed to be the old religion of Scotland; the New York Rites; the Jaycees; & I want to explain about the Junior Chamber of Commerce. We in the Illuminati needed a group to fund & to finance the training of the radical groups that would be used later–the Jr. Chamber of Commerce was the group chosen to do the funding. The Masonic Lodges, both the White & the Blue; the Knights of Columbus; the Knights of Philistivis & the Oddfellows.

NOW, I WANT TO SAY SOMETHING ABOUT THESE LODGES: THAT MEANS ITS LEADERS USE THESE ORGANIZATIONS FOR THEIR PURPOSES, that does not mean that the members of those organizations know what’s going on. Clear back after our Revolutionary War–you can find this in the Adams Chronicles–John Adams wrote George Washington asking him to beware of Thomas Jefferson & Alexander Hamilton & their misuse of the Masonic Lodges which Washington was a member of, & this is a direct quote: “Because they were using it for Illuminati purposes & the worship of Lucifer.”

NOW I HAVE IN MY CAR PHOTOSTATIC COPIES OF BOOKS HANDED ONLY TO CHOSEN ONES IN THE 32nd–that means just the ones they’ve handpicked out of the 32nd Level & the 33rd Level–describing the initiation of the 33rd Level Masons, also describing what they thought of Jesus–believe me, it’s not polite!–& who the true God is.

THEY CONSIDER JESUS TO BE THE IMPERSONATOR & the true god is Lucifer, & that’s in black-&-white out of Masonic books. Now I’ve got them in my car, & if it gets into a debate after the service, I can go get’m & let you read’m out of your own books! Next question?

(QUESTION: BEFORE I WAS SAVED I HAD A DECK OF TAROT CARDS, & right after James Bond came out I got rid of them because I started feeling I was getting answers & some of those answers were taking place & I was scared.) Oh, I’m sure. You got your answers from demons. (Q: Yeah, that’s what scared me.) If you had read the 18th Chapter of Deuteronomy, you wouldn’t have done it. You could have been stoned to death in the Old Testament for it.

(Q: ARE THE CARDS SET UP A CERTAIN WAY? Does it mean something the way the cards are set up?) Every drawing means something, & the demons control how they fall & use’m. But they can only be 90% accurate. Nothing in Witchcraft is ever 100% accurate. OK, next?

(QUESTION: WHAT ARE THE ILLUMINATI PLANS FOR ISRAEL?) THEY WILL USE ISRAEL TO GAIN CONTROL OF THE WORLD. All nations except the United States will go after Israel just before they take over the World, it’s called World War III, & Jimmy Carter with the U.S. Government will step in & save Israel. (Dad: Already happening!) Right now, Carter is losing popularity. Don’t let that deceive you, give him a year, he’ll be a god to many people. OK?

THAT’S ALL I CAN TELL YOU RIGHT NOW, IF I TOLD YOU EVERYTHING I’D LOSE YOU. Just hang in there. I said what I’ve said tonight five years ago & people were ready to lynch me; now they’re listening to me because they can see it in the newspaper, OK? (Question: What can we as Christians do?) Pray!

I’LL TELL YOU THIS, THE ONLY THING THE ILLUMINATI FEAR, AS I SAID, IS AN INDEPENDENT PERSON who can live, eat, sleep, stay warm & defend themselves separate from Federal help. You see, they tried twice before; they have never been this organized, OK? They’ve tried twice before in 200 years to rule the World & came very close. Once during Napoleon & once during WWI, they came extremely close to gaining the World both times. Now let’s pray that the Lord messes up their plans one more time. I haven’t seen it happen yet, but I’d like to see it happen!

(QUESTION ABOUT A COVEN IN PENNSYLVANIA SOMEWHERE.) I’m not familiar with the town. I wasn’t over Pennsylvania, so I don’t know. If you were invited to a coven down there, there’s one down there. (Q: Are you sure?) Yeah. They don’t invite you to covens unless there was one down there.

NOW I’VE GOT A QUESTION FOR YOU; HAVE YOU BEEN PLAYING WITH THE OUIJA BOARD AT SEANCES? (Q: Oh no, I’m scared of Ouija boards!) Well, I can only tell you they wouldn’t have invited you down there unless you had been doing something of the occult, & I’ll let it go at that.

(QUESTION: IS ROCK MUSIC AN OUTGROWTH OF WITCHCRAFT?)–YOU CAN’T PRACTICE WITCHCRAFT WITHOUT IT! Now when I was in there, I was president of the largest booking agency–they’ve had to change their name since then because of the publicity I’ve been giving them–but at the time they were called Zodiac Productions. I knew most of the rock groups in the united States–I still do. Some of my closest friends are like David Crosby from Crosby, Stills, Nash & Young, & Graham Nash & others that are around there, & I still talk to many of them.

MOST OF THE ROCK GROUPS ARE MEMBERS OF A WITCHCRAFT CHURCH. That doesn’t mean they’ve been initiated, it means that’s their religion, & when they do a song they’ll ask the witch coven or the temple to cast a spell over that song so that it will become a hit & sell. Now what takes place when a witch casts a spell is they order a lot of demos to do things. They don’t know that’s what they do, but that’s in essence what happens.

NOW THAT MEANS WHEN YOU GO BUY AN ALBUM & YOU TAKE IT HOME WITH YOU, IT’S LIKE BUYING A BOX OF CRACKER JACKS: YOU GET A FREE SURPRISE–IT’S CALLED A DEMON! It goes along with the record. Now much of the music is written in witch language by witches. Elton John has made the statement that he has never written a song or sung a song that was not written in witch language, example: “Beyond the Yellow Brick Road” is 100% witch language.

THAT’S WHY MANY SONGS, YOU DON’T UNDERSTAND. That’s why many people who listen to them don’t understand until they get high on drugs & then all of a sudden the meanings start coming to them. Many songs have been written in witch language such as the whole album by Carole King called “Tapestry.”

THE BOOK OF PROPHECY TO WITCHES IS THE DOUBLE WHITE ALBUM THAT THE BEATLES PRODUCED containing the song “Helter Skelter.” Every song in it is prophecy. Oh, let’s see・”Horse with No Name”, “One Tin Soldier”, I could list thousands of songs that were written this way. They definitely have demonic influence behind them.

PARENTS, I WANT TO SAY THIS TO YOU, HAVE YOU NOTICED THE INCREASE OF REBELLION IN TEENAGERS IN THE HOME? The reason is, it’s your fault.–You let them listen to it. It stirs up rebellion. It’s not the words in the song, it’s the music. Witches know it, they hit certain chords on purpose. As many people that have once been in hypnosis, like Dr. Berry when he was younger was involved in hypnosis can tell you. (See “Musical Key,” No.326.)

THE MUSIC IS HYPNOTIC. IT STIRS UP A WAR-LIKE NATURE IN THE YOUNG PEOPLE. Now they’re going to “boo” me when this is over, but it’s still the truth anyway. Now if you want to have them stay the way they are & you want to baby ‘em, because you’re afraid they might get mad at you & run away from home or something, you go ahead & let them keep on playing it because they’re going to do it anyway.

–OR YOU GO HOME & YOU BREAK THE RECORDS & YOU BURN THE COVERS! Now, when witches get saved, nobody tells them to get out of rock music. When they hand their Witchcraft items over to be burned–you notice I said burned, not just thrown in the trashcan, it’s Scriptural–they hand their records over too, because they’ve lived a in a World of the supernatural & they know the supernatural is tied in with music.

NOW, THE MOST PERFECT DESCRIPTION OF LUCIFER THAT EVER EXISTED IS IN THE 28TH CHAPTER OF EZEKIEL on the King of Tyrus. It describes Lucifer being created with musical instruments imbedded in his body. It’s true, as a person who has seen him, it’s true. He thinks he’s a god & therefore he must have music because gods must have music. (See also Isa.14:4-21.)

NOW YOU CAN GO AHEAD & LET HIS MUSIC BE PLAYED IN YOUR HOME IF YOU CHOOSE, OR YOU CAN BECOME A STRONGER CHRISTIAN & GET RID OF IT! You’re the parents, the parents are the ones. The kids are not going to answer for it. (Inaudible question.) No, it would become an effect. It’s strange because they wouldn’t have gotten attacked without Christian help.

SEE, WITCHCRAFT NEVER SACRIFICES ANYTHING THAT THEY DON’T GAIN 10,000 MORE, & when they lost the battle on purpose in court with the Moonies, that set the stage for the Genocide Act. While we were yelling, “Yeah, get them out of those false cults & rehabilitate them!” we were setting the stage for our own downfall. You don’t give up freedom to a certain group without losing it yourself. They’ve always set it up this way, & I’m always surprised at how easy Christians fall into it. (Ed: Amen!)

(QUESTION: HOW DO YOU FEEL ABOUT THE JOHN BIRCH SOCIETY?) How do I feel about them? Did you see that pyramid? I’m against any organization whose leaders are 33rd Level Masons, & their leader is a 33rd Level Mason. Now, he’s taken off his Masonic ring in the last couple of years, but he is still a 33rd Level Mason. You cannot hit the Illuminati & be part of it.

THE ILLUMINATI KNOWS THE PEOPLE ARE GOING TO FIND OUT ABOUT THEM, people found out about them without my help. Brother Berry knew about them before I came along. So we find out about them, & the best thing they can do is call your attention towards something else & say that’s that. So they have reflected the attention on Zionism & have said that’s where it’s at. The only problem is that most of the people in the Illuminati aren’t Jews. Their founders were Jews by birth, but not by religion. ・/P>

BUT MOST OF ITS LEADERS, EXCEPT FOR THE ROTHSCHILDS, ARE GAELIC: SCOTCH OR FRENCH GAELIC. It’s got nothing to do with Jews. My family & most of the people serving on the Grand Druid, their family trees go back to the pagan temples in Rome & Greece & England, to the original priesthood. Some go back as far as Egypt & Babylon. It’s got nothing to do with the Jews. ・/P>

SO I DON’T LIKE THEM. I DON’T LIKE ANYBODY THAT’S A HATE GROUP FOR ONE THING, & I’ve heard too much hate doctrine about the Birch Society. See, I’m not choosy about who I hit!–Ha! (Inaudible question.) Did everybody understand what he was saying?

A PERSON WHO HAS BEEN IN THE OCCULT & BEEN SAVED, ARE THEY MORE TROUBLED BY DEMONS THAN A PERSON WHO HAS NEVER BEEN THERE?–Yes, if they haven’t been through a deliverance. But at the same time, they are a bigger weapon against the Devil. You can’t trick a witch with false doctrine, they’ve heard them all. You can’t pass off a phony Christian on a witch, & you can’t pass a witch off on them that’s a Christian.–They’ve been there, they know what to spot.

THAT’S WHY I LOOK AT A PERSON’S EYES WHEN I TALK TO THEM. If that person has demonic influence in their life, I want to know about it, I want to know who I’m talking to & who I’m not talking to. And when you’ve lived in a supernatural world & you have dealt with demons like witches have, it’s no different when you spot them in a person who’s professing to be a Christian who isn’t living the life.

SO THEY ARE A STRONGER WEAPON AGAINST THE DEVIL, BECAUSE THEY SERVED HIM. See, as close as we are to Jesus now, as loving & compassionate as the relationship we have with Him now, that’s how we felt about the Devil, whether we knew he was the Devil or not. And so when you are that close to something, you know about it.

IF YOU BACKSLIDE YOU STILL KNOW ABOUT CHRISTIANITY, SO A BACKSLIDDEN SAVED WITCH KNOWS ABOUT WITCHCRAFT–IT’S THE SAME THING. But they do have problems, & needless to say, the Devil doesn’t like it, so we’re hit a little harder than maybe somebody else might be. But at the same time, we grow faster & stronger because of it. (Inaudible question.)

YES, WE ARE STARTING A RETREAT. As I told you, many people have been killed that have come out of it. It has gotten so that witches aren’t trusting to come out of it now. Very few are coming out because of the fear, & there is no place for them to go. I mean, when you ask a Christian, “Will you let this witch come into your home so they’ll have a place to stay?”–& all of a sudden you visualize people throwing grenades through your window & shooting up your house, you change your mind!–Because that’s probably what will happen.

SO, WE HAVE DECIDED TO BUILD A RETREAT SOMEWHERE IN THE WILDERNESS COUNTRY somewhere on the West Coast–I’m not going to say where–an armed retreat where these people can be safe till they grow, & then they can either leave the retreat or they can stay. And it will serve a double purpose–I don’t want to go into–later for Christians. But right now, that’s its purpose, & we’re believing that it will get built. We need $50,000, & in the month-&-a-half since we have been trying to raise the money, my pastor’s received $25.

SO, YOU SEE, IT’S KIND OF HARD TO CONVINCE CHRISTIANS THAT A PLACE LIKE THIS IS NEEDED when they can go home to their safe house every night, not realizing that for a witch to become saved or a witch to leave Witchcraft, their life is in extreme danger & they probably will be killed. It’s easy to feel safe when you’re safe. I guess that’s why I feel it, because I’m in danger all the time, so I know how they feel. And I’ve had many a close friend that have become Christians & then been killed, so we are trying to build such a retreat.

(QUESTION: CAN A PERSON BE UNDER THE INFLUENCE OF A DEMON & PROFESS TO BE A CHRISTIAN & NOT KNOW IT?) Oh, I really don’t think … yeah, I guess you can. I have to look at it from your point of view. A woman that was a Christian was at Brother Berry’s church this morning & we put her through a deliverance. In other words, we cast the demons out of her.

SHE WAS NOT POSSESSED–A CHRISTIAN CANNOT BE POSSESSED, I WANT TO MAKE THAT CLEAR–but she had demonic spiritual influences. She had tried to take her life, she was going into fits of depression to where her prayer life could not conquer them. She hadn’t in 18 months felt the joy that she felt this morning when it was over. When you can no longer crucify the flesh, & it goes beyond just crucifying the flesh, then it’s time you cast out the demon. (Q: This is done by prayer?) That’s how it’s done.

IT’S DONE THROUGH PRAYER & THE BLOOD & THE NAME OF JESUS. I don’t pray to it, I just tell the devil to get out! Actually, it is very well noted, you can do it for yourself if you have the faith. Actually, they are the ones that are doing it anyway; we just have to say a prayer of rejection & we just take authority over them, but they could do the same thing if they believed it.

(QUESTION: IS TEX WATSON, THE FELLOW WHO KILLED SHARON TATE, BORN AGAIN?) That’s what he says, yeah. (Q: And he is in prison now. Will he be released & is he a witch?) But you’ve got to understand something, if Tex a was born-again Christian he would tell all. There’s been several people who are supposed to be born again of that group & they have not told anything. If they were born again, they’d be telling all, & they’re not. That’s why I don’t believe it. You can believe it if you choose, but I don’t, because I know Manson, he’s an old buddy of mine.

I KNOW WHAT WENT ON & IT WASN’T A MASS KILLING, IT WAS A CONTRACT KILLING. Even the police who tried them knew that, but they didn’t want to press it in the trial because they didn’t think they could get a conviction if they pressed a conspiracy theory behind it. And I talked with the police officers behind it. No, I don’t believe it. If Tex was born again & he was in prison, they’d be trying to kill him for one thing.

MANSON RUNS THE PRISONS, NOTHING GOES ON IN THERE THAT HE DOESN’T GIVE THE ORDERS TO, & that’s from the very security guards that work there. Well, I don’t accept it, I’m sorry, but I came out of that world & I realize … let me give you this: (See “Carter the Poor Example,” No.909.)

THEY RECENTLY ASKED ANITA BRYANT WHETHER JIMMY CARTER WAS A CHRISTIAN OR NOT, & this was her answer. I’ll use this as an example, & I loved what her answer was. Christians are so gullible & I really appreciate Anita for this, she said, “You’re not a Christian because you say you’re born again, you’re a Christian if you have the fruit of the Spirit–does he?” That’s the whole question. If the fruit’s there, they’re Christians. If it’s not there, you’re going to grow up thorns & not apples, OK? That’s all I can tell you. Yes?

(QUESTION REGARDING ROCK MUSIC IN THE CHURCH:) YOU’RE TALKING ABOUT JESUS ROCK. I mentioned a church earlier that we spent 8 million dollars in two years to build in Costa Mesa, California. They started Jesus Rock music. The reason for the 8 million dollars was to put rock music in churches that did not allow rock music. It’s not what’s sung on the tune, it’s the music.

(QUESTION: CAN A PERSON BE A MEMBER OF A FUNDAMENTAL CHURCH & ACTUALLY BE A WITCH & NOT A CHRISTIAN?) ABSOLUTELY! They’ve spent millions of dollars putting “plants” in Fundamental churches around the United States. They train them in Christian beliefs. The newest form of blasphemy by a witch towards the Christian God is to sit there & praise the Lord & act like a Christian, laughing the whole time. Absolutely.

THAT’S WHAT REGINA, THE GIRL THAT TOOK MY PLACE DID. Her main thrust was to keep an eye on Jerry Falwell’s church while she was Witch Queen of Virginia, & she was so good at it they made her a Grand Druid when I resigned. So there’s a lot of it. In fact the church that reached me had four High Priestesses attending the church, & had it in a mess until they started finding out what was going on & took a hand & corrected the matter.

THEY HAVE TRIED RECENTLY TO GET WITCHCRAFT, THAT’S MAINLY THE OUIJA BOARD & SEANCES, IN MANY CHRISTIAN HIGH SCHOOLS. Because 95% of the people inducted into witchcraft in the last couple of years were inducted by their junior high & high school teachers in the public school system, by teachers that were scholarshipped & funded & put through college, that were coven members just so they could spread witchcraft. And so through many liberal practices at schools, they’ve been using Christian schools, so now they are trying to get in the Christian schools. OK?

(QUESTION ABOUT POLITICS.) I DON’T KNOW, I DON’T KEEP TABS ON THAT. The only thing I know about politics is what was happening when I got in, & I try to stay away from politics. I was very politically-minded when I was a witch. I try to stay very Christian-minded & you can’t do both. I’ll take this one & then I’m going to close. Yes?

(QUESTION: WHAT YOU SAID ABOUT DEMONS BEING AROUND WITCHCRAFT BOOKS; WHY DO YOU CARRY YOUR BOOKS?) What books? (Q: About the Masonic Temple.) Oh, those books aren’t the same books. The two books that I have–& I don’t have any with me tonight–one is written by Charles Finney who was saved out of the Masons, & another one was the first man executed by the Illuminati for betraying them, Captain Morgan. And this is the reason I carry those two books, because they expose. But I don’t believe that a Christian can have books written by witches in their libraries & get away with it, & I don’t own any. I burned all mine when I got saved. (End of lecture.)

* * * * * * *

(The following is a lecture given a different night:)

WE HAD TO REALLY PRAY BEFORE WE COULD MAKE IT TO THE SERVICE TONIGHT, my wife & myself. We’ve been battling the flu & coughs. We’ve been pushing & we’ve opened ourselves up & weakened our bodies down.

LITERALLY WHAT I’M GOING TO DO IS TEACH OUT OF A BOOK THAT WE JUST DID FOR CHICK PUBLICATIONS about a month ago which should be seen in your Christian bookstores in about six months. It took 6 or 8 months to do the artwork on it, a book that we could write in about two days, & it’s called The Angel of Light.

AND WHAT WE’RE GOING TO DO IS TAKE THE DEVIL’S SPIRITUAL KINGDOM & HIS PHYSICAL KINGDOM. The reason I want to do it this way is many people, many political organizations, conservative political organizations specifically, find the Illuminati in their journeys. I mean it’s kinda’ hard if you’re going to fool around with politics & history not to see the conspiracy. But they look at this little thing over here, & they see a war is happening, or they look over here at this little political movement & they miss the whole picture because they look at it from the outside.

IT’S IMPOSSIBLE TO LOOK AT THE ILLUMINATI FROM THE OUTSIDE UNLESS YOU UNDERSTAND ITS STRUCTURE. Physical minds & computers cannot come up with the Conspiracy as powerful & as direct, as workable, that has hundreds of different little conspiracies off of it, that do not know that it’s all one big Conspiracy.

IT’S IMPOSSIBLE TO DO SOMETHING LIKE THIS WITHOUT A SUPERNATURAL DIRECTION. We have a supernatural direction in the Christian Church, that’s how come the Christian Church grew, we have the Holy Spirit leading us. Well, they have the Prince & Power of the Air. They have Lucifer leading them, & this is something I want to go into.

I WANT TO DESCRIBE HIM & GO INTO HIM IN THE WORD & MY EXPERIENCES, & then we’re going to go into his physical kingdom, the Illuminati. If you have paper & pencil with you tonight, I recommend that you get it out, because I doubt that you’re going to hear the things that you’re going to hear here tonight quite like you’re going to hear them tonight!

WHILE YOU’RE DOING THAT, I’D LIKE TO ASK THAT YOU TURN TO EZEKIEL THE 28TH CHAPTER STARTING IN VERSE 11, & we’re going to read about 19 Scriptures here tonight in this Chapter. The 28th Chapter of Ezekiel is a prophecy given by Ezekiel who received it of the Lord. The Lord commanded him to give it. He was prophesying unto Satan himself. The prophet of the Lord stood there & prophesied unto Satan.

WE HAVE A CONFUSING PICTURE BECAUSE OF MANY PAINTINGS & MANY SUNDAY SCHOOL STORIES, that are based on tradition about the Devil’s fall, & when we got into The Angel of Light we realized how many traditions we were going to shatter. But we had come to a conclusion before we wrote it that unless it said it in the Word–& no reading in between the lines, please–unless it said it directly in the Word we weren’t’ going to put it down. We were going to put it down in the Word. And then I stood over here & said, well that’s exactly the way it was in the occult.–And we matched the two of them up & they matched perfectly.

SO WE’RE NOT GOING TO TAKE YOU THROUGH ANY TRADITIONS TONIGHT, so if you have a lot of Baptist traditions you’re going to get a lot of it shattered tonight between this chapter & the 24th chapter of Matthew, & you’re going to walk out of here either a changed person or ready to lynch the pastor & myself! But let’s take this tonight & I want the young people to pay attention to this.

THIS IS THE MOST PERFECT DESCRIPTION OF LUCIFER & when you’re gone & if you’re still listening to the garbage that you call music today, you need to get re-saved. Because this is the Scripture for it, read with me: “Moreover the Word of the Lord came unto me, saying…” Now I want to say something here about this chapter.

HE’S PROPHESYING TO THE PRINCE OF TYRUS, & many people believe that this was … I can’t think of this name now, but anyway, the ruler of Babylon. And if you’ll get in Isaiah where it talks about Lucifer the fallen star, before he started prophesying to Lucifer, Isaiah was prophesying to the same ruler. (Isa.14:4.)

THE REASON FOR THIS IS THE PERFECT DESCRIPTION OF THE ILLUMINATI–& the Illuminati didn’t even exist in its organized form at that time–it’s because there was a ruler, a prince. A power was a ruler, & then there was the king over that prince, so it was the power behind that Earthly ruler. (See “Satan, King of Empires!” ML #961, Vol.8.)

AND THIS IS WHERE PEOPLE AREN’T LOOKING TODAY & ARE NOT PAYING ATTENTION TO EPHESIANS 6:12 TODAY. They’re not looking at things with a supernatural stance behind the physical. While Walter Cronkite or somebody else gets on television & says this is happening, you ought to get down on your knees & say, “Lord, what’s really happening?”–because it’s not the way they’re telling it! “Son of man, take up a lamentation upon the King of Tyrus, & say unto him, Thus saith the Lord God; Thou sealest up the sum, full of wisdom, & perfect in beauty.”

THE FIRST THING WE WANT TO POINT OUT ABOUT LUCIFER IS, WHEN HE WAS CREATED HE WAS THE COMPLETE SUM OF ALL BEAUTY & WISDOM. You see, God wasn’t created, but never had a created creature ever been created with such beauty & such wisdom, & that was Lucifer, “Thou hast been in Eden the garden of God, every precious stone was thy covering”–& it lists the stones & gold. And on down it lists, “The workmanship of thy tabrets & of thy pipes was prepared in thee in the day that thou wast created.”–He was created with musical instruments imbedded in his body, that’s how he was created!

YOU SEE, LUCIFER IS TRYING TO BE A GOD IN THIS PROPHECY, & we’ll go on in it. He’s trying to be a god, he’s trying to be as great as God. He’s trying to build a kingdom in the sides of the mountain of the North & so on, & it’s a description of God’s Kingdom. He knows that music was created for God, dance was created for God. He knows that if he is going to be a god he is going to have to have music.

YOU CAN’T BE A GOD WITHOUT MUSICAL WORSHIP, SO HE HAS CREATED HIS OWN MUSIC. It’s not just Rock, I get sick of people saying just Rock. I’m down on all music except the music that is created for the Lord. The reason I’m particularly down on Country & Western, & if you ever listen to it, it’s worse that Rock! It’s more about lust, it’s more about drinking, it’s more about fighting than any other thing, & recently it’s even begun to be about witchcraft.

Part Three

SEE, WITCHES DON’T SAY “WITCHCRAFT” & THEY DON’T SAY “WITCHES,” THEY SAY “PRACTICERS” or something like this, & they say “the force,” for those who’ve been to “Star Wars.” They say “the force,” so they describe him as “the force.” Now Tom C. Hall has come out with a song called, “The Force,” & the music is the background music for witchcraft ceremonies, it’s his music to the words of that song.

AND IN “STAR WARS”–WHICH IS THE BIGGEST THING THAT WITCHCRAFT HAS EVER DONE TO SPREAD ITS DOCTRINE–in “Star Wars” & in this song they say, “And may the force be with you till we’re apart.” This is almost identical to what witches say when they greet & part, so it’s not by accident, People, nothing is by accident anymore. If I can get anything across to you tonight, you’re going to walk out of here saying there’s nothing that happens by accident.

“THOU ART THE ANOINTED CHERUB THAT COVERETH”–HE COVERED GOD’S THRONE, he was the chosen cherub. Now one of the traditions about Lucifer is that he was one of three archangels. Quickly, can anybody find a Scripture for that in the Bible?–It doesn’t exist! That’s a tradition. That’s the problem, you’ve got too many traditions! He was a cherub, he wasn’t an archangel, there’s a difference. The Jews go in much more deeply than we do on angels, they still believe in the angels instead of believing in the Holy Spirit.

BUT I FIRMLY BELIEVE THAT THE DEVIL’S KINGDOM SUPERNATURALLY IS SET UP TO COUNTERFEIT GOD’S, & HE HAS SEVEN PRINCIPALITIES. He has set his spiritual kingdom up identical with God’s Kingdom & there are seven–he wasn’t one of them. A third of the angels rebelled with him, yes, that’s in Revelation that happens, but that doesn’t mean he was one of the three archangels. That’s just our way of thinking. (Rev.12:3,4.)

THE CHOSEN CHERUB, “THE ANOINTED CHERUB THAT COVERETH; & I have set thee so; thou wast upon the holy mountain of God: thou hast walked up & down in the midst of the stones of fire. Thou wast perfect in thy ways from the day that thou wast created till iniquity was found in thee.” He was perfect till then. “By the multitude of thy merchandise they have filled the midst of thee with violence, & thou hast sinned: therefore I will cast thee as profane out of the mountain of God.”

NOW WHAT IS THE LORD SAYING HERE? “I WILL CAST THEE OUT.” If you think that Lucifer is locked out of Heaven, I suggest you go back & read the first Chapter of Job all over again, & then go read Revelation. Revelation isn’t a history book, it’s a prophecy book, & in there we find he’ll get cast out. The Devil’s walking here, this is his domain. He’s our accuser, that’s what Satan means, “accuser.” He stands before the Throne of God constantly accusing us. I’ll let you study this later, because I want to go on, but on & on it describes him.

THE MAIN THING I WANT TO POINT OUT IS HOW HE LOOKS. So in the sketch we drew for the artists for The Angel of Light, we drew him as the covering angel before God’s Throne, covered with jewels. And when God’s light shone through him it was like a prism, it changed the colors to where they come out, & colors are extremely important to the Devil. Everything he does is in colors, without them, nothing happens. It’s like Jeane Dixon sees blue serpents, & we’re going to go into that tonight.

ANYWAY, EARLIER TODAY I WAS TALKING ABOUT WHEN I’VE SEEN LUCIFER. I don’t know why it’s so astounding to Christians that somebody should see the Devil, but I suggest this to you: fight him really hard & I can guarantee he’ll show up in your life. He’ll pay you a visit & say hi!–No, I’m serious, I really am, it’s not a joke. If you start fighting the Devil, if he doesn’t show up–which is doubtful that he would–he will send somebody to imitate him & pay you a visit.

THE PASTOR & HIS WIFE WERE TELLING ME TONIGHT OF A VISIT THAT THEY’VE HAD. Will you confirm this visit, Pastor? Absolutely! It was a very spooky one, wasn’t it, Sister? But because they did not fear, he had to leave. Now I want to say something to you very quickly while we’re on the supernatural part of the Devil. The Devil can only interfere in a Christian’s life through several things, he can only come in your home for this reason:

IF YOU FEAR HIM HE CAN COME IN BECAUSE YOU HAVE WORSHIPPED HIM, SO DON’T FEAR HIM! If you own something that belongs to him, such as the jewelry we described in Sunday School this morning; or such as books on the occult, or books on astrology which is the occult; or such as writings that are supposed to be best sellers, but come on people, they’re loaded with stuff that Larry Flynt would love to put in his magazine!–Best sellers that are just descriptions for pornography books so Doubleday can make an extra buck!

AND THEN THERE ARE OTHER THINGS SUCH AS THINGS OR BELONGINGS THAT ACTUALITY WERE CREATED BY THE DEVIL SUCH AS ROCK MUSIC. Now I want to specify this, I am down on this because I am an ex-witch. Without it witches don’t function. I dropped this out of my testimony this morning, I should have given it. One of the things that I was supposed to be was the head of this Brenner Enterprises in Texas which explains to the IRS why I was making all this money.

IT WAS A LOT OF MONEY & ONE OF THE COMPANIES I WAS SUPPOSED TO HAVE OWNED WAS CALLED ZODIAC PRODUCTIONS.–The name gives it away. It was a booking agency in Texas; it’s changed its name, but it’s still the largest booking agency in the U.S. for Rock groups. It was the group that was originally responsible for bringing the Beatles to the U.S. I got to meet most of the groups.

THE BEATLES WERE ALREADY APART WHEN I WAS THERE, BUT I GOT TO MEET SEVERAL OF THEM OFF & ON, & I met almost all of the groups that were in existence then, & a lot that are in existence now. I only found about this many (holds up a few fingers) that weren’t occultists, that didn’t confess when they were alone that their music came from “supernatural forces” as they would put it.

SO I WANT TO TELL THE TEENAGERS & THE PARENTS SOMETHING REAL QUICK BEFORE I GO ON: When witches do a book, they do a spell over the manuscript & they command demons which are under their authority to enter every manuscript that comes off the press, every copy of that book. So when you buy that book you get a little free gift, like when you open a little Cracker Jacks box & there’s a little trinket in there. Well, you get a free demon, free of charge.

WELL, MOST OF THE ROCK GROUPS DO THE SAME THING, & I know, I’ve talked to one just recently–David Crosby of Crosby, Stills, Nash & Young that used to exist & is getting back together–& he told me this is why his records & others’ records zoomed to the charts. Many people tell me they do this so their records will be best sellers, & you get free of charge your own private demon.

SO PARENTS, IF YOU’RE COMPROMIZING WITH YOUR KIDS to keep them from running away from home, you are responsible for that article in the home because you’re the head of the house. (Audience: Amen, preach it, Brother!) Now this is an ex-witch talkin’ who knows about demons, so you better pay attention!!

MAYBE THAT’S WHY YOUR FINANCES ARE MESSED UP! Maybe that’s why your kids & you are sick once in a while & you shouldn’t be. The preacher asked me how much credit do I give the Devil for sickness? I said, “All of it, lock, stock & barrel!” Now let’s go on or I’ll be on that all night.

ANYWAY, I WANT TO GIVE YOU SOMETHING REAL QUICK: THERE ARE SEVEN PRINCIPALITIES IN THE DEVIL’S KINGDOM. The way it’s set up, there’s Satan & then there’s Beelzebub. I know a lot of Christians thought that was another title for Satan, but that’s his prince. That would have been his position to God, that would have been his chosen angel. Under that are the seven principalities, & under the principalities are the powers, & under the powers, billions of demons. I just praise the Lord that the pit’s locked & that most of them are there. But there’s still millions running around.

BUT ANYWAYS, THE SEVEN PRINCIPALITIES ARE AS FOLLOWS: REGE, WHICH IS THE PRINCIPALITY OF THE OCCULT & many things that are under the occult. And this is for the young people; witches know the difference between witchcraft & Sorcery. That’s why I don’t like the modern translations of the Bible, because they list witchcraft as Sorcery.

SORCERY IS THE USE OF CERTAIN DRUGS THAT ARE ACTUALLY OCCULT DRUGS. There’s a difference. Timothy Leary, when he wrote his book on LSD said, “You’re not hallucinating when you take acid. Acid is blocking the physical senses out so that you can see a supernatural World!”–And since God doesn’t use LSD, that only leaves one supernatural World left! And most people that have been on LSD for a long time will tell you, “I wasn’t hallucinating when I saw that!”

NOW THIS IS WHY WE ASK MANY PEOPLE IF THEY’VE BEEN IN THE OCCULT & IF THEY’VE SAID NO, THEN WE’LL STOP & SAY, “BUT YOU’VE BEEN ON ACID, or you’ve been on coke, or you’ve been on a strong form of hashish of or you’ve been on speed!”–Something that’s classified as a hallucinogenic. That’s a sorcery drug. The word “sorcery” comes from the word that we receive “pharmacist” from meaning the dispenser of drugs. In this case, sorcery means the use of drugs for occult purposes. Now there’s other things that are in this, of course, there’s witchcraft & all this.

THE NEXT ONE IS LAZERS. I was going to put all of this on the board but I decided to go through it real quick so I can use the board for other things. Lazers is sexual lust, & that says it right there. You want to know all the things that are under Rege?–Everything that’s in the 18th Chapter of Deuteronomy is under Rege.

ONE THING I USUALLY WARN CHRISTIANS ABOUT IS THIS CUTE LITTLE GAME GOING AROUND the Christian church that when a woman is pregnant with a child, somebody will get a button or a ring or a medallion of some type & swing it over their hand & say, “Let’s see if you’re going to have a girl or a boy.”–That’s called divination, fortune telling.

IF THAT WOMAN OR MAN THAT WAS DOING THAT CUTE LITTLE TRICK, THAT OLD WIVES TALE, were caught doing that in Israel, they’d take her out & stone him or her to death, & the person that was allowing it to be done! Today we’re under grace, praise the Lord for that, or I wouldn’t be here, but I’m telling you it’s that serious! We could go into the demonic reasons for it, but you might gain troubles from it by allowing it to happen.

NEXT AFTER LAZERS, AFTER LUST, IS BACCHUS. I don’t have the spelling on it, good luck. I’m sorry I didn’t put everything on the board but I left my notes back in Ohio. Bacchus was even an old Roman god. A couple other of these principalities had gods named after them in different pagan countries during pagan times.

BACCHUS WAS THE ROMAN GOD OF WINE, IS PRETTY CLOSE TO WHAT HE WAS, & HE IS THE PRINCIPALITY OF ADDICTION. Now I’ve seen many people who shouldn’t be doing deliverance because they don’t know what they’re doing, calling demons of nicotine out, demons of alcoholism, & the demon’s standing there laughing at them because there’s no such creature!

BUT THERE IS A DEMON OF ADDICTION, & THE REASON I SPECIFY THIS IS THAT HE DOESN’T CARE WHAT YOU FEED HIM, just as long as you’re addicted to it. That can be food & caffeine as well as alcohol, cigarettes & drugs. Now food & caffeine are not bad except when you’ve got to have it & you use it as a solution to your problems.

TAKE FOR EXAMPLE A WOMAN IN A LIBERAL CHURCH, SHE HAD PROBLEMS & SHE DOESN’T GO TO THE LORD, SHE’LL GO TO HER LIQUOR CABINET & her pack of Marlboros–as she’s hooked on both–or taking her prescribed barbiturates from the doctor. Now over in the Fundamental church this isn’t allowed, except maybe the prescribed prescription from the doctor. And she’ll go where? Does anybody know?

IF SHE HAS A LOT OF PROBLEMS, WHERE DOES SHE RUN TO IF SHE DOESN’T RUN TO THE LORD? What does she do if she gets nervous?–She eats! How many people get up in the morning & have got to have … now I’m talking about having a cup of coffee to pop the ol’ peepers up, “I gotta have my cup of coffee!–I’m gonna die if I don’t have my cup of coffee!” Come on, you’ve seen it!! An 8-pack of Pepsi in three hours, 16 cans of Dr. Pepper a day! Come on!

YOU TALK ABOUT ALCOHOLICS, WE’VE GOT SOME CAFFEINE ADDICTS AROUND HERE! There’s a difference between drinking it because you like it, & don’t kid me!! It’s like the guy putting the cigarette down & saying, “Oh well, I could quit any time, I just like to do it.” “Yeah, I could quit drinking 26 cups of coffee a day, but I just enjoy coffee!”–Then go to Sanka!–If you can stand the withdrawals! Come on, you know what I mean! It’s the same demon! He does not care.

TO GIVE YOU AN EXAMPLE, I MENTIONED TEEN CHALLENGE TODAY. Teen Challenge will not accept anybody from the occult because they don’t cast out demons & they can’t handle them.–That’s why they don’t get much success with drugs anymore because since Dave Wilkerson got rid of exorcism, Teen Challenge dropped out of it, they don’t do deliverance. So therefore the people come in, they get them off of cigarettes, they get them off of drugs, but they come out weighing 200 or 300 pounds & 26 cups of coffee a day & they’ve got the same demons!

THEY’RE FEEDING THE SAME DEMONS BUT THEY’RE GIVING THEM A NEW DIET! Can somebody tell me, amen? You understand what I’m trying to say? Oh, you understand? OK! Next after that is Pan. If you know Shakespeare, Pan says, “What fools these mortals be”–it kind of gives him away.

PAN IS THE PRINCIPALITY OF THE MIND. THIS IS THE DEVIL’S FAVOURITE PLAYGROUND. When you say sanctify the spirit, soul & body, this is the soul, the mind. Now, to give you an example, we run into Pan more than any other demon. Now we don’t use names, but I’m giving you the names anyway, we just use categories in deliverance.

WE RUN INTO HIM BECAUSE OF THE DEMON OF REJECTION THAT HE IS OVER. And this is the base for everybody that has sexual problems, & the base where everybody has drug problems, & the base for everybody that has occult problems. Because they pick this demon up when they’re a child, sometimes before they’re even born, & they carry this thing that opens them up to other demons, trying to feed & fulfil the demon that’s driving them from within. If you’ve ever seen a person with the spirit of rejection you’ll know what I mean.

AND HE’S ALSO OVER NEURALGIA, DEPRESSION, SUICIDE, SCHIZOPHRENIA, PARANOIA, ALL THE MENTAL ILLNESSES. This is why people with rejection problems have deep depression, they try & kill themselves, they’re nervous all the time, they all tie together, people! The next one after it is Set, & this will answer the Pastor’s question he had about sickness.

SET IS THE PRINCIPALITY OF DEATH. He was the Egyptian god of the underworld, the same thing. Set is over all sicknesses, in fact there’re 39 major illnesses–that’s what the physicians say today–& the occult credits him with 39 powers, 39 little sub-groups. And it’s interesting that it’s believed that Christ took 39 stripes for our healing. (Ed: Amen!)

HOW MANY HAVE I GOT NOW? FIVE? I KNOW WHAT THE 7TH IS BUT I WANT TO LEAVE IT TILL THE 7TH. Okay, I’ve got Lazers, Rege, Bacchus, Set, Pan. I can’t think of what the other one is. I’m trying to think of the category that’s missing. Sheila, help! We don’t have our notes with us! I’m gonna skip it, I’ll come back to it.

THE SEVENTH ONE DOES NOT HAVE A NAME BECAUSE WITCHES DON’T USE IT. You see, witches will call these others up & will send them out or have them command demons to go out. They don’t use this one. They call it a Christian principality. Remember I said earlier this morning there’s no such thing as an undedicated witch; I had to get saved before I found undedicated people in religion! Now this is the reason why:

IT’S CALLED THE PRINCIPALITY OF CONTENTMENT. You come to church, you might even come to Sunday nights, & if you’re good you might even show up at prayer meeting on Wednesday, but that’s if you have a few problems during the week & you need a religious fix. Come on, People, this is the reason. This is why churches don’t grow, they don’t have bus programs, they don’t grow, they don’t go out & canvas.

THAT’S WHY WHEN YOU COME TOGETHER FOR A WITNESSING NIGHT, YOU MIGHT GET 8 PEOPLE OUT OF 300 TO SHOW UP, because of this. I’ve walked into churches like that Calvary Chapel down in Costa Mesa with 3,000 young people.–You come back three months later & you’ve got 3,000 different young people! That’s because they either backslid or went to a Bible-believing church so they could grow!

YOU CAN FEEL THE POWER, THE PRINCIPALITY IN THE AIR OF CONTENTMENT. When you walk through the door, you can suffocate!–That is if you came out of what I came out of & you know what they feel like. Anyway, I’m still trying to think of the last one. Oh boy, I’ll probably remember it when the service is over. OK, let’s go on to the physical kingdom.

OH, SOMEBODY ASKED ME EARLIER TODAY WHEN I WAS IN SUNDAY SCHOOL DESCRIBING LUCIFER–he must not want this to come out–about when he appeared. He did appear physical, & this might shock a few people. I’ve seen him sit down at tables at meals. I’ve seen him even have sexual relationships with women at witchcraft meetings, at higher meetings. In fact, the girl that took my place whose witch name is Regina, it means “the bride of Lucifer.” Now the witches believe it too!

HE APPEARED ABOUT SEVEN FEET TALL, USUALLY CLOTHED IN DEEP PURPLE.–Sometimes clothed in red, sometimes clothed in gold–purple & gold. The only time I’ve seen him clothed in anything else was about six hours after I got saved. He showed up as Satan–that was a shock–& he was clothed in black, but he still appeared the same. About seven feet tall, & I’d have to say not just handsome, but beautiful.

JET BLACK HAIR, SNOW WHITE SKIN, & THE COLOUR OF HIS EYES, INSTEAD OF BLUE, BROWN OR WHATEVER, WERE A DEEP VIOLET, almost deep purple. And when you looked in them, it was like looking down into the Grand Canyon. It’s just bottomless, this power! And believe me, if he ever appeared to you, you’d know you were in his presence.

NOW I WANT TO GO ON TO THE PHYSICAL KINGDOM, THE ILLUMINATI. For those of you who were maybe not around this morning, the Illuminati means “The Light Bearers.” Call it Great Conspiracy, call it what it’s called today, “Moriah,” which means “The Conquering Wind”; call it the CFR, which is its political name to this country; call it anything you want to call it, it’s still the Illuminati, & I want to give some quick history about the Illuminati here. (Ed: Mt. Moriah, Jewish Temple, location of the AC Image!)

ITS OFFICIAL BIRTHDAY IS MAY 1, 1776–RECOGNIZE THE YEAR, PEOPLE? That’s its official birthday. It existed about five to six years before, but that’s it official birthdate. May 1st you have, the Communists have it, but all these countries that have ties with the Illuminati, May 1st is the most holiest day because it is Beltane to the witches, & Beltane is New Years Day, & all things begin on Beltane.

IT’S THE DAY THAT LUCIFER COMES BACK FROM THE UNDERWORLD & DWELLS IN THE SKIES ABOVE, ACCORDING TO THE WITCHES. Now I don’t believe that doctrine now, but that’s the doctrine we believed then. They spent between Halloween & Beltane under the Earth & came back in the summer months. That’s how come the seasons change & all that good stuff. In other words, witchcraft is paganism.. All the witches call themselves pagans because they believe in the old pagan religions, which means “pre-Christian religion”.

NOW, THIS IS THE STRUCTURE. The reason I’ve left the other blocks out, there’s actually three pyramids, each one bigger than the next, but this is on all of them, the Capstone. Now I want to explain the Illuminati with these pyramids so there’s so confusion.

THE FIRST PYRAMID IS “ORGANIZATION,” not financial, not political, Organization. You’ll find the Masons here, that’s one of the originals. You’ll find the Grand Lodges of the Orient, which is where the Illuminati started. You’ll find the Scottish Rites, the York Rites, the Oddfellows, the Jaycees–any organization that is secret, that has an inner group besides the outer group, you will find there, as long as it’s not directly occultism.

THE NATURES ARE IN DOCTRINE, & MOST MEMBERS DON’T KNOW THAT THE WITCHES BELIEVE & DO THE SAME THINGS THAT THEY DO. In fact, I think the Masons would be shocked to look at a drawing, a blueprint of the Golden Dawn Temple–which is the Rothschild’s private coven in London–& see that all Mason’s temples are based upon that blueprint. They would be shocked to read that the Rothschilds do the same rites that the Masons do. You might tell a few Masons that, I may have just told a few of them that!

UP HERE YOU’LL ALSO FIND B’NAI B’RITH, A VERY VERY POWERFUL ILLUMINATI ORGANISATION. They couldn’t be doing what they’re doing today without B’nai B’rith. You’ll find the American Civil Liberties Union, you’ll also find a new one that was created off of it by the man that is actually the brains of the Illuminati today, Isaac Bonovitz. (Ed: B’nai B’rith: Jewish laymen’s organization. Encarta 98 says that it is the world’s largest Jewish organization, has a membership of about 500,000 in 51 countries.)

WHAT MR. BONOVITZ CREATED IS CALLED THE AQUARIAN ANTI-DEFAMATION LEAGUE. You may not feel it much out on the East Coast yet, but out on the West Coast the Christians have already felt it. It’s won Federal suit after Federal suit of any Christian church touching witchcraft, of any Christian church taking the occult on.–And that’s exactly what it is, it’s the anti-defamation league to the Occult. (Ed: The Anti-Defamation League is a militant Jewish organization which also attacks anyone who criticizes the Jews or Israel, accusing them of “anti-Semitism.”)

AT THE TOP OF EVERY PYRAMID YOU WILL FIND 500–THE 500 IS THE WORLD BANKING SYSTEM. It’s a counsel of the 500 richest people in the World, & it’s been in existence for hundreds of years. Some of the people on it today are David Rockefeller, Nelson Rockefeller, Phillip & Edward Rothschild–in fact all the Rothschilds; Queen Juliana & her husband. All the delegates from the Arab countries that own all your oil that doesn’t exist … Hmmmm.

THE NEXT IS THE COUNCIL OF 33, THE 33 HIGHEST MASONS IN THE WORLD. After that is the Council of 13, the Grand Druid Council, this is what I sat on. After that there’s a Capstone, the Rothschild’s Tribunal–Edward, Phillip & Richard are the ones that are sitting up on the Rothschild’s Tribunal now. It’s believed that Richard is the third one, in other words, we aren’t sure who the third one is. In it is the leader of the Illuminati: the all-seeing eye, Lucifer!

NOW HAVE ANY OF YOU BEEN NOTICING THE NEWS LATELY & they’ll be talking about the stock market or the deflation of the dollar or something, & they’ll show this pyramid & capstone from the back of the dollar bill? Have you been noticing the eye on it lately? The whole thing will be green & they’ll make the eye blue with a big glare coming out of it, & the eye’s twice as big as it normally is!

BECAUSE THE T.V. USES WITCHCRAFT SYMBOLS. Now see, you don’t know witch language. They have their own witch language, symbols that you see everyday throughout the World that witches understand. They put these symbols on their store names. They create their store names, because the witch language & witch symbols are for witches who are going by there. witches know who owns them, they know the Illuminati owns them.

I GUARANTEE, PEOPLE, THAT YOU PROBABLY SHOP WITH SATAN. You probably shop at ten stores including the gas situation, grocery store, department store & so on, & nine of them probably belong to the Illuminati. To give you an example, Federal Department Stores is the biggest department store chain in the World. One of their leading members, Lazarus, is the biggest stockholder. They own Gold Circle, they own K-Mart which is Kresge’s, they own Lazarus, they own Federal Department Stores, I know a bunch of them in Baltimore, I forget all of them.

THEY OWN THEM THROUGHOUT THE U.S. I think Penny’s is about the only one that they don’t own. Sears belongs to the Illuminati, Montgomery Wards belongs to Mobile Oil which belongs to the Illuminati. There isn’t one oil company that you can buy your gasoline at today that’s not owned 100% by Illuminati stockholders. Shell was the last to go when they went down. Interesting that that’s one of the things that’s bringing us to our knees.

NOW I WANT TO GIVE SOME THINGS THAT ARE GONNA HAPPEN. I invite you to go home & research the 24th Chapter of Matthew if you are of the opinion that you are going to be raptured out of here without anything at all happening to you. Pastor, for their benefit, do you agree with this? (Pastor: Yes, I believe that a lot’s going to happen before it.) It’s going to get a lot worse.

NOW I WANT TO SAY THAT I BELIEVE IN THE RAPTURE & I BELIEVE IN THE TRIBULATION & I believe that hundreds of thousands of Christians are going to die within a few years.–Because they didn’t read the Word of God which warned us in advance that it was going to be the way it is going to be, & they listened to preachers that told them & patted them on the back. Are you familiar with Jeremiah?–If not, I invite you to read it.

JEREMIAH STOOD UP AS A PROPHET OF GOD & WARNED THE CITY TIME & TIME AGAIN UNTIL DESTRUCTION WAS UPON THEM, & they threw him in a pit because the rest of the prophets of the temple stood up & said, “No, it’s all going to be all right. It ain’t gonna come because God’s gonna save us!”–But God didn’t say it. He said, “I’m gonna tear this city apart!”

NOW IN THE 24TH CHAPTER OF MATTHEW HE SAID THAT THE TIME WAS COMING–NOW THIS IS JESUS’ OWN WORDS–the time was coming that would be so bad that you wouldn’t be able to stop & go back in your house & pick up a coat! He even said pray that when you run–that’s exactly what it said, flee, run as fast as you can, flee–& pray that it doesn’t happen in the Wintertime. Wow, would people run, & what did I say, I’d be spinnin’ my tracks!

EUROPE HAS ALREADY BEEN PREPARED FOR THIS FOR YEARS, & across the U.S. people are waking up that are Christians & are preparing for a space of time. I believe it’s going to be kind of short because it’s gonna be so bad that it couldn’t be long, nobody would live if it was long. It’s gonna be short but to the point.

NOW A PLAN OF WORLD RULE WILL NEVER TAKE EFFECT IF YOU ARE INDEPENDENT OF THAT WORLD RULE. The only reason that the “mark of the beast”–that’s what many Christians call it, or a tag of being one of the group that’s buying & selling & so on–the only reason that would work is if you had to buy. If you don’t have to buy, what good will it do you?

EVERYTHING SINCE JIMMY CARTER GOT IN THAT HE HAS DONE HAS BEEN TO SET IT UP SO YOU WILL NOT BE INDEPENDENT OF THE U.S. GOVERNMENT or any government that will exist later. You must function within them for every bite of food & every drop of gasoline, is the major plan. And that’s why–it’s what’s hit them back–it hasn’t come into effect yet. In fact the Gun Law, which was one of the most important steps, was to have been in a year ago. That’s the only measure that they’re behind on.

I MET A MAN FROM THE NATIONAL RIFLE ASSOCIATION (NRA) that without them being Christians I sure can appreciate some of the things they’ve done that I’ve seen from behind the scenes. Martin Iegues was Jimmy Carter’s campaign manager who is the head of the National Gun Control Center in Atlanta, Georgia, which is the organization whose purpose it is to take every hand gun, every rifle, every shotgun out of every home in the U.S.

NOW THIS MAY NOT SEEM VERY IMPORTANT, & I AM AMAZED AT HOW MANY CHRISTIANS SEEM TO THINK THAT BEING A CHRISTIAN MEANS THAT YOU SHOULD BE AGAINST GUNS. How many of you think that, seriously?–That if you’re a Christian you should be against guns, that guns are evil? I’ve got news for you: the Illuminati is so scared of every private-owned gun that it’s unbelievable! It’s the only threat to them.

THE ONLY THREAT TO THEM RIGHT NOW OF THEIR PLANS IS YOUR PRIVATELY-OWNED GUNS. Now I asked the Pastor if I could just throw in these things, & I have, & I’m going to give them to you, & if you were afraid this morning, I pray that you won’t get afraid now! Lord help them.

THAT TIMETABLE THAT I SAW SAID WHEN CHARLES MANSON IS RELEASED THAT WITHIN SIX MONTHS OF HIS RELEASE THEY WERE TO START “HELTER SKELTER.” I’ve got a feeling I’m gonna get back on rock music now. The Beatles are classified in the occult world as the four major prophets. That’s right, there’s more to the Beatles than meets the eye. Their White Double Album … now this’ll mean nothing to a lot of you, & a lot to the young people. Their White Double Album is considered to be the Book of Revelation to witches. That’s right. That & a book called Atlas Shrugs.

NOW IN IT IS A SONG CALLED “HELTER SKELTER.” You should listen to that song, I used to have a lot of drug friends get together & say, “I wonder what that means?”–Witches knew what it meant, it was part of witch language. It meant a time when the pit would be opened & the demons would be set free & the World would become insane in less than a 24-hour period & they’d be killing everybody–their next door neighbors, their kids, their wife, everything! The World would just completely go mass insane overnight.

NOW MANSON IS NOT JUST A MASS MURDERER THAT GOT SENT TO JAIL. Take my word for it, if you don’t take anything else, please take my word for it. Manson would have never gone to jail had he not been told that that was where he was supposed to go. If the Illuminati would’ve wanted to keep him out, he would’ve never gone to jail. They need him, so they let him get convicted.

MANSON WENT TO JAIL BECAUSE IN THE SEVEN YEARS THAT HE’S BEEN IN HE HAS ORGANIZED FROM HIS JAIL CELL EVERY PRISON ACROSS THE U.S. Now we’ve talked to prison officials, & prisoners walk around in prisons saluting each other & say, “Helter Skelter’s our salvation! Pray Helter Skelter will come! Helter Skelter will release us!” They’re waiting for a time when the World will go completely insane & they’ll flood out of the prisons & they firmly believe–it’s not going to happen but they firmly believe it–that they will take over this country.

NOW, FROM TALKING TO BIKERS–BIKERS MEANING PEOPLE THAT BELONG TO ILLEGAL MOTORCYCLE CLUBS LIKE THE HELLS ANGELS, the Outlaws, the Pagans & so on–they have stopped fighting amongst themselves, people. They have stopped killing each other anymore. You could get in a Bike War & 200 people could lay dead in the street in no time at all. You never heard about it because they got rid of all the bodies & got rid of all the guns & so on. But Bike Wars went on like this all the time out in the country.

THEY STOPPED FIGHTING, THEY DON’T BLOW UP EACH OTHER’S CLUB HOUSES ANYMORE, they don’t shoot each other’s wives & this type of thing, they’ve quit fighting. They’ve won, they’re brothers for the first time, & their leader is Manson. He did this to the Hells Angels when he was in prison there, that’s why he’s still there. He’ll be out.

THEY HAVEN’T LET HIM OUT YET BECAUSE THEY’RE NOT READY FOR HIM. The moment they get the gun controls measures down & another law called the Anti-Hoarding act, which will be coming up next year which will say you’ll go to Federal Penitentiary if you stockpile food, if you stockpile ammunition & guns, if you stockpile medical supplies, if you stockpile gasoline, you’re gonna go to jail if they find out about it.

YOU SEE THE FARMER’S STRIKE & THESE ACCIDENTAL GRAIN FIRES THAT WE’VE BEEN HAVING LATELY? People, come on, four of them?! There was one I heard on the news last night driving into Des Moines, several of the largest grain dealers around up in smoke! If you want to believe that, you go ahead & believe it, I believe it’s set. They’re cutting the food down.

YOU DON’T FEEL IT YET, BUT WAIT TILL YOU GO TO THE STORE & TRY & BUY A HEAD OF LETTUCE & THERE’S NO LETTUCE. That farmer’s strike is really good for the farmers & I’m glad the farmers want to get some more money, but the Illuminati always uses people, & the people who started that farmer’s strike were the closest friends of Jimmy Carter in Georgia. His own sister is one of the leaders of it, not Ruth, the other one.

IT’S SO YOU WILL HAVE TO DEPEND UPON THE GOVERNMENT’S SURPLUS FOOD TO EAT, & you’re not going to get it without a Government Card. We’ll talk about that cared in a minute, in fact we’ll talk about it now. Anybody here recently within the last three years been in Europe, travelling through the Holy Land or anything, anybody? Shucks. This is the reason I asked you that.

HOW MANY OF YOU KNOW ABOUT THE TEN TOES OF DANIEL, THE RECONSTRUCTION OF THE ROMAN EMPIRE? The iron was still there, it was only mixed with clay. Now, when the Common Market was first formed there were ten, & Norway dropped out. The reason, Norway was not part of the original Roman Empire, & God’s Word said it had to be part. About three months ago Greece said, “We will join you!”–they were the missing country.

NOW WHEN YOU GO OVER THERE & YOU BUY SOMETHING, LIKE SHOES MADE IN ITALY OR CLOTHING THAT’S MADE BY THE EUROPEAN COMMON MARKET, there’s a good 85% chance that you’ll see this emblem on it. Anybody know what it is?–666, called the three-tailed comet. Now this same mark appears in more places. If you look back, when Richard Nixon was in, our country decided it was going to buy a lot of World currency to be distributed in 1980 or thereabouts.

SINCE THEN THEY’VE DECIDED IT’S BETTER TO GO TO A CREDIT CARD. In other words, paperless money & so on, where you never handle the money. But when it was bought, this was on all the World common currency. Besides that, Jimmy Carter has decided that every red-blooded American who is really a red-blooded American, & I’m blood red, I’m an American, will own a security card to prove they’re an honest American.

NOW, HOW MANY OF YOU HAVE BEEN IN A NEW DEPARTMENT STORE & HAVE SEEN THE FANCY CASH REGISTERS THAT ARE ACTUALLY COMPUTER BANKS? There’s a slot that they run cards through. They’ve even done it with the phones now where you can call by running a card through, a credit card. The reason is that you’re going to have to have this magnetic security card, & this is on it. It’s on it, People, pay attention, it’s on it! If you get Revelations, you get the meaning.

YOU’RE NOT GOING TO BE ABLE TO BUY, you’re not going to pay another payment on your home, on your car, you’re not going to get any gasoline in your car, you’re not going to get the Pampers for your baby, you’re not going to get any bread & milk & hamburger at the store, you’re not going to run down to Ponderosa or whatever they’ve got on the East Coast & buy a steak. It’s gonna cease!

AND THE U.S. HAS GOT A BAD PROBLEM, IT’S CALLED “THE CORNER STORE COMPLEX.” You know, at 10 o’clock at night you run down to the corner store & pick up a 6-pack of Pepsi–I hope it’s Pepsi & not Coors! Come on, when there’s the least little thing that we want, we run down & get it. What happens when you’re not allowed to buy gasoline but you’ve got this card?–You say, “Well, I’ll take the card, but when they tell me I have to have a tattoo, I’ll quit it.” Huh!

IF YOU TAKE THE CARD, YOU’VE DONE TAKEN IT! That’s all you need. People, pay attention to me! This card is scheduled to come out in a year-&-a-half, & the computer bank is already set for it in Dallas.

THE NICKNAME OF THE TALKING COMPUTER IN DALLAS IS NICKNAMED AFTER ITS BROTHER COMPUTER IN AMSTERDAM, “THE BEAST.” We talked to member of the National Guard in California & they’ve changed their patch. He told me that in less than a year, Carter will have every National Guard in every State wearing this patch, & they’re all hooked into the security computer called “the Beast.” We’re being set up.

NOW WHEN MANSON GETS OUT & “HELTER SKELTER” STARTS, IN THE FIRST YEAR, ONE MILLIONS U.S. CITIZENS ARE MARKED FOR DEATH. Now my question is, are you going to be one of them? Are you going to stay around & be one of them? I’m not going to be one of them. I’ve been running around for five years with people shooting at me, I’ve become an expert at it! Now listen to me, I’ve told your Pastor what to do, Pastor Berry, Dr. Rasmussen & others across the country, this isn’t just John Todd, I’m doing something about it. Joe Boyd has been doing something about it for 20 years.

WHAT YOU BETTER START DOING ABOUT IT, PEOPLE, IS YOU BETTER START PUTTING A LITTLE FOOD BACK FOR YOUR FAMILY. I invite you to do a little experiment. Go home tonight & tomorrow get out a paper & pencil, housewives, & take all the food out of your refrigerator & your freezer & your cabinets & add it up in meals. I don’t mean survival meals, I mean meals that you can work off for every member of your family.

FIND OUT HOW MUCH FOOD, IF YOU COULDN’T GET ANY TOMORROW, YOU WOULD HAVE IN YOUR HOME. Well, you’re going to get a little bit of a warning because the Illuminati is going to try something. They’re gonna try several little practices first. There’s a huge Teamster’s strike coming that’s going to cut the food going into the cities. I don’t mean a strike that’s going to last a few days, I mean nothing is going to move!

NOTHING IS GOING TO MOVE, THE RAILWAYS ARE GOING TO GO ON STRIKE AT THE SAME TIME & SO ARE SPECIFIC AIRLINES. The Longshoremen are going to go on strike so nothing comes off the ships. In others words, nothing is going to move. Now you ought to go off to your grocery store, because if this happens, how soon would you die on your feet? Most cities will tell you within two weeks everybody would be starving. That’s all the food there is in their storehouses.

THERE WAS A BOOK RELEASED 12 YEARS AGO CALLED ATLAS SHRUGS. It was a novel, supposedly, written by one of Phillip Rothschild’s girlfriends at his instructions. It is a coded book for witches that tells how they are to gain control of the World. In this book there is sort of a parable about New York City, New York City is more or less the World.

THEY CLOSE BY SAYING, “WE HAVE WON WHEN THE LIGHTS GO OUT IN NEW YORK CITY!”–& I don’t mean the power failure, people, either. They’ll shut down all the trucks leaving, all the ships coming in, they’ll shut all the planes coming down. When everything was shut down, then the lights went out for good.

WHEN THE BOOK WAS DONE, THE READER OF THE BOOK TAKES HIS HAND & LIFTS IT UP & DRAWS THE DOLLAR SIGN IN THE AIR. I’m going to draw this familiar sign of the dollar. It’s a witchcraft symbol that means “to control & to scourge.” It’s 8,000 years old, people, & it was never of the dollar sign until we thought it was the dollar sign. Isaac Bonovitz says that “through this symbol we will now rule & control the World.” & the book ends.

NOW IN THE BOOK, ALL THE WAY THROUGH, BUSINESSMEN THAT BELONG TO THESE ORGANIZATIONS PURPOSELY BANKRUPT OR DESTROY THEIR BUSINESSES so there aren’t any businesses, & they drive the others out of business. And all the way through they use the battle plan called “the presence from below & the presence from above.” Anybody that’s studied Communism knows the same plan. That means the Devil must destroy all the regulations, & the bankers do it this way, & guess who’s in the middle, people?–Us! That’s what’s coming.

NOW I’M GOING TO TURN IT OVER FOR QUESTIONS & ANSWERS, & I hope you’ve got a few. If I’ve got them I’ll give you the answers. But if I don’t have them, I may not give you the answer you want but I’ll give you the facts. So if you have a question, you better ask it.

(QUESTION: ARE THERE ANY CHRISTIAN BOOKS THAT ARE FACTUAL ON WITCHCRAFT?) I’m sorry to say there are no Christian books that are factual on witchcraft, except The Broken Cross & The Angel of Light. There are no others. The reason I’ve never written a book is because all the major Christian companies wanted to rewrite the book, & it would end up 50% untrue.

THAT’S WHAT MIKE WARSEE SAID, HE SAID HE DIDN’T WRITE HIS OWN BOOK, LOGOS WROTE IT FOR HIM. He said, “Now John, you know it didn’t happen that way.” I said, “Well why did you put your name to it then?” Well, there’s no books on it. The only books that I’ve seen are witch books, & if you buy them, you’re in trouble!

John Todd’s Introduction to Atlas Srugged

It is an Illuminati book. The book was ordered written and produced by Philip Rothschild, the leader of the Illuminati in his day and age. It was ordered written by a woman named Ayn Rand. She was, at that time, one of Philip Rothschild’s mistresses. She was already a well-known author and her books sell nationwide. She wrote this book, it was suppose to be a novel. It’s 1100 pages.

It was written as a novel supposedly, but it is a codebook. And what’s in the book, is a step by step plan to take over the whole world by taking over the United States.

Now, the power of the Illuminati and I’ll give an explanation, the Illuminati did this following: First, most people have found the Illuminati in things that have crossed their path. People have found it in the occult and mistakenly they have said, “Ah ha, the Illuminati is the occult.” Then, they have found it In the Masons and they have said, “Ah ha, the Illuminati is the Masons. Then, they have found it in politics and they said, “Oh, it’s politics”. So they found it in the International banking system or they found it in Zionism so they list it as just being that.

Actually, it is all these things, and much more. They found it in the Mormon religion. That’s because the leaders of the Mormon religion are in high echelons in the Illuminati. They have found it in the John Birch Society, that’s because the man who leads the John Birch Society is both a high degree Mason and a Mormon. It is all these things and its power is finance. If you would take its finance away, which is impossible. I am getting ahead of myself. The book is called Atlas Shrugged. They did not want people to buy this book other than those told to buy it within the occult and within the Illuminati. They’re extremely mad because just this year alone (1977?) they have sold a million of them, mostly to Christians. And they don’t like that. In fact, they tried to stop printing it, but people don’t want to stop printing it they’re raking so much money.

The bad thing about it though, is since it is written as a novel, it has some passages I think might belong in Hustler or other places. Maybe out of 1100 pages, you might count five that are this way, you can tear them out and throw them away. They’re stuck in there on purpose to keep Christians from reading the book. So, if you get to a passage that is a little something you shouldn’t read, just turn to the next page, it’ll be over by then and you can go on with the story. Now if you don’t like to read, skip the first 200 pages. The first 200 pages are exactly the way most people in the world are, they’re very boring. No, actually they’re the conspiracy from people in all the walks of life talking about this incident happening and that incident happening and you know it’s very boring to the fact that let’s you know that it’s the conspiracy that’s planning the incidents.

It’s like reading the newspaper today, you don’t really know what’s happening behind it. But after the first 200 pages, 8 chapters, 9 chapters something like that, it starts showing you that everything that is happening, is conspired to happen. The common name for the Illuminati is The Conspiracy, or the Great Conspiracy. Now until we lost the school system to people within the Communist party and within the Illuminati and so on, you were taught in your history classes and some people can remember this, that history was taught that it happened because somebody conspired for it to happen. Then, we didn’t want in this nation anybody to get ideas that maybe our Government was a conspiracy so they decided to start teaching that it happened because it happened. World War II happened because some people got mad, World War I happened because some people got mad. The Depression happened because we bought too much too soon without enough money. They did not want anybody to get the idea that it all happened because somebody conspired for it to happen. I hope to accomplish one thing tonight more than anything, that I will change your attitude, that I will put new forms or patterns or whatever in your life that you will walk out of here and when something happens you’ll go. “Now, I wonder what they’re really up to.” Really.

When you study Atlas Shrugged, you will find out that you are reading the front pages of the paper today. The oil shortage that doesn’t exist. They state that they destroy their own oil wells, that they hide their own oil so nobody can have it. They state how they destroy the coal mines and shut the coal mines down, they shut the electricity down, they state how they cripple the country and no food is grown. It states how they pit and derail trains so that no trains go. It states how they sink and pirate thousands of ships every year.

We just recently heard down in Florida, how they’re asking people not to sail out in pleasure craft in the Bermuda Triangle area, not because they believe in the Bermuda Triangle, but because over 1,000 ships were pirated last year and everybody on board was killed and dumped in the ocean. Now, they don’t like to put that on the front page as you see that might cause some people to wonder about some things.

And this is all in this book that was written 12 years ago and in the book, they gain control of the world by bankrupting their own businesses. The Illuminati owns most, I would say, 99 9/10 of the stores that you walk into and shop, and the gas stations you go to and they are going to destroy them on purpose. They are in the process of buying up the last few years, all the stores they don’t own.

They bought up Grants and they bankrupted it. They just bought up Two Guys and you can watch for them to go out of business and they keep in business the ones that they’ve always owned and they’re going to bankrupt them before too long and cripple them and bankrupt them before too long and cripple them and destroy them.

The idea of taking over is to bankrupt the whole world where nothing is of any value and the currency does not exist anywhere and then come back and solve all the problems. The book Atlas Shrugged ends with the hero, John Galt, which is really Philip Rothschild, lifting his hand up in the air and drawing the symbol of his organization, never says Illuminati in the book, in the air and he says, “We shall follow this symbol back.” The symbol that he draws is the dollar sign. Now the $ sign is only used in America, by the way. Nowhere else to represent money. It’s almost 8,000 years old or probably older, goes back in time to the pyramids and it means to scourge or to punish and through punishment to purify and make right. That’s what it means. Funny that that’s what we symbolized our money.

Now, the Rothschilds lead the Illuminati and in every country they have a family with the head of that family being the head of the Illuminati. In the United States, we have the Rockefellers. David Rockefeller is both the head of the Council of Foreign Relations and the Trilateral Administration or Council which is the name of the Illuminati within the United States.

The main source of finance for the Illuminati and for the whole world, particularly in the United States is the Standard Oil Co. Now, I’m going to educate you about something tonight that the Illuminati hoped nobody would ever find out about. Of course, you can check out who owns Standard 0il, –that’s David Rockefeller.

Now, when we were in the Illuminati we had to learn the hieroglyphics of the Illuminati. We had to go and shop at the stores that the Illuminati marked themselves, marked their stores by. Of course, they own almost everything but their main businesses, they mark. Standard Oil is the conglomerate that owns almost everything. I’m going to tell you the things they own. You won’t believe what they own. It’s that astonishing. If I ask most people today besides Standard Oil what do you say is the number one conglomerate in the United States? Besides Standard Oil, Sears, General Motors, they own Ford, they own American Motors, they own Chrysler. Now, you’ve got these Federal Department Stores down here. Federal Department Stores is Sears, Penneys.

A man very close, very powerful in the Illuminati, doesn’t live too far from here, that owns all the Federal Department Stores. He lives in Columbus, his name is Lazarus. Now, Lazarus owns Federal Department Stores, Federal Department Stores owns Gold Circle, they own Kresges, which own Kmart. They own just about every department store In the United States. Globe, Ontario so on. They own Woolworth, which owns Willcos. But Standard owns Mobile and Mobile owns Montgomery Wards. You getting the message? Now, you can find out what Standard owns because they mark their signs with blue and red. Everything they own. They also, with their oil companies, mark their oil companies with occult symbols.

The main symbol is the sign of their god, the five-pointed star. Now, the strongest version that I have ever seen of it was a five pointed star radiating rainbow colors because they know that Lucifer is the god of the rainbow, as they put it. And if you’ll read Ezekiel 28 you’ll find out he does kind of radiate like a rainbow, he’s covered with different colored gills and so on. And this thing they’ll have Sunaco with the arrow through it because that’s the sign of casting spells, the arrow. They use 76 because May 1st, 1776 is the birthday of the Illuminati. They use the sign of what witches practice in, the magic circle. When they write Mobil, they write everything in blue but they leave the circle in red. Most people don’t even notice that. But there’s a difference. The winged horse in Marathon, Pegasus, is the messenger of the gods. It goes on and on. Holiday Inn is the star with the rainbow. You just go on and on. The age old path of what a witch must pass to become a powerful witch is the symbol of Denny’s. That’s owned by them.


THE ILLUMINATI PURPOSE AND PLAN FOR WORLD TAKE OVER

The Conspiracy for world takeover is as old as man himself. The Illuminati, in recent history, has twice tried to control the world — in Napoleon’s day and during World War I.

Only about 5,000 people in the entire world know the true purpose of the Illuminati and its conspiracy to rule the earth. Their plan was written down in code, as a fictional novel, in 1957.

In the mid-1950′s Philippe Rothschild ordered one of his mistresses, Ayn Rand, an established authoress and philosopher, to undertake the writing of this code to the witches of the world. This novel, Atlas Shrugged, was never intended to be a best seller, although it turned out to be one.

The main characters of Atlas Shrugged are code names for individuals or companies. The code is as follows:

John Galt — Philippe Rothschild
Dagny Taggart — Ayn Rand
Dagny’s brother — The combined Railroad System
Ellis Wyatt — David Rockefeller
Hank Rearden — U.S. Steel, Bethlehem Steel
Francisco D’Anconia — Combined Copper Mines
Galt, D’Anconia, and the Pirate –Rothschild Tribunal

The Tribunal in the book went around convincing certain major corporation presidents of their philosophy and plan, getting them to bankrupt their own businesses. The owners of these companies would then vanish and leave with either Galt or D’Anconia to a retreat area in the Colorado mountain regions. “Colorado” is the code name for the “Bermuda Triangle”, the place where the key figures of the Illuminati will be when the world crashes.

There are six areas of society in which the Illuminati intends to rule:

1) Religious 4) Educational
2) Political 5) Military
3) Economic 6) Social

On August 1, 1972 Philippe Rothschild sent some papers to a meeting of the Council of 13 by State courier to San Antonio, Texas. Besides the usual pay-off notes and progress reports, the papers included a projected takeover plan. It read as follows:

1) Remove the President and Vice-President
2) Republican Successor throws election to Democratic
3) Democratic President gets following laws enacted:
a) Federal gun law taking weapons away from citizens.
b) Removal of tax exemption from churches (This is House Bill 41)
c) Genocide Act — Making it a crime equal to murder to convert a person from one religion or faith to another.
d) Presidential Martial Law Act — This allows the President in time of “National Emergency” to suspend the Constitution, Congress, and the economic system. The President, in essence, becomes dictator of America.
e) Anti-Hoarding Act — This makes it a felony to have more than 30-days supply of food, fuel or medicine stored up at one time.
f) Anti-Business Acts Equalization of Opportunity Act Fair Share Law Directive #10-289

President Carter was able to get some of these laws enacted before leaving office.

Plans for America: Make every person totally dependent of the government by:

1) Creating a pseudo-fuel shortage and food shortage.
2) Confiscate all guns.
3) Calling for “Helter Skelter” (All trucks, trains, planes, and ships, except Military, will stop. An army of some 200,000 white prisoners and motorcycle gang members will create mass insanity in the streets by bombing church buildings, raping, murdering, and other fear tactics.)
4) Declaring Martial Law. Activate the National Guard to keep order, after the public cries out for any kind of help. There will be one policeman to every 5 people. Once this “National Emergency” is declared, it will never be cancelled.

All countries except America will be sent against Israel for oil. The use of neutron bombs allows destruction of people while leaving all buildings, natural resources, and croplands intact. When the war is over, the world is to be ruled from Jerusalem.

In addition:

90% of the population of the US supposedly is to die in the 1st half hour of WWIII.
3,000 missiles are to hit the US within the first hour.
Most industrial cities are to be destroyed.
Russian missiles placed in major US Lakes and Rivers (up to ten Nuclear Warheads/Missile); put there with American Government knowledge and approval.

To date, approximately 90% of the Conspiracy plan has been fulfilled on schedule.

Posted in THE ILLUMINATI IS UPON YOU! | Tagged: , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , | Leave a Comment »

TO ROMAN CATHOLICS WITH LOVE

Posted by ItsHellWithoutJESUS on March 20, 2010

Bowing to Mary is a Sin!

The children gather wood, and the fathers kindle the fire, and the women knead their dough, to make cakes to the queen of heaven, and to pour out drink offerings unto other gods, that they may provoke me to anger.
Jeremiah 7:18

Notice the Halo around Mary (especially her head).  The is an idolatrous practice of the Catholics which symbolizes deity (that she is equal with God).  The Babylonians practiced the same idolatrous worship to the Queen of Heaven.  Mary is NOT deity, she was a normal every-day woman.  Yes friend, Satan is definitely working in the Vatican and in Catholic organizations all across the world.  Though most Catholics will deny worshipping Mary, the evidence says something very different!  They bow down and literally pray in the name of “Mother Mary” to a graven statue of Mary.  This is sinful idolatry!  They are lying through their teeth.  God makes CLEAR in His Word that He will NOT share His glory with another (that includes Mary).

I am the LORD: that is my name: and my glory will I not give to another, neither my praise to graven images. Isaiah 42:8

How could anyone be so ignorant of scripture to actually bow down in prayer to a statue of Mary, yet at the same time deny that they are worshipping her? God clearly command us in the first of the ten commandments NOT to make unto ourselves ANY graven images.

Thou shalt not make unto thee any graven image, or any likeness of any thing that is in heaven above, or that is in the earth beneath, or that is in the water under the earth. Exodus 20:4

It says right there in black and white in Exodus 20:4 that we are NOT to make unto ourselves ANY likeness of anything that is in heaven!!!   Mary is in heaven.   We are NOT to make any likeness of her according to Exodus 20:4.  So what do you call a statue of mother Mary?  It surely is a likeness of her, a graven image!  Here’s another shocker…

Thou shalt not bow down thyself to them, nor serve them: for I the LORD thy God am a jealous God, visiting the iniquity of the fathers upon the children unto the third and fourth generation of them that hate me; Exodus 20:5

ABOVE: Roman Catholics sinfully BOWING in idolatry to a statue of Mary.

Ok, so then why does every Catholic BOW DOWN before a statue of Mary in their worship places?  I’ll tell you why…because they are practicing FALSE religion totally void of the truth of God.  You can argue whether or not you are worshipping Mary as your bowing down to her; but one thing is for certain, God has commanded us in Exodus 20:5 NOT TO BOW DOWN to her.

EVEN IF YOU ARE NOT WORSHIPING MARY,YOU ARE SINNING IF YOU BOW DOWN TO HER BECAUSE THE BIBLE STRICTLY FORBIDS IT IN EXODUS 20:5

As I write, millions of people all around the world are bowing down to Mary in violation of God’s Word.  Yes, Satanism is in the Vatican!

Hail Mary  =  Hail Satan!


Satanism in  the Catholic religion!

NOTICE THE UPSIDE DOWN CROSS, WHICH IS A SYMBOL OF SATANISM.

Howbeit in vain do they worship me, teaching for doctrines the commandments of men.Mark 7:7

For false Christs and false prophets shall rise, and shall shew signs and wonders, to seduce, if it were possible, even the elect. Mark 13:22

Hat tip to www.Jesus-is-savior.com for this post.

Posted in TO ROMAN CATHOLICS WITH LOVE; BOWING TO MARY IS SIN! | Tagged: , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , , | 1 Comment »

WHY… OH WHY…!!!!!!!

Posted by ItsHellWithoutJESUS on November 3, 2009

“Before I formed thee in the belly I knew thee; and before thou camest forth out of the womb I sanctified thee, and I ordained thee a prophet unto the nations.” -Jeremiah 1:5

Inside An Abortion Death Camp

The American Holocaust: See Inside an Abortion Death Camp

Few memories resonate throughout humanity more than the images of the decaying bodies of Nazi victims. However, these pictures were not taken in 1945 by an Army victorious over evil. No, these images were taken just a couple of years ago — in a scene that is repeated every week in every American city, in your city. How long will you sit idly by?

The following pictures were taken 1/25/98 and 2/1/98 at:

National Cyto-Path Laboratories
3780 Woodruff Ave., #K
Long Beach, CA 90808

This “lab” is a depot for Family Planning Associates, California’s largest abortion mill chain. Every container holds a baby who was murdered by abortion. The size of the container is proportional to the age of the child. The larger containers hold 2nd trimester babies. Each of these children deserved to live.

Body Parts



Baby Pictures

 

A pro-abortion woman asked a mother who was holding up an anti-abortion sign…”How can you allow children to see those horrible pictures?”  The mother rightly responded by asking…”How can you allow children to become those pictures?”

Children need to know the murderous truth about abortion…it is cold-blooded murder!!!

www.operationrescue.org

more photos from  http://www.blackgenocide.org/photos.html

“…I have set before you life and death, blessing and cursing’
therefore choose life, that both you and your descendants may live.”

–Deuteronomy 30:19

thanks to www.jesus-is-savior.com for all the links.


Posted in Uncategorized | Tagged: | Leave a Comment »

BlogCatalog

Posted by ItsHellWithoutJESUS on October 21, 2009

Christian Blogs - BlogCatalog Blog Directory

Posted in Uncategorized | Tagged: | Leave a Comment »

PURE EVIL, WICKED AND DEMONIC ACTIVITIES IN THE ROMAN CATHOLIC CONVENTS EXPOSED BY A FORMER NUN WHO MANAGED TO ESCAPE!

Posted by ItsHellWithoutJESUS on September 6, 2009

Sister_charlotte

“Sister Charlotte”  In the Dungeons of a Roman Catholic Convent.

For twenty-two years, “Sister Charlotte” (she never revealed her true name in public) was a member of a Roman Catholic convent of nuns. From a very young age, she thought that this would be the best way to redeem her family from the torments of “purgatory”. She graphically describes many of the terrible tortures and suffering she endured in the dungeons of her convent and how God mercifully rescued her from this life. Two years after publically revealing her experiences, she disappeared.

 

Nun’s Testimony

( 2 years after giving this testimony, sister Charlotte had disappeared )

I was reared in a devout Roman Catholic home and, although our home contained many religious items, we never had a Bible there. Consequently, I never heard of God’s wonderful plan of salvation by faith in the Lord Jesus. No one ever explained to me that I only had to invite Him into my heart and ask Him to save me from all my sins to be born again (Revelation 3:20). Instead, I only knew what I was taught in the catechisms and in the institution which we attended faithfully.
I had a deep love and devotion to the God I did not really know personally and I yearned to give my life to Him completely. According to the teaching I received, the way to do this was to become a nun and enter a convent. My parish priest pressed this idea on me as did the nuns who taught in my parochial school.
How well I remember the day two nuns from my school accompanied me home. The parish priest joined them there for a conference with my father and mother. In my family, children did not interrupt grown-ups but asked to speak. When given permission I told my father simply, “Dad, I want to go into the convent.” Both parents wept for joy at this because they had been thoroughly indoctrinated to believe that to give a child to the convent in this matter was a great service to God.
They were thrilled that one of their girls had decided to give her life to the convent in order to pray for lost humanity. It was all so exciting and religious, and none of us had any idea what was involved or implied in all this. Tragically, both my parents and I had been cleverly manipulated by carefully trained recruiters, representatives of the Roman Catholic system, whom we trusted. Not for one moment did we suspect the deception, lies and horror which lay behind the convent doors. We believed what we had been taught. Like sheep we were led to the slaughter, totally unaware of the fate planned for us.
Twelve months went by and the year 1910 came, when I was to leave home. My mother and I busied ourselves with preparations. The priest said that they had no place for me near home; therefore, my parents had to take me a thousand miles cross-country to enter me in the convent boarding school. I was then three months from my thirteenth birthday, an immature child, being snatched from my parents at a critical time in my growing up.
Never had I been away from my parents, not even overnight. When they left after staying with me for three days, I was smitten with an aching loneliness and homesickness. In all of the planning for the move, I didn’t really realize that I was going to be separated from my parents, never to see them again. I was miserable and unhappy.
Catholic priests select children at the confessional box and begin to plant the seed to steer them into the convents and the priesthood. Even when I was seven, I would go immediately to the statue of the Virgin Mary when I entered the church to pray, believing she would help me to make a good confession. My childish heart was very honest and the priest always heavily emphasized the absolute necessity of making a good confession. We could keep back nothing if we expected absolution from our sins.
I entered what was classified as a sister of the open order, until I took my white veil at the age of sixteen and one half. Everything was beautiful, and I had no fears or doubts in my mind. The things I was taught were in line with what I had been told earlier before entering the convent. There was no reason to suspect that there were vast areas which were hidden and had been deliberately misrepresented.
Shortly after arrival at the convent, I resumed my schooling. I had just graduated from eighth grade and they had promised me a high school education plus college. Actually, I got little beyond the high school level, other than some nurse’s training. The schooling I received was under duress and terrible difficulties. Following this, I was pushed into the crucial training required of all noviates entering the convent.
Six months before I was fourteen, the Mother Superior began to urge me to take the white veil. She made it all sound so glamorous, romantic and fascinating. I would take the white veil, dressed in a beautiful white wedding dress. An actual marriage ceremony would follow and I would receive a ring and become the spouse or bride of Christ. It was not difficult for an impressionable teenager to be swayed into eager agreement.
Mother Superior then wrote my father to tell him how much money he must send to pay for my wedding dress. Because he was wealthy, it was a sizeable amount. I learned later that it was customary to demand three to five times the cost of the dress. The nuns bought the material and made the dress so that the actual cost was small and the rest of the money could be pocketed. No opportunity was overlooked to milk funds from the faithful.
I was always devout and often walked the fourteen stations of the cross, but after deciding to take the white veil, my fervency increased. In my anxiety to be holy enough to be worthy to become the bride of Christ, I began to crawl the stations of the cross each Friday. Surely this would draw me closer to God and prepare me to take the step I planned.
My heart was bursting with idealistic devotion and love toward the false goals I had been taught would please and honor God in my life. Hundreds of innocent girls go down this trail into the maw of the convents annually, starry eyed and desiring to give their hearts, minds and souls in unselfish service, praying for lost humanity.
With the wedding ceremony behind them, nuns are treated as married woman. We were taught that our family would be saved if we continued to live in the convent, serving the Roman Catholic system. A child’s concern for family members, especially erring ones, is often manipulated by the father confessor to convince him/her to go into religious vocations. As a child, I looked on my father confessor as God and others with whom I have talked did the same thing. This gives his insinuations and suggestions tremendous power and influence. I thought of him as being holy and infallible, totally incapable of lying.
After I took the white veil, everything continued, rosy, religious and beautiful. Everyone was good to me and I lived in the open order convent I saw nothing to lead me to believe it would not continue this way. No girl is subject to the priest until she is twenty-one, but I knew nothing of this for all was carefully hidden and covered. There was no clue to cause one to guess what lay behind the black veil and those double locked doors of the closed, cloistered convent.
Up until I took the black veil I was allowed to receive one letter per month from my family and was permitted to write one to them from the convent. When I wrote I knew that much of it would be censored and marked out by the Mother Superior who read all incoming and outgoing mail. My letters from home were always so marked out until virtually nothing was left to read. I used to weep over all those inked out sections, wondering and worrying over what my mother had been trying to tell me, but there was no way I could ever know.
No one imprisoned behind those walls ever comes out to tell the awful story. Priests will glibly pooh, pooh the idea that there is anything amiss. They will tell you that in this country and elsewhere sisters can walk out of the convents anytime they please. That is a lie! I was shut up for twenty-two years and tried everything to escape. I even carried tablespoons to the dungeons and desperately dug in their dirt floors attempting to find a way out. Why a tablespoon? All the other tools were locked up or carefully supervised. They were used to dig the tunnels and underground chambers. Convents are constructed like prisons to thwart the escape of the nuns.
As I approached eighteen, Mother Superior began to work on me again. Remember that these ruthless women are carefully selected and trained for their jobs. I was making my plans to come out of the convent after taking the white veil to become a nursing sister in the Roman Catholic system. However, she had noted my endurance and devotion so she called me into her office for a conference.

“Charlotte,” she said, “I have been watching you. You have a strong body and the devotion to make a good nun, a cloister nun. I believe you are the type who would be willing to give up home and everything you love in the world to hide yourself away behind convent doors. I believe that you would be willing to sacrifice and live in crucial poverty in order to be able to pray for lost humanity. You would have to be willing to suffer in order to achieve this.”
We were constantly taught that living loved ones as well as those already in purgatory would be delivered sooner by the nun’s suffering here. Mother Superior had observed that I was willing to suffer without murmuring or complaining, therefore she broached the idea of my taking the black veil. Of course I had no idea what the cloistered nuns did or how they lived so she began to tell me about the cloisters.
Mother Superior told me that in the cloisters, I would have to shed my own blood as Jesus did on Calvary. I would have to be willing to endure heavy penances and live in crucial poverty the rest of my life. Already I was living in poverty, but if this would make me holier, draw me closer to God and a better nun, I thought it would be worth it to accept this crucial poverty, whatever it was.
Two months before my twenty-first birthday I was summoned into Mother Superior’s office and papers were shown to me in which I would sign away any and all inheritance I would ever have to the Roman Catholic system. Priests work hard to entice girls from wealthy families into the convents, for the system is enriched by their inheritances. I told her I needed some more time to think about it.
For two years I seriously considered it. If I took my perpetual vows it would mean going behind closed doors in a cloistered convent, and there all my life would belong to God. It would be one of study, devotion, meditation and prayer; however I would be able to win many more souls to God because I would have more time to pray. I believed and accepted all that she said and one day informed her that I had decided to go into cloister.
To begin, I would be required to lie for nine hours in a casket, dying to the world. Never again would I see my people or return home, for I would be bound by the cloister’s convent. This was a tremendous price for a twenty-one year old girl to pay, to give up all that she loved and held dear in the world, but this had to be done in order to win souls to God. I was dressed in a dark red velvet funeral shroud for this wedding ceremony which was performed by the bishop. Both the dress and coffin had been made by the nuns in the cloister.
I knew that when I came out of that coffin, I wild never see or hear from my family again; never leave the convent; and would be buried there when I died. I walked to the casket, climbed in and stretched out. Two little nuns came and covered the entire casket with heavy black draperies which reeked of incense. I thought I would surely suffocate. On one side of the room were the usual statues and on the other, Mother Superior, the nuns and priests were seated. For the nine long hours I lay in the coffin they kept vigil and chanted constantly.
The one purpose of being in the coffin was to learn to hate my mother, father and all other earthly ties–all for the love of God. I must forget them, hate them, crowd them completely from my heart, mind and life. All this was to enable me to be a better wife to God.
Lying there, I reminisced about my childhood at home. I remembered the dresses my mother had made for me, but I would never again wear one. I thought of delicious meals, warm beds, and all of the rich and full family life I had had. Of course I wept bitterly and sobbed as my heart ached for those loved ones I would never see again. It was an agonizing experience and I think I loved them more than I ever had before.
I wrung out and spilled every tear in my body. It was so hard to give up everything. In my agony and anguish I shuddered and groaned until there simply were on more tears left. After several hours of this, I regained my composure somewhat. I resolved, “Charlotte, you are going to make the best Carmelite nun who ever was, because both inside and outside the convent you always do your very best.”
When the ordeal finally ended, a bell was tapped and two little nuns immediately lifted the black drapes from the casket. When I stepped from it I was ushered into a room where I was to take my perpetual vows of poverty, chastity, and obedience. Mother Superior opened a place in my ear lobe and drew out blood, for these must be signed in my own blood.
I vowed to be willing to live in crucial poverty for the balance of my life (although I did not know then what this meant). Next the vow of chastity bound me never to legally marry because I was now the wife of God (by virtue of the wedding ceremony performed earlier). Then the one of obedience, the hardest of all. I promised absolute, unquestioning obedience to the Pope, all the prelates of the Roman Catholic hierarchy, to the Mother Superior of the convent and to the rules of that convent. I was totally ignorant of how sweeping these commitments were and had no realistic concept of the things to which I was pledging myself.
After I had signed all the vows, Mother Superior whacked off all my long hair with the scissors. This was to be sold to the highest bidder, for human hair brings a good market price and they commercialize on everything. (This explains the unbelievable wealth of the church.) After cutting the hair, she took clippers and shaved me bald. For the rest of my life, every two months the clippers would go on my head to shave me bald. The heavy nun’s headgear would be very cumbersome if she kept her hair. Besides, there was neither time nor facilities to wash hair in the convents.

The next step in dehumanizing and disorientation was to take away my entire family name and replace it with the name of a patron saint. As she did this Mother Superior emphasized that, although I was not holy enough to stand in the presence of God, I could always pray to my patron saint and she would intercede to get my prayers through to God. I accepted all this as truth because I did not know any better. Following this if someone had inquired about me at the convent by my given name, they would have been informed that no such person was inside the convent.
Next, Mother read this statement: “As Jesus suffered here on earth, so must we suffer as nuns. We must live our lives as martyrs in the convent. In the Garden of Olives, Jesus shed 62,700 tears for you and me; He shed 98,600 drops of blood for you and me; He received 667 strokes on His body; on His cheek, 110 strokes; on His neck, 107 strokes; on His back, 180 strokes; on His breast, 77 strokes; on His head, 108 strokes; on His side, 32 strokes. They spit in His face 32 times; pulled His beard many times and threw Him to the ground 38 times. By the crown of thorns He received 100 wounds; pleaded for our salvation 900 times, and carried the cross to Calvary 320 steps.” I believed all these religious lies, which years later I learned were the invention of a corrupt Pope.
The last statement she read said, “You will receive a plenary indulgence for your sins and entirely escape the pains of purgatory. Reward them as martyrs who spill their blood for the faith.” She said that if we lived in the convent without breaking a rule, one day when we died we would not go to purgatory but go directly to be with Jesus. What she did not tell us was that it is humanly impossible to live in a convent without breaking rules.
After the vows were signed all of my personal identification was destroyed. Sixty days before, Mother Superior had laid a sheet of paper in front of me. She said I was not to read it, just to sign at the bottom. I didn’t realize then how completely I was signing away any and all inheritances which might ever come to me. They were all assigned to the convent. When my brother was ordained as Roman Catholic priest he also signed everything over to the hierarchy. There is not a lawyer in the land who can break this confiscation assignment, for I have checked it out.
When I took my perpetual vows and signed away my life and possessions I had sold my soul for a mythical mess of pottage. Not only are the nuns systematically destroyed in body but hundreds have their minds shattered and die premature deaths under the cruel and heartless convent bondage. To make it even worse the poor creatures sacrifice all of this and then go out to meet God, Christless and lost for all eternity. How we need to pray for those closed off from the world and the gospel all over the world in these terrible prisons called cloistered convents.
Mother Superior next locked her arm in mine and we walked down the center of another room. A Roman Catholic priest, dressed in holy habit, came to meet us from the other end of the room. When we met, Mother dropped my arm and the priest stepped around and attempted to lock his arm in mine.

I recoiled in horror at this intimacy, for never, in all my years in the convent had a priest ever approached me like this. Always they had been kind, considerate and very polite. Something about the familiarity of his touch and the lecherous look in his eyes repulsed and insulted me although I did not understand exactly why. I jerked loose, blushing with embarrassment and exploded, “Shame on you.” I felt violated and threatened. He turned red in the face and became very angry at my rejection of his overtures to lead me to the “bridal chamber.”
Evidently Mother Superior overheard the exchange for she quickly returned, called by my church name, and informed me that after I had been in the convent a while I would not feel this way. She said all nuns felt the same in the beginning and sternly reminded me of the wedding ceremony I had gone through and of my obligation. She said a priest’s body was sanctified and what they did was not sin. I was terrified, and sobbed hysterically, my mind reeling and I refused to accept what she said.
She became very angry and stiffly said, “As the Holy Ghost placed the seed in the Virgin Mary’s womb and Jesus Christ was born, even so the priest represents the Holy Ghost, therefore it is not a sin for nuns to bear his children.”
I could scarcely believe my ears. I had been deceived and it was too late to turn back!
This ghastly statement made me frantic. When she finally gave me permission to speak I burst out, “Mother Superior, why didn’t you tell me this before I took my perpetual vows?” She pursed her lips tightly but said nothing.
Needless to say, I was in a state of numbed shock and horror at what she was saying. It was like an unbelievable nightmare. All my bridges were burned and there was no way back. I could not get out of the convent. Hysterically, I sobbed and told the priest that I wanted to go home. I begged him to call my father to come and get me. I did not want to go any further with this. All my illusions had been shattered and I could not bear the picture which was looming up before me.
I related how three months before I left home to come to the convent (at age 13) my mother told me she would rather dig my grave with her own hands and bury me than to hear that I had lost my virtue. Because I knew nothing of sex, she had then explained it to me. When I related this to Mother and the priest, they stood and laughed at me like fools. They found my naivety and innocent gullibility hilarious.
When this sort of betrayal happens I can tell you that you stand absolutely alone. Communication with your loved ones and friends has already been cut off. Sealed off, you have no one to understand or help and soon the numbing realization of the utter hopelessness of your situation sets in. It is like waking up and finding that an unbearable nightmare is not a dream but a dreadful reality.
I now belonged to Rome and the Pope and Mother Superior had turned me over to a lustful priest who leeringly invited me to join him in the “bridal chamber.” I did not enter the convent to become a bad, but a holy woman, by giving my heart and life to God. I firmly rejected his sexual advances and was strong enough to put up quite a fight had he insisted. I was prepared to struggle to my last drop of blood to preserve my virtue.
When I signed those vows with my own blood I did not realize the enormity of what I had done. I had surrendered away every human right, in order to become a mechanical, robot-like person. From henceforth I would not be able to sit, stand, or speak without permission. I could not lie down, eat or do anything else unless authorized by my superiors. I was allowed to see, hear and feel only what they permitted and ordered. I had become a helpless puppet of the Roman Catholic hierarchy.
The next step was my initiation and for this I had to go to my convent. They had my passport all signed and tickets ready to ship me out to a foreign country. Two priests met us at the boat and we were taken, heavily veiled, out into the mountains to be put in a cloistered convent, one story underground. (Of course when the priest sat in our living room at home he never told my dad I would live for years one or two stories underground in a foreign land.)
I faced initiation penances, so after three or four days at the new convent, about 9:00 o’clock one morning the Mother Superior told me to come with her. She told me were going to do penance and I would begin my initiation as a Carmelite nun. I remember when she walked me down that dark tunnel and into the room one story below ground level. I had always lived on the first floor, but after taking the black veil I was to live one or two stories underground. When we entered the cold, dark room it was hard to see, for all the light came from seven flickering candles. I was frightened and apprehensive, not knowing what to expect, nor what she planned to do to me.
As we came closer, I could make out a nun lying on a board six feet long (a cooling board). I realized with a shock that she was dead. Although I was not afraid of the dead nun my heart ached for her. When I signed those perpetual vows I had unknowingly signed away every human right. I was not allowed to see, to hear, to complain, to feel or to murmur. I had ears but was to be deaf; eyes but must not see; feelings but soon would be brainwashed so they would be blotted out. As I stood looking at the body, many thoughts and questions raced through my mind but I was bound to silence. How and why did she die?
Mother Superior ordered me to stand vigil over the dead body for one hour, then she went away. I was required to walk over to the frail body frequently, sprinkle it with ashes and holy water and say repeatedly, “Peace be unto you.” In an hour a bell was to be tapped somewhere and out of the mysterious darkness behind me another nun came to relieve me. Because she was barefooted on the dirt floor there was no sound. We were forbidden to speak, therefore my relief reached out and touched me on the shoulder. I leaped with fright and began screaming hysterically at the top of my voice.
This loss of control meant I must be punished by being tossed into a dark and dirty dungeon. There I lay for three days and nights, without food or water, just because I had shrieked in fear–a terrible crime. I assure you I never screamed again. You lean fast in a convent to observe the rules.
On the fourth day, again Mother Superior told me we were going to do penance and we went deep under the convent into another dark chamber. We started through the tunnels (there were 35 miles of them under this convent) and, other than candles, there was no light in the rooms we passed. She marched me into a large penance chamber, arm in arm, on our toes, with downcast eyes.
In the flickering candlelight I saw the usual statues of Jesus and Mary in the room. There was also a large eight foot cross, made of heavy, rough timber, lying on its side. She took me near the foot of it and proceeded to strip my clothes off down to the waist. Then she bent my body down over the cross, pulled my hands down below it and fastened them securely to my knees, under the cross.
This was where I was to begin to spill my blood as Jesus had shed His on Calvary. I had been told earlier that I would shed my blood for lost humanity, but they never gave me any idea of how this would be accomplished. Now I was to learn one of the many ways this was to take place. Two other nuns were given flagellation whips fashioned from six leather straps fastened to a wooden handle. In the ends of the thongs were embedded a number of sharp, jagged bits of metal. They began to flog me methodically with these cruel instruments until my bare flesh was thoroughly lacerated from hundreds of cuts and my blood ran all over the floor.
Twist and writhe as I might, there was no escape from the relentless, fiery bite of the ruthless whips. Let me tell you they did a thorough job on me and I was aflame with awful pain and agony. Sobbing and screaming did not stop them, nor were they affected by pitiful cries for mercy. They were well trained and utterly heartless and I was swallowed up in a sea of pain and awful despairing. It was unbelievable, yet it was happening. I thought the beating would never stop. I was helpless and totally without defences.

Mother Superior released my hands from my knees after I had slumped into a moaning, suffering heap and she was satisfied I had spilled enough blood for this time. She drug me to my feet but did not bathe me nor treat the mass of bleeding wounds on my body. She simply pulled my clothes back on and I was forced to work all day, until 9:15 that night. Needless to say, the day was one of agony, but no one seemed to notice. With a sickening horror I realized the meaning of the teachings I had received that God is made happy by this penance and other sufferings. This was supposed to make us holier.
That day was a living hell for me, but this was only the beginning of hundreds of such days. When night came I stood in front of my cell bed where we were required to undress, with our backs to each other. I could not remove my clothing. The garments stained with blood had dried and were stuck tightly to my gaping wounds. It was several nights before I could take them off, and then it was an agonizing and bloody procedure. At mealtime I was not hungry because of the terrible misery I was suffering.
Ordinarily I would have undressed and have slipped into a muslin nightgown, and then enter my cell to be locked in for the night. For a bed we had only a slab or wood–no mattress, springs, pillow or blanket. Before we were permitted to lie down we were required to kneel on a penance prayer board. This contained hundreds of upright, sharp wires to pierce the knees. The upper section where we were to prostrate ourselves upon our arms was also a mass of sharp wires.
Another day the Mother Superior took me through a long, dark tunnel hall for my next initiation penance. As we entered the chamber, again there were seven candles. As she marched me up under the candles I spotted some ropes dangling from the ceiling with some sort of metal clamps on the ends. She made me stand very close, facing the wall and extending my arms in the air. Quickly she snapped the metal bands securely around each thumb. She then stepped to one side and began to turn a crank which took the ropes straight up until I was slowly hoisted from the floor. When I was suspended on the tips of my bare toes she fastened the handle, walked out without a word and slammed and locked the door. The weight of my body on those thumbs and my toes was excruciating.
I was already whimpering and moaning in misery. I had no idea how long I would stay there. Always in these things, you hung there wondering if you might die before they came back to free you. In the white heat of the waves of unbearable pain which wrack the body and mind, death would be a blessed way out.
As hours stretched interminably into days and nights there was no way to calculate how long you had been there. There was no sun; no sounds other than your own fevered sobbings and screams. It was like being buried alive without food or water. Torment and delirium causes you to loose track of reality and nothing seems real except the ever present torture and pain.

This was another part of their brainwashing technique. I could do nothing but to stand there, screaming and crying. No one would hear or help me or even care. Three, four, six and finally ten agonizing hours crept by and every bone, muscle and nerve in my tortured body was screaming for relief. The maddening, unending pain is indescribable and I also grew hungry and thirsty. When my hands and arms began to swell tightly I believed I was going to die.
I had desperately prayed to all the statues in the room. Eventually I realized the Virgin Mary was not hearing a word I sobbed. Hysterically I shouted and pleaded for help from my patron saint; from St. Jude, St. Bartholomew, and every other idol or saint I could ever remember hearing about. I was surrounded by an unearthly silence, broken only by my own fevered screams and groans and the sputtering candles.
There I hung, wracked with pain and saturated in my own human filth, for there was no break in the torture regime for toilet facilities. Just as I felt I was going completely insane, Mother Superior walked in. Directly on the wall in front of me was an adjustable shelf which she raised to the level of my face. On it she placed a pan of water and a pan containing one small potato.
I was starving for water and food but how was I to get it? Painfully I scooted on my toes, tilting first one arm, then the other, straining to reach the pans. When I managed to reach them, I felt the tissues in my lungs tearing with terrible pain. As a matter of fact, many nuns contract tuberculosis after going through this torture. However, only by enduring such pain and strain could I manage to get water or food. I bumped and spilled most of it.
Nine days later Mother Superior came and released first one thumb and then the other and I collapsed in a faint to the floor. My limbs were swollen and shrieking with pain. My eyes felt as if they were being pushed out of my head and my arms were swollen to three times normal size. No part of my anatomy was free from the throbbing pain and soreness.
Of course I could not move. Two nuns picked me up by the shoulders and feet and took me, moaning incoherently, into the infirmary and laid me on a slab of wood. They cut off all my clothes for I was saturated with my own urine and bowel movements. This was another part of the carefully planned brutalization and dehumanization program, designed to produce mindless robots. Following this episode I could not even walk for two and a half months and would have been happy to die.
One day I was called out and again marched down those dread tunnels, not knowing what misery and pain I faced. She marched me into a room with a straight chair with a high back. Pushing me down into the chair, she then
removed my headdress and shoved my head forward in my lap and placed my hands on my knees. Quickly she fastened my head and wrists in stocks so I could not move. This done she positioned a faucet directly over my bare head and adjusted it so that it began on my head, a drop at a time.
I cringed in anticipation for I had witnessed others who had been subjected to this for ten long hours. After a short time the drops hitting in the same spot will break the strongest person. Often I and others would writhe and twist against the binding of the stocks, desperately trying to escape that pounding drop of water, even foaming at the mouth. Screaming and crying is never absent from these horror holes, deep under the ground, where no one with an ounce of humanity or compassion will ever hear. Pleas for mercy only bring longer and worse penances.
Many a nun has gone stark raving mad after being repeatedly subjected to this penance. Do not worry, the convent takes care of this too. The world outside will never know the truth. There are underground dungeons for those who have nervous or mental breakdowns. There will be reports and records of the nun and how she died, all lies.
You must realize that this entire religious structure is based on lies and deception and it is small wonder that at all costs, even human life, the hypocritical cloak of righteousness of the Roman Catholic system must be maintained. They will stop at nothing to protect it. Slander, lies, frame-ups, changing and destroying documents, injury and even murder are standard and acceptable procedure. The average person with a conscience and some sort of moral code will struggle to grasp the enormity and inhuman demonic intelligence which drives this religious monster.
Once I was taken to one of the filthy dungeons with dirt floors. I then had my ankles fastened securely to leather straps in the rings at the top of rods mounted in cement. I was standing with my feet in those rings until my strength failed or I fainted. When that happened I just crumpled over with my chest touching my ankles. After getting to a certain stage of pain and exhaustion there is nothing you can do. I must then stay in this cramped position for two or three days, depending on the whims of my tormentors. No one will come and there was no food, water, or toilet facilities. Bugs crawled over my body. It is no wonder there is such a cry against such horrors being uncovered and revealed.
The loneliness in the convent is inhuman and cruel, for there are no friends there. Everyone is set up to spy on everyone else and the slightest infraction of rules brings instant and harsh punishment. There were on friendships among the nuns. Suspicion and separation was the order of the day for convent living. We were taught to trust no one and depend upon no one, by a methodical and systematic isolation. The victims could never be allowed to unite to do something about conditions.
Communists followed a similar program in Korean prisoner-of-war camps to prevent any closeness or co- operation between the inmates. Each nun is taught to be a policeman to watch and inform on all others. Betrayal of others causes the informer to be in good standing with Mother Superior. He approval is desired so strongly that often the sisters make up and exaggerate things in order to gain this kind of favor. Absolute obedience in everything is demanded in the convent and you are wise to learn to obey quickly and without question.
Each time I came in my cell I was required to kneel there, praying for lost humanity, while I suffered and shed more of my blood. Only after this could I lie down on the slab which served as a bed. Promptly at seven minutes before midnight a bell was always tapped and cells unlocked so we all could gather in the inner chapel to pray another hour for lost humanity. At seven minutes till one o’clock we returned to our cells to be locked up again until 4:30 a.m. At this time a bell was tapped and we had exactly five minutes to get dressed and report for duty, barefooted. This is a daily routine. To be late in dressing brought severe punishments.
Each night at 8:00 p.m. we were required to go down a long, dark hall to do a penance in the meditation room. Located there was a tiny room about four foot square, which contained a human skull and candle on a small table. We were to slip to our knees, gaze into the skull and meditate for one hour on death. When this hour was over, a bell was tapped and we returned to our cells where we dropped all our clothes. We then took three interlaced chains with sharp edges (which hung in our cells) and began to lay stripes on our own bodies in imitation of the stripes of Christ on earth.
Sometimes, because of lack of food and strength it was difficult to lay on many stripes. If Mother Superior suspected this, she would order you to strip and have two other nuns to whip you viciously. Following this you would lose all desire for your coffee, bread, or anything else for a few days, because of being in such misery.
This was cloistered convent life, where a merciless system of brainwashing was employed, just as Russia does in the concentration camps. It is exactly the same brutal barbarism, but Rome rides under the banner of religion while communist Russia is openly atheistic.
In the refractory where our meals were served, were two long wooden tables and each nun was assigned a certain place to sit. No one ever sits in another’s place. For breakfast we were given only a big tin cup of strong black coffee with a piece of black bread which weighed exactly four ounces. Although we worked very hard all day there was no lunch, and about 5:00 p.m. we would gather again in the refractory, if we could walk under our own power.
For supper fresh vegetables were cooked together, making a tasteless, watery soup, without seasonings of any kind. This was served in a pie tin with two ounces of black bread and a tin cup of strong black coffee. Two or three times per week we were given one-half glass of skim milk.
This was our monotonous diet, 365 days per year. The only exception was Christmas day when we were each given one tablespoon of molasses. My, what a delight that was, and we ate it very slowly, savoring each drop. All year long we looked forward to this treat.
With the limited food rations, three hundred sixty-five days per year, we never went to bed without gnawing hunger pains. For years I would roll and toss at night, unable to sleep, and wondering how much longer I could endure this continued torment. I assure you that it is sheer misery to live on the brink of controlled starvation constantly. Of course starving persons are weaker and can be more easily coerced and forced into every form of degrading obedience and subservience. This was executed with fiendish delight and a definite purpose to crush the human spirit.
With such a horribly restricted diet, torture, bloodshed and long, hard hours, it is little wonder that bodies fail and become sickly and many nuns die young in the cloistered convents. Remember there are cloistered convents in the United States.
In preparing vegetables, potatoes were boiled with skins on and peeled after cooking. Once while on kitchen duty, I was throwing a pile of these potato peelings in the garbage. I was so hungry I quickly snatched two handfuls from the can and hid them in my clothing. I told no one, for in the convent everyone is watching each other and there are informers everywhere who betray others. That night, in my cell, greedily I gobbled down the potato skins because I was so starved.
The next morning at 9:00 sharp Mother Superior announced with a smirk that I was to do penance and I knew this was not a regular penance day. With sinking heart I went with her to one of the torture chambers. It was a huge room with the usual seven candles. When she tapped a bell, two little nuns appeared, quickly binding my hands and feet together. Mother then ordered one to pinch my nostrils tightly so that I was forced to open my mouth to breathe. She then dumped a heaping tablespoon of hot cayenne pepper in my mouth and I had to choke it down in order to breathe. For two days after this I was plagued with itching, burning hives all over my body. This, for eating a bit of garbage!
Another time I saw a piece of bread lying on a table, and watched it for several days. Finally I took the bread, ate it in my cell, and the next morning Mother Superior again said we were going to do penance. Somehow she found out about the scrap of bread. This time I was taken to a room with a square table and was made to stand at the edge with my hand and wrist strapped on a board.
It was very dark and my eyes adjusted slowly in the dim light. She moved over to one side to manipulate some sort of control and suddenly another heavy board smashed down on the hand and wrist. The blinding pain caused me to slump to the floor, but I could not get loose and was dangling by the helpless, injured hand. Stealing even a mouthful of stale bread was treated as a heinous crime and drew swift and cruel retribution.
As the years dragged by I leaned to use a hammer, saw, shovel and anything else a man normally does. We worked very hard, performing heavy manual labor, digging out underground rooms and tunnels, building walls, plastering, etc. Often we were two, three or four miles back in the tunnels. Sometimes we wondered if we even had voices because of the strict rule of silence, and would speak in whispers to each other. The very next morning Mother Superior would call the offenders out and say, “You are going to do penance.” We wondered how she could have heard us. One day we learned that all thirty-five miles of tunnel under the convent were wired so she could hear every whisper.
Working back in the tunnels we listened for the tap of the bell which signalled us to come in for meals. Sometimes, due to fatigue or distance we would arrive late. Because each was in her own place, it was obvious who was tardy. When this happened, we had to ask a nun to hand us our tin cup, pan and tablespoon. We then had to craw behind each nun, begging for one tablespoon of her food. After crawling to each one, the offenders sat on the floor to eat. This is supposed to humble them by breaking their wicked pride, and also to promote promptness.
Our day in the convent began at 4:30 in the morning when Mother Superior tapped a bell. This signal meant we had exactly five minutes to get dressed. In the beginning I was late a half a minute, but the punishment was so severe for this minor infraction of rules that I never was late again. Raw terror and cruel punishment bring absolute and unquestioning obedience in the convent to every rule and order, no matter how unreasonable or trivial. Lies and deceit covering and concealing such infractions to avoid the dire consequences become a way of life for the nuns.
When we finished dressing, we would march on tiptoes, with downcast eyes, to report to the Mother Superior. There she assigned us our daily chores. These could be scrubbing, washing clothes, ironing, cooking, or other heavy and hard labor assignments.
Washing was done in twelve old-fashioned washtubs with rubboards. We ironed with cast iron flatirons, heated on a stove. Not only did we do the laundry and ironing for our convent but the local priests were free to load us with all of their linens and clothing, which they did. After all, the service, performed by slave labor, was free to them.

Down in the laundry room there were rough cement floors and the heavy washing in twelve tubs caused a lot of soapy water to be sloshed on the floor. We walked around in our bare feet because shoes and stockings were a luxury we were denied in the convent. Suddenly Mother Superior would glide up, terrifying everyone because there is no way to know why she had come. When she made such an appearance, someone invariably had to suffer. Because things were done so quietly in a convent, we learned to sense her presence before she arrived.
One of her favorite tricks in the laundry room was to order one or more nuns to prostrate themselves on the cold, wet, soapy, floor. This done, with a cruel sneer she would order that the victim lick long crosses on the rough cement with her tongue. She watched intently to see if there was the slightest flicker of anger, distaste or hesitation on the face of the one forced to lick the crosses. If she did, she would assign ten to twenty-five more crosses to be done. Believe me, the tongue was always raw and bleeding before she was satisfied, and the victim would be unable to eat or drink for a day or two because of the mangled tongue. Many times Mother would return the very next day, seize the same victim and force her to repeat the crosses again.
Hard manual labor was advocated as a good physical discipline. In our emaciated condition because of the constant torture and systematic starvation we were driven and kept in a state of chronic fatigue and exhaustion. We were property of the Pope and the system, to be worked to death for their pleasure. All the crying and pleading we did would never be heard by anyone who would lift a finger to help us.
Another favored punishment was to compel us to crawl up and down an aisle ten times, upright on the knees. After I made it five or six times my knees were killing me. Drained of strength, I could not continue but collapsed in a faint. Mother Superior shook me roughly, pulled me back on my knees and commanded me to resume crawling. Desperately I tried to finish my assignment. The next day she might order me to do the same thing again and this would rip off the scabs from my injured knees, further bruising and tearing them.
This is typical of torments and tortures to which the little nuns are subjected day after day, year in and year out. There is no mercy, only heartless cruelty and this multiplies and reinforces the dreary hopelessness and despair which grips the entire cloister.
Continually we were told that doing such “penance” was pleasing and brought happiness to God, Who looked down on our misery and suffering, and smiled His approval. Although this was hard to believe, heathens who know no better simply believe what they are taught. Never having read the Bible, we had no way to learn the truth.
Most of us were reared in Roman Catholic teachings and traditions and snatched away from family and friends at an early age. It took a while for the awful truth and scope of the deception to soak in. When it did, it produced
atheists who hated anything associated with God or the saints. Vicious hatred and violence then floods the disillusioned and embittered heart.
There was no bath tub in this convent, only a metal, horse watering tank and we were only permitted to have a bath when Mother Superior ordered it. Even when bathing I wore my scapular, although I shed all my other clothes. We were taught that the first Saturday after the death of a Roman Catholic the Virgin Mary descends into purgatory. Whoever she finds there wearing a scapular, she will release. I was bound by these and other religious fables and lies, but did not know any better. I was taught to accept as truth everything Mother Superior said.
In the convent there was a huge painting in a certain room which depicted all horrors of tormented men, women, children and even babies in the awful flames of purgatory. The agony and misery was so graphically portrayed that it actually seemed real. We were marched in on occasion to meditate on the tortures of the damned for a long period. After this session Mother Superior would address the nuns and say that they had better go and work another penance on their bodies, because those poor people were begging to escape the awful burning flames there.
There were many days when I would deliberately burn my own body and spill some more of my blood because of my conviction that as I suffered it would help these miserable people to be delivered. I often say that if the mass and purgatory were taken from the Roman Catholic system it would eliminate 90 of her income and she would starve to death. This evil Babylonian system drains both the living and the dead for funds to finance her cancerous spread throughout the world.
The nuns cells were bare except for a statue of the Virgin Mary holding an infant Jesus. As I dropped on the sharp wires which lined the prayer board and prostrated my arms on still other penetrating wire, I would pray earnestly for lost humanity. I had been taught that my suffering and bloodshed would help to save them. I believed that my poor old grandmother would be released sooner from purgatory (our family priest had assured us she went there at death) because of my sufferings. Often, in spite of the misery, I was spurred on to continue in this painful posture longer, fervently hoping to speed her release.
We were taught that for every drop of blood we shed in the convent we would have 100 days less to spend in purgatory. When nuns worked in the kitchen or other places underground they often wounded themselves to spill blood for this purpose. We had it hammered into our thinking that, as we spilled our own blood, as we whipped and lacerated our bodies, tortured and tormented them, we were gaining indulgence for ourselves and others from purgatory. Remember there is no hope in a convent; nothing to look forward to except continuous pain, exhaustion, starvation and finally death. (Leviticus 19:28).
To those who have been taught the truth of salvation through faith in Jesus Christ and know of the marvellous grace of God, it may seem incredible that anyone could be so deluded and ignorant. I remind you that if you had been taught noting else all your life and, if as an impressionable child you had been spirited away to be brainwashed and finally imprisoned in a convent, you would not know any better either.
It took ten terrible years in the convent before I finally realized the awful truth that I had been duped. I was finally convinced that the Virgin Mary, Jesus, Joseph, St. Peter, and all the other saints were simply unfeeling metal, wood or plaster statues. It was a shock when I knew they could do nothing to answer all the fervent prayers poured out to them by faithful and deluded people all over the world.
It is surprising how tenacious my faith in all those false idols was. How long it took to really realize the bitter truth about them and the deception in which we had been snared. Bitterly, I came to believe that, if there was a God, He certainly either was dead or cared nothing about humanity. Oh, the hours I and others have spent in earnest, sobbing prayer at the feet of these dumb statues. (Jeremiah 10:19).
One regular monthly event we always dreaded was the visit of the father confessor to the convent. Each time it was a different priest but they were all basically the same. I hated going and always attempted to get in the back row. I lived in a convent so long that I would never trust any priest. All of the ones I met were rotten and vile. The ordeal of confession sometimes took all day. One by one the nuns had to file in to the room where the priest was waiting. Never did I see a priest in the convent who had not been drinking.
The room was bare except for the inevitable statue of the Virgin Mary. The priest perched in a straight-backed chair and the nun must come in and kneel before him. If she got out without being defiled and forced into some unspeakable depravity she was fortunate. No one ever interrupted the priest and the woman, no matter what transpired. One after another the nuns would enter and leave the room.
At other times it was not unusual for the Mother Superior to usher in a drunken priest who would pick out a nun and take her to a cell with him for more liquor and sex. The Mother Superior was a hard and carnal woman who had borne numbers of illegitimate children of priests and usually she drank with the visitors. The priest was well fed, healthy, and strong and lived a relatively easy life; therefore a poor, weakened nun was no match for him, to fight him off. Because she was helpless, he did whatever he pleased and violated her any way he chose. There is no one to defend or help her and none to even care about her being forced into harlotry. Because Mother Superior locked the cell there was no way to escape.

Often I have nursed these little nuns after they had been brutalized and shamefully abused. Only the priest’s imagination limited the kind of indignities he could inflict on his victim. I saw and experienced all kinds of sickening evidences of the wildest kinds of lust being exercised in the convents. The body of the nun often looked as if it were something to be thrown out to the hogs, covered with dozens of bruises and other marks. The people who say I exaggerate are either the priests, trying to squelch the truth, or those who have never been inside the convents. Because I was there, I know the truth, which is monstrous and shocking!
Can you imagine the terrible position of the nun confronted by the priest? If she displeased or refused him, he would complain to the Mother Superior. Putting their two evil minds together they would come up with things to do to that nun which normal minds would never imagine. In a day or two after she resisted the priest, Mother Superior would call her aside to do penance again. There was no choice and with sinking heart she would be led down into the dungeons where the awful reprisal dreamed up by the priest and Mother Superior would be executed.
Some mornings when we were preparing to go to work Mother Superior would call out ten or fifteen of us. We were trembling and apprehensive, never knowing what was coming. We were never allowed to question; only obey, like mindless machines. Would we be punished, go to the penance chambers or what? Then she abruptly would give the order for us to line up and remove all our clothes. With sinking hearts we did as we were told. We knew from experience what was coming next.
Half starved and marked with many scars, with shaved heads, we must have been a sorry sight. Because there are absolutely no mirrors allowed in a convent, I had no idea what I looked like for all the years of my incarceration. When I would catch scant, forbidden glances at others with their gaunt, drawn faces, sunken eyes, teeth falling out, and skeletal starved bodies, I could hardly imagine that I too looked like this.
On one occasion after we were stripped, three drunken, leering Catholic priests lurched in and eyes the nude girls lustfully and each chose a partner to go to a cell with him. Remember, these are cloistered convents and the priest is free to do anything he pleases behind the cloak of rotten religion. This same wicked whoremonger will return to his flock to say mass and hear confessions of people he dupes into believing they can be absolved from their sins. Full of fornication, perversion and vice, he acts as their god!
Can you imagine what all these vile and hurtful abuses did to me? I had no idea that anyone could harbor such hatred, resentment and bitterness inside. In my mind, over and over I would plot and wish for the death of the Mother Superior and other tormentors. How I would relish these delicious thoughts of vengeance and hatred! The convent did this to me. I certainly was not like this when I entered.

After all the nuns had been broken to the will of the priests, they would become very angry if we resisted anything they wanted to do. Often we were slapped in the mouth by an irritated drunken priest. I had my own front teeth knocked loose from being punched in the face. Often we were thrown on the floor and kicked in the stomach. Being pregnant was no protection, for the priest knew that baby was going to be murdered anyway when it was born. Many babies are born in the convents because of the evil corruption of this foul system, cloaked in religious garments. No wonder Babylon is slated for complete destruction. She is unspeakably vile!
I saw scores of babies born in the convents. Most were abnormal and deformed and seldom was one normal. With my hands I have delivered many, many of them, therefore I know. With my eyes I have seen the horror of it all and the world must be told of what goes on in those chambers of horrors.
Many have said I exaggerate and that these things are not so, but I have yet to be hauled into court to refute the charges. They would have to open the cloisters and this they dare not do. After being snared in this rotten system for twenty-two years, I know whereof I speak.
Normal young expectant mothers eagerly anticipate the arrival of their precious baby. Everything is ready, nursery, crib, clothing, and everyone is happy with her. By contrast, a little nun in the convent dreads the moment when she gives birth. The child is the product of a shameful, illicit union with a drunken priest which was forced on her. She knows from bitter experience that the baby will only be permitted to live four or five hours at the very most. It will never be cleaned or wrapped in a warm blanket for Mother Superior will put her hand over its mouth and pinch its nostrils to snuff out its life.
This is why there are lime pits in all the convents. Babies’ bodies are tossed in these holes to be destroyed. Pray for the government to force the convents to open their doors to release the prisoners and let the whole world see what horrors are hidden behind those doors of cruel religious hypocrisy.
If this happens, I assure you that even the Catholic people will agree to the closing of the convents as they did in Mexico in 1934. They have no idea what is transpiring there either, or they would never expose their daughters to such barbarous debauchery and torture.
The convents in old Mexico have been turned into government museums which you can tour for a modest fee. You should go and see with your own eyes and touch with your hands the things of which I speak. Go down into the dungeons, through the tunnels and torture chambers and see all the fiendish devices, demonically conceived, to inflict suffering on the bodies of helpless nuns. See for yourself the cells in which nuns were locked each night and examine the beds, and the prayer boards.

This should give you a burden to pray for hundreds of precious little girls who have been deceived and enticed into entering these ungodly prisons for a life of suffering and utter despair by the Roman Catholic system. Remember I had a mother and father who loved me dearly. When they consented for me to enter the convent they had no idea that I was going to be subjected to such degradation. They were assured that this was the highest calling, the finest expression of their faith and love to God, to give a daughter to such service.
Sealed up in the convents until death, we would never be able to leave and let people outside know what actually takes place inside. With all communications cut off, we were beyond the protection of the law or loved ones and friends. There is no hopeless despair and black depression quite as smothering as that which seizes you when the realization of all this begins to sink in. To know that there is just no escape possible is maddening for there is no end or relief in sight.
Roman Catholics loudly proclaim that anyone can go into any open or closed order convent. There is an outside chapel and what is called the speak room. You are not even admitted there without an escort. If you were taking in food for a specific nun, typically you would walk up the front of the room and press a bell. This would activate a gate containing three shelves to swing open to receive your gifts for the nun inside.
When the bell is tapped, you may be sure that Mother Superior is seated just behind the heavy black veil draped over the big iron gate guarding the inner part of the convent.
You will not be allowed to go any further but may speak to the Mother Superior through the veil. If you asked permission to speak to a specific nun, you might be permitted to converse with her, but only through the veil. If questions are asked as to her happiness, health, food, etc., the nun always answers affirmatively. After all, Mother Superior is sitting there, monitoring every word.
If she were to complain or reveal any of the unpleasant details of life inside, there would be swift and harsh action to correct her as soon as the visitor left. There are good reasons for them to refuse to let relatives see the nuns in person. After a time on convent fare and treatment, the eyes are sunken in the head and the body so wasted away, pale and unhealthy that seeing all this would bring an indignant outcry.
Many were the nights I was extremely exhausted and badly in need of sleep, but ravenous hunger kept me from rest. Going to breakfast meant only a scrap of bread and a cup of black coffee which did not even take the edge off of that everpresent hunger. To those who have always had enough to eat it will be difficult to understand the plight of those who go to bed hungry every night. This is tragic in impoverished, backward nations. It becomes even more evil when you realize that what I am describing is deliberately planned and induced with cunning and devilish cruelty.
Remember that there is not a night or day when those little nuns imprisoned in the cloistered convents around the world do not go to bed hungry. They are sick, wounded, hurt, homesick, heartsick, discouraged and filled with despair. While we look to the Lord Jesus Christ for hope, these poor women have no hope. Release into a lost eternity is the best they can look for.
Occasionally I meet Roman Catholics who vow they have been inside the cloisters and that what I report is not true. You must remember that Catholics are quite free to lie to protect the church and need not even confess this in confessional. It is permissible, just as it is alright to steal up to $40.00 before theft has to be confessed. (Exodus 20:15,16).
My fury toward the succession of Mother Superiors was unchecked. Each time she singled me out for penance or some real or imaginary infraction of convent rules she would sadistically inflict some diabolical and vicious suffering designed to destroy my body and mind. My mind was so filled with schemes of violence and retaliation I lived for the bitter day when I would be able to repay some of the misery I had endured.
All of this awful violence and hatred in me was created by the endless stream of cruelties, deprivations, harassments and unbelievable sufferings heaped on me by my captors. I often fantasized what a joy it would be to kill one of the brutal, lecherous priests who regularly violated us.
In my twenty-two years in the convent, I saw three Mother Superiors die. Because I was a nurse, one day two nuns came to fetch me to tend Mother Superior who was critically ill. A Roman Catholic doctor from the outside had been called in to examine her. He gave me strict instructions concerning some powerful prescription medication he left for her. All of the hatred I held for this ungodly woman, her cruelty and the wicked system she represented boiled up in me. I would have my revenge, and this woman would die. I would see to that!
The day was long as I waited for my chance. The nuns were locked in their cells and the lights went out at 9:30. Time drug on until finally the midnight call to prayer was finished with the lights out for the night. I picked up a number of the tablets and dissolved them in water, a deliberate, massive overdose.
Eagerly, I roused the half-conscious woman and painstakingly forced her to gulp down every drop of the lethal potion. As I eased her back on the pillows I gloated. Soon she would die a horrible death and my vengeance on her would be sweet indeed. I checked her pulse, which was escalating rapidly, as was her respiration. In a short time she began to moan and toss and finally went into violent convulsions. I smiled evilly, for years of abuse had changed me into a bitter, heartless monster, bent on murder.
Suddenly I awoke to the realization of what I had done. With a shock I knew that I would probably be held accountable for her death. There was no way to imagine what they might do to me because of it. Frantically I grabbed a stomach pump and worked furiously to save her. I began massaging her with cold water. At long last her respiration and blood pressure dropped to normal levels and she drifted off into a deep sleep. I could relax again and reflect on my own narrow escape.
I knew that in a part of the deep tunnel system under the convent, there was a place where I had often heard horrible screams. They came from behind a heavy locked door. Mother Superior had repeatedly warned us not to go there. This was a rather pointless admonition since none of us had any keys, however my curiosity about the place was overwhelming.
With my patient finally out of danger and the convent asleep, I remembered. Mother Superior’s keys were in her desk, so I grabbed them and raced downstairs. Two stories underground, by the flickering candlelight, I found the forbidden door which I had wondered about. I fumbled nervously with the big ring of keys and finally found the right one. The huge door swung quietly open, revealing a hall lined with nineteen tiny cells. All had barred windows in the doors.
I gasped in horror as I peered inside the cells to see white, ravaged and drawn faces of little nuns with whom I had eaten, prayed and worked. Each had disappeared suddenly and without any explanation. One in particular I recognized and asked her how long she had been there and other questions. Her dull, lifeless eyes were glazed with awful terror, but she would say nothing at all. Paralyzing fear rules the convent and these prisoners did not know where the Mother Superior might be hiding. None would speak lest worse things come upon them. I went from one to the other but always the response was the same, frightened silence.
Toward the end of the hall, several cells emitted a sickening stench and I became violently ill and nauseated when I peeped inside. All of the captives here had long chains wrapped around their waists, which prevented them from being able to sit or lie down. They were slumped in the chains, reeking with their own urine and body wastes, for they had been condemned to a slow death, with little water and no food. Some were already dead and the awful smell of death was there.
Their “crimes” consisted of persistent infractions of convent rules or they were unfortunate enough to have had a nervous or mental breakdown because of the pressure of the cloistered life. This was the way such matters were handled, a hidden garbage dump for the wreckage of the convent.
Violently ill, my head swimming and mind reeling, I staggered from the chamber of horrors and relocked the door. Hurriedly I went back upstairs to my charge, who was still sleeping peacefully. I was relieved to find that her blood pressure and respiration were still normal. She slept late into the next day and I remained with her for three more days.
Mother Superior felt so much better that I was rewarded with a six week assignment to kitchen duty. This was a rare privilege for it was on the first floor. Kitchen walls were lined with peep holes and there was no way to know when some nun or priest was peeping through them. With this constant surveillance, the slightest infraction of the rules, especially stealing food, could be discovered and dealt with quickly and harshly. This contributed to the overall sense of being in a hostile prison at all times. Still I was glad to be there.
There was a double locked outside door in the kitchen which opened onto the courtyard.
On a landing by the door was the spot where we kept the garbage cans. On the third day of my assignment there, someone rattled a garbage can. The six of us were startled and jumped. When you work and live in an atmosphere where silence is constantly required, you become very sensitive to even ordinary sounds which others would never notice. We whirled around and saw a man who was replacing a full garbage can with an empty one over in the corner.
Quickly recovering our composure, we dropped our eyes and busily returned to our work, fearful that we might have been observed. We were taught that the bodies of the priests and bishops were sanctified and holy. However, all other men were unsanctified and if we were caught looking at them we could receive severe punishment for this sin.
Suddenly my mind stirred with an exciting but dangerous idea. Perhaps I could smuggle a note to this man! This presented many problems however, I had no pencil or paper, for these were not allowed, but hanging over the work table in the kitchen was a pad with a pencil chained to it. This was used to list items running in short supply in the kitchen. I managed to snatch a scrap of dirty paper and at odd moments would scribble a few words on it with the pencil. By the end of the day I had only been able to write about two and a half lines, appealing for help.
I was terrified at the thought that I might have been noticed and reported. However, I had gone too far now to turn back. At the end of the work day, I slipped out to the garbage can, put the note on top of garbage, and left the lid
off the can. I then removed my crucifix and, although it was difficult, I managed to break it and deposited it on the shelf.
After the kitchen chores were finished, we walked out and paused for our regular, daily inspection by Mother Superior. She carefully examined our skirts to be sure we were not smuggling out bits of food. When it was my turn I said, “Mother Superior, I broke my crucifix and put it on the shelf over the work table. May I go back and get it, please? She queried me about how it happened and finally crossly told me to go quickly and get it. After all, a nun could not be found without her crucifix!
I flew to the back door and looked under the garbage can where I had asked the man to leave a note. There was a piece of folded paper, a note! My hand shook so I could scarcely read it. My breath was coming in gasps, excitement mingled with fear. As I managed to make out the writing my heart really leaped, pounding so hard it seemed to thunder in my ears. It said he was leaving the outer kitchen door unlocked and also the big, barred, iron gate in the high wall around the convent!
Escape! I could hardly draw my breath as I cautiously tried the outer door. Sure enough, it swung open and I eased my foot out on to the cement stoop. Suddenly I froze, paralyzed with fear, and grew dizzy with nausea. I leaped back inside.
I was remembering the dread sound of the buzzer which sounded the alarm when a nun attempted to escape. I also shuddered when I recalled how quickly the priests would capture the forlorn runaway and drag her back. Then began an endless round of penances and inhuman torments to bring repentance. Was I ready to risk all this?
I shivered, took a deep breath and stepped out once again, this time closing and locking the door behind me. Now I could not turn back so I darted to the iron gate. Just beyond this was glorious freedom from the charnel house of horrors where I had been imprisoned for twenty-two long years! Freedom was worth any risk. Although I had despaired so often, I still longed for it. At last it was within my grasp, and overwhelming emotions swept over me as I raced to the gate.
I arrived at the iron gate and pulled gently. Raw terror knotted my stomach as I pulled and then jerked as hard as I could. It was locked! I sobbed silently and almost fainted when I remembered that I had foolishly snapped those kitchen door locks. I was locked out in a forbidden area with no excuse which would be acceptable. Panicking, I thought of all the tortures Mother Superior would use on me to break this “rebellion.” I shook uncontrollably and my mind was spinning. Why, why was this gate locked?
In desperation I began climbing the high, wrought iron gate. We were kept half-starved and worked almost to death with heavy labor, to say nothing of the regular, draining bouts with the torture chamber. A frail, wasted body, little more than skin and bones, has no reserve energy. I slipped often, skinning hands and bare feet on the rough metal bars.
It was sheer misery, but finally, panting and bleeding, I clawed my way to the top ledge which was lined with long, sharp spikes. I paused, my lungs painfully strained by the exertion. My heart sank as I gazed down in dismay from the top of that twenty foot gate. I only hesitated a moment for there was not turning back possible now. I must go down the other side. Hindered by my three, long heavy skirts and knee-length veil, Awkwardly worked one foot between the spikes and decided to chance jumping.
I pulled my heavy clothing up over my head with one hand, took a deep breath, and leaped for the ground. Two of my skirts snagged on the gate spikes and I was suspended in the air and swung back against the gate. Now I was more afraid than ever and rocked frantically back and forth until I could get a fresh grip on the gate bars.
With my free hand I managed to pry loose two or three heavy snappers which fastened my skirts around me. Suddenly I plummeted down, hitting with a sickening, crunching thud and my skirts fluttered down upon me. Later I discovered I had an arm and shoulder with compound fractures.
Because I was so skinny, the shattered bones were exposed through the flesh. Waves of pain engulfed me and mercifully I swooned into unconsciousness. I don’t know how long I lay there piled in a heap, but it was probably only briefly. After regaining consciousness, flashing pains seemed to be shooting all over my body, especially through my mangled shoulder and arm.
I moaned softly, and, biting my lips, I struggled to my feet. The terror of being recaptured overcame bodily pain and drove me to stagger along as swiftly as I could. I was in a foreign country. Where could I go? What would I do? I was a wreck physically, I had no money, no friends and only the desire to be free kept me going on.
I walked, then ran, then walked again. Schooled to quietness in the convent, I kept thinking the rustling of the leaves behind me were the sounds of pursuit. Sheer exhaustion was making it increasingly difficult to keep moving for I was so nauseated, numb and sick.
I spotted a tiny storage building and painfully crawled in and tried to get some sleep. I must have been delirious and may have dozed a bit, but eventually I was hurting so badly I decided I might as well be moving on. I gasped with fresh pain and stiffness as I laboriously crawled out and walked the rest of the night.
With a determined effort I pushed myself to move away from my convent. One thing I had been forced to learn in the cloister was to continue to function in spite of agonizing pain and suffering. Miraculously, my escape was not discovered very quickly, and this gave me an advantage.
The second day I hid under a pile of boards and sheets of tin. The boiling sun baked my hiding place as I tossed and turned feverishly, attempting to snatch some rest for my drained and broken body. I was a mass of shooting pains, and was weak, thirsty and hungry. I probably lapsed into unconsciousness a number of times during that long, hot day. When night came I dragged myself out and managed to get moving again.
I was very fearful of knocking on doors of houses, lest some devout Roman Catholic family report me to a priest who would haul me back to the convent. The thought of this possibility forced my aching legs to take me deeper into the countryside, and hopefully to safety. I had decided that I would rather die than to return to my unmerciful tormentors and jailers.
By the third day I felt certain I was going to die. I had a high, raging fever, was horribly nauseated and my hand, arm and shoulder were swollen and throbbing. Even the ends of my fingers had now turned blue and green. Like a wounded, dying animal I crawled under a fence and despairingly burrowed into a haystack.
Most of the day I lay there but the combination of pain, hunger and thirst finally drove me out again. I came upon a small and obviously very poor home. Throwing caution to the winds, I knocked on the door. When a man answered, I croakingly begged him to give me a drink of water.
I must have been a frightful sight, but he said nothing. When he called to his wife, she immediately opened the door and brought me into the house. It was the first time I had seen real compassion in human eyes for years. Tears started in her eyes as she looked at me and said tenderly, “Come in and sit down here my dear.” That was the most beautiful music I had ever heard.
She made me sit down at a table and rushed to fetch a cup of cool milk. Remember I had not even seen whole milk for years and I was ravenously hungry. Rudely, like a wild animal, I snatched the cup and greedily gulped down every drop. When it hit my gnawing, empty stomach, predictably I regurgitated it violently and made quite a mess. Automatically I recoiled and cringed, for I was conditioned to expect that each mistake had to bring recriminations and punishment.

The kind woman said nothing but tears glistened in her eyes as she cleaned up the mess. She understood what was needed and moments later had mixed some sugar in a cup of warm water. This time she fed me slowly with a teaspoon, a sip at a time. This revived me and tasted so good. Later she warmed some milk and gave me just a bit.
Deeply concerned, the man stared at my helpless, bloodstained arm lying on the table and asked how I had gotten hurt so badly. It is hard to express what a relief it was to talk with someone who genuinely seemed to care about me for a change. I explained how I had climbed over the gate and fallen to the ground.
When he announced that he would have to call a doctor, I went wild and bolted for the door. Hysterically I shrieked, “No! No! I have no family; I have no money; I cannot pay a doctor bill; I will run away; I must go now.” This outburst had so drained me that I swayed dizzily, almost fainting from the exertion. The old man tenderly eased me back into the chair and soothingly reassured me. “Now, now, you need help and I must go for the doctor. However, you need have no fear for neither we or the doctor are Roman Catholic.”
I so wanted to believe him but was still trembling violently with fear. I hoped they meant me no harm, but I had been conditioned to trust no one. For all those years in the convent I had been surrounded by treachery, deception and lies of all kinds.
Actually, I was much too sick and weak to do anything but settle back and wait. I had no choice for I had no strength and was quivering uncontrollably. The lady of the house moved so quickly to my side to calm me. It had been years and years since I had been shown any kindness or consideration. I just dissolved into gushing tears, for my nerves had been thoroughly frayed by all I had endured. Both these strangers seemed to understand and were exceedingly kind to me.
The old gentleman hitched his horse to the buggy and drove nine or ten miles to the nearby town. A doctor came out in his car and after a cursory examination, shook his head very angrily. I was terrified and refused to tell them who I was or where I came from. I was afraid of everyone, dreading a betrayal which would return me to the prison house of the convent.
After the doctor examined me he kept walking around me, staring in utter unbelief. Gazing at the shattered hulk of what was supposed to be a human being, he swore softly and angrily under his breath until he noticed he was frightening me. He was furious, not with me, but with the inhuman treatment which had been inflicted upon me.
Gruffly, but kindly, he said, “I must put you in the hospital without delay.” I began to protest weakly and sob that I did not want to go to a hospital. There, I was sure my enemies would find me and take me back. I pled with him

not to force me to go. He replied that he was not going to hurt me but would have to take me where I could receive the treatment I required.
When he admitted me to the hospital I weighed in at 89 pounds (over 80 pounds under my 1968 weight). First I went into surgery where they attempted to reduce the awful swelling and infection in my arm, hand and shoulder. It was over two weeks before the swelling subsided and the bones began to knit. Because they were crooked, later they had to be rebroken and once again put in a cast, a very painful procedure.
The doctor and all the hospital personnel were extremely understanding and gave me the very best of care. After the many years of starving, torture, constant condemnation and being degraded and treated like an animal, it was almost too good to be true. I was there over a year, very slowly recuperating in body and mind. After six months my kind doctor friend walked in, pulled up a chair and took my hand. “Well girlie,” he said, “We have done everything in our power to get you well and on your feet. Now we must know who you are and where you are from and I will try to locate your people.”
He knew I was a foreigner and wanted to contact my parents. His kindness so touched me that I melted into tears and gave him the information. Ten weeks later he had finally located my parents. Both were living, but mother had been a paralyzed invalid for over seven years. Of course I knew nothing of this for, as I discovered later, they had received none of my letters. My jailers did not allow any communication with outsiders.
Because I had undergone an operation for tuberculosis of the bone, I was unable to walk. When I recuperated enough to sit in a wheelchair, the doctor felt I needed to change from the hospital environment. He carried me to his home in the suburbs where his gracious wife bought me my first civilian shoes and clothing.
During all my time in the hospital the dear old couple, who had taken me into their home that dreadful night, visited regularly. Almost every day they came, bringing a bouquet of wild flowers to brighten my hospital room. I anticipated their trips to see me and eagerly watched for the little horse and buggy to come up the hospital drive. When the flowers quit blooming, she made blossoms from bits of colored paper to cheer me. I loved them as if they were my own flesh and blood.
The day I was released from the hospital they were there and asked if I would like to come to their home. I wept and said I would love to, but was going with the doctor to his house. When the doctor found me crying he quickly assured me that it would be all right to go there. He took me there in his automobile and visited me often, bringing fresh fruit and vegetables.

I stayed six weeks and then moved back to the physician’s home. I went back and forth between these two families for about a year after leaving the hospital. Because my hair still refused to grow out, I wore dust caps.
The day came when I was recovered enough to gather eggs, dust furniture, wash and dry dishes. The doctor contacted the old people and gave them a check to take me shopping for a suitcase and clothing. On a certain day he came to take me on a trip. Many people had given me money which was carefully sewed in my clothing.
When my benefactor took me to the train, he cautioned me, “Charlotte, don’t eat a bite of food or candy; touch nothing except what this one person gives to you for he will take care of you.” After the train ride I was taken to a ship and put under the protection of another person with the same strict instructions and precautions. Two weeks later the ship docked in the United States. I was met at the dock by other people who put me on a train, under the care of the conductor. He was very good to me and brought me all the food I could eat. By now I didn’t have a penny and he gave me some silver dollars.
I spent three days on the train and when we were twenty-five or thirty miles from my father’s home I was quite excited. The conductor brought me a sandwich, two more silver dollars and helped me off the train with my suitcase. My home town was very small but had grown considerably in twenty-four years. The train pulled away from the brand-new depot and I stood on the platform, feeling very alone, fearful and confused. I took a deep breath, walked inside and asked a man for directions to my father’s house.
I had been reared in a frame house, but this new one was brick. My heart was beating very fast and I was breathing heavily as I rang the bell. A stooped and wrinkled old gentleman with grey hair opened the door and I asked for my father. When he asked who I was, I gave him my real, not my convent name. Tears welled up in his eyes as he wonderingly and tremblingly said, “Hookie?” This was the nickname given to me when I was a little girl. We embraced, weeping for the joy of our reunion. When I asked about my mother, he became very evasive, asking me questions. When I kept pressing him he told me she had been very sick and finally took me to her room.
My mind reeled with shock to see her lying there, completely paralyzed. Wasted away to a pitiful sixty-nine pounds, almost all her beautiful hair was gone. She looked like a frail skeleton and I could scarcely believe this pale, emaciated creature was all that remained of my beautiful, strong mother I remembered.
Waves of nausea and darkness swept over me as I almost collapsed in a faint. My dad gently steered me out and helped me into the next room where I crumpled into a bed, sobbing and soon I went fast asleep. The excitement of my homecoming coupled with the shock of seeing my parents, broken by age and sickness, was too much for me.

At 2:30 p.m. I awoke in severe pain. When my father had the nurse check me, she advised him to call the family doctor immediately. He was my godfather and had delivered me into the world and refused to believe I was really Charlotte until he saw the birthmark on my back. I was at once rushed to the hospital where I stayed for fourteen weeks. My father was a very wealthy man and paid all the bills. My godfather reimbursed those overseas who had befriended and aided me. Grateful to those who had saved my life, my dad also sent them gifts as well.
While hospitalized I underwent a second operation on my left hip because of the tubercular bone condition. When the ambulance brought me home I was placed in a reclining chair and my dad instructed me that I was to eat, sleep and recuperate. I was given books to read but try as I might I could retain nothing I read. I became extremely agitated and after two weeks of this my doctor called the family doctor and told him I was having a complete nervous breakdown and should be put in a sanitorium. My father refused, not wanting me to leave again after having been away for so long.
I was so thin, frail and hairless that my relatives would shuttle me quickly to the back room, out of sight, when their friends would drop over. They were ashamed of the way I looked and this broke my heart and was a real source of grief to me. Because of this, I was very shy and extremely self conscious.
All of my brothers and sisters had received college educations while I had been locked away in a foreign convent, praying for lost humanity, and pouring out my blood for the sins of the world. Somehow it did not seem fair.
After I was able to be up in a wheel chair and could walk a little, one of my sisters set up appointments with a beautician for scalp treatments. However, when they put hot towels and oil on my head I passed out, because I was so sick. Months of continued treatments were finally successful and one day the hair began to grow back. After I had become more presentable, my relatives began to purchase expensive clothing for me and I had to learn how to act, how to wear clothes, etc., all over again.
When I grew steadily worse, my Dad did eventually consent to my going cross-country over 600 miles, to stay with my Uncle John. For a year I lived there but still had very little hair on my head. This was a source of much shame and embarrassment to me and I became somewhat of a recluse. One day my uncle asked me to visit some neighbors with him but I bolted for my bedroom, fearful of being around other people. However, when I realized this hurt him, I changed my mind, dressed and went with him. A few days later, he asked me to pick up a package from these neighbors and for the first time I went out alone.
After walking a couple of blocks, I sensed something was wrong for someone was following me. When I whirled around, there were four big men close behind me. One called me by my convent name, warning me not to move 31
nor make a sound. I was paralyzed with that old terror so much that I could not move. They closed in quickly on each side; picked me up and pitched me into their car between the front and back seats.
As they sped away I was forced to lie on the floor and they covered me with a dirty rug when I begged for mercy. As I was held down under their feet and fear gripped me, I listened and realized that these were actually four Catholic priests in civilian clothing. We drove all night and through all the next day and night. The following morning we entered the suburbs of a large city and pulled to the curb. I was aching all over and cramped from being forced to lie prone on the floorboard during this wild drive.
I had no idea where we were but when I was allowed to sit up I slowly stretched my cramped muscles and aching back. I stiffened with horror when I saw we had parked in front of a convent. My heart sank and I shook in terror. I wished I had not gotten up at all. Desperately I prayed to the Virgin Mary for a heart attack and then called on St. Jude, St. Bartholomew and every other patron saint I could remember.
They dragged me from the automobile, one on each side, and instead of entering the convent, they marched me blocks and blocks down the street. At last, walking on my toes with downcast eyes, I was guided upon the porch of the priest’s home, next door to a large Roman Catholic church.
They hustled me inside, down a hallway, through the kitchen, and then down into the basement. There a secret, locked door opened to reveal a tunnel which led straight back, many blocks underground, to the convent! As usual, they had sneaked me in leaving no trail, in case we were observed. As always, they were out to deceive the world and hide their dark and evil deeds.
At the end of the long tunnel there was another door but no way to open it. However, one of the priests knew exactly where the secret button was located and when he pressed it, the big, heavy door swung silently open. Behind it Mother Superior stood waiting. Her cruel face was grim and set as she snapped, “Bring her in.” I had seen those merciless looks many times before and it was like the rerun of a thousand other horrifying nightmares of pain and suffering.
Mother Superior led the way without a word to another room and harshly ordered me to prostrate myself on the floor. I had no choice but to obey, as I had so many hundred of times before. Mother Superior tapped a bell and two nuns suddenly appeared and one set a strange looking object on the floor beside me. She handed the sisters each a piece of rope and they bound my hands and feet securely. They were quiet efficient and obviously had much experience in doing this.

The object on the floor was a plumber’s blow torch, but I had never seen one and did not know what it was. Mother gave a quick order and a nun lit it. One nun got under my shoulders, the other at my ankles, and they lifted me up. Mother Superior came and stood over me demanding that I say I was sorry for my wickedness, recant for running away from the convent, and promise I would never run away again.
I knew I would run away again at the first opportunity and would never make such a promise. From long experience I was aware that I faced hurt and torture no matter what I said or did not say. There was no mercy or escape regardless of promises. I was an old hand at understanding the duplicity, lies, hypocrisy and treachery in a convent. Everything was designed to deceive and entrap the unwary. There was absolutely no way to win a fair hearing or trial.
When a Mother Superior dies, they always have three or four replacements, one of which can take her place. Always they are chosen for their hard, cruel and inhuman disregard for suffering and misery and lack of compassion. She must have proven herself totally loyal to the system with all its rottenness and must even relish and enjoy all the gross practices.
Mother made her demands three times and I met them with grim silence. She gave the order to lower my body down on the torch. Naturally I screamed and struggled, bucking and pitching, trying to escape the merciless fire on my back. When my clothing caught fire I was writhing and shrieking in agony as the flesh sizzled and blistered while the relentless and emotionless sisters held me firmly over the fire. Finally Mother Superior decided I had burned enough for now and rolled me in a filthy rug to smother the flames. I was like a wild creature, throbbing with unbelievable white-hot pain and misery.
After she did this the nuns dumped me roughly to the floor and I screamed even louder as the seared and blistered flesh on my back slipped. I was then carried to the infirmary where I was laid out on a slab of wood. I was placed on my stomach because my back was so dreadfully seared. My agony and torment from the burns was beyond description. Mother and the nuns then walked out, shutting and locking the door. Once again I was a prisoner of those who had no hearts or conscience and who lived to inflict suffering and torture on every helpless victim.
I begged and wept, pleading and moaning for water when nuns passed by, but they were robots, programmed to ignore suffering and they did not stop. My cruel captors thought I was surely going to die and I believed it too. When I lived on, Mother Superior called in a doctor. I often wonder what kind of lies she told him to explain the horrible mass of burns on my ravaged body. He came in for several weeks to dress and treat the burns. One miserable day crawled into another.

Months dragged by before I was able to walk. The first day I was able to be up I was escorted to the refractory where meals were served. As was customary, each nun had her own place at the tables but there was none for me. Mother Superior ordered me to keep walking over to one corner of the room. There a shelf could be adjusted to the height of a nun and on it sat my tin cup of black coffee and four ounces of bread. I had to stand with my nose in the corner to consume my meagre rations.
When I was brought back that night the shelf was bare and Mother marched me to another place, past three statues. They had taken all my vegetables out of the tin pie pan and piled them on the floor with the two ounce bit of bread and tin cup of coffee. I was to sit on the floor and eat off the floor and this was forced on me for months.
One day I asked permission to speak with Mother Superior. I told her that if she would not make me commit sin I would break no convent rules. She loftily informed me that if I kept all the rules, one day I would be allowed out in the courtyard for a short recreation period.
Years ago I had learned never to trust in or believe the lies told by the conscienceless Mother Superiors in convents. They were past masters of deception, manipulation and sadistic cruelty. This one long ago had told me that my life was to be one of constant penance and suffering because I had dared to attempt escape from the convent. Absolutely everything she was big enough to inflict on me, she did with a vengeance, not minding what it was. Hers was an all- out campaign to break me completely, and nothing was too cruel, painful or inhuman for her to devise.
One morning, for a penance, I was taken to a long metal horse watering trough which served the nuns as a bathtub. I was ordered to strip off my clothes, slip on a muslin nightgown and get into the tub of water. Mother Superior seized my head and pushed my face forward into the filthy water, then up, then back into the water. I was scarcely able to get my breath and strangled as she kept this up continuously. I became so exhausted I crumpled in the tank, so weak I could no longer resist or even struggle against the fear of asphyxiation and drowning. The mental and physical pressures of such punishments are difficult to describe.
Two little nuns pulled me from the tank, limp and half-conscious, gasping, gagging and choking for breath. They held me firmly while two others began to beat me thoroughly with cruel, cutting, flagellation whips, whose chains and sharp metal teeth bit viciously through and shredded the thin wet muslin nightgown. I was soon soaked with my own blood, badly lacerated all over.
In the convent, complaining and murmuring are strictly forbidden and bring swift and harsh punishment. Therefore you learn to bear everything without hope of any relief. I had developed a festering infection on my finger which grew worse day by day. Terribly swollen and painful, it throbbed so I could ignore it no longer. It should have been lanced to relieve the pressure. That day I was assigned to kitchen duty and I knew that I would have my hands in hot, soapy water all day long, scrubbing and cleaning.
When I asked Mother Superior for permission to speak to her she glared at me but gave consent. Laying my finger on the kitchen work table for her to see, I explained how dreadfully painful it was and asked if I might switch duties with another nun to keep it out of the water until it was better. She glanced at it and quick as a flash, snatched a meat cleaver and before I realized what was happening, savagely chopped of the side of the infected finger.
Although mercifully, unconsciousness caused me to slump to the floor, they quickly revived me. Mother Superior snapped at me angrily and said, “Now you quit fooling around making excuses and get busy scrubbing.” I had no choice but to obey and slaved away in the hot, soapy water all day long, fainting several times from the endless pain.
So life went on, one dreary day after another, with dreadful and agonizing penances being imposed one after the other, limited only by the demonic imaginations and devices of the heartless and ruthless Mother Superior. These awful women have to be totally demon possessed to do what they do.
One day I was again taken down into the furnace room where the coal burner was located. It too was used as a torture chamber and as usual, my clothing was stripped to the waist. I was forced to lock my arms around a large hot water pipe and my hands and feet were tightly bound to it. Mother Superior then shoved the poker into the hot coals of the furnace to heat it red hot.
This done, she slowly and painstakingly burned three crosses on my back, returning the poker to the coals when it cooled. Horrible screams ripped from my throat and pitiful, whimpering pleas for mercy gurgled out once more, but of course there was none. My nostrils burned again with the sickening acrid stench of my own burning flesh. Awful convulsions of rage and pure hatred for my tormentors boiled up in me.
After over twenty-eight despairing, miserable months of captivity, these evil people had almost managed to destroy me for the second time. The utter hopelessness I experienced is very difficult to define or describe in words to one who has never gone through it.
Mother Superior summoned eighteen of us to follow her on another day. As usual, we were afraid for we never knew what awaited us when we were called out. Silently we trailed her as she led us to the kitchen on the first floor. Handing us seven bean bags she unlocked the door leading into the outer courtyard which lay behind the high walls. We were actually being allowed a recreation period!
We could scarcely contain our joy and amazement as we walked out into the fresh air and sunshine, for the first time. To those who have never been deprived of such ordinary things this may seem strange, but we walked only a few steps off the patio and fell eagerly on our faces in the lush green grass, smelling and clutching it greedily.
To lie there in this way was like heaven, unbelievably wonderful and satisfying to our deprived senses which had been imprisoned inside the sterile convent walls and caverns for so long. We lay there side by side revelling in the air, grass and the sunshine and must have been a strange sight indeed. We were literally intoxicated by it all.
While lying there, a coal truck lumbered up to the heavy iron gate of the courtyard. A man took a wheelbarrow from the truck and began to load it. After unlocking the gate, he pushed it open to bring the coal to the basement chute around the corner of the building. We all lay quietly still after stealing hurried looks to see what was happening. Quickly we turned our heads away, for it was punishable sin to look on any man other than a priest or bishop.
A wild thought flashed through my mind. If I had what it took, I could dart out of the open gate ahead of him, as he was slowly making his repeated trips to the chute. Indecision paralyzed me, however, and I could not move because I had been so conditioned by fear to obey the rules. He made several trips and finally pitched the wheelbarrow on the truck and closed the outer gate. My heart sank as I heard the sound of the gate swinging shut, however I started up. My hearing was so sensitive after being in the convent silence that it seemed the gate sounded different when it closed. Could it be that the catch jammed and did not lock? It was impossible, but supposing it were true?
With such thoughts surging through my brain, my heart seemed to be pounding so loudly that I glanced cautiously at the other nuns to see if they heard it. However, they were still luxuriating in the fresh green grass, the sunshine and fresh air and were noticing nothing. Very carefully I eased to my feet, moving quietly so as not to disturb them, and slipped over to the gate.
Furtively, I looked back to the convent to see if I was being observed. As I got closer, I panicked and began to run. When I hit the big gate it swung open so easily I lost my balance and tumbled headlong into the cinder path, skinning my face, hands, and knees. Quickly I leaped up and shoved the open gate closed and the spring lock clicked, locking it securely. I did not want to attract attention by running, but my feet just flew down the sidewalk.

It was incredible! I was free once more! I was outside the prison walls of the convent at last. It was a beautiful day but very windy, causing my habit and veil to blow around my face. I could scarcely see where I was going. Suddenly, I bumped into a man and in desperation I seized his arm and gasped in a frightened voice, “Please help me! Hide me quickly. I have just escaped from the convent.”
This frightened him and he looked shaken, but he said, “Come with me and I will put you in my barn.” He had just put a load of fresh hay in the building and I began to climb up the ladder to hide in the loft. He stopped me, saying he had thought of a better place for me to stay. I followed him into his house where he quickly explained to his wife what was happening. They opened an access door in the corner of the kitchen ceiling and boosted me up there into the attic.
This precious couple, in their thirties, were very good to me. They sent up pillows, blankets food and water. I hid there all night and through the next day. At dusk I told them that I must be on my way, to flee in the darkness. From them, for the first time, I learned exactly where I had been imprisoned for over two years. They supplied me with maps, and, as we checked them, found that I had been kidnapped 650 miles away. The maps were then marked so I could find my way back to Uncle John’s house.
The lady packed a shoebox with food, gave me seventy-five cents and insisted that I change into some of her clothing for the trip and carry mine along. I was still hairless so she gave me a stocking cap. I had to go barefooted for I had no shoes or socks, and my friends had nothing which would fit me. I was undoubtedly a peculiar sight, dressed in clothing three sizes too large for me, as I began my trek to safety trying to hitchhike cross-country.
I walked and walked until my feet were so sore and I was so tired I felt I could go no further. When I stopped at a house to ask permission to sleep on the porch or in the garage, the lady took one look at me and slammed the door in my face. Wearily I plodded back to the road, heartsick, frightened and thoroughly discouraged. Only the thought of the horrors behind me kept me from giving up completely.
These comfortable people, secure in their warm homes, comfortable beds with full stomachs could not relate in their wildest imaginations to what was going on so close by. The truth was too terrible to be believed, therefore nice people just deny it. Exhausted, I stumbled and half fell into the ditch until the lights in the house went out. I then crept out, slipped up alongside the house and lay down to fall into a fitful sleep. I was glad I brought along my heavy, holy habit because I wrapped it around me to keep out the biting night chill.
When dawn broke, I nervously roused myself and again began to walk. I was filled with fear because I didn’t know what the people might do to me. After I had eaten everything I brought with me, I stopped and begged food along
the way. Some were gracious and gave me a nice meal, others abruptly refused and slammed the door in my face.
Days and weeks went by as I painfully walked across the countryside. No one offered me shoes and my feet got so bad I wept and begged to die. For fourteen weeks I walked and hitchhiked, begging for food and a place to lie down to sleep. Finally I was about twenty-five or thirty miles from Uncle John’s, according to my maps.
I asked at a railway depot if there was a train to Uncle John’s town and discovered there was a one car train which would come in five hours. From the meagre store of coins which had been given to me, I counted out money, bought a ticket and lay down on the station bench to sleep. Although I was very hungry, no one offered me food.
I caught the train and when I arrived at Uncle John’s house he said, “My God, Charlotte, where did you come from?” Then he showed me a letter from my dad stating that my own father was the one who had put me back into the convent. The letter said I was in safe keeping and that they knew where I was. My father was terrified because my invalid mother was so sick. Every time any member of the family, especially my father, went to confession, the priest would solemnly announce, “There will be no absolution for your sin until Charlotte is back in the convent.”
The priest assured my dad that if my mother died she could not go to purgatory but would have to go straight to hell. My tormented father believed this and desperately feared this dread sentence on his beloved wife. To him, betraying me to the convent was not as bad as condemning my mother to hell. As I heard this, I was again filled with wrath and furiously assured my uncle I never wanted to see my father again. I was raging, deeply hurt and felt terribly lonely.
Uncle John began to share with me about how his Roman Catholic neighbors had gotten saved. This had radically changed their lives, especially the father, who had been a wife and child beating drunkard. When my aunt died, they showed such concern and love to my uncle that he visited a Pentecostal church service with them. At 67 years of age my Roman Catholic uncle had never attended a church other than the Roman Catholic. He was deeply touched by the services and particularly by their clean-cut young people who were so different from the worldly Roman Catholic young people he knew.
After several visits to the church, one night he leaped from his seat and ran to the front of the church shouting, “My God, I’m lost, I’m lost, I’m lost!” He was a well known local businessman and it created quite a stir when he was saved. Later he received the baptism in the Holy Spirit. A childless widower, he promised to give himself and all his property to the Lord.

As he finished this strange narrative, I was thinking the old man must have gone crazy. However, I had no other place to go, so I just said nothing. That night I overheard him praying for me, and again the next morning. Each time he was asking the Lord to save me. This went on nightly and for the rest of his life.
Because I was so ill, my uncle put me in the hospital, paid my bills, took care of me, fed and clothed me. After I came home, my uncle became very sick and his doctor said he needed to be in the hospital. I begged the physician to let me keep my relative home and nurse him. It was my chance to repay him for his kindness to me. The doctor consented, however he steadily got worse and worse.
In a few days my uncle called me in and said, “Honey, I’m going home to be with the Lord. I want you to call your father and tell him that my funeral will be in this church here.” He told me which undertaker to call and also mentioned what he wanted done at the funeral. I was stunned, scarcely believing what I was hearing. He smiled, looked in my face, then closed his eyes and he was gone.
When I realized he was dead, I was wracked with waves of awful grief. This man was all I had in life. All my precarious security was swept away. I was lost, and had been betrayed by everyone except this man. I felt I had been robbed of all I held dear and precious in this world. I fell across his lifeless body screaming furiously and hysterically, “If there is a God, why, why did you take him away from me? He’s all I have. It’s not fair! It’s not fair.”
I finally pulled myself together and began to carry out my uncle’s instructions. I called the pastor; the undertaker; picked out the casket; sent telegrams and made all of the funeral arrangements. Uncle John never told his relatives that he had left the Roman Catholic church because he knew they would cut him off. Sure enough, when they learned this, not one single relative came to the funeral or sent flowers. People from the church knew of my deep attachment to my uncle and some stayed with me in the house for six weeks. When they had to go home, I was told to charge anything I needed at the grocery store and they paid every bill.
Seven months after Uncle John’s death I begged the doctor to release me to go back to work. I hated being dependent and was anxious to assume responsibility for myself. I went to the neighboring state and took and passed a nurse’s examination. In a matter of days I had been hired by a large Roman Catholic hospital to nurse. In spite of all of Uncle John’s fervent praying and witnessing, I was still unsaved.
For three years I worked there and was able to support myself. What a glorious feeling after being sick and dependent on others for so long. As Assembly of God woman preacher came in for major surgery and I was assigned to be her special nurse. Following her operation she awoke praising the Lord for sparing her life and asked me to read aloud from the Bible. I began to shake all over for, as a Roman Catholic nun, I was never allowed to read the Bible. Nevertheless I read to her daily for the ten days while she was hospitalized. I was assigned to nurse her at home also.
When she was able, I accompanied her to a church downtown. I had been taught that all non-Catholics were heretics; therefore I only sat at the edge. Because I went each night, my employer gave me a Bible of my own. At the house I got in the habit of going down in the basement to read. Finally I dropped to my knees and said, “If there is a God, I want you to show me.” Many nights I would read the Bible until the wee hours of the morning.
One night I dreamed about falling into the lake of fire and awoke screaming. My employer assured me God was trying to show me I was lost and needed to ask Jesus in my heart and be saved from all my sins. I dropped down on my knees and begged God not to let me die before I got saved.
I went to church one night, so under conviction that I was miserable. The preacher got up to read his text but I could bear it no longer. Leaping from my seat I raced to the altar sobbing and crying out repeatedly, “I don’t want to go to hell! Oh God, have mercy on me, I don’t want to go to hell!” I fell in a heap at the front and there I wept as I confessed all my rotten sins, my hatreds, bitterness, evil thoughts and deeds. I poured it all out, not caring who heard me.
What a refreshing and what a cleansing, as I asked for and received forgiveness. The Lord Jesus came into my heart and gave me salvation, full and free. Only those who have experienced being born again, being redeemed out of the hand of the enemy by the blood of Jesus Christ, can understand the supernatural glory, relief and joy which flooded my being that wonderful night.
My friend took me to the telegraph office where I sent a wire to my dad notifying him that I was no longer a Roman Catholic, for I had been gloriously saved by repenting of my sins and receiving Jesus Christ as my personal Saviour.
Three days later, sitting in my window at home, I looked up as a car screeched to a halt out front. My father and two Roman Catholic priests got out and came up the walk. Frightened, I ran quickly to the kitchen and told my friend that they were coming after me. She calmly told me to go to the door and invite them in. Because I was saved, she said there was nothing to fear.
I did as she said and ushered them into the living room. Dad immediately blurted out, “Charlotte, we’re come to take you home.” Incredulously I answered, “Dad, I’m not going home with you. I’m staying right here and will
continue to attend the church where I found salvation. I want to learn more about God and the gospel of Jesus Christ.” They had actually thought I was still the same mechanical robot I had been brainwashed to become in the convent!
My father looked distraught and said, “Charlotte, we’ve driven over 650 miles to come and take you home where you belong.” After I again told my dad very firmly that, under no circumstances was I going to return with them, the older of the two priest leaped to his feet. He shouted furiously at me, “Of course, you know what you have done! You’ve damned your soul and you’ll spend eternity in hell. One day you’ll crawl back to the Holy Roman Catholic church on your hands and knees and beg for novenas to be said for you. One day you’ll want to come to the confessional box and receive absolution for your horrible sins.”
I had had enough of his raving and threatening. I thrust my Bible out in front of him and challenged him. “If you can show me one scripture in the Holy Bible where God says I am to go to a man to confess my sins, I’ll get down on my knees beside you now and crawl back to a Roman Catholic Church!”
His face turned red as he sputtered in a towering rage, snatched the Bible from my hand and threw it to the floor. He slammed his foot on my beautiful Bible and spun around with all his weight, ripping it to pieces, breaking the binding. If he had put his foot on my face, I doubt that it would have hurt half as much as witnessing this. Through this Bible I had found the truth, and assurance of salvation.
If the Roman Catholic priests had the power, they would lead a house-to-house canvas, seize all the Bibles, soak them with gasoline and burn them all. When they come into power Bibles will not be permitted.
The priest began to pronounce all of the curses of the Roman Catholic excommunication upon me because I had worn a holy habit and dared to take it off. First he cursed my eyes, that they would rot and fall out of my head. I wept hysterically and fearfully, for as yet I did not know very much that the Bible teaches. When I escaped the convent I only had 4 percent vision in my left eye and eight percent in my right eye. I was practically blind because of the vicious treatment I received at the hands of the demonically driven Mother Superior; therefore this curse frightened me.
Next the priest cursed every vital organ in my body and commanded that maggots devour these organs. He droned on, “By the authority of God Almighty, the Father; the Son and the Holy Ghost, and of the holy canons and of all the undefiled; the Virgin Mary, Mother of God; and of all the apostles, evangelists and holy innocents, who in the sight of the Lamb are found worthy to sing the new canticles; and of all the holy martyrs and holy confessors; and all the holy handmaidens (those are the nuns and sisters) of the Lord, and of all the saints together with the elect of God; we excommunicate Charlotte from the threshold of the Roman Catholic Church; that she be tormented with eternal suffering forever, and that the fire which burns will never be quenched.
“May God the Father who created man, curse her; the Son of God who suffered for man, curse her; may the Holy Ghost Who was given us in baptism, curse her; may the holy cross which Christ descended triumphant over His enemies, curse her; may the Holy Mother of God, the perpetual Virgin Mary, curse her; may Saint Michael, Keeper of holy souls, curse her; may all the angels, the archangels, the principalities and powers and all the heavenly armies, curse her; may the praiseworthy rank of patriarchs and prophets, curse her; may Saint John the forerunner and baptizer of Christ and Saint Peter, Saint Paul, Saint Andrew and all of Christ’s apostles, together with the other disciples, even the four Evangelists, who by their preaching converted the entire world, curse her.”
“May the marchers and confessors, which by their good deeds are found pleasing to God, curse her. May the choirs of the holy handmaidens of the Lord, (nuns and sisters) who for the honor of Christ renounced as reprehensible the vanities of the world, curse her. May all of the saints who from the beginning of the world to the everlasting ages are found to be beloved of God, curse her. May the heavens and the earth and all the holy things remaining therein, curse her.
May she be cursed wherever she goes, whether it is in the house, whether she is in the field, whether she is in the roadway, whether she is in the path, whether she is in the woods, whether she is in the water, or whether she is in the church; may she be cursed in living, may she be cursed in eating, may she be cursed in drinking, in being hungry, in being thirsty, in fasting, in sleeping, in drowsing, in being awake, in walking, in standing, in sitting, in lying, in working, in resting.”
All this was spoken in Latin and some statements were so filthy it is not decent even to repeat them. Of course, all of this comes straight from the pits of hell. The other more filthy parts, omitted here, were easily mouthed by a Roman Catholic priest in his “holy” habit.
The curse continued: “May she be cursed in all the faculties of her body; may she be cursed inwardly and outwardly; may she be cursed in the hairs of her head; may she be cursed in her brains; may she be cursed in the crown of her head; in her temples, in her forehead; in her ears; in her eyebrows; in her cheeks; in her jawbones; in her nostrils; in her teeth, both the biters and the grinders; in her lips; in her throat; in her wrists; in her arms; in her hand; in her fingers; in her breasts; in her heart and all the interior parts down to the very stomach; in the kidneys; in the groin; in the thighs; in the hips; in the knees; in the legs; in the feet; and in her tonsils.”
“May she be cursed from the top of her head to the soles of her feet; let there be no soundness found in her; may Christ, the Son of the living God, curse her with all of the might of His holy office (this hurt me more than all the rest.)”
During all this tirade of cursing and denunciations, my poor father stood like a pale and tight-lipped statue. He was completely bound by the traditions, darkness, superstition, illiteracy and illegitimacy of Roman Catholicism. When the priest finished his horrible condemnation, I was shaking with fear and sobbing hysterically. Remember, I was just a babe in Christ and still had to be delivered of the terrible fears instilled by years of agony and pressure in the Roman Catholic system.
It was in 1946 when my father walked out the door with those two priests and I was left with a broken heart. I was numb, in a state of emotional shock, but went with my patient to a revival meeting that night. The message was on believers water baptism. This was all new to me, therefore I went to the pastor and requested a list of all the scriptures on water baptism.
I wanted to know the truth for I had come out of such gross error and needed to be sure of what the Bible taught. When we came home I went directly to the basement to search the scriptures and prayed that the Lord open my understanding. Through the night I studied and prayed, and by morning I knew I must be baptized in water as the scriptures taught.
The following night I went to church and was later baptized in the icy waters of the Mississippi River. As I came up out of the water, many infirmities, sicknesses and pains were miraculously removed from my body.
Later, at the church I learned about the baptism in the Holy Spirit. Again I requested and received a list of scriptures on this teaching. I plunged into another session of study in the basement to learn what God’s word taught.
Seven priests showed up at the home to bluff, stare at and threaten me. I cried all day long after they left until my face was swollen and eyes bloodshot. I was learning how strong and tenacious the old soul ties to a demonic religious system could be. Keep in mind that I was caught in this religious snare from birth and was soaked through and through with the power which energizes the wicked system.
I almost did not attend church that night, but went anyway. The sermon topic was the crucifixion of Christ and this repulsed me. I wanted to wait outside in the car, but the lady with whom I stayed urged me to come inside. To me, the cross was what I had learned to dread and hate.

Horrifying memories of the ghastly tortures, torment, abuse and suffering were associated with that rough, bloodsoaked cross in convent torture chambers. How many times had I cringed and groaned after flagellation with whips as Mother Superior forced the cruel metal crown of thorns on my scarred, bald head. Then loaded with a rough-hewn, heavy, eight foot cross dropped on my frail, lacerated back, I had to drag it, staggering across the room, until I collapsed. I was so weak I could never get very far.
There was another horror chamber two stories underground in the convent where several times I was forced to lie on the dirt floor in the form of a cross, without moving, for three days and three nights without food or water. During this time all the priests and nuns were there with Mother Superior and they repeatedly walked back and forth across my body. This painful and humiliating trial was supposed to teach me humility and submission and crush out pride. No wonder I shuddered and recoiled from hearing about the cross.
However, as I listened to the Biblical message on the meaning of the cross, it took on a whole new aspect. I was caught up in the awe as scriptures regarding it were expounded. By the time we got to the part where the Roman soldier pierced His side, I wept with real understanding of the bloody sacrifice Jesus had made for me. During the invitation I fell to my knees and asked for the baptism in the Holy Spirit.
Although I had always been very conscious about my haggard looks and lack of hair, this night at the church I did not care about my hair, dress or anything else. I ended up stretched out on that dirty floor weeping for over an hour. Many, many ungodly things came out of me during that time of heart searching. God dealt deeply with me as I laid my entire family on the altar, my brother, the ordained priest; my parents, sisters and other brothers. I asked the Lord to save them at any cost.
Once again, upon arrival at home, I went down in the basement to spend the time alone with the Lord. There I danced all night before the Lord. The next morning when the lady of the house came down to check on me she asked if I was hungry but I had lost my natural appetite. Each time I tried to answer her I spoke in tongues and could not speak English. For two days and nights this continued and I promised Jesus I would go anywhere He would send me to testify of His glory.
Three days before the revival meeting closed I was handed a telegram stating my father had died and gave the time of his funeral. My father disinherited me when I refused to go home with him and the two priests. I was afraid to go to the funeral and it was nearly seven hundred miles away, however I did send some flowers.
My mother had her personal banker set aside $12,000 of her own money for me when she learned that my father had cut me out of his will. I didn’t even know she had any money and when her attorney contacted me about it I
wept happily. With these funds I was able to buy a used car and a new cloth coat and I banked the rest.
Before she left town, Sister Nila, the young Pentecostal evangelist, invited me to come to see her if I was ever in Chicago. I told Sister Nila I planned to run an ad to sell my furniture and everything else in the apartment. The first morning two priest came, not to buy, but to harass. I had to threaten to call the police to get them to leave. The next morning another priest showed up, heckling and trying to frighten this ex-nun who had publicly gone to a Pentecostal altar.
I hired a woman to stay in my apartment until all was sold. I packed up and moved to a large hotel nearby. Here I knew the owner personally and gave orders to let no one come to my room. I could come to the lobby to see any visitors.
One morning the phone ran and I was told that three people had come to see me. When I came down, there stood my brother, the priest, dressed in his holy habit, with two of my sisters. The women turned their backs to me but he strode across the lobby towards me.
My mother had died from a stroke two weeks before. Furiously he spat at me, “I guess you know what you did.” He proceeded to belittle me and told me I was damned forever (because I had run to the feet of Jesus) and I would certainly burn in hell forever for this.
He further stated that I had sent my mother to an early grave. Imagine, my mother who had been a complete invalid for seven long years while I was imprisoned in a foreign convent! He raved on and made many nasty, hurtful statements and wild charges. After he had vented his spleen on me, he turned to walk away.
I caught him by the arm and said, “Now wait just a minute, Chet. How many women have you destroyed in the confessional box? I know about the priests who go to homes when the husbands are away.” He flushed angrily and glared at me with hatred in his eyes. I continued, “Chet, have you ever been in a convent? Did you ever rob a little sister of her virtue?”
He hissed curses under his breath, lunged for me and struck me viciously with his fist. He was over six feet tall, a big man, so I got a black eye and a huge knot on my head when he knocked me down. The man behind the desk witnessed the attack and leaped to my defence. He said terrible things to my brother and ordered him to get out of the hotel and never return.

I put my car and coat in a storage and caught a train to Chicago. There I found a hotel room near the meeting where Sister Nila was working. I went every night and then, at her invitation, went with her to visit her family. From there we went to a meeting in Wisconsin.
Several days later, an attorney called telling me that a member of my family was sueing me for all the money my mother had left to me. After a wrangle with lawyers and courts, they took all the money and my car and coat. I wept at the greediness and unfairness of it all, but it actually drew me closer to the Lord. I accepted Sister Nila’s invitation to travel with her for the next thirty months.
It was after I returned to the place where Sister Nila was in revival I received a telegram. My youngest sister asked me to return home because my dad was asking for me. Remember, earlier, I had wired a funeral wreath for him because they notified me that he had died, so this was a shock. My family deliberately led me to believe he was already dead. When I arrived, my sister told me that my dad was still alive, in his eighties, very independent and well off financially.
I was apprehensive about how he would react to me. However, when I saw him he grabbed and hugged me, saying, “Hookie, you look wonderful.” He was leaving on a trip to see his other children, but I was very happy for our reunion.
After he returned two months later, he wired me to come back to see him. When Sister Nila and I visited him, he asked my forgiveness for all the family had done to me. His heart was definitely softening toward me, but he still did not want my God.
Later, when we arrived on the West coast, I prayed until God gave me grace to call my brother, the Catholic priest. He then asked that I forgive him for striking me at the hotel. Late that night we drove twelve miles to his home, where he was waiting on the front steps. Dashing to the car, he grabbed and held me, asking anxiously, “Oh, Charlotte, have you forgiven me?” I assured him that I had.
I learned that for seven years he had lived in adultery with his housekeeper. As he heard confessions from his parishioners, he felt increasingly guilty and hypocritical. At last, he notified the pope that he was leaving the Roman Catholic church and the priesthood. A bishop came to urge him to retire to a South American monastery to reflect on and reconsider his decision, but he refused.
Six months after his excommunication he married his mistress. One day while browsing in a second hand bookstore he purchased a King James Bible. Through reading it, both he and his wife were brought to salvation by faith in Jesus Christ.
He took me to see my sister Connie, who immediately said, “I don’t want anything you have. I’m a Roman Catholic, and I’ll die a Roman Catholic.” She pushed me away. Eighteen months later she was taken to the hospital for a double goitre operation. Her vocal chords were severed, destroying her voice box and she went blind in both eyes. Six weeks later arthritis struck, twisting both her hands and feet. Medical doctors helped to straighten her feet but she still could not walk or talk. A therapist worked with her a year to teach her how to speak again. I gave a Bible which she quickly destroyed.
She heard of an eye doctor in Mexico and went to him. A series of operations restored her sight but she still refused to repent and seek the Lord. In 1964, she awoke with terrible pains and they removed a sizeable growth from the large intestine. Within ten days she was back home, but would not turn to God. Two years went by and she was again seized with awful pains. This time tests revealed cancer scattered throughout her entire body.
In desperation and fear she called me to come and pray for her healing. I went to her and advised her to ask God for forgiveness and prepare to meet Him, for she was surely going to die. Her weeping family was gathered around her and she cries out in terror, “Oh no! I’m so afraid, I’m afraid, won’t someone please help me, I’m so afraid!” She knew she was dying and dropped into eternity crying out in despair and fear. How tragic to have refused the Lord’s mercy so many times. Six weeks after the funeral, her husband went to a small church and cried out to the Lord, was saved and filled with the Holy Spirit also.
Over the years I had received many hate letters from my family and each time I received another one and read it I would become terribly upset. Finally I stopped opening them and stored them in a box located in a safe. Four years passed and I received another letter from my youngest sister. This one I felt I should open and read. She was critically ill and said that she believed if I would come home she would get well. She asked my forgiveness for all the harsh and derogatory letters she had previously written to me.
At their house my brother-in-law and niece came out to meet me and it was obvious that he was broken and his heart was tender. He swept me into a close embrace, lifting me from the ground as we both wept for joy. He had diagnosed her trouble as inoperable stomach cancer and there was no hope.
My sister, a petite, five-foot woman, could keep nothing on her stomach and looked very gaunt and wasted. I assured her that God wanted to save and heal her and she need not die. We took her to Brother William Branham’s meetings in Vanadalia.

I was up all night with my poor suffering sister. Finally we got her into the prayer line where many miracles of healing were being performed in the name of the Lord Jesus. When she received prayer, she dropped to the ground, weeping loudly. Anxiously I asked what was wrong and she sobbed, “Oh, Charlotte, God has healed me, God has healed me!”
She was hungry and we went to a restaurant to eat. She ate a good big meal, had a wonderful night’s sleep and awoke with no trace of her former pain or sickness.
When we arrived back home, her husband had difficulty believing that the miracle had actually been accomplished. However, when the doctor made fresh x-rays, he announced, “Your wife is well from the top of her head to the soles of her feet. A greater power than I has healed her.” Weeks later my sister and her husband were saved and became workers in a local church.
I went to visit my father when he was 93 years old. He told me that if I was going to church he wanted to go with me. Three weeks earlier he had completely lost his eyesight for the second time. After we returned from the services we were sitting in the living room when he began to tremble all over. I quickly dropped to my knees beside his chair and talked with him about receiving Christ as Saviour. I read scripture showing that Jesus alone could give absolution for sin, not the priests or the catholic hierarchy. He fell to his knees and sobbed many tears as he followed me in the sinner’s prayer, asking Jesus Christ to save him and forgive his sins. Then he wept for joy saying he had never felt so wonderful in all his life. I was going to baptize him in the bathtub but my two brothers walked in and stopped me.
My brother John, lying in a bed dying with leukemia, told me he was a Roman Catholic and would die a Roman Catholic. I was with him praying when he slipped out into a Christless eternity. My older brother later left the Roman Catholic church and began to attend an evangelical church and accepted Christ as Saviour. He wrote me, encouraging me to continue giving my testimony and saying he was praying for me.
My older sister lies crippled with Parkinson’s disease in a Hollywood hospital and is dying with hardening of the arteries. She too is a staunch and determined Roman Catholic, totally closed to the gospel message of salvation.
While Sister Nila and I were ministering to Roman Catholics in Quebec, my eyesight, already poor, gave way completely. I could no longer read my Bible or even my watch. As we swung back through Maine and into Boston I stopped to see an eye specialist whom my father had used to fit me with glasses years before. I told him I was losing all my vision so he ran tests and shook his head and said he could do nothing to help me. I was going blind and I so needed to read and study the Word.

We went to a meeting and had prayer for my eyes. I just knew God was working a miracle when the clock on a distant wall suddenly came into focus. Excitedly, I took a Bible and opened it, and sure enough, I read it easily. There was great rejoicing and praise to the Lord Jesus that day I can tell you!
On our return trip I once more stopped to see the eye doctor and asked him to examine me once more. Imagine his shock when I was able to easily read the fine print on the bottom of his charts instead of the large block printed letters at the top. Because of this, later he went to church and sought and received the baptism in the Holy Spirit.
Since I was saved in 1946, I have daily prayed for God to move upon the Roman Catholic Bishops, the Pope, prelates, priests, nuns and people. They all desperately need the touch of the Lord in their lives and the saving blood of Jesus Christ to wash away their sins. They labor under a terrible yoke of deception, delusion, darkness and religious works, never suspecting the liberating truths we know, of life in the Lord Jesus Christ.
Today I can still burst into praise when I recall my wonderful salvation and deliverance from unbelievable demonic bondage. Thank God, there are no more Roman Catholic priests in my life; no more confessional boxes; no more worship of and prayer to the Virgin Mary and all the other “saints;” no more wafer god.
Thank God! No more purgatory (the only purgatory the Catholics face is the priest’s pocket.) In the United States, November is purgatory month and during this period priests collect nearly $22,000,000.00 saying masses for the dead. Many have paid regularly for twenty or twenty-five years of masses and are told their loved ones are still not in heaven. This terrible doctrine will force the faithful to pay and pay and pay indefinitely to secure their release. It is one of the cruellest religious hoaxes ever dreamed up by the demons to be foisted off on human victims. The awful bondage and fear generated by this false teaching is incredible.
No more scapulars, thank God! Every priest, bishop, every nun in open or closed orders and all prelates of the Roman Catholic Church wear them. It is a dirty piece of brown cloth with a hole in the middle of the top. Your head goes through the hole and the scapular falls to the front and back. From the time I entered a convent I wore one constantly. Even after escaping from the overseas convent and returning to the United States I still wore the scapular.
The night I heard the gospel and ran to the feet of Jesus for salvation I was still wearing it. I raced home, undressed, ripped off the scapular and burned it. I no longer needed that relic of past bondage and darkness for I

knew I now belonged to the family of God and His royal blood flowed through my veins!
No more holy water! This was supposed to keep away all evil spirits and was stored in the convents by the barrel. Following priests’ visits in the buildings, Mother Superior would give six or eight nuns bottles of the holy water with orders to sprinkle it everywhere the priests had walked, just in case they had brought some evil spirits in with them.
No more prostrating and blowing to dumb idols in prayer and supplication! God only knows how many hours I spent and how many gallons of tears I wasted at the feet of idols when I walked in the heathen darkness of religion without reality. Now I bow my knees only to the lovely Son of God, my Saviour, Jesus Christ. To Him be all glory, honor and praise, now and evermore.

Posted in PURE EVIL, WICKED AND DEMONIC ACTIVITIES IN THE ROMAN CATHOLIC CONVENTS EXPOSED BY A FORMER NUN WHO MANAGED TO ESCAPED! | Tagged: | 13 Comments »

A TRUE AND REMARKABLE TESTIMONY EXPOSING SATANISM AND DEVIL WORSHIP IN THE ROMAN CATHOLIC CHURCH

Posted by ItsHellWithoutJESUS on September 5, 2009

559

Foreword

Glory, honour, power, majesty and thanksgiving be to our Lord Jesus-Christ for the free gift of the salvation of my soul ! By seeking an easy life, power and luxury, I fell into the snares of the Devil, and became so entangled in them that I could not turn back by my own strength. Today, thanks to the Lord’s grace and lovingkindness, I have turned toward his admirable light. What shall I render to the Lord for all His benefits toward me ? (Psalm 116 : 12). Therefore my mouth shall not stay closed, and I will proclaim out loud His mighty works, for my “soul has escaped as a bird from the snare of the fowlers ; the snare is broken and we have escaped” (Psalm 124 : 7). “But as it is written : eye has not seen, nor ear heard, nor have entered into the heart of man the things which God has prepared for those who love Him” (1Corinthians 2:9).  Brother BAKAJIKA MUANA NKUBA

MY BEGINNINGS IN MAGIC

Biographical Notice

Born September 22, 1959, at a Catholic mission in MIKALAYI, in west Kasai province (Zaire), I am the fourth of a family of ten children, and I became the oldest son after our eldest brother’s death. Ten years later, in 1969, I was baptised at the parish of Saint Bruno in KANANGA, and with much zeal was brought up in the Catholic doctrine. Gentle and peaceful, I began to serve the mass at church. Our parish priest enrolled us with children our own age in a movement called “The Crusaders”. This movement had for objectives the veneration of the cross and devoted selfsacrifice towards the parish and the community. After the “Crusaders”, I moved on to the “Kiro” and to the “Scouts”, and ended up being a zealous acolyte for the service of the mass. Everyone spoke of my peaceful character in order to influence me into becoming a priest. My oldest brother died when I was in the fifth grade. This event provoked in me a strong feeling of revolt, because all the hope that my family had placed in my brother collapsed. Day by day I felt the desire for revenge grow within me because of my brother’s death. This feeling grew much stronger as time passed. Without my parents’ knowledge, I began to consult witch doctors and practice magic to earn a living and to unmask my brother’s murderer. But all of my efforts brought me no satisfaction. Therefore I consulted a soothsayer and began to communicate with the dead while hiding in the restroom. But this did not allow me to discover the object of my search. It is in this manner that I opened up a door to the Devil who laid a trap before me. I fell into it, because the Devil had succeeded in planting inside of me one of his seeds : WORRY.

In Search of the Mysterious

From the moment I began to have contacts with the soothsayer, I began to practice deep meditations. Since I had begun at the elementary level of conversing with spirits in the restroom, I engaged myself further into the depths of Satan. Driven by an insatiable desire, I made contact with a young man who lived near my home whose name was NTUMBA DUCOUP. He invoked the river Mermaid (Mami Wata). His power enabled him to accomplish great marvels and miracles, and using his magical techniques he could produce bank notes, wristwatches, and all sorts of jewellery which he used for protection, love, business and many other matters. Although I  looked into all these things and touched them with my hands, my heart was not appeased. I felt compelled to continue in my search until my thirst was quenched. I would visit him in the late hours of the night, and no one suspected me. Nevertheless there were some people who noticed, but everyone in my neighbourhood defended me because of my reserved character. During the entire time I called upon the Mermaid, my desire wasn’t satisfied, and I continued to feel an emptiness within me. “Stagnant waters devour men”, a proverb says. No one could accuse me of anything, because everyone would have testified favourably for me. This is why I exhort my brothers and sisters in the Lord to always judge by the Spirit, and not after the appearance (1 Corinthians 2 : 10-11).

During all this time with the Mermaid, I did everything to push my enquiries further. I went as far as to knock on the doors of renown witch doctors in KANANGA, who were able to unleash lightning in a supernatural manner, and accomplish various marvellous works. For example, they would ask me to stand on an earthen cooking pot. The pot wouldn’t break under my weight, but would carry me around the house. However, I could never discover who had murdered my oldest brother. I withdrew from all these things when I discovered they couldn’t answer my question. But I continued to search, and this search led me ever more deeply into the depths of darkness.

A Happy Discovery

The mandate of the parish priest we had known expired. Two more Fathers succeeded him. I continued to be a diligent acolyte, and I was well understood. Then we received another priest. He was of Italian origin, and related to a Catholic priest we had had several years before. Furthermore, he was one of Pope Paul VI’s nephews. He became rapidly fascinated by my personality and became particularly interested in me. He liked to call me in order to talk with me about my life, my future plans, etc. He was a man of gigantic height, hospitable and good. But behind the imposing stature of this priest were hidden some very profound mysteries. One Sunday after the mass, he made an appointment for me to meet him at his home after 7 PM. I was delighted to be invited by our Father Priest, and did everything to be on time. I knew that our discussion would be about the parish’s activities. But things took a different turn. That evening we ate together. Then he began to speak in these terms : “Out of all the young people of the parish, I like you a lot. That’s why I’ve called you to talk to you about important matters that will help shape your goals in life. But I have noticed that your life is in danger, and that’s the reason why I called you here in order to warn you. Your big brother was murdered by nine members of your family, all of them sorcerers, and now they are relentlessly pursuing you.  Consequently, I want to protect you from their schemes.” He listed their names. I was convinced of the truth of his words, for certain areas of the country were mentioned which the father didn’t know about. I eagerly stared at the priest’s tanned face. I had finally reached my goal ! I was happy to discover what I was searching for, and at last I knew my brother’s murderers ! But now another problem arose : I was in mortal danger. What could I do to protect myself ? That’s the question I asked the priest, after a time of reflection. He answered that it wasn’t a serious problem, that he possessed all the necessary means to save me, but it was to be a matter of discretion. I swore to him my faithfulness and discretion. That very evening, he gave me a little 10 by 6 cm cardboard image which represented a richly dressed young boy. An inscription underneath read : ‘Prayer to the child Jesus of Prague’. The other side featured a printed prayer in three sequences. I was to recite it every morning after awakening, and every evening before going to sleep, expressing the intention of being protected. This was to give me a guarantee of spiritual as well as physical protection. I accorded a very special consideration towards the priest. I saw in him a man who spoke with God. I was twelve years old when I was introduced into all of these mysteries, and in the sixth grade. Several days later, the priest told me that I could use this prayer for my studies in the following way : I was to write down the names of all the students of my class and give them a grade of my choice. Then by reciting the prayer over the list thus established, I could set the students’s grade order. When test results were given out, it was as if the teacher were reading from the paper I had written in advance. That is how I always obtained the grade level of my choice. Therefore I invite Christian parents to pray a lot for their children who go to school. Perhaps they are intelligent, but aren’t succeeding in obtaining good grades. Instead of reproaching them, pray for them, for you do not know to which diabolical power they can be submitted to. Prayer is the greatest power on earth. I rejoiced greatly in this marvellous discovery, which the priest called : the only real form of magic. When I heard him pronounce the word magic, I desired to know more because I thought that it was God who acted thus in our favour. He told me simply to let him work so that I could discover the secret of an easy life. These are the bonds I found myself entangled in. I thought it was God who gave the only real form of magic, that it was He who revealed secrets, who gave success in all human enterprises, and who did it for free, because he loved the sons of men.

The thief does not come except to steal, and to kill, and to destroy… (John 10 : 10)

I was irresistibly swept towards death without even realizing it. Everything came so easily to me, sustained in every way by God, unconditionally, without any cost or sacrifice… But it was the thief who was enticing me out of the sheepfold. His emissary was this priest who displayed every appearance of piety. The thief had taken hold of me at the revealing of the names of the sorcerers in my family. It was this very thing which had convinced me that the truth was found in this priest, this man of God, as everyone thought. Since the thief had taken hold of me and had enticed me out of the sheepfold, the consequence was that I began to experience repugnance towards the idea of God, the mass, etc. I started to go less and less to the parish. Having been brought back into the fold by some of the priest’s emissaries, I resumed my activities while waiting to be slaughtered, that is, waiting until I would reach a stage where it would no longer be possible for me to say no, or turn back, because of the innumerable revelations received, and the ease in clearing through certain obstacles of life, or the control exercised over mystical occultic forces, etc. The destruction takes place when one signs a pact with the Devil. This one then stamps his mark on the spirit and takes complete control of a man’s nature. From that moment one is bound for destruction in hell, in full awareness.

A methodical treatise of practical Magic

My master knew of my worry for gaining more and more knowledge. One day he told me that we were to move on from the elementary level to the middle one. That same day he gave me a big book entitled Methodical Treatise of Practical Magic. This was an additional window into the mystical occultic world ! This book contained many formulas and prayers to solve all types of every day life problems, to hypnotize people, to trouble man’s normal vision of things, and to accomplish certain little miracles such as : transforming sand into sugar, sheets of paper into paper money, pieces of tree leaves into razor blades, making eggs, and different other things. From time to time I would give razors to my father, who never failed to be surprised in seeing totally green razor blades, the colour of the leaves I had used. Always in this domain, I learned how to invoke different types of spirits who live on various stars and planets. Thus the moon is inhabited by spirits whose role is to arouse love. On Jupiter there are spirits of division whose role is to give illnesses, to sow division, or to supply warrior spirits to defend their protégé. The spirits who live on the planet Mercury have the task of inducing lust, and exciting everything which pleases a man’s eye. The spirits of the sun give different illnesses notably dropsy, migraine headaches, etc.

How I manufactured paper money

I indulged in practising all of this in order to prove that I had become a man above all other men. This gave me a type of malicious pride which was very difficult to discern. I would produce paper money for myself using a duplicating paper that I would cut into the size of the bills I wanted. Then I would cover the stack with a white handkerchief, light two red candles, and recite a certain prayer. Five minutes later, I would obtain the money. However I had to spend it before sundown, whatever the amount I had made. Otherwise I risked falling ill or experiencing a momentary mental trouble.

How I was “living my life”

Now that I was opening up to the world I had “ to live my life”, according to the common expression used by the young people of my generation. But it is Jesus Christ who is the Life (John 14 : 6). As for me, to “live my life” meant throwing myself into a life of dissipation. I used other prayers to seduce women. After having performed several magical operations, all I needed to do was to write a letter to the young woman of my choice. Whatever her past reticence might have been, she would always give in to my solicitations, because my letter  had been written after having pronounced an occultic mystical invocation. On another occasion, I would also invoke one of the spirits who lived habitually on the moon, in order to captivate the spirit of a young woman. Some times later, without my having to do anything else, the young woman would start looking for me. She had been manipulated by the spirits I had invoked upon her, to the point where she would fall into my power.

How I got rid of my conquests

When I wanted to get rid of a young woman I had seduced, all I had to do was perform a ceremony and pronounce an invocation, in order for the woman’s passion to extinguish itself like a red hot iron in water. She could then never again pursue me. It is interesting to mention that this invocation was addressed to a spirit named Adonai, that is, one of the Lord’s names in the Bible. But that is just a counterfeit in order to seduce.

How I made my problems go away

When I was faced with a serious problem I would recite another prayer in order to calm things down. This prayer was always done at midnight . I would then see the problem diminish until it completely disappeared. If the problem had been brought before a court, I proceeded in the same manner. The very next day, all of the judges, the assistance and even my adversaries had changed their mind in my favour.

How I provoked divisions and divorces

To provoke divisions and divorces, we used spirits living on the planet Jupiter. When these spirits were sent into a home, they would provoke discord, and would push one of the spouses into becoming overtly stubborn to the point of divorce. Similarly, intimate friends could be driven to quarrel for the smallest pretext and then go on their separate ways.

How I was helped in fights

In order to have strength, I would invoke the spirits living on Jupiter. At a crucial moment, I could send 10,000 spirits of this type to fight in my place. All I needed to do was to watch what was happening with my arms crossed. But for the spectators, it was I who was doing the fighting. This is the same phenomenon that is used by certain people for boxing matches, wrestling, karate, etc. Everything that I have just described to you is just a small sample of the exercising of practical magic which I had learned in this book.

The special prayer of Saint Charlemagne

First of all, it is striking to see in this title the word “Saint”. No one ignores who was Charlemagne. He was an emperor, a man of war, who never served God in anything but who today is called “Saint”. I will use this case to demonstrate that all of those whom the world calls “saints” are in reality just demons ! According to the tradition, this prayer, engraved on a stone, was to have been found by the emperor Charlemagne inside the tomb of Jesus. It supposedly gave him the victory over all of his adversaries. We used this prayer to ward off all “diabolical influences”, against fetishes, and it made us invulnerable. When a woman had labour pains, we would go to her and recite this prayer three times. The pains would be calmed until she gave birth. To heal a sick person, we would place the text at the foot of his bed and he would heal very rapidly. In order to find out if a patient was going to die or if he’d get better, we would recite the prayer while holding two bouquets of flowers in our hands. Then we would approach the patient while holding these flowers. If the patient began to laugh, it was the sign he was going to die. If he wept, it meant he was going to recover. A copy of this prayer was hung in my father’s living room, to protect the house and its occupants against any evil spell. I can recount here an event which has remained in the memory of my entire family. One day, a paternal uncle used his magical powers to make lightning strike our house, but no one was hurt. We attributed our survival to the protection the prayer had given us. One must know that in our ethnic group, certain people are capable of causing such artificial lightning to strike in order to kill people or to destroy their property.

How I saved a friend

Near the beginning of the year 1972, I had a friend with whom I shared all of my sorrows and joys, except for the secret of my occultic powers. One day, the spirits told me that this friend had had a spell cast upon him and that his death had already been decided. Since I liked him a lot, I had compassion on him and asked the spirits if there were a way to save him. Anything was possible according to them, but in order to do that it was necessary for him to live through the scene of his death, before he could be saved. I was asked to go out with him one Saturday night, in order to return home later in the evening. That day, on the way home, we were to go through a small valley before returning to our house. While we were on the other side of the hill, we saw some people far off surrounding a corpse and weeping. We came near, noticing that this gathering was located within the valley, not at the village. Suddenly we realized that the lifeless body was Page 18 my friend’s, who was, however, alive by my side. Having seen this, he was seized with fright and turned to embrace me under the weight of emotion. At the same time, we saw on a nearby tree, an entirely naked man climbing the tree while leaning on his posterior. After careful examination, we recognized him to be the customary chief of our village. He saw we had recognized him but he did not want to let us go. He laid a trap to take our lives by means of a demon who as waiting for us nearby. Since I was in perfect communication with my spirits, I was immediately warned of the danger we were in. I asked them for immediate protection. I saw then a dwarf carrying a very big package on his head. We had just barely avoided him, for it was he who had been charged with a mission against us. His package contained the spirits of all the people who had been killed by the village sorcerers and the dwarf was their supreme chief. My friend was very frightened of all these things we had seen, and it was not possible for him to sleep by himself, so I brought him home with me. I spent the entire night talking to the spirits in order to know the final stage of my friend’s delivery. To do this I had to speak to a maternal cousin because it was he who cooked the flesh of sorcery victims. I had to ask him to give back my friend’s flesh. The next morning was a Sunday. Before going to the mass at 9 AM, I sent for this Page 19 cousin in order to have a meeting with him, but he energetically denied the truth. The spirits told me to let him go and call him back at 6 PM. to order for him to obey. Indeed, after 6 PM, all the sorcerers are in perfect communication with the spiritual world. After this conference with the demons, I went to church to serve the mass and to carry on with the youth activities, not knowing that I was no longer a child of God because of these practices (Leviticus 20 : 6). That evening, at 6 PM. I called my cousin again, this time with a different kind of determination. I started up again our morning conversation, but my cousin still denied. So as not to lose any more time, I ordered his spirit of sorcery to fetch the cooking pot where my friend’s flesh was prepared. This spirit left while my cousin pretended to be sleeping with his physical body. This spirit had to steal the pot, because he hadn’t been authorized to make its contents disappear. The sorcerers’s assembly was taking place at a rock quarry. When the spirit came back with the cooking pot, he let some drops of sauce fall all along the road which led to the quarry. When my cousin pretended to awake from his sleep, we saw in front of us a pot full of stew. I called the spirits, who came to give back the flesh, though already prepared, to its owner, that is, my friend. Then they carried the pot away. Several minutes later, they came back to tell me that some sauce had fallen on the road, and that anyone who would touch it would die. Finding myself somewhat responsible of the death of all the innocent people who would go to the quarry, I asked if something could be done. They promised me to remove all the sauce at 9 PM. At 9 PM, there was a strong rainfall. During that time, the spirits worked to remove the sauce. But they also removed all the adjoining earth which, according to them, was also already poisoned. Their work caused the formation of ravines, to the extent that the road has remained impracticable until this day. This explains the problems we have every day on our roads. Today we repair, but two weeks later there are still holes. The inhabitants criticize those whose responsibility is to build roads, but it’s not their fault. When magicians and sorcerers work all night long, and when they want to remove what could cause a public danger, they take away even part of the road, thereby the presence of holes…

The cemetery I achieve new heights

In the beginning of the year 1973 started for me the most serious and deep events that were to mark my life as a magician, and led me to discover the mysterious world beyond. One Sunday after the mass, the parish priest, my master of initiation, gave me a rendezvous at his home at 7 PM. Faithful to the appointment, I came on time. He received me kindly and offered dinner. Then he told me the following : “I promised to show you greater things, and to establish you in life. Are you courageous ?” I answered affirmatively. Then he asked me if I would accompany him somewhere. Again I answered affirmatively. After these words, he told me that we were going to visit the cemetery. He commanded me not to look neither right nor left, nor behind me, on the way over and back. I was to walk in front of him until the entrance of the cemetery. There, he was to go before me to enter the cemetery. We both put on a white frock. A moment later he handed me a flask of perfume called “Aoussarabia” and we poured it on our bodies. Right afterwards he gave me a bell and took one for himself. We were to ring these bells all along the way. These are the bells which are used during the Catholic mass. Before leaving his house he took the time to recite a certain prayer, and we left. I was afraid to be seen going to the cemetery with the priest, because the street that led to it was frequently used, even up until late at night. But, to my big surprise, we didn’t meet anyone along the way. At the entrance of the cemetery, I stopped and he went before me. I was to enter before him, with orders to ring the bell at each step. We walked to the middle of the cemetery and there he asked me to kneel with him. He began to recite prayers, while invoking the first person who had been buried in the cemetery. I listened to him courageously. Several instants later, we saw someone coming to answer him. He asked him why he had been called. The priest answered that he wanted to contact the “invisible” world, because he was accompanied by a visitor, in this case, me. The spirit gave him his agreement. He then changed invocations, in order to call “Boss BOMBARD”. Suddenly, a big earthquake took place, and a very strong wind began to blow. In the face of these unusual events, I took fright. Having noticed it, he reassured me. Suddenly, a booming voice, deep and authoritarian, was heard, but it was difficult for me to localize it. This voice spoke to the priest in this manner : “Why are you bothering me ?” He then answered that he had come with the “youngster” whom he had told him about. As for me, I couldn’t understand any of this. Next, BOMBARD addressed me by name. However this name had not been given to him since we were there. The voice told me : “BAKAJIKA, why are you here ?” Ignoring the reason of my presence at the cemetery, I mumbled that I had come to accompany the priest. He told me to wait, and was going to tell me what I was supposed to do. Then I heard the priest and the voice converse in a language I didn’t understand. Once this conversation had ended, BOMBARD said to me : “BAKAJIKA, we can see that inside of you there are many doubts. But, in order to show you that serious things happen here, ask me what you want, and I will fulfil it immediately.” My ardent desire had always been to avenge my big brother’s death. So I said to him : “My big brother is buried in this cemetery. I want to see him and speak to him.” He made me wait one minute, then I saw with my very eyes my eldest brother, who had been dead for four years. He asked me the following question : “Why are you looking for me ?” I answered him that I wanted to know more about the circumstances of his death. He answered me this : “You are already an important man, since you’ve already made it up to here. It’s not up to me to answer you, because you’ll know more about it”. With these words, he disappeared. Then BOMBARD again spoke to me : “You are going to buy me 30 bottles of Aoussarabia perfume, and you will bring them to me. Then, you will no longer use practical magic, because now good things have started happening to you.” He promised to reveal secrets to me which I didn’t know. Before leaving the cemetery, the priest asked me to pick up a little bit of sand on any tomb around. Back at the house, the priest entered first, walking backwards. I had to follow him also going backwards. He asked me to throw some sand on the ground, in a manner to block the entrance to the house. Inside, I asked him why we hadn’t met anyone while going to the cemetery. He told me that he had removed all the passers-by by pronouncing the prayer just before our departure. Then I asked him what was the use of the sand taken from a tomb. He told me that it made a barrier so that all the spirits of the cemetery couldn’t reach us. I was very curious to know to whom I was going to give the perfume, and how I was to proceed, for I hadn’t seen anyone ; I had just heard a voice. The priest assured me that I was to deliver the perfume myself into the hands of the one who had spoken to me.

Some new occultic favours

I ran to my father, asking him for the amount of money necessary to buy the perfume. Since he was aware of my diligence at school, he didn’t hesitate to give me the money. Two days later, I was at the priest’s home with my package of perfume. We prepared to go to the cemetery, like the first time. At 8 PM, we were at the cemetery. The priest prayed and did his invocations, and the same earthquake took place. Our invisible speaker came and asked us the motif of our presence. The priest said that I was here with the asked-for perfume. He asked me to come forward a few steps and place the package on the ground. This having been executed, I saw the package disappear before my eyes. Having congratulated me for my efforts, BOMBARD promised to chose a place in my room, that would be a sort of mailbox where I would receive the correspondences that were addressed to me. He promised to send me a prayer book that I was to learn by heart for three months, as well as a magic chain and some magic powder. A letter from the invisible world : Two days later, I found at the foot of my bed a letter written by BOMBARD, which informed me of my postal box number (P.O. Box OO/ 0045+) and my telephone number (0011/0012, General Direction, INDIA). I was to send this letter back into the invisible world after having taken knowledge of its contents, because anyone who read it would have to die. This General Direction was located at 102 Cemetery Road, in the invisible world.

How I communicated with the invisible world

Telephone communication was assured by means of an apparatus resembling a walkietalkie, but as small as a matchbox, or again with a magic chain which bore a cross. When one put the end of the cross in one’s mouth, one entered in contact with the invisible world. This same chain could kill people, if one struck them with it. Two days later, the people thus hit would die after a small bout of fever. One could also heal the sick by putting the chain around their neck.

I receive the prayer book

A week later, at midnight, while I was sleeping, I heard as if in a dream, something fall at the foot of my bed. I jumped and realised that the promised prayer book was there. This place was therefore indeed the location of my magic postal box. The book’s cover carried some very significant drawings. My name was printed at the top of the cover : BAKAJIKA MUANA NKUBA. Underneath was represented a closed coffin, in which was laid a corpse. A cross rose above the coffin, at the top of which a bird was perched. Underneath the coffin, fourteen little crosses were aligned horizontally. The coffin and the corpse signified that all my activities would be centralised from the cemetery, place where the dead are buried. The bird perched on the cross indicated that it was from the cemetery that we were to fly away to the invisible world. The book contained a series of sixteen prayers which I would need for my activities : to go to the cemetery, to invoke the invisible world, to speak with the dead, to be successful in matters of love, to produce miracles, make money, etc. I would have to do my best to memorize all these prayers during the three following months. The next morning at 6 : 30 AM, I went to the priest’s to give my report. During our conversation, he told me that each time I read a phrase of these prayers, the inhabitants of the invisible world were alerted. I told him that in this case, I was going to torment them constantly. He assured me that the invisible world wouldn’t hold it against me, because it knew that I was in the learning process. Three months went by, to my great satisfaction, because I had memorized and mastered each one of those prayers. The day arrived when I had to confirm all of my knowledge at the cemetery. I told my initiator that I was ready. It was thus decided that we would go to the cemetery to prove to BOMBARD that I had learned my prayers well. During the preparation of our visit, the priest told me that, this time, I was to pronounce the invocations.

My new visit to the cemetery

Having arrived at the cemetery, the priest let me speak. I pronounced the invocation twelve times, but without results. At the thirteenth time, I heard an earthquake and the strong wind blowing. Then our speaker ended up answering us : “BAKAJIKA, why are you bothering me ?” I answered him that I had come to show him that I had mastered the prayers well. He then asked me to recite all of them to him, from the first to the last. When I finished, he congratulated me, but formally forbade me to show the book to anyone who wasn’t one of us. Because anyone who simply looked at the book had to die. He authorized me to invoke or to visit the cemetery at my own will, and to ask for anything I wanted, as the prayers indicated . He then gave me the matchbox- sized apparatus, to enter into direct communication with them, any time. This apparatus came into my hand by means unknown to me. Then he added : “Before I give you the authorization to use the prayers, you must be baptised.” Therefore I left the place we were kneeling, and I went farther into the cemetery. There I noticed an old bottle of Johny Walker whisky filled with water. BOMBARD commanded me to wash my entire body in this water. I did it and noticed that the water never diminished in the bottle.

I exert new powers

That day, I returned home bursting with joy at the perspective of now having my future so largely opened before me. That same day, in my room, I attempted to ask for money, for it was my first and foremost desire. I therefore used one of the prayers to ask for 5,000 Zaires. This amount arrived in my “postal box” around midnight. I was in bed when the sound of the package falling in my room made me jump. I looked inside the package : it contained several stacks of bills. I hurried to verify its contents. There were effectively 5,000 Zaires, which was a fortune at the time. The world was opening before me ! This money was dissipated in drinking and in chasing girls, etc. When it was spent, I again asked the invisible world for more money, which was given to me on the spot. Thanks to it I established a privileged position for myself among my schoolmates and friends. All I needed was to make a little prayer in order for my pockets to be filled with bills. My fortune grew in such a way that at sixteen years old, I was able to buy my first Ford automobile. I was in permanent contact with the invisible world, either by the cemetery, or either by my special telephone. My activities grew in intensity, and those around me were in astonishment.

How I was protected

Until then, no special kind of danger had manifested itself. The priest gave me encouraging advice and said nothing more, except to remain very discrete. I had become a familiar of the cemetery, and I could now go there alone, without any more fear. I could invoke anyone buried there and converse with them on any subject of my choice. I even ignored that I had already acquired great power, which made me invulnerable to witch doctors and their witchcraft. This privileged position had provoked hatred within my family circle. Those who had caused my brother’s death were jealous of me. They looked for a way to get to me in order to hurt me, but they never had a chance. They plotted with a great witch doctor from KANANGA , known for his power to provoke supernatural lightning, in an attempt to annihilate my power. When I entered his house, he gave me a clay pot, in which he had prepared his mixture. He said that he loved me, and that he wanted to give me a protection against all occultic power. This pot had, in principle, the power to transport me and move me around, while stripping me of my power. When I stood on the pot, it broke. He became violently angry and expelled me from his home. His name was LUKINU, which signifies HATE in our language. Several sorcerers and witch doctors invited me each by turn, only to find their power to be destroyed. Before leaving my father’s house, my family and I were attacked by lightning sent by LUKINU in order to kill us. It had been requested by a paternal uncle named MUKENDI, with the complicity of one of my maternal aunts named BIUMA. This attempt failed because I was present in the house that evening.

DEEP CALLS UNTO DEEP

The invisible world

In 1976, the priest called me to inform me of the expiration of his term in Zaire. He said he didn’t want to abandon me along the way, in his own words. Therefore we were now to make a giant step so as to attain the final goal. However I thought I had reached the summit of my powers, and I was surprised to find out I still had things to learn. I made an appointment with him to go to the cemetery at midnight.

Our astral projection

When we left at midnight, the priest took along a small rectangular carpet. Arriving at the cemetery, he invoked the first dead person to have been buried here, inviting him to do his job, for we were going to travel. After another invocation, he gave me a sign and asked me to sit with him on the carpet. Immediately, we were split. Our bodies stayed at the cemetery, guarded under the care of the first buried person, and in our spirit we went to the invisible occultic world. We found ourselves in a very beautiful world that I had never seen in all of my life, and in a very beautiful city. We strolled along the wide, well-planned and embellished avenues. There were giant buildings with very refined decorations. We entered Cemetery Street, and at number 102 found ourselves at the headquarters of the General Direction of Magic. We were received with pomp.

I see my interlocutors

Already, from the threshold of the building, I was surprised to see my photograph, in large dimension, displayed in the waiting room. Since I desired to know more, the priest told me the photo had been taken during our first visit to the cemetery. A moment later, we were ushered into an office where we found those to whom we had spoken at the cemetery. I recognized, after their constitution, that they were angels. There were three individuals who were called respectively : Boss BOMBARD, responsible of the administration of all the external relations ; Boss MADRAC, who was a warrior and a judge, and whom one invoked in difficult situations, and who had the power to indispose, to give illnesses, to paralyse or kill, according to the situation at hand ; and Miss Marie-Jeanne BRIGNET, a woman originally from India, who took care of finances. I became acquainted with them, as well as with the first person buried at the cemetery where I made my visits. He served as a sort of customs officer, in order to facilitate our access to the invisible world.

Those who frequent the invisible world

After having met these people from the hereafter, I was introduced to other terrestrial beings who had relations with the invisible, especially those who lived in Zaire. Invited into the great hall, I found many historical personalities, some whose lives we had studied at school : scholars, scientists, inventors, great businessmen, political figures, and, finally, members of the Catholic clergy, cardinals, priests, etc. The day’s session was organized so as to present me to the invisible world. I saw Pope Paul VI make his entrance. He was the one who directed the ceremonies. It goes without saying that the Pope was the representative of all the living people who attended the invisible world, and he held the supreme power. The Pope was still alive at the time. He pronounced a long speech, after which I was baptised Master to the third degree, sixteenth power. The ceremony ended with a reception and a toast, but the “wine” was human blood.

Certain aspects of this occultic world

There was neither day nor night in this world, but there was an ambient atmosphere. After this first contact, the priest, with the authorization of BOMBARD, took me for a visit of this world with another individual. I made a sightseeing tour, going in here, coming out there, in the midst of all of these sumptuous buildings and edifices. We stopped in front of a high fence, hermetically closed. Someone came to open, and asked us to remain on the threshold. Inside, people carried heavy burdens ; some were suspended by a foot, upside down ; others were being tortured, etc. Curious, I asked what this was about. I was told these were people who had committed suicide on earth, and who had to endure punishment, because they had no right to take their own life. Farther ahead, this individual drew my attention to a place which had the form of a lost well, so large and deep that I was unable determine its breadth or dimensions. He told me that this was hell, but it wasn’t open, for the time had not yet come. Since the time to return to the earth was drawing near, we came back to BOMBARD to say goodbye. He asked me if I was hungry. Naturally, I was filled with the discovery of this new world. He gave me a biscuit, small and round, which I savoured. Once eaten, this biscuit appeases the appetite for three days.

Our return to earth

All the formalities having been accomplished, we returned to earth. I was surprised to find it was midnight when we arrived at the cemetery. In this invisible world, there are no hours, like on earth. I had spent about thirty minutes in that world. We had the custom to gather together in the invisible world for every Catholic holiday throughout the year, and upon convocation for every extraordinary session. We had to respect certain interdictions, among which : not to wash one’s self in the nude, not to go to the cemetery during a funeral, not to shake hands with someone in the morning, etc. Each month I had to sacrifice white roosters and pigeons… With the help of my magic carpet, I could travel all over the earth of the living without any administrative formality, and thus have been able to travel all over the world. On the other hand, my parents didn’t understand my activities. One day, my father accused me of being a thief, but I affirmed to him that it wasn’t the case. I promised to buy him a car in the days ahead. At these words, he took me for an adventurer, and disbelieved what I said. BOMBARD asked me to buy a piece of land and to leave my father’s home. The site chosen for me was located in the neighbourhood of the hospital of KANANGA, not far from the city’s cemetery, near the old emplacement of the cemetery for premature babies. This place was ideal for me to easily contact the invisible world or to visit the cemetery without hindrance. This land was located at N°35 N’SELE Street. At the same time, I gave money to my little brother so that he could also buy a piece of land for himself. This was done in the KAMAY neighbourhood at KANANGA.

The sorcerers’s attacks continue

Since we lived in a traditional society, the attacks from the sorcerers continued. They did all they could to destabilize me. They even sought to take my life if it had been possible, but in vain. The position I held in relation to them was very preeminent. Unable to do anything against me, they went into the invisible world to accuse me. As for me, I was not informed of their scheme. But, one day, I received a message inviting me to go into the invisible world at midnight. Quickly I went to alert the priest who, of his own initiative, decided to accompany me. It was midnight when we joined the invisible world. There, I was asked to wait for my accusers to appear before Judge MADRAC. I was surprised, but the priest, my faithful companion, reassured me. A moment later, I saw nine people file in, all members of my family and with whom I was perfectly acquainted. They sat not far from us. The judge asked us to go to the witness-box. The first question was to determine whether we knew one another. The procedure was the same as that on the earth. Once this was done, they were asked why they had accused me. They answered together that they had noticed the very high position I occupied in relation to theirs, and that they feared I would cause them harm in the long run. They had therefore wanted to move first in order to eliminate me. The session was ended after their condemnation : each one of them received a token on which a date had been inscribed. This date corresponded to that of its detainer’s death. They returned to earth confounded. I was informed that these sorcerers were going to use retaliation to avenge themselves, but that they wouldn’t succeed. Once back on earth, I noticed a change of attitude on each sorcerer’s face. In order to know more, I attempted to visit one of them, who was a paternal uncle. He kicked me out like a dog. Those familiar with him didn’t understand, since before I had been on good terms with him. This scene repeated itself everywhere I went to visit these notorious sorcerers. They, and I, knew very well what it was about, while the neighbours asked themselves what was going on. The sorcerers’s reaction was terrible. They sent me magical snakes, or dogs to bite me, but they failed miserably. One day, at 1 PM, I was resting in my room. I was still living at my parents’s home. I heard a unusual noise against the partition wall. I barely had the time to get up from bed, when I saw a snake, entirely black, measuring three meters long (it was measured Page 38 after being killed), with a diameter of about eight centimetres, getting ready to bite me. I wanted to escape, but the snake lunged to block my way. I invoked the invisible world to distract the snake. This done, I left to alert my little brother so he could come kill the snake. When my brother approached, the snake stood guard just at the entrance of the house, ready to attack anyone who would dare enter in. My little brother first tried to throw rocks at him, but his sling broke. At that point, the snake prepared to flee, but I prevented it by the means of incessant incantations. Suddenly, one of the parishioners, named BUABUA, arrived as if he had been called, sling in hand. He succeeded in slaying this beast. This manoeuvre repeated itself several times, because it was a counterattack from the sorcerers, who sought either to rob me of my neck chain, or to have me bitten in order to eliminate me. But they failed utterly. After the snakes they tried to attack me with a dog, but this attempt again was a fiasco. They are all dead at this very day.

The role of dogs, boa snakes and pigeons

On the property of important businessmen, one notices a small farmyard where one can always be sure to find a dog. We also were to raise a dog, but this dog could not be bought on an earthly market. It was obtained in the invisible world. Once this dog was on our property, it barked only against sorcerers and petty magicians, and prevented them from entering in. When its owner is absent, this dog registers each day every person’s visit from the exterior, as well as their names and the purpose of the visit. When its owner returns, the dog communicates all of this information to him, using all of the motions common to dogs greeting their masters. It’s at this moment that the dog gives its report to its master, to inform him of everything that has taken place during the master’s absence. For the circumstance, I too obtained a dog in the invisible world. I could also, when arriving on someone’s property, question either a tree, a hen, or even the person’s dog, in order to find out everything that took place there. The boa and the pigeon play a very big role in the business world. For in spite of all the wealth we disposed of, we also had the bad faith of exploiting national and international banks. If we needed several millions, we purchased a pigeon. After having pronounced a prayer at midnight, we sent the pigeon off to a specific bank and it would bring the money back to us within five minutes. The pigeon was preferable to the boa for its speed. But if we needed billions, this time we sent a boa who, around 3 AM, would bring the money and go vomit it in a special room called the “sanctuary”. As for the pigeon, it also served as a messenger between sorcerers, or between them and the invisible world.

I must get married

Around that time, I had to marry by orders of the invisible world. In my house stood a big wardrobe which contained millions of zaires. In order not to be tormented by my wife, I gave her one of its drawers, from which she could draw as much money as she wanted, without even asking me. Even if she had emptied everything out by evening, the next morning the drawer was always full. 1 John 2 : 15-16 gives us the following counsel : “Do not love the world or the things in the world. If anyone loves the world, the love of the Father is not in him. For all that is in the world— the lust of the flesh, the lust of the eyes, and the pride of life—is not of the Father but of the world.” Yet there are children of God who are tempted to envy sinners who live grand lives, thinking they are themselves punished by God. Rather, what we need, is to rejoice in what the Lord gives us, for He knows the measure of what we need each day.

I get a new automobile

After this, I was told to go to the car dealer at KANANGA, once facing the Central Station, and called AFRICAUTOZAIRE. I was to take delivery of the car I had asked from the invisible world some times before. I made a rendezvous with my nephew to accompany me. That day, a Tuesday morning, I reminded my father that the moment had come for me to offer him the promised automobile. He didn’t accept my offer, and neither did my nephew. But we went to the place nevertheless. When we arrived, my nephew was very surprised of the warm welcome that was given us : “Boss, you’re already here ! Your car is ready, do you want a chauffeur ?” I answered that I would drive it myself. Yet I had never driven a single car in my life. I went behind the steering wheel, and invoked the invisible world in order to receive the ability to drive. This done, I invited my nephew on board, and we left. At the house, my father was stupefied… In my neighbourhood, everyone knew that it was my father who had ordered this auto, for he was a well-known merchant. As for me, I was a businessman and student.

The role of jewellery

Since we didn’t possess fraternal love, we went as far as making even those with little means to suffer. To do this, we went into jewellery stores to copy some of the models on display, and we would order these same models in the invisible world. During the night, we would replace the jeweller’s models with ours. In the morning, these jewels from the invisible world would become suddenly much more attractive than the originals, even if these had been noticed before then. Anyone who bought these jewels and brought them home would attract all manner of problems to themselves, without knowing the reason why. The following night, I would displace myself in the spirit to look for my jewels. From each house they were in, they emitted a light similar to that of blinking headlights. I would then let myself into the houses where these jewels were, to observe the lifestyles of the inhabitants, and then cast an evil spell on them. Then illnesses would arise in these particular homes ; there would be accidents, or problems which necessitated expenses that we profited from. Wearing jewellery is not a necessity for the children of God. The Bible speaks clearly on that manner in the following two passages : “In like manner also, that the women adorn themselves in modest apparel, with propriety and moderation, not with braided hair or gold or pearls or costly clothing, but, which is proper for women professing godliness, with good works” (1 Timothy 2 : 9-10). “Do not let your beauty be that outward adoring of arranging the hair, of wearing gold, or of putting on fine apparel ; but let it be the hidden person of the heart, with the incorruptible ornament of a gentle and quiet spirit, which is very precious in the sight of God” (I Peter 3 : 3-4).

My magic glasses

I wore special glasses which played a big role in my life. When I wore them, I could unmask any occultic power in my life. If someone wore fetishes or talismans, or practised witchcraft, I could detect it by looking through these glasses. I could then destroy all these talismans and fetiches without their possessor realizing it. It was only later, while trying to invoke them, that they noticed they didn’t answer any more. I could do these things, because I detained a power superior above all ordinary magic and sorcery. Sorcery was just a minor power I didn’t pay much attention to, because in my eyes, it represented nothing. My power was situated at a level that small magicians could not attain.

My ecclesiastical activities

All the while I prospered in my business activities, I maintained good relations with the Catholic clergy, as well as with all the parishioners. Although I was young, I was successively elected President of Youth Crossroads at Saint Bruno Parish, President of the Junior Presidium of the Legion of Mary, then co-founder of the Junior Holy Family Curia, where I held the functions of treasurer, secretary, and vice-president. Each time there was an opening to these positions, I would submit my candidature and be elected by the majority of the votes, because no obstacle could stand in my way. My visits to the invisible world had become very frequent, to the point where all those under my administration became aware of it, and I captivated their spirit in order to prevent them from opposing themselves to me. One day, when I was taking an end-of-theyear visit in the invisible world, BOMBARD informed me that I had been chosen to lead the parish of Saint Bruno. I thought there would be a problem, for there already was a president. Seeing my thoughts, BOMBARD told me that there would be problems within the directing committee of my parish and that, unbeknownst to me, the committee members would submit and support my candidature, massively voting for me, to everyone’s great satisfaction. These problems of the directing committee were to be caused by the invisible world itself, so as to allow me to graduate to the level of manipulating human spirits, that is, to lead them into believing and practising whatever I would commanded them. It must be noted here that my presidency has remained in everyone’s memory, because of the activities I initiated and the success I achieved. I was still in the invisible world when BOMBARD’s word came true. Returning to earth around January 15, 1980, I discovered that I had been elected president of the parish committee. I open a parentheses to say that the same thing is done to appoint bishops and cardinals, and to elect the Pope. Everything is already arranged in advance in the invisible world, and the living merely concrete the choice. I celebrated the ordinary mass, as well as the circumstantial ones and even the ones for the dead. The parish experienced a considerable upswing during the entire duration of my presidency. The soccer team I had organized was invincible, because it was I who decided the outcome of the games in advance, and imposed the score I wanted. Because of this, the young people called me MVIDI MUKULU, which means, “God”. During a meeting in the invisible world, I asked BOMBARD to show me JESUS CHRIST. When I pronounced this name, I saw everybody kneel, and I remained puzzled, not understanding what was going on. After five minutes, they got up, and BOMBARD formally forbade me to mention this name again, saying that here, they called him “OLD PAPA”. Since I insisted on seeing him, BOMBARD answered me that he lived very far away, but that I needed to know that he had placed them in the invisible world to serve the living. Several days later, he took me to a garden in the invisible world, where he showed me a crucified man, whose blood still flowed fresh. He told me this is the man I was looking for. Unfortunately, it was a lie. I discovered later on, that this man on the cross is a Demon (with a capital D). He is the one Catholics represent on their images and idols…

The General Founder

In my desire to know everything, I asked BOMBARD again to show me the General Director who presided all the activities of the general direction. A rendezvous was made for the Wednesday of the following week. Near midnight, I went into the invisible world. We were suddenly surprised by a very strong earthquake, and fell to our knees. The one who presented himself had a much greater stature than BOMBARD. Having arrived to the place where we knelt, he stood before me and asked me why I was looking for him. I lifted my head to look at him, and I saw that he had three heads. Each head spoke in turn. I answered him that I first wanted to know him, and then I told him I wanted to be a multibillionaire on the earth. He answered that first I had to be thankful for what he had already given me, and that at the age of thirty he would give me the riches I asked for. In closing, he asked me to offer him in sacrifice a goat who could no longer give birth, which I did. In reality, this General Director of the invisible world had a name : he was commonly known as the General Founder FELIX. He certainly is the founder, because the invisible world belongs to him completely. But in reality, he is Satan, who disguises himself under several different forms.

THE SATANIC WORLD AND MY MEETING WITH LUCIFER

Who are the sorcerers ?

I have described to you earlier what the sorcerers had wanted to do in my life. And, during all of my activities, I never lost sight of this. One day, in 1981, I went into the invisible world to ask for information that might be useful for me concerning the sorcerers, the devil, and God. When I questioned BOMBARD, he first spoke to me about God. He told me that God had placed them here to serve the living, but that one could not enter into direct contact with Him except through the general director, who lived a little bit farther than where we were. It was the general director who, on my insistence, BOMBARD had presented me to : a being who held great authority, and who had three heads. It was him who was, according to BOMBARD, the representative of God. But no one could approach this creator God, who was called “OLD PAPA” in the invisible world. After I had mentioned the sorcerers, he initiated me during an entire night on the subject. Here is briefly some of the information he gave me :

The transmission of evil powers

The detainer of an evil power transmits it in successive stages. First he studies the person to whom he wants to transmit it, all the while taking note of which of the person’s family members to be sacrificed later he is to cast an evil spell on. After having prepared the way, he gives to his victim a diabolical seed, which planted in the victim’s heart, will cause him to never divulge a secret, even at the price of a sacrifice. This also allows him to be in permanent contact with the other sorcerers, and to become obstinate so as to pursue this road and go all the way. As this seed develops, the newly indoctrinated begin to see the sorcerers’s world. But he can only go there if he receives his own means of transportation, which can be either a ball-point or a fountain pen, a reed or the leaf of any tree. Little by little, he begins to familiarize himself with the members of his assembly, as well as with the existing power hierarchy. Until then, he is a novice. He cannot accomplish any act nor cast any evil spell, as long as he hasn’t been completely initiated. In the first weeks, the newly initiated participate naked at the assemblies, while those of rank wear clothing made of tree leaves. To close his initiation, the new disciple must sign a pact with the sovereign master : Satan. But it is only after the pact that he will realize that he has an engagement to serve Satan. Since he is bound by this pact, he can no longer withdraw, under the threat of being executed. But he is promised to receive infinite riches, as well as to have his own private aeroplane. On the day of the initiation, a beautiful cow is sacrificed. Remember that beginning 6 PM, each sorcerer makes contact with his world and his colleagues. At the hour appointed by his sovereign master, Satan, the new disciple must pass before all of his chiefs in the hierarchy, so that he may become well-known. Before them is placed a large stew pot containing the sacrificed cow’s meat. The novice must advance to the pot to find out what is cooking, and take his portion. At first glance, he will notice that it contains human flesh. Normally, he will not have enough courage to take some. Under the order of the elders, he will serve himself, and, this time, will see that it is cow’s meat. Behind the pot stands Satan, ready to receive the oath, but the novice doesn’t see him yet. At the moment he takes his portion and eats it in front of everyone, he is encouraged by the applause of the audience. That is when he signs a pact of fidelity and obedience to every order and to every assignment entrusted to him, and engages to strictly keep the secret of sorcery to himself. It is after having eaten that he becomes aware of the presence of Satan behind the pot. When he returns to the altar, the elders ask him to consolidated his pact by promising to sacrifice someone dear to him, in compensation of what he has just eaten. The newly initiated one finds himself obligated to give the name of this person and the amount of time needed to attain him or her. From now on, he can travel wherever he wishes aboard his own machine. Now he can also cast evil spells. Sorcery (witchcraft) is subdivided into three great branches :

Family sorcery

This branch of sorcery has powers limited to the clan or tribal level. Power is transmitted between parents and children, between children themselves, or between members of the same clan or tribe. But sorcerers in this category cannot attain someone outside of these limits.

Regional or ethnic sorcery

This branch of sorcery involves an entire population that speaks the same language, generally at the level of an ethnic group or a nation. Each ethnic group is lead by a council. For example, the Bakongo have their own council, the Baluba, the Baswahili have theirs, etc. At this level, all the different councils are in relation with one another. If, for example, some Bakongo want to attain a member of their ethnic group who is in the KASAI region, they will ask those who are in that area to help them. When a council holds a meeting, it debates over the victims that must be chosen for execution, and submits its report to the sovereign master. If he agrees on a person, this person is put to death. But if he refuses a candidate, that one will not be killed.

International or universal sorcery

This branch brings together the entirety of the councils worldwide, without distinction of race, sex, or tongue. These councils are directed by elected members who wield the most extensive powers. They can operate on anyone, whatever one’s ethnic group or tongue. It is among them that the general secretaries are appointed, who have the privilege of meeting with Satan any time they wish, and who can travel around the world at any hour of the day. The general secretaries and their assistants meet four times a week : on Mondays, Wednesdays, Fridays, and Saturdays. At every reunion, each general secretary must bring the names of five people to be sacrificed. Since they detain absolute power over anyone, they can attain feeble-minded people, or provoke accidents to provide victims. They take anything that crosses their path, and offer blind sacrifices without any discernment, to the point of exterminating members of their own family. At this level, there is a difference between magicians and sorcerers. Magicians also make sacrifices, but with more moderation and dissimulation, to the point where it is difficult to suspect them. Even though they serve the same master, Satan, there is a deep antagonism between magicians and sorcerers, except when they need to safeguard their common interests.

How sorcerers kill their victims

A sorcerer can proceed to kill a person in different ways : by accident, through disease, etc. When he gets ready to take a victim, he MOVES THE HEART of this person. The victim then manifests every sign of death, all the while remaining alive. The person can hear all of the mourners around him, but can neither move nor do anything, because his heart is not in its place. He realizes that he is being prepared for burial, and he is conscious of everything being done to his body until he is placed in his tomb. At 6 PM, the elders call the one who has just sacrificed a person, with the intent of hardening his heart through a particular ceremony. At that moment, the sorcerer loses all desire to weep, and joins in his colleagues’s joy at having been able to make another victim. At the same moment, the sorcerers come, in an occultic manner, to unearth the victim to take him or her into the invisible world. There, this person passes before judgement, before being transformed into any kind of animal ; a cow, a goat, etc., to be prepared to be eaten. When the sorcerers meet, on that given day every ordinary sorcerer is expected to furnish a soul to be sacrificed, while every general secretary or his assistant is expected to sacrifice five souls. Furthermore, each general secretary is expected to sacrifice FIVE HUNDRED people in the month of June of each year, and FIVE HUNDRED people in the month of December ! These numbers may seem exaggerated to some, but they are true. Each accident which involves hundreds of people across the world are caused by these great magicians. They always appear as dirty, ugly and contemptible, and stand at crossroads and bus stops to provoke people by dirtying them. Those who get angry or insult them are marked, and the sorcerer brings about an accident of the bus or taxi cab which these people have taken, in order to cause their death. Therefore it is dangerous to insult or to get angry against a stranger. The sorcerer knows very well that when one is angry, or when one makes fun of a person, one is in a state of sin and separated from God. He thereby takes advantage of this situation to accomplish his task.

Other evil acts from sorcerers

In the neighbourhood where a general secretary lives, people don’t progress. Young women never find a husband, and have children out of wedlock. Or else, if some do marry, they will divorce after having had several children and then return to their parents’s home. Young men also, despite their diplomas, never find jobs. The sorcerers give them the mind of a baby, and these young people spend their days playing cards, checkers, discussing sports, etc. Sorcerers also transmit epidemics by enclosing in occultic ways the brain of their victims inside of fruits : mangoes, avocados, etc. They can even put on sale, on the markets of the world, human flesh under the guise of cow meat, for example. One then finds customers lining up by the dozen to buy such meat, because everything which comes from the invisible world is very attractive. But when it comes to preparing such meat, it will be tasteless, and foam during the cooking process. Concerning the above, this doesn’t mean that one can no longer eat certain fruits or foods, but we must do what the Bible says : everything must be taken with thanksgiving. “For every creature of God is good, and nothing is to be refused if it is received with thanksgiving ; for it is sanctified by the word of God and prayer” (I Timothy 4 : 4-5). For all of this, there exists a safety exit : JESUS CHRIST ! Only He can deliver us from such slavery.

My meeting with Lucifer

Already accustomed to be around spirits, even the most powerful ones, I never ceased to ask what was their origin and whom they served. It was revealed to me that they were servants of the great master Lucifer. I thus sought an opportunity to meet him, but this opportunity didn’t present itself. After having become acquainted with the sorcery organisation, and always in my desire to know more, I asked BOMBARD to do everything to put me in contact with the “devil”. When I pronounced the word “devil”, BOMBARD became angry against me and asked me why I called him this way. He continued to tell me that all of us were at his service. What a big surprise this was for me ! He went on, saying that the word “devil” was a derogatory name used by the inhabitants of the earth, and that I needed to know, starting that day, that he was called “SOMODIEU OF THE TWO HEARTS.” Happy from this terrifying discovery, I then asked BOMBARD to put me in contact with him. He answered that he was too busy, and that it was practically impossible to meet him. Nevertheless, it was possible to attempt to contact his personal secretary and bodyguard, to find out if he could do something. BOMBARD thus gave me a prayer to invoke NABAM, Satan’s bodyguard. He told me that NABAM was very dangerous for the living, which meant that I was to be very careful and watch that he wouldn’t touch me when he would appear, for then I would have to die on the spot. The invocation ceremony was to take place at midnight. It involved a whole set of preparations of which I won’t mention the details, except to specify that I had to obtain, among other things, some holy water that is found in Catholic churches. I had to trace a circle around myself with lime, and a circle for NABAM, and I had to be alone in the house, because NABAM would have taken with him the soul of anyone who would be found in the house at that particular time. I chose the date, in order to make my wife and the rest of our household leave. They were happy because of all the money and gifts I gave them to offer to the relatives with whom they were going to spend the weekend. With the diabolical courage that animated me, I attempted the act. I respected all the rules of the invocation, and NABAM appeared to me in the midst of a tumultuous wind. I gave him some holy water to drink. Then he asked me this question : “Why did you call me ?” I answered him that I needed to meet Satan. He formally forbade me to call him Satan, but rather SOMODIEU OF THE TWO HEARTS. He praised his master’s power and proposed me some jewels : a chain necklace, a ring, etc., that would give me success in my enterprises under the condition that I never wear them in the churches where one prayed to the creator God. I refused his offer, because the chain necklace I possessed could already be used without any conditions attached, and I insisted to see SOMODIEU OF THE TWO HEARTS. I wanted to go quickly to save time and to discover other things. He then made a rendezvous with me for two days later and sent me, by correspondence, the adequate invocation prayer. The day of the rendezvous, at midnight, I invoked the sovereign master. In the room were I stood, called a “sanctuary”, I heard a very strong earthquake, accompanied by a very violent wind, so violent that I thought the trees outside had been broken. Suddenly, I saw a lizard appear before me which, as the wind blew, grew bigger and bigger in the matter of seconds. When it reached the dimensions of a crocodile, it transformed itself into an upright being, but whose body was covered with emerald- coloured scales except for its hands and head. He had the appearance of a young man about thirty years old. He spoke first, asking me why I had called him. I answered him that I desired to be counted as one of the billionaires on earth, and that I also wanted to meet him. He pretended to scratch himself and pulled from one of his scales a long list of human names, separated by a red line. He showed me this list, and I was surprised to see written there the names of all of my family members, the living on one side, and the dead on the other. He asked me to designate from among the living, five persons that I was to sacrifice to him in order to obtain on the spot the riches I had asked for. For a few seconds, I remained confounded, and then I asked him to give me some time to think about it, telling him that I would call him again to inform him of my decision. After a moment’s hesitation, he told me that he lived under the RED SEA. In the twinkling of an eye, he said goodbye and disappeared. I had hesitated, because since I was in business, I had never been asked to make a human sacrifice. From that day onward, I never again invoked Lucifer in this manner, but I went to visit him at his home. We made a date ; then we went to the Red Sea to meet him. Standing on the bank, the Saudi Arabian side, we pronounced the invocation. An opening was made along the water and we entered through it. We were greeted by NABAM inside a building that was decorated with the most exquisite taste. Then the great master came to welcome us. The first question he asked me was whether I had brought the five persons asked for. I excused myself and he accepted my excuses. Yet it is not his custom to accept an excuse from just anybody and for just any reason. He then revealed to me that he had already directed the world three times, under the disguise of the Popes, during the first and second Crusades, and during the hundred-year-war. It was Lucifer who had incarnated himself in these Popes. This explains itself, since a real servant of God cannot launch a war to kill people, inasmuch as there is the shedding of blood. I also learned that the General Founder that I had seen with three heads was always he, disguised in another form. Furthermore, the Jesus represented on the cross by the Great Babylon is none other but Lucifer himself, master of the diabolical trinity, having the emblem of three heads. He told me that he was doing everything to bring me closer to him, because he loved me a lot. He authorized me to attend his reunions, and to assist others in their macabre missions : kill people by the thousands ; provoke accidents ; destroy the churches where there was the beginning of a revival, by sending evil spirits to discourage the faithful or to give them spiritual weakness, or by sending spirits of immorality, an efficient weapon to annihilate every true spiritual power. How many plundering and massacres have been accomplished by us ! How many Christian groups and churches dispersed ! By all these practices, I was already excluded from the list of the children of God. “And the person who turns after mediums and familiar spirits, to prostitute himself with them, I will set My face against that person and cut him off from his people” (Leviticus 20 : 6). I was hurling myself toward the abyss. I now knew that I was destined for hell, but Lucifer would tell us that we were going to get used to it. Lucifer would come and visit me at home during the day, in plain sight, but no one realized that he was the prince of this world. People believed that he was one of my fellow diamond dealers. We would go out to pick up women, and the fate that awaited them was death, after much suffering and curses in their life. Many prostitutes, male or female, have thus had sexual relations with an evil spirit, or with a great magician, who, on the outside, looked like decent people. I had received from Lucifer some magic eyeglasses, through which I could detect any sorcerer or witch doctor, and determine the level of his power. These eyeglasses are not to be confused with the ordinary ones I now wear.Lucifer is determined to make many people sin in order to separate them from God’s face and to enlarge his own ranks. “Righteousness exalts a nation, but sin is a reproach to any people” (Proverbs 14 : 34). That is why today there are many more people who have evil spirits within them, compared to the previous eras, because Lucifer has unleashed all of his power to seduce the world to a maximum, by using notably the desire for luxury, the seeking of beautiful clothing, and the lust for glory.

A dangerous ignorance

Through all his disguises, Lucifer equally seduces people by superstition and the art of interpreting signs. He is also at the origin of idols (statues, medals, holy images…), amulets, ropes, rings, and red cloth that is worn on the hips, in certain diabolical churches who yet brandish the Bible. Other churches use symbols, such as for example the sign “S”, which is supposed to represent the word “salvation”. Others do it in a more complicated manner, by entwining the “S” with a cross, or by using the sign of the swastika. Some shake hands in the form of a cross, others wear obligatory white clothing, etc. Some others choose days to do or not to do certain things : to not travel, to marry, sow, bathe, cut their hair or nails, etc. In these churches of the devil you will find thousands of adepts ready to sacrifice everything in order to defend the interests of their group. Divination, astrology, yoga, Rosicrucianism, the mahigari, psychoanalysis, telepathy, have a direct relationship with magic. To accomplish supernatural things and miracles, and because of the ambition and avidity of men, the devil hides himself today under the learned names of RESEARCH and SCIENCE. There also exists a whole body of literature inspired by the devil. Reading any of these works leads directly to demon possession. Some of the titles are : “The Five Books of John”, “Rational Theology”, “The Book of Wisdom”, “The Magic Forces Within Us”, “Letters From Heaven”, etc. The hour has come where God wants to remove all of our ignorance concerning the entire strategy of the devil. “And you shall know the truth, and the truth shall make you free” (John 8 : 32).

ROME, BABYLON THE GREAT

“Then one of the seven angels who had the seven bowls came and talked with me, saying to me : Come, I will show you the judgment of the great harlot who sits on many waters, with whom the kings of the earth committed fornication, and the inhabitants of the earth were made drunk with the wine of her fornication. So he carried me away in the spirit into the wilderness. And I saw a woman sitting on a scarlet beast which was full of names of blasphemy, having seven heads and ten horns. “The woman was arrayed in purple and scarlet, and adorned with gold and precious stones and pearls, having in her hand a golden cup full of the abominations and the filthiness of her fornication. And on her forehead a name was written : MYSTERY, BABYLON THE GREAT, THE MOTHER OF HARLOTS AND OF THE ABOMINATIONS OF THE EARTH. And I saw the woman, drunk with the blood of the saints and with the blood of the martyrs of Jesus. And when I saw her, I marvelled with great amazement… And the woman whom you saw is that great city which reigns over the kings of the earth” (Revelation 17 : 1-6, 18). In the light of the revelation of this chapter, the prostitute, Babylon the great, is a city which exerts its control and its power over the kings of the earth, being seated on many waters. Which city does this refer to ? Washington, D.C. ? No, for despite its power, it doesn’t dominate over every country of the world. Neither is it Moscow. But it refers to a city which, although having a small surface area, extends its domination over all of the nations. This city is Rome, or more exactly, the Vatican ! Whatever the people or the nation, the Vatican has plunged its roots into it. All of these peoples and nations are the many waters (v. 1) on which the prostitute sits (v. 18). This prostitute is arrayed in purple and scarlet, which are the colours of the Catholic clergy’s clothing. It must be known that the Vatican possesses the world’s most important stockpile of precious stones. The Roman Catholic church is the only religious institution in the world to have introduced worship by means of the cup (v. 4). This represents the impurities of its prostitution. Indeed, the Roman Catholic church has profaned the word of God by adding things which have no part in it (censers, candles, rosaries, idols, holy water, ashes, the cult of the dead…) (Revelation 22 : 18), and cut off what is beneficial (1 Corinthians 12 : 4-11 ; Ephesians 4 : 11). Furthermore, Catholic dignitaries cover their heads during prayer, which is contrary to 1 Corinthians 11 : 4. The cult of the dead is forbidden by God, and by practising it one enters directly into rebellion. Requiem masses can in no way save a soul (Mark 12 : 27, Psalms 49 : 7-9). These revelations may be amazing, as was the case for the Apostle John (Revelation 17 : 6), because many believe that this universal church can save souls, while in fact it is under God’s judgement ! That is why it is high time to come out of its midst and to earnestly seek after salvation ! (2 Corinthians 6 : 17-18).

The role of Catholic “saints”

Each saint in the Catholic repertory, whom Rome uses to seduce the entire world, is not a saint in the real sense of the word. These are dead people of often doubtful origins and lifestyles who are venerated by Catholics. Many of them have been magicians or Rosicrucians serving the devil while living. The bodies of these “saints” are recovered after their death by occultic means. These bodies are then mummified, just as for the Popes, and kept in the vaults of Saint Peter’s Basilica. When a new parish is opened somewhere, all of these spirits assemble together in the invisible world and draw lots to know which saint will be assigned to it. Once a name has been chosen, Lucifer orders the Pope to remove a piece of the body of this person. The part is then prepared by being enclosed in a white-coloured stone which will be placed inside the new church’s altar. From now on it is that particular demon who will patronize all of the activities of the parish where he has been assigned. We do not ignore that a demon is given the mission to harm man. He will strive to instil false doctrine into the adepts of this religion, and arouse them into always multiplying sin upon sin. This white-coloured stone is normally featured underneath the drapery covering the altar. Before celebrating the mass, every priest must kiss the stone. The aim of this kiss is to lead the assistance into believing, without contesting, everything that it will be told , by means of the magical powers invested inside the stone. This same stone is used to communicate the priest’s wishes to the parish’s patron, that is, the dead person whose body part is enclosed inside the stone. It is this spirit which brings the parishioners’ spirits to submit to the will of the invisible world. God does not authorize us to communicate with the dead, nor to offer a cult to them. When people are led into this idolatrous act, they are constantly profaning the name of the Saviour. Here is the Biblical truth concerning this matter : “He is not the God of the dead, but the God of the living. You are therefore greatly mistaken” (Mark 12 : 27). God doesn’t need the dead, even though they might be with him, to transmit His message to man. This is confirmed in Luke 16 : 27-31, when the rich man asks the deceased Lazarus to return to warn his brothers. Abraham’s answer is firm. God does not need the dead in order to speak to the living. I open a parenthesis to say that during the entire length of my ecclesiastical duties at the head of the Saint Bruno Parish, I discovered that the mass itself is nothing else but an act of magic. I say this as a practising member.

The succession of Pope Paul VI and the correction of the Bible

In 1978, we participated at a big assembly in the invisible world to elect a successor to Pope Paul VI. This was done, and we voted for John- Paul Ist. During his enthronement, he received the mission to modify the Bible by removing the following passages : 1 Corinthians 6 : 6-16, 2 Corinthians 6 : 14-17, and the entire book of Revelation. Furthermore, he was to work in forging unity with all the pagans, missionaries and pastors, and with Christians of all creeds, to better fight against the One they called “THE GREAT ONE”. It is this movement of unity which is also called “ecumenicism”. Pope John-Paul Ist didn’t easily accept the correction of the Bible. That is why Lucifer judged him to be incompetent and eliminated him from the world of the living. The world had many pretexts to justify his death. His successor John- Paul II, having accepted the mission, was enthroned and invested with great powers.

I receive a promotion

In order to keep count of all of the sinister exploits I had accomplished, it had been granted to me to build an entire city, baptised CITY OF PARADISE, in which I was to live and exert all of my activities. This city was to have in particular a textile plant, a supermarket, etc. The years went by, and I dissimulated all of my occultic activities under the cover of illegal diamond dealing. Then, the invisible world communicated to me the date that had been chosen for my physical death, which was to take place in the year 2043, during the month of November, the day and hour yet to be determined.

I move to the capital

In 1983, I decided, with the permission of BOMBARD, to leave the city of KANANGA to definitely move to the capital, KINSHASA. This was accorded to me November 6, 1983, and I took leave of my brothers. The same night, I took my magic carpet and my luggage, and, by means of the cemetery, went to KINSHASA. I arrived there by the old cemetery of BINZADELVEAU. After a stay at the Okapi Hotel, I lived in DELVEAU for sixteen months before getting in touch with some brothers and acquaintances. While accomplishing my double ecclesiastical and magical mission, I participated in the archbishop of KINSHASA’s jubilee September 22, 1984. I was filmed by his side during the inauguration of Saint Joseph’s Hospital in LIMETE, wearing white glasses with black frames, and black pants with a beige jacket. My occultic activities intensified, but I had neither rest nor peace in my heart. Like all the others, I feared to receive an impossible mission, whose failure was always accompanied by the death sentence.

My visit under the earth

All of those who were sentenced to death were brought under the earth to be exterminated. That is when I decided to go there to take a look, with the permission of the supreme authorities. In order to do this, I had to meet with the “Queen of the Coast”, who was to give me access to this subterranean world. I therefore went to Pointe-Noire, in the People’s Republic of the Congo, to meet with the Queen of the Coast, on the shore of the Atlantic Coast. There we penetrated underneath the ocean, visiting her offices and her servants. One must mention here that the Queen of the Coast comes to our cities in a physical form to seduce skirt-chasers and kidnap them. Those who will have sexual relations with her will find themselves possessed, and will be cursed during their entire life. The seductive fashions which young women wear today always come from the Queen of the Coast. Underneath the earth, I discovered many more things. There were factories where people were busy creating models of beautiful cars or luxury equipment. When the models are ready, they bring them onto the earth, into the physical world, to be built. There was an electronics factory where televisions, radios and many other household appliances were made. I saw large research and study rooms where great scientists and learned men, like Einstein, Archimedes, and others, were elaborating and perfecting their inventions and formulas. I also visited a building made up of three chambers : the “Black Room”, where victims are executed ; the “Intermediate Room”, where the victim is put into a press to extract the water from its body. The water obtained this way transits through Lucifer and is sent to the Pope, who has it put into flasks. This is what is called “holy water blessed by the Pope”. The victim’s body is then transferred to the “Drying Room”, where it is burned. The ashes will be added to those of Palm Sunday’s, and will be used to anoint the foreheads of the faithful on Ash Wednesday. I remained underneath the earth for two weeks, to familiarize myself with this environment, then I regained the earth. I never left the company of Lucifer. We would go out together, in big Mercedes, which weren’t really normal cars. We would frequent all the high class places of KINSHASA, such as KIMPWANZA, VIS-A-VIS, the Hotel Intercontinental, etc. There, we would seduce women, who were to die several months later. I remember, among so may others, a certain BASOSILA, who went to die at KIKWIT a few months later. At the entrance of bars, Lucifer places naked goddesses to put a spell on those who come to drink.

The unification of churches and worldwide political power

On May 25, 1985, Pope John-Paul II sent out an invitation to all the important people of the world, including those who call themselves evangelical but who work only for their own interests. The place chosen for this meeting was NAIROBI, KENYA, and 800,000 people came together on this occasion of the Pope’s visit. The work to be done had to do with the unification of the churches and the unification of the political world under the authority of the Pope. During one of the meetings, personally presided over by the Pope, on June 1st 1985, it was decided to delete from the Bible the following portions of Scripture already mentioned. Soon afterward, it was even decided to publish a new Bible that would not carry these portions, and which would be called “Jerusalem”. The Pope, aided by the powers of this world, will strengthen his throne to make himself to be worshipped like God, and the false prophet of the false peace will do everything to convince the entire world to align itself behind the Pope (1 Thessalonians 5 : 3). This false prophet is no one else but the author of the “Perestroika”, Mr. Mikhail Gorbatchev, to whom was given the Nobel Prize for Peace in October of 1990. The Pope is in the process of persuading all the heads of state of the entire world to adopt a policy that is conform to his projects. Thanks to its riches, the Vatican will succeed in imposing its will over all the poor and over every country whose economy is in difficulty. The application of the mark of the beast will be done in two manners : the first mark will be spiritual, through the total corruption of morals and the abandonment of the path of truth. This corresponds to 18 qualifications, that can be regrouped into three series of 6, forming the number 666, and that are enumerated in 2 Timothy 3 : 2-4 : “For men will be lovers of themselves, lovers of money, boasters, proud, blasphemers, disobedient to parents (6), unthankful, unholy, unloving, unforgiving, slanderers, without self-control (6), brutal, despisers of good, traitors, headstrong, haughty, lovers of pleasure rather than lovers of God” (6). The other mark will be physical, either by a seal, either by a mark worn on the body (on the forehead or on the hand), and which will allow those who belong to the beast to be identified. If a child of God finds himself in one of these above-mentioned qualifications, he must repent and pray with all his heart that God deliver him, because this spiritual mark will bring upon him the physical mark, from which one will not be able to escape, since the spiritual mark is already present. The poor in spirit are the only detainers of the Holy Spirit, without anything added (Matthew 5 : 3).

The Antichrist and the mark of the beast

On August 29, 1985, under the authority of the Pope, 16 articles were written which justify the events predicted in Revelation 13 : 16-18. Because I personally took part in the meeting which prepared for the publishing of these articles, I will give you now the translation of the list of these 16 articles, taken from the minutes of this meeting, signed by Pope John-Paul II :

Article 1 : No one will be able to send a letter by mail without the mark.

Article 2 : No one will be hired by a company without the mark.

Article 3 : No child will be able to study if his parents do not have the mark.

Article 4 : All armaments will be placed under the authority of a unique worldwide organisation, and no one will be able to buy or sell them without the mark.

Article 5 : No one will be able to buy nor sell food products, nor be a farmer, without this mark.

Article 6 : No one will be able to make bank transactions without this mark.

Article 7 : If someone doesn’t accept or goes against these articles, he will be severely punished, even up to the death penalty.

Article 8 : No one will be able to travel without having this mark.

Article 9 : All space exploration vessels will be placed under the authority of this worldwide organisation.

Article 10 : No one will be able to import or export anything without having this mark.

Article 11 : There will a unique currency, universally employed.

Article 12 : There will be a unique Church, and all the members of this worldwide church will worship on the same day, Sunday.

Article 13 : Poverty and destitution will be eliminated. The standard of living in developing nations will be improved.

Article 14 : No one will be able to hunt or fish without this mark.

Article 15 : Every transportation company worldwide will be particularly well treated.

Article 16 : No one will be able to receive hospital care without having this mark.

My Conversion

My activities dwindle

Near the end of 1984, I noticed that if I asked for a certain amount of money, the invisible world would send me only the tenth of my request. This situation upset me, because I didn’t understand the reason why. That’s when I decided to return to KANANGA, to check out on the spot what was going on. But the opportunity to travel didn’t present itself. First of all, the carpet I used to travel on was taken away from me, and I didn’t have enough money to leave. My special telephone disappeared also, and I had nothing left to communicate with except for my prayers and my chain necklace.

A new destiny

At the beginning of August, 1985, I visited a cousin in the neighbourhood of NGABA, at Number 20 KINGULU Street. His wife asked me to accompany her to a prayer meeting. I placed the cross of my chain necklace into my mouth to ask for BOMBARD’s permission. He forbade me to go. I then made up an excuse and escaped, pretending to be in a big hurry. But I promised to accompany her another time. A week later, I went by there again, and my cousin’s wife renewed her invitation. I refused once more, after having consulted BOMBARD. Passing by there yet another time, she insisted again. That day, BOMBARD didn’t answer me when I called on him. I decided to go with her. It was 6:30 PM when we arrived together at Number 42 KAZIAMA Street, still in NGABA. When we entered into the compound, we found some young people practising the drums and men and women waiting for the meeting to start while reading their Bibles silently. Being sorry to find myself in such an environment, I reproached my cousin’s wife to have ridiculed me by bringing me into the midst of these “profane” people. I remained near the entrance of the compound, and I began to spiritually probe the environment in which I found myself. But I was unable to get in contact with the invisible world, in order to situate myself. At 5 : 00 PM, everything started : hymns, intercessions… I obstinately continued to try to understand what exactly was going on, but in vain. While they were interceding, I stretched out my astral hand (the hand of my spiritual body) to block their prayers. I then felt a powerful fire burning me. Every one of my attempts failed, and I continued to watch them at work. Once the intercessions were over, the assistance was asked to wait for prophecy. Immediately afterwards, a brother began to prophecy and it was aimed directly at me. Here is what this prophecy said : “Our brother who is near the door is very beloved of the Lord. The Lord wants to put him at His service, but He is asking him to do one thing : that he turns to Him and give up all of his magical practices. He will lose all the goods he has acquired through magic, but the Lord will walk with him.” He told me that I was carrying a briefcase with holes, which meant that I was going to lose everything I had acquired through magic. Then, he said that he saw a plate turning before me, which meant that God would establish me into a peaceful life, if I would give myself to Him, and that He would take me into His service. You can imagine my surprise when I heard this youth give out the details of my life, while my own brothers and sisters here in KINSHASA didn’t know who I really was! I was thoroughly convinced of the truth of this prophecy, but, inside me, I doubted very much as to the prophecy’s orthodoxy. I became irritated against this brother, and waited until nightfall to come and sift him as wheat. After the meeting, a servant of God came to exhort me, but thanks to my occultic powers I detected that he wasn’t pure before God. So I made a prayer to distract him, and he then began to talk about insignificant things. That is why God’s servants must be holy and prepared each day. Starting that day, all of my clothing disappeared, because they all came from the invisible world. The same thing happened to my priest’s robes. The three suitcases full of money from which I supplied myself also disappeared. One after the other, my automobiles broke down… What a mess I got into ! From now on, I had no more contact with the invisible world, although I still had my magical chain necklace, my magic powder and my prayer booklet.

Jesus calls me to Himself

One day at 4 PM, I was alone, and busy sketching the organization chart of the company I wanted to start with the invisible world, not knowing that things has taken a different turn. I heard a voice calling me, but I was unable to locate it. I thought it was a dream or a misunderstanding, and I continued my work. Later, around 2 AM, I heard a voice calling me. I jumped, thinking it was BOMBARD, and I went to the restroom in order to talk to him, but no one was there. This happened twice in a row, and I decided not to answer any more. This same voice was heard thirty minutes later. I listened to it attentively. I wasn’t BOMBARD’s voice. This voice was melodious and full of compassion. It asked me to abandon what was still left. I asked Him who He was, and He answered me : “I AM YOUR LORD JESUS CHRIST… IT IS I, JESUS, WHO IS CALLING YOU…” It was for me something incredible… to talk with Jesus Christ ! Where could I start ? But it was an undeniable reality ! It was a reality more profound than the occultic world I knew. I had never heard anyone say that Jesus spoke to humans since He had gone to Heaven. That night I was tormented,   trying to understand, but without success. I invoked BOMBARD, but I could no longer enter into contact with him. I felt anguished, but it was dispelled in a way I knew not how. During my next meeting with my sister, Theresa, she indicated to me the address of the church of BANDAL, at Number 39 KINKOLA Street. I went by to verify the information, and I found people in the midst of prayer, but I returned home. The next day, I went in there of my own accord, and the Word of God that was preached that day touched my heart. This word, preached by Brother BEYA WETU, described the manner ELIJAH had arranged the altar and invoked the Lord to consume the sacrifice (1 Kings 18 : 30-40). I persevered in prayer, and in October 1985, I received a letter from my little brother from KANANGA, telling me that my parcel near the hospital had been confiscated by a would-be buyer, and inviting me to return to KANANGA to solve the problem. I understood that it was still the first prophecy that was being accomplished. Then, it was my magic eyeglasses that disappeared. That day they were at Brother BADIBANGA’s home. When he came to tell me that he had lost my glasses, I answered nothing, knowing of course what had happened. That same year, during a service on repentance that was held at BANDAL, I thought it useless to keep the objects that remained, and with sincerity surrendered to one of my brothers my chain necklace and my prayer booklet. And this was MY BREAKING OFF WITH MAGIC. Several months later, my father wrote to me to tell me that my wife had deserted our home, abandoning our children.

A year of combat for my deliverance

I found myself completely stripped of everything, to begin my life all over again from zero. It was difficult to bear, but God’s hand was constantly upon me to keep me from the worst. I was followed by a prayer group located in the BANDALUNGWA zone. It is there that I received a complete deliverance. My deliverance lasted ONE YEAR ! When a Satanist leaves his master, Satan does everything to slow down his activities, to have him be fired from his work, and sends him curses and diseases by the means of his demons. These demons also suggest to the person to abandon the Lord, saying He is the cause of all these ills. I went through these trials. I have spent entire days without any food, and all those who could have helped me closed their door on me. I didn’t even have a decent pair of shoes or pants to wear ! The devil wanted me to rot in poverty. During that time, my mind was colonized by demons, who would make me recall the movie of the happiness of my past, suggesting that I should get back into their camp. I had to ask help from some brothers, who sacrificed themselves through prayer in order to avert this oppression. During this period of great persecution, the devil and his acolytes had resolved to kill me, fearing the divulging of all of their secrets. Thousands of demons began to attack me, even physically, and threatened me with death. But thanks be to our Lord JESUS CHRIST, who has kept me by His hand ! A smile started to come back to my lips, though I didn’t have any financial resources. In time, the Lord accomplished the project He had formed for me, giving me step by step the gifts of prophecy, of healing and of discerning of the spirits, and the ministry of a doctor. When I began to serve the Lord, I still didn’t know how to understand the will of Jesus Christ for me. I therefore looked for work to help myself financially, but it didn’t succeed. It was then that the Lord revealed to me, through a brother, that He was calling me to serve Him full time. By the grace of God, I got remarried, for my first wife had been imposed upon me by the world of darkness. We possess a GREAT PEACE although we don’t have millions to live on. My wife fell ill, and no disease was diagnosed despite her extreme pain. We prayed to the Lord, and He healed her. A great dryness had invaded us like a cloud. Today, I can affirm, with our brother Paul, that “what things were gain to me, these I have counted loss for Christ. But indeed I also count all things loss for the excellence of the knowledge of Christ Jesus my Lord, for whom I have suffered the loss of all things, and count them as rubbish, that I may gain Christ” (Philippians 3 : 7-8). Since that day, I contemplate the glory of God in my life, for He has declared that He will never leave me nor forsake me (Hebrews 13 : 5). I give thanks to God for the love He has shown me by pulling me out of the pit of perdition which I had rushed, to transform me today into a watchman for His people, as He had declared to me in a prophecy concerning me. Our communion being with the Father and His Son (1 John 1 : 3), with all of my heart I send an invitation out, pleading, to all of those who are still in the Roman Catholic system and its associated groups, as well as to all the sorcerers, satanists and magicians, begging them to get out, for there is no life found in these things. And the Lord will welcome them. “Therefore, come out from among them and be separated, says the Lord. Do not touch what is unclean, and I will receive you. I will be a father to you, and you shall be My sons and daughters, says the Lord Almighty” (2 Corinthians 6 : 17-18). Our God is alive, He is the King of Kings, the Lord of Lords. He gives mercy to whom He wishes, and His plan is a plan of Salvation and happiness to anyone who believes in Him ! Brother BAKAJIKA M.N.

CONCLUSION

After reading this book, if you are not certain to be saved and to go directly to Heaven if death should claim you now, you must repent of your sins, turn toward the Lord Jesus Christ, and say this simple prayer with a sincere heart : “Lord Jesus, I know I am a sinner and that I can’t save myself by my good works. I know I deserve to go to hell. I am sorry I have sinned, that I practised idolatry or things you consider to be abominations. I ask you to forgive me. Wash away all of my sins in your precious blood. By faith, I now receive You in my life as Saviour and Master, and as my only hope of salvation. Come into my heart now, and save me according to your promise. Write my name in your Book of Life ! I ask all of this in your precious Name, and thank you to answer me now. Amen !” You must also : – immediately stop practising magic, sorcery, satanism, or religious idolatry. – burn or destroy any objects, books or documents associated with these practices. – join yourself to a group or church of real Christians, where you will be able to receive the baptism of water by immersion, according to the Lord’s command, and receive teaching of the Word of God according to the truth, to make you into a real disciple of Christ. MAY THE LORD JESUS CHRIST KEEP YOU AND BLESS YOU ! HE IS COMING BACK VERY SOON !

© Bakajika Muana Nkuba 1996

©All rights reserved

Translated from French by

Nathalie Brun

First Published in French 1992

Parole de Vie Publishing House 1996
ISBN 2-909100-10-3

Posted in A TRUE AND REMARKABLE TESTIMONY EXPOSING SATANISM AND DEVIL WORSHIP IN THE CATHOLIC CHURCH | Tagged: , | 30 Comments »

DELIVERED FROM THE POWERS OF DARKNESS- Emmanuel Eni is an EX-stanists who left satanism and gave his life to Jesus Christ.

Posted by ItsHellWithoutJESUS on August 29, 2009

552

THERE IS A WAY OUT OF SATANISM, OCCULTISM AND DEVIL WORSHIP, AND IT IS THROUGH JESUS CHRIST!

Chapter 1 : My Escape to “New Life”

“Train up a child in the way he should go and when he is old, he will not depart from it” (Prov. 22 : 6).

This is a story of God’s works – mighty, wonderful and mysterious – in obedience to the command of JESUS CHRIST to me saying : “Go and testify what I have done for you.”

One usually thinks of misfortune as an act of fate and that we can do nothing to alter the events of our lives. To an extent this is true. In the case of a child of God, his life is planned (Prov. 16 : 9). Whether that plan is fulfilled or not depends on a number of factors, the individual’s closeness to God, his view about the ultimate purpose of life, and the socio-spiritual environment he finds himself.

The course of your life is challenged by some external factors. The crisis is reached when you give over your WILL one way or the other, for good or evil. You can love or hate. You can wish to understand or misunderstand. The will to obey is the greatest force of a new born Christian, while the will to disobey is the most destroying force of the sinner.

A child when left alone in the world is controlled by one of two powers : good or bad, right or wrong, God or the devil. Everyone is challenged by these two forces of life, and each must choose which life he must live. And I believe that is what the Bible says : “Train up a child in the way he should go and when he grows he will not depart from it.” You will agree that the dearest and closest person to any child’s heart is his mother. An orphan is an unfortunate child and more exposed to attacks of the devil than children with parents. A mother is a protector of body and soul but it becomes double tragedy when both parents are lost and more so in most mysterious circumstances.

My story started 22 years ago in a little village called Amerie Iriegbu Ozu Item in Bende Local Government Authority, Imo State. My parents were not classified amongst the rich but my dad was privileged to inherit 42 hectares of land from my grandfather, a blessing which has today brought the greatest misfortune ever recorded in the history of the family. My dad was greatly envied by his distant and near relations for reasons I do not know, perhaps for his vast land inheritance.

We were a happy family, my parents having got four of us : Love, Margaret, Emmanuel and Chinyere. After having the first two daughters, my parents waited for 14 years before having me (the only son) and later my younger sister Chinyere. This brought real happiness to the family but this happiness was short-lived as the first tragedy struck. My lovely and caring mother died. She was alleged to have died owing to witchcraft, and four years later my father died, again through an alleged work of juju involved against him. Two years after the death of both parents my eldest sister, Love, disappeared mysteriously and Margaret, the second daughter of my parents, went mental. It was a chain of tragedies in the life of a humble and otherwise happy family. My younger sister Chinyere and I were sent to our grand parents. There I completed my elementary education and was later admitted into Item High School. I read up to Class III and dropped out of school as a result of lack of fund for fees etc. Shortly after that, my grand parents also died. After all the ceremonies that go with burials, an unknown relation collected my younger sister Chinyere, and up to this date I do not know her whereabouts. I was forced by severe maltreatments to go back to my father’s house, and there to live alone at the age of 13 years. How does a child of 13 years feed himself in the midst of his father’s enemies and consequently his own enemies ? How very afraid I was ! These events seemed to have brought me to the end of worthwhile living. Was there anyone who cared ? Was there anyone who was concerned about “a little boy’s misfortune ?”

One day I met a friend I knew during my elementary school days named Chinedum Onwukwe. Chinedum loved me very much and having heard all that befell took me to his parents who readily received me and took me as a second son. Life came back to normal again. I was well cared for. I was happy again : then I knew that the God my mother prayed to when she was alive was alive somewhere hence He had provided me with new parents, so I thought in my mind. I enjoyed this goodness for about two years and then the devil struck again.

Chinedum and his parents were travelling to Umuahia and their car ran into a tipper carrying laterites. Chinedum and his parents died on the spot ! On hearing the news I collapsed. My sorrow could better be imagined. I managed to survive through the burial ceremony, supplying those cooking with firewoods and running errands : at the end of which I went back to my father’s house and resumed the menial jobs to be able to feed.

I continued doing odd jobs on the farm, in gardens, going a fishing with elders until one day, a man from my compound hired me to work in his farm for 50k. At the farm he subjected me to a series of questions. First, he asked me to show him my father’s lands ; secondly, to hand over such lands to a man, no matter how closely related he was. In either case I objected and he was offended. He then vowed to kill me in the forest. I became afraid and ran and shouted for help. Unfortunately, because the area was far into the thick forest, no one came but help came from God. He pursued me with his knife but being younger I was too fast for him and fell into a pit of about 1.82 metres deep and was covered by the grass in it. He searched for me and after a while he gave up. I later struggled out of the pit and through another route returned to the village. I reported the incident to the elders in the compound but no action was taken – the common plight of orphans. This incident created real hatred in my young heart ; no one loved me, no one cared. I reflected in my mind why anyone would want to kill me knowing I had no parents. Life was full of misery. Now I know that God in His love restrained the devil from suggesting suicide to me. I turned to the Church and became a full member of the Assemblies of God church in my village (I still am) but unfortunately no one cared even when some of the members knew about me. It is important to note that I became a full member of the church without knowing Jesus Christ. I never knew what it meant to be BORN AGAIN. If you are in the Church of Jesus Christ and find yourself in the situation I found myself, give your life to the Lord Jesus Christ. The Scripture says : “Let Him have all our worries and cares, for He is always thinking about you and watching everything that aconcerns you” (1 Pet. 5 : 7 – Living New Testament).

In the midst of all these hardship and suffering ALICE appeared! Alice was a girl I knew during my elementary school days. She was five years older and from the same village. We were in the same class, sat on the same bench and became very friendly. With this childhood’s ‘love’ affair, we promised ‘getting married’ when we would be old. Ridiculous ! A child of 11 years then, without parents, no education, no food to eat, promising marriage to a girl of five years his senior ! Alice later left for Akure for her secondary education and sent me dozens of ‘love’ letters.

The next time I met Alice, I was 15 years and she was 20. She had finished her secondary school education and was working with the Standard Bank Lagos (now First Bank), where her parents lived.

Alice having known my background and my plight, took advantage of it. She told me to join her at Lagos and handed me her house address with N50 (Naïra : National Currency of Nigeria) ! That was a fortune for a young boy of 15 years who had never earned up to N2 a day ! This was manna from heaven and this meant that Lagos must be a wonderful place with plenty of money and the good things of life for all to enjoy. Then I must go to Lagos to make my own money and get riches too. Going to Lagos to my mind was my only way of escape. Escape from my father’s enemies, escape from my enemies, escape from hunger and ALL my problems. Escape ! Escape ! Yes, escape from All that is evil !!!

Chapter 2 : The Initiation

(There is a way which seemeth right unto a man, but the end thereof are the ways of death.) Prov. 14:12

(But the wicked are like the troubled sea, when it cannot rest, whose waters cast up mire and dirt.
There is no peace, saith my God to the wicked.) Isa. 57:20-21

And life outside Jesus Christ is exactly as stated in the above Scriptures. I left my village armed with N50 and the address given to me by Alice, escaping to freedom, liberty, enjoyment and all that go with them : but as you will see later it was far from what I had conceived in my young heart. When I arrived in Lagos, it was so beautiful in my eyes and I compared it with Heaven, whatever Heaven is like. I saw all those tall and beautiful buildings and on each face I could see happiness (so I thought). People appeared very busy each one minding his/her business. I was excited and said to myself, now i know i am free !

I arrived at Akintola Road, Victoria Island and was well received by Alice and her parents. The parents knew me and my background as we came from the same village but never knew of my relationship with their daughter. Alice then introduced me to them as a man she has ‘chosen’ to marry. The parents were shocked but after some discussions with her, agreed on the condition that they would further my education. Alice rejected their offer and requested that I be allowed to live with her in her own flat. The parents could not accept this but she insisted. They had a strong argument for four days and under some unexplained influence they agreed and I moved in with Alice.

Alice, a very beautiful girl, told me that she was an accountant with the Standard Bank and that she would make me rich and give me all that I needed in this life and said : “Just settle down and enjoy yourself !” My first impression about Lagos was true after all ; few months ago I was in a small hut in a small village surrounded by hatred, starvation and suffering and here I am, living in a big city, in a well furnished flat with a beautiful ‘wife’ who had promised to give me all that life could offer. She showered me with gifts, money, clothing, ‘love’ etc. I never knew that the world was filled with these ‘good things’. The devil indeed is a deceiver ! The Scripture rightly says : “The thief cometh not but for to steal, to kill and to destroy. ONLY the son of man (JESUS CHRIST) can give life and give it more abundantly” (John 10 : 10). Dear reader, the devil has no free gift ! Whatever he gives you is for an exchange with your soul. This state of euphoria was short-lived, because after a period of three months strange things started happening.

The Mysterious Experiences

One night, I woke up in the dead of the night and found a boa-constrictor beside me. I wanted to shout but could not. Some nights, I would wake up to see Alice’s body as transparent as a cellophane bag. Some nights, she would disappear and reappear. Some nights I would hear strange noises or dancing in the living room etc. I could no longer bear these fearful happenings so I decided to ask her, and the first reaction was violence and serious warning. She said : “Do not ask me this question again or else I will deal with you.”

From then I knew my life was in danger. I then preferred the sufferings in the village to what I came to discover. I became afraid of her. Two days passed and she came with smiles, gifts and hugged me. She told me how much she loved and cared for me and encouraged me not to be afraid and promised to explain things to me later. She took me to a night club and there reminded me of her promise to make me rich etc., and told me : “ONE DAY YOU WILL KNOW ALL THAT I KNOW !” We came back and life continued as normal between us. Inwardly I knew I was in danger, but how could I escape and where would I escape to ? It is important to note here that Alice’s parents did not know that their daughter, though young, was involved seriously in occultism and spiritism and she seriously warned me never to tell them if I loved my life. Dear reader, can you imagine, a 20 year old girl doing all these things ? The outside world saw her as a very beautiful and harmless girl working with a big Bank but she was the devil’s agent. There are a lot of Alices in the world today as you will find out later in this book.

A Horrific Discovery

One day, after she had left for work, I decided to search the flat. As young as she was, the flat was well furnished. She had four refrigerators and on opening one, I saw human skulls, different parts of human body both fresh and dry. Inside the ceiling were skeletons. In another corner of one of the rooms I saw (what I later knew as a ‘chamber’) a water-pot filled with blood and a small tree in the centre of the pot, a calabash and a red cloth by it. I could not continue. Now I knew that I was a dead man and since I had no where to run to. I surrendered my life to whatever comes, life or death and kept sealed lips. Alice came back from work and from the way she looked at me, I knew that right in her office she knew what I did in the house.

Encounter with the Occult World

The following day she requested me to follow her to a meeting. I was already a captive and had no choice. We went to a very big building on the outskirts of Lagos. On arriving (the building had an underground conference hall), I was instructed by Alice to enter backwards. I obeyed and entered with my back, she also did the same. The hall was so large with about 500 young men and women seated in a circle, and seated above them was a man whose head could only be seen and without a body, as the Leader. Some of these young people were students, undergraduates, graduates, teachers etc. Alice pressed a button on the wall and a seat came out from the ground and I sat. She did the same and another came out for her and she sat. She introduced me to the congregation as a new member and they applauded and welcomed me. Alice was promoted as a result of this. All that they discussed in the meeting I never understood. At the end of it and as we were about to leave, I was asked to come back alone the following day by the Leader. This was my first encounter with the occult world.

That same night, at 2.00 a.m. (and this is the usual hour of meetings and dangerous operations by all the forces of darkness and their agents), Alice woke me up and revealed certain things to me. She said : “I am not an ordinary human being. I am half human and half spirit but mainly of the spirit. What you see in my chamber is what I use during my prayers every morning, so that the spirits will guide me through the day. As for the skeletons I will tell you later.”

I never said a word. She brought out some books on world mysteries for me to read, and with my inquisitive mind I decided to read them. Shortly I became interested and immediately she saw that I was now interested. Unknown to me, she sent my name to an occult society in India. As previously instructed, the following day I went back to the society alone and there met nine others and some witnesses. We were to be initiated. We were called out to the centre of the hall and the following things were administered to us :
1. A concoction that looked like putty was rubbed on our bodies. This qualifies you as a full member.
2. A glass shot of oil-like liquid was given to us to drink. This qualifies you to be an agent.
3. A gunpowder-like substance was rubbed on our heads. This qualifies you to study their mysteries.

Unknown also to me, this initiation ceremony was being recorded in India and the next day I received a letter from them. In the letter I was instructed to stain the letter with my own blood and to post it back to them through a means they described, not the Post Office. I did. From this point, there was no turning back ; turning back meant death as one was always reminded and I knew there was no more hope for me.

Covenant with Alice

Early one morning, she told me there was an important ceremony to be performed in the house. At 2.00 a.m. she brought a crawling child, a girl, alive. Before my eyes, Alice used her fingers and plucked out the child eyes. The cry of that child broke my heart. She then slaughtered the child into pieces and poured both the blood and the flesh into a tray and asked me to eat. I refused. She looked straight at me and what came out of her eyes cannot be explained in writing. Before I knew what was happening, I was not only chewing the meat but also licking the blood. While this was happening she said : “This is a covenant between us, you will never say out anything you see me do or anything about me to any human on earth. The day you break this covenant your own is gone.” Meaning that the day I break this covenant I will be killed.

After this incident I started having strange feelings inside me. I was changed and could no longer control myself. A word of warning to mothers. Do you know your house helps ? What is his/her background like ? Do you care to find out all about him/her before entrusting the lives of your children etc. to him/her ? How did Alice get the little child she slaughtered, you may ask. Therefore parents, know the background of your house helps.

When Alice saw that she had succeeded in getting me fully involved in SPIRITISM and was fast growing in it, she was satisfied an knew her mission was accomplished. She found a flat for me, helped furnish it and thereafter severed the relationship.

Covenant in India

The Society in Delhi, India sent me a second letter asking me to come over to India. In it also I was instructed to do the following : “Eat excreta, eat decaying smelling rats, and to have sexual intercourse with spirits in the cemetery at night.”

After fulfilling the above I was bound never to have any sexual intercourse with any women on earth. I sent a reply to their letter informing them that I had no visa neither do I know how to get to India. At this time I had started doing ‘business’. I was a serious smuggler but because of these powers behind me I had no trouble with customs etc.

I started having a lot of money, food and materials were no longer scarce. One day, I locked my flat and went out ; coming back, I opened the door and behold a man sitting in the parlour. I was afraid. He said : “Are you not Emmanuel Amos ?” I said I am. He said : “I have been sent to come and collect you to India, so get ready.” I locked everywhere, went and sat beside him on the cushion ready for the next order. But like lightning, he touched me and we vanished.

The next place I saw myself was in a big conference hall in Delhi, India, with a large congregation already seated and waiting to welcome us. They brought out files where my name had already been written and asked me to sign beside it. I did. A tray containing human flesh, cut in pieces with a basin of blood were brought. An empty jug was given to each person, then a man without a head went round pouring the blood and flesh into the jugs. Different candles and incenses were being burnt also. The headless man made some incantations and everyone drank the blood and ate the meat and the meeting was over.

The Initiations in India

Now the period of my testing had come. I was sent to a valley about 200 metres deep. In it were assorted dangerous reptiles and wild beasts. These were to torture me. I was not to shout, for if I did, I have failed the exam and the consequence was DEATH. After seven days of agony I was brought out and sent to a place called ‘INDIA JUNGLE’.

In this jungle, I saw different types of demonic birds ; demonic because some had faces like dogs, some like cats, etc. Yet with wings. Inside this jungle was a cave, and this cave is only opened by these demonic birds. They opened the cave and I went inside. The things I saw are hard to explain. There were terrible creatures, some looked like human beings but with tails and without human faces, etc. This was another place of torture. The torture there could best be described as semi-hell. I was in that state for 7 days and was brought out.

I was then sent to a very big library that contained large volumes of mystic books to study. I later picked two books : Abbysinia, which means destruction, and Assina, which means giving life or curing. Later I was given more books. I was instructed to build a chamber as soon as I return to Nigeria with the following things in it : “A native water pot filled with human blood, a living tree inside, a human skull, vulture feathers, wild animal skins, boa skin and a big shiny laterites beside the pot.” The blood inside the water pot is to be taken every morning with an incantation. I was also instructed never to eat any food cooked by HUMANS but that I would be fed supernaturally. With all these instructions I came back to Nigeria the same way I went, and fulfilled all.

Back Home in Nigeria

I had now become a part and parcel of the spirit world and could travel at will to any part of the world. According to the books I brought, spirit beings are living in space. Perhaps they would increase my powers, so I decided to try. I came out of my house, made some incantations and called the whirlwind and disappeared. I found myself in space and saw these spirit beings. What do you want they asked ; I told them I wanted powers.

I came back to earth after two weeks having acquired powers from them. Like I said earlier, I no longer could control myself. Despite all these powers I had already received, I still needed more and more powers ! I then decided to go into underworld to prove what was written in the books given to me.

One day I went to a hidden place in the bush, made some incantations as stated in the books and commanded the ground to open. The ground opened and the demons created steps immediately. I stepped in and went right inside the ground. There was total darkness that can only be compared with one of the plagues that occurred in Egypt as recorded in the Bible. I saw a lot of things that are hard to explain. I saw people chained, people used for making money – their duties are to work day and night to supply money to their captors.

I saw some elite society members who came in to do some sacrifices and would go back to the world with some gifts given to them by the spirits controlling the place. I saw some church leaders who came for powers, powers to say a thing that is accepted without questioning in the church. I stayed for two weeks and came back after receiving more powers. People saw me as young and innocent but never knew I was dangerous. There are lots of such people around ; only those in Christ Jesus are safe in real sense of safety.

Covenant with The Queen of The Coast

One evening, I decided to have a walk. Along Ebute Metta bus-stop, I saw a young beautiful lady standing. I never spoke a word to her. The next day while passing also I saw her still at the same spot. The third day I saw her still at the same spot and while passing she called me. I stopped and introduced myself to her as Emmanuel Amos but she refused introducing herself.

I asked her name and address but she only laughed. She asked me mine and I told her the street ONLY. When I was about leaving, she said she would visit me one day. In my mind I said, that was impossible, I did not give her my house number how then could she come. But true to her words, I heard a knock on my door after a week of that meeting at the bus-stop. There she was, the mysterious lady ! I welcomed her in my mind. (I wondered who this beautiful lady was, and did she know she was treading on dangerous grounds ?) I entertained her and she left. After this first visit, her visits became regular without any relationships.

I noticed that in her visits she kept to a particular time, and would not come a minute earlier or later ! In some of her visits I would take her to the Lagos Barbeach, or to the Paramount Hotel or Ambassador Hotel etc. All these while, she still did not tell me her name. I decided not to worry since I knew the relationship would not develop more than that. I had already been instructed never to touch a woman.

Suddenly she changed the day visits to nights. During one of the visits she told me : “Now it is time for you to visit me.” We stayed together that night and at 8.00 a.m. the following day we took off. We joined a bus and she told the driver to stop at the barbeach. As we stopped, I asked her : “Where are we going ?” She said : “Don’t worry, you are going to know my house.” She took me to a corner of the barbeach, used something like a belt and tied around us and immediately a force came from behind and pushed us into the sea. We started flying on the surface of the water and straight to the ocean. Dear reader, these happened in my physical form ! At a point we sank into the sea bed and to my surprise I saw us walking along an express way. We moved into a city with a lot of people all very busy.

The Spirit World

I saw laboratories, like science lab, designing lab, and a theatre. At the back of the city, I saw young beautiful girls and handsome young men. No old people. She introduced me to them and I was welcomed. She took me to places like “darkroom”, “drying room”, and “packing room”. She then took me to a main factory and warehouse and then came to her private mansion. There she sat me and told me : “I am the queen of the coast and would like very much to work with you. I promise to give you wealth and all that go with it, protection and all that go with it, life and an ‘angel’ to guide you.”

She pressed a button and a tray came out with human flesh (in pieces) in it and we ate together. She commanded a boa to appear and asked me to swallow it. I could not. She insisted but I could not, how could I swallow a live boa. She then used her powers and I swallowed it. These were three covenants : The human flesh and blood, the boa and the demonic angel were always there to make sure no secret was revealed.

But the ‘angel’ was given power to discipline me if I went astray and also to bring me food from the sea any time I was here on earth. I promised to obey her always. After this promise she took me to another part of the ocean, this time an island. There were trees and each of these trees had different duties :
- tree for poisoning,
- tree for killing,
- tree for invoking, and
- tree for cure.
She gave me powers to change to all kinds of sea animals like hippopotamus, boa constrictor and crocodile and then she vanished. I stayed in the sea for a week and through one of the means (as crocodile) mentioned above I came back to the world.

The Underworld Laboratories

I stayed in Lagos for a week and went back to the sea, this time for two months. I went into the scientific laboratories to see what was happening. I saw psychiatrists and scientists all working very seriously. The work of these scientists is to design beautiful things like flashy cars, etc., latest weapons and to know the mystery of this world. If it were possible to know the pillar of the world they could have, but thank God, ONLY GOD KNOWS.

I moved into the designing room and there I saw many samples of cloth, perfumes and assorted types of cosmetic. All these things according to Lucifer are to distract men’s attention from the Almighty God. I also saw different designs of electronics, computers and alarms. There was also a T.V. from where they knew those who are born again christians in the world. There you see and differentiate those who are church goers and those who are real christians.

I then moved from the laboratories to the ‘dark room’ and ‘drying room’. The dark room is where they kill any disobedient member. They kill by first draining the person’s blood and then send the person to the machine room where he/ she will be ground to powder and then send the dust to the ‘sack room’ where they will be bagged and kept for the native doctors to collect for their charms. There were more things which are hard to explain in writing. Despite all these powers in me, I was not yet qualified to meet with Lucifer but only qualified to be his agent. All the same I was satisfied that I now had powers and could face, challenge and destroy things at will. Could there be any other powers any where I mused within my mind.

Chapter 3 : The Wicked Reign

(The thief cometh not, but for to steal, and to kill, and to destroy.
I am come that they might have life, and that they might have it more abundantly)
John 10:10

On returning to Lagos, I continued in my business and after two weeks I went back to the sea. The Queen of the Coast gave me what she called her “first assignment”. I should go to my village and kill my uncle, a prominent powerful native doctor who was responsible, according to her, for the death of my parents.

I obeyed and went but having not killed before, I hadn’t the courage to kill him, rather I destroyed his medicines and rendered him powerless. As a result of this act he lost all his customers till this date. I came back to give a report assignment but she was wrathful with me. She said the consequence of disobeying her instructions was death, but because of her love for me she would send me back to the same village to kill two elders who she said gave a helping hand in the killing of my parents. Whether this was a punishment for disobeying her or not I did not know.

However, I obeyed and went back to the village and ‘managed’ to kill these men and sent their blood to her. As a result of the mysterious circumstances of their death the elders in the village went to inquire from another powerful native doctor who normally sent lightning to investigate the killer. Unfortunately for these men, I met the native doctor in spirit where he was consulting with spirits and warned him not to say anything if he loved his life. He came out and told the elders to go home and beg one of their sons whom they had offended and never mentioned my name.

The lightning he sent returned and struck in their midst killing some and leaving many wounded. After this first act, the powers in me started manifesting themselves. I would deform a girl for refusing me friendship etc.

My Meeting with Satan

I later went back to Lagos. One day, a girl named NINA came to me. NINA whose parents were from Anambra State was a very beautiful young girl but lives mostly in the sea, i.e. the underwater spirit world. She was an ardent agent of the Queen of the Coast and very wicked. She hated the Christians to the core and would go all length to fight Christianity. I first met her during my visit to the sea. NINA came for an errand from the Queen of the Coast.

We left immediately and reaching there I learnt of our having a conference with Lucifer. Satan, in this meeting, gave us the following instructions : To fight the believers and not the unbelievers, because the unbelievers were already his. When he said this, one of us asked : “Why ?” He said the reason was that God drove him out of ‘that place” (he refused to call the word ‘Heaven’ and all throughout our meetings with him he never mentioned the word ‘Heaven’. Rather he would always use the word ‘that place’) because of pride, and therefore he does not want any christian to get there (Heaven).

He also told us that we should not fight the hypocrites. “They are like me”, he said. He continued his speech and said : “We should only fight the real Christians.” That his time was near, therefore “we should fight as never before and make sure no one enters ‘that place’.” So one of us said to him : “We heard that God has sent someone to rescue mankind back to God.” Satan then asked : “Who is that ?” One member answered “Jesus” and to our greatest surprise, Lucifer fell from his seat. He shouted at the man and warned him never to mention that name in any of our meetings if he loves his life. It is true that at the name of Jesus every knee must bow (Phil. 2:10), including Satan.

After this incident he encouraged us and told us not to mind “these Christians”, that he Lucifer would soon come to rule the world and would give us, his agents, a better place so that we would not suffer with the rest of the world and he would make us rulers. He continued that since man likes flashy and fanciful things, he would continue to manufacture these things and make sure that man has no time for his God and that he would use the following to destroy the church :

1. Money,
2. Wealth,
3. Women.

At the end of this speech he dismissed the meeting. This was my first meeting with Satan. Several others followed after this meeting. As we were leaving, the Queen of the Coast, who now appears in different forms, invited me to her mansion. She inserted human ashes with other things inside the bones of my two legs, a stone (not an ordinary stone) in my finger and something else inside the bone of my right hand.

Each of these things had their duties. The stone in my finger was to know the thought of anyone against me. The one in my right hand was to empower me to destroy and the ones in the legs are to make me more hardened and to become more dangerous and also to enable me change to a woman, beast, bird, cat, etc. She took me to one of the laboratories and gave me a telescope, a T.V. and a video. These were not ordinary things but were to be used in detecting the born again Christians and the church goers inside the Church.

Finally she gave me sixteen girls to work as my agents. NINA was one of them. I came back to Lagos armed with the above mentioned ‘gifts’.

Transformed into Satan’s Agent

I had no human feelings nor mercy in my heart any longer. I went into operation immediately and destroyed five duplex at a go. They all sunk inside the ground with their inhabitants. This happened at Lagos in August 1982. The contractor was held responsible for not laying a good foundation and paid dearly for it. A lot of destruction happening in the world today are not man made. The devil’s duty is to steal, kill and destroy. I say it again, satan has no free gift”.

I went into causing accidents on the roads etc. A case I would like to mention is about a young convert who went about testifying of his salvation and deliverance. He was causing a lot of harm in the spirit world for doing this, so I planned an accident for him. One day he was on a luxurious bus to Lagos. He had an appointment where he was to give his testimony. As the bus was on high speed, I wheeled it out of the road and it went and crashed onto a tree. All the passengers died except this young convert.

His escape was miraculous because he came out of the vehicle through the boot of the bus and shouted : “I am safe ! I am safe !” We tried to stop him from testifying but we failed.

Through the T.V., we would know a man who repented newly and would pursue him seriously to see if we could make him backslide. If after six months we do not succeed, we would go into his business and make it go bankrupt. If he/she is a civil servant we would oppress him/her through the boss, and if possible make the boss terminate his/her appointment. If after all these he refuses to backslide then we would give him up. But if he backslides he would be killed to make sure he does not have a second chance to repent.

I destroyed lives to the extent that Lucifer became very pleased and made me chairman of the wizards. A month after my chairmanship, a meeting was called. We attended that meeting as birds, cats and snakes. These creatures are used for the following reasons :

1. Turning to birds make wizards more dangerous.
2. Turning to cats make wizards able to reach both spirits and humans.
3. Turning to rats enable wizards to enter into a house easily, then in the night turn to shadow, and then to human being and suck the victim’s blood.

In this meeting we had only one item on the agenda : “The christians.” We then scheduled to hold an African wizard conference in Benin city in 1983. We published it in all the dailies and all the public media. All the forces of darkness were mobilised and we were very confident that nothing was going to interrupt this meeting. In fact everything was well planned and there was no loophole.

Suddenly, the christians in Nigeria went into prayers and praises unto thier God and all our plans were shattered. Not only that our plans were shattered but also there was real confusion in the kingdom of darkness. As a result, the witches’ and wizards’ conference could not be held in Nigeria. Christians should note that the moment they go into real praises to God almighty, there would be trouble and confusion both in the sea and in the air, and the agents of satan would have no resting place. Prayer is like throwing a time-bomb in our midst and everyone would escape for his/her life.

If christians would realize and use the power and authority God has given them, they would control the affairs of their nation ! Only christians can save our nation.

After the failure of this conference, which was later held in south africa, I was called back to the sea. When I arrived, I was told from that moment I would make the sea my home and only visit the world for difficult operations. I was given a new assignment : inventing charms for native doctors, in charge of the control room and sending the gifts, i.e. opening of white garment churches (prayer houses), opening of maternities, opening stores and making them prosper, giving ‘children’ and money. These will be explained one after the other :

1. Opening of White “Garment Churches” :
When a man comes to us for an assistance to build a prayer house and help him performing healings etc., he would be given some conditions :
a) He will agree to donate to us one or two souls every year.
b) At a certain level of office in the church the person would be initiated to our society.
c) No member would be allowed to come into the prayer house with shoes on.

When he accepts these conditions, he would be given something like a white gravel, human bones, blood and charms, all in a native pot. He would be instructed to bury this pot with all its content in front of the church and bury the cross on its top. After the burial, only the cross should be seen. He would be advised to build a pool or keep a basin where spirits would continue to supply specail water. This water is what you hear them call “holy water.”

Many people when disturbed by evil spirits go to these “prophets” to cast them out. The truth is, they only add more demons to them. A devil cannot cast out devil. What the prophet would do is, he will pray for the member and then give him/her a red cloth to put in his/ her house, and then would advise him/her to always pray with candles and incenses. By this act the person invites us into his/her house. Sometimes the member would be advised to bring a goat etc., for sacrifice. These sacrifices are for us to come and help cure the man. The prophet has no power to cure or heal.

2. Opening of Maternities :
If a woman comes to us for assistance in opening a maternity and making it prosper, she would be given this condition :
“A month would be chosen by us in which all the children born in the maternity would die, but the other months the children would live.”

If she accepts, she would also be given a charm which would attract people into the maternity. There are such maternities in Onitsha, Lagos, etc. shoes are not allowed into such maternities.

3. Opening of Fancy Stores :
When a man approaches us for assistance in this respect, he would be given a ring with a condition that no woman should be allowed to touch it. He also must agree to be our member. If he accepts to fulfil these conditions, his store would be stocked always with the best and latest materials by us.

4. Giving of Children :
If a barren woman goes to some native doctors, after laying her complaints, she would be asked to bring the following : a white cock, a goat, native chalk and baby care. She would be advised to go and in her absence, the native doctor will come to us bringing these things. We would then mix certain things which are difficult to explain in writing, and include human ashes. He would use this charm to cook food for the woman etc. She would become pregnant and give birth, but it’s not a normal human being. If the child is a female she would live ans even get married but would remain barren all her life. If the child is a male he will live and even be trained only to die suddenly. They never live to bury their parents.

I would like to mention here that barrenness is mostly caused by demons. You may see a woman barren here on earth, but she would have children in the sea. I therefore advise God’s children to wait on God alone because only God gives real children.

5. Giving of Money :
If a man comes to us for money, he would be given these conditions to fulfil : He will be asked to give a part of his body or if he has a family he would be asked to bring his son. If single, he would be asked to bring his elder or younger brother.

Whoever he decides to bring must be from the same womb. Something worth mentioning is : during the killing of the victim, the person who brought him would be given a spear or an arrow. His relations would be made to file past in a mirror. As soon as the one he had donates passes, he would be asked to strike and as this happens the victim would die where he is.

There are other methods but one thing Satan does is that : He makes sure that in the different methods, the donor becomes responsible for the death of the victim, by making the donor strike the victim. remember, satan has no free gift !

Chapter 4 : How Satan Fights Christians

(For we wrestle not against flesh and blood, but against principalities,
against powers, against spiritual wickedness in high places)
Eph. 6 : 10-12

Fighting Christians

After the command by Lucifer to fight the Christians, we then sat and mapped out ways of fighting them as follows :

1. Causing sicknesses.
2. Causing barrenness.
3. Casing slumber in the church.
4. Causing confusion in the church.
5. Causing lukewarmness in the church.
6. Making them ignorant of the Word of God.
7. By fashion and emulation.
8. Fighting them physically.

Amongst the above I would like to explain two :

1. Fighting physically :
With the T.V. given to me, I would through it see the born again Christians. We do not fight hypocrites because they belong to us already. We would then send our girls first to the big churches. Inside the church they would ne chewing gum or make a child cry or do anything taht would distract the people from hearing the word of God. They may decide to come spiritually and cause the people to sleep while the preaching is going on. The moment they see you have a sober reflection because of the preaching, they would wait on you outside the church and as soon as you come out, one of them would greet you and even present you a gift (and it’s always what you love) and would appear very friendly. She would do everything and before you knew what was happening you had forgotten all you learnt in the church. But for a real Christian, one of these girls, after the service, would jump out to greet you and would desire to know your house with the pretext that she was new in town and did not know many Christians around. On taking her home, she would quickly buy bananas and the Christian would take this as a gesture of love. She would continue her visits until she finally puts off the light of Christ in you and then stops coming. Major operations in the living churches and fellowships are : discouraging the Christians from reading and studying the Word of God, and thereby making them ignorant of their authority and of the promises of God. In crusade grounds these girls would be sent to cause disagreements and quarrels.

How Christians are Known ?
The born again Christians are not known by the Bible they carry always or the many fellowships they attend. They are known in the spirit world by the light that shines continuously like a very bright candle in the heart or a circle of light around the head or a wall of fire around them. When a Christian is walking along, we see angels walking along with him/her, one by the right, one by the left, and one behind. This makes it impossible for us to come near him/her.

The only way we succeed is by making the Christian sin, thereby giving us a loophole to come in. When a Christian is driving a car and we want to harm him/her, we find that he/she is never alone in the car. There is always an Angel by him/her. Oh if the christian only knows all that God has for him, he will not meddle with sin or live carelessly !

2. The Making of Backslidden Christians
As a chairman appointed by Lucifer, I would send these girls to living churches and fellowships. These girls would be well dressed and after the preaching would come out for the altar call, pretend to have received Christ and would be prayed for. At the end of the fellowship or service they would hang around waiting for the preacher who naturally would be very happy for these new converts.

The said convert may even follow the preacher to his house. If the preacher does not have the spirit of discernment she would lure him into the sin of fornication or adultery. This takes place the moment he admires her lustfully. She would make sure he continued in this sin until she finally quenches the Spirit of God in him and then leave him, mission accomplished.

At this juncture, I would like to give a testimony of a Minister. In the evil spirit world he is known as a man of God. When he went on his knees there would be confusion among us. We therefore sent these girls to him. This man would even feed them but would refuse to be enticed. They did all they could but never succeeded. As a result, these girls were killed for their failure.

I then changed to a woman and went to him, and by words an actions tried to entice him, but he was adamant. This was too much for me, so I decided to kill him physically. One day, this Minister went to Oduekpe Road market town. I watched him and as he bent down to price some commodities I wheeled an oncoming trailer loaded with drums of oil into the market where he was. The trailer struck the NEPA high tension pole and fell right into the market, leaving many people dead, but this Minister escaped. How he escaped was a miracle. Another day, I saw him travelling to Nkpor town on foot. I again wheeled an oncoming army lorry loaded with yams to kill him. The lorry went straight into the new cemetery road, killed many people, but this Minister again escaped. After this second attempt we gave up. He is still alive !

Because of a single christian, the devil may decide to destroy many souls, thinking he could kill him, but he always fails. These incidents had happened to many Christians unknown to them, but their God always delivered them. The trouble is, the devil does not give up. His thoughts are always : “I may succeed.” But he never does. As long as the christian walks with God’s Love and remains in Him and does not get entangled with the affairs of this life, the devil can never succeed, no matter how hard he tries. Only the unbeliever is at his disposal.

The Oppression of the Christian

This mostly happens in dreams. A Christian may see in his/her dreams the following :
1. A dead relation visiting him/her.
2. Masquerades pursuing him/her.
3. Mates swimming in the river.
4. Mates bringing food and asking him/her to eat.
5. A single female having sexual intercourse or even a married one having sex with a man. This, if not dealt with, sometimes leads to barrenness.
Or a pregnant woman sees herself having sexual intercourse with a man. This, if not immediately dealt with, could lead to a miscarriage.

If a Christian experiences the above in his/ her dreams, he/she should not put it aside by the wave of the hand, but on getting out of sleep he/she should examine himself/herself and confess any known sin unto God, bind all those demons and ask God to restore whatever had been tampered with. This is very important. The person should also seek the help and counsel of a mature Spirit-filled Christian, older in the faith.

The Devil’s Soul Winning


When Jesus Christ was leaving this earth, He gave His disciples a command : “Go ye into all world and make disciples of all nations.” While some Christians are still waiting for a more suitable and convenient time to obey this command, the devil has also given this command to his agents. The difference is, the devil’s agents are more serious in winning souls than the christians !

One of the areas of the devil’s soul winning is the secondary schools, especially girls schools. Some of our girls are sent into the schools as students. We supply them with all the latest and expensive underwear. This is first priority, because in girls’ hostels, they like using underwear only. Our agent would never lack anything, cosmetics, dresses, underwear, books, provisions and money. A particular bathing soap would be given to her to lend to any student who requests for soap from her. A girl desiring to be like her would be attracted and would befriend her. Gradually our agent would introduce us to her. At this point we would visit her physically and would start giving her gifts and meeting her needs. With this, she would join us willingly. She in turn would win another and so on. This is taken as a mission and it is carried out with a determination to succeed.

One thing should be made clear : satan does not force anyone. What he does is to attract and make you come to him willingly. That is why the Bible says : “Resist the devil and he will flee from you” (James 4:7). Another area of soul winning for the devil is giving lifts. We would send our girls to stand on the road, and usually they are very beautiful and attractively dressed. You will also find them in hotels and through these avenues we get men and women. Many people we see advertised in the papers as missing, got lost through giving lifts to girls they did not know.

You should therefore be careful who you lift in your car.

Chapter 5 : My Encounter with Jesus Christ

In the month of February 1985, we had our normal meeting in the sea, after which I decided to travel to Port Harcourt in Rivers State, to visit my late uncle’s wife. I met a man called Anthony. He has a workshop at Nwaja Junction, along Trans-Amadi Road, Port Harcourt, Rivers State. He sent for me and since in our society we have a law never to refuse calls, I decided to answer his call. I went to him in the afternoon on a Thursday of that week. He started by saying God has given him a message for me. He brought out his Bible and started preaching. There were three other Christians seated (a male and two females). He continued his preaching for a long time and I wasn’t sure I heard all he said. He asked me to kneel down for prayers. I obeyed and quietly knelt down.

Immediately he started his prayers. I was knocked down by the spirit of God and I fell flat. I struggled up and stood like an iron. I destroyed the iron chairs inside the workshop. I looked outside and saw three of our secret society members, a man and two girls. They came in human form and moved towards the door but because of the power of God they could not enter.

I am sure the alarm in the sea alerted them of the trouble and with the T.V. they knew where the problem was and had sent the ‘powerless’ rescue team. This always happens when any member runs into trouble. While the two Christian men pulled me down on my knees, the girls continued praying and binding the demons, but they were not specific. They asked me if I believed in Jesus Christ, I said nothing. They asked me to call the name of Jesus, I refused. They asked me my own name and I told them. They struggled for hours and released me to go. No spirit was removed from me, so I went out the same way as when I came in.

The Church Events

The following day being Friday, I was invited by the same Anthony to attend their night vigil at the Assemblies of God church, Silver Valley, Port Harcourt. I accepted this invitation because attending church services to cause slumber and confusion was part of our assignments. The programme started with choruses. We sang until one of the members raised a popular chorus by a particular Christian Band, of the powerlessness of other powers except Jesus’ power.

Then I started laughing. I laughed because when in the spirit I looked into their lives almost three quarters of the people singing this chorus were living in sin. I knew that because of the sins in their lives, they were exposed and could be harmed seriously by these powers. It is important that christians obey the word of God and not allow besetting sins to remain in their lives. In that service we were four from the sea and were singing and clapping with them. Again I want to stress here that when a service is started, members shouls be advised first to confess their sins, then go into a period of real praises to God. This will make an agent of Satan present very uncomfortable and in fact escape for his/her life.

In this particular service we were very comfortable and even went into operation. Many started sleeping, choruses were sung weakly and things went zig zag. Brother Anthony had already told them about me so at about 2.00 a.m. they called me out to pray for me. As soon as I came out to the front they started pleading the blood of Jesus. I stopped them and said : “It is not pleading the blood that is the solution. I am a deep secret society member. If you agree that you can deliver me, then will I kneel down.” These words I spoke were not premeditated. The blood of Jesus scares the demons and protects the believer, but does not bind demons. Binding of demons only takes place when the christian uses his authority and gives the command.

They agreed and I knelt down. At that point a sister led by the Sprit of God shouted and said : “If you are not worthy, do not come near !” I am sure many did not understand what she meant. It is dangerous for a christian living in sin to cast out demons. Many withdrew and a few came out to pray for me. As they started with “In Jesus name,” I heard a big bang inside me and fell on the floor. Immediately the flying demon in me went into action. I started running with my chest. Anybody possessed with this flying demon is always very wicked and dangerous. The brethren never saw what was happening spiritually. I was running because of the stronger power in the room.

Two opposing forces went into action and the atmosphere changed. I suddenly stood up and became very violent etc. A demon went out of me and possessed a boy in their midst and he started fighting them, trying to rescue me. The brethren never wasted time with him rather they took him and others who were afraid to the church vestry and locked them inside. This continued till 7.00 a.m. I was physically exhausted and became quiet, so the brethren gathered around me again and started shouting : “Name them!” “Who are they ?” etc. I kept quiet. After waiting for a long time and I said nothing, they were deceived to believe that I was delivered. They prayed and we dismissed. I was so physically weak that I found it difficult to walk out of the church. But something happened, for as soon as I walked out of the church and crossed the road, I became very strong physically. Perhaps some of the demons that left came back. I became very angry and decided to take vengeance on the church. “This people had insulted me” I said to myself, and for this insult I was going back to Lagos and get more powers with others as wicked as myself, and then come back to Port Harcourt to take vengeance on ALL the members of the Assembly of God, Silver Valley.

En Route to Lagos

On getting to my uncle’s wife house, I told them I was leaving for Lagos immediately. I refused to be persuaded to stay and I took a taxi to Mile 3 motor park where I took a taxi for Onitsha. My intention was to stop at Onitsha, see a friend and then proceed to Lagos. At Mile 3 we took off and on getting to Omagwe, at the International Airport Junction, I heard a voice calling me by my native name “NKEM.” I turned around to see if there was a known face in the taxi but there was none. Who could this be ? Only my late mother calls me by that name, all others including the spirit world knew me as Emmanuel.

While I was still wondering, the voice came again : “NKEM, are you going to betray me again ?” I did not recognize the voice but the voice continued asking me : “Are you going to betray me again ?” Suddenly I had severe fever. The heat that came out of my body was so high that the other passengers felt it. One of them asked me : “Mr., were you well at-all before travelling ?” I told them I was well and that I never had even a headache before leaving Port Harcourt.

At Umuakpa in Owerri, I collapsed inside the taxi. The next I knew was that two men, tall and huge, came to take me, one on my left and the other on my right, and they never spoke a word to me. They led me through a very rough road with bottles and metals. As we moved along, these bottles and metals gave cuts and I started crying but these men still did not say a word. We moved on and came out to an express road. It was here one of them spoke and said : “You are a wanted man !” and we continued. We moved on to a very large and long building that looked like a Conference Hall. As soon as we climbed the pavement a voice from inside said : “Take him in !” They took me in and disappeared, leaving me alone.

What I saw inside this hall is difficult to explain, but I will try to explain as much as I can. The hall was well decorated and so large and long that one finds it difficult to see the end of it. I walked to the middle and then was able to see the end. At the end was an altar. I saw a moon and stars surrounding the sun. Then I saw a throne and seated on it was a very handsome man with a garment shining like the sun. He said : “Come !” But because of His brightness I could not go. Whenever I tried to move a leg I would fall.

I stood up, tried again and fell. Suddenly a moon came out of the throne where He was sitting and moved on the ceiling right up where I stood. Then two hands came out of the moon, held my head, shook me and my physical body pulled off, like pulling off a dress. And the real me stood. The hands folded it as if folding a cloth and dropped it at the corner. The moon then moved back to the throne and then He that sat on it said again : “Come !”

The Spiritual Cleansing

I walked to a point and He stepped out of the throne to me, removed my legs one after another and poured out what was inside them and fixed them back. He did the same with my hands and put them back, in fact all the places the Queen of the Coast kept powers. I wondered in my mind, who can this be and how did He know the spots these things were kept. After this He went back to His throne and asked me to come. As I started walking, certain objects started falling from my body, scales fell from my eyes, etc., but before I got to the altar it stopped. “WHERE ARE YOU GOING ?” He asked.

I answered and said : “I am going to Onitsha to see a friend.” He said : “Yes, but i will show you what you have in your mind.” Up till this moment I did not know who He was, but one thing was certain and that was He was more powerful than all the powers I had come across. He beckoned on a man and asked him to show me what I had conceived in my heart. This man took me to a room and opened something like a blackboard. In fact, if there was a way to escape I could have escaped, for before me was written all that I had planned against Christians and my plan against the Assemblies of God church, Silver Valley. The man brought me back to the altar and left.

He came out of the throne and took me by His hands and said He was going to show me certain things. On our way He said : “I do not want you to perish but to save you and this is your last chance. If you do not repent and come and serve me, you will die. I will show you the abode of the saved and the disobedient.” When He said this, I then knew He was Jesus Christ.

The Divine Revelations

We entered a room and He opened something like a curtain. I saw the whole world, the people and all the activities going on. I saw both Christians and unbelievers all doing one thing or the other. We went into a second room. He opened a curtain again and what I saw was a sorry sight. People chained ! He called these people “the hypocrites.” These people looked very sorrowful and He said : “They will remain this way until the judgement day.”

We went into a third room. He opened a curtain and I saw many people rejoicing and wearing white garments. This time I asked him : “Who are these ?” He said : “These are the redeemed awaiting their rewards.” We went into a fourth room and what I saw was very frightening.

Dear reader, it is difficult to describe. It looked like a whole city on fire. Hell is real and terrible. If you had been made to believe that Heaven and Hell are here on earth and that man has no hereafter but total annihilation after death, you better be well advised here and now that there is a real hell and there is a real heaven ! No wonder when Jesus Christ was on earth He warned man about hell. I say it again, hell is real. I saw it and it is a terrible place. I asked Him : “What it is ?” His answer was : “This is prepared for satan and his angels and for the disobedient.” He named them as recorded in Rev. 21:8 : “But the fearful and unbelieving and the abominable, and murderers, and whoremongers and sorcerers, and idolaters and all liars, shall have their part in the lake which burneth with fire and brimstone : which is the second death.”

We went into a fifth room and when He opened a curtain, what I saw can only be described as GLORIOUS. It was as if we were looking at it from mountain top. I saw a new city. The city was so large and beautiful ! The streets are made of gold. The buildings could not be compared with anything in this world. He said : “ this is the hope of the saints. Will you be there ?” Immediately I answered “Yes !” After this we went back to the throne and He said : “Go and testify what I have done for you.”

Again, He took me to another room and when He opened a curtain I saw all that I was going to encounter on my journey to Onitsha and Lagos and how He would finally deliver me. After this He said to me : “Do not be afraid, go, I will be with you.” He led me out of the hall and vanished, and I woke up on a bed in another man’s house. I shouted, so the man and his wife ran out from their room. They first peeped and then came in. “Why am I here ?” I asked. The man then narrated how I collapsed in a taxi and how they carried me to the Catholic Cathedral there in Owerri. How they sent for a Doctor, who came and after examining me said my pulse was normal and that they should wait and see what would happen. The Doctor gave them the assurance that I would revive. The man then took me in his car to his house and had been waiting. He also confessed he never knew why he believed the Doctor and why he took responsibility of taking me to his house.

They asked me my name and address which I gave them and after that I kept quiet and never told them my experience. I stayed calmly with this kind family for two days and then the man and his wife drove me to the Owerri motor park, where I took a taxi to Onitsha. All that the Lord showed me about my journey happened one after the other. I took another taxi to Lagos first thing the following morning. I obeyed and left Lagos for Port Harcourt the following morning. I often ask myself, why would the Lord save a man like me. A man so wicked and destructive, an agent of Satan ! I found the answer in these three words : God is love. Indeed, God is Love !

Chapter 6 : Temptation and Victory
(My sheep hear my voice, and I know them,
and they follow me : And I give unto them eternal
life ; and they shall never perish, neither shall any
man pluck them out of my hand) John 10:27-28

After my conversion to Christ, the first thing that happened was all the gifts from the sea, the telescope, the T.V., shirts, photographs I snapped inside the sea laboratories and the photograph of the Queen of the Coast which were displayed in my flat vanished.

On returning to Port Harcourt, I had the urge to testify what the Lord had done for me but was not allowed in the church. My late uncle’s wife who is also a Christian, took me to one of the pastors, but the question he asked was : “Did he bring the paper ?” It was later that I understood that the paper he meant was a ‘membership letter.’ What has membership letter to do with my testifying the power of Christ and what He has done for me- God, translating me from the power of darkness into the kingdom of His dear Son, in whom I have redemption through His blood, even the forgiveness of my sins ?

I was sad, having known that Satan does not allow young converts to go about testifying, especially those who previously were deeply involved in his activities, and would do everything to stop such testimonies. Again I remembered, the Lord clearly instructed me to “go and testify what I have done for you” and here I was faced with rejection. Perhaps it was not yet time. So I decided to shelve giving my testimony to anyone. I travelled with three traders from Aba to Togo for a business trip. There I bought goods worth N160,000 (One Hundred and Sixty Thousand Naïra). Out of this amount my personal money was N70,000 while the remaining N90,000 was borrowed from traders in Aba. Amongst the things I bought were bundles of laces, assorted drugs (especially antibiotics), injections, thermometers, etc. At the Nigerian border, we were held by the Customs and later were asked to pay some bribe. We refused and the goods were seized including those belonging to my colleagues. A few months later, those belonging to my colleagues were released excepted mine. I went back later and was asked to pay N40,000, but on checking the goods I discovered that all the valuable goods, bundles of laces, injections, drugs, etc., were already stolen. I assessed the remaining goods and knew that paying N40,000 to the Customs would only increase the loss, so I decided to forego the remaining goods.

The traders whose money I borrowed started chasing me. Some called the police, others took the laws into their hands and planned to do away with my life. The only solution was to close my Bank accounts and use all the money I had to settle all the debts. By God’s grace, I paid all except N1,000 meant for my landlord in Lagos. I went completely bankrupt and would borrow even 20k for taxi fare.

I went to a few business Christians I knew then, to seek for help to enable me start afresh. None said yes or no, rather I would be asked to come the following day repeatedly until I would be tired or find help. I did not know the Word of God and with all the confusion in my heart, I would read the Bible and would not understand. Still contemplating on what to do, I received an urgent call from my village. I rushed home and found that the little building I was setting up had been pulled down by my uncle who was also present and threatened to kill me. The old nature in me was challenged. I remembered when I was with the secret society, how he dreaded me and would go on his knees before me. But now he knew I was a changed man (how he knew I did not know as I had not travelled home since my conversion) and he now threatened me. I called on the Lord and said : “So you saved me to leave me frustrated and to allow my enemies to rejoice over me !” I wept and decided to go back to the society.

At least I would be saved from all the confusion and would also teach my uncle a lesson he would never forget all his life. Although I took the decision, I had two prominent fears within me :

1. During my conversion, the Lord clearly told me : “This is your last chance.” My going back to the society might mean death, not only physical but also spiritual death.
2. If I remained in the Lord, my uncle was breathing threats to kill me.

I was so confused and I needed help. I was ignorant of the Word of God and never knew what the Word says in respect of the above. Dear reader, you will realise here that I had all these confusions because of lack of follow-up as a young convert. Follow-up for young converts is very important and Christians should take this seriously. If you know you cannot follow-up your converts, please do not go out for witnessing. Jesus Christ emphasized this three times when he asked Peter : “Simon, son of Jonas, lovest thou Me more than these ?… Feed my lambs.” Many converts backslide because of lack of proper follow- up. If you love Jesus, take care of His lambs !

The Battle with Satan’s Agents

During this period the Queen of the Coast’s agents started pursuing me. I suffered greatly in their hands. I had nightmares. On the 1st of May 1985, a month after my conversion, at about 2.00 a.m., others in the house were asleep. I was awakened by these agents. They commanded me to walk out of the house. I obeyed, walked out and they followed behind. It was all happening like a dream but this was in reality. We moved on to the burial ground by St. Paul’s Anglican church, off Aba Road, Port Harcourt.

On reaching there they said : “You must come back. If you refuse we will kill you or make you a destitute.” After this instruction they left. I regained my senses and wondered how I came into the burial ground. I went back to bed and slept. They decided attacking me in the afternoons. At times, while walking along the road they would fight me. Others around would see me fighting with the air or see me running as if being pursued. I alone would be seeing them. This they did for four times and stopped. Then their leader, the Queen of the Coast, took over. The first day she came in a car and parked beside our house. She was well dressed and as usually very beautiful. People around took her to be my girlfriend. Immediately she came in I knew who she was. She came at about 12.00 noon when the whole area was less busy. She sat down and among other things said : “You can go to your church, believe whatever you want to believe, but if only you will not reveal me, I will give you anything you need in this life.” I had not known the Scriptures so I only listened and watched her walk. She pleaded and tried to persuade me to come back to her. I never said yes or no to her. She stood up, walked into her car and drove off.

About two times my uncle’s wife entertained her without knowing who she was and I never told my uncle’s wife who the lady was. During her last visit she changed her approach. This time she gave me a stern warning saying that she had tried during these visits to persuade me to come back to her and that I had been very stubborn, and that this was her last visit. If I still refuse to come back, she would come to me in August and would either kill me, or disfigure me or make me destitute. With this she left.

I was afraid, so one day I went to the church and called out a brother. I told him my problems and my observations on some members of the church, etc. This brother gave me the SCRIPTURE UNION’S (S.U.) office address and told me : “There you will find help.” Incidentally that was the last day I saw this “brother.” I have never seen him anywhere in Port Harcourt up till date. I took the address and the following day, took a taxi to No. 108 Bonny Street, where the office is and met the typist who gave me the quarterly programme of activities of the S.U. Rumuomasi Pilgrims Group, being the one nearest to me. She said : “Come on Sunday !” I was there at the Fellowship Centre – St. Michael’s State School, Rumuomasi – at 2.00 p.m., not knowing that the fellowship starts at 3.00 p.m., but I met the prayer band, so I joined them.

After the fellowship that day I knew this was the right place for me. God provided me with a Christian lady, whom I took as a mother, who took interest in explaining the Word of God to me and counselled me as well. The brethren became very interested in me and cared. I saw real love. The Holy Spirit began giving me understanding of the Word and my faith grew. But the Queen of the Coast did not show up as she threatened. Psalm 91, God’s protection, was fulfilled in my life. Isa. 57:17 : “No weapon that is formed against thee shall prosper ; and every tongue that shall rise against thee in judgment thou shalt condemn. This is the heritage of the servants of the Lord, and their righteousness is of me, said the Lord.” This also was fulfilled.

September 1985, I received a message that my name appeared as a distributor with the Silver Brand Cement, Lagos and that I was expected to report at the office on 27/9/85. I left Port Harcourt on 26/9/85 and arrived in Lagos in the night. The following morning 27/9/85, I went into the office only to be told by the Personnel Manager that my allocation had been assigned to someone else. He asked me to repeat the following day 28/9/85 to see the Managing Director. On my way back to my flat, passing through a path, someone came from behind and gripped me and tried to suffocate me i.e. held my nose and mouth together. I struggled for life and while people passed by, none came to my rescue, but the Lord intervened. While I still struggled with the hands I heard her shout and pushed me away saying : “Who is that person behind you ?” She repeated a second time and disappeared. From the voice I knew it was a woman but never saw who she was. I was dazed and staggered to my flat.

Here again my landlord was very furious and said : “Why did you run away with the money of my rent ?” I pleaded with him and tried to explain that presently I was not working and would pay all his money as soon I had money. With the way he consented I thought this matter was settled. The following day 28/9/85, I went back to the office and met the Managing Director who apologized for having given my allocation to another. While he was still talking a young man walked in and asked me : “Are you not Emmanuel ?” I said : “Yes, I am.” He said : “Yes, we have got you at last ! Have you finished running ? We have visited Port Harcourt several times and found that you were always with your spiritual mother. She had been a stumbling block to us and now that you have come to Lagos we have caught you ! You can never go back to Port Harcourt. I am the one that took your allocation.” I challenged him and told him : “You can’t do anything !” The Managing Director was surprised at what was happening in his office. I excused myself and left for the flat.

Few minutes later I heard a knock on my door and NINA entered. She asked me if I was going back to Port Harcourt. I answered yes. She pleaded with me to come back to them and that the jobs I was particularly trained for were still lying unaccomplished : KOTIPARI (in the Yoruba language). I had been trained :

- to be in charge of the agents of demonic powers.
- to be in charge of the “sea control room,” to monitor the happenings in the world, to send and receive signals, and to mobilize forces, etc.
- to be next to the Queen of the Coast. This involved not only ceremonies, sacrifices, execution of special assignments by her, but also other things difficult to explain.
- with the assistance of the powers of darkness, to establish new secret societies that would appear harmless so to attract young people and more church goers.

She said, if I accompanied her, what awaited me was double promotion and many blessings. She confessed they were responsible for my goods being seized and stolen, also that they instigated my uncle to destroy my building and to threaten my life. That if I refuse following her, they would do more and make sure that I did not prosper. That they had decided to fight my spiritual mother : “If we get her, we’ve got you” she said. At that, I started preaching to her. She stood up and said : “They are deceiving you,” and left. This took place in the evening of 28/9/85.

Not quite fifteen minutes she left I heard another knock. This time they were four men. They beckoned on me to come out and I saw myself going along with them. We walked up to about 2 poles and one of them asked me : “Do you know us ?” I said no. He continued : “We have been hired by your landlord to kill you.” While he was still speaking one among them brought out a gun and another brought out a dagger. I was defenceless and knew that they would kill me, but God in His supernatural manner performed a miracle that surprised both myself and themselves. The man with the gun fired at me but there was no sound. The man with the dagger used it on my back but it never penetrated rather it sounded like using a rod on someone. They were as frightened as myself. The Spirit of God came on me and I started preaching. Three of them ran away, but the fourth man broke down and started weeping and pleaded that I should pray for him. I did not even know what to pray at that time but only said : “Lord, please forgive, forget and pardon him. Amen !” He gave his life to Christ so I took him to a Pentecostal church and explained what happened to the Pastor. I handed him over to the Pastor and left. As I walked into the house the landlord ran out and on his knees started pleading and said : “Please forgive me. I thought you decided to run away to Port Harcourt because of my money (N1,000).” I forgave him and we finally agreed that the money be paid by instalments.

That same night, about 2 ;00 a.m. the Lord woke me up. I did not know why I woke up so I walked to the living room and what I saw was a large tortoise facing me. Immediately I remembered the Bible study we had in Port Harcourt, about the power in the word. I then spoke these words : “Tortoise, since I was born, the home of the tortoise is either the bush or the sea, but for coming into my house while windows and doors are locked you have sinned, and for this you must die.” As soon as I said this it vanished. I went back to the room and slept. A second time again, I woke up and heard some noise in the living room. I went and there standing before me was a horrible looking vulture. I repeated the same words and as soon as I said : “For committing this sin you must die,” it vanished also. During this Lagos trip I saw God’s goodness, greatness and faithfulness.

The following morning 29/9/85, I took a luxurious bus to Port Harcourt. Reaching Ore, the bus ran onto a tree. It got damaged but no one was hurt. The driver pulled it out back to the road and as he drove along, the bus started swerving from one side of the road to another. I remembered NINA’s threats, so I stood up in the bus, preached to the passengers and concluded by saying : “It is because of me that these accidents are happening. But from now on, there shall be no more accidents until we get to Port Harcourt, in Jesus’ name !” And I sat down. In fact, when I sat down, I wondered at what I had said. And so it was. The vehicle moved smoothly to Port Harcourt. No more accidents or breakdowns. The Scripture rightly says : “Behold, they shall surely gather together, but not by Me : whosoever shall gather together against thee shall fall for thy sake” (Isa. 54:15). They (the Queen of the Coast and her agents) tried, but because their gathering was not unto the Lord but against His child, they all stumbled and fell. “When the enemy shall come in like a flood, the Spirit of God shall lift up a standard against him” (Isa. 59:19). I give God all the glory for showing Himself strong on my behalf.

Chapter 7 : Activities of Satan’s Agents

(Put on the whole armour of God, that ye may be able to stand against
the wiles of the devil. For we wrestle not against flesh and blood,
but against principalities, against powers,
against the rulers of the darkness of this world,
against spiritual wickedness in high places)
Eph. 6:11-12

This book would not be complete if the different methods of operation of these powers are not exposed. Also it is important that the different forms in which they manifest themselves be exposed.

One thing is clear and that is, the devil would either encourage you to believe that he is a myth or simple evil thoughts, or would make you see more of his powers and less of the powers of God. While the Bible says : “We wrestle not against flesh and blood but against principalities, against powers, against the rulers of the darkness of this world, against spiritual wickedness in high places,” the Bible also says that the weapons of the Christians against the devil and his agents “are not carnal but mighty through God to the pulling down of strongholds, casting down imaginations and every high thing that exalteth itself against the knowledge of God, and bringing into captivity every thought to the obedience of Christ” (2 Cor. 10:4-5). Again the Scriptures clearly declare : “For this purpose the Son of God was manifested that He might destroy the works of the devil” (1 John 3:8). And Jesus having spoilt principalities and powers, He made a show of them openly, triumphing over them.

“Thou art snared with the words of thy mouth, thou art taken with the words of thy mouth” (Prov. 6:2) say the Scriptures. Therefore the child of God must be careful to confess the Word of God, which God has promised He will hasten to perform. There are three confessions stated in the Word of God :

1. Confession of the Lordship of Christ.
2. Confession of faith in the Word, in Christ and in God the Father.
3. Confession of sin.

When we hear the word “confession,” we easily think of sin. The dictionary definition of confession is :

1. Affirming something we believe.
2. Testifying to something that we know.
3. Witnessing of a truth we have embraced.

It is therefore to be regretted that whenever we use the word confession some minds run to sin. The author is here encouraging the child of God to start today to confess what God has said. You who were dead in trespasses had God quickened together with Christ and He has raised you up together and made you sit in heavenly places (far above principalities and powers) in Christ Jesus. Christians should therefore realize where they are seated. They should know that they are operating from that height, above Satan and his agents. The Lord Jesus Christ has given you all powers and authority just as He has given you all that pertaineth to life and godliness (2 Peter 1:3). God never intended that circumstances should control His children, rather that the Word of God in the mouth of the Christian should control his circumstances. God spoke in Jer. 23:29 saying : “Is not my word like as a fire ? saith the Lord ; and like a hammer that breaketh the rock in pieces ?” Christians, I mean born again Christians, should realize that when the name of Jesus is pronounced, what comes out of their mouth is fire. When a Christian stands on the authority given him by Christ and gives a command in Jesus name, fire pours out of his mouth and any demon controlling the circumstances must obey. Jesus is alive today to see to it that every word of His comes to pass. Again, I want to highlight an important fact many Christians overlook, and which Satan is using. Jesus, after Peter pointed out to Him the dried fig tree cursed by the Lord, said :

(Matthew’s account) “Verily I say unto you, if ye have faith and doubt not, ye shall not only do this which is done to the fig tree, but also if ye shall say unto this mountain, be thou removed and be thou cast into the sea, it shall be done. And all things, whatsoever ye shall ask in prayer, believing, ye shall receive (Matt. 21 : 21-22).

(Mark’s account) “Have faith in God. For verily I say unto you, that whosoever shall SAY unto this mountain, be thou removed and be thou cast into the sea, and shall not doubt in his heart, but shall believe that those things which he said shall come to pass, he shall have whatsoever he saith” (Mark 11 : 22-25).

Here the Lord points out to us the power of the spoken word and also encourages the Christian to be specific in his prayers and in exercising his authority. Some Christians ask the mountain to move but do not tell the mountain WHERE to go. Jesus said if you shall say to the mountain : “Be thou removed and be thou cast into the sea…” Let us take the case of casting out demons for instance. Some Christians bind and cast out demons without sending them to specific destinations. This is dangerous. When you bind a demon it is bound. If you cast it out without sending it to a specific destination, it remains within the vicinity. If the demon is only rebuked out of a man, he may later come back or enter into anyone around who is not a Christian. Therefore Christians should be careful when dealing with demons. Make sure the demon is bound, cast out and sent to a specific destination.

Some Christians while praying would say : “I arrest you demons in Jesus’ name.” In the spirit world you really see demons standing erect waiting for the next command. But if the Christian stops at that point, he has not helped the victim. Do not play around with the devil. You don’t play around with your enemy. God has sent you out on a ministry of deliverance and reconciliation (reconciling men to God). Therefore you must be careful to do a thorough work. I repeat, when you bind a demon, it is bound. When you cast it out to any destination it is so. As long as you do not meddle with sin but live in the will of God, whatever command you give the devil or his agents in the name of Jesus must be obeyed. God has promised to back every word of His. As we go on to the next phase, manifestation of Satan and his agents, I want you to have the following passages on your mind :

1. “Ye are complete in Him which is the head of ALL principality and power”
(Col. 2:10).

2. “Behold, I give you power (authority) to tread on serpents and scorpions, and over all the power of the enemy, and nothing shall by any means hurt you.”
3. “Behold, they shall surely gather together but not by me. Whosoever shall gather together against thee shall fall for thy sake. No weapon that is formed against thee shall prosper : and every tongue that shall rise against thee in judgment thou shalt condemn. This is the heritage of the servants of the Lord, and their righteousness is of me.”

I want to show you in this book that these evil forces operate mainly in churches, market places, graveyards, jungles, hotels, sea and air.

In the Churches

We are witnesses today that there are many possessed persons in the churches. Some speak in tongues and even prophesy. Only those with the Spirit of God can discern these fellows. But we are here discussing the agents of Satan in the churches. Again, we are not discussing the secret cult members who are in the churches (some are even leaders), we know they are there. What I am talking about is those who come in as agents of satan :

1. To cause quarrels and confusion in the churches.
2. To scatter the churches.
3. To make men and women sleep while the sermon is on.
4. To cause distraction of various sorts when the service is on.
5. To win souls for Satan.

Since I had already said a few things on the above in chapter three, I will only give you a testimony of what happened in the recent past. Christians should abide by every word of the Lord Jesus Christ, because when they disobey or compromise they are prone to fall at the slightest attempt of Satan or his agents. Christians have been called out from darkness into God’s own marvellous light. Christians have been called to total separation from the world and what it offers. “Come out from among them and be ye separate,” says the Scripture.

There was this sister, sister J (name withheld). She was born again and was full member of one of the ‘living’ churches. She later transferred her membership to my own denomination. She partook in all the activities in the church and was very active in them. But her character at a point became suspicious. So a few of us decided to visit her at her house and to find out what was really wrong with her. While interviewing her, the spirits in her were provoked and began manifesting, and then told us she was their agent in the church. These demons were cast out of her and deliverance was ministered to her. “Sister, how come you are an agent of Satan, yet a full member of the church ?” we asked. What she told us was the following : It all started one day, after a Sunday service, a ‘sister’ (female believer in Christ, so she thought) came to her and expressed her desire to be close to her because, according to this ‘sister,’ she admires sister J’s Christian life. She accepted her friendship without reservations. The two went to sister J’s house and the so-called ‘sister’ brought out bananas and ground nuts, which they both ate. She stayed with Sister J for a while and later left.

Her visits became regular, and on each visit she brought gifts to sister J. The gifts ranged from dresses, shoes, money, etc. On some occasions sister J’s friend would come with many other girls. This continued for a period and when the ‘sister’ saw that she had succeeded in putting out the light of Christ in Sister J, she changed and started visiting Sister J in the spirit. Sister J was then given a red cloth, a water stone, a ring for her right toe, and a chain for her ankle. Because she had eaten so much with them and had taken so much from them, there was no chance of turning back. She entered into covenant with them and started attending their meetings. She could change into snake, bat, etc. She then became their agent to win souls for them in the church.

Praise God she is now delivered ! All the gifts given her were destroyed and she is now happy again in the Lord. Dear reader, it all started with an unusual friendship, and because Sister J lacked the spirit of discernment and was not watchful as is commanded by the Lord “watch and pray that ye fall not into temptation,” she went astray and fell deep into the hands of the enemy and her race could have ended in hell because of carelessness. You can easily identify Satan’s agents with the following :

- They wear rings on one of their big toes, chain around the ankle, nose-rings, unusual bangles, etc.
- They could enter into a church or fellowship and be very zealous in the activities of the group or church, just for a single Christian they are after. Some behave abnormally, others are wicked, etc.

That is why the child of God should ask God for the spirit of discernment, to enable him/her identify them at a glance. The moment they know you have recognized them, they make sure they do not come near you. The reason being that their master will warn them about you !

In the Market Places

They operate in various forms in the market. The market is one of their major areas of operations, just as the hotel is where they lay in wait for men. In the market, they pick their victims, some pregnant women whose miscarriages they cause to enable them get the blood for their blood banks. Some victims they would accompany to their residence in order to visit such in the nights. This happens to the unbelievers ! Certain fanciful products sold in the market e.g. necklaces, lipsticks, perfumes, and food items such as sardines “Queen of the Coast” etc., have strange origins.

There are certain actions Christians have to watch out, for you might see a lady or perhaps a gentleman who suddenly touches your stomach or any part of your body. It causes sickness. The Christian therefore should, on experiencing this, give the word of command in Jesus’ name, scattering or destroying the plans of the devil, etc. And sure enough whatever you scatter or bind here on earth shall be so.

Cultural activities

It is also very important to note that many people get initiated into Satan’s activities or get possessed through most of these cultural ceremonies and dances. Most of our cultures are demon oriented. Some through friends, others through reading some pamphlets or novels. Demons hover in the vicinity of every idol. They function through idols in the practice of idolatry (Zec. 10:2). As a definite part of religion, idolatry ascribes divine power to natural agencies and pays divine honour to a created object (Rom. 1:18-22). The Scripture defines idolatry as spiritual adultery (Jer. 3:8-10). Therefore a child of God should have no connection whatsoever, directly or indirectly, with idolatry. So called high life, juju and disco music are inspired by Satan and his demons.

I do remember, that before the Lord saved me, in one of the meetings we had with Satan, he said : “This world is mine and I am going to rule the whole world in my power, and would destroy all who believe in the name of the Righteous One.” Satan does not mention the name of Jesus. If anyone does that in his presence he/ she stands the risk of losing his life. He promised making those of us his agents, governors, etc. Satan is a liar and indeed the father of lies. There were also plans to silence the Christians in Nigeria by restricting importation of Bibles and Christian literature.

He operates through unbelievers in positions of leadership and authority, to initiate anti- Christian policies and programmes. He establishes healing centres which would appear very religious and through them claim souls. These centres usually called spiritual healing homes are all around us. Here many lying wonders are performed to deceive their clients. Satan is very much aware of the second coming of Jesus Christ and constantly urges his agents to hurry and be ardent in their operations, always saying : “We have no time left.” Dear child of God, Satan is not sleeping, why must you sleep !

Chapter 8 : The Believer’s Weapons

- THE NAME OF JESUS
- THE BLOOD OF JESUS
- THE WORD OF GOD
- CHRISTIAN PRAISES

(Finally brethren, be strong in the Lord and in the power of His might.
Put on the whole armour of God that ye may be able to stand
against the wiles of the devil) Eph. 6:10-11

(And they overcame him by the blood of
the lamb and by the word of their testimony)
Rev. 12:11

I have already said much on this earlier, but just to give a few instances. Please realize that there is POWER in that name of Jesus ! There is Power in the Blood of Jesus ! The Scripture says : “And being found in fashion as a man, he humbled himself, and became obedient unto death, even the death of the cross. Wherefore God also had highly exalted Him, and given Him a Name which is above every name : That at the Name of Jesus every knee should bow, of things in heaven, and things in earth and things under the earth : And that every tongue should confess that Jesus Christ is Lord, to the glory of God the Father” (Phil. 2:8-11). Again the Scripture says : “And they overcame him by the Blood of the Lamb and by the Word of their testimony” (Rev. 12:11). Let the name “Jesus” always be on your lips ! These two, the name and the blood, scatter the plans of Satan, and in fact destroy the strategies of Satan and his agents.

Secondly, you must learn to sing praises to God always. There is power in praises. There was this Pastor – Pastor I.K. (name withheld). He was pastoring a church in Ebute Metta. He became my target and his offences were :

1. He disturbed our peace by carrying out early morning calls i.e. preaching in the early hours.
2. He went about with his megaphone and stationed himself at N.° 2 Bus-stop along Akintola Road, Ebute Metta. There he would preach. He would not stop at that but would keep binding demons, etc.
3. In his church he would preach, exposing the works of darkness, after which he started binding demons.
4. He prayed a lot.
5. He was always singing and praising God.

I sent my messengers to him but they could not kill him so I decided to carry out the mission myself. On the said day, I saw him walking along the new G.R.A. A thing worth mentioning here about this Pastor is : any time we went for him, we would see pillars of cloud by his right and left hands, walking along with him, so these hindered us. But this particular day I saw nothing, so I was doubly sure my mission would be very successful. I commanded rain to fall to enable me to strike him with thunder. The rain started and the thundering began. The whole trees in the area started losing their branches, but this Pastor was singing joyfully. I still remember the chorus : “In Jesus Name every knee shall bow.”

As he continued with this chorus the rain stopped, the thundering ceased. There appeared immediately two angels, one of each side, with flaming swords. Their eyes and the swords were like flames of fire. Then a strong wind carried me away and I found myself in another town ! In fact I was baffled, but because we were so hardened, what I said was : “This man has escaped again !” The Pastor did not know the spiritual war that was fought on his behalf. So, you can see, the child of God is well secured. When the Bible says : “Nothing shall by any means hurt you,” it means what it says !

The second testimony is about a Christian who boarded the same taxi with me. He was very zealous and started distributing Gospel tracts inside taxi. When he gave me the tract I rejected it. He started preaching. So I became disturbed and knocked him with the ring on my finger. That was to kill him. This boy shouted : “The blood of Jesus !” Immediately lightning and fire and an angel appeared. A strong wind again removed me with great force out of the taxi and into the thick jungle. Had it not been that I was a man backed by evil powers I could have got lost in the jungle. The Christian did not know the war that went on his behalf. All he knew, including the other passengers, was that I had disappeared from the taxi !

The name of Jesus or the Blood of Jesus in the mouth of the believer sends out fire etc. The Scripture says : “The Name of the Lord is a strong tower : the righteous runneth into it, and is safe” (Prov. 18:10).

Dear reader, if you are a child of God, remember that God has magnified His word above all His name (Psa. 138:2), therefore confess the Word (the Word of God) believing that what you said shall come to pass, and it shall be so. That is God’s promise!

Again I would like to mention here that you can only confess what you know. The Scripture enjoins us to delight in the Word of God, meditating on it day and night. For you to rightly divide the Word of Truth, you must know it. Col. 3:16 says: “Let the word of Christ dwell in you richly in all wisdom.” Again Psalm 1 : 1-3 says : “Blessed is the man that walketh not in the counsel of the ungodly, nor standeth in the way of sinners, nor sitteth in the seat of the scornful. But his delight is in the law of the Lord; and in His law doth he meditate day and night. And he also shall be like a tree planted by rivers of water, that bringeth forth its fruit in his season; his leaf shall not wither; and whatsoever he doth shall prosper.” Get close to your Bible; pray without ceasing ; have a singing heart and stand, exercise the authority given to you by the Lord Jesus Christ !

Chapter 9 : Now What Next ?

(The Spirit and the bride say, “Come!” And let him who hears say,
“Come!” Whoever is thirsty, let him come; and whoever wishes,
let him take the free gift of the water of life.)
Rev. 22 : 17

Having read through this testimony, you need no further preaching to give your life to Jesus Christ. The Scripture says : “The thief (Satan) cometh not but for to steal, to kill and to destroy. I (Jesus Christ) have come that you might have life, and have it more abundantly” (John 10:10).

Satan hates you and has devised various means of taking you to hell with him. That, you can testify from this testimony. If Satan makes a promise to you or even gives you a gift, know that it is ill-intentioned. Satan is a liar and the father of lies. God called him your enemy, why not believe God and His Word ?

It is not by accident that you came across this testimony. Examine yourself and make sure you are in Christ. You will only succeed in deceiving yourself if you choose to remain a ‘church goer’ and worst of all, if you still decide to put up an nonchalant attitude to this most important decision of your life.

We implore you on Christ’s behalf: Be reconciled to God. If you are not yet saved, that means if according to the Word of God you have not accepted the Lord Jesus Christ as your Lord and Personal Saviour yet, following by water baptism by immersion, we encourage you to do so without delay. Tomorrow may be too late.

Posted in FROM SATANISM AND DEVIL WORSHIP TO CHRISTIANITY | 13 Comments »

 
Follow

Get every new post delivered to your Inbox.